This is a modern-English version of On the Origin of Species by Means of Natural Selection: or the Preservation of Favoured Races in the Struggle for Life. (2nd edition), originally written by Darwin, Charles. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

1859, First Edition
227641860, Second Edition
1872, Sixth Edition, considered the definitive edition.
Transcriber's note: A few typographical errors have been corrected. They appear in the text like this, and the explanation will appear when the mouse pointer is moved over the marked passage.

ON THE

ORIGIN OF SPECIES.


"But with regard to the material world, we can at least go so far as this—we can perceive that events are brought about not by insulated interpositions of Divine power, exerted in each particular case, but by the establishment of general laws."

"But when it comes to the material world, we can at least agree on this—we can see that events happen not through isolated acts of Divine power applied in each specific instance, but through the creation of general laws."

Whewell: Bridgewater Treatise.

Whewell: Bridgewater Treatise.

"The only distinct meaning of the word 'natural' is stated, fixed, or settled; since what is natural as much requires and presupposes an intelligent agent to render it so, i.e. to effect it continually or at stated times, as what is supernatural or miraculous does to effect it for once."

"The only clear meaning of the word 'natural' is stated, fixed, or settled; because what is natural also requires and assumes an intelligent agent to make it so, i.e. to bring it about continually or at set times, just as what is supernatural or miraculous does to bring it about just once."

Butler: Analogy of Revealed Religion.

Butler: Analogy of Revealed Religion.

"To conclude, therefore, let no man out of a weak conceit of sobriety, or an ill-applied moderation, think or maintain, that a man can search too far or be too well studied in the book of God's word, or in the book of God's works; divinity or philosophy; but rather let men endeavour an endless progress or proficience in both."

"To wrap it up, let no one, out of a misguided sense of sobriety or poorly applied moderation, think that a person can study too deeply or know too much about God's word or God's creations; whether it's theology or philosophy; instead, let everyone strive for continuous growth and improvement in both."

Bacon: Advancement of Learning.

Bacon: Advancement of Knowledge.


Down, Bromley, Kent,

Down, Bromley, Kent

October 1st, 1859. (1st Thousand).

October 1, 1859. (1st Thousand).


ON

THE ORIGIN OF SPECIES

BY MEANS OF NATURAL SELECTION,

OR THE

OR THE

PRESERVATION OF FAVOURED RACES IN THE STRUGGLE
FOR LIFE.

By CHARLES DARWIN, M.A.,

FELLOW OF THE ROYAL, GEOLOGICAL, LINNEAN, ETC., SOCIETIES;

FELLOW OF THE ROYAL, GEOLOGICAL, LINNEAN, ETC., SOCIETIES;

AUTHOR OF 'JOURNAL OF RESEARCHES DURING H. M. S. BEAGLE'S VOYAGE
ROUND THE WORLD.'

AUTHOR OF 'JOURNAL OF RESEARCHES DURING H. M. S. BEAGLE'S VOYAGE
ROUND THE WORLD.'

FIFTH THOUSAND.

LONDON:
JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET.
1860.

The right of Translation is reserved.

All rights for translation are reserved.


LONDON: PRINTED BY W. CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET,
AND CHARING CROSS.

LONDON: PRINTED BY W. CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET,
AND CHARING CROSS.


[v]

[v]

CONTENTS.


Introduction

Introduction

Page 1

Page __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

CHAPTER I.

Variation under Domestication.

Variation in Domestication.

Causes of Variability—Effects of Habit—Correlation of Growth—Inheritance—Character of Domestic Varieties—Difficulty of distinguishing between Varieties and Species—Origin of Domestic Varieties from one or more Species—Domestic Pigeons, their Differences and Origin—Principle of Selection anciently followed, its Effects—Methodical and Unconscious Selection—Unknown Origin of our Domestic Productions—Circumstances favourable to Man's power of Selection

Causes of Variability—Effects of Habit—Correlation of Growth—Inheritance—Characteristics of Domestic Varieties—Difficulty in Distinguishing Between Varieties and Species—Origin of Domestic Varieties from One or More Species—Domestic Pigeons, Their Differences and Origin—Principle of Selection Used in Ancient Times, Its Effects—Methodical and Unconscious Selection—Unknown Origin of Our Domestic Products—Circumstances Favorable to Human Power of Selection

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER II.

Variation under Nature.

Variation in Nature.

Variability—Individual differences—Doubtful species—Wide ranging, much diffused, and common species vary most—Species of the larger genera in any country vary more than the species of the smaller genera—Many of the species of the larger genera resemble varieties in being very closely, but unequally, related to each other, and in having restricted ranges

Variability—Individual differences—Uncertain species—Widespread, well-distributed, and common species show the most variation—Species from the larger genera in any country tend to vary more than those from smaller genera—Many species from the larger genera are similar to varieties in that they are very closely, but unequally, related to one another and have limited ranges.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

[vi]

[vi]

CHAPTER III.

Struggle for Existence.

Fight for Survival.

Its bearing on natural selection—The term used in a wide sense—Geometrical powers of increase—Rapid increase of naturalised animals and plants—Nature of the checks to increase—Competition universal—Effects of climate—Protection from the number of individuals—Complex relations of all animals and plants throughout nature—Struggle for life most severe between individuals and varieties of the same species; often severe between species of the same genus—The relation of organism to organism the most important of all relations

Its impact on natural selection—the term used broadly—Geometrical growth potential—Rapid growth of introduced animals and plants—Nature of the limits to growth—Competition is everywhere—Effects of climate—Protection due to the number of individuals—Complex relationships among all animals and plants in nature—The struggle for survival is most intense between individuals and varieties of the same species; it’s often intense between species of the same genus—The relationship between organisms is the most crucial of all relationships.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER IV.

Natural Selection.

Survival of the fittest.

Natural Selection—its power compared with man's selection—its power on characters of trifling importance—its power at all ages and on both sexes—Sexual Selection—On the generality of intercrosses between individuals of the same species—Circumstances favourable and unfavourable to Natural Selection, namely, intercrossing, isolation, number of individuals—Slow action—Extinction caused by Natural Selection—Divergence of Character, related to the diversity of inhabitants of any small area, and to naturalisation—Action of Natural Selection, through Divergence of Character and Extinction, on the descendants from a common parent—Explains the Grouping of all organic beings

Natural Selection—its strength compared to human selection—its influence on traits of minor significance—its effects at all ages and on both genders—Sexual Selection—About the general occurrence of crossbreeding among individuals of the same species—Conditions that favor or hinder Natural Selection, including crossbreeding, isolation, and population size—Gradual effects—Extinction resulting from Natural Selection—Divergence of Traits, linked to the variety of organisms in any small area and their adaptation—The impact of Natural Selection, through Divergence of Traits and Extinction, on descendants from a common ancestor—Explains the classification of all living organisms.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER V.

Laws of Variation.

Principles of Variation.

Effects of external conditions—Use and disuse, combined with natural selection; organs of flight and of vision—Acclimatisation—Correlation of growth—Compensation and economy of growth—False correlations—Multiple, rudimentary, and lowly organised structures variable—Parts developed in an unusual manner are highly variable: specific characters more variable than generic: secondary sexual characters variable—Species of the same genus vary in an analogous manner—Reversions to long-lost characters—Summary

Effects of external conditions—Use and disuse, combined with natural selection; flight and vision organs—Acclimatization—Growth correlation—Compensation and growth economy—False correlations—Multiple, rudimentary, and simply organized structures are variable—Parts that develop in unusual ways are highly variable: specific traits are more variable than generic ones: secondary sexual traits are variable—Species within the same genus vary in similar ways—Reversions to long-lost traits—Summary

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

[vii]

[vii]

CHAPTER VI.

Difficulties on Theory.

Challenges in Theory.

Difficulties on the theory of descent with modification—Transitions—Absence or rarity of transitional varieties—Transitions in habits of life—Diversified habits in the same species—Species with habits widely different from those of their allies—Organs of extreme perfection—Means of transition—Cases of difficulty—Natura non facit saltum—Organs of small importance—Organs not in all cases absolutely perfect—The law of Unity of Type and of the Conditions of Existence embraced by the theory of Natural Selection

Difficulties with the theory of evolution—Transitions—Lack or rarity of transitional varieties—Changes in lifestyle—Varied habits within the same species—Species with behaviors very different from their relatives—Extremely advanced organs—Ways of transitioning—Challenging cases—Nature doesn’t make leaps—Less significant organs—Organs aren’t always completely perfect—The principle of Unity of Type and the Conditions of Existence are included in the theory of Natural Selection.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER VII.

Instinct.

Intuition.

Instincts comparable with habits, but different in their origin—Instincts graduated—Aphides and ants—Instincts variable—Domestic instincts, their origin—Natural instincts of the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees—Slave-making ants—Hive-bee, its cell-making instinct—Difficulties on the theory of the Natural Selection of instincts—Neuter or sterile insects—Summary

Instincts are similar to habits but differ in how they develop. Instincts can vary in intensity. There are interactions between aphids and ants. Instincts aren't fixed and can change. Domestic instincts have their roots in natural instincts, as seen in cuckoos, ostriches, and certain bees that rely on others. Some ants also engage in slave-making behaviors. Consider the hive bee and its instinct to build cells. There are challenges related to the theory of Natural Selection concerning instincts. Neuter or sterile insects also play a role. In summary,

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER VIII.

Hybridism.

Hybridism.

Distinction between the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids—Sterility various in degree, not universal, affected by close interbreeding, removed by domestication—Laws governing the sterility of hybrids—Sterility not a special endowment, but incidental on other differences—Causes of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids—Parallelism between the effects of changed conditions of life and crossing—Fertility of varieties when crossed and of their mongrel offspring not universal—Hybrids and mongrels compared independently of their fertility—Summary

Distinction between the sterility of first crosses and hybrids—Sterility varies in degree, isn't universal, is influenced by close interbreeding, and can be eliminated through domestication—Laws that govern the sterility of hybrids—Sterility isn't a specific trait, but a byproduct of other differences—Reasons for the sterility of first crosses and hybrids—Similarities between the effects of altered living conditions and crossing—The fertility of varieties when crossed and their mixed offspring isn't universal—Hybrids and mixed breeds compared regardless of their fertility—Summary

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

[viii]

[viii]

CHAPTER IX.

On the Imperfection of the Geological Record.

On the Incompleteness of the Geological Record.

On the absence of intermediate varieties at the present day—On the nature of extinct intermediate varieties; on their number—On the vast lapse of time, as inferred from the rate of deposition and of denudation—On the poorness of our palæontological collections—On the intermittence of geological formations—On the absence of intermediate varieties in any one formation—On the sudden appearance of groups of species—On their sudden appearance in the lowest known fossiliferous strata

On the lack of intermediate varieties today—On the characteristics of extinct intermediate varieties; on how many there were—On the immense amount of time, based on the rate of sediment buildup and erosion—On the scarcity of our paleontological collections—On the sporadic nature of geological formations—On the lack of intermediate varieties in any specific formation—On the abrupt emergence of groups of species—On their sudden emergence in the earliest known fossil-bearing layers

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER X.

On the Geological Succession of Organic Beings.

On the Geological Progression of Living Organisms.

On the slow and successive appearance of new species—On their different rates of change—Species once lost do not reappear—Groups of species follow the same general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single species—On Extinction—On simultaneous changes in the forms of life throughout the world—On the affinities of extinct species to each other and to living species—On the state of development of ancient forms—On the succession of the same types within the same areas—Summary of preceding and present chapters

On the gradual and ongoing emergence of new species—On their varying rates of change—Species that have gone extinct do not come back—Groups of species follow the same general patterns in their appearance and disappearance as individual species—On Extinction—On concurrent changes in life forms across the globe—On the relationships between extinct species and between them and living species—On the level of development of ancient forms—On the succession of similar types in the same regions—Summary of previous and current chapters

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER XI.

Geographical Distribution.

Geographical Distribution.

Present distribution cannot be accounted for by differences in physical conditions—Importance of barriers—Affinity of the productions of the same continent—Centres of creation—Means of dispersal, by changes of climate and of the level of the land, and by occasional means—Dispersal during the Glacial period co-extensive with the world

Present distribution can't be explained by differences in physical conditions—The importance of barriers—The similarities in the species found on the same continent—Centers of origin—Ways of spreading, due to climate changes and changes in land elevation, as well as occasional methods—Dispersal during the Ice Age was worldwide.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER XII.

Geographical Distributioncontinued.

Geographical Distribution—continued.

Distribution of fresh-water productions—On the inhabitants of oceanic islands—Absence of Batrachians and of terrestrial Mammals—On the relation of the inhabitants of islands to those of the nearest mainland—On colonisation from the nearest source with subsequent modification—Summary of the last and present chapters

Distribution of freshwater species—About the people living on oceanic islands—Lack of amphibians and land mammals—On how the inhabitants of islands are related to those of the nearest mainland—On colonization from the closest source and the changes that follow—Summary of the last and current chapters

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER XIII.

Mutual Affinities of Organic Beings: Morphology: Embryology: Rudimentary Organs.

Mutual Connections of Living Organisms: Structure: Development: Vestigial Organs.

Classification, groups subordinate to groups—Natural system—Rules and difficulties in classification, explained on the theory of descent with modification—Classification of varieties—Descent always used in classification—Analogical or adaptive characters—Affinities, general, complex and radiating—Extinction separates and defines groups—Morphology, between members of the same class, between parts of the same individual—Embryology, laws of, explained by variations not supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a corresponding age—Rudimentary organs; their origin explained—Summary

Category, groups that are subordinate to other groups—Natural system—Rules and challenges in classification, explained through the theory of evolution with changes over time—Classification of varieties—Descent is always considered in classification—Analogical or adaptive characteristics—Affinities: general, complex, and radiating—Extinction helps to separate and define groups—Morphology, among members of the same class, and between parts of the same individual—Embryo development, its laws explained by variations not occurring at an early age and being inherited at a corresponding age—Vestigial organs; their origin explained—Summary

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

CHAPTER XIV.

Recapitulation and Conclusion.

Summary and Conclusion.

Recapitulation of the difficulties on the theory of Natural Selection—Recapitulation of the general and special circumstances in its favour—Causes of the general belief in the immutability of species—How far the theory of natural selection may be extended—Effects of its adoption on the study of Natural history—Concluding remarks

Recap of the challenges regarding the theory of Natural Selection—Summary of the overall and specific factors supporting it—Reasons for the widespread belief in the unchanging nature of species—The extent to which the natural selection theory can be applied—Impact of its acceptance on the study of Natural history—Final thoughts

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__


[1]

[1]

ON THE ORIGIN OF SPECIES.


INTRODUCTION.

When on board H.M.S. 'Beagle,' as naturalist, I was much struck with certain facts in the distribution of the inhabitants of South America, and in the geological relations of the present to the past inhabitants of that continent. These facts seemed to me to throw some light on the origin of species—that mystery of mysteries, as it has been called by one of our greatest philosophers. On my return home, it occurred to me, in 1837, that something might perhaps be made out on this question by patiently accumulating and reflecting on all sorts of facts which could possibly have any bearing on it. After five years' work I allowed myself to speculate on the subject, and drew up some short notes; these I enlarged in 1844 into a sketch of the conclusions, which then seemed to me probable: from that period to the present day I have steadily pursued the same object. I hope that I may be excused for entering on these personal details, as I give them to show that I have not been hasty in coming to a decision.

When I was on board H.M.S. 'Beagle' as a naturalist, I was really struck by certain facts about the distribution of people in South America and the geological connections between the current and past inhabitants of that continent. These facts seemed to shed some light on the origin of species—what some of our greatest philosophers have called the mystery of mysteries. When I got back home in 1837, I thought that maybe I could figure something out about this question by patiently gathering and thinking about all kinds of facts that could possibly relate to it. After five years of work, I allowed myself to think about the subject and wrote some brief notes; I expanded these in 1844 into a draft of the conclusions that seemed likely to me at the time: since then, I have consistently pursued the same goal. I hope I can be forgiven for sharing these personal details, as I mention them to show that I haven't rushed into my conclusions.

My work is now nearly finished; but as it will take me two or three more years to complete it, and as my health is far from strong, I have been urged to publish this Abstract. I have more especially been induced to do this, as Mr. Wallace, who is now studying the [2]natural history of the Malay archipelago, has arrived at almost exactly the same general conclusions that I have on the origin of species. Last year he sent me a memoir on this subject, with a request that I would forward it to Sir Charles Lyell, who sent it to the Linnean Society, and it is published in the third volume of the Journal of that Society. Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Hooker, who both knew of my work—the latter having read my sketch of 1844—honoured me by thinking it advisable to publish, with Mr. Wallace's excellent memoir, some brief extracts from my manuscripts.

My work is almost done, but since it will take me another two or three years to finish and my health isn’t great, I've been encouraged to publish this summary. I’ve been especially motivated to do this because Mr. Wallace, who is currently studying the natural history of the Malay archipelago, has reached nearly the same conclusions I have about the origin of species. Last year, he sent me a paper on this topic asking me to pass it on to Sir Charles Lyell, who then forwarded it to the Linnean Society, and it was published in the third volume of their Journal. Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Hooker, who were both aware of my work—the latter having read my 1844 sketch—honored me by suggesting that we publish, alongside Mr. Wallace's excellent paper, some brief extracts from my manuscripts.

This Abstract, which I now publish, must necessarily be imperfect. I cannot here give references and authorities for my several statements; and I must trust to the reader reposing some confidence in my accuracy. No doubt errors will have crept in, though I hope I have always been cautious in trusting to good authorities alone. I can here give only the general conclusions at which I have arrived, with a few facts in illustration, but which, I hope, in most cases will suffice. No one can feel more sensible than I do of the necessity of hereafter publishing in detail all the facts, with references, on which my conclusions have been grounded; and I hope in a future work to do this. For I am well aware that scarcely a single point is discussed in this volume on which facts cannot be adduced, often apparently leading to conclusions directly opposite to those at which I have arrived. A fair result can be obtained only by fully stating and balancing the facts and arguments on both sides of each question; and this cannot possibly be here done.

This Abstract, which I'm now publishing, will inevitably be incomplete. I can't provide references or sources for all my statements here, and I must rely on the reader to have some confidence in my accuracy. I'm sure errors will have slipped in, but I hope I've been careful to depend only on reliable sources. I can only share the general conclusions I've reached, along with a few illustrative facts, which, I hope, will be sufficient in most cases. No one understands more than I do the need to publish all the specifics, with references, on which my conclusions are based; and I intend to do that in a future work. I know that there’s hardly a single point discussed in this volume for which facts can't be presented, often leading to conclusions that contradict mine. A fair outcome can be achieved only by thoroughly stating and weighing the facts and arguments on both sides of every issue, and that's something I can't do here.

I much regret that want of space prevents my having the satisfaction of acknowledging the generous assistance which I have received from very many naturalists, some of them personally unknown to me. I cannot, however, [3]let this opportunity pass without expressing my deep obligations to Dr. Hooker, who for the last fifteen years has aided me in every possible way by his large stores of knowledge and his excellent judgment.

I really wish I had more space to acknowledge the generous help I've received from many naturalists, some of whom I don't even know personally. However, I can't let this opportunity go by without expressing my deep gratitude to Dr. Hooker, who for the last fifteen years has supported me in every way possible with his extensive knowledge and excellent judgment.

In considering the Origin of Species, it is quite conceivable that a naturalist, reflecting on the mutual affinities of organic beings, on their embryological relations, their geographical distribution, geological succession, and other such facts, might come to the conclusion that each species had not been independently created, but had descended, like varieties, from other species. Nevertheless, such a conclusion, even if well founded, would be unsatisfactory, until it could be shown how the innumerable species inhabiting this world have been modified, so as to acquire that perfection of structure and coadaptation which most justly excites our admiration. Naturalists continually refer to external conditions, such as climate, food, &c., as the only possible cause of variation. In one very limited sense, as we shall hereafter see, this may be true; but it is preposterous to attribute to mere external conditions, the structure, for instance, of the woodpecker, with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, so admirably adapted to catch insects under the bark of trees. In the case of the misseltoe, which draws its nourishment from certain trees, which has seeds that must be transported by certain birds, and which has flowers with separate sexes absolutely requiring the agency of certain insects to bring pollen from one flower to the other, it is equally preposterous to account for the structure of this parasite, with its relations to several distinct organic beings, by the effects of external conditions, or of habit, or of the volition of the plant itself.

In looking at the Origin of Species, it's easy to imagine a naturalist thinking about the connections between living organisms, their developmental relationships, their locations on the planet, their historical changes, and other similar facts. They might conclude that species weren't created independently but have descended, like varieties, from other species. However, even if this conclusion is sound, it would still be unsatisfying unless we could explain how the countless species living in this world have changed to achieve the remarkable complexity and fit that truly amazes us. Naturalists often point to external factors, like climate and food, as the only possible causes of variation. In a very limited way, as we’ll discuss later, this might be true; but it's ridiculous to attribute the woodpecker's unique structure—its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, which are perfectly designed for catching insects under tree bark—to just external conditions. Similarly, when it comes to mistletoe, which gets its nutrients from specific trees, has seeds that need to be carried by certain birds, and has flowers with separate sexes that absolutely depend on particular insects for pollen transfer, it’s equally absurd to explain the structure of this parasite and its relationship with various distinct organisms solely by external conditions, habits, or the intentions of the plant itself.

The author of the 'Vestiges of Creation' would, I presume, say that, after a certain unknown number of [4]generations, some bird had given birth to a woodpecker, and some plant to the missletoe, and that these had been produced perfect as we now see them; but this assumption seems to me to be no explanation, for it leaves the case of the coadaptations of organic beings to each other and to their physical conditions of life, untouched and unexplained.

The author of 'Vestiges of Creation' would probably claim that, after a certain unknown number of [4]generations, some bird gave birth to a woodpecker, and some plant to the mistletoe, and that these were produced perfectly as we see them now; but this assumption doesn't really explain anything, as it does not address the coadaptations of living beings to each other and to their physical environments.

It is, therefore, of the highest importance to gain a clear insight into the means of modification and coadaptation. At the commencement of my observations it seemed to me probable that a careful study of domesticated animals and of cultivated plants would offer the best chance of making out this obscure problem. Nor have I been disappointed; in this and in all other perplexing cases I have invariably found that our knowledge, imperfect though it be, of variation under domestication, afforded the best and safest clue. I may venture to express my conviction of the high value of such studies, although they have been very commonly neglected by naturalists.

It is, therefore, extremely important to gain a clear understanding of the ways modification and coadaptation work. When I first started my observations, I thought that a careful study of domesticated animals and cultivated plants would give the best chance of unraveling this complex issue. I have not been let down; in this and in all other confusing situations, I have consistently found that our knowledge—albeit imperfect—of variation in domestication has provided the best and safest insight. I can confidently express my belief in the significant value of such studies, even though they have often been overlooked by naturalists.

From these considerations, I shall devote the first chapter of this Abstract to Variation under Domestication. We shall thus see that a large amount of hereditary modification is at least possible; and, what is equally or more important, we shall see how great is the power of man in accumulating by his Selection successive slight variations. I will then pass on to the variability of species in a state of nature; but I shall, unfortunately, be compelled to treat this subject far too briefly, as it can be treated properly only by giving long catalogues of facts. We shall, however, be enabled to discuss what circumstances are most favourable to variation. In the next chapter the Struggle for Existence amongst all organic beings throughout the world, which inevitably follows from the high geometrical ratio of their [5]increase, will be treated of. This is the doctrine of Malthus, applied to the whole animal and vegetable kingdoms. As many more individuals of each species are born than can possibly survive; and as, consequently, there is a frequently recurring struggle for existence, it follows that any being, if it vary however slightly in any manner profitable to itself, under the complex and sometimes varying conditions of life, will have a better chance of surviving, and thus be naturally selected. From the strong principle of inheritance, any selected variety will tend to propagate its new and modified form.

From these thoughts, I will dedicate the first chapter of this Abstract to Variation under Domestication. We will see that a significant amount of hereditary change is at least possible; and, just as importantly, we will understand how powerful humans are in accumulating slight variations through their Selection. I will then move on to the variability of species in their natural state; however, I will unfortunately have to address this topic too briefly, as it can only be properly explored by providing extensive lists of facts. Nevertheless, we will be able to discuss what conditions are most favorable for variation. In the next chapter, I will cover the Struggle for Existence among all living beings across the globe, which inevitably arises from the rapid increase in their numbers. This concept is based on Malthus's theory, applied to all animal and plant life. Since many more individuals of each species are born than can possibly survive, and since there is often a recurring struggle for existence, it follows that any organism that varies even slightly in a way that benefits it will have a better chance of surviving and thus be naturally selected. Because of the strong principle of inheritance, any selected variety is likely to pass on its new and modified traits.

This fundamental subject of Natural Selection will be treated at some length in the fourth chapter; and we shall then see how Natural Selection almost inevitably causes much Extinction of the less improved forms of life, and leads to what I have called Divergence of Character. In the next chapter I shall discuss the complex and little known laws of variation and of correlation of growth. In the four succeeding chapters, the most apparent and gravest difficulties on the theory will be given: namely, first, the difficulties of transitions, or in understanding how a simple being or a simple organ can be changed and perfected into a highly developed being or elaborately constructed organ; secondly, the subject of Instinct, or the mental powers of animals; thirdly, Hybridism, or the infertility of species and the fertility of varieties when intercrossed; and fourthly, the imperfection of the Geological Record. In the next chapter I shall consider the geological succession of organic beings throughout time; in the eleventh and twelfth, their geographical distribution throughout space; in the thirteenth, their classification or mutual affinities, both when mature and in an embryonic condition. In the last chapter I shall give a [6]brief recapitulation of the whole work, and a few concluding remarks.

This key topic of Natural Selection will be discussed in detail in the fourth chapter; there, we will explore how Natural Selection often leads to the extinction of less advanced forms of life and results in what I've referred to as Divergence of Character. In the next chapter, I will address the complex and not well-understood laws of variation and the correlation of growth. In the following four chapters, we will examine the most significant and challenging issues related to the theory: first, the challenges of transitions, or how a simple organism or organ can evolve and improve into a highly developed being or a complex organ; second, the topic of Instinct, or the cognitive abilities of animals; third, Hybridism, or the infertility of different species and the fertility of varieties when they are crossed; and fourth, the incompleteness of the Geological Record. In the next chapter, I will look at the geological progression of living organisms through time; in the eleventh and twelfth chapters, their geographical distribution across space; and in the thirteenth, their classification or mutual relationships, both when they are mature and in their embryonic stages. In the final chapter, I will provide a [6]brief summary of the entire work and a few closing thoughts.

No one ought to feel surprise at much remaining as yet unexplained in regard to the origin of species and varieties, if he makes due allowance for our profound ignorance in regard to the mutual relations of all the beings which live around us. Who can explain why one species ranges widely and is very numerous, and why another allied species has a narrow range and is rare? Yet these relations are of the highest importance, for they determine the present welfare, and, as I believe, the future success and modification of every inhabitant of this world. Still less do we know of the mutual relations of the innumerable inhabitants of the world during the many past geological epochs in its history. Although much remains obscure, and will long remain obscure, I can entertain no doubt, after the most deliberate study and dispassionate judgment of which I am capable, that the view which most naturalists entertain, and which I formerly entertained—namely, that each species has been independently created—is erroneous. I am fully convinced that species are not immutable; but that those belonging to what are called the same genera are lineal descendants of some other and generally extinct species, in the same manner as the acknowledged varieties of any one species are the descendants of that species. Furthermore, I am convinced that Natural Selection has been the main but not exclusive means of modification.

No one should be surprised that a lot is still unexplained about the origin of species and varieties, especially when we consider how little we understand about the relationships between all the living beings around us. Who can explain why one species is widespread and abundant while another closely related species is limited in range and rare? Yet, these relationships are crucial because they affect the current well-being and, I believe, the future success and change of every living thing in this world. Even less is known about how the countless inhabitants of the planet interacted during the many geological epochs in its history. Although much remains unclear and will likely stay that way for a while, I have no doubt—after the most careful study and objective evaluation I can manage—that the view held by many naturalists today, which I once shared, that each species was created independently, is incorrect. I am convinced that species are not fixed; rather, those within the same genera are direct descendants of some other, generally extinct species, just as the recognized varieties of any one species are descendants of that species. Additionally, I believe that Natural Selection has been the primary, though not sole, means of evolution.


[7]

[7]

CHAPTER I.

Variation under Domestication.

Variation in Domestication.

Causes of Variability—Effects of Habit—Correlation of Growth—Inheritance—Character of Domestic Varieties—Difficulty of distinguishing between Varieties and Species—Origin of Domestic Varieties from one or more Species—Domestic Pigeons, their Differences and Origin—Principle of Selection anciently followed, its Effects—Methodical and Unconscious Selection—Unknown Origin of our Domestic Productions—Circumstances favourable to Man's power of Selection.

Causes of Variability—Effects of Habit—Correlation of Growth—Inheritance—Characteristics of Domestic Varieties—Challenges in distinguishing between Varieties and Species—Origin of Domestic Varieties from one or more Species—Domestic Pigeons, their Differences and Origin—Ancient Principles of Selection and their Effects—Methodical and Unconscious Selection—Unknown Origins of our Domestic Products—Conditions that Support Man's Ability to Select.

When we look to the individuals of the same variety or sub-variety of our older cultivated plants and animals, one of the first points which strikes us, is, that they generally differ more from each other than do the individuals of any one species or variety in a state of nature. When we reflect on the vast diversity of the plants and animals which have been cultivated, and which have varied during all ages under the most different climates and treatment, I think we are driven to conclude that this great variability is simply due to our domestic productions having been raised under conditions of life not so uniform as, and somewhat different from, those to which the parent-species have been exposed under nature. There is also, I think, some probability in the view propounded by Andrew Knight, that this variability may be partly connected with excess of food. It seems pretty clear that organic beings must be exposed during several generations to the new conditions of life to cause any appreciable amount of variation; and that when the organisation has once begun to vary, it generally continues to vary for many generations. [8]No case is on record of a variable being ceasing to be variable under cultivation. Our oldest cultivated plants, such as wheat, still often yield new varieties: our oldest domesticated animals are still capable of rapid improvement or modification.

When we examine individuals of the same type or breed of our older cultivated plants and animals, one of the first things that stands out is that they usually differ more from one another than the individuals of any one species or variety in the wild. Considering the vast diversity of plants and animals that have been cultivated, which have changed over time in various climates and with different treatments, I believe we can conclude that this significant variability is simply because our domesticated productions have been raised under conditions of life that are less uniform and somewhat different from those that the parent species have faced in nature. There’s also some likelihood in the idea proposed by Andrew Knight that this variability may be partly related to having an abundance of food. It seems clear that living organisms must be exposed to new life conditions for several generations to cause any significant variation; and once the organism starts to vary, it generally continues to vary for many generations. [8]No instance has been recorded of a variable being stopping its variability under cultivation. Our oldest cultivated plants, like wheat, still often produce new varieties, and our oldest domesticated animals are still capable of rapid improvement or modification.

It has been disputed at what period of life the causes of variability, whatever they may be, generally act; whether during the early or late period of development of the embryo, or at the instant of conception. Geoffroy St. Hilaire's experiments show that unnatural treatment of the embryo causes monstrosities; and monstrosities cannot be separated by any clear line of distinction from mere variations. But I am strongly inclined to suspect that the most frequent cause of variability may be attributed to the male and female reproductive elements having been affected prior to the act of conception. Several reasons make me believe in this; but the chief one is the remarkable effect which confinement or cultivation has on the function of the reproductive system; this system appearing to be far more susceptible than any other part of the organisation, to the action of any change in the conditions of life. Nothing is more easy than to tame an animal, and few things more difficult than to get it to breed freely under confinement, even in the many cases when the male and female unite. How many animals there are which will not breed, though living long under not very close confinement in their native country! This is generally attributed to vitiated instincts; but how many cultivated plants display the utmost vigour, and yet rarely or never seed! In some few such cases it has been discovered that very trifling changes, such as a little more or less water at some particular period of growth, will determine whether or not the plant sets a seed. I cannot here enter on the copious details which I have collected on [9]this curious subject; but to show how singular the laws are which determine the reproduction of animals under confinement, I may just mention that carnivorous animals, even from the tropics, breed in this country pretty freely under confinement, with the exception of the plantigrades or bear family; whereas carnivorous birds, with the rarest exceptions, hardly ever lay fertile eggs. Many exotic plants have pollen utterly worthless, in the same exact condition as in the most sterile hybrids. When, on the one hand, we see domesticated animals and plants, though often weak and sickly, yet breeding quite freely under confinement; and when, on the other hand, we see individuals, though taken young from a state of nature, perfectly tamed, long-lived, and healthy (of which I could give numerous instances), yet having their reproductive system so seriously affected by unperceived causes as to fail in acting, we need not be surprised at this system, when it does act under confinement, acting not quite regularly, and producing offspring not perfectly like their parents.

It's been debated when the causes of variability actually take effect in life—whether it's during the early or late stages of embryo development, or at the moment of conception. Geoffroy St. Hilaire's experiments indicate that unnatural treatment of embryos leads to deformities, and these deformities can't be clearly separated from simple variations. I strongly suspect that a primary cause of variability is related to how the male and female reproductive elements have been influenced before conception. There are several reasons that support my belief, but the main one is the noticeable impact that confinement or cultivation has on the reproductive system; it seems to be more sensitive to changes in life conditions than any other part of the body. It's quite easy to tame an animal, yet it's often very difficult to get it to breed freely in captivity, even when the male and female come together. Many animals won't breed after living for a long time under relatively loose confinement in their natural habitat! This is usually thought to be due to corrupted instincts. However, there are plenty of cultivated plants that show remarkable vigor yet rarely or never produce seeds! In a few cases, it's been found that small changes, like slightly more or less water at a specific growth stage, can decide whether a plant will produce seeds. I can't go into all the detailed information I've gathered on [9]this interesting topic right now, but to illustrate how peculiar the laws determining reproduction under confinement are, I’ll mention that carnivorous animals, even those from tropical areas, tend to breed fairly well in captivity, except for bears. Conversely, carnivorous birds, with very few exceptions, rarely lay fertile eggs. Many exotic plants have pollen that is completely useless, similar to the most infertile hybrids. On one hand, we see domesticated animals and plants, often weak and unhealthy, breeding easily in captivity; on the other hand, we find individuals taken young from nature that are well-tamed, long-lived, and healthy (and I could provide many examples), yet their reproductive systems are so severely affected by unnoticed factors that they fail to function. Therefore, it’s not surprising that when this system does function in confinement, it isn't always regular, and the offspring aren't identical to their parents.

Sterility has been said to be the bane of horticulture; but on this view we owe variability to the same cause which produces sterility; and variability is the source of all the choicest productions of the garden. I may add, that as some organisms will breed freely under the most unnatural conditions (for instance, the rabbit and ferret kept in hutches), showing that their reproductive system has not been thus affected; so will some animals and plants withstand domestication or cultivation, and vary very slightly—perhaps hardly more than in a state of nature.

Sterility is often considered a major problem in gardening; however, we can attribute variability to the same factors that cause sterility, and variability is what gives us the best results in the garden. Additionally, just as some animals breed readily even in unnatural settings (like rabbits and ferrets in cages), indicating that their reproductive systems remain unaffected, certain plants and animals can also endure domestication or cultivation with minimal changes—often not much different than in their natural environments.

A long list could easily be given of "sporting plants;" by this term gardeners mean a single bud or offset, which suddenly assumes a new and sometimes very different character from that of the rest of the plant. [10]Such buds can be propagated by grafting, &c., and sometimes by seed. These "sports" are extremely rare under nature, but far from rare under cultivation; and in this case we see that the treatment of the parent has affected a bud or offset, and not the ovules or pollen. But it is the opinion of most physiologists that there is no essential difference between a bud and an ovule in their earliest stages of formation; so that, in fact, "sports" support my view, that variability may be largely attributed to the ovules or pollen, or to both, having been affected by the treatment of the parent prior to the act of conception. These cases anyhow show that variation is not necessarily connected, as some authors have supposed, with the act of generation.

A long list could easily be made of "sporting plants"; this term refers to a single bud or offset that suddenly takes on a new and sometimes very different character from the rest of the plant. [10] Such buds can be propagated by grafting, etc., and sometimes by seed. These "sports" are extremely rare in nature, but not under cultivation; in this case, the way the parent plant is treated has affected a bud or offset, not the ovules or pollen. Most physiologists believe there is no fundamental difference between a bud and an ovule in their earliest stages of formation, so in fact, "sports" support my view that variability can mostly be traced back to the ovules or pollen, or both, having been influenced by the treatment of the parent before conception. These cases show that variation is not necessarily linked, as some authors have suggested, to the act of generation.

Seedlings from the same fruit, and the young of the same litter, sometimes differ considerably from each other, though both the young and the parents, as Müller has remarked, have apparently been exposed to exactly the same conditions of life; and this shows how unimportant the direct effects of the conditions of life are in comparison with the laws of reproduction, of growth, and of inheritance; for had the action of the conditions been direct, if any of the young had varied, all would probably have varied in the same manner. To judge how much, in the case of any variation, we should attribute to the direct action of heat, moisture, light, food, &c., is most difficult: my impression is, that with animals such agencies have produced very little direct effect, though apparently more in the case of plants. Under this point of view, Mr. Buckman's recent experiments on plants are extremely valuable. When all or nearly all the individuals exposed to certain conditions are affected in the same way, the change at first appears to be directly due to such conditions; but in some cases it can be shown that quite opposite conditions produce [11]similar changes of structure. Nevertheless some slight amount of change may, I think, be attributed to the direct action of the conditions of life—as, in some cases, increased size from amount of food, colour from particular kinds of food or from light, and perhaps the thickness of fur from climate.

Seedlings from the same fruit and the young from the same litter can sometimes differ quite a bit from each other, even though both the young and their parents, as Müller pointed out, seem to have been exposed to exactly the same living conditions. This highlights how the direct effects of living conditions are relatively minor compared to the laws of reproduction, growth, and inheritance. If conditions had a direct influence, then if one young one varied, all of them would likely vary in the same way. It's really tough to determine how much we should credit any specific variation to the direct impact of heat, moisture, light, food, etc. My impression is that these factors have had very little direct effect on animals, although they seem to have a greater impact on plants. From this perspective, Mr. Buckman's recent experiments on plants are extremely valuable. When almost all individuals exposed to certain conditions respond similarly, the change initially looks like it's directly caused by those conditions. However, in some cases, it can be shown that completely opposite conditions can lead to similar structural changes. Still, I think some minor changes can be attributed to the direct influence of life conditions—like increased size from more food, color changes from specific types of food or light, and maybe the thickness of fur due to climate.

Habit also has a decided influence, as in the period of flowering with plants when transported from one climate to another. In animals it has a more marked effect; for instance, I find in the domestic duck that the bones of the wing weigh less and the bones of the leg more, in proportion to the whole skeleton, than do the same bones in the wild-duck; and I presume that this change may be safely attributed to the domestic duck flying much less, and walking more, than its wild parent. The great and inherited development of the udders in cows and goats in countries where they are habitually milked, in comparison with the state of these organs in other countries, is another instance of the effect of use. Not a single domestic animal can be named which has not in some country drooping ears; and the view suggested by some authors, that the drooping is due to the disuse of the muscles of the ear, from the animals not being much alarmed by danger, seems probable.

Habit also has a significant impact, similar to how plants flower when transported from one climate to another. In animals, this effect is even more pronounced. For example, in domestic ducks, the wing bones weigh less while the leg bones weigh more relative to the entire skeleton compared to wild ducks. I believe this change can be attributed to domestic ducks flying much less and walking more than their wild counterparts. The noticeable and inherited development of udders in cows and goats in regions where they're regularly milked, compared to those in other countries, is another example of the effects of habit. There isn’t a single domestic animal that doesn’t have drooping ears in some region, and the theory proposed by some authors that this drooping results from the disuse of the ear muscles—because these animals are less frequently alarmed by danger—seems likely.

There are many laws regulating variation, some few of which can be dimly seen, and will be hereafter briefly mentioned. I will here only allude to what may be called correlation of growth. Any change in the embryo or larva will almost certainly entail changes in the mature animal. In monstrosities, the correlations between quite distinct parts are very curious; and many instances are given in Isidore Geoffroy St. Hilaire's great work on this subject. Breeders believe that long limbs are almost always accompanied by an elongated head. Some instances of correlation are quite whimsical: thus [12]cats with blue eyes are invariably deaf; colour and constitutional peculiarities go together, of which many remarkable cases could be given amongst animals and plants. From the facts collected by Heusinger, it appears that white sheep and pigs are differently affected from coloured individuals by certain vegetable poisons. Hairless dogs have imperfect teeth: long-haired and coarse-haired animals are apt to have, as is asserted, long or many horns; pigeons with feathered feet have skin between their outer toes; pigeons with short beaks have small feet, and those with long beaks large feet. Hence, if man goes on selecting, and thus augmenting, any peculiarity, he will almost certainly unconsciously modify other parts of the structure, owing to the mysterious laws of the correlation of growth.

There are many laws that regulate variation, some of which can be barely recognized and will be briefly mentioned later. For now, I will just touch on what might be called the correlation of growth. Any change in the embryo or larva will almost certainly lead to changes in the adult animal. In cases of monstrosities, the connections between different parts are quite fascinating; many examples are provided in Isidore Geoffroy St. Hilaire's comprehensive work on this topic. Breeders believe that long limbs often come with an elongated head. Some correlations are rather peculiar: for instance, cats with blue eyes are always deaf; color and other unique traits often go together, with many remarkable examples found among animals and plants. According to the facts compiled by Heusinger, white sheep and pigs react differently to certain plant toxins compared to colored individuals. Hairless dogs tend to have poor teeth: animals with long or coarse hair are said to often have long or many horns; pigeons with feathered feet have skin between their outer toes; pigeons with short beaks have small feet, while those with long beaks have large feet. Therefore, if humans continue to select and enhance any particular trait, they will almost certainly, and unknowingly, alter other parts of the structure due to the mysterious laws of growth correlation.

The result of the various, quite unknown, or dimly seen laws of variation is infinitely complex and diversified. It is well worth while carefully to study the several treatises published on some of our old cultivated plants, as on the hyacinth, potato, even the dahlia, &c.; and it is really surprising to note the endless points in structure and constitution in which the varieties and sub-varieties differ slightly from each other. The whole organisation seems to have become plastic, and tends to depart in some small degree from that of the parental type.

The outcome of the various, somewhat unknown, or vaguely understood laws of variation is incredibly complex and diverse. It's definitely worth taking the time to study the different writings published on some of our traditional cultivated plants, like the hyacinth, potato, and even the dahlia, etc.; and it's truly surprising to observe the countless differences in structure and composition where the varieties and sub-varieties slightly differ from one another. The entire organization appears to have become flexible, and tends to deviate in some small way from the parental type.

Any variation which is not inherited is unimportant for us. But the number and diversity of inheritable deviations of structure, both those of slight and those of considerable physiological importance, is endless. Dr. Prosper Lucas's treatise, in two large volumes, is the fullest and the best on this subject. No breeder doubts how strong is the tendency to inheritance: like produces like is his fundamental belief: doubts have been thrown on this principle by theoretical writers alone. When any deviation of structure often appears, and we see it in the [13]father and child, we cannot tell whether it may not be due to the same cause having acted on both; but when amongst individuals, apparently exposed to the same conditions, any very rare deviation, due to some extraordinary combination of circumstances, appears in the parent—say, once amongst several million individuals—and it reappears in the child, the mere doctrine of chances almost compels us to attribute its reappearance to inheritance. Every one must have heard of cases of albinism, prickly skin, hairy bodies, &c., appearing in several members of the same family. If strange and rare deviations of structure are truly inherited, less strange and commoner deviations may be freely admitted to be inheritable. Perhaps the correct way of viewing the whole subject, would be, to look at the inheritance of every character whatever as the rule, and non-inheritance as the anomaly.

Any variation that isn't inherited doesn't matter to us. However, the number and variety of inheritable structural differences, whether minor or significant in physiological terms, is limitless. Dr. Prosper Lucas's work, in two large volumes, is the most comprehensive and best resource on this topic. No breeder doubts the strong tendency for traits to be passed down: the idea that like produces like is their basic belief; skepticism about this principle comes only from theoretical writers. When a structural change frequently occurs, and we see it in both a parent and a child, we can't be sure if it results from the same cause affecting both. But when a very rare variation, caused by an unusual combination of factors, shows up in the parent—say, once in several million individuals—and then reappears in the child, the sheer odds practically force us to attribute its recurrence to inheritance. Everyone has likely heard of cases of albinism, prickly skin, hairy bodies, etc., showing up in multiple family members. If strange and rare structural changes are genuinely inherited, then less strange and more common variations can also be readily accepted as inheritable. Perhaps the best way to approach the whole topic is to consider the inheritance of every trait as the norm and non-inheritance as the exception.

The laws governing inheritance are quite unknown; no one can say why a peculiarity in different individuals of the same species, or in individuals of different species, is sometimes inherited and sometimes not so; why the child often reverts in certain characters to its grandfather or grandmother or other more remote ancestor; why a peculiarity is often transmitted from one sex to both sexes, or to one sex alone, more commonly but not exclusively to the like sex. It is a fact of some little importance to us, that peculiarities appearing in the males of our domestic breeds are often transmitted either exclusively, or in a much greater degree, to males alone. A much more important rule, which I think may be trusted, is that, at whatever period of life a peculiarity first appears, it tends to appear in the offspring at a corresponding age, though sometimes earlier. In many cases this could not be otherwise: thus the inherited peculiarities in the horns of cattle could appear only in [14]the offspring when nearly mature; peculiarities in the silkworm are known to appear at the corresponding caterpillar or cocoon stage. But hereditary diseases and some other facts make me believe that the rule has a wider extension, and that when there is no apparent reason why a peculiarity should appear at any particular age, yet that it does tend to appear in the offspring at the same period at which it first appeared in the parent. I believe this rule to be of the highest importance in explaining the laws of embryology. These remarks are of course confined to the first appearance of the peculiarity, and not to its primary cause, which may have acted on the ovules or male element; in nearly the same manner as in the crossed offspring from a short-horned cow by a long-horned bull, the greater length of horn, though appearing late in life, is clearly due to the male element.

The laws around inheritance are largely unknown; no one can explain why certain traits in individuals of the same species, or different species, are sometimes passed on while others are not. It’s unclear why a child can frequently resemble a grandparent or another distant ancestor in certain traits, or why some traits are usually inherited by the same sex but can also be passed on to both sexes. It's notable that traits found in the males of our domestic breeds are often inherited either solely or more significantly by males. A more important rule that I think holds true is that whenever a trait first appears during life, it tends to show up in the offspring at a similar age, though sometimes it appears earlier. In many situations, this makes sense: for example, the inherited traits in cattle horns can only show up in the offspring when they are close to maturity; similarly, traits in silkworms are known to appear in the corresponding caterpillar or cocoon stage. However, hereditary diseases and other observations lead me to believe that this rule applies more broadly, suggesting that when there’s no clear reason for a trait to show up at a particular age, it still tends to appear in the offspring at the same age it first appeared in the parent. I consider this rule crucial for understanding the principles of embryology. These comments are specifically about the initial appearance of the trait, not its underlying cause, which may have influenced the eggs or sperm; much like the greater length of horn in the offspring of a short-horned cow and a long-horned bull, which appears later in life but is clearly tied to the male sperm.

Having alluded to the subject of reversion, I may here refer to a statement often made by naturalists—namely, that our domestic varieties, when run wild, gradually but certainly revert in character to their aboriginal stocks. Hence it has been argued that no deductions can be drawn from domestic races to species in a state of nature. I have in vain endeavoured to discover on what decisive facts the above statement has so often and so boldly been made. There would be great difficulty in proving its truth: we may safely conclude that very many of the most strongly-marked domestic varieties could not possibly live in a wild state. In many cases we do not know what the aboriginal stock was, and so could not tell whether or not nearly perfect reversion had ensued. It would be quite necessary, in order to prevent the effects of intercrossing, that only a single variety should be turned loose in its new home. Nevertheless, as our varieties certainly do occasionally [15]revert in some of their characters to ancestral forms, it seems to me not improbable, that if we could succeed in naturalising, or were to cultivate, during many generations, the several races, for instance, of the cabbage, in very poor soil (in which case, however, some effect would have to be attributed to the direct action of the poor soil), that they would to a large extent, or even wholly, revert to the wild aboriginal stock. Whether or not the experiment would succeed, is not of great importance for our line of argument; for by the experiment itself the conditions of life are changed. If it could be shown that our domestic varieties manifested a strong tendency to reversion,—that is, to lose their acquired characters, whilst kept under the same conditions, and whilst kept in a considerable body, so that free intercrossing might check, by blending together, any slight deviations in their structure, in such case, I grant that we could deduce nothing from domestic varieties in regard to species. But there is not a shadow of evidence in favour of this view: to assert that we could not breed our cart and race-horses, long and short-horned cattle, and poultry of various breeds, and esculent vegetables, for an almost infinite number of generations, would be opposed to all experience. I may add, that when under nature the conditions of life do change, variations and reversions of character probably do occur; but natural selection, as will hereafter be explained, will determine how far the new characters thus arising shall be preserved.

Having mentioned the topic of reversion, I can refer to a statement that naturalists often make—namely, that our domestic varieties, when left to the wild, gradually but certainly revert in character to their original forms. This has led to the argument that no conclusions can be drawn from domestic breeds about species in their natural state. I have tried in vain to identify the decisive facts behind this frequent and bold claim. Proving its truth would be very difficult: we can safely conclude that many of the most distinct domestic varieties could not survive in the wild. In many instances, we don’t even know what the original stock was, so we can’t determine if a near-perfect reversion has occurred. To avoid the effects of interbreeding, only a single variety should be released into its new environment. However, since our varieties do sometimes revert to some ancestral traits, it seems plausible that if we were able to naturalize or cultivate different cabbage races in very poor soil over many generations (though some influence must be attributed to the direct effects of the poor soil), they would largely, or even entirely, revert to the wild original stock. Whether or not this experiment would be successful isn’t crucial to our argument; changing the conditions of life would itself affect the outcomes. If it could be shown that our domestic varieties have a strong tendency to revert—that is, to lose their acquired traits while under the same conditions and kept in significant numbers, allowing for free interbreeding to blend any minor structural deviations—then I would agree that we couldn’t draw any conclusions about species from domestic varieties. But there is no evidence supporting this view: claiming that we couldn’t breed our cart and racehorses, long and short-horned cattle, various poultry breeds, and edible vegetables for countless generations goes against all experience. Additionally, I can say that when conditions of life change naturally, variations and reversions likely occur; however, natural selection will determine how far new traits arising from these changes will be preserved.

When we look to the hereditary varieties or races of our domestic animals and plants, and compare them with closely allied species, we generally perceive in each domestic race, as already remarked, less uniformity of character than in true species. Domestic races of the same species, also, often have a somewhat monstrous character; by which I mean, that, although differing [16]from each other, and from other species of the same genus, in several trifling respects, they often differ in an extreme degree in some one part, both when compared one with another, and more especially when compared with all the species in nature to which they are nearest allied. With these exceptions (and with that of the perfect fertility of varieties when crossed,—a subject hereafter to be discussed), domestic races of the same species differ from each other in the same manner as, only in most cases in a lesser degree than, do closely-allied species of the same genus in a state of nature. I think this must be admitted, when we find that there are hardly any domestic races, either amongst animals or plants, which have not been ranked by competent judges as mere varieties, and by other competent judges as the descendants of aboriginally distinct species. If any marked distinction existed between domestic races and species, this source of doubt could not so perpetually recur. It has often been stated that domestic races do not differ from each other in characters of generic value. I think it could be shown that this statement is hardly correct; but naturalists differ widely in determining what characters are of generic value; all such valuations being at present empirical. Moreover, on the view of the origin of genera which I shall presently give, we have no right to expect often to meet with generic differences in our domesticated productions.

When we look at the different breeds or varieties of our domesticated animals and plants, and compare them with closely related species, we usually notice that each domestic breed shows less consistency than true species. Breeds of the same species often have some unusual traits; by that, I mean that while they may differ in some minor ways from each other and from other species in the same genus, they can also show significant differences in one particular aspect—especially when compared to all the natural species they are most closely related to. Other than these exceptions (including the full fertility of varieties when crossed—a topic to be discussed later), domestic breeds of the same species vary from each other in the same way that closely related species of the same genus do in nature, though usually to a lesser extent. This seems undeniable, especially since there are hardly any domestic breeds, whether in animals or plants, that haven't been classified by some experts as mere varieties and by others as descendants of originally distinct species. If there was any clear distinction between domestic breeds and species, this confusion wouldn't keep coming up. It's often claimed that domestic breeds don't differ from each other in significant ways. I believe this claim is mostly incorrect; however, naturalists vary greatly in their views on what traits are significant, with all these evaluations currently being somewhat trial-and-error. Furthermore, based on the perspective on the origin of genera that I will present shortly, we shouldn't expect to frequently see generic differences in our domesticated varieties.

When we attempt to estimate the amount of structural difference between the domestic races of the same species, we are soon involved in doubt, from not knowing whether they have descended from one or several parent-species. This point, if it could be cleared up, would be interesting; if, for instance, it could be shown that the greyhound, bloodhound, terrier, spaniel, and bull-dog, which we all know propagate their kind so truly, were the [17]offspring of any single species, then such facts would have great weight in making us doubt about the immutability of the many very closely allied natural species—for instance, of the many foxes—inhabiting different quarters of the world. I do not believe, as we shall presently see, that the whole amount of difference between the several breeds of the dog has been produced under domestication; I believe that some small part of the difference is due to their being descended from distinct species. In the case of some other domesticated species, there is presumptive, or even strong evidence, that all the breeds have descended from a single wild stock.

When we try to figure out the structural differences among domestic breeds of the same species, we quickly become uncertain because we don't know if they all come from one or multiple parent species. Clarifying this would be fascinating; for example, if we could prove that the greyhound, bloodhound, terrier, spaniel, and bulldog, which are all known to reproduce reliably, are all offspring of a single species, that would make us question the idea that many closely related natural species—like the various foxes found around the world—are immutable. I don't believe, as we will soon explore, that the total amount of difference among dog breeds has solely resulted from domestication; I think part of the difference comes from their descent from different species. For some other domesticated species, there's evidence suggesting that all breeds share a common wild ancestor.

It has often been assumed that man has chosen for domestication animals and plants having an extraordinary inherent tendency to vary, and likewise to withstand diverse climates. I do not dispute that these capacities have added largely to the value of most of our domesticated productions; but how could a savage possibly know, when he first tamed an animal, whether it would vary in succeeding generations, and whether it would endure other climates? Has the little variability of the ass or guinea-fowl, or the small power of endurance of warmth by the reindeer, or of cold by the common camel, prevented their domestication? I cannot doubt that if other animals and plants, equal in number to our domesticated productions, and belonging to equally diverse classes and countries, were taken from a state of nature, and could be made to breed for an equal number of generations under domestication, they would vary on an average as largely as the parent species of our existing domesticated productions have varied.

It's often assumed that humans have chosen animals and plants for domestication that have a remarkable ability to change and adapt to different climates. I don't deny that these traits have significantly increased the value of most of our domesticated products; however, how could someone in primitive times know, when they first tamed an animal, whether it would change in future generations and if it could survive in other climates? Has the limited ability of the donkey or guinea fowl to vary, or the reindeer's poor ability to handle heat, or the common camel's struggle with cold, stopped them from being domesticated? I can't help but believe that if we took other animals and plants, equal in number to our domesticated varieties and from similarly diverse categories and regions, and bred them under domestication for the same number of generations, they would show an average amount of variation just like the parent species of our current domesticated products.

In the case of most of our anciently domesticated animals and plants, I do not think it is possible to come to any definite conclusion, whether they have descended from one or several wild species. The argument mainly relied on by those who believe in the multiple origin [18]of our domestic animals is, that we find in the most ancient records, more especially on the monuments of Egypt, much diversity in the breeds; and that some of the breeds closely resemble, perhaps are identical with, those still existing. Even if this latter fact were found more strictly and generally true than seems to me to be the case, what does it show, but that some of our breeds originated there, four or five thousand years ago? But Mr. Horner's researches have rendered it in some degree probable that man sufficiently civilized to have manufactured pottery existed in the valley of the Nile thirteen or fourteen thousand years ago; and who will pretend to say how long before these ancient periods, savages, like those of Tierra del Fuego or Australia, who possess a semi-domestic dog, may not have existed in Egypt?

In the case of most of our ancient domesticated animals and plants, I don’t think it's possible to reach a definite conclusion on whether they came from one or several wild species. The main argument from those who believe in multiple origins of our domestic animals is that we see a lot of variety in the breeds in the oldest records, especially on the monuments of Egypt, and that some of the breeds closely resemble, or may even be identical to, those that still exist today. Even if this last point were found to be more accurate and widely true than I think it is, what does it really prove, except that some of our breeds originated there, four or five thousand years ago? But Mr. Horner's research has made it somewhat likely that humans who were advanced enough to make pottery existed in the Nile Valley thirteen or fourteen thousand years ago; and who can seriously claim to know how long before these ancient times savages, like those in Tierra del Fuego or Australia, who have a semi-domestic dog, may not have been present in Egypt?

The whole subject must, I think, remain vague; nevertheless, I may, without here entering on any details, state that, from geographical and other considerations, I think it highly probable that our domestic dogs have descended from several wild species. Knowing, as we do, that savages are very fond of taming animals, it seems to me unlikely, in the case of the dog-genus, which is distributed in a wild state throughout the world, that since man first appeared one single species alone should have been domesticated. In regard to sheep and goats I can form no opinion. I should think, from facts communicated to me by Mr. Blyth, on the habits, voice, and constitution, &c., of the humped Indian cattle, that these had descended from a different aboriginal stock from our European cattle; and several competent judges believe that these latter have had more than one wild parent. With respect to horses, from reasons which I cannot give here, I am doubtfully inclined to believe, in opposition to several authors, that all the races have descended from one [19]wild stock. Mr. Blyth, whose opinion, from his large and varied stores of knowledge, I should value more than that of almost any one, thinks that all the breeds of poultry have proceeded from the common wild Indian fowl (Gallus bankiva). In regard to ducks and rabbits, the breeds of which differ considerably from each other in structure, I do not doubt that they have all descended from the common wild duck and rabbit.

The whole topic must, I think, stay somewhat unclear; however, I can say, without going into details, that based on geographical and other factors, it's very likely that our domestic dogs come from several wild species. Given that we know primitive people really enjoy taming animals, it seems unlikely that only one wild species of dog would have been domesticated since humans first appeared, especially since the dog genus exists in the wild around the world. I can’t form an opinion about sheep and goats. From information shared with me by Mr. Blyth regarding the habits, vocalizations, and characteristics of humped Indian cattle, I believe these might have come from a different native stock than our European cattle; and several knowledgeable experts believe the latter have multiple wild ancestors. Concerning horses, for reasons I can't explain here, I'm uncertain but tend to believe, against several authors, that all breeds descended from one wild stock. Mr. Blyth, whose opinion I value highly due to his extensive knowledge, believes all poultry breeds come from the common wild Indian fowl (Gallus bankiva). As for ducks and rabbits, which vary greatly in structure, I have no doubt they all descended from the common wild duck and rabbit.

The doctrine of the origin of our several domestic races from several aboriginal stocks, has been carried to an absurd extreme by some authors. They believe that every race which breeds true, let the distinctive characters be ever so slight, has had its wild prototype. At this rate there must have existed at least a score of species of wild cattle, as many sheep, and several goats in Europe alone, and several even within Great Britain. One author believes that there formerly existed in Great Britain eleven wild species of sheep peculiar to it! When we bear in mind that Britain has now hardly one peculiar mammal, and France but few distinct from those of Germany and conversely, and so with Hungary, Spain, &c., but that each of these kingdoms possesses several peculiar breeds of cattle, sheep, &c., we must admit that many domestic breeds have originated in Europe; for whence could they have been derived, as these several countries do not possess a number of peculiar species as distinct parent-stocks? So it is in India. Even in the case of the domestic dogs of the whole world, which I fully admit have probably descended from several wild species, I cannot doubt that there has been an immense amount of inherited variation. Who can believe that animals closely resembling the Italian greyhound, the bloodhound, the bull-dog, or Blenheim spaniel, &c.—so unlike all wild Canidæ—ever existed freely in a state of nature? It has often been loosely said that all our races of dogs have [20]been produced by the crossing of a few aboriginal species; but by crossing we can only get forms in some degree intermediate between their parents; and if we account for our several domestic races by this process, we must admit the former existence of the most extreme forms, as the Italian greyhound, bloodhound, bull-dog, &c., in the wild state. Moreover, the possibility of making distinct races by crossing has been greatly exaggerated. There can be no doubt that a race may be modified by occasional crosses, if aided by the careful selection of those individual mongrels, which present any desired character; but that a race could be obtained nearly intermediate between two extremely different races or species, I can hardly believe. Sir J. Sebright expressly experimentised for this object, and failed. The offspring from the first cross between two pure breeds is tolerably and sometimes (as I have found with pigeons) extremely uniform, and everything seems simple enough; but when these mongrels are crossed one with another for several generations, hardly two of them will be alike, and then the extreme difficulty, or rather utter hopelessness, of the task becomes apparent. Certainly, a breed intermediate between two very distinct breeds could not be got without extreme care and long-continued selection; nor can I find a single case on record of a permanent race having been thus formed.

The idea that our various domestic breeds come from multiple original stocks has been taken to an absurd extreme by some writers. They think that every breed capable of consistently producing its kind, no matter how slight the distinguishing features, must have had a wild ancestor. By this logic, there would have been at least a dozen species of wild cattle, the same number of sheep, and several goats in Europe alone, with some even in Great Britain. One writer believes that there used to be eleven wild species of sheep unique to Great Britain! Considering that Britain hardly has any unique mammals now, and France has very few that are distinct from those in Germany, and similarly for Hungary, Spain, etc., it’s clear that many domestic breeds originated in Europe; otherwise, it's hard to explain their existence since these countries don’t possess a variety of unique species to act as distinct parent stocks. This also applies to India. Even with the domestic dogs around the world, which I do think likely descended from several wild species, I have no doubt that there has been a significant amount of inherited variation. Who can believe that animals resembling the Italian greyhound, the bloodhound, the bulldog, or the Blenheim spaniel—so unlike any wild Canidae—ever lived freely in nature? It's often stated that all our dog breeds have been created by crossing a few original species; however, crossing can only produce forms that are somewhat intermediate between their parents, and if we explain our various domestic breeds this way, we must accept that the most extreme forms, like the Italian greyhound, bloodhound, bulldog, etc., must have existed in the wild. Moreover, the potential for creating distinct breeds through crossing has been greatly overstated. There's no doubt that a breed can be altered by occasional crossbreeding, especially if careful selection is applied to those mixed-breed individuals that show the desired traits; but I can hardly believe that a breed could be achieved that is nearly intermediate between two very different breeds or species. Sir J. Sebright specifically experimented for this purpose and did not succeed. The offspring from the first cross between two pure breeds are usually quite uniform, and it all seems straightforward; but when these mixed breeds are crossed with each other over several generations, hardly any two will look the same, revealing the extreme difficulty, if not complete hopelessness, of the endeavor. Certainly, a breed that is intermediate between two very distinct breeds could not be created without meticulous care and long-term selection; I can’t find a single documented case of a permanent breed being formed this way.

On the Breeds of the Domestic Pigeon.—Believing that it is always best to study some special group, I have, after deliberation, taken up domestic pigeons. I have kept every breed which I could purchase or obtain, and have been most kindly favoured with skins from several quarters of the world, more especially by the Hon. W. Elliot from India, and by the Hon. C. Murray from Persia. Many treatises in different languages have been published on pigeons, and some of them are very important, as being of [21]considerable antiquity. I have associated with several eminent fanciers, and have been permitted to join two of the London Pigeon Clubs. The diversity of the breeds is something astonishing. Compare the English carrier and the short-faced tumbler, and see the wonderful difference in their beaks, entailing corresponding differences in their skulls. The carrier, more especially the male bird, is also remarkable from the wonderful development of the carunculated skin about the head, and this is accompanied by greatly elongated eyelids, very large external orifices to the nostrils, and a wide gape of mouth. The short-faced tumbler has a beak in outline almost like that of a finch; and the common tumbler has the singular inherited habit of flying at a great height in a compact flock, and tumbling in the air head over heels. The runt is a bird of great size, with long, massive beak and large feet; some of the sub-breeds of runts have very long necks, others very long wings and tails, others singularly short tails. The barb is allied to the carrier, but, instead of a very long beak, has a very short and very broad one. The pouter has a much elongated body, wings, and legs; and its enormously developed crop, which it glories in inflating, may well excite astonishment and even laughter. The turbit has a very short and conical beak, with a line of reversed feathers down the breast; and it has the habit of continually expanding slightly the upper part of the œsophagus. The Jacobin has the feathers so much reversed along the back of the neck that they form a hood, and it has, proportionally to its size, much elongated wing and tail feathers. The trumpeter and laugher, as their names express, utter a very different coo from the other breeds. The fantail has thirty or even forty tail feathers, instead of twelve or fourteen, the normal number in all members of the great pigeon family; and these feathers are kept expanded, and are [22]carried so erect that in good birds the head and tail touch; the oil-gland is quite aborted. Several other less distinct breeds might be specified.

On the Breeds of the Domestic Pigeon.—Believing that it's best to focus on a specific group, I've decided to study domestic pigeons. I've kept every breed I could buy or obtain, and I've been generously given skins from various parts of the world, especially from Hon. W. Elliot in India and Hon. C. Murray in Persia. Many writings in different languages have been published about pigeons, some of which are quite significant due to their historical value. I've associated with several well-known fanciers and have been allowed to join two of the London Pigeon Clubs. The diversity of the breeds is astonishing. Compare the English carrier with the short-faced tumbler, and notice the incredible difference in their beaks, which leads to corresponding differences in their skull shapes. The carrier, especially the male, is notable for the remarkable development of the skin around its head, along with very elongated eyelids, large nostrils, and a wide mouth. The short-faced tumbler has a beak that almost resembles that of a finch; the common tumbler has a unique inherited habit of flying very high in a compact group and tumbling in the air head over heels. The runt is a large bird, with a long, sturdy beak and big feet; some sub-breeds of runts have very long necks, while others have long wings and tails, and some have notably short tails. The barb is related to the carrier but has a short, wide beak instead of a long one. The pouter has an elongated body, wings, and legs; its incredibly developed crop, which it enjoys inflating, can be quite astonishing and even amusing. The turbit has a very short, conical beak, with a line of reversed feathers down its breast; it also has the habit of slightly expanding the upper part of its esophagus. The Jacobin has reversed feathers along the back of its neck that form a hood, and it has disproportionately elongated wing and tail feathers. The trumpeter and laugher, as their names suggest, produce very different cooing sounds compared to other breeds. The fantail has thirty or even forty tail feathers, instead of the normal twelve or fourteen found in most pigeons; these feathers are kept spread out and carried upright, so that in good birds, the head and tail touch; the oil-gland is completely undeveloped. Several other less distinct breeds could be mentioned.

In the skeletons of the several breeds, the development of the bones of the face in length and breadth and curvature differs enormously. The shape, as well as the breadth and length of the ramus of the lower jaw, varies in a highly remarkable manner. The number of the caudal and sacral vertebræ vary; as does the number of the ribs, together with their relative breadth and the presence of processes. The size and shape of the apertures in the sternum are highly variable; so is the degree of divergence and relative size of the two arms of the furcula. The proportional width of the gape of mouth, the proportional length of the eyelids, of the orifice of the nostrils, of the tongue (not always in strict correlation with the length of beak), the size of the crop and of the upper part of the œsophagus; the development and abortion of the oil-gland; the number of the primary wing and caudal feathers; the relative length of wing and tail to each other and to the body; the relative length of leg and of the feet; the number of scutellæ on the toes, the development of skin between the toes, are all points of structure which are variable. The period at which the perfect plumage is acquired varies, as does the state of the down with which the nestling birds are clothed when hatched. The shape and size of the eggs vary. The manner of flight differs remarkably; as does in some breeds the voice and disposition. Lastly, in certain breeds, the males and females have come to differ to a slight degree from each other.

In the skeletons of different breeds, the growth of the facial bones in terms of length, width, and curvature varies greatly. The shape, along with the width and length of the lower jaw's ramus, differs significantly. The number of tail and sacral vertebrae varies, as does the number of ribs, including their relative width and the presence of processes. The size and shape of the openings in the sternum are highly variable, as is the degree of divergence and relative size of the two arms of the furcula. The proportional width of the mouth's gape, the proportional length of the eyelids, the nostrils, and the tongue (not always exactly matching the beak's length), as well as the size of the crop and the upper part of the esophagus, vary. The development and absence of the oil-gland, the number of primary wing and tail feathers, the relative lengths of the wings and tail to each other and to the body, the relative lengths of the legs and feet, the number of scales on the toes, and the development of skin between the toes are all structural features that vary. The timing of acquiring perfect plumage differs, as does the type of down that nestling birds have at hatching. The shape and size of the eggs also vary. The way of flying is remarkably different, as is the voice and temperament in some breeds. Finally, in certain breeds, males and females show slight differences from each other.

Altogether at least a score of pigeons might be chosen, which if shown to an ornithologist, and he were told that they were wild birds, would certainly, I think, be ranked by him as well-defined species. Moreover, I do not believe that any ornithologist would place the [23]English carrier, the short-faced tumbler, the runt, the barb, pouter, and fantail in the same genus; more especially as in each of these breeds several truly-inherited sub-breeds, or species as he might have called them, could be shown him.

In total, there could easily be at least twenty pigeons to choose from, which if presented to an ornithologist and told they were wild birds, would definitely, I think, be classified by him as distinct species. Furthermore, I don't believe any ornithologist would categorize the [23]English carrier, the short-faced tumbler, the runt, the barb, the pouter, and the fantail under the same genus; especially since within each of these breeds, several clearly inherited sub-breeds, or species as he might refer to them, could be demonstrated to him.

Great as the differences are between the breeds of pigeons, I am fully convinced that the common opinion of naturalists is correct, namely, that all have descended from the rock-pigeon (Columba livia), including under this term several geographical races or sub-species, which differ from each other in the most trifling respects. As several of the reasons which have led me to this belief are in some degree applicable in other cases, I will here briefly give them. If the several breeds are not varieties, and have not proceeded from the rock-pigeon, they must have descended from at least seven or eight aboriginal stocks; for it is impossible to make the present domestic breeds by the crossing of any lesser number: how, for instance, could a pouter be produced by crossing two breeds unless one of the parent-stocks possessed the characteristic enormous crop? The supposed aboriginal stocks must all have been rock-pigeons, that is, not breeding or willingly perching on trees. But besides C. livia, with its geographical sub-species, only two or three other species of rock-pigeons are known; and these have not any of the characters of the domestic breeds. Hence the supposed aboriginal stocks must either still exist in the countries where they were originally domesticated, and yet be unknown to ornithologists; and this, considering their size, habits, and remarkable characters, seems very improbable; or they must have become extinct in the wild state. But birds breeding on precipices, and good fliers, are unlikely to be exterminated; and the common rock-pigeon, which has the same habits with the domestic breeds, has not been exterminated [24]even on several of the smaller British islets, or on the shores of the Mediterranean. Hence the supposed extermination of so many species having similar habits with the rock-pigeon seems to me a very rash assumption. Moreover, the several above-named domesticated breeds have been transported to all parts of the world, and, therefore, some of them must have been carried back again into their native country; but not one has ever become wild or feral, though the dovecot-pigeon, which is the rock-pigeon in a very slightly altered state, has become feral in several places. Again, all recent experience shows that it is most difficult to get any wild animal to breed freely under domestication; yet on the hypothesis of the multiple origin of our pigeons, it must be assumed that at least seven or eight species were so thoroughly domesticated in ancient times by half-civilized man, as to be quite prolific under confinement.

As different as the various breeds of pigeons are, I am completely convinced that the common view among naturalists is correct: all pigeons descended from the rock-pigeon (Columba livia), which includes several geographical races or sub-species that differ only in the smallest details. Some of the reasons that led me to this belief can also apply in other cases, so I’ll briefly outline them here. If the different breeds aren't varieties and didn't come from the rock-pigeon, they would have to descend from at least seven or eight original stocks because it’s impossible to create the current domestic breeds by crossing any fewer than that. For example, how could a pouter be produced by mixing two breeds unless one of the parent stocks had the distinctive large crop? The original stocks must all have been rock-pigeons, meaning they did not breed or prefer to perch in trees. Besides C. livia and its geographical sub-species, only two or three other species of rock-pigeons are known, and these don’t share characteristics with domestic breeds. Therefore, the original stocks must either still exist in the regions they were first domesticated and be unknown to ornithologists, which seems unlikely given their size, habits, and notable traits, or they must have gone extinct in the wild. However, birds that nest on cliffs and are good fliers are unlikely to be wiped out, and the common rock-pigeon, which shares the same habits as domestic breeds, hasn’t been eradicated on some of the smaller British islets or along the Mediterranean coast. Thus, the assumed extinction of so many species with similar habits to the rock-pigeon seems like a very hasty conclusion. Additionally, the various domestic breeds have been spread across the globe, so some must have been brought back to their native areas; yet none have become wild or feral, although the dovecot-pigeon, which is a slightly altered rock-pigeon, has become feral in several locations. Furthermore, all recent experiences show that it’s extremely difficult to get any wild animal to reproduce freely in captivity; yet under the multiple origin hypothesis for our pigeons, we must assume that at least seven or eight species were domesticated to such an extent by early man that they were fully capable of breeding in confinement.

An argument, as it seems to me, of great weight, and applicable in several other cases, is, that the above-specified breeds, though agreeing generally in constitution, habits, voice, colouring, and in most parts of their structure, with the wild rock-pigeon, yet are certainly highly abnormal in other parts of their structure; we may look in vain throughout the whole great family of Columbidæ for a beak like that of the English carrier, or that of the short-faced tumbler, or barb; for reversed feathers like those of the Jacobin; for a crop like that of the pouter; for tail-feathers like those of the fantail. Hence it must be assumed not only that half-civilized man succeeded in thoroughly domesticating several species, but that he intentionally or by chance picked out extraordinarily abnormal species; and further, that these very species have since all become extinct or unknown. So many strange contingencies seem to me improbable in the highest degree. [25]

An argument that I believe carries significant weight and applies to several other cases is that the breeds mentioned above, although generally similar in constitution, habits, voice, coloring, and most aspects of their structure to the wild rock-pigeon, are undoubtedly highly unusual in other structural traits. We can search the entire family of Columbidae in vain for a beak like that of the English carrier or the short-faced tumbler or barb; for reversed feathers like those of the Jacobin; for a crop like that of the pouter; or for tail feathers like those of the fantail. Therefore, it must be assumed that not only did half-civilized humans successfully domesticate several species, but they also intentionally or accidentally selected extraordinarily unusual species; moreover, that these very species have all since become extinct or unknown. So many strange coincidences seem highly improbable to me. [25]

Some facts in regard to the colouring of pigeons well deserve consideration. The rock-pigeon is of a slaty-blue, and has a white rump (the Indian subspecies, C. intermedia of Strickland, having it bluish); the tail has a terminal dark bar, with the bases of the outer feathers externally edged with white; the wings have two black bars; some semi-domestic breeds and some apparently truly wild breeds have, besides the two black bars, the wings chequered with black. These several marks do not occur together in any other species of the whole family. Now, in every one of the domestic breeds, taking thoroughly well-bred birds, all the above marks, even to the white edging of the outer tail-feathers, sometimes concur perfectly developed. Moreover, when two birds belonging to two distinct breeds are crossed, neither of which is blue or has any of the above-specified marks, the mongrel offspring are very apt suddenly to acquire these characters; for instance, I crossed some uniformly white fantails with some uniformly black barbs, and they produced mottled brown and black birds; these I again crossed together, and one grandchild of the pure white fantail and pure black barb was of as beautiful a blue colour, with the white rump, double black wing-bar, and barred and white-edged tail-feathers, as any wild rock-pigeon! We can understand these facts, on the well-known principle of reversion to ancestral characters, if all the domestic breeds have descended from the rock-pigeon. But if we deny this, we must make one of the two following highly improbable suppositions. Either, firstly, that all the several imagined aboriginal stocks were coloured and marked like the rock-pigeon, although no other existing species is thus coloured and marked, so that in each separate breed there might be a tendency to revert to the very same colours and markings. Or, secondly, [26]that each breed, even the purest, has within a dozen or, at most, within a score of generations, been crossed by the rock-pigeon: I say within a dozen or twenty generations, for we know of no fact countenancing the belief that the child ever reverts to some one ancestor, removed by a greater number of generations. In a breed which has been crossed only once with some distinct breed, the tendency to reversion to any character derived from such cross will naturally become less and less, as in each succeeding generation there will be less of the foreign blood; but when there has been no cross with a distinct breed, and there is a tendency in both parents to revert to a character, which has been lost during some former generation, this tendency, for all that we can see to the contrary, may be transmitted undiminished for an indefinite number of generations. These two distinct cases are often confounded in treatises on inheritance.

Some facts about the coloring of pigeons deserve attention. The rock pigeon is a slate blue and has a white rump (the Indian subspecies, C. intermedia of Strickland, has a bluish hue); the tail features a dark terminal bar, with the bases of the outer feathers edged in white; the wings have two black bars. Some semi-domestic breeds and some seemingly truly wild breeds have, in addition to the two black bars, wings that are checkered with black. These distinct markings are not found together in any other species within the entire family. In every domestic breed, when taking truly well-bred birds, all of the above markings, including the white edging on the outer tail feathers, are sometimes perfectly developed. Furthermore, when two birds from distinct breeds are crossed, neither of which is blue or has any of the specified markings, the mixed offspring often suddenly acquire these traits; for example, I crossed some uniformly white fantails with some uniformly black barbs, and they produced mottled brown and black birds. When I crossed those offspring together, one grandchild of the pure white fantail and pure black barb had a stunning blue color, with a white rump, double black wing bars, and barred and white-edged tail feathers, resembling any wild rock pigeon. We can understand these facts based on the well-known principle of reverting to ancestral traits, if all domestic breeds have descended from the rock pigeon. However, if we deny this, we must consider one of two highly unlikely assumptions. First, that all the different imagined ancestral stocks were colored and marked like the rock pigeon, despite no other existing species displaying such colors and markings, leading to a tendency for each separate breed to revert to the same colors and markings. Or second, that each breed, even the purest, has been crossed with the rock pigeon within a dozen or, at most, twenty generations: I mention a dozen or twenty generations because we have no evidence suggesting that offspring revert to an ancestor that is further back than that. In a breed that has been crossed only once with another distinct breed, the tendency to revert to any character from that cross will naturally decrease, as in each succeeding generation there will be less foreign blood. However, when there has been no cross with a distinct breed and both parents show a tendency to revert to a character lost in some previous generation, this tendency, despite appearances to the contrary, may be passed on undiminished for an indefinite number of generations. These two different cases are often confused in discussions about inheritance.

Lastly, the hybrids or mongrels from between all the domestic breeds of pigeons are perfectly fertile. I can state this from my own observations, purposely made, on the most distinct breeds. Now, it is difficult, perhaps impossible, to bring forward one case of the hybrid offspring of two animals clearly distinct being themselves perfectly fertile. Some authors believe that long-continued domestication eliminates this strong tendency to sterility: from the history of the dog I think there is some probability in this hypothesis, if applied to species closely related together, though it is unsupported by a single experiment. But to extend the hypothesis so far as to suppose that species, aboriginally as distinct as carriers, tumblers, pouters, and fantails now are, should yield offspring perfectly fertile, inter se, seems to me rash in the extreme.

Lastly, the hybrids or mixed-breed pigeons from all domestic breeds are completely fertile. I can confirm this from my own careful observations of the different breeds. However, it's difficult, maybe even impossible, to find a case of hybrid offspring from two clearly distinct animals being fully fertile. Some authors think that long-term domestication reduces this strong tendency toward sterility: based on the history of dogs, I believe there's some merit to this idea when applied to closely related species, although it hasn't been proven by any experiments. But to go so far as to suggest that species as originally distinct as carriers, tumblers, pouters, and fantails could produce perfectly fertile offspring with each other seems extremely reckless to me.

From these several reasons, namely, the improbability of man having formerly got seven or eight supposed [27]species of pigeons to breed freely under domestication; these supposed species being quite unknown in a wild state, and their becoming nowhere feral; these species having very abnormal characters in certain respects, as compared with all other Columbidæ, though so like in most other respects to the rock-pigeon; the blue colour and various marks occasionally appearing in all the breeds, both when kept pure and when crossed; the mongrel offspring being perfectly fertile;—from these several reasons, taken together, I can feel no doubt that all our domestic breeds have descended from the Columba livia with its geographical sub-species.

From these several reasons, specifically the improbability of humans having originally bred seven or eight supposed [27]species of pigeons to thrive in domestication; these supposed species being completely unknown in the wild and not becoming feral anywhere; these species having very unusual characteristics in certain respects compared to all other Columbidæ, even though they share many similarities with the rock-pigeon; the blue color and various markings appearing in all breeds, both when kept pure and when mixed; and the fact that the mixed offspring are perfectly fertile—based on all these reasons combined, I have no doubt that all our domestic breeds have descended from the Columba livia and its geographical sub-species.

In favour of this view, I may add, firstly, that C. livia, or the rock-pigeon, has been found capable of domestication in Europe and in India; and that it agrees in habits and in a great number of points of structure with all the domestic breeds. Secondly, although an English carrier or short-faced tumbler differs immensely in certain characters from the rock-pigeon, yet by comparing the several sub-breeds of these varieties, more especially those brought from distant countries, we can make an almost perfect series between the extremes of structure. Thirdly, those characters which are mainly distinctive of each breed, for instance the wattle and length of beak of the carrier, the shortness of that of the tumbler, and the number of tail-feathers in the fantail, are in each breed eminently variable; and the explanation of this fact will be obvious when we come to treat of selection. Fourthly, pigeons have been watched, and tended with the utmost care, and loved by many people. They have been domesticated for thousands of years in several quarters of the world; the earliest known record of pigeons is in the fifth Ægyptian dynasty, about 3000 B.C., as was pointed out to me by Professor Lepsius; but Mr. Birch informs me that pigeons are given in a bill [28]of fare in the previous dynasty. In the time of the Romans, as we hear from Pliny, immense prices were given for pigeons; "nay, they are come to this pass, that they can reckon up their pedigree and race." Pigeons were much valued by Akber Khan in India, about the year 1600; never less than 20,000 pigeons were taken with the court. "The monarchs of Iran and Turan sent him some very rare birds;" and, continues the courtly historian, "His Majesty by crossing the breeds, which method was never practised before, has improved them astonishingly." About this same period the Dutch were as eager about pigeons as were the old Romans. The paramount importance of these considerations in explaining the immense amount of variation which pigeons have undergone, will be obvious when we treat of Selection. We shall then, also, see how it is that the breeds so often have a somewhat monstrous character. It is also a most favourable circumstance for the production of distinct breeds, that male and female pigeons can be easily mated for life; and thus different breeds can be kept together in the same aviary.

In support of this perspective, I’d like to point out, first, that C. livia, or the rock pigeon, has been domesticated in Europe and India; it shares habits and many structural features with all domesticated breeds. Second, while an English carrier or a short-faced tumbler looks very different from the rock pigeon in some ways, we can draw a nearly complete series between the extremes of their structure by examining the various sub-breeds of these types, especially those from far-flung regions. Third, the features that mainly distinguish each breed—like the wattle and the length of the beak in the carrier, the short beak of the tumbler, and the number of tail feathers in the fantail—are highly variable within each breed; this fact will become clear when we discuss selection. Fourth, people have observed, cared for, and cherished pigeons for thousands of years across different parts of the world; the earliest known record of pigeons dates back to the fifth Egyptian dynasty, around 3000 B.C., as Professor Lepsius pointed out to me. However, Mr. Birch informs me that pigeons were already mentioned in a bill of fare in the previous dynasty. In Roman times, as noted by Pliny, pigeons commanded incredibly high prices; “in fact, they’ve reached a point where they can trace their pedigree and lineage.” Pigeons were prized by Akber Khan in India around the year 1600, with not less than 20,000 pigeons accompanying the court. “The rulers of Iran and Turan sent him some very rare birds,” and, as the court historian recounts, “His Majesty improved them remarkably by crossbreeding, a practice that had never been done before.” During this same period, the Dutch were just as enthusiastic about pigeons as the ancient Romans were. The significance of these points in explaining the vast variation that pigeons have experienced will be clear when we discuss selection. We will also see how these breeds often exhibit somewhat unusual characteristics. It's also highly advantageous for creating distinct breeds that male and female pigeons can easily form lifelong pairs, allowing different breeds to be kept together in the same aviary.

I have discussed the probable origin of domestic pigeons at some, yet quite insufficient, length; because when I first kept pigeons and watched the several kinds, knowing well how true they bred, I felt fully as much difficulty in believing that they could have descended from a common parent, as any naturalist could in coming to a similar conclusion in regard to the many species of finches, or other large groups of birds, in nature. One circumstance has struck me much; namely, that all the breeders of the various domestic animals and the cultivators of plants, with whom I have ever conversed, or whose treatises I have read, are firmly convinced that the several breeds to which each has attended, are descended from so many aboriginally distinct species. [29]Ask, as I have asked, a celebrated raiser of Hereford cattle, whether his cattle might not have descended from long-horns, and he will laugh you to scorn. I have never met a pigeon, or poultry, or duck, or rabbit fancier, who was not fully convinced that each main breed was descended from a distinct species. Van Mons, in his treatise on pears and apples, shows how utterly he disbelieves that the several sorts, for instance a Ribston-pippin or Codlin-apple, could ever have proceeded from the seeds of the same tree. Innumerable other examples could be given. The explanation, I think, is simple: from long-continued study they are strongly impressed with the differences between the several races; and though they well know that each race varies slightly, for they win their prizes by selecting such slight differences, yet they ignore all general arguments, and refuse to sum up in their minds slight differences accumulated during many successive generations. May not those naturalists who, knowing far less of the laws of inheritance than does the breeder, and knowing no more than he does of the intermediate links in the long lines of descent, yet admit that many of our domestic races have descended from the same parents—may they not learn a lesson of caution, when they deride the idea of species in a state of nature being lineal descendants of other species?

I've talked about the likely origin of domestic pigeons a bit, but it's still not enough; because when I first kept pigeons and observed the different types, knowing how accurately they bred, I found it just as hard to believe they could have come from a common ancestor as any naturalist would in reaching a similar conclusion about the many finch species or other large groups of birds in nature. One thing that's really struck me is that all the breeders of various domestic animals and plant growers I've talked to or whose writings I've read are completely convinced that the different breeds they focus on originated from separate, distinct species. [29] Ask a well-known Hereford cattle breeder if their cattle might have descended from long-horned cattle, and they'll scoff at you. I’ve never encountered a pigeon, poultry, duck, or rabbit enthusiast who wasn’t fully convinced that each primary breed came from a different species. Van Mons, in his writing about pears and apples, makes it clear that he utterly disbelieves that the various types, like a Ribston-pippin or a Codlin-apple, could ever come from the seeds of the same tree. Countless other examples could be mentioned. I think the explanation is simple: after years of study, they are deeply impressed by the differences among the various breeds; and although they know that each breed varies slightly, since they win their awards by selecting those minor differences, they overlook broader arguments and refuse to consider how slight differences can accumulate over many generations. Should not those naturalists who know far less about inheritance laws than breeders—who also know no more about the intermediate links in the long lines of descent—learn a lesson in caution when they mock the idea that species in nature are lineal descendants of other species?

Selection.—Let us now briefly consider the steps by which domestic races have been produced, either from one or from several allied species. Some little effect may, perhaps, be attributed to the direct action of the external conditions of life, and some little to habit; but he would be a bold man who would account by such agencies for the differences of a dray and race horse, a greyhound and bloodhound, a carrier and tumbler pigeon. One of the most remarkable features in our domesticated races [30]is that we see in them adaptation, not indeed to the animal's or plant's own good, but to man's use or fancy. Some variations useful to him have probably arisen suddenly, or by one step; many botanists, for instance, believe that the fuller's teazle, with its hooks, which cannot be rivalled by any mechanical contrivance, is only a variety of the wild Dipsacus; and this amount of change may have suddenly arisen in a seedling. So it has probably been with the turnspit dog; and this is known to have been the case with the ancon sheep. But when we compare the dray-horse and race-horse, the dromedary and camel, the various breeds of sheep fitted either for cultivated land or mountain pasture, with the wool of one breed good for one purpose, and that of another breed for another purpose; when we compare the many breeds of dogs, each good for man in very different ways; when we compare the game-cock, so pertinacious in battle, with other breeds so little quarrelsome, with "everlasting layers" which never desire to sit, and with the bantam so small and elegant; when we compare the host of agricultural, culinary, orchard, and flower-garden races of plants, most useful to man at different seasons and for different purposes, or so beautiful in his eyes, we must, I think, look further than to mere variability. We cannot suppose that all the breeds were suddenly produced as perfect and as useful as we now see them; indeed, in several cases, we know that this has not been their history. The key is man's power of accumulative selection: nature gives successive variations; man adds them up in certain directions useful to him. In this sense he may be said to make for himself useful breeds.

Selection.—Let’s briefly look at how domestic races have been created, whether from one or multiple related species. Some effects might come from the direct impact of external living conditions, and a bit from habit; but it would take a lot of confidence to explain the differences between a draught horse and a racehorse, a greyhound and a bloodhound, or a carrier pigeon and a tumbler pigeon simply through those factors. One of the most notable aspects of our domesticated races [30]is that they show adaptation, not necessarily for the benefit of the animal or plant itself, but for human use or preference. Some variations that are useful to humans probably appeared suddenly, or in a single step; for example, many botanists believe that the fuller's teazle, with its unmatched hooks, is just a variety of the wild Dipsacus, and this degree of change may have occurred suddenly in a seedling. The same likely applies to the turnspit dog, and this is confirmed in the case of the ancon sheep. But when we compare the draught horse and the racehorse, the dromedary and the camel, various breeds of sheep suited for either cultivated fields or mountain pastures—with one breed’s wool being ideal for one purpose and another breed’s wool for a different use; when we look at the many breeds of dogs, each serving humans in vastly different ways; when we examine the game-cock, fiercely competitive in battle, against other breeds that are much less aggressive, or "everlasting layers" that never wish to nest, and the small, elegant bantam; when we compare the numerous races of agricultural, culinary, orchard, and ornamental plants, each useful to humans at different times and for various purposes, or simply pleasing to their eyes, we must consider more than just variability. We can’t assume that all the breeds appeared suddenly as perfect and useful as they are now; in fact, in several instances, we know this isn’t true. The key lies in mankind’s ability for cumulative selection: nature provides successive variations; humans accumulate them in specific directions that are useful to them. In this way, we can say that humans create useful breeds for their own needs.

The great power of this principle of selection is not hypothetical. It is certain that several of our eminent breeders have, even within a single lifetime, modified to [31]a large extent some breeds of cattle and sheep. In order fully to realise what they have done, it is almost necessary to read several of the many treatises devoted to this subject, and to inspect the animals. Breeders habitually speak of an animal's organisation as something quite plastic, which they can model almost as they please. If I had space I could quote numerous passages to this effect from highly competent authorities. Youatt, who was probably better acquainted with the works of agriculturists than almost any other individual, and who was himself a very good judge of an animal, speaks of the principle of selection as "that which enables the agriculturist, not only to modify the character of his flock, but to change it altogether. It is the magician's wand, by means of which he may summon into life whatever form and mould he pleases." Lord Somerville, speaking of what breeders have done for sheep, says:—"It would seem as if they had chalked out upon a wall a form perfect in itself, and then had given it existence." That most skilful breeder, Sir John Sebright, used to say, with respect to pigeons, that "he would produce any given feather in three years, but it would take him six years to obtain head and beak." In Saxony the importance of the principle of selection in regard to merino sheep is so fully recognised, that men follow it as a trade: the sheep are placed on a table and are studied, like a picture by a connoisseur; this is done three times at intervals of months, and the sheep are each time marked and classed, so that the very best may ultimately be selected for breeding.

The power of this selection principle is not just a theory. It's clear that several of our top breeders have significantly altered some breeds of cattle and sheep in just one lifetime. To truly understand what they’ve accomplished, it's almost essential to read various detailed works on the topic and examine the animals themselves. Breeders often describe an animal's structure as something flexible that they can shape to their liking. If I had more space, I could quote many expert sources to support this. Youatt, who had one of the best understandings of agricultural writings and was a keen judge of animals, referred to the selection principle as "the tool that allows the farmer not just to change the nature of his flock but to completely transform it. It’s like a magician's wand, enabling him to bring to life any form and shape he desires." Lord Somerville, discussing the impact breeders have had on sheep, remarked, "It seems as if they sketched a perfect form on a wall and then gave it life." The skilled breeder Sir John Sebright would say about pigeons that "he could produce any specific feather in three years, but it would take him six years to get the head and beak right." In Saxony, the value of the selection principle for merino sheep is so well recognized that people pursue it as a profession: the sheep are placed on a table and examined like a painting by an art expert; this happens three times over several months, and each time the sheep are marked and categorized so that the very best can eventually be chosen for breeding.

What English breeders have actually effected is proved by the enormous prices given for animals with a good pedigree; and these have now been exported to almost every quarter of the world. The improvement is by no means generally due to crossing different breeds; [32]all the best breeders are strongly opposed to this practice, except sometimes amongst closely allied sub-breeds. And when a cross has been made, the closest selection is far more indispensable even than in ordinary cases. If selection consisted merely in separating some very distinct variety, and breeding from it, the principle would be so obvious as hardly to be worth notice; but its importance consists in the great effect produced by the accumulation in one direction, during successive generations, of differences absolutely inappreciable by an uneducated eye—differences which I for one have vainly attempted to appreciate. Not one man in a thousand has accuracy of eye and judgment sufficient to become an eminent breeder. If gifted with these qualities, and he studies his subject for years, and devotes his lifetime to it with indomitable perseverance, he will succeed, and may make great improvements; if he wants any of these qualities, he will assuredly fail. Few would readily believe in the natural capacity and years of practice requisite to become even a skilful pigeon-fancier.

What English breeders have actually achieved is clear from the high prices paid for animals with a good pedigree; these animals have now been exported to nearly every part of the world. The improvement is not generally due to mixing different breeds; [32]most top breeders strongly oppose this practice, except sometimes among closely related sub-breeds. When a crossbreed is made, selecting the best individuals is even more crucial than in typical cases. If selection were simply about picking a very distinct variety and breeding from it, the principle would be so obvious that it wouldn't even be worth mentioning; but its importance lies in the significant impact of accumulating subtle differences over successive generations—differences that are completely unnoticeable to an untrained eye—differences that I, for one, have struggled to appreciate. Not one person in a thousand has the keen eye and judgment needed to become a top breeder. If one possesses these qualities, studies the field for years, and dedicates their life to it with relentless determination, they will succeed and can make considerable improvements; if they lack any of these traits, they will definitely fail. Few would easily believe in the natural talent and years of practice required to become even a skilled pigeon breeder.

The same principles are followed by horticulturists; but the variations are here often more abrupt. No one supposes that our choicest productions have been produced by a single variation from the aboriginal stock. We have proofs that this is not so in some cases, in which exact records have been kept; thus, to give a very trifling instance, the steadily-increasing size of the common gooseberry may be quoted. We see an astonishing improvement in many florists' flowers, when the flowers of the present day are compared with drawings made only twenty or thirty years ago. When a race of plants is once pretty well established, the seed-raisers do not pick out the best plants, but merely go over their seed-beds, and pull up the "rogues," as they call the plants that deviate from the proper standard. With animals this [33]kind of selection is, in fact, also followed; for hardly any one is so careless as to allow his worst animals to breed.

The same principles are followed by gardeners, but the changes can often be more noticeable here. No one thinks that our best products came from a single change from the original stock. We have evidence that this isn't the case in some situations where exact records have been kept; for instance, the steadily increasing size of the common gooseberry is a small example. We see a remarkable improvement in many florist flowers when we compare today's flowers with drawings made only twenty or thirty years ago. Once a plant variety is well established, seed producers don't pick the best plants; they just go through their seed beds and remove the "rogues," which are the plants that don't meet the standard. With animals, this kind of selection is also practiced because very few people are careless enough to let their worst animals breed.

In regard to plants, there is another means of observing the accumulated effects of selection—namely, by comparing the diversity of flowers in the different varieties of the same species in the flower-garden; the diversity of leaves, pods, or tubers, or whatever part is valued, in the kitchen-garden, in comparison with the flowers of the same varieties; and the diversity of fruit of the same species in the orchard, in comparison with the leaves and flowers of the same set of varieties. See how different the leaves of the cabbage are, and how extremely alike the flowers; how unlike the flowers of the heartsease are, and how alike the leaves; how much the fruit of the different kinds of gooseberries differ in size, colour, shape, and hairiness, and yet the flowers present very slight differences. It is not that the varieties which differ largely in some one point do not differ at all in other points; this is hardly ever, perhaps never, the case. The laws of correlation of growth, the importance of which should never be overlooked, will ensure some differences; but, as a general rule, I cannot doubt that the continued selection of slight variations, either in the leaves, the flowers, or the fruit, will produce races differing from each other chiefly in these characters.

When it comes to plants, there's another way to see the effects of selection—by looking at the variety of flowers in different types of the same species in a flower garden; the variety of leaves, pods, or tubers, or any part that's valued in a kitchen garden, compared to the flowers of those same types; and the variety of fruit from the same species in an orchard, compared to the leaves and flowers of those same types. Notice how different the cabbage leaves are, while the flowers are very similar; how different the heartsease flowers are, while the leaves look quite similar; how much the fruit of different gooseberries varies in size, color, shape, and fuzziness, even though the flowers show only minor differences. It's not that varieties that differ significantly in one aspect don't differ at all in other aspects; that’s rarely, if ever, true. The laws of growth correlation, which should always be kept in mind, will create some differences; but generally speaking, I believe that the ongoing selection of minor variations in either the leaves, flowers, or fruit will lead to breeds that differ mainly in these traits.

It may be objected that the principle of selection has been reduced to methodical practice for scarcely more than three-quarters of a century; it has certainly been more attended to of late years, and many treatises have been published on the subject; and the result has been, in a corresponding degree, rapid and important. But it is very far from true that the principle is a modern discovery. I could give several references to the full acknowledgment of the importance of the principle in works of high antiquity. In rude and barbarous periods [34]of English history choice animals were often imported, and laws were passed to prevent their exportation: the destruction of horses under a certain size was ordered, and this may be compared to the "roguing" of plants by nurserymen. The principle of selection I find distinctly given in an ancient Chinese encyclopædia. Explicit rules are laid down by some of the Roman classical writers. From passages in Genesis, it is clear that the colour of domestic animals was at that early period attended to. Savages now sometimes cross their dogs with wild canine animals, to improve the breed, and they formerly did so, as is attested by passages in Pliny. The savages in South Africa match their draught cattle by colour, as do some of the Esquimaux their teams of dogs. Livingstone shows how much good domestic breeds are valued by the negroes of the interior of Africa who have not associated with Europeans. Some of these facts do not show actual selection, but they show that the breeding of domestic animals was carefully attended to in ancient times, and is now attended to by the lowest savages. It would, indeed, have been a strange fact, had attention not been paid to breeding, for the inheritance of good and bad qualities is so obvious.

It might be argued that the principle of selection has only been systematically practiced for about seventy-five years; it has definitely received more attention in recent years, with many publications on the topic. The results have been correspondingly rapid and significant. However, it is far from accurate to say that this principle is a modern discovery. I could provide multiple references showing the recognition of its importance in ancient works. In primitive and barbaric times [34] of English history, desirable animals were frequently imported, and laws were enacted to prevent their exportation. There were mandates to destroy horses below a certain size, which can be compared to how nurseries "rogue" plants. The principle of selection is clearly outlined in an ancient Chinese encyclopedia. Some classical Roman writers set down explicit rules. Passages in Genesis indicate that the color of domestic animals was noted in those early times. Even today, some tribes cross their dogs with wild canines to enhance the breed, a practice noted by Pliny. In South Africa, some indigenous people select their draft cattle by color, just as certain Eskimos do with their dog teams. Livingstone illustrates how highly valued domestic breeds are among certain African tribes that haven't interacted with Europeans. While some of these examples do not demonstrate actual selection, they indicate that the breeding of domestic animals was carefully managed in ancient times and continues to be by even the most primitive groups today. It would indeed be unusual if breeding did not receive attention, given how obvious the inheritance of good and bad traits is.

At the present time, eminent breeders try by methodical selection, with a distinct object in view, to make a new strain or sub-breed, superior to anything existing in the country. But, for our purpose, a kind of Selection, which may be called Unconscious, and which results from every one trying to possess and breed from the best individual animals, is more important. Thus, a man who intends keeping pointers naturally tries to get as good dogs as he can, and afterwards breeds from his own best dogs, but he has no wish or expectation of permanently altering the breed. Nevertheless I cannot doubt that this process, continued during centuries, [35]would improve and modify any breed, in the same way as Bakewell, Collins, &c., by this very same process, only carried on more methodically, did greatly modify, even during their own lifetimes, the forms and qualities of their cattle. Slow and insensible changes of this kind could never be recognised unless actual measurements or careful drawings of the breeds in question had been made long ago, which might serve for comparison. In some cases, however, unchanged, or but little changed individuals of the same breed may be found in less civilised districts, where the breed has been less improved. There is reason to believe that King Charles's spaniel has been unconsciously modified to a large extent since the time of that monarch. Some highly competent authorities are convinced that the setter is directly derived from the spaniel, and has probably been slowly altered from it. It is known that the English pointer has been greatly changed within the last century, and in this case the change has, it is believed, been chiefly effected by crosses with the fox-hound; but what concerns us is, that the change has been effected unconsciously and gradually, and yet so effectually, that, though the old Spanish pointer certainly came from Spain, Mr. Borrow has not seen, as I am informed by him, any native dog in Spain like our pointer.

Currently, prominent breeders are using systematic selection with a clear goal in mind to create a new strain or sub-breed that’s better than anything else in the country. However, for our purposes, a type of selection that could be called Unconscious, which happens when everyone tries to own and breed from the best individual animals, is more important. For example, someone who wants to keep pointers will naturally seek out the best dogs available and then breed from his top dogs, without any intention or expectation of permanently changing the breed. Still, I believe that this process, continued over centuries, would improve and modify any breed, similar to how Bakewell, Collins, and others significantly changed the forms and qualities of their cattle using this same process, albeit in a more methodical manner during their own lifetimes. Slow and subtle changes like this wouldn’t be recognized unless actual measurements or detailed drawings of the breeds had been made long ago for comparison. However, in some cases, you might find individuals of the same breed that are unchanged or only slightly changed in less developed areas, where the breed has seen less improvement. There's reason to think that King Charles's spaniel has been unconsciously modified a great deal since that monarch's time. Some highly knowledgeable experts believe that the setter is directly descended from the spaniel and has probably been gradually altered from it. It’s known that the English pointer has changed significantly over the last century, a change primarily thought to be due to crosses with the foxhound; but what’s important is that this change happened unconsciously and gradually, and has been so effective that, although the old Spanish pointer definitely came from Spain, Mr. Borrow has not encountered, as he has informed me, any native dog in Spain that resembles our pointer.

By a similar process of selection, and by careful training, the whole body of English racehorses have come to surpass in fleetness and size the parent Arab stock, so that the latter, by the regulations for the Goodwood Races, are favoured in the weights they carry. Lord Spencer and others have shown how the cattle of England have increased in weight and in early maturity, compared with the stock formerly kept in this country. By comparing the accounts given in old pigeon treatises of carriers and tumblers with these breeds as now existing in Britain, [36]India, and Persia, we can, I think, clearly trace the stages through which they have insensibly passed, and come to differ so greatly from the rock-pigeon.

Through a similar process of selection and careful training, the entire population of English racehorses has exceeded the speed and size of their Arab ancestors. As a result, the Arab horses are given a weight advantage in the Goodwood Races. Lord Spencer and others have demonstrated how cattle in England have gained weight and matured earlier compared to the breeds that were previously found in the country. By comparing the descriptions in old pigeon manuals of carriers and tumblers with the breeds currently found in Britain, India, and Persia, we can clearly trace the subtle changes they have undergone, leading to significant differences from the rock-pigeon.

Youatt gives an excellent illustration of the effects of a course of selection, which may be considered as unconsciously followed, in so far that the breeders could never have expected or even have wished to have produced the result which ensued—namely, the production of two distinct strains. The two flocks of Leicester sheep kept by Mr. Buckley and Mr. Burgess, as Mr. Youatt remarks, "have been purely bred from the original stock of Mr. Bakewell for upwards of fifty years. There is not a suspicion existing in the mind of any one at all acquainted with the subject that the owner of either of them has deviated in any one instance from the pure blood of Mr. Bakewell's flock, and yet the difference between the sheep possessed by these two gentlemen is so great that they have the appearance of being quite different varieties."

Youatt provides a great example of the effects of a selection process that may have been followed unconsciously, as the breeders could never have anticipated or even wanted the outcome that resulted—specifically, the development of two distinct strains. The two flocks of Leicester sheep owned by Mr. Buckley and Mr. Burgess, as Mr. Youatt points out, "have been bred purely from Mr. Bakewell's original stock for over fifty years. There is no doubt in the mind of anyone familiar with the subject that neither owner has strayed even once from Mr. Bakewell's purebred flock, yet the differences between the sheep owned by these two men are so significant that they seem to be entirely different varieties."

If there exist savages so barbarous as never to think of the inherited character of the offspring of their domestic animals, yet any one animal particularly useful to them, for any special purpose, would be carefully preserved during famines and other accidents, to which savages are so liable, and such choice animals would thus generally leave more offspring than the inferior ones; so that in this case there would be a kind of unconscious selection going on. We see the value set on animals even by the barbarians of Tierra del Fuego, by their killing and devouring their old women, in times of dearth, as of less value than their dogs.

If there are savages so primitive that they never consider the inherited traits of their domesticated animals, any one animal that is particularly useful to them for a specific purpose would still be carefully preserved during famines and other hardships, which savages often face. As a result, these selected animals would generally have more offspring than the lesser ones, leading to a sort of unconscious selection happening. We can see the value placed on animals even by the primitive people of Tierra del Fuego, as evidenced by their choice to kill and eat their elderly women during times of scarcity, seeing them as less valuable than their dogs.

In plants the same gradual process of improvement, through the occasional preservation of the best individuals, whether or not sufficiently distinct to be ranked at their first appearance as distinct varieties, and whether [37]or not two or more species or races have become blended together by crossing, may plainly be recognised in the increased size and beauty which we now see in the varieties of the heartsease, rose, pelargonium, dahlia, and other plants, when compared with the older varieties or with their parent-stocks. No one would ever expect to get a first-rate heartsease or dahlia from the seed of a wild plant. No one would expect to raise a first-rate melting pear from the seed of the wild pear, though he might succeed from a poor seedling growing wild, if it had come from a garden-stock. The pear, though cultivated in classical times, appears, from Pliny's description, to have been a fruit of very inferior quality. I have seen great surprise expressed in horticultural works at the wonderful skill of gardeners, in having produced such splendid results from such poor materials; but the art, I cannot doubt, has been simple, and, as far as the final result is concerned, has been followed almost unconsciously. It has consisted in always cultivating the best known variety, sowing its seeds, and, when a slightly better variety has chanced to appear, selecting it, and so onwards. But the gardeners of the classical period, who cultivated the best pear they could procure, never thought what splendid fruit we should eat; though we owe our excellent fruit, in some small degree, to their having naturally chosen and preserved the best varieties they could anywhere find.

In plants, the same gradual process of improvement occurs through occasionally preserving the best individuals. These individuals may or may not be distinct enough to be classified as new varieties at first glance, and whether or not various species or races have mixed due to crossing can be clearly seen in the increased size and beauty of modern varieties of heartsease, roses, pelargoniums, dahlias, and other plants compared to older varieties or their parent stocks. No one would expect to get a top-notch heartsease or dahlia from the seed of a wild plant. Similarly, no one would think to grow an outstanding melting pear from the seed of a wild pear, although they might have success with a poor seedling from the wild that originated from garden stock. The pear, even though cultivated in ancient times, seemed to be of very poor quality based on Pliny's description. I have seen many horticultural writers express surprise at how skilled gardeners have produced such impressive results from such inferior materials; however, the method has been pretty straightforward and, concerning the final outcome, has often been followed almost instinctively. It has involved consistently cultivating the best-known variety, sowing its seeds, and selecting any slightly better variety that happens to emerge, continuing this process over time. But the gardeners of classical times, who cultivated the best pear they could find, never anticipated the amazing fruit we enjoy today, even though we owe part of our excellent fruit to their natural selection and preservation of the best varieties available to them.

A large amount of change in our cultivated plants, thus slowly and unconsciously accumulated, explains, as I believe, the well-known fact, that in a vast number of cases we cannot recognise, and therefore do not know, the wild parent-stocks of the plants which have been longest cultivated in our flower and kitchen gardens. If it has taken centuries or thousands of years to improve or modify most of our plants up to their present [38]standard of usefulness to man, we can understand how it is that neither Australia, the Cape of Good Hope, nor any other region inhabited by quite uncivilised man, has afforded us a single plant worth culture. It is not that these countries, so rich in species, do not by a strange chance possess the aboriginal stocks of any useful plants, but that the native plants have not been improved by continued selection up to a standard of perfection comparable with that given to the plants in countries anciently civilised.

A lot of change in our cultivated plants has slowly and unconsciously built up over time, which, I believe, explains why we often can’t recognize or know the wild parent stocks of the plants that have been cultivated for the longest in our flower and vegetable gardens. If it has taken centuries or even thousands of years to improve or modify most of our plants to their current level of usefulness to humans, we can see why neither Australia, the Cape of Good Hope, nor any other region inhabited by completely uncivilized people has given us a single plant worth cultivating. It’s not that these regions, rich in species, oddly lack the native stocks of any useful plants, but rather that the native plants have not been improved through continuous selection to a standard of perfection that matches those of plants from anciently civilized countries.

In regard to the domestic animals kept by uncivilised man, it should not be overlooked that they almost always have to struggle for their own food, at least during certain seasons. And in two countries very differently circumstanced, individuals of the same species, having slightly different constitutions or structure, would often succeed better in the one country than in the other; and thus by a process of "natural selection," as will hereafter be more fully explained, two sub-breeds might be formed. This, perhaps, partly explains what has been remarked by some authors, namely, that the varieties kept by savages have more of the character of species than the varieties kept in civilised countries.

Concerning the domestic animals kept by uncivilized people, it's important to note that they often have to find their own food, especially during certain seasons. In two countries with very different conditions, individuals of the same species, having slightly different traits or structures, may thrive better in one country than the other; and through a process of "natural selection," which will be explained more fully later, two sub-breeds could be formed. This may help explain what some authors have pointed out, that the varieties kept by primitive people tend to resemble species more than those kept in civilized countries.

On the view here given of the all-important part which selection by man has played, it becomes at once obvious, how it is that our domestic races show adaptation in their structure or in their habits to man's wants or fancies. We can, I think, further understand the frequently abnormal character of our domestic races, and likewise their differences being so great in external characters and relatively so slight in internal parts or organs. Man can hardly select, or only with much difficulty, any deviation of structure excepting such as is externally visible; and indeed he rarely cares for what is internal. He can never act by selection, excepting on variations [39]which are first given to him in some slight degree by nature. No man would ever try to make a fantail, till he saw a pigeon with a tail developed in some slight degree in an unusual manner, or a pouter till he saw a pigeon with a crop of somewhat unusual size; and the more abnormal or unusual any character was when it first appeared, the more likely it would be to catch his attention. But to use such an expression as trying to make a fantail, is, I have no doubt, in most cases, utterly incorrect. The man who first selected a pigeon with a slightly larger tail, never dreamed what the descendants of that pigeon would become through long-continued, partly unconscious and partly methodical selection. Perhaps the parent bird of all fantails had only fourteen tail-feathers somewhat expanded, like the present Java fantail, or like individuals of other and distinct breeds, in which as many as seventeen tail-feathers have been counted. Perhaps the first pouter-pigeon did not inflate its crop much more than the turbit now does the upper part of its œsophagus,—a habit which is disregarded by all fanciers, as it is not one of the points of the breed.

Looking at how important selection by humans has been, it becomes clear why our domestic animals are adapted in their structure or behaviors to meet our needs or preferences. I think this also helps us understand why our domestic breeds often have unusual traits and why their external characteristics can vary widely while their internal features or organs are relatively similar. Humans can only selectively choose changes in structure that are visible from the outside, and they usually don’t pay much attention to internal aspects. Selection can only happen on variations that are initially presented by nature in some minor way. No one would have tried to breed a fantail until they saw a pigeon with a tail that had developed a bit unusually, or a pouter until they noticed a pigeon with a crop that was slightly larger than usual; and the more unusual the trait was when it first appeared, the more likely it was to grab their attention. However, saying that someone is trying to create a fantail is likely incorrect in most cases. The person who first selected a pigeon with a slightly bigger tail probably never imagined what the descendants of that bird would become through years of both unintentional and deliberate selection. Perhaps the original ancestor of all fantails had only fourteen tail feathers that were somewhat expanded, similar to the current Java fantail, or like individuals from other distinct breeds, where up to seventeen tail feathers have been counted. Maybe the first pouter-pigeon didn't inflate its crop much more than the turbit does in the upper part of its esophagus—a trait that fanciers ignore since it isn’t a recognized feature of the breed.

Nor let it be thought that some great deviation of structure would be necessary to catch the fancier's eye: he perceives extremely small differences, and it is in human nature to value any novelty, however slight, in one's own possession. Nor must the value which would formerly be set on any slight differences in the individuals of the same species, be judged of by the value which would now be set on them, after several breeds have once fairly been established. Many slight differences might, and indeed do now, arise amongst pigeons, which are rejected as faults or deviations from the standard of perfection of each breed. The common goose has not given rise to any marked varieties; hence the Thoulouse and the common breed, which differ only in colour, that [40]most fleeting of characters, have lately been exhibited as distinct at our poultry-shows.

Don't think that catching someone's eye requires major structural changes: people notice very small differences, and it's human nature to appreciate any novelty, no matter how minor, that we own. We shouldn't judge the value that used to be placed on slight differences within the same species by how we value them now, especially after several breeds have been well established. Many slight differences might currently arise among pigeons but are dismissed as flaws or deviations from each breed's standard of perfection. The common goose hasn’t produced any notable varieties; therefore, the Toulouse and common breeds, which only differ in color, the [40]most fleeting of traits, have recently been shown as distinct at our poultry shows.

I think these views further explain what has sometimes been noticed—namely, that we know nothing about the origin or history of any of our domestic breeds. But, in fact, a breed, like a dialect of a language, can hardly be said to have had a definite origin. A man preserves and breeds from an individual with some slight deviation of structure, or takes more care than usual in matching his best animals and thus improves them, and the improved individuals slowly spread in the immediate neighbourhood. But as yet they will hardly have a distinct name, and from being only slightly valued, their history will be disregarded. When further improved by the same slow and gradual process, they will spread more widely, and will get recognised as something distinct and valuable, and will then probably first receive a provincial name. In semi-civilised countries, with little free communication, the spreading and knowledge of any new sub-breed will be a slow process. As soon as the points of value of the new sub-breed are once fully acknowledged, the principle, as I have called it, of unconscious selection will always tend,—perhaps more at one period than at another, as the breed rises or falls in fashion,—perhaps more in one district than in another, according to the state of civilization of the inhabitants,—slowly to add to the characteristic features of the breed, whatever they may be. But the chance will be infinitely small of any record having been preserved of such slow, varying, and insensible changes.

I think these views further explain what has sometimes been noticed—namely, that we know very little about the origin or history of any of our domestic breeds. In reality, a breed, much like a dialect of a language, can't really be said to have a definite origin. A person breeds from an individual that has a slight difference in structure or puts in extra effort to match their best animals, improving them, and the improved animals gradually spread within the local area. But at that point, they probably won't even have a distinct name, and because they aren't valued much, their history will be overlooked. As they continue to improve through the same slow process, they'll spread more broadly and start to be recognized as something unique and valuable, likely receiving a regional name for the first time. In semi-civilized countries, where communication is limited, the spreading knowledge of any new sub-breed will happen slowly. Once the unique qualities of the new sub-breed are fully recognized, the principle I mentioned, which I call unconscious selection, will always tend—perhaps more at one time than another, as the breed becomes more or less fashionable—perhaps more in one area than another, depending on the level of civilization of the people involved—to gradually enhance the distinctive features of the breed, whatever those might be. However, the chances of any records being kept of such slow, varying, and subtle changes are extremely slim.

I must now say a few words on the circumstances, favourable, or the reverse, to man's power of selection. A high degree of variability is obviously favourable, as freely giving the materials for selection to work on; not that mere individual differences are not amply [41]sufficient, with extreme care, to allow of the accumulation of a large amount of modification in almost any desired direction. But as variations manifestly useful or pleasing to man appear only occasionally, the chance of their appearance will be much increased by a large number of individuals being kept; and hence this comes to be of the highest importance to success. On this principle Marshall has remarked, with respect to the sheep of parts of Yorkshire, that "as they generally belong to poor people, and are mostly in small lots, they never can be improved." On the other hand, nurserymen, from raising large stocks of the same plants, are generally far more successful than amateurs in getting new and valuable varieties. The keeping of a large number of individuals of a species in any country requires that the species should be placed under favourable conditions of life, so as to breed freely in that country. When the individuals of any species are scanty, all the individuals, whatever their quality may be, will generally be allowed to breed, and this will effectually prevent selection. But probably the most important point of all, is, that the animal or plant should be so highly useful to man, or so much valued by him, that the closest attention should be paid to even the slightest deviation in the qualities or structure of each individual. Unless such attention be paid nothing can be effected. I have seen it gravely remarked, that it was most fortunate that the strawberry began to vary just when gardeners began to attend closely to this plant. No doubt the strawberry had always varied since it was cultivated, but the slight varieties had been neglected. As soon, however, as gardeners picked out individual plants with slightly larger, earlier, or better fruit, and raised seedlings from them, and again picked out the best seedlings and bred from them, then, there appeared (aided by some [42]crossing with distinct species) those many admirable varieties of the strawberry which have been raised during the last thirty or forty years.

I need to say a few words about the factors that can help or hinder a person's ability to select. A high level of variability is clearly beneficial, as it provides a range of options for selection; however, even small individual differences can, with great care, lead to significant changes in almost any direction desired. Since variations that are useful or appealing to people only appear occasionally, having a large number of individuals increases the chances of these variations showing up, making this aspect crucial for success. On this point, Marshall noted regarding certain sheep in Yorkshire that "because they are usually owned by poor people and are mostly in small lots, they can never be improved." In contrast, nurserymen, who raise a large number of the same plants, tend to be far more successful than hobbyists in developing new and valuable varieties. Maintaining a large number of individuals of a species in any location necessitates that the species be in favorable living conditions, allowing them to breed freely in that area. When there are very few individuals of a species, all of them, regardless of their quality, will typically be allowed to breed, which effectively hinders selection. However, the most important point is that the animal or plant should be so useful or valuable to humans that even the smallest changes in its qualities or structure warrant close attention. Without such attention, no progress can be made. I've seen it noted that it was very fortunate the strawberry started to vary just as gardeners began paying close attention to it. Of course, the strawberry has always varied since it was cultivated, but the subtle differences had been overlooked. However, once gardeners began selecting individual plants with slightly larger, earlier, or better fruit, cultivating seedlings from them, and repeatedly selecting the best seedlings for breeding, various remarkable strawberry varieties emerged over the past thirty or forty years (aided by some [42]crossing with distinct species).

In the case of animals with separate sexes, facility in preventing crosses is an important element of success in the formation of new races,—at least, in a country which is already stocked with other races. In this respect enclosure of the land plays a part. Wandering savages or the inhabitants of open plains rarely possess more than one breed of the same species. Pigeons can be mated for life, and this is a great convenience to the fancier, for thus many races may be kept true, though mingled in the same aviary; and this circumstance must have largely favoured the improvement and formation of new breeds. Pigeons, I may add, can be propagated in great numbers and at a very quick rate, and inferior birds may be freely rejected, as when killed they serve for food. On the other hand, cats, from their nocturnal rambling habits, cannot be matched, and, although so much valued by women and children, we hardly ever see a distinct breed kept up; such breeds as we do sometimes see are almost always imported from some other country, often from islands. Although I do not doubt that some domestic animals vary less than others, yet the rarity or absence of distinct breeds of the cat, the donkey, peacock, goose, &c., may be attributed in main part to selection not having been brought into play: in cats, from the difficulty in pairing them; in donkeys, from only a few being kept by poor people, and little attention paid to their breeding; in peacocks, from not being very easily reared and a large stock not kept; in geese, from being valuable only for two purposes, food and feathers, and more especially from no pleasure having been felt in the display of distinct breeds.

In animals with separate sexes, being able to prevent crossbreeding is crucial for successfully creating new breeds—especially in a country that already has existing breeds. In this regard, land enclosure is important. Wandering groups or people living in open areas usually have only one breed of each species. Pigeons can mate for life, which is very convenient for breeders because it allows multiple breeds to be kept pure even in the same aviary; this has likely helped a lot in the improvement and creation of new breeds. Additionally, pigeons can reproduce quickly and in large numbers, and inferior birds can be discarded since they can be used as food. In contrast, cats, due to their nighttime roaming habits, cannot be easily paired, and although they're highly valued by women and children, we rarely see distinct breeds maintained; those we do see are often imported from other countries, frequently from islands. While I believe some domestic animals vary less than others, the lack or rarity of distinct breeds in cats, donkeys, peacocks, and geese can mainly be attributed to the lack of selective breeding. In cats, it's difficult to pair them; in donkeys, only a few are kept by poor people, with little focus on breeding; in peacocks, they aren't easily raised and large stocks aren't maintained; and in geese, they're valued mainly for food and feathers, with little interest in showcasing different breeds.

To sum up on the origin of our Domestic Races of [43]animals and plants. I believe that the conditions of life, from their action on the reproductive system, are so far of the highest importance as causing variability. I do not believe that variability is an inherent and necessary contingency, under all circumstances, with all organic beings, as some authors have thought. The effects of variability are modified by various degrees of inheritance and of reversion. Variability is governed by many unknown laws, more especially by that of correlation of growth. Something may be attributed to the direct action of the conditions of life. Something must be attributed to use and disuse. The final result is thus rendered infinitely complex. In some cases, I do not doubt that the intercrossing of species, aboriginally distinct, has played an important part in the origin of our domestic productions. When in any country several domestic breeds have once been established, their occasional intercrossing, with the aid of selection, has, no doubt, largely aided in the formation of new sub-breeds; but the importance of the crossing of varieties has, I believe, been greatly exaggerated, both in regard to animals and to those plants which are propagated by seed. In plants which are temporarily propagated by cuttings, buds, &c., the importance of the crossing both of distinct species and of varieties is immense; for the cultivator here quite disregards the extreme variability both of hybrids and mongrels, and the frequent sterility of hybrids; but the cases of plants not propagated by seed are of little importance to us, for their endurance is only temporary. Over all these causes of Change I am convinced that the accumulative action of Selection, whether applied methodically and more quickly, or unconsciously and more slowly, but more efficiently, is by far the predominant Power.

To sum up the origin of our domesticated races of [43] animals and plants, I believe that the conditions of life are extremely important in influencing variability through their effect on the reproductive system. I don’t think that variability is an inherent and inevitable outcome for all organic beings under all circumstances, as some authors have suggested. The effects of variability are influenced by different degrees of inheritance and reversion. Variability is governed by many unknown laws, particularly the correlation of growth. Some of it can be attributed to the direct impact of living conditions, while some must be connected to use and disuse. The overall result is incredibly complex. In some cases, I have no doubt that the interbreeding of originally distinct species has played a significant role in the development of our domesticated products. Once several domestic breeds are established in a country, their occasional interbreeding, along with selective breeding, has largely contributed to the creation of new sub-breeds. However, I believe the significance of crossing varieties has been greatly overstated, both for animals and for plants that are grown from seed. In plants that are temporarily propagated through cuttings, buds, etc., the importance of crossing different species and varieties is huge; here, the cultivator largely overlooks the extreme variability of both hybrids and mongrels, as well as the frequent sterility of hybrids. But the cases of plants that aren’t propagated by seed are not very important to us since their survival is only temporary. I am convinced that over all these factors of change, the cumulative power of selection—whether applied systematically and quickly, or unconsciously and more slowly, but more effectively—is by far the dominant force.


[44]

[44]

CHAPTER II.

Variation under Nature.

Variation in Nature.

Variability—Individual differences—Doubtful species—Wide ranging, much diffused, and common species vary most—Species of the larger genera in any country vary more than the species of the smaller genera—Many of the species of the larger genera resemble varieties in being very closely, but unequally, related to each other, and in having restricted ranges.

Diversity—Individual differences—Uncertain species—Widespread, common species show the most variation—Species from larger genera in any country usually vary more than those from smaller genera—Many species from larger genera look like varieties because they are closely related, but not identically, to each other and have limited distributions.

Before applying the principles arrived at in the last chapter to organic beings in a state of nature, we must briefly discuss whether these latter are subject to any variation. To treat this subject at all properly, a long catalogue of dry facts should be given; but these I shall reserve for my future work. Nor shall I here discuss the various definitions which have been given of the term species. No one definition has as yet satisfied all naturalists; yet every naturalist knows vaguely what he means when he speaks of a species. Generally the term includes the unknown element of a distinct act of creation. The term "variety" is almost equally difficult to define; but here community of descent is almost universally implied, though it can rarely be proved. We have also what are called monstrosities; but they graduate into varieties. By a monstrosity I presume is meant some considerable deviation of structure in one part, either injurious to or not useful to the species, and not generally propagated. Some authors use the term "variation" in a technical sense, as implying a modification directly due to the physical conditions of life; and "variations" in this sense are supposed not to be inherited: but who can say that the dwarfed condition of shells in the brackish waters of the Baltic, or dwarfed [45]plants on Alpine summits, or the thicker fur of an animal from far northwards, would not in some cases be inherited for at least some few generations? and in this case I presume that the form would be called a variety.

Before applying the principles discussed in the last chapter to living organisms in their natural state, we need to briefly consider whether these organisms can change. To properly address this topic, a long list of factual details would be necessary; however, I'll save those for my future work. I won’t go into the different definitions of the term "species" here. No single definition has satisfied all naturalists; yet every naturalist has a general idea of what they mean when they refer to a species. Typically, the term includes an undefined element of unique creation. The term "variety" is also challenging to define; however, it usually implies a shared ancestry, although this is rarely proven. There are also what we call monstrosities, but these often blend into varieties. A monstrosity refers to a significant structural deviation in one part, whether it is detrimental or non-beneficial to the species, and it is not usually passed on. Some authors use "variation" in a specific way, suggesting a change directly caused by environmental factors; such "variations" are thought not to be inherited. But who can say that the stunted growth of shells in the brackish waters of the Baltic, or the smaller plants on mountain peaks, or the thicker fur of a northern animal, wouldn’t, in some cases, be inherited for at least a few generations? In this scenario, the resulting form would likely be classified as a variety.

Again, we have many slight differences which may be called individual differences, such as are known frequently to appear in the offspring from the same parents, or which may be presumed to have thus arisen, from being frequently observed in the individuals of the same species inhabiting the same confined locality. No one supposes that all the individuals of the same species are cast in the very same mould. These individual differences are highly important for us, as they afford materials for natural selection to accumulate, in the same manner as man can accumulate in any given direction individual differences in his domesticated productions. These individual differences generally affect what naturalists consider unimportant parts; but I could show by a long catalogue of facts, that parts which must be called important, whether viewed under a physiological or classificatory point of view, sometimes vary in the individuals of the same species. I am convinced that the most experienced naturalist would be surprised at the number of the cases of variability, even in important parts of structure, which he could collect on good authority, as I have collected, during a course of years. It should be remembered that systematists are far from pleased at finding variability in important characters, and that there are not many men who will laboriously examine internal and important organs, and compare them in many specimens of the same species. I should never have expected that the branching of the main nerves close to the great central ganglion of an insect would have been variable in the same species; I should have expected that changes of this nature could have been effected only [46]by slow degrees: yet quite recently Mr. Lubbock has shown a degree of variability in these main nerves in Coccus, which may almost be compared to the irregular branching of the stem of a tree. This philosophical naturalist, I may add, has also quite recently shown that the muscles in the larvæ of certain insects are very far from uniform. Authors sometimes argue in a circle when they state that important organs never vary; for these same authors practically rank that character as important (as some few naturalists have honestly confessed) which does not vary; and, under this point of view, no instance of an important part varying will ever be found: but under any other point of view many instances assuredly can be given.

Once again, we notice many small differences, often referred to as individual differences, which frequently appear in the offspring of the same parents or are thought to have arisen from being seen often in individuals of the same species living in the same area. No one thinks that all members of the same species are exactly alike. These individual differences are very important because they provide material for natural selection to accumulate, just as humans can selectively breed their domesticated animals in specific ways. These individual differences usually concern what naturalists consider to be unimportant traits; however, I could present a long list of facts demonstrating that parts deemed important—whether viewed physiologically or classification-wise—sometimes vary among individuals of the same species. I’m convinced that even the most experienced naturalist would be amazed by the number of cases of variability, even in significant structural parts, that he could gather from reliable sources, as I have done over many years. It’s important to note that systematists are not happy about finding variability in important traits, and very few people will painstakingly examine and compare internal and crucial organs in numerous specimens of the same species. I would have never expected that the branching of the main nerves close to an insect's central ganglion would vary within the same species; I thought such changes could only occur gradually. Yet, recently, Mr. Lubbock has illustrated a level of variability in these main nerves in Coccus that could almost be likened to the irregular branching of a tree. This philosophical naturalist has also recently shown that the muscles in the larvae of certain insects are far from uniform. Sometimes, authors fall into a circular argument when they claim that important organs never change; because they define importance based on traits that don't vary, they overlook instances where significant parts do vary. But from any other perspective, many examples can definitely be found.

There is one point connected with individual differences, which seems to me extremely perplexing: I refer to those genera which have sometimes been called "protean" or "polymorphic," in which the species present an inordinate amount of variation; and hardly two naturalists can agree which forms to rank as species and which as varieties. We may instance Rubus, Rosa, and Hieracium amongst plants, several genera of insects, and several genera of Brachiopod shells. In most polymorphic genera some of the species have fixed and definite characters. Genera which are polymorphic in one country seem to be, with some few exceptions, polymorphic in other countries, and likewise, judging from Brachiopod shells, at former periods of time. These facts seem to be very perplexing, for they seem to show that this kind of variability is independent of the conditions of life. I am inclined to suspect that we see in these polymorphic genera variations in points of structure which are of no service or disservice to the species, and which consequently have not been seized on and rendered definite by natural selection, as hereafter will be explained. [47]

There’s one aspect related to individual differences that I find very confusing: I’m talking about those groups that are sometimes called "protean" or "polymorphic," where the species show an excessive amount of variation; and hardly any two naturalists can agree on which forms should be classified as species and which as varieties. Examples include Rubus, Rosa, and Hieracium among plants, several groups of insects, and different types of Brachiopod shells. In most polymorphic groups, some species have fixed and clear traits. Groups that are polymorphic in one place generally appear to be polymorphic in other places too, with a few exceptions, and also, based on Brachiopod shells, during earlier time periods. These observations seem very puzzling, as they indicate that this type of variability is not influenced by environmental conditions. I suspect that in these polymorphic groups, we are seeing variations in structural traits that neither help nor hinder the species, and which therefore haven’t been selected for or made consistent by natural selection, as will be explained later. [47]

Those forms which possess in some considerable degree the character of species, but which are so closely similar to some other forms, or are so closely linked to them by intermediate gradations, that naturalists do not like to rank them as distinct species, are in several respects the most important for us. We have every reason to believe that many of these doubtful and closely-allied forms have permanently retained their characters in their own country for a long time; for as long, as far as we know, as have good and true species. Practically, when a naturalist can unite two forms together by others having intermediate characters, he treats the one as a variety of the other, ranking the most common, but sometimes the one first described, as the species, and the other as the variety. But cases of great difficulty, which I will not here enumerate, sometimes occur in deciding whether or not to rank one form as a variety of another, even when they are closely connected by intermediate links; nor will the commonly-assumed hybrid nature of the intermediate links always remove the difficulty. In very many cases, however, one form is ranked as a variety of another, not because the intermediate links have actually been found, but because analogy leads the observer to suppose either that they do now somewhere exist, or may formerly have existed; and here a wide door for the entry of doubt and conjecture is opened.

Those forms that have some significant traits of a species but are so similar to other forms or are so closely connected to them by intermediate stages that naturalists don't feel comfortable classifying them as distinct species are, in many ways, the most important for us. We have every reason to believe that many of these questionable and closely-related forms have maintained their characteristics in their native regions for a long time, just as far as we know that true species have. In practice, when a naturalist can connect two forms through others that have intermediate characteristics, they treat one as a variety of the other, typically classifying the more common one—or at times the one that was first described—as the species, and the other as the variety. However, there are often challenging cases, which I won't detail here, that arise when deciding whether to classify one form as a variety of another, even when they are closely linked by intermediate forms; and the commonly-assumed hybrid status of these intermediates doesn't always eliminate the difficulty. In many situations, though, one form is classified as a variety of another, not because the intermediate forms have actually been found, but because the observer assumes, based on analogy, that they either currently exist somewhere or may have existed in the past; and this opens the door wide for doubt and speculation.

Hence, in determining whether a form should be ranked as a species or a variety, the opinion of naturalists having sound judgment and wide experience seems the only guide to follow. We must, however, in many cases, decide by a majority of naturalists, for few well-marked and well-known varieties can be named which have not been ranked as species by at least some competent judges. [48]

Therefore, when deciding whether a classification should be considered a species or a variety, the views of knowledgeable and experienced naturalists seem to be the best guide to follow. However, in many instances, we must rely on the consensus of most naturalists, since there are few distinct and recognized varieties that haven’t been classified as species by at least some qualified experts. [48]

That varieties of this doubtful nature are far from uncommon cannot be disputed. Compare the several floras of Great Britain, of France or of the United States, drawn up by different botanists, and see what a surprising number of forms have been ranked by one botanist as good species, and by another as mere varieties. Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I lie under deep obligation for assistance of all kinds, has marked for me 182 British plants, which are generally considered as varieties, but which have all been ranked by botanists as species; and in making this list he has omitted many trifling varieties, but which nevertheless have been ranked by some botanists as species, and he has entirely omitted several highly polymorphic genera. Under genera, including the most polymorphic forms, Mr. Babington gives 251 species, whereas Mr. Bentham gives only 112,—a difference of 139 doubtful forms! Amongst animals which unite for each birth, and which are highly locomotive, doubtful forms, ranked by one zoologist as a species and by another as a variety, can rarely be found within the same country, but are common in separated areas. How many of those birds and insects in North America and Europe, which differ very slightly from each other, have been ranked by one eminent naturalist as undoubted species, and by another as varieties, or, as they are often called, as geographical races! Many years ago, when comparing, and seeing others compare, the birds from the separate islands of the Galapagos Archipelago, both one with another, and with those from the American mainland, I was much struck how entirely vague and arbitrary is the distinction between species and varieties. On the islets of the little Madeira group there are many insects which are characterized as varieties in Mr. Wollaston's admirable work, but which it cannot [49]be doubted would be ranked as distinct species by many entomologists. Even Ireland has a few animals, now generally regarded as varieties, but which have been ranked as species by some zoologists. Several most experienced ornithologists consider our British red grouse as only a strongly-marked race of a Norwegian species, whereas the greater number rank it as an undoubted species peculiar to Great Britain. A wide distance between the homes of two doubtful forms leads many naturalists to rank both as distinct species; but what distance, it has been well asked, will suffice? if that between America and Europe is ample, will that between the Continent and the Azores, or Madeira, or the Canaries, or Ireland, be sufficient? It must be admitted that many forms, considered by highly-competent judges as varieties, have so perfectly the character of species that they are ranked by other highly-competent judges as good and true species. But to discuss whether they are rightly called species or varieties, before any definition of these terms has been generally accepted, is vainly to beat the air.

That types of this uncertain nature are quite common can't be denied. Compare the different floras of Great Britain, France, or the United States, created by various botanists, and notice how many forms one botanist classifies as true species while another labels as mere varieties. Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I'm very grateful for all kinds of assistance, has identified 182 British plants that are typically considered varieties, but have all been classified by botanists as species. In creating this list, he has excluded many insignificant varieties that some botanists still classify as species, and he has completely left out several highly variable genera. Under genera that include the most variable forms, Mr. Babington lists 251 species, while Mr. Bentham lists only 112—a difference of 139 questionable forms! Among animals that pair for reproduction and are highly mobile, questionable forms, classified by one zoologist as a species and by another as a variety, are rarely found within the same country but are common in separate regions. How many of those birds and insects in North America and Europe, which differ only slightly from each other, have been classified by one respected naturalist as unmistakable species and by another as varieties, or as they're often called, geographical races! Many years ago, while comparing, and observing others compare, the birds from the different islands of the Galapagos Archipelago, both with each other and with those from the American mainland, I was struck by how vague and arbitrary the distinction between species and varieties is. On the islets of the small Madeira group, there are many insects classified as varieties in Mr. Wollaston's excellent work, yet it's undeniable that many entomologists would consider them distinct species. Even Ireland has a few animals now generally seen as varieties, but which some zoologists have classified as species. Several highly experienced ornithologists regard our British red grouse as merely a strongly marked race of a Norwegian species, while the majority classify it as a distinct species unique to Great Britain. A significant distance between the habitats of two questionable forms leads many naturalists to classify both as distinct species; however, it's been aptly asked, how much distance is enough? If the gap between America and Europe suffices, does that between the Continent and places like the Azores, Madeira, the Canaries, or Ireland meet the criteria? It must be acknowledged that many forms, seen by highly qualified judges as varieties, exhibit such clear characteristics of species that they are classified by other highly qualified judges as true and valid species. But discussing whether they should be called species or varieties, before any universally accepted definition of these terms exists, is pointless.

Many of the cases of strongly-marked varieties or doubtful species well deserve consideration; for several interesting lines of argument, from geographical distribution, analogical variation, hybridism, &c., have been brought to bear on the attempt to determine their rank. I will here give only a single instance,—the well-known one of the primrose and cowslip, or Primula vulgaris and veris. These plants differ considerably in appearance; they have a different flavour, and emit a different odour; they flower at slightly different periods; they grow in somewhat different stations; they ascend mountains to different heights; they have different geographical ranges; and lastly, according to very numerous experiments made during several years by [50]that most careful observer Gärtner, they can be crossed only with much difficulty. We could hardly wish for better evidence of the two forms being specifically distinct. On the other hand, they are united by many intermediate links, and it is very doubtful whether these links are hybrids; and there is, as it seems to me, an overwhelming amount of experimental evidence, showing that they descend from common parents, and consequently must be ranked as varieties.

Many cases of clearly defined varieties or questionable species deserve attention because various interesting arguments, including geographical distribution, analogical variation, hybridism, and so on, have been used to evaluate their classification. I'll mention just one example—the well-known primrose and cowslip, or Primula vulgaris and veris. These plants look quite different; they have distinct flavors and emit different scents; they bloom during slightly different times; they grow in somewhat different places; they reach different heights in the mountains; they have different geographical ranges; and finally, according to numerous experiments conducted over several years by [50] the meticulous observer Gärtner, they can be crossed only with great difficulty. We could hardly ask for better evidence that the two forms are specifically distinct. However, they are connected by many intermediate links, and it’s very uncertain whether these links are hybrids; it seems to me that there is a compelling amount of experimental evidence indicating that they originate from common parents and should therefore be classified as varieties.

Close investigation, in most cases, will bring naturalists to an agreement how to rank doubtful forms. Yet it must be confessed that it is in the best-known countries that we find the greatest number of forms of doubtful value. I have been struck with the fact, that if any animal or plant in a state of nature be highly useful to man, or from any cause closely attract his attention, varieties of it will almost universally be found recorded. These varieties, moreover, will be often ranked by some authors as species. Look at the common oak, how closely it has been studied; yet a German author makes more than a dozen species out of forms, which are very generally considered as varieties; and in this country the highest botanical authorities and practical men can be quoted to show that the sessile and pedunculated oaks are either good and distinct species or mere varieties.

If you take a close look, most naturalists tend to agree on how to classify uncertain forms. However, it's worth noting that the most well-known countries tend to have the highest number of forms that are questionable. I've noticed that if any animal or plant in nature is particularly useful to people, or somehow grabs their attention, various types of it are almost always documented. Additionally, some authors often classify these types as species. Take the common oak, for example; it's been studied extensively. Yet a German author identifies over a dozen species from what are generally regarded as varieties. Here in this country, top botanical experts and practical individuals can be cited to illustrate that sessile and pedunculated oaks are either legitimate and distinct species or just varieties.

When a young naturalist commences the study of a group of organisms quite unknown to him, he is at first much perplexed to determine what differences to consider as specific, and what as varieties; for he knows nothing of the amount and kind of variation to which the group is subject; and this shows, at least, how very generally there is some variation. But if he confine his attention to one class within one country, he will soon make up his mind how to rank most of the doubtful forms. His [51]general tendency will be to make many species, for he will become impressed, just like the pigeon or poultry fancier before alluded to, with the amount of difference in the forms which he is continually studying; and he has little general knowledge of analogical variation in other groups and in other countries, by which to correct his first impressions. As he extends the range of his observations, he will meet with more cases of difficulty; for he will encounter a greater number of closely-allied forms. But if his observations be widely extended, he will in the end generally be enabled to make up his own mind which to call varieties and which species; but he will succeed in this at the expense of admitting much variation,—and the truth of this admission will often be disputed by other naturalists. When, moreover, he comes to study allied forms brought from countries not now continuous, in which case he can hardly hope to find the intermediate links between his doubtful forms, he will have to trust almost entirely to analogy, and his difficulties rise to a climax.

When a young naturalist starts studying a group of organisms he knows nothing about, he often finds it confusing to figure out which differences to treat as species and which as varieties. He isn't aware of the level and types of variation the group can have, which highlights that variation is generally common. However, if he focuses on one class within a specific country, he will quickly determine how to classify most of the uncertain forms. His general tendency will be to identify many species because, much like a pigeon or poultry enthusiast, he will be struck by the differences he constantly observes. Since he has limited knowledge of analogous variation in other groups or countries, he can't adjust his initial thoughts. As he broadens his observations, he will face more challenges as he comes across many closely-related forms. Yet, if his observations are extensive, he will eventually be able to decide which are varieties and which are species. However, this will mean accepting a lot of variation, and many other naturalists may challenge this acceptance. Additionally, when he studies related forms from distant regions that aren't currently connected, he will struggle to find any intermediate links among the uncertain forms, relying almost entirely on analogy, which will complicate matters even more.

Certainly no clear line of demarcation has as yet been drawn between species and sub-species—that is, the forms which in the opinion of some naturalists come very near to, but do not quite arrive at the rank of species; or, again, between sub-species and well-marked varieties, or between lesser varieties and individual differences. These differences blend into each other in an insensible series; and a series impresses the mind with the idea of an actual passage.

Certainly, there isn't a clear line distinguishing species from sub-species—that is, the forms that some naturalists think are very close to being a species but don't quite make the cut; or, on the other hand, the difference between sub-species and distinct varieties, or between minor varieties and individual differences. These differences gradually merge into one another in a subtle continuum, and this continuum suggests to the mind the notion of a seamless transition.

Hence I look at individual differences, though of small interest to the systematist, as of high importance for us, as being the first step towards such slight varieties as are barely thought worth recording in works on natural history. And I look at varieties which are in any degree more distinct and permanent, as steps leading to more [52]strongly marked and more permanent varieties; and at these latter, as leading to sub-species, and to species. The passage from one stage of difference to another and higher stage may be, in some cases, due merely to the long-continued action of different physical conditions in two different regions; but I have not much faith in this view; and I attribute the passage of a variety, from a state in which it differs very slightly from its parent to one in which it differs more, to the action of natural selection in accumulating (as will hereafter be more fully explained) differences of structure in certain definite directions. Hence I believe a well-marked variety may be called an incipient species; but whether this belief be justifiable must be judged of by the general weight of the several facts and views given throughout this work.

So, I see individual differences, even if they might not seem important to the systematist, as highly significant for us because they represent the first step towards those subtle variations that are only sometimes recorded in natural history books. I consider those varieties that are more distinct and stable to be steps toward even more marked and permanent varieties; and these latter ones can lead to sub-species and eventually to species. The transition from one level of difference to a higher one might sometimes just be due to long-term exposure to different physical conditions in separate regions; however, I don't have much faith in that idea. Instead, I think the shift of a variety from being only slightly different from its parent to being more distinct comes from natural selection working to build up (which I will explain more thoroughly later) structural differences in specific directions. Thus, I believe a clear-cut variety can be seen as an incipient species; but whether this belief is justified will depend on the overall strength of the various facts and perspectives presented throughout this work.

It need not be supposed that all varieties or incipient species necessarily attain the rank of species. They may whilst in this incipient state become extinct, or they may endure as varieties for very long periods, as has been shown to be the case by Mr. Wollaston with the varieties of certain fossil land-shells in Madeira. If a variety were to flourish so as to exceed in numbers the parent species, it would then rank as the species, and the species as the variety; or it might come to supplant and exterminate the parent species; or both might co-exist, and both rank as independent species. But we shall hereafter have to return to this subject.

It shouldn't be assumed that all varieties or emerging species will definitely become full species. They might go extinct while still in this early stage, or they could persist as varieties for a very long time, as Mr. Wollaston demonstrated with certain fossil land-snail varieties in Madeira. If a variety were to thrive and outnumber the parent species, it would then be classified as a species, making the parent species just a variety. Alternatively, it might completely replace and eliminate the parent species, or both could coexist and be recognized as separate species. We will need to revisit this topic later.

From these remarks it will be seen that I look at the term species, as one arbitrarily given for the sake of convenience to a set of individuals closely resembling each other, and that it does not essentially differ from the term variety, which is given to less distinct and more fluctuating forms. The term variety, again, in comparison with mere individual differences, is also applied arbitrarily, and for mere convenience' sake. [53]

From these comments, it's clear that I see the term species as a label chosen for convenience to group individuals that closely resemble each other. It doesn't fundamentally differ from the term variety, which refers to less distinct and more variable forms. Similarly, the term variety is also applied arbitrarily compared to individual differences, simply for convenience. [53]

Guided by theoretical considerations, I thought that some interesting results might be obtained in regard to the nature and relations of the species which vary most, by tabulating all the varieties in several well-worked floras. At first this seemed a simple task; but Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I am much indebted for valuable advice and assistance on this subject, soon convinced me that there were many difficulties, as did subsequently Dr. Hooker, even in stronger terms. I shall reserve for my future work the discussion of these difficulties, and the tables themselves of the proportional numbers of the varying species. Dr. Hooker permits me to add, that after having carefully read my manuscript, and examined the tables, he thinks that the following statements are fairly well established. The whole subject, however, treated as it necessarily here is with much brevity, is rather perplexing, and allusions cannot be avoided to the "struggle for existence," "divergence of character," and other questions, hereafter to be discussed.

Guided by theoretical ideas, I thought that I could get some interesting results about the nature and relationships of the species that vary the most by listing all the varieties found in several well-studied floras. At first, this seemed like an easy task; however, Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I am very grateful for his valuable advice and help on this subject, quickly showed me that there were many challenges, as did Dr. Hooker later on, even more strongly. I will save the discussion of these difficulties and the tables showing the proportional numbers of the varying species for my future work. Dr. Hooker allows me to add that after carefully reading my manuscript and examining the tables, he believes that the following statements are fairly well established. However, the entire subject, as I must address it here briefly, is rather confusing, and references to the "struggle for existence," "divergence of character," and other issues will inevitably come up in later discussions.

Alph. de Candolle and others have shown that plants which have very wide ranges generally present varieties; and this might have been expected, as they become exposed to diverse physical conditions, and as they come into competition (which, as we shall hereafter see, is a far more important circumstance) with different sets of organic beings. But my tables further show that, in any limited country, the species which are most common, that is abound most in individuals, and the species which are most widely diffused within their own country (and this is a different consideration from wide range, and to a certain extent from commonness), often give rise to varieties sufficiently well-marked to have been recorded in botanical works. Hence it is the most flourishing, or, as they may be called, the dominant species,—those [54]which range widely over the world, are the most diffused in their own country, and are the most numerous in individuals,—which oftenest produce well-marked varieties, or, as I consider them, incipient species. And this, perhaps, might have been anticipated; for, as varieties, in order to become in any degree permanent, necessarily have to struggle with the other inhabitants of the country, the species which are already dominant will be the most likely to yield offspring, which, though in some slight degree modified, still inherit those advantages that enabled their parents to become dominant over their compatriots.

Alph. de Candolle and others have shown that plants with very wide ranges often have different varieties; this makes sense since they encounter various physical conditions and compete (which, as we will see later, is a much more significant factor) with different groups of living organisms. However, my tables also reveal that in any given area, the species that are most common—meaning they have the largest number of individuals—and the species that are most widely spread within their own country (which is a different consideration from having a wide range, and somewhat different from being common), frequently produce distinct varieties that have been documented in botanical literature. Therefore, it is the most thriving, or what we might call, the dominant species—those that spread widely across the globe, are the most common in their home country, and have the highest number of individuals—that most often create well-defined varieties, or what I consider to be incipient species. This might have been expected; since varieties need to compete with other species in their environment to become somewhat stable, the species that are already dominant will most likely produce offspring that, while slightly modified, still inherit the advantages that allowed their parents to outcompete their peers.

If the plants inhabiting a country and described in any Flora be divided into two equal masses, all those in the larger genera being placed on one side, and all those in the smaller genera on the other side, a somewhat larger number of the very common and much diffused or dominant species will be found on the side of the larger genera. This, again, might have been anticipated; for the mere fact of many species of the same genus inhabiting any country, shows that there is something in the organic or inorganic conditions of that country favourable to the genus; and, consequently, we might have expected to have found in the larger genera, or those including many species, a large proportional number of dominant species. But so many causes tend to obscure this result, that I am surprised that my tables show even a small majority on the side of the larger genera. I will here allude to only two causes of obscurity. Fresh-water and salt-loving plants have generally very wide ranges and are much diffused, but this seems to be connected with the nature of the stations inhabited by them, and has little or no relation to the size of the genera to which the species belong. Again, plants low in the scale of organisation are [55]generally much more widely diffused than plants higher in the scale; and here again there is no close relation to the size of the genera. The cause of lowly-organised plants ranging widely will be discussed in our chapter on geographical distribution.

If you divide the plants found in a country, as described in any Flora, into two equal groups—putting the larger genera on one side and the smaller genera on the other—you’ll find that a larger number of common and widely distributed species tend to be on the side of the larger genera. This is to be expected; after all, the presence of many species from the same genus in a country suggests that the organic or inorganic conditions there are favorable for that genus. Therefore, it makes sense that the larger genera, which include many species, would also have a higher proportion of dominant species. However, there are many factors that complicate this outcome, so I’m actually surprised that my tables still show a slight majority for the larger genera. I’ll mention just two reasons for this complexity. Freshwater and salt-loving plants usually have very wide distributions and are quite common, but this seems linked to the types of habitats they occupy rather than the size of their genera. Additionally, less-advanced plants tend to be much more widely distributed than those that are more advanced, and again, there’s no strong connection to the size of the genera. We’ll discuss why less-advanced plants have such wide ranges in our chapter on geographical distribution.

From looking at species as only strongly-marked and well-defined varieties, I was led to anticipate that the species of the larger genera in each country would oftener present varieties, than the species of the smaller genera; for wherever many closely related species (i.e. species of the same genus) have been formed, many varieties or incipient species ought, as a general rule, to be now forming. Where many large trees grow, we expect to find saplings. Where many species of a genus have been formed through variation, circumstances have been favourable for variation; and hence we might expect that the circumstances would generally be still favourable to variation. On the other hand, if we look at each species as a special act of creation, there is no apparent reason why more varieties should occur in a group having many species, than in one having few.

By viewing species as distinct and well-defined varieties, I began to think that the species within larger genera in each country would often have more varieties than those in smaller genera. This is because, where many closely related species (i.e., species of the same genus) have developed, we would generally expect numerous varieties or emerging species to be forming. Just like we expect to find saplings where many large trees are growing, the same logic applies here. When many species of a genus have emerged through variation, it indicates that the conditions have been suitable for variation, so we might assume those conditions would still support more variation. On the flip side, if we consider each species as a distinct act of creation, there's no clear reason why groups with many species should have more varieties than those with fewer.

To test the truth of this anticipation I have arranged the plants of twelve countries, and the coleopterous insects of two districts, into two nearly equal masses, the species of the larger genera on one side, and those of the smaller genera on the other side, and it has invariably proved to be the case that a larger proportion of the species on the side of the larger genera present varieties, than on the side of the smaller genera. Moreover, the species of the large genera which present any varieties, invariably present a larger average number of varieties than do the species of the small genera. Both these results follow when another division is made, and when all the smallest genera, with from only one to four species, are absolutely excluded from the tables. These [56]facts are of plain signification on the view that species are only strongly marked and permanent varieties; for wherever many species of the same genus have been formed, or where, if we may use the expression, the manufactory of species has been active, we ought generally to find the manufactory still in action, more especially as we have every reason to believe the process of manufacturing new species to be a slow one. And this certainly is the case, if varieties be looked at as incipient species; for my tables clearly show as a general rule that, wherever many species of a genus have been formed, the species of that genus present a number of varieties, that is of incipient species beyond the average. It is not that all large genera are now varying much, and are thus increasing in the number of their species, or that no small genera are now varying and increasing; for if this had been so, it would have been fatal to my theory; inasmuch as geology plainly tells us that small genera have in the lapse of time often increased greatly in size; and that large genera have often come to their maxima, declined, and disappeared. All that we want to show is, that where many species of a genus have been formed, on an average many are still forming; and this holds good.

To test the accuracy of this prediction, I've grouped the plants from twelve countries and the beetles from two areas into two roughly equal groups: one side includes species from the larger genera, and the other side includes those from the smaller genera. It has consistently been shown that a higher percentage of species from the larger genera have variations compared to those from the smaller genera. Furthermore, the species within the large genera that do show variations tend to have a higher average number of variations than the species in the small genera. These findings hold true even when we make another division and exclude the smallest genera, which only have one to four species, from the tables. These facts clearly suggest that species are essentially well-defined and stable variations; because whenever many species of the same genus have emerged, or where, to put it another way, the process of creating species has been active, we would generally expect to see that process still ongoing, especially since we have good reason to believe that creating new species is a slow process. This is indeed the case when we consider variations as potential new species; my tables clearly indicate that, as a general rule, where many species of a genus have developed, those species also show an above-average number of variations, or potential new species. It's not the case that all large genera are currently varying significantly and therefore increasing in species count, nor that no small genera are varying and increasing; if that were true, it would contradict my theory. Geology clearly shows us that small genera have often significantly grown in size over time, and that large genera have frequently reached their peak, declined, and disappeared. What we aim to demonstrate is that where a lot of species of a genus have formed, there are typically still many more being formed, and this holds true.

There are other relations between the species of large genera and their recorded varieties which deserve notice. We have seen that there is no infallible criterion by which to distinguish species and well-marked varieties; and in those cases in which intermediate links have not been found between doubtful forms, naturalists are compelled to come to a determination by the amount of difference between them, judging by analogy whether or not the amount suffices to raise one or both to the rank of species. Hence the amount of difference is one very important criterion in settling whether two forms [57]should be ranked as species or varieties. Now Fries has remarked in regard to plants, and Westwood in regard to insects, that in large genera the amount of difference between the species is often exceedingly small. I have endeavoured to test this numerically by averages, and, as far as my imperfect results go, they confirm the view. I have also consulted some sagacious and experienced observers, and, after deliberation, they concur in this view. In this respect, therefore, the species of the larger genera resemble varieties, more than do the species of the smaller genera. Or the case may be put in another way, and it may be said, that in the larger genera, in which a number of varieties or incipient species greater than the average are now manufacturing, many of the species already manufactured still to a certain extent resemble varieties, for they differ from each other by a less than usual amount of difference.

There are other connections between the species of large genera and their recorded varieties that are worth noting. We've seen that there isn't a foolproof way to distinguish between species and clearly defined varieties; when intermediate links are missing between uncertain forms, naturalists must decide based on the level of difference between them, using analogy to determine if the differences are significant enough to classify one or both as species. Therefore, the degree of difference is a very important factor in deciding whether two forms should be classified as species or varieties. Fries has noted regarding plants, and Westwood regarding insects, that in large genera, the differences between species are often extremely minor. I've tried to test this with numerical averages, and as far as my incomplete results indicate, they support this perspective. I've also consulted some knowledgeable and experienced observers, and after discussion, they agree with this view. In this respect, species of larger genera resemble varieties more than species of smaller genera do. Alternatively, we could say that in larger genera, where a higher-than-average number of varieties or emerging species are currently being formed, many of the existing species still somewhat resemble varieties because they differ from each other by less than the usual amount.

Moreover, the species of the large genera are related to each other, in the same manner as the varieties of any one species are related to each other. No naturalist pretends that all the species of a genus are equally distinct from each other; they may generally be divided into sub-genera, or sections, or lesser groups. As Fries has well remarked, little groups of species are generally clustered like satellites around certain other species. And what are varieties but groups of forms, unequally related to each other, and clustered round certain forms—that is, round their parent-species? Undoubtedly there is one most important point of difference between varieties and species; namely, that the amount of difference between varieties, when compared with each other or with their parent-species, is much less than that between the species of the same genus. But when we come to discuss the principle, as I call it, of Divergence of Character, [58]we shall see how this may be explained, and how the lesser differences between varieties will tend to increase into the greater differences between species.

Additionally, the species within large genera are interconnected in the same way that the varieties of a single species are connected to one another. No naturalist claims that all species within a genus are equally distinct; they can usually be categorized into sub-genera, sections, or smaller groups. As Fries rightly pointed out, small groups of species often gather like satellites around particular other species. And what are varieties, if not clusters of forms that are not equally related to each other and surround certain forms—that is, around their parent species? Clearly, there is one significant difference between varieties and species; specifically, the differences among varieties, whether compared to each other or to their parent species, are much smaller than those among the species of the same genus. However, when we delve into the principle, which I refer to as the Divergence of Character, [58] we will see how this can be explained and how the smaller differences between varieties can evolve into the larger differences between species.

There is one other point which seems to me worth notice. Varieties generally have much restricted ranges: this statement is indeed scarcely more than a truism, for if a variety were found to have a wider range than that of its supposed parent-species, their denominations ought to be reversed. But there is also reason to believe, that those species which are very closely allied to other species, and in so far resemble varieties, often have much restricted ranges. For instance, Mr. H. C. Watson has marked for me in the well-sifted London Catalogue of plants (4th edition) 63 plants which are therein ranked as species, but which he considers as so closely allied to other species as to be of doubtful value: these 63 reputed species range on an average over 6.9 of the provinces into which Mr. Watson has divided Great Britain. Now, in this same catalogue, 53 acknowledged varieties are recorded, and these range over 7.7 provinces; whereas, the species to which these varieties belong range over 14.3 provinces. So that the acknowledged varieties have very nearly the same restricted average range, as have those very closely allied forms, marked for me by Mr. Watson as doubtful species, but which are almost universally ranked by British botanists as good and true species.

There’s one more point that I think is worth mentioning. Varieties usually have very limited ranges: this is pretty much obvious because if a variety had a wider range than its supposed parent species, their names should be switched. However, there’s also reason to think that species that are very closely related to other species and resemble varieties often have limited ranges as well. For example, Mr. H. C. Watson pointed out to me in the well-organized London Catalogue of plants (4th edition) 63 plants that are listed as species, but he feels they are so closely related to other species that their classification is questionable: these 63 so-called species cover an average of 6.9 of the provinces that Mr. Watson has divided Great Britain into. In the same catalogue, there are 53 recognized varieties, which cover an average of 7.7 provinces; whereas, the species that these varieties belong to cover 14.3 provinces. This shows that the recognized varieties have almost the same restricted average range as those closely related forms that Mr. Watson marked as questionable species, although British botanists generally classify them as valid and true species.

 

Finally, then, varieties have the same general characters as species, for they cannot be distinguished from species,—except, firstly, by the discovery of intermediate linking forms, and the occurrence of such links cannot affect the actual characters of the forms which they connect; and except, secondly by a certain amount of [59]difference, for two forms, if differing very little, are generally ranked as varieties, notwithstanding that intermediate linking forms have not been discovered; but the amount of difference considered necessary to give to two forms the rank of species is quite indefinite. In genera having more than the average number of species in any country, the species of these genera have more than the average number of varieties. In large genera the species are apt to be closely, but unequally allied together, forming little clusters round certain species. Species very closely allied to other species apparently have restricted ranges. In all these several respects the species of large genera present a strong analogy with varieties. And we can clearly understand these analogies, if species have once existed as varieties, and have thus originated: whereas, these analogies are utterly inexplicable if each species has been independently created.

Finally, varieties share the same general characteristics as species, as they can't be distinguished from species—except, first, by the discovery of intermediate linking forms, and the presence of such links doesn't change the actual traits of the forms they connect; and second, by a certain degree of difference, because two forms that differ very little are usually classified as varieties, even if no intermediate links have been found. However, the degree of difference needed to classify two forms as separate species is quite vague. In groups with more than the average number of species in any country, those species tend to have more than the average number of varieties as well. In large groups, the species often appear to be closely, but unevenly, related, forming small clusters around certain species. Species that are very closely related to others often have limited ranges. In all these respects, the species of large groups strongly resemble varieties. We can clearly comprehend these similarities if species originally existed as varieties and evolved from them; otherwise, these similarities are completely unexplainable if each species was created independently.

We have, also, seen that it is the most flourishing or dominant species of the larger genera which on an average vary most; and varieties, as we shall hereafter see, tend to become converted into new and distinct species. The larger genera thus tend to become larger; and throughout nature the forms of life which are now dominant tend to become still more dominant by leaving many modified and dominant descendants. But by steps hereafter to be explained, the larger genera also tend to break up into smaller genera. And thus, the forms of life throughout the universe become divided into groups subordinate to groups.

We have also observed that it’s the most successful or dominant species within the larger genera that, on average, show the most variation; and, as we’ll see later, these variations often evolve into new and distinct species. As a result, larger genera tend to expand; and across nature, the forms of life that are currently dominant tend to become even more dominant by producing many modified and successful descendants. However, through processes that will be explained later, larger genera also tend to split into smaller genera. Consequently, the forms of life throughout the universe become categorized into groups that are subordinate to other groups.


[60]

[60]

CHAPTER III.

Struggle for Existence.

Fight for Survival.

Bears on natural selection—The term used in a wide sense—Geometrical powers of increase—Rapid increase of naturalised animals and plants—Nature of the checks to increase—Competition universal—Effects of climate—Protection from the number of individuals—Complex relations of all animals and plants throughout nature—Struggle for life most severe between individuals and varieties of the same species; often severe between species of the same genus—The relation of organism to organism the most important of all relations.

Bears and natural selection—used in a general sense—Geometric growth potential—Rapid increase of introduced plants and animals—Understanding the limits to growth—Competition is omnipresent—Effects of climate—Protection from large populations—Complex interactions among all animals and plants in nature—The fight for survival is strongest among individuals and varieties of the same species; often intense between species of the same genus—The relationships between organisms are the most critical of all relationships.

Before entering on the subject of this chapter, I must make a few preliminary remarks, to show how the struggle for existence bears on Natural Selection. It has been seen in the last chapter that amongst organic beings in a state of nature there is some individual variability: indeed I am not aware that this has ever been disputed. It is immaterial for us whether a multitude of doubtful forms be called species or sub-species or varieties; what rank, for instance, the two or three hundred doubtful forms of British plants are entitled to hold, if the existence of any well-marked varieties be admitted. But the mere existence of individual variability and of some few well-marked varieties, though necessary as the foundation for the work, helps us but little in understanding how species arise in nature. How have all those exquisite adaptations of one part of the organisation to another part, and to the conditions of life, and of one distinct organic being to another being, been perfected? We see these beautiful co-adaptations most [61]plainly in the woodpecker and missletoe; and only a little less plainly in the humblest parasite which clings to the hairs of a quadruped or feathers of a bird; in the structure of the beetle which dives through the water; in the plumed seed which is wafted by the gentlest breeze; in short, we see beautiful adaptations everywhere and in every part of the organic world.

Before getting into the topic of this chapter, I need to make a few introductory comments to explain how the struggle for existence relates to Natural Selection. In the previous chapter, we saw that there is some individual variability among living organisms in nature; in fact, I'm not aware of anyone disputing this. It doesn't really matter to us whether many ambiguous forms are labeled as species, sub-species, or varieties; what matters is what classification the two or three hundred unclear forms of British plants fall into, as long as we agree that some well-defined varieties exist. However, just recognizing individual variability and a few distinct varieties, while essential as a foundation for this discussion, doesn’t help us much in understanding how species come about in nature. How have all those amazing adaptations of one part of an organism to another and to the conditions of life, and of one distinct organism to another, developed so perfectly? We observe these beautiful co-adaptations most clearly in the woodpecker and mistletoe; and somewhat less clearly in the simplest parasite that clings to the hair of a mammal or the feathers of a bird; in the structure of the beetle that moves through water; in the feathered seed that is carried by the lightest breeze; in short, we see beautiful adaptations everywhere throughout the organic world.

Again, it may be asked, how is it that varieties, which I have called incipient species, become ultimately converted into good and distinct species, which in most cases obviously differ from each other far more than do the varieties of the same species? How do those groups of species, which constitute what are called distinct genera, and which differ from each other more than do the species of the same genus, arise? All these results, as we shall more fully see in the next chapter, follow from the struggle for life. Owing to this struggle for life, any variation, however slight, and from whatever cause proceeding, if it be in any degree profitable to an individual of any species, in its infinitely complex relations to other organic beings and to external nature, will tend to the preservation of that individual, and will generally be inherited by its offspring. The offspring, also, will thus have a better chance of surviving, for, of the many individuals of any species which are periodically born, but a small number can survive. I have called this principle, by which each slight variation, if useful, is preserved, by the term of Natural Selection, in order to mark its relation to man's power of selection. We have seen that man by selection can certainly produce great results, and can adapt organic beings to his own uses, through the accumulation of slight but useful variations, given to him by the hand of Nature. But Natural Selection, as we shall hereafter see, is a power incessantly ready for action, and is as [62]immeasurably superior to man's feeble efforts, as the works of Nature are to those of Art.

Again, one might ask, how do varieties, which I've referred to as incipient species, eventually become fully developed and distinct species that, in many cases, differ from each other much more than the varieties of the same species? How do those groups of species that we call distinct genera, which differ more from each other than the species within the same genus, come into existence? All these outcomes, as we will explore more deeply in the next chapter, arise from the struggle for survival. Because of this struggle, any variation, no matter how small, and regardless of its origin, will tend to benefit an individual of any species, in its infinitely complex interactions with other living beings and the external environment. This variation will generally help that individual survive and will often be passed down to its offspring. The offspring will then have a better chance of surviving, as only a small number out of many individuals of any species that are born can endure. I have named this principle, by which each slight but useful variation is preserved, Natural Selection, to highlight its connection to human selection. We have seen that humans can indeed achieve significant results through selection and can modify living things for our purposes by accumulating slight but beneficial variations that Nature provides. However, Natural Selection, as we will see later, is a continuously active force and is infinitely more powerful than human efforts, much like the works of Nature far surpass those of human craftsmanship.

We will now discuss in a little more detail the struggle for existence. In my future work this subject shall be treated, as it well deserves, at much greater length. The elder de Candolle and Lyell have largely and philosophically shown that all organic beings are exposed to severe competition. In regard to plants, no one has treated this subject with more spirit and ability than W. Herbert, Dean of Manchester, evidently the result of his great horticultural knowledge. Nothing is easier than to admit in words the truth of the universal struggle for life, or more difficult—at least I have found it so—than constantly to bear this conclusion in mind. Yet unless it be thoroughly engrained in the mind, I am convinced that the whole economy of nature, with every fact on distribution, rarity, abundance, extinction, and variation, will be dimly seen or quite misunderstood. We behold the face of nature bright with gladness, we often see superabundance of food; we do not see, or we forget that the birds which are idly singing round us mostly live on insects or seeds, and are thus constantly destroying life; or we forget how largely these songsters, or their eggs, or their nestlings, are destroyed by birds and beasts of prey; we do not always bear in mind, that though food may be now superabundant, it is not so at all seasons of each recurring year.

We will now discuss in more detail the struggle for existence. In my future work, this topic will be addressed, as it deserves, with much more depth. The elder de Candolle and Lyell have greatly and thoughtfully shown that all living beings face intense competition. When it comes to plants, no one has tackled this subject with more enthusiasm and expertise than W. Herbert, Dean of Manchester, which clearly reflects his extensive knowledge of horticulture. It's easy to acknowledge the truth of the universal struggle for life in words, but I have found it much harder to keep this conclusion in mind consistently. However, unless this idea is firmly ingrained, I believe that the entire function of nature, along with every detail about distribution, rarity, abundance, extinction, and variation, will be vaguely understood or completely misinterpreted. We see nature’s face shining with happiness; we often observe an abundance of food. We overlook, or forget, that the birds singing around us mostly feed on insects or seeds, constantly taking life; or we forget that these songbirds, their eggs, or their chicks are often preyed upon by other birds and animals. We do not always remember that although food may seem plentiful now, it isn’t at all times of each year.

I should premise that I use the term Struggle for Existence in a large and metaphorical sense, including dependence of one being on another, and including (which is more important) not only the life of the individual, but success in leaving progeny. Two canine animals in a time of dearth, may be truly said to struggle with each other which shall get food and live. But a plant on the edge of a desert is said to struggle [63]for life against the drought, though more properly it should be said to be dependent on the moisture. A plant which annually produces a thousand seeds, of which on an average only one comes to maturity, may be more truly said to struggle with the plants of the same and other kinds which already clothe the ground. The missletoe is dependent on the apple and a few other trees, but can only in a far-fetched sense be said to struggle with these trees, for if too many of these parasites grow on the same tree, it will languish and die. But several seedling missletoes, growing close together on the same branch, may more truly be said to struggle with each other. As the missletoe is disseminated by birds, its existence depends on birds; and it may metaphorically be said to struggle with other fruit-bearing plants, in order to tempt birds to devour and thus disseminate its seeds rather than those of other plants. In these several senses, which pass into each other, I use for convenience' sake the general term of struggle for existence.

I should start by saying that I use the term "Struggle for Existence" in a broad and metaphorical way, encompassing one being's dependence on another, and importantly, not just the survival of the individual, but also the success in producing offspring. Two dogs in a time of scarcity can be truly said to struggle with each other to find food and survive. However, a plant on the edge of a desert is described as struggling for life against drought, though it would be more accurate to say it depends on moisture. A plant that produces a thousand seeds each year, with only one on average reaching maturity, can be more accurately seen as struggling with other plants of the same or different kinds that already cover the ground. The mistletoe depends on apple trees and a few others, but it can only loosely be said to struggle with these trees; if too many parasites grow on the same tree, it will weaken and die. However, several mistletoe seedlings growing closely on the same branch can accurately be said to struggle with each other. Since mistletoe is spread by birds, its survival relies on them, and it can metaphorically be said to struggle against other fruit-bearing plants to attract birds to eat its seeds rather than those of other plants. In these various interconnected ways, I use the general term "struggle for existence" for convenience.

A struggle for existence inevitably follows from the high rate at which all organic beings tend to increase. Every being, which during its natural lifetime produces several eggs or seeds, must suffer destruction during some period of its life, and during some season or occasional year, otherwise, on the principle of geometrical increase, its numbers would quickly become so inordinately great that no country could support the product. Hence, as more individuals are produced than can possibly survive, there must in every case be a struggle for existence, either one individual with another of the same species, or with the individuals of distinct species, or with the physical conditions of life. It is the doctrine of Malthus applied with manifold force to the whole animal and vegetable kingdoms; for in this case there [64]can be no artificial increase of food, and no prudential restraint from marriage. Although some species may be now increasing, more or less rapidly, in numbers, all cannot do so, for the world would not hold them.

A struggle for survival inevitably comes from the high rate at which all living things tend to reproduce. Every organism that produces several eggs or seeds during its natural life must face destruction at some point, whether it’s during a specific time of year or in a particular season, or else, based on the principle of exponential growth, their numbers would quickly become so unmanageable that no area could support them. Therefore, since more individuals are born than can possibly survive, there must always be a struggle for existence—either between individuals of the same species, with individuals of different species, or against the challenges of the environment. This idea is Malthus's theory applied with full force to the entire animal and plant kingdoms; in this scenario, there can be no artificial increase in food supply and no deliberate control over reproduction. While some species might be currently increasing, whether quickly or slowly, not all can do so, or else the planet wouldn’t be able to accommodate them.

There is no exception to the rule that every organic being naturally increases at so high a rate, that if not destroyed, the earth would soon be covered by the progeny of a single pair. Even slow-breeding man has doubled in twenty-five years, and at this rate, in a few thousand years, there would literally not be standing room for his progeny. Linnæus has calculated that if an annual plant produced only two seeds—and there is no plant so unproductive as this—and their seedlings next year produced two, and so on, then in twenty years there would be a million plants. The elephant is reckoned the slowest breeder of all known animals, and I have taken some pains to estimate its probable minimum rate of natural increase: it will be under the mark to assume that it breeds when thirty years old, and goes on breeding till ninety years old, bringing forth three pair of young in this interval; if this be so, at the end of the fifth century there would be alive fifteen million elephants, descended from the first pair.

There’s no exception to the rule that every living creature naturally reproduces at such a high rate that, if not kept in check, the earth would quickly be filled with the descendants of just one pair. Even humans, who reproduce slowly, have doubled in population over twenty-five years, and at this rate, in just a few thousand years, there would literally be no room left for their descendants. Linnæus calculated that if an annual plant produced only two seeds—and there’s no plant less productive than that—and those seedlings produced two the next year, and so on, then in twenty years, there would be a million plants. The elephant is considered the slowest reproducer of all known animals, and I’ve made an effort to estimate its likely minimum rate of natural increase: it’s reasonable to assume that it starts breeding at thirty years old and continues until ninety, having three pairs of young during that time; if that’s the case, by the end of the fifth century, there would be fifteen million elephants alive, all descended from the original pair.

But we have better evidence on this subject than mere theoretical calculations, namely, the numerous recorded cases of the astonishingly rapid increase of various animals in a state of nature, when circumstances have been favourable to them during two or three following seasons. Still more striking is the evidence from our domestic animals of many kinds which have run wild in several parts of the world: if the statements of the rate of increase of slow-breeding cattle and horses in South America, and latterly in Australia, had not been well authenticated, they would have been incredible. So it is with plants: cases could be given of [65]introduced plants which have become common throughout whole islands in a period of less than ten years. Several of the plants, such as the cardoon and a tall thistle, now most numerous over the wide plains of La Plata, clothing square leagues of surface almost to the exclusion of all other plants, have been introduced from Europe; and there are plants which now range in India, as I hear from Dr. Falconer, from Cape Comorin to the Himalaya, which have been imported from America since its discovery. In such cases, and endless instances could be given, no one supposes that the fertility of these animals or plants has been suddenly and temporarily increased in any sensible degree. The obvious explanation is that the conditions of life have been very favourable, and that there has consequently been less destruction of the old and young, and that nearly all the young have been enabled to breed. In such cases the geometrical ratio of increase, the result of which never fails to be surprising, simply explains the extraordinarily rapid increase and wide diffusion of naturalised productions in their new homes.

But we have better evidence on this subject than just theoretical calculations: the many documented cases of the surprisingly fast growth of various animals in the wild when conditions have been favorable for them over two or three seasons. Even more striking is the evidence from our domestic animals of different types that have gone wild in various parts of the world. If the reports about the growth rates of slow-breeding cattle and horses in South America, and more recently in Australia, hadn't been well verified, they would seem unbelievable. The same goes for plants: there are examples of introduced plants that have become widespread across entire islands in less than ten years. Several species, like the cardoon and a tall thistle, are now abundant across the vast plains of La Plata, covering large areas almost entirely at the expense of other plants, and they were brought over from Europe. There are also plants in India, as I’ve learned from Dr. Falconer, that range from Cape Comorin to the Himalayas, which were imported from America since its discovery. In these cases— and there could be countless examples— no one thinks that the fertility of these animals or plants has suddenly and temporarily increased in any significant way. The obvious explanation is that living conditions have been very favorable, leading to less destruction of both the old and young, and that nearly all the young have been able to reproduce. In such cases, the geometric rate of increase, which is always remarkable, simply accounts for the extraordinarily rapid growth and wide spread of naturalized species in their new environments.

In a state of nature almost every plant produces seed, and amongst animals there are very few which do not annually pair. Hence we may confidently assert, that all plants and animals are tending to increase at a geometrical ratio, that all would most rapidly stock every station in which they could any how exist, and that the geometrical tendency to increase must be checked by destruction at some period of life. Our familiarity with the larger domestic animals tends, I think, to mislead us: we see no great destruction falling on them, and we forget that thousands are annually slaughtered for food, and that in a state of nature an equal number would have somehow to be disposed of.

In nature, almost every plant produces seeds, and very few animals don’t pair up every year. So, we can confidently say that all plants and animals are trying to increase rapidly, and they would quickly fill every habitat where they could survive. However, this natural tendency to grow needs to be balanced by some form of destruction at some point in their lives. Our familiarity with larger domesticated animals can be misleading; we don’t see significant destruction happening to them, and we forget that thousands are killed for food every year, and that in a natural setting, an equal number would need to be managed in some way.

The only difference between organisms which annually [66]produce eggs or seeds by the thousand, and those which produce extremely few, is, that the slow-breeders would require a few more years to people, under favourable conditions, a whole district, let it be ever so large. The condor lays a couple of eggs and the ostrich a score, and yet in the same country the condor may be the more numerous of the two: the Fulmar petrel lays but one egg, yet it is believed to be the most numerous bird in the world. One fly deposits hundreds of eggs, and another, like the hippobosca, a single one; but this difference does not determine how many individuals of the two species can be supported in a district. A large number of eggs is of some importance to those species which depend on a rapidly fluctuating amount of food, for it allows them rapidly to increase in number. But the real importance of a large number of eggs or seeds is to make up for much destruction at some period of life; and this period in the great majority of cases is an early one. If an animal can in any way protect its own eggs or young, a small number may be produced, and yet the average stock be fully kept up; but if many eggs or young are destroyed, many must be produced, or the species will become extinct. It would suffice to keep up the full number of a tree, which lived on an average for a thousand years, if a single seed were produced once in a thousand years, supposing that this seed were never destroyed, and could be ensured to germinate in a fitting place. So that in all cases, the average number of any animal or plant depends only indirectly on the number of its eggs or seeds.

The only difference between organisms that produce thousands of eggs or seeds each year and those that produce very few is that the slower breeders would take a few more years, under favorable conditions, to populate an entire area, no matter how large. The condor lays a couple of eggs while the ostrich lays a dozen, yet in the same region, the condor might be more numerous. The Fulmar petrel lays just one egg, but it’s believed to be the most abundant bird in the world. One fly can lay hundreds of eggs, while another, like the hippobosca, lays just one; however, this difference doesn’t determine how many individuals of each species can thrive in an area. A large number of eggs matters for species that rely on quickly changing food availability since it allows for rapid population growth. But the real significance of producing many eggs or seeds is to compensate for high loss during certain life stages, which usually happens early on. If an animal can somehow protect its eggs or young, it can produce fewer and still maintain its population; however, if many eggs or young are lost, then many must be produced, or the species will die out. For a tree that lives an average of a thousand years, it would be sufficient to sustain its population if it produced a single seed once every thousand years, assuming that seed was never destroyed and could germinate in a suitable location. Therefore, in all cases, the average number of any animal or plant depends only indirectly on the number of its eggs or seeds.

In looking at Nature, it is most necessary to keep the foregoing considerations always in mind—never to forget that every single organic being around us may be said to be striving to the utmost to increase in numbers; that each lives by a struggle at some period of [67]its life; that heavy destruction inevitably falls either on the young or old, during each generation or at recurrent intervals. Lighten any check, mitigate the destruction ever so little, and the number of the species will almost instantaneously increase to any amount.

In observing nature, it's essential to always keep the previous points in mind—never forget that every single living organism around us is striving to reproduce as much as possible; that each one survives through struggle at some point in its life; that significant destruction inevitably affects either the young or old, during each generation or at regular intervals. Ease any obstacle, reduce the destruction even slightly, and the population of that species will almost instantly grow beyond measure.

The causes which check the natural tendency of each species to increase in number are most obscure. Look at the most vigorous species; by as much as it swarms in numbers, by so much will its tendency to increase be still further increased. We know not exactly what the checks are in even one single instance. Nor will this surprise any one who reflects how ignorant we are on this head, even in regard to mankind, so incomparably better known than any other animal. This subject has been ably treated by several authors, and I shall, in my future work, discuss some of the checks at considerable length, more especially in regard to the feral animals of South America. Here I will make only a few remarks, just to recall to the reader's mind some of the chief points. Eggs or very young animals seem generally to suffer most, but this is not invariably the case. With plants there is a vast destruction of seeds, but, from some observations which I have made, I believe that it is the seedlings which suffer most from germinating in ground already thickly stocked with other plants. Seedlings, also, are destroyed in vast numbers by various enemies; for instance, on a piece of ground three feet long and two wide, dug and cleared, and where there could be no choking from other plants, I marked all the seedlings of our native weeds as they came up, and out of the 357 no less than 295 were destroyed, chiefly by slugs and insects. If turf which has long been mown, and the case would be the same with turf closely browsed by quadrupeds, be let to grow, the more vigorous plants [68]gradually kill the less vigorous, though fully grown, plants: thus out of twenty species growing on a little plot of turf (three feet by four) nine species perished from the other species being allowed to grow up freely.

The reasons that limit the natural tendency of each species to increase in number are quite unclear. Look at the most robust species; the more it multiplies, the more its capacity to grow will be enhanced. We don't precisely know what these limiting factors are even in a single case. This shouldn't surprise anyone who considers how little we understand this issue, even regarding humans, who are far better documented than any other animal. Several authors have dealt with this topic skillfully, and I will discuss some of the limiting factors in detail in my upcoming work, particularly concerning the wild animals of South America. Here, I will only make a few comments to remind the reader of some key points. Eggs or very young animals generally face the highest mortality, although this isn't always true. With plants, there is significant loss of seeds; however, based on some observations I've made, I believe that the seedlings suffer most when they germinate in soil already densely populated with other plants. Seedlings are also destroyed in great numbers by various predators; for example, on a patch of ground three feet long and two feet wide, which I dug and cleared so there would be no competition from other plants, I tracked all the seedlings of our native weeds as they sprouted. Out of 357 seedlings, an astonishing 295 were destroyed, mostly by slugs and insects. If grass that has been mowed for a long time, or which has been heavily grazed by animals, is allowed to grow, the more vigorous plants will gradually eliminate the less vigorous, even if they are fully grown: thus, out of twenty species growing on a small patch of grass (three feet by four), nine species perished when the other species were allowed to grow freely.

The amount of food for each species of course gives the extreme limit to which each can increase; but very frequently it is not the obtaining food, but the serving as prey to other animals, which determines the average numbers of a species. Thus, there seems to be little doubt that the stock of partridges, grouse, and hares on any large estate depends chiefly on the destruction of vermin. If not one head of game were shot during the next twenty years in England, and, at the same time, if no vermin were destroyed, there would, in all probability, be less game than at present, although hundreds of thousands of game animals are now annually killed. On the other hand, in some cases, as with the elephant and rhinoceros, none are destroyed by beasts of prey: even the tiger in India most rarely dares to attack a young elephant protected by its dam.

The amount of food available for each species sets the maximum limit for how much they can grow; however, it’s often not just about finding food, but also about being preyed upon by other animals that influences the average population numbers of a species. Therefore, it seems clear that the population of partridges, grouse, and hares on a large estate mainly relies on the control of vermin. If not a single game animal were shot in England over the next twenty years, and at the same time no vermin were taken out, there would likely be fewer game animals than there are now, despite hundreds of thousands of game animals being killed each year. On the flip side, in some situations, like with elephants and rhinoceroses, they aren't usually hunted by predators: even the tiger in India very rarely goes after a young elephant that's being protected by its mother.

Climate plays an important part in determining the average numbers of a species, and periodical seasons of extreme cold or drought, I believe to be the most effective of all checks. I estimated that the winter of 1854-55 destroyed four-fifths of the birds in my own grounds; and this is a tremendous destruction, when we remember that ten per cent, is an extraordinarily severe mortality from epidemics with man. The action of climate seems at first sight to be quite independent of the struggle for existence; but in so far as climate chiefly acts in reducing food, it brings on the most severe struggle between the individuals, whether of the same or of distinct species, which subsist on the same kind of food. Even when climate, for instance extreme cold, [69]acts directly, it will be the least vigorous, or those which have got least food through the advancing winter, which will suffer most. When we travel from south to north, or from a damp region to a dry, we invariably see some species gradually getting rarer and rarer, and finally disappearing; and the change of climate being conspicuous, we are tempted to attribute the whole effect to its direct action. But this is a false view: we forget that each species, even where it most abounds, is constantly suffering enormous destruction at some period of its life, from enemies or from competitors for the same place and food; and if these enemies or competitors be in the least degree favoured by any slight change of climate, they will increase in numbers, and, as each area is already fully stocked with inhabitants, the other species will decrease. When we travel southward and see a species decreasing in numbers, we may feel sure that the cause lies quite as much in other species being favoured, as in this one being hurt. So it is when we travel northward, but in a somewhat lesser degree, for the number of species of all kinds, and therefore of competitors, decreases northwards; hence in going northward, or in ascending a mountain, we far oftener meet with stunted forms, due to the directly injurious action of climate, than we do in proceeding southwards or in descending a mountain. When we reach the Arctic regions, or snow-capped summits, or absolute deserts, the struggle for life is almost exclusively with the elements.

Climate plays a significant role in determining the average population of a species, and extreme seasons of cold or drought are, in my opinion, the most effective checks on their numbers. I estimate that the winter of 1854-55 wiped out four-fifths of the birds on my property, which is an enormous loss when we consider that a ten percent mortality rate is considered extraordinarily severe in humans due to epidemics. At first glance, the impact of climate seems separate from the struggle for survival; however, since climate primarily affects food availability, it intensifies competition among individuals, whether of the same or different species, that rely on the same food sources. Even when climate—like extreme cold—directly impacts species, the weakest individuals, or those that have stored the least food as winter progresses, will suffer the most. As we move from south to north or from humid areas to dry ones, we often notice certain species becoming increasingly rare before they ultimately disappear. Although the noticeable change in climate tempts us to attribute this decline solely to its direct effects, this perspective is misleading. We overlook the fact that each species, regardless of how abundant it is, constantly experiences significant losses at various life stages due to predators or competition for habitat and food. If these predators or competitors are slightly favored by any minor changes in climate, their populations will increase, and since each area is already fully occupied by inhabitants, the affected species will decline. Therefore, when we head south and witness a species' declining numbers, we can be certain that the cause is just as much about other species thriving as it is about the decline of the one in question. The same is true when heading north, though to a lesser extent, as the number of species and hence competitors tends to decrease in northern regions. Consequently, when we go north or ascend a mountain, we more often encounter stunted forms due to the direct harmful effects of climate than when we travel south or descend. Upon reaching the Arctic regions, snow-capped peaks, or complete deserts, the struggle for survival is primarily against the elements.

That climate acts in main part indirectly by favouring other species, we may clearly see in the prodigious number of plants in our gardens which can perfectly well endure our climate, but which never become naturalised, for they cannot compete with our native plants nor resist destruction by our native animals. [70]

Climate primarily influences other species indirectly. We can clearly see this in the vast number of plants in our gardens that thrive in our climate but never become naturalized. They struggle to compete with our native plants and can't withstand the threats posed by our native animals. [70]

When a species, owing to highly favourable circumstances, increases inordinately in numbers in a small tract, epidemics—at least, this seems generally to occur with our game animals—often ensue: and here we have a limiting check independent of the struggle for life. But even some of these so-called epidemics appear to be due to parasitic worms, which have from some cause, possibly in part through facility of diffusion amongst the crowded animals, been disproportionably favoured: and here comes in a sort of struggle between the parasite and its prey.

When a species experiences extremely favorable conditions, it often increases dramatically in population within a small area. This leads to epidemics—at least, this seems to happen frequently with our game animals—and it serves as a limiting factor separate from the competition for survival. However, some of these so-called epidemics seem to be caused by parasitic worms, which have somehow, possibly due to their ease of spreading among the crowded animals, flourished disproportionately. This introduces a kind of struggle between the parasite and its host.

On the other hand, in many cases, a large stock of individuals of the same species, relatively to the numbers of its enemies, is absolutely necessary for its preservation. Thus we can easily raise plenty of corn and rape-seed, &c., in our fields, because the seeds are in great excess compared with the number of birds which feed on them; nor can the birds, though having a superabundance of food at this one season, increase in number proportionally to the supply of seed, as their numbers are checked during winter: but any one who has tried, knows how troublesome it is to get seed from a few wheat or other such plants in a garden: I have in this case lost every single seed. This view of the necessity of a large stock of the same species for its preservation, explains, I believe, some singular facts in nature, such as that of very rare plants being sometimes extremely abundant in the few spots where they do occur; and that of some social plants being social, that is, abounding in individuals, even on the extreme confines of their range. For in such cases, we may believe, that a plant could exist only where the conditions of its life were so favourable that many could exist together, and thus save the species from utter destruction. I should add that the good effects of frequent intercrossing, and [71]the ill effects of close interbreeding, probably come into play in some of these cases; but on this intricate subject I will not here enlarge.

On the other hand, in many situations, having a large population of the same species, compared to the number of its predators, is essential for its survival. For example, we can easily grow plenty of corn and rapeseed in our fields because the seeds greatly outnumber the birds that eat them; and although there’s more than enough food for the birds during this season, their population cannot increase proportionally to the seed supply since their numbers are kept in check during winter. Anyone who has tried knows how difficult it is to get seeds from just a few wheat or similar plants in a garden; I’ve lost every single seed in that case. This idea that a large population of the same species is needed for survival helps explain some unusual facts in nature, such as why very rare plants can sometimes be extremely abundant in the few places they do grow, or why some social plants thrive in groups, even at the edges of their distribution. In those situations, we can assume that a plant can only survive where the living conditions are so favorable that many can grow together, thereby protecting the species from complete extinction. I should also mention that the benefits of frequent crossbreeding and the drawbacks of close breeding might play a role in some of these scenarios, but I won’t elaborate on this complex topic here.

Many cases are on record showing how complex and unexpected are the checks and relations between organic beings, which have to struggle together in the same country. I will give only a single instance, which, though a simple one, has interested me. In Staffordshire, on the estate of a relation, where I had ample means of investigation, there was a large and extremely barren heath, which had never been touched by the hand of man; but several hundred acres of exactly the same nature had been enclosed twenty-five years previously and planted with Scotch fir. The change in the native vegetation of the planted part of the heath was most remarkable, more than is generally seen in passing from one quite different soil to another: not only the proportional numbers of the heath-plants were wholly changed, but twelve species of plants (not counting grasses and carices) flourished in the plantations, which could not be found on the heath. The effect on the insects must have been still greater, for six insectivorous birds were very common in the plantations, which were not to be seen on the heath; and the heath was frequented by two or three distinct insectivorous birds. Here we see how potent has been the effect of the introduction of a single tree, nothing whatever else having been done, with the exception that the land had been enclosed, so that cattle could not enter. But how important an element enclosure is, I plainly saw near Farnham, in Surrey. Here there are extensive heaths, with a few clumps of old Scotch firs on the distant hill-tops: within the last ten years large spaces have been enclosed, and self-sown firs are now springing up in multitudes, so close together that all cannot live. [72]When I ascertained that these young trees had not been sown or planted, I was so much surprised at their numbers that I went to several points of view, whence I could examine hundreds of acres of the unenclosed heath, and literally I could not see a single Scotch fir, except the old planted clumps. But on looking closely between the stems of the heath, I found a multitude of seedlings and little trees, which had been perpetually browsed down by the cattle. In one square yard, at a point some hundred yards distant from one of the old clumps, I counted thirty-two little trees; and one of them, with twenty-six rings of growth, had during many years tried to raise its head above the stems of the heath, and had failed. No wonder that, as soon as the land was enclosed, it became thickly clothed with vigorously growing young firs. Yet the heath was so extremely barren and so extensive that no one would ever have imagined that cattle would have so closely and effectually searched it for food.

Many cases are documented that demonstrate how complex and unexpected the interactions and relationships are among living organisms competing in the same area. I’ll share just one example, which, although simple, has caught my interest. In Staffordshire, on a relative’s estate where I could explore thoroughly, there was a large and very barren heath that had never been touched by humans; however, several hundred acres of identical land had been enclosed and planted with Scotch fir twenty-five years earlier. The change in the native vegetation of the planted section was remarkable, more so than what is usually observed when transitioning from one distinctly different soil to another: not only were the proportions of heath plants entirely altered, but twelve species of plants (excluding grasses and sedges) thrived in the plantations, which were not found on the heath. The impact on insects must have been even more significant since six insect-eating birds were quite common in the plantations, whereas none could be seen on the heath; in contrast, the heath was visited by two or three different insect-eating birds. This illustrates the powerful effect that the introduction of a single tree can have, given that nothing else was done except for enclosing the land to keep cattle out. However, it's clear how crucial enclosure is; I saw this plainly near Farnham in Surrey. Here, there are vast heaths with a few clusters of old Scotch firs on the far hilltops: in the last ten years, large areas have been enclosed, and now self-sown firs are appearing in abundance, so closely packed that not all can survive. When I realized that these young trees hadn’t been planted or sown, I was so surprised by their numbers that I went to several vantage points to examine hundreds of acres of the open heath, and I literally couldn’t spot a single Scotch fir aside from the old planted clusters. But upon closer inspection between the stems of the heath, I discovered countless seedlings and small trees, which had been continuously browsed down by cattle. In one square yard, about a hundred yards away from one of the old clusters, I counted thirty-two tiny trees; one of them, with twenty-six growth rings, had spent many years trying to grow above the heath's stems but had failed. It’s no wonder that as soon as the land was enclosed, it became densely populated with vigorous young firs. Yet the heath was so extremely barren and so vast that no one would have ever guessed that cattle would have scoured it so thoroughly for food.

Here we see that cattle absolutely determine the existence of the Scotch fir; but in several parts of the world insects determine the existence of cattle. Perhaps Paraguay offers the most curious instance of this; for here neither cattle nor horses nor dogs have ever run wild, though they swarm southward and northward in a feral state; and Azara and Rengger have shown that this is caused by the greater number in Paraguay of a certain fly, which lays its eggs in the navels of these animals when first born. The increase of these flies, numerous as they are, must be habitually checked by some means, probably by birds. Hence, if certain insectivorous birds (whose numbers are probably regulated by hawks or beasts of prey) were to increase in Paraguay, the flies would decrease—then cattle and horses would became feral, and this would certainly greatly [73]alter (as indeed I have observed in parts of South America) the vegetation: this again would largely affect the insects; and this, as we just have seen in Staffordshire, the insectivorous birds, and so onwards in ever-increasing circles of complexity. We began this series by insectivorous birds, and we have ended with them. Not that in nature the relations can ever be as simple as this. Battle within battle must ever be recurring with varying success; and yet in the long-run the forces are so nicely balanced, that the face of nature remains uniform for long periods of time, though assuredly the merest trifle would often give the victory to one organic being over another. Nevertheless so profound is our ignorance, and so high our presumption, that we marvel when we hear of the extinction of an organic being; and as we do not see the cause, we invoke cataclysms to desolate the world, or invent laws on the duration of the forms of life!

Here we see that cattle completely control the existence of the Scotch fir; however, in several parts of the world, insects control the existence of cattle. Paraguay presents a particularly interesting case; here, neither cattle, horses, nor dogs have ever gone wild, even though they thrive in a feral state in other regions. Azara and Rengger have demonstrated that this situation is due to a higher number of a specific type of fly in Paraguay, which lays its eggs in the navels of these animals when they are born. The population of these flies, despite being numerous, must be regularly kept in check by some means, likely by birds. Therefore, if certain insect-eating birds (whose populations are probably managed by hawks or other predators) were to grow in number in Paraguay, the flies would diminish—leading to cattle and horses becoming feral, which would certainly significantly alter the vegetation (as I have observed in parts of South America); this, in turn, would greatly impact the insects, and, as we've seen in Staffordshire, the insect-eating birds, continuing onward in increasingly complex circles. We started this discussion with insect-eating birds and we conclude with them. However, in nature, relationships can never be as straightforward as this. Conflicts within conflicts are constantly occurring with varying outcomes; yet, over time, forces are so finely balanced that the landscape of nature remains stable for long periods, although even the smallest change could tip the balance in favor of one organism over another. Nevertheless, our ignorance is deep, and our arrogance is high, leading us to be amazed when we hear about the extinction of an organism; and since we do not see the cause, we speculate about cataclysms that might devastate the world or create theories about the lifespan of life forms!

I am tempted to give one more instance showing how plants and animals, most remote in the scale of nature, are bound together by a web of complex relations. I shall hereafter have occasion to show that the exotic Lobelia fulgens, in this part of England, is never visited by insects, and consequently, from its peculiar structure, never can set a seed. Many of our orchidaceous plants absolutely require the visits of moths to remove their pollen-masses and thus to fertilise them. I have, also, reason to believe that humble-bees are indispensable to the fertilisation of the heartsease (Viola tricolor), for other bees do not visit this flower. From experiments which I have lately tried, I have found that the visits of bees are necessary for the fertilisation of some kinds of clover; but humble-bees alone visit the red clover (Trifolium pratense), as other bees cannot reach the nectar. Hence I have very little doubt, that if the [74]whole genus of humble-bees became extinct or very rare in England, the heartsease and red clover would become very rare, or wholly disappear. The number of humble-bees in any district depends in a great degree on the number of field-mice, which destroy their combs and nests; and Mr. H. Newman, who has long attended to the habits of humble-bees, believes that "more than two-thirds of them are thus destroyed all over England." Now the number of mice is largely dependent, as every one knows, on the number of cats; and Mr. Newman says, "Near villages and small towns I have found the nests of humble-bees more numerous than elsewhere, which I attribute to the number of cats that destroy the mice." Hence it is quite credible that the presence of a feline animal in large numbers in a district might determine, through the intervention first of mice and then of bees, the frequency of certain flowers in that district!

I'm tempted to give one more example of how plants and animals, even those far apart in the natural order, are interconnected through a complex network of relationships. I'll later show that the exotic Lobelia fulgens, found in this part of England, is never visited by insects, and because of its unique structure, it can never produce seeds. Many of our orchid species absolutely depend on moths to remove their pollen masses and thus fertilize them. I also have reason to believe that bumblebees are essential for the fertilization of heartsease (Viola tricolor), since other bees don’t visit this flower. From experiments I've conducted recently, I've found that the visits of bees are necessary for the fertilization of certain types of clover; however, only bumblebees visit red clover (Trifolium pratense), as other bees can't reach the nectar. Therefore, I have little doubt that if the entire bumblebee genus were to go extinct or become very rare in England, heartsease and red clover would become very rare or completely disappear. The number of bumblebees in a given area largely depends on the number of field mice, which destroy their hives and nests; and Mr. H. Newman, who has long studied bumblebee habits, believes that "more than two-thirds of them are thus destroyed all over England." Now, the number of mice is largely dependent, as everyone knows, on the number of cats; Mr. Newman also states, "Near villages and small towns, I've found that bumblebee nests are more numerous than elsewhere, which I attribute to the number of cats that kill the mice." Thus, it’s quite plausible that a large population of cats in an area could influence, through the mice and then the bees, the abundance of certain flowers in that region!

In the case of every species, many different checks, acting at different periods of life, and during different seasons or years, probably come into play; some one check or some few being generally the most potent, but all concur in determining the average number or even the existence of the species. In some cases it can be shown that widely-different checks act on the same species in different districts. When we look at the plants and bushes clothing an entangled bank, we are tempted to attribute their proportional numbers and kinds to what we call chance. But how false a view is this! Every one has heard that when an American forest is cut down, a very different vegetation springs up; but it has been observed that ancient Indian ruins in the Southern United States, which must formerly have been cleared of trees, now display the same beautiful diversity and proportion of kinds as in the surrounding [75]virgin forests. What a struggle between the several kinds of trees must here have gone on during long centuries, each annually scattering its seeds by the thousand; what war between insect and insect—between insects, snails, and other animals with birds and beasts of prey—all striving to increase, and all feeding on each other or on the trees or their seeds and seedlings, or on the other plants which first clothed the ground and thus checked the growth of the trees! Throw up a handful of feathers, and all must fall to the ground according to definite laws; but how simple is this problem compared to the action and reaction of the innumerable plants and animals which have determined, in the course of centuries, the proportional numbers and kinds of trees now growing on the old Indian ruins!

In the case of every species, various factors that act at different stages of life and during different seasons or years likely come into play; although one factor or a few may generally be the most influential, they all contribute to determining the average number or even the survival of the species. In some instances, it can be demonstrated that very different factors affect the same species in different areas. When we examine the plants and shrubs covering a tangled bank, we might be tempted to attribute their proportional numbers and types to what we consider chance. But how misleading is this perspective! Everyone has heard that when a forest in America is cleared, a different type of vegetation takes its place; however, it has been noted that ancient Indian ruins in the Southern United States, which must have been cleared of trees in the past, now show the same beautiful diversity and proportion of types as in the surrounding virgin forests. What a struggle among the various types of trees must have taken place over many centuries, each scattering thousands of seeds every year; what competition between insects—between insects, snails, and other animals with birds and predators—all trying to thrive, and all feeding on each other or on the trees, their seeds, and seedlings, or on the other plants that initially covered the ground, thus hindering the growth of the trees! If you toss a handful of feathers, they'll all fall to the ground according to specific laws; yet this problem is so simple compared to the complex interactions of the countless plants and animals that have shaped, over centuries, the proportionate numbers and types of trees now found on the old Indian ruins!

The dependency of one organic being on another, as of a parasite on its prey, lies generally between beings remote in the scale of nature. This is often the case with those which may strictly be said to struggle with each other for existence, as in the case of locusts and grass-feeding quadrupeds. But the struggle almost invariably will be most severe between the individuals of the same species, for they frequent the same districts, require the same food, and are exposed to the same dangers. In the case of varieties of the same species, the struggle will generally be almost equally severe, and we sometimes see the contest soon decided; for instance, if several varieties of wheat be sown together, and the mixed seed be resown, some of the varieties which best suit the soil or climate, or are naturally the most fertile, will beat the others and so yield more seed, and will consequently in a few years quite supplant the other varieties. To keep up a mixed stock of even such extremely close varieties as the variously [76]coloured sweet-peas, they must be each year harvested separately, and the seed then mixed in due proportion, otherwise the weaker kinds will steadily decrease in numbers and disappear. So again with the varieties of sheep: it has been asserted that certain mountain-varieties will starve out other mountain-varieties, so that they cannot be kept together. The same result has followed from keeping together different varieties of the medicinal leech. It may even be doubted whether the varieties of any one of our domestic plants or animals have so exactly the same strength, habits, and constitution, that the original proportions of a mixed stock could be kept up for half-a-dozen generations, if they were allowed to struggle together, like beings in a state of nature, and if the seed or young were not annually sorted.

The dependence of one living organism on another, like a parasite on its host, typically occurs between beings that are quite different in the natural hierarchy. This often happens among those that are truly competing for survival, as seen with locusts and herbivorous mammals. However, the competition is usually fiercest among individuals of the same species, since they inhabit the same areas, need the same food, and face the same threats. When it comes to varieties of the same species, the competition is often just as intense, and we sometimes see the outcome settled quickly. For example, if several varieties of wheat are planted together and then the mixed seed is replanted, some varieties that are better suited to the soil or climate, or that are naturally more productive, will outcompete the others and produce more seeds, which will lead to those varieties dominating and completely replacing the others over a few years. To maintain a mixed population of even closely related varieties like the different colored sweet peas, they must be harvested separately each year, and then the seeds must be mixed in the right proportions; otherwise, the weaker varieties will gradually decline in number and vanish. Similarly, with sheep varieties, it has been claimed that certain mountain varieties can drive out other mountain varieties, making it impossible to keep them together. The same outcome has been seen with different varieties of the medicinal leech. It might even be questioned whether the varieties of any of our domesticated plants or animals are truly identical in strength, habits, and constitution to the extent that the original proportions of a mixed population could be sustained for several generations if they were allowed to compete as they would in the wild, and if the seed or offspring weren’t sorted annually.

As species of the same genus have usually, though by no means invariably, some similarity in habits and constitution, and always in structure, the struggle will generally be more severe between species of the same genus, when they come into competition with each other, than between species of distinct genera. We see this in the recent extension over parts of the United States of one species of swallow having caused the decrease of another species. The recent increase of the missel-thrush in parts of Scotland has caused the decrease of the song-thrush. How frequently we hear of one species of rat taking the place of another species under the most different climates! In Russia the small Asiatic cockroach has everywhere driven before it its great congener. One species of charlock will supplant another, and so in other cases. We can dimly see why the competition should be most severe between allied forms, which fill nearly the same place in the economy of nature; [77]but probably in no one case could we precisely say why one species has been victorious over another in the great battle of life.

As species of the same genus usually, though not always, share some similarities in behavior and biology, and always in structure, the competition tends to be tougher between species of the same genus when they compete with each other than between species from different genera. We see this with the recent spread of one species of swallow in parts of the United States causing the decline of another species. The recent rise of the missel-thrush in parts of Scotland has led to the decrease of the song-thrush. It's common to hear about one species of rat replacing another under very different climates! In Russia, the small Asiatic cockroach has pushed out its larger relative everywhere. One species of charlock will replace another, and similar situations occur in other cases. We can vaguely understand why competition is most intense among closely related forms that occupy nearly the same role in nature; [77] but it’s unlikely we could pinpoint why one species has triumphed over another in the ongoing struggle for survival.

A corollary of the highest importance may be deduced from the foregoing remarks, namely, that the structure of every organic being is related, in the most essential yet often hidden manner, to that of all other organic beings, with which it comes into competition for food or residence, or from which it has to escape, or on which it preys. This is obvious in the structure of the teeth and talons of the tiger; and in that of the legs and claws of the parasite which clings to the hair on the tiger's body. But in the beautifully plumed seed of the dandelion, and in the flattened and fringed legs of the water-beetle, the relation seems at first confined to the elements of air and water. Yet the advantage of plumed seeds no doubt stands in the closest relation to the land being already thickly clothed by other plants; so that the seeds may be widely distributed and fall on unoccupied ground. In the water-beetle, the structure of its legs, so well adapted for diving, allows it to compete with other aquatic insects, to hunt for its own prey, and to escape serving as prey to other animals.

A key point can be drawn from the previous comments, which is that the structure of every living organism is connected, in significant but often hidden ways, to that of all other living beings it competes with for food or shelter, from which it needs to escape, or on which it preys. This is clear in the structure of the tiger's teeth and claws, and in the legs and claws of the parasite that clings to the tiger's fur. However, in the elegantly plumed seed of the dandelion and in the flat, fringed legs of the water beetle, the connection initially appears to be limited to elements of air and water. Yet, the advantage of plumed seeds is undoubtedly closely linked to the land being already covered by other plants, allowing the seeds to spread widely and land on unoccupied ground. In the case of the water beetle, its legs are perfectly designed for diving, enabling it to compete with other aquatic insects, hunt for its own food, and avoid becoming prey for other animals.

The store of nutriment laid up within the seeds of many plants seems at first sight to have no sort of relation to other plants. But from the strong growth of young plants produced from such seeds (as peas and beans), when sown in the midst of long grass, I suspect that the chief use of the nutriment in the seed is to favour the growth of the young seedling, whilst struggling with other plants growing vigorously all around.

The nutrients stored in the seeds of many plants may initially seem unrelated to other plants. However, the vigorous growth of young plants like peas and beans, when sown among tall grass, suggests that the main purpose of the seed's nutrients is to support the growth of the young seedling as it competes with other plants that are also thriving nearby.

Look at a plant in the midst of its range, why does it not double or quadruple its numbers? We know [78]that it can perfectly well withstand a little more heat or cold, dampness or dryness, for elsewhere it ranges into slightly hotter or colder, damper or drier districts. In this case we can clearly see that if we wished in imagination to give the plant the power of increasing in number, we should have to give it some advantage over its competitors, or over the animals which preyed on it. On the confines of its geographical range, a change of constitution with respect to climate would clearly be an advantage to our plant; but we have reason to believe that only a few plants or animals range so far, that they are destroyed by the rigour of the climate alone. Not until we reach the extreme confines of life, in the Arctic regions or on the borders of an utter desert, will competition cease. The land may be extremely cold or dry, yet there will be competition between some few species, or between the individuals of the same species, for the warmest or dampest spots.

Look at a plant in the middle of its range; why doesn’t it double or quadruple its numbers? We know [78]that it can handle a bit more heat or cold, wetness or dryness, since it exists in slightly hotter or colder, wetter or drier areas elsewhere. Here, it’s clear that if we wanted to imagine the plant having the ability to multiply, we would have to give it some advantage over its competitors or the animals that eat it. At the edges of its geographical range, a change in adaptability regarding climate would clearly benefit our plant; however, we have reason to believe that only a few plants or animals extend that far to the point that they are solely eliminated by harsh climate conditions. Not until we reach the farthest extremes of life, like the Arctic regions or the edges of a complete desert, does competition come to an end. The land might be extremely cold or dry, yet there will still be competition among a few species or among individuals of the same species for the warmest or dampest spots.

Hence, also, we can see that when a plant or animal is placed in a new country amongst new competitors, though the climate may be exactly the same as in its former home, yet the conditions of its life will generally be changed in an essential manner. If we wished to increase its average numbers in its new home, we should have to modify it in a different way to what we should have done in its native country; for we should have to give it some advantage over a different set of competitors or enemies.

Hence, we can see that when a plant or animal is introduced to a new country with new competitors, even if the climate is exactly the same as in its original home, the conditions of its life will usually change significantly. If we wanted to increase its average population in the new environment, we would need to adapt it differently than we would have in its native country; we would have to provide it with some advantage over a new group of competitors or threats.

It is good thus to try in our imagination to give any form some advantage over another. Probably in no single instance should we know what to do, so as to succeed. It will convince us of our ignorance on the mutual relations of all organic beings; a conviction as necessary, as it seems to be difficult to acquire. All that we can do, is to keep steadily in mind that each [79]organic being is striving to increase at a geometrical ratio; that each at some period of its life, during some season of the year, during each generation or at intervals, has to struggle for life, and to suffer great destruction. When we reflect on this struggle, we may console ourselves with the full belief, that the war of nature is not incessant, that no fear is felt, that death is generally prompt, and that the vigorous, the healthy, and the happy survive and multiply.

It's helpful to use our imagination to consider how one form might have an advantage over another. In reality, we probably wouldn't know what to do to succeed in a specific situation. This will highlight our lack of understanding about the relationships among all living beings, a realization that seems both necessary and challenging to grasp. What we can do is remember that each [79]living being is trying to grow at an exponential rate; that each one, at some point in its life, during certain seasons, across generations, or at various intervals, has to fight for survival and faces significant destruction. When we think about this struggle, we can find comfort in knowing that nature’s battles aren’t constant, that there’s usually no fear involved, that death often comes quickly, and that those who are strong, healthy, and happy survive and thrive.


[80]

[80]

CHAPTER IV.

Natural Selection.

Survival of the fittest.

Natural Selection—its power compared with man's selection—its power on characters of trifling importance—its power at all ages and on both sexes—Sexual Selection—On the generality of intercrosses between individuals of the same species—Circumstances favourable and unfavourable to Natural Selection, namely, intercrossing, isolation, number of individuals—Slow action—Extinction caused by Natural Selection—Divergence of Character, related to the diversity of inhabitants of any small area, and to naturalisation—Action of Natural Selection, through Divergence of Character and Extinction, on the descendants from a common parent—Explains the Grouping of all organic beings.

Natural Selection—how it compares to human selection—its impact on traits of lesser importance—its effects at every age and on both sexes—Sexual Selection—On how frequently individuals of the same species breed with each other—Factors that enhance or impede Natural Selection, such as interbreeding, isolation, and population size—Gradual effects—Extinction caused by Natural Selection—Variation in Traits, related to the diversity of species in a small area, and to naturalization—The influence of Natural Selection, through Variation in Traits and Extinction, on the descendants from a common ancestor—This explains the classification of all living organisms.

How will the struggle for existence, discussed too briefly in the last chapter, act in regard to variation? Can the principle of selection, which we have seen is so potent in the hands of man, apply in nature? I think we shall see that it can act most effectually. Let it be borne in mind in what an endless number of strange peculiarities our domestic productions, and, in a lesser degree, those under nature, vary; and how strong the hereditary tendency is. Under domestication, it may be truly said that the whole organisation becomes in some degree plastic. Let it be borne in mind how infinitely complex and close-fitting are the mutual relations of all organic beings to each other and to their physical conditions of life. Can it, then, be thought improbable, seeing that variations useful to man have undoubtedly occurred, that other variations useful in some way to each being in the great and complex battle of life, should sometimes occur in the course of thousands of generations? If such do occur, can we doubt [81](remembering that many more individuals are born than can possibly survive) that individuals having any advantage, however slight, over others, would have the best chance of surviving and of procreating their kind? On the other hand, we may feel sure that any variation in the least degree injurious would be rigidly destroyed. This preservation of favourable variations and the rejection of injurious variations, I call Natural Selection. Variations neither useful nor injurious would not be affected by natural selection, and would be left a fluctuating element, as perhaps we see in the species called polymorphic.

How does the struggle for survival, which we touched on briefly in the last chapter, impact variation? Can the principle of selection, which we've seen is powerful when used by humans, also apply in nature? I believe we'll find that it can be very effective. Keep in mind the countless strange traits in our domesticated animals and plants, and to a lesser extent, those found in nature, and how strong the hereditary tendency is. In domestication, it can be said that the entire organization becomes somewhat flexible. Also, consider how incredibly complex and interconnected the relationships are among all living beings and their physical environments. Given that useful variations for humans have definitely occurred, can we really doubt that other variations, beneficial in some way to each organism in the vast and intricate struggle for life, could also emerge over thousands of generations? If such variations do happen, isn't it reasonable to think that individuals with any slight advantage over others would have a better chance of surviving and reproducing? Conversely, we can be confident that any variation that is even slightly harmful would be quickly eliminated. This process of preserving beneficial variations and getting rid of harmful ones is what I call Natural Selection. Variations that are neither beneficial nor harmful wouldn’t be influenced by natural selection and would remain as a fluctuating factor, as we see in species known as polymorphic.

We shall best understand the probable course of natural selection by taking the case of a country undergoing some physical change, for instance, of climate. The proportional numbers of its inhabitants would almost immediately undergo a change, and some species might become extinct. We may conclude, from what we have seen of the intimate and complex manner in which the inhabitants of each country are bound together, that any change in the numerical proportions of some of the inhabitants, independently of the change of climate itself, would seriously affect many of the others. If the country were open on its borders, new forms would certainly immigrate, and this also would seriously disturb the relations of some of the former inhabitants. Let it be remembered how powerful the influence of a single introduced tree or mammal has been shown to be. But in the case of an island, or of a country partly surrounded by barriers, into which new and better adapted forms could not freely enter, we should then have places in the economy of nature which would assuredly be better filled up, if some of the original inhabitants were in some manner modified; for, had the area been open to immigration, these same [82]places would have been seized on by intruders. In such case, every slight modification, which in the course of ages chanced to arise, and which in any way favoured the individuals of any of the species, by better adapting them to their altered conditions, would tend to be preserved; and natural selection would thus have free scope for the work of improvement.

We can better understand how natural selection works by looking at a country that is experiencing a physical change, like a shift in climate. The population proportions of its inhabitants would quickly change, and some species might go extinct. From what we've observed about the close and complex connections among the inhabitants of each country, any change in the numbers of some inhabitants, regardless of the climate change itself, would significantly impact many others. If the country has open borders, new species would likely migrate in, which would also disrupt the relationships among some of the existing inhabitants. It's important to remember how significant the impact of just one introduced tree or mammal can be. However, in the case of an island or a country that is somewhat isolated by barriers, where new and better-adapted species cannot easily enter, we would find niches in nature that would be better occupied if some of the original inhabitants were modified in some way. If the area had been open to immigration, those same niches would have likely been taken over by newcomers. In these situations, any small modifications that happened over time and helped individuals of any species adapt better to their changing environment would likely be preserved, allowing natural selection to work effectively toward improvement.

We have reason to believe, as stated in the first chapter, that a change in the conditions of life, by specially acting on the reproductive system, causes or increases variability; and in the foregoing case the conditions of life are supposed to have undergone a change, and this would manifestly be favourable to natural selection, by giving a better chance of profitable variations occurring; and unless profitable variations do occur, natural selection can do nothing. Not that, as I believe, any extreme amount of variability is necessary; as man can certainly produce great results by adding up in any given direction mere individual differences, so could Nature, but far more easily, from having incomparably longer time at her disposal. Nor do I believe that any great physical change, as of climate, or any unusual degree of isolation to check immigration, is actually necessary to produce new and unoccupied places for natural selection to fill up by modifying and improving some of the varying inhabitants. For as all the inhabitants of each country are struggling together with nicely balanced forces, extremely slight modifications in the structure or habits of one inhabitant would often give it an advantage over others; and still further modifications of the same kind would often still further increase the advantage. No country can be named in which all the native inhabitants are now so perfectly adapted to each other and to the physical conditions under which they live, that none of [83]them could anyhow be improved; for in all countries, the natives have been so far conquered by naturalised productions, that they have allowed foreigners to take firm possession of the land. And as foreigners have thus everywhere beaten some of the natives, we may safely conclude that the natives might have been modified with advantage, so as to have better resisted such intruders.

We have reason to believe, as mentioned in the first chapter, that changes in life conditions, particularly affecting the reproductive system, cause or increase variability; and in this case, it’s assumed that life conditions have changed, which would clearly be beneficial for natural selection by increasing the likelihood of advantageous variations occurring. Without advantageous variations, natural selection can’t operate. I don’t think that an extreme amount of variability is necessary; humans can definitely achieve significant results by accumulating individual differences in a certain direction, and nature could do the same, much more easily, given the vast amount of time at its disposal. I also don’t believe that a major physical change, like a shift in climate, or any unusual degree of isolation to restrict immigration, is actually needed to create new and unoccupied spaces for natural selection to fill by modifying and improving some of the varying inhabitants. All inhabitants in each country are competing with one another with finely balanced forces, so even slight modifications in the structure or habits of one inhabitant could often give it an edge over others; and further modifications of the same type could enhance that advantage even more. No country can be identified where all the native inhabitants are perfectly adapted to each other and to the physical conditions they live under, such that none of them could be improved; in all countries, the natives have been largely outcompeted by naturalized species, allowing outsiders to take firm control of the land. Since outsiders have consistently outperformed some natives, we can reasonably conclude that the natives could have been modified for the better to resist such intruders.

As man can produce and certainly has produced a great result by his methodical and unconscious means of selection, what may not Nature effect? Man can act only on external and visible characters: Nature cares nothing for appearances, except in so far as they may be useful to any being. She can act on every internal organ, on every shade of constitutional difference, on the whole machinery of life. Man selects only for his own good; Nature only for that of the being which she tends. Every selected character is fully exercised by her; and the being is placed under well-suited conditions of life. Man keeps the natives of many climates in the same country; he seldom exercises each selected character in some peculiar and fitting manner; he feeds a long and a short beaked pigeon on the same food; he does not exercise a long-backed or long-legged quadruped in any peculiar manner; he exposes sheep with long and short wool to the same climate. He does not allow the most vigorous males to struggle for the females. He does not rigidly destroy all inferior animals, but protects during each varying season, as far as lies in his power, all his productions. He often begins his selection by some half-monstrous form; or at least by some modification prominent enough to catch his eye, or to be plainly useful to him. Under nature, the slightest difference of structure or constitution may well turn the nicely-balanced scale in the struggle for life, and so be [84]preserved. How fleeting are the wishes and efforts of man! how short his time! and consequently how poor will his products be, compared with those accumulated by Nature during whole geological periods. Can we wonder, then, that Nature's productions should be far "truer" in character than man's productions; that they should be infinitely better adapted to the most complex conditions of life, and should plainly bear the stamp of far higher workmanship?

As humans can create and have definitely created significant results through their systematic and often unintentional methods of selection, imagine what Nature can accomplish! Humans can only focus on external and visible traits, while Nature doesn't care about appearances unless they serve a purpose for any living being. Nature can influence every internal organ, every nuance of constitutional differences, and the entire machinery of life. Humans select based on their own interests; Nature selects for the benefit of the beings she nurtures. Every chosen trait is thoroughly exercised by her, and the being exists in well-suited living conditions. Humans often keep animals from different climates in the same environment; they rarely exercise each selected trait in a specific and suitable way. For example, they feed both long-beaked and short-beaked pigeons the same food, and they don’t exercise long-backed or long-legged quadrupeds in a distinct manner. They expose sheep with both long and short wool to the same climate. They don’t let the strongest males compete for the females. Instead of rigorously eliminating all inferior animals, they shelter all their creatures as best they can during each changing season. They often start their selection with some odd-looking forms or at least with some noticeable modifications that catch their eye or serve their needs. In nature, even the slightest structural or constitutional difference can tip the scales in the struggle for survival, and thus be preserved. How fleeting human desires and efforts are! How brief our time is! Therefore, the products of human selection will be meager compared to those amassed by Nature over countless geological periods. Can we really be surprised that Nature's creations are far "truer" in character than those made by humans and are infinitely better suited to the most intricate conditions of life, clearly showcasing a much higher level of craftsmanship?

It may metaphorically be said that natural selection is daily and hourly scrutinising, throughout the world, every variation, even the slightest; rejecting that which is bad, preserving and adding up all that is good; silently and insensibly working, whenever and wherever opportunity offers, at the improvement of each organic being in relation to its organic and inorganic conditions of life. We see nothing of these slow changes in progress, until the hand of time has marked the long lapse of ages, and then so imperfect is our view into long past geological ages, that we only see that the forms of life are now different from what they formerly were.

It can be said that natural selection is constantly examining every variation, even the smallest ones, around the world; it rejects what is harmful and preserves and builds on what is beneficial. It works quietly and imperceptibly, whenever and wherever there is a chance, to improve each living organism in relation to its environment. We don’t notice these gradual changes as they happen until many ages have passed, and even then, our understanding of distant geological history is so limited that we can only see that life forms today are different from those in the past.

Although natural selection can act only through and for the good of each being, yet characters and structures, which we are apt to consider as of very trifling importance, may thus be acted on. When we see leaf-eating insects green, and bark-feeders mottled-grey; the alpine ptarmigan white in winter, the red-grouse the colour of heather, and the black-grouse that of peaty earth, we must believe that these tints are of service to these birds and insects in preserving them from danger. Grouse, if not destroyed at some period of their lives, would increase in countless numbers; they are known to suffer largely from birds of prey; and hawks are guided by eyesight to their prey—so much so, that on [85]parts of the Continent persons are warned not to keep white pigeons, as being the most liable to destruction. Hence I can see no reason to doubt that natural selection might be most effective in giving the proper colour to each kind of grouse, and in keeping that colour, when once acquired, true and constant. Nor ought we to think that the occasional destruction of an animal of any particular colour would produce little effect: we should remember how essential it is in a flock of white sheep to destroy every lamb with the faintest trace of black. In plants the down on the fruit and the colour of the flesh are considered by botanists as characters of the most trifling importance: yet we hear from an excellent horticulturist, Downing, that in the United States smooth-skinned fruits suffer far more from a beetle, a curculio, than those with down; that purple plums suffer far more from a certain disease than yellow plums; whereas another disease attacks yellow-fleshed peaches far more than those with other coloured flesh. If, with all the aids of art, these slight differences make a great difference in cultivating the several varieties, assuredly, in a state of nature, where the trees would have to struggle with other trees and with a host of enemies, such differences would effectually settle which variety, whether a smooth or downy, a yellow or purple fleshed fruit, should succeed.

Although natural selection acts only for the benefit of each organism, traits and structures that we might think are minor can still be influenced. When we see that leaf-eating insects are green and bark-feeding ones are mottled grey; that the alpine ptarmigan is white in winter, the red-grouse is the color of heather, and the black-grouse matches the color of peat, we have to believe that these colors help these birds and insects avoid danger. If grouse weren’t eliminated at some point in their lives, their numbers would grow exponentially; they are known to suffer greatly from predatory birds, and hawks locate their prey primarily by sight—so much so that in certain areas of the Continent, people are warned against keeping white pigeons, as they are the most likely to be killed. Therefore, I see no reason to doubt that natural selection could effectively give each type of grouse its appropriate color and maintain that color as consistent once it's developed. We also shouldn't overlook how destroying even one animal of a specific color can have a significant effect: we should remember how crucial it is in a flock of white sheep to eliminate any lamb with even the slightest hint of black. In plants, the fuzz on the fruit and the color of the flesh are regarded by botanists as minor traits; however, according to the excellent horticulturist Downing, in the United States, smooth-skinned fruits are far more susceptible to a beetle, a curculio, than those with fuzz. He states that purple plums are much more affected by a certain disease than yellow plums, while another disease disproportionately targets yellow-fleshed peaches compared to those with other flesh colors. If these small differences, even with all the help of human cultivation, make a significant impact on growing different varieties, then in nature—where trees compete with each other and face many threats—such differences would undoubtedly determine which variety, whether smooth or fuzzy, yellow or purple-fleshed, would thrive.

In looking at many small points of difference between species, which, as far as our ignorance permits us to judge, seem quite unimportant, we must not forget that climate, food, &c., probably produce some slight and direct effect. It is, however, far more necessary to bear in mind that there are many unknown laws of correlation of growth, which, when one part of the organisation is modified through variation, and the modifications are accumulated by natural selection for [86]the good of the being, will cause other modifications, often of the most unexpected nature.

When examining the many small differences between species that, as far as we know, seem quite trivial, we must remember that factors like climate, food, etc., likely have some small and direct impact. However, it's even more important to keep in mind that there are many unknown laws of growth correlation, which, when one part of an organism is changed due to variation, and those changes are favored by natural selection for the benefit of the organism, will lead to other changes, often in the most surprising ways.

As we see that those variations which under domestication appear at any particular period of life, tend to reappear in the offspring at the same period;—for instance, in the seeds of the many varieties of our culinary and agricultural plants; in the caterpillar and cocoon stages of the varieties of the silkworm; in the eggs of poultry, and in the colour of the down of their chickens; in the horns of our sheep and cattle when nearly adult;—so in a state of nature, natural selection will be enabled to act on and modify organic beings at any age, by the accumulation of variations profitable at that age, and by their inheritance at a corresponding age. If it profit a plant to have its seeds more and more widely disseminated by the wind, I can see no greater difficulty in this being effected through natural selection, than in the cotton-planter increasing and improving by selection the down in the pods on his cotton-trees. Natural selection may modify and adapt the larva of an insect to a score of contingencies, wholly different from those which concern the mature insect. These modifications will no doubt affect, through the laws of correlation, the structure of the adult; and probably in the case of those insects which live only for a few hours, and which never feed, a large part of their structure is merely the correlated result of successive changes in the structure of their larvæ. So, conversely, modifications in the adult will probably often affect the structure of the larva; but in all cases natural selection will ensure that modifications consequent on other modifications at a different period of life, shall not be in the least degree injurious: for if they became so, they would cause the extinction of the species.

As we notice, variations that appear during specific periods of life under domestication tend to show up in the offspring at the same time. For example, this can be seen in the seeds of various culinary and agricultural plants, in the caterpillar and cocoon stages of different silkworm varieties, in poultry eggs, and in the color of chick down; as well as in the horns of sheep and cattle when they are nearly adult. In nature, natural selection can act on and change living beings at any age by accumulating beneficial variations that arise at that stage and passing them down at a corresponding age. If it benefits a plant to have its seeds spread further by the wind, there's no greater challenge in achieving this through natural selection than in a cotton grower enhancing the down in the pods of his cotton plants through selective breeding. Natural selection can modify and adapt an insect's larva to various different situations compared to those affecting the adult insect. These changes will likely influence, through correlational laws, the adult's structure; and in cases of insects that live only a few hours and do not feed, a significant part of their structure may be just a correlated outcome of successive changes in their larval structure. Similarly, changes in the adult will likely affect the larva's structure, but in every instance, natural selection will make sure that changes resulting from other modifications at different life stages do not cause harm. If they did, it would lead to the species' extinction.

Natural selection will modify the structure of the [87]young in relation to the parent, and of the parent in relation to the young. In social animals it will adapt the structure of each individual for the benefit of the community; if each in consequence profits by the selected change. What natural selection cannot do, is to modify the structure of one species, without giving it any advantage, for the good of another species; and though statements to this effect may be found in works of natural history, I cannot find one case which will bear investigation. A structure used only once in an animal's whole life, if of high importance to it, might be modified to any extent by natural selection; for instance, the great jaws possessed by certain insects, used exclusively for opening the cocoon—or the hard tip to the beak of nestling birds, used for breaking the egg. It has been asserted, that of the best short-beaked tumbler-pigeons more perish in the egg than are able to get out of it; so that fanciers assist in the act of hatching. Now, if nature had to make the beak of a full-grown pigeon very short for the bird's own advantage, the process of modification would be very slow, and there would be simultaneously the most rigorous selection of the young birds within the egg, which had the most powerful and hardest beaks, for all with weak beaks would inevitably perish: or, more delicate and more easily broken shells might be selected, the thickness of the shell being known to vary like every other structure.

Natural selection will change the structure of the [87]young in relation to the parent, and the parent in relation to the young. In social animals, it will adjust the structure of each individual for the benefit of the community, as long as each benefits from the selected change. What natural selection can't do is change the structure of one species without providing any advantage for the benefit of another species; and while you might find claims about this in natural history books, I haven't found a single case that stands up to scrutiny. A structure that is used only once in an animal's entire life, if it's very important to it, might be adapted extensively by natural selection; for example, the large jaws of certain insects, which are used only for opening their cocoon, or the hard tip of a nestling bird's beak, which is used to break the egg. It has been claimed that more of the best short-beaked tumbler pigeons die while still in the egg than are able to hatch, leading fanciers to help with the hatching process. Now, if nature had to make a full-grown pigeon’s beak very short for the bird's own benefit, the process of modification would be slow, with the most rigorous selection of the young birds within the egg that had the strongest and toughest beaks, as all those with weak beaks would inevitably perish; or, it could lead to the selection of thinner and more easily broken shells, since the thickness of the shell, like any other structure, is known to vary.

 

Sexual Selection.—Inasmuch as peculiarities often appear under domestication in one sex and become hereditarily attached to that sex, the same fact probably occurs under nature, and if so, natural selection will be able to modify one sex in its functional relations to the other sex, or in relation to wholly different habits of life in the two sexes, as is sometimes the case [88]with insects. And this leads me to say a few words on what I call Sexual Selection. This depends, not on a struggle for existence, but on a struggle between the males for possession of the females; the result is not death to the unsuccessful competitor, but few or no offspring. Sexual selection is, therefore, less rigorous than natural selection. Generally, the most vigorous males, those which are best fitted for their places in nature, will leave most progeny. But in many cases, victory depends not on general vigour, but on having special weapons, confined to the male sex. A hornless stag or spurless cock would have a poor chance of leaving offspring. Sexual selection by always allowing the victor to breed might surely give indomitable courage, length to the spur, and strength to the wing to strike in the spurred leg, as well as the brutal cock-fighter, who knows well that he can improve his breed by careful selection of the best cocks. How low in the scale of nature the law of battle descends, I know not; male alligators have been described as fighting, bellowing, and whirling round, like Indians in a war-dance, for the possession of the females; male salmons have been seen fighting all day long; male stag-beetles often bear wounds from the huge mandibles of other males. The war is, perhaps, severest between the males of polygamous animals, and these seem oftenest provided with special weapons. The males of carnivorous animals are already well armed; though to them and to others, special means of defence may be given through means of sexual selection, as the mane to the lion, the shoulder-pad to the boar, and the hooked jaw to the male salmon; for the shield may be as important for victory, as the sword or spear.

Sexual Selection.—Since certain traits often emerge in one sex due to domestication and become inheritable in that sex, the same likely happens in the wild. If this is the case, natural selection can modify one sex in relation to the other or in relation to entirely different lifestyles of both sexes, as is sometimes seen [88]with insects. This brings me to discuss what I call Sexual Selection. This process is not about the struggle for survival but rather the competition among males for access to females; the consequence for the losers is not death but fewer or no offspring. Therefore, sexual selection is less intense than natural selection. Typically, the most robust males, those best suited to their environments, will have the most offspring. However, in many situations, winning isn't just about overall strength but having specific traits unique to males. A stag without horns or a rooster without spurs would have a slim chance of reproducing. Since sexual selection continuously allows the victor to mate, it likely enhances traits such as unmatched courage, longer spurs, and stronger wings for striking with those spurred legs, similar to a cockfighter who understands that he can improve his stock by carefully selecting the best roosters. I don’t know how low in the natural order the principle of combat applies, but male alligators have been noted fighting, bellowing, and spinning around like Native Americans in a war dance for the females. Male salmon have been observed battling all day; male stag beetles frequently bear scars from the massive mandibles of other males. The struggle is often most intense among males of polygamous species, and these males often have specialized weaponry. Males of carnivorous species are already equipped with significant traits; furthermore, they and others may develop additional defensive characteristics through sexual selection, like the lion’s mane, the boar’s shoulder pad, and the male salmon's hooked jaw. The shield can be just as crucial for victory as the sword or spear.

Amongst birds, the contest is often of a more peaceful character. All those who have attended to the subject, [89]believe that there is the severest rivalry between the males of many species to attract by singing the females. The rock-thrush of Guiana, birds of Paradise, and some others, congregate; and successive males display their gorgeous plumage and perform strange antics before the females, which, standing by as spectators, at last choose the most attractive partner. Those who have closely attended to birds in confinement well know that they often take individual preferences and dislikes: thus Sir R. Heron has described how one pied peacock was eminently attractive to all his hen birds. It may appear childish to attribute any effect to such apparently weak means: I cannot here enter on the details necessary to support this view; but if man can in a short time give elegant carriage and beauty to his bantams, according to his standard of beauty, I can see no good reason to doubt that female birds, by selecting, during thousands of generations, the most melodious or beautiful males, according to their standard of beauty, might produce a marked effect. I strongly suspect that some well-known laws, with respect to the plumage of male and female birds, in comparison with the plumage of the young, can be explained on the view of plumage having been chiefly modified by sexual selection, acting when the birds have come to the breeding age or during the breeding season; the modifications thus produced being inherited at corresponding ages or seasons, either by the males alone, or by the males and females; but I have not space here to enter on this subject.

Among birds, the competition is often more gentle. Everyone who has looked into this topic believes that there's intense rivalry among males of many species to attract females through singing. The rock-thrush of Guiana, birds of Paradise, and others gather together; successive males show off their stunning feathers and perform unusual displays in front of the females, who watch as spectators and eventually choose the most appealing mate. Those who have closely observed birds in captivity know that they often have personal likes and dislikes: for instance, Sir R. Heron noted that one pied peacock was especially attractive to all his female birds. It might seem silly to credit such seemingly weak traits with any significant impact: I can't go into the details needed to back this up here; however, if humans can quickly enhance the elegance and beauty of their bantams according to their tastes, I see no reason to doubt that female birds, by selecting over thousands of generations the most melodious or beautiful males according to their standards, could create a significant change. I strongly suspect that some well-known patterns regarding the feathers of male and female birds, especially when compared to the feathers of the young, can be explained by the idea that feathers have largely been shaped by sexual selection, acting when the birds reach breeding age or during the breeding season; the changes that occur are then passed on at the corresponding ages or seasons, either by the males alone or by both males and females. But I don't have the space to delve into this topic here.

Thus it is, as I believe, that when the males and females of any animal have the same general habits of life, but differ in structure, colour, or ornament, such differences have been mainly caused by sexual selection; that is, individual males have had, in successive generations, some slight advantage over other [90]males, in their weapons, means of defence, or charms; and have transmitted these advantages to their male offspring. Yet, I would not wish to attribute all such sexual differences to this agency: for we see peculiarities arising and becoming attached to the male sex in our domestic animals (as the wattle in male carriers, horn-like protuberances in the cocks of certain fowls, &c.), which we cannot believe to be either useful to the males in battle, or attractive to the females. We see analogous cases under nature, for instance, the tuft of hair on the breast of the turkey-cock, which can hardly be either useful or ornamental to this bird;—indeed, had the tuft appeared under domestication, it would have been called a monstrosity.

I believe that when male and female animals have similar lifestyles but differ in structure, color, or decoration, these differences are primarily due to sexual selection. This means that over generations, some males had slight advantages in traits like weapons, defense mechanisms, or attractiveness, and they passed these traits on to their male offspring. However, I don't think we should attribute all sexual differences to this factor. We see unique characteristics developing in male domestic animals (like the wattle in male carriers or horn-like growths in some roosters) that don't seem to help them in fights or attract females. We can find similar examples in nature, such as the tuft of hair on a turkey's chest, which doesn't appear to be useful or decorative for the bird; in fact, if that tuft developed in domesticated animals, it would likely be seen as a deformity.

 

Illustrations of the action of Natural Selection.—In order to make it clear how, as I believe, natural selection acts, I must beg permission to give one or two imaginary illustrations. Let us take the case of a wolf, which preys on various animals, securing some by craft, some by strength, and some by fleetness; and let us suppose that the fleetest prey, a deer for instance, had from any change in the country increased in numbers, or that other prey had decreased in numbers, during that season of the year when the wolf is hardest pressed for food. I can under such circumstances see no reason to doubt that the swiftest and slimmest wolves would have the best chance of surviving, and so be preserved or selected,—provided always that they retained strength to master their prey at this or at some other period of the year, when they might be compelled to prey on other animals. I can see no more reason to doubt this, than that man can improve the fleetness of his greyhounds by careful and methodical selection, or by that unconscious selection which results from each man trying [91]to keep the best dogs without any thought of modifying the breed.

Examples of How Natural Selection Works.—To clarify how I think natural selection operates, I'd like to share a couple of hypothetical examples. Let’s consider a wolf that hunts various animals, using cunning, strength, or speed. Imagine that the fastest prey, like a deer, has increased in number due to some changes in the environment, or that other prey has decreased in number during a time of year when wolves struggle the most to find food. In this situation, I firmly believe that the fastest and leanest wolves would have the highest chances of surviving and thus would be preserved or selected—assuming they still have the strength to capture their prey at other times of the year when they might need to hunt different animals. I see no more reason to doubt this than to think that a person cannot enhance the speed of their greyhounds through careful and systematic selection, or through unconscious selection, which occurs when individuals simply try to keep the best dogs without intending to change the breed.

Even without any change in the proportional numbers of the animals on which our wolf preyed, a cub might be born with an innate tendency to pursue certain kinds of prey. Nor can this be thought very improbable; for we often observe great differences in the natural tendencies of our domestic animals; one cat, for instance, taking to catch rats, another mice; one cat, according to Mr. St. John, bringing home winged game, another hares or rabbits, and another hunting on marshy ground and almost nightly catching woodcocks or snipes. The tendency to catch rats rather than mice is known to be inherited. Now, if any slight innate change of habit or of structure benefited an individual wolf, it would have the best chance of surviving and of leaving offspring. Some of its young would probably inherit the same habits or structure, and by the repetition of this process, a new variety might be formed which would either supplant or coexist with the parent form of wolf. Or, again, the wolves inhabiting a mountainous district, and those frequenting the lowlands, would naturally be forced to hunt different prey; and from the continued preservation of the individuals best fitted for the two sites, two varieties might slowly be formed. These varieties would cross and blend where they met; but to this subject of intercrossing we shall soon have to return. I may add, that, according to Mr. Pierce, there are two varieties of the wolf inhabiting the Catskill Mountains in the United States, one with a light greyhound-like form, which pursues deer, and the other more bulky, with shorter legs, which more frequently attacks the shepherd's flocks.

Even without any change in the proportions of the animals that our wolf preyed on, a cub could be born with a natural instinct to hunt certain types of prey. This isn't very unlikely; we often notice significant differences in the natural instincts of our domestic animals. For example, one cat may focus on catching rats, while another targets mice. One cat, according to Mr. St. John, brings home birds, another catches hares or rabbits, and yet another hunts in marshy areas, almost nightly catching woodcocks or snipes. The tendency to catch rats instead of mice is known to be inherited. If even a slight innate change in behavior or structure benefited a wolf, it would have a better chance of surviving and reproducing. Some of its offspring would likely inherit the same behaviors or traits, and through this process repeating over time, a new variety could emerge that would either replace or exist alongside the original wolf. Furthermore, wolves living in mountainous areas, compared to those in lowland regions, would naturally have to hunt different prey. From the ongoing survival of the individuals best suited for each environment, two varieties could gradually develop. These varieties would interbreed where they meet, but we will need to revisit the topic of interbreeding soon. Additionally, according to Mr. Pierce, there are two varieties of wolves living in the Catskill Mountains in the United States: one with a light greyhound-like shape that hunts deer, and another that is bulkier with shorter legs, which more often attacks shepherds' flocks.

Let us now take a more complex case. Certain plants excrete a sweet juice, apparently for the sake of eliminating something injurious from their sap: this is [92]effected by glands at the base of the stipules in some Leguminosæ, and at the back of the leaf of the common laurel. This juice, though small in quantity, is greedily sought by insects. Let us now suppose a little sweet juice or nectar to be excreted by the inner bases of the petals of a flower. In this case insects in seeking the nectar would get dusted with pollen, and would certainly often transport the pollen from one flower to the stigma of another flower. The flowers of two distinct individuals of the same species would thus get crossed; and the act of crossing, we have good reason to believe (as will hereafter be more fully alluded to), would produce very vigorous seedlings, which consequently would have the best chance of flourishing and surviving. Some of these seedlings would probably inherit the nectar-excreting power. Those individual flowers which had the largest glands or nectaries, and which excreted most nectar, would be oftenest visited by insects, and would be oftenest crossed; and so in the long-run would gain the upper hand. Those flowers, also, which had their stamens and pistils placed, in relation to the size and habits of the particular insects which visited them, so as to favour in any degree the transportal of their pollen from flower to flower, would likewise be favoured or selected. We might have taken the case of insects visiting flowers for the sake of collecting pollen instead of nectar; and as pollen is formed for the sole object of fertilisation, its destruction appears a simple loss to the plant; yet if a little pollen were carried, at first occasionally and then habitually, by the pollen-devouring insects from flower to flower, and a cross thus effected, although nine-tenths of the pollen were destroyed, it might still be a great gain to the plant; and those individuals which produced more and more pollen, and had larger and larger anthers, would be selected. [93]

Let’s look at a more complicated example. Certain plants release a sweet juice, seemingly to get rid of something harmful in their sap: this happens through glands at the base of the stipules in some legumes, and at the back of the leaves of the common laurel. This juice, although limited in amount, is eagerly sought after by insects. Now, let's imagine a bit of sweet juice or nectar being secreted by the inner bases of a flower's petals. In this case, when insects go for the nectar, they get covered in pollen and would often carry the pollen from one flower to the stigma of another. Flowers from two different individuals of the same species would thus get crossed; and we have good reasons to believe (as will be discussed more later) that this crossing would produce very strong seedlings, which would then have the best chance of thriving and surviving. Some of these seedlings would likely inherit the ability to produce nectar. The individual flowers with the largest glands or nectaries, and those that released the most nectar, would be visited more frequently by insects and would be crossed more often; therefore, over time, they would dominate. Flowers that had their stamens and pistils positioned in a way that favored the size and behavior of the particular visiting insects, making it easier for their pollen to be transported from flower to flower, would also get selected. We could also consider cases where insects visit flowers to collect pollen instead of nectar; since pollen is produced solely for fertilization, its loss seems like a disadvantage for the plant; however, if a small amount of pollen were carried, initially by chance and later routinely, by pollen-eating insects from one flower to another, and cross-pollination occurs, even if ninety percent of the pollen is lost, it could still benefit the plant significantly. Consequently, individuals that produced more and larger pollen and had bigger anthers would be favored.

When our plant, by this process of the continued preservation or natural selection of more and more attractive flowers, had been rendered highly attractive to insects, they would, unintentionally on their part, regularly carry pollen from flower to flower; and that they can most effectually do this, I could easily show by many striking instances. I will give only one—not as a very striking case, but as likewise illustrating one step in the separation of the sexes of plants, presently to be alluded to. Some holly-trees bear only male flowers, which have four stamens producing a rather small quantity of pollen, and a rudimentary pistil; other holly-trees bear only female flowers; these have a full-sized pistil, and four stamens with shrivelled anthers, in which not a grain of pollen can be detected. Having found a female tree exactly sixty yards from a male tree, I put the stigmas of twenty flowers, taken from different branches, under the microscope, and on all, without exception, there were pollen-grains, and on some a profusion of pollen. As the wind had set for several days from the female to the male tree, the pollen could not thus have been carried. The weather had been cold and boisterous, and therefore not favourable to bees, nevertheless every female flower which I examined had been effectually fertilised by the bees, accidentally dusted with pollen, having flown from tree to tree in search of nectar. But to return to our imaginary case: as soon as the plant had been rendered so highly attractive to insects that pollen was regularly carried from flower to flower, another process might commence. No naturalist doubts the advantage of what has been called the "physiological division of labour;" hence we may believe that it would be advantageous to a plant to produce stamens alone in one flower or on one whole plant, and pistils alone in [94]another flower or on another plant. In plants under culture and placed under new conditions of life, sometimes the male organs and sometimes the female organs become more or less impotent; now if we suppose this to occur in ever so slight a degree under nature, then as pollen is already carried regularly from flower to flower, and as a more complete separation of the sexes of our plant would be advantageous on the principle of the division of labour, individuals with this tendency more and more increased, would be continually favoured or selected, until at last a complete separation of the sexes would be effected.

When our plant, through the ongoing preservation or natural selection of increasingly attractive flowers, became highly appealing to insects, they would unintentionally and regularly carry pollen from one flower to another. I could easily demonstrate how effectively they do this with many striking examples. I'll mention just one—not because it’s the most impressive case, but because it also illustrates a step in the separation of plant sexes, which I will refer to later. Some holly trees produce only male flowers that have four stamens and generate a small amount of pollen along with a rudimentary pistil. Other holly trees produce only female flowers, which have a fully developed pistil and four stamens with shriveled anthers, in which not a grain of pollen can be found. I discovered a female tree exactly sixty yards from a male tree and examined the stigmas of twenty flowers from different branches under a microscope. On all of them, without exception, there were pollen grains, and some had an abundance of pollen. Since the wind had been blowing towards the male tree for several days, the pollen couldn’t have been carried that way. The weather had been cold and stormy, which wouldn’t have been favorable for bees, yet every female flower I inspected had been effectively fertilized by the bees, which had accidentally picked up pollen while flying from tree to tree in search of nectar. But back to our hypothetical situation: once the plant had become so attractive to insects that the pollen was regularly transported from flower to flower, another process could begin. No naturalist doubts the benefit of what’s known as the "physiological division of labor," so we can assume it would be beneficial for a plant to produce stamens in one flower or on one whole plant and pistils in another flower or on a different plant. In cultivated plants put under new living conditions, sometimes the male or female organs become less effective. If we assume this occurs even slightly in nature, and since pollen is already being carried regularly from flower to flower, a more complete separation of the sexes in our plant would be advantageous based on the principle of division of labor. Individuals with this trait would increasingly thrive, leading to a complete separation of the sexes over time.

Let us now turn to the nectar-feeding insects in our imaginary case: we may suppose the plant of which we have been slowly increasing the nectar by continued selection, to be a common plant; and that certain insects depended in main part on its nectar for food. I could give many facts, showing how anxious bees are to save time; for instance, their habit of cutting holes and sucking the nectar at the bases of certain flowers, which they can, with a very little more trouble, enter by the mouth. Bearing such facts in mind, I can see no reason to doubt that an accidental deviation in the size and form of the body, or in the curvature and length of the proboscis, &c., far too slight to be appreciated by us, might profit a bee or other insect, so that an individual so characterised would be able to obtain its food more quickly, and so have a better chance of living and leaving descendants. Its descendants would probably inherit a tendency to a similar slight deviation of structure. The tubes of the corollas of the common red and incarnate clovers (Trifolium pratense and incarnatum) do not on a hasty glance appear to differ in length; yet the hive-bee can easily suck the nectar out of the incarnate clover, but not out of the common red [95]clover, which is visited by humble-bees alone; so that whole fields of the red clover offer in vain an abundant supply of precious nectar to the hive-bee. Thus it might be a great advantage to the hive-bee to have a slightly longer or differently constructed proboscis. On the other hand, I have found by experiment that the fertility of clover depends on bees visiting and moving parts of the corolla, so as to push the pollen on to the stigmatic surface. Hence, again, if humble-bees were to become rare in any country, it might be a great advantage to the red clover to have a shorter or more deeply divided tube to its corolla, so that the hive-bee could visit its flowers. Thus I can understand how a flower and a bee might slowly become, either simultaneously or one after the other, modified and adapted in the most perfect manner to each other, by the continued preservation of individuals presenting mutual and slightly favourable deviations of structure.

Let’s now look at the nectar-feeding insects in our hypothetical scenario: we might assume that the plant we’ve been gradually enhancing with nectar through careful selection is a common one, and that certain insects mainly rely on its nectar for food. I could provide numerous examples showing how eager bees are to save time; for instance, their behavior of cutting holes to suck nectar from the bases of certain flowers, which they could enter by mouth with just a little more effort. Keeping such facts in mind, I see no reason to doubt that a random change in body size and shape, or in the curvature and length of the proboscis, etc., which is too minor for us to notice, could benefit a bee or another insect. An individual with this slight change would be able to gather food more efficiently, giving it a better chance to survive and reproduce. Its offspring would likely inherit a tendency for a similar small structural change. The tubes of the corollas of common red and incarnate clovers (Trifolium pratense and incarnatum) don’t immediately seem to differ in length; however, the hive-bee can easily suck nectar from the incarnate clover, but not from the common red clover, which is only visited by humble-bees. This means that entire fields of red clover offer an abundant supply of valuable nectar to the hive-bee in vain. Thus, having a slightly longer or differently shaped proboscis could be a significant advantage for the hive-bee. On the other hand, I have experimentally found that the fertility of clover relies on bees visiting and moving parts of the corolla to transfer the pollen onto the stigmatic surface. Consequently, if humble-bees were to become rare in any region, it might be advantageous for red clover to have a shorter or more deeply divided tube in its corolla, allowing hive-bees to visit its flowers. Therefore, I can see how a flower and a bee might slowly evolve over time, either together or one after the other, becoming perfectly adapted to each other through the continued survival of individuals with mutually beneficial and slight structural variations.

I am well aware that this doctrine of natural selection, exemplified in the above imaginary instances, is open to the same objections which were at first urged against Sir Charles Lyell's noble views on "the modern changes of the earth, as illustrative of geology;" but we now seldom hear the action, for instance, of the coast-waves, called a trifling and insignificant cause, when applied to the excavation of gigantic valleys or to the formation of the longest lines of inland cliffs. Natural selection can act only by the preservation and accumulation of infinitesimally small inherited modifications, each profitable to the preserved being; and as modern geology has almost banished such views as the excavation of a great valley by a single diluvial wave, so will natural selection, if it be a true principle, banish the belief of the continued creation of new organic [96]beings, or of any great and sudden modification in their structure.

I understand that this idea of natural selection, illustrated in the examples above, faces the same criticisms that were initially made against Sir Charles Lyell's important views on "the modern changes of the earth, as illustrative of geology." However, we rarely hear the action of coast-waves described as a trivial and insignificant cause when it comes to carving out massive valleys or creating the longest stretches of inland cliffs. Natural selection operates only through the preservation and accumulation of tiny inherited changes, each beneficial to the surviving organism; and just as modern geology has largely dismissed the notion of a great valley being formed by a single flood wave, so too will natural selection, if it is a valid principle, eliminate the belief in the ongoing creation of new living beings or any significant and abrupt changes in their structure.

 

On the Intercrossing of Individuals.—I must here introduce a short digression. In the case of animals and plants with separated sexes, it is of course obvious that two individuals must always (with the exception of the curious and not well-understood cases of parthenogenesis) unite for each birth; but in the case of hermaphrodites this is far from obvious. Nevertheless I am strongly inclined to believe that with all hermaphrodites two individuals, either occasionally or habitually, concur for the reproduction of their kind. This view was first suggested by Andrew Knight. We shall presently see its importance; but I must here treat the subject with extreme brevity, though I have the materials prepared for an ample discussion. All vertebrate animals, all insects, and some other large groups of animals, pair for each birth. Modern research has much diminished the number of supposed hermaphrodites, and of real hermaphrodites a large number pair; that is, two individuals regularly unite for reproduction, which is all that concerns us. But still there are many hermaphrodite animals which certainly do not habitually pair, and a vast majority of plants are hermaphrodites. What reason, it may be asked, is there for supposing in these cases that two individuals ever concur in reproduction? As it is impossible here to enter on details, I must trust to some general considerations alone.

On the Intercrossing of Individuals.—I need to take a moment for a brief digression. In animals and plants with separate sexes, it's clear that two individuals must always come together for each birth (except for the unique and not well-understood cases of parthenogenesis); however, this is not as obvious with hermaphrodites. Still, I strongly believe that, with all hermaphrodites, two individuals, either occasionally or regularly, come together for the reproduction of their species. This idea was first put forward by Andrew Knight. We'll see how important this is shortly, but I must keep this discussion very brief, even though I have plenty of materials prepared for a more thorough exploration. All vertebrate animals, all insects, and some other major animal groups mate for each birth. Recent research has greatly reduced the number of supposed hermaphrodites, and among the real hermaphrodites, many do pair; that is, two individuals regularly come together for reproduction, which is our primary focus. However, there are still many hermaphrodite animals that clearly do not regularly mate, and a vast majority of plants are hermaphrodites. One might ask, what reason is there to believe that in these cases, two individuals ever come together for reproduction? Since it's impossible to delve into the details here, I'll rely on some general considerations instead.

In the first place, I have collected so large a body of facts, showing, in accordance with the almost universal belief of breeders, that with animals and plants a cross between different varieties, or between individuals of the same variety but of another strain, gives vigour and [97]fertility to the offspring; and on the other hand, that close interbreeding diminishes vigour and fertility; that these facts alone incline me to believe that it is a general law of nature (utterly ignorant though we be of the meaning of the law) that no organic being self-fertilises itself for an eternity of generations; but that a cross with another individual is occasionally—perhaps at very long intervals—indispensable.

First, I've gathered a substantial amount of evidence that supports the almost universal belief among breeders that crossbreeding different varieties, or even individuals of the same variety but from different strains, provides strength and fertility to the offspring. Conversely, close interbreeding reduces strength and fertility. These facts lead me to believe that there is a general law of nature—though we may be completely unaware of its true meaning—that no living organism can self-fertilize indefinitely. Instead, a cross with another individual is sometimes essential, perhaps occurring only after very long intervals.

On the belief that this is a law of nature, we can, I think, understand several large classes of facts, such as the following, which on any other view are inexplicable. Every hybridizer knows how unfavourable exposure to wet is to the fertilisation of a flower, yet what a multitude of flowers have their anthers and stigmas fully exposed to the weather! but if an occasional cross be indispensable, the fullest freedom for the entrance of pollen from another individual will explain this state of exposure, more especially as the plant's own anthers and pistil generally stand so close together that self-fertilisation seems almost inevitable. Many flowers, on the other hand, have their organs of fructification closely enclosed, as in the great papilionaceous or pea-family; but in several, perhaps in all, such flowers, there is a very curious adaptation between the structure of the flower and the manner in which bees suck the nectar; for, in doing this, they either push the flower's own pollen on the stigma, or bring pollen from another flower. So necessary are the visits of bees to papilionaceous flowers, that I have found, by experiments published elsewhere, that their fertility is greatly diminished if these visits be prevented. Now, it is scarcely possible that bees should fly from flower to flower, and not carry pollen from one to the other, to the great good, as I believe, of the plant. Bees will act like a camel-hair pencil, and it is quite sufficient just to touch the anthers of [98]one flower and then the stigma of another with the same brush to ensure fertilisation; but it must not be supposed that bees would thus produce a multitude of hybrids between distinct species; for if you bring on the same brush a plant's own pollen and pollen from another species, the former will have such a prepotent effect, that it will invariably and completely destroy, as has been shown by Gärtner, any influence from the foreign pollen.

Based on the belief that this is a natural law, I think we can understand several large groups of facts, like the following, which are hard to explain otherwise. Every hybridizer knows how bad wet conditions are for flower fertilization, yet there are so many flowers with their anthers and stigmas fully exposed to the elements! However, if occasional cross-fertilization is essential, the need for pollen from another individual explains this state of exposure, especially since the plant's own anthers and pistil are usually so close that self-fertilization seems almost unavoidable. Many flowers, on the other hand, have their reproductive organs tightly enclosed, like those in the pea family; but in many, if not all, of these flowers, there is a fascinating adaptation between the flower's structure and how bees gather nectar. When bees collect nectar, they either deposit the flower's own pollen onto the stigma or bring in pollen from another flower. Bees are so crucial for the reproduction of pea flowers that, as I’ve found through experiments published elsewhere, their fertility plummets when these visits are prevented. Now, it seems unlikely that bees would fly from flower to flower without transferring pollen between them, which I believe greatly benefits the plant. Bees act like a fine paintbrush; it’s enough to touch the anthers of one flower and then the stigma of another with the same brush to ensure fertilization. However, it shouldn't be assumed that bees would create many hybrids between different species this way. If you mix a plant's own pollen with pollen from another species on the same brush, the plant's own pollen will be so overwhelmingly dominant that it will completely eliminate any effect from the foreign pollen, as Gärtner has demonstrated.

When the stamens of a flower suddenly spring towards the pistil, or slowly move one after the other towards it, the contrivance seems adapted solely to ensure self-fertilisation; and no doubt it is useful for this end: but, the agency of insects is often required to cause the stamens to spring forward, as Kölreuter has shown to be the case with the barberry; and in this very genus, which seems to have a special contrivance for self-fertilisation, it is well known that if closely-allied forms or varieties are planted near each other, it is hardly possible to raise pure seedlings, so largely do they naturally cross. In many other cases, far from there being any aids for self-fertilisation, there are special contrivances, as I could show from the writings of C. C. Sprengel and from my own observations, which effectually prevent the stigma receiving pollen from its own flower: for instance, in Lobelia fulgens, there is a really beautiful and elaborate contrivance by which every one of the infinitely numerous pollen-granules are swept out of the conjoined anthers of each flower, before the stigma of that individual flower is ready to receive them; and as this flower is never visited, at least in my garden, by insects, it never sets a seed, though by placing pollen from one flower on the stigma of another, I raised plenty of seedlings; and whilst another species of Lobelia growing close by, which is visited by bees, seeds freely. In very many other cases, though there [99]be no special mechanical contrivance to prevent the stigma of a flower receiving its own pollen, yet, as C. C. Sprengel has shown, and as I can confirm, either the anthers burst before the stigma is ready for fertilisation, or the stigma is ready before the pollen of that flower is ready, so that these plants have in fact separated sexes, and must habitually be crossed. How strange are these facts! How strange that the pollen and stigmatic surface of the same flower, though placed so close together, as if for the very purpose of self-fertilisation, should in so many cases be mutually useless to each other! How simply are these facts explained on the view of an occasional cross with a distinct individual being advantageous or indispensable!

When the stamens of a flower suddenly spring toward the pistil, or move slowly one after the other towards it, it seems like this mechanism is designed just to ensure self-fertilization; and it certainly helps with that. However, insects are often needed to make the stamens spring forward, as Kölreuter demonstrated with the barberry. In this same genus, which appears to have a special mechanism for self-fertilization, it's well known that if closely related forms or varieties are planted near each other, it's nearly impossible to produce pure seedlings due to significant natural cross-pollination. In many other cases, instead of helping self-fertilization, there are specific mechanisms—something I can illustrate using the writings of C. C. Sprengel and my own observations—that effectively prevent the stigma from receiving pollen from its own flower. For example, in Lobelia fulgens, there's a really beautiful and complex mechanism that sweeps out every single pollen grain from the joined anthers of each flower before that flower's stigma is ready to receive them. Since this flower is never visited by insects in my garden, it never produces seeds, although by placing pollen from one flower onto the stigma of another, I was able to produce plenty of seedlings; while another Lobelia species nearby, which is visited by bees, seeds freely. In many other cases, even without a specific mechanical feature to prevent a flower's stigma from getting its own pollen, as C. C. Sprengel showed and I can confirm, either the anthers release their pollen before the stigma is ready to be fertilized, or the stigma is ready before the pollen of that flower is ready. This means these plants have essentially separated sexes and must habitually cross-pollinate. How strange these facts are! How odd that the pollen and the stigma of the same flower, though so close together, as if for the express purpose of self-fertilization, can be ineffective to each other in so many situations! These facts are simply explained by the idea that occasional crossing with a different individual is beneficial or even necessary!

If several varieties of the cabbage, radish, onion, and of some other plants, be allowed to seed near each other, a large majority, as I have found, of the seedlings thus raised will turn out mongrels: for instance, I raised 233 seedling cabbages from some plants of different varieties growing near each other, and of these only 78 were true to their kind, and some even of these were not perfectly true. Yet the pistil of each cabbage-flower is surrounded not only by its own six stamens, but by those of the many other flowers on the same plant. How, then, comes it that such a vast number of the seedlings are mongrelized? I suspect that it must arise from the pollen of a distinct variety having a prepotent effect over a flower's own pollen; and that this is part of the general law of good being derived from the intercrossing of distinct individuals of the same species. When distinct species are crossed the case is directly the reverse, for a plant's own pollen is always prepotent over foreign pollen; but to this subject we shall return in a future chapter.

If different types of cabbage, radish, onion, and some other plants are allowed to seed close to each other, I've found that a large majority of the resulting seedlings will be mixed breeds. For example, I grew 233 seedling cabbages from some plants of different varieties growing near each other, and only 78 of these were true to their type, with some of these not being perfectly true either. Still, the pistil of each cabbage flower is surrounded not just by its own six stamens, but by the stamens of many other flowers on the same plant. So, how is it that so many of the seedlings end up being hybrids? I suspect this happens because the pollen from a different variety tends to overpower the flower's own pollen; this seems to be part of the general principle that good results come from mixing distinct individuals of the same species. When different species are crossed, however, the situation is the opposite, as a plant's own pollen generally takes precedence over foreign pollen; but we'll revisit this topic in a future chapter.

In the case of a gigantic tree covered with [100]innumerable flowers, it may be objected that pollen could seldom be carried from tree to tree, and at most only from flower to flower on the same tree, and that flowers on the same tree can be considered as distinct individuals only in a limited sense. I believe this objection to be valid, but that nature has largely provided against it by giving to trees a strong tendency to bear flowers with separated sexes. When the sexes are separated, although the male and female flowers may be produced on the same tree, we can see that pollen must be regularly carried from flower to flower; and this will give a better chance of pollen being occasionally carried from tree to tree. That trees belonging to all Orders have their sexes more often separated than other plants, I find to be the case in this country; and at my request Dr. Hooker tabulated the trees of New Zealand, and Dr. Asa Gray those of the United States, and the result was as I anticipated. On the other hand, Dr. Hooker has recently informed me that he finds that the rule does not hold in Australia; and I have made these few remarks on the sexes of trees simply to call attention to the subject.

In the case of a massive tree covered with [100] countless flowers, it can be argued that pollen rarely moves from tree to tree, and at best only from flower to flower on the same tree. Additionally, flowers on the same tree can only be thought of as separate individuals to a limited extent. I think this argument is valid, but nature has mostly addressed it by making trees prone to produce flowers with separated sexes. When the sexes are separate, even if male and female flowers appear on the same tree, pollen must regularly be transferred from flower to flower; this increases the likelihood of pollen being occasionally transferred from one tree to another. I’ve noticed that trees from all orders tend to separate their sexes more often than other plants here in this country. At my request, Dr. Hooker compiled a list of the trees in New Zealand, and Dr. Asa Gray did the same for the United States, confirming my expectations. However, Dr. Hooker recently told me that this pattern doesn’t apply in Australia, and I’ve made these brief comments on the sexes of trees just to highlight the topic.

Turning for a very brief space to animals: on the land there are some hermaphrodites, as land-mollusca and earth-worms; but these all pair. As yet I have not found a single case of a terrestrial animal which fertilises itself. We can understand this remarkable fact, which offers so strong a contrast with terrestrial plants, on the view of an occasional cross being indispensable, by considering the medium in which terrestrial animals live, and the nature of the fertilising element; for we know of no means, analogous to the action of insects and of the wind in the case of plants, by which an occasional cross could be effected with terrestrial animals without the concurrence of two individuals. Of aquatic animals, there are many self-fertilising hermaphrodites; but here [101]currents in the water offer an obvious means for an occasional cross. And, as in the case of flowers, I have as yet failed, after consultation with one of the highest authorities, namely, Professor Huxley, to discover a single case of an hermaphrodite animal with the organs of reproduction so perfectly enclosed within the body, that access from without and the occasional influence of a distinct individual can be shown to be physically impossible. Cirripedes long appeared to me to present a case of very great difficulty under this point of view; but I have been enabled, by a fortunate chance, elsewhere to prove that two individuals, though both are self-fertilising hermaphrodites, do sometimes cross.

Turning for a brief moment to animals: on land, there are some hermaphrodites, like land mollusks and earthworms; but they all pair up. So far, I haven’t found a single case of a land animal that can fertilize itself. We can understand this interesting fact, which contrasts sharply with land plants, by considering that an occasional cross is necessary, due to the environment in which land animals live and the nature of the fertilizing agent; because we know of no means, similar to the role of insects or wind in plants, that allows for occasional crosses among land animals without involving two individuals. In contrast, there are many self-fertilizing hermaphrodites among aquatic animals; here, the water currents provide a clear way for an occasional cross. And, like with flowers, I still haven't been able to find a single case of a hermaphrodite animal whose reproductive organs are so completely enclosed within the body that access from outside and the occasional influence of another individual is physically impossible, even after consulting an expert, namely, Professor Huxley. For a long time, I thought cirripedes presented a very difficult case regarding this perspective; however, I have recently shown, by a fortunate discovery, that two individuals, even though both are self-fertilizing hermaphrodites, can sometimes cross.

It must have struck most naturalists as a strange anomaly that, in the case of both animals and plants, species of the same family and even of the same genus, though agreeing closely with each other in almost their whole organisation, yet are not rarely, some of them hermaphrodites, and some of them unisexual. But if, in fact, all hermaphrodites do occasionally intercross with other individuals, the difference between hermaphrodites and unisexual species, as far as function is concerned, becomes very small.

It must have seemed odd to many naturalists that, in both animals and plants, species within the same family and even the same genus—despite being very similar in almost all aspects of their structure—are often either hermaphrodites or unisexual. However, if all hermaphrodites sometimes breed with other individuals, the functional difference between hermaphrodites and unisexual species becomes quite minimal.

From these several considerations and from the many special facts which I have collected, but which I am not here able to give, I am strongly inclined to suspect that, both in the vegetable and animal kingdoms, an occasional intercross with a distinct individual is a law of nature. I am well aware that there are, on this view, many cases of difficulty, some of which I am trying to investigate. Finally then, we may conclude that in many organic beings, a cross between two individuals is an obvious necessity for each birth; in many others it occurs perhaps only at long intervals; but in none, as I suspect, can self-fertilisation go on for perpetuity. [102]

Based on various considerations and the numerous specific facts I've gathered, which I can't share here, I strongly suspect that, in both plant and animal life, occasionally mixing with a different individual is a natural law. I know there are many challenging cases that come with this perspective, and some I'm currently trying to explore. Ultimately, we can conclude that in many living organisms, a cross between two individuals is essential for every birth; in many others, it might happen only after long intervals. However, I suspect that self-fertilization cannot continue indefinitely. [102]

 

Circumstances favourable to Natural Selection.—This is an extremely intricate subject. A large amount of inheritable and diversified variability is favourable, but I believe mere individual differences suffice for the work. A large number of individuals, by giving a better chance for the appearance within any given period of profitable variations, will compensate for a lesser amount of variability in each individual, and is, I believe, an extremely important element of success. Though nature grants vast periods of time for the work of natural selection, she does not grant an indefinite period; for as all organic beings are striving, it may be said, to seize on each place in the economy of nature, if any one species does not become modified and improved in a corresponding degree with its competitors, it will soon be exterminated.

Conditions Favorable to Natural Selection. — This is a very complex topic. A significant amount of inheritable and varied traits is beneficial, but I think just individual differences are enough for the process. Having a large number of individuals increases the chances of beneficial variations occurring within any given time frame, which can make up for less variability in each individual, and I believe this is a crucial factor for success. While nature allows plenty of time for natural selection to operate, it does not provide unlimited time; since all living beings are competing to occupy their niche in nature, if a species does not adapt and improve at a similar rate as its competitors, it will quickly become extinct.

In man's methodical selection, a breeder selects for some definite object, and free intercrossing will wholly stop his work. But when many men, without intending to alter the breed, have a nearly common standard of perfection, and all try to get and breed from the best animals, much improvement and modification surely but slowly follow from this unconscious process of selection, notwithstanding a large amount of crossing with inferior animals. Thus it will be in nature; for within a confined area, with some place in its polity not so perfectly occupied as might be, natural selection will always tend to preserve all the individuals varying in the right direction, though in different degrees, so as better to fill up the unoccupied place. But if the area be large, its several districts will almost certainly present different conditions of life; and then if natural selection be modifying and improving a species in the several districts, there will be intercrossing with the other individuals of the same species on the confines of each. And in [103]this case the effects of intercrossing can hardly be counterbalanced by natural selection always tending to modify all the individuals in each district in exactly the same manner to the conditions of each; for in a continuous area, the physical conditions at least will generally graduate away insensibly from one district to another. The intercrossing will most affect those animals which unite for each birth, which wander much, and which do not breed at a very quick rate. Hence in animals of this nature, for instance in birds, varieties will generally be confined to separated countries; and this I believe to be the case. In hermaphrodite organisms which cross only occasionally, and likewise in animals which unite for each birth, but which wander little and which can increase at a very rapid rate, a new and improved variety might be quickly formed on any one spot, and might there maintain itself in a body, so that whatever intercrossing took place would be chiefly between the individuals of the same new variety. A local variety when once thus formed might subsequently slowly spread to other districts. On the above principle, nurserymen always prefer getting seed from a large body of plants of the same variety, as the chance of intercrossing with other varieties is thus lessened.

In a breeder’s careful choice, they select for a specific goal, and free interbreeding will completely halt their progress. However, when many people, without meaning to change the breed, have a nearly shared standard of excellence and all aim to breed from the best animals, significant improvement and changes will gradually occur from this unintentional process of selection, despite a considerable amount of mixing with lower-quality animals. This is how things will be in nature; within a limited area, where some part of its ecosystem isn’t fully occupied as it could be, natural selection will always work to preserve all individuals varying in the right direction, even if to different extents, to better fill the unoccupied niche. If the area is large, its various regions will likely have different life conditions; then, if natural selection is modifying and enhancing a species across these regions, there will be interbreeding with other individuals of the same species on the borders of each. In this situation, the effects of interbreeding can hardly be offset by natural selection, which always tends to modify all individuals in each region in exactly the same way according to each condition, since in a continuous area, the physical conditions will usually shift smoothly from one region to another. Interbreeding will most impact those animals that mate for each birth, which roam widely, and which don’t reproduce very quickly. Therefore, in such animals, for instance, in birds, varieties will often be limited to isolated regions; I believe this to be true. In hermaphrodite organisms that only occasionally cross, and also in animals that mate for each birth but wander little and can reproduce rapidly, a new and improved variety could quickly form in a specific location and manage to sustain itself as a group, so that any interbreeding that occurs would mainly be among individuals of that new variety. Once formed, a local variety could slowly spread to other regions. Following this principle, nurserymen prefer to get seeds from a large group of the same variety, as this reduces the likelihood of interbreeding with other varieties.

Even in the case of slow-breeding animals, which unite for each birth, we must not overrate the effects of intercrosses in retarding natural selection; for I can bring a considerable catalogue of facts, showing that within the same area, varieties of the same animal can long remain distinct, from haunting different stations, from breeding at slightly different seasons, or from varieties of the same kind preferring to pair together.

Even with slow-breeding animals that come together for each birth, we shouldn't overestimate how much interbreeding affects natural selection. I can provide a significant list of examples showing that within the same area, different varieties of the same animal can stay distinct for a long time due to living in different habitats, breeding at slightly different times of the year, or because certain varieties of the same species prefer to mate with each other.

Intercrossing plays a very important part in nature in keeping the individuals of the same species, or of the same variety, true and uniform in character. It will [104]obviously thus act far more efficiently with those animals which unite for each birth; but I have already attempted to show that we have reason to believe that occasional intercrosses take place with all animals and with all plants. Even if these take place only at long intervals, I am convinced that the young thus produced will gain so much in vigour and fertility over the offspring from long-continued self-fertilisation, that they will have a better chance of surviving and propagating their kind; and thus, in the long run, the influence of intercrosses, even at rare intervals, will be great. If there exist organic beings which never intercross, uniformity of character can be retained amongst them, as long as their conditions of life remain the same, only through the principle of inheritance, and through natural selection destroying any which depart from the proper type; but if their conditions of life change and they undergo modification, uniformity of character can be given to their modified offspring, solely by natural selection preserving the same favourable variations.

Interbreeding plays a crucial role in nature by keeping members of the same species or variety consistent and uniform in their characteristics. It clearly has a greater impact on those animals that mate and reproduce consistently; however, I’ve already suggested that occasional interbreeding occurs in all animals and plants. Even if these happen infrequently, I believe that the offspring produced will have significantly more vigor and fertility compared to those that result from prolonged self-fertilization, giving them a better chance of surviving and reproducing. Over time, the effects of interbreeding, even if it occurs rarely, will be substantial. If there are living organisms that never interbreed, they can maintain uniformity in their traits as long as their living conditions remain unchanged, purely through inheritance, while natural selection will eliminate those that deviate from the established type. But if their living conditions change and they adapt, uniformity in traits for their modified offspring can only be achieved through natural selection preserving beneficial variations.

Isolation, also, is an important element in the process of natural selection. In a confined or isolated area, if not very large, the organic and inorganic conditions of life will generally be in a great degree uniform; so that natural selection will tend to modify all the individuals of a varying species throughout the area in the same manner in relation to the same conditions. Intercrosses, also, with the individuals of the same species, which otherwise would have inhabited the surrounding and differently circumstanced districts, will be prevented. But isolation probably acts more efficiently in checking the immigration of better adapted organisms, after any physical change, such as of climate or elevation of the land, &c.; and thus new places in the natural economy of the country are left open for the old inhabitants to struggle for, and become adapted to, through [105]modifications in their structure and constitution. Lastly, isolation, by checking immigration and consequently competition, will give time for any new variety to be slowly improved; and this may sometimes be of importance in the production of new species. If, however, an isolated area be very small, either from being surrounded by barriers, or from having very peculiar physical conditions, the total number of the individuals supported on it will necessarily be very small; and fewness of individuals will greatly retard the production of new species through natural selection, by decreasing the chance of the appearance of favourable variations.

Isolation is also a key factor in natural selection. In a small, confined area, the living conditions, both organic and inorganic, tend to be quite uniform. Because of this, natural selection will likely affect all individuals of a varying species in the same way regarding those conditions. Additionally, interbreeding with individuals of the same species, who would otherwise have lived in different environments, will be halted. However, isolation probably plays a bigger role in preventing the influx of better-adapted organisms after any physical changes, like shifts in climate or changes in land elevation. This leaves new opportunities in the natural ecosystem for the existing inhabitants to compete for and adapt to through modifications in their structure and constitution. Lastly, isolation, by limiting immigration and thus competition, allows time for any new variety to gradually improve, which can be significant in creating new species. If, though, an isolated area is very small, whether due to barriers or unique physical conditions, the total number of individuals it can support will also be very small. This low number of individuals will slow down the emergence of new species through natural selection by reducing the chances of favorable variations appearing.

If we turn to nature to test the truth of these remarks, and look at any small isolated area, such as an oceanic island, although the total number of the species inhabiting it, will be found to be small, as we shall see in our chapter on geographical distribution; yet of these species a very large proportion are endemic,—that is, have been produced there, and nowhere else. Hence an oceanic island at first sight seems to have been highly favourable for the production of new species. But we may thus greatly deceive ourselves, for to ascertain whether a small isolated area, or a large open area like a continent, has been most favourable for the production of new organic forms, we ought to make the comparison within equal times; and this we are incapable of doing.

If we look to nature to test the validity of these statements and examine a small isolated area, like an oceanic island, we will find that while the total number of species living there is small, as we will discuss in our chapter on geographical distribution, a significant proportion of these species are endemic—meaning they originated there and nowhere else. Therefore, at first glance, an oceanic island appears to be particularly conducive to the creation of new species. However, we could easily misinterpret this because to determine whether a small isolated area or a large open area like a continent has been more favorable for the emergence of new organic forms, we need to compare them over equal time periods, which we are unable to do.

Although I do not doubt that isolation is of considerable importance in the production of new species, on the whole I am inclined to believe that largeness of area is of more importance, more especially in the production of species, which will prove capable of enduring for a long period, and of spreading widely. Throughout a great and open area, not only will there be a better chance of favourable variations arising from the large number of individuals of the same species [106]there supported, but the conditions of life are infinitely complex from the large number of already existing species; and if some of these many species become modified and improved, others will have to be improved in a corresponding degree or they will be exterminated. Each new form, also, as soon as it has been much improved, will be able to spread over the open and continuous area, and will thus come into competition with many others. Hence more new places will be formed, and the competition to fill them will be more severe, on a large than on a small and isolated area. Moreover, great areas, though now continuous, owing to oscillations of level, will often have recently existed in a broken condition, so that the good effects of isolation will generally, to a certain extent, have concurred. Finally, I conclude that, although small isolated areas probably have been in some respects highly favourable for the production of new species, yet that the course of modification will generally have been more rapid on large areas; and what is more important, that the new forms produced on large areas, which already have been victorious over many competitors, will be those that will spread most widely, will give rise to most new varieties and species, and will thus play an important part in the changing history of the organic world.

Although I don't doubt that isolation plays a significant role in creating new species, I generally believe that the size of the area is even more important. This is especially true for species that can survive for a long time and spread widely. In a vast and open area, there's a better chance for favorable variations to emerge among the many individuals of the same species [106]supported there. The life conditions are incredibly complex due to the many existing species, and if some of these species evolve and improve, others will need to adapt correspondingly or they will go extinct. Additionally, as each new form improves, it will be able to spread across the open and continuous landscape, facing competition from many others. This means that more new niches will be created, and the competition to occupy them will be more intense in larger areas than in smaller, isolated ones. Furthermore, large areas, even if they are currently continuous, have likely been fragmented in the past due to changes in elevation, so the benefits of isolation will generally have played a role to some extent. In conclusion, while small isolated areas may have been favorable for developing new species in some ways, the process of evolution is typically faster in larger areas. More importantly, the new forms that emerge in larger areas, having already overcome numerous competitors, will be the ones that spread the most, leading to the creation of many new varieties and species, thus significantly influencing the evolving story of life on Earth.

We can, perhaps, on these views, understand some facts which will be again alluded to in our chapter on geographical distribution; for instance, that the productions of the smaller continent of Australia have formerly yielded, and apparently are now yielding, before those of the larger Europæo-Asiatic area. Thus, also, it is that continental productions have everywhere become so largely naturalised on islands. On a small island, the race for life will have been less severe, and there will have been less modification and less [107]extermination. Hence, perhaps, it comes that the flora of Madeira, according to Oswald Heer, resembles the extinct tertiary flora of Europe. All fresh-water basins, taken together, make a small area compared with that of the sea or of the land; and, consequently, the competition between fresh-water productions will have been less severe than elsewhere; new forms will have been more slowly formed, and old forms more slowly exterminated. And it is in fresh water that we find seven genera of Ganoid fishes, remnants of a once preponderant order: and in fresh water we find some of the most anomalous forms now known in the world, as the Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren, which, like fossils, connect to a certain extent orders now widely separated in the natural scale. These anomalous forms may almost be called living fossils; they have endured to the present day, from having inhabited a confined area, and from having thus been exposed to less severe competition.

We can, perhaps, based on these views, understand some facts that will be mentioned again in our chapter on geographical distribution; for example, that the resources of the smaller continent of Australia have historically yielded, and seemingly still are yielding, advantages over those of the larger Europæo-Asiatic region. Similarly, it is that continental resources have largely become naturalized on islands everywhere. On a small island, the struggle for survival is generally less intense, leading to less modification and less extinction. Therefore, it may be that the flora of Madeira, according to Oswald Heer, resembles the extinct tertiary flora of Europe. When you consider all freshwater ecosystems together, they cover a much smaller area compared to the sea or land; because of this, the competition among freshwater species has been less intense than in other environments; new species have formed more slowly, and old species have been driven to extinction more gradually. It is in freshwater that we find seven genera of Ganoid fishes, remnants of a once dominant order: and in freshwater, we also discover some of the most unusual forms known today, like the Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren, which, like fossils, link together orders that are now widely separated in the natural classification. These unusual forms can almost be considered living fossils; they have survived to the present day because they lived in a restricted area and thus faced less intense competition.

To sum up the circumstances favourable and unfavourable to natural selection, as far as the extreme intricacy of the subject permits. I conclude, looking to the future, that for terrestrial productions a large continental area, which will probably undergo many oscillations of level, and which consequently will exist for long periods in a broken condition, is the most favourable for the production of many new forms of life, likely to endure long and to spread widely. For the area first existed as a continent, and the inhabitants, at this period numerous in individuals and kinds, will have been subjected to very severe competition. When converted by subsidence into large separate islands, there will still exist many individuals of the same species on each island: intercrossing on the confines of the range of each species will thus be checked: after physical changes of any kind, immigration will be [108]prevented, so that new places in the polity of each island will have to be filled up by modifications of the old inhabitants; and time will be allowed for the varieties in each to become well modified and perfected. When, by renewed elevation, the islands shall be re-converted into a continental area, there will again be severe competition: the most favoured or improved varieties will be enabled to spread: there will be much extinction of the less improved forms, and the relative proportional numbers of the various inhabitants of the renewed continent will again be changed; and again there will be a fair field for natural selection to improve still further the inhabitants, and thus produce new species.

To sum up the factors that help or hinder natural selection, as much as this complex topic allows, I conclude that, looking ahead, a large continental area on land that will likely experience many changes in elevation, and thus will exist for long times in a fragmented state, is the most favorable for creating many new forms of life that are likely to endure and spread widely. This area initially existed as a continent, and the organisms living there at that time, which were numerous in both individuals and species, would have faced intense competition. Once transformed into large separate islands due to subsidence, many individuals of the same species will still exist on each island: crossbreeding at the edges of each species' range will be limited. After any physical changes, immigration will be prevented, so new roles in the ecosystems of each island will need to be filled by adaptations of the existing inhabitants; this will allow time for the varieties in each island to become well adapted and refined. When, due to renewed elevation, the islands turn back into a continental area, there will again be intense competition: the most favored or improved varieties will be able to spread; there will be significant extinction of the less improved forms, and the relative numbers of the various inhabitants of the renewed continent will change again; once more, there will be an opportunity for natural selection to further improve the inhabitants, leading to the emergence of new species.

That natural selection will always act with extreme slowness, I fully admit. Its action depends on there being places in the polity of nature, which can be better occupied by some of the inhabitants of the country undergoing modification of some kind. The existence of such places will often depend on physical changes, which are generally very slow, and on the immigration of better adapted forms having been checked. But the action of natural selection will probably still oftener depend on some of the inhabitants becoming slowly modified; the mutual relations of many of the other inhabitants being thus disturbed. Nothing can be effected, unless favourable variations occur, and variation itself is apparently always a very slow process. The process will often be greatly retarded by free intercrossing. Many will exclaim that these several causes are amply sufficient wholly to stop the action of natural selection. I do not believe so. On the other hand, I do believe that natural selection always acts very slowly, often only at long intervals of time, and generally on only a very few of the inhabitants of the same region at the same time. I further believe, that this very slow, [109]intermittent action of natural selection accords perfectly well with what geology tells us of the rate and manner at which the inhabitants of this world have changed.

I fully acknowledge that natural selection always operates very slowly. Its effectiveness relies on the availability of niches in nature that can be better occupied by some of the local inhabitants undergoing some kind of change. The existence of such niches often depends on gradual physical changes and on the halt of better-adapted species immigrating. However, the impact of natural selection likely depends more on some local inhabitants slowly changing, which disturbs the interactions among many other species. Nothing can happen without favorable variations, and variation itself seems to be a very slow process. This process is often significantly slowed down by free interbreeding. Many might argue that these various factors are enough to completely halt natural selection. I disagree. Instead, I believe that natural selection always acts very slowly, often only over long periods, and usually affects only a small number of species in the same area at the same time. I also believe that this very slow, intermittent action of natural selection aligns perfectly with what geology tells us about the pace and manner in which the inhabitants of this world have evolved.

Slow though the process of selection may be, if feeble man can do much by his powers of artificial selection, I can see no limit to the amount of change, to the beauty and infinite complexity of the coadaptations between all organic beings, one with another and with their physical conditions of life, which may be effected in the long course of time by nature's power of selection.

Slow as the selection process might be, if weak humans can achieve a lot through artificial selection, I see no limits to the changes, beauty, and endless complexity of how all living things adapt to each other and their physical environments, which could be accomplished over a long period by nature’s power of selection.

 

Extinction.—This subject will be more fully discussed in our chapter on Geology; but it must be here alluded to from being intimately connected with natural selection. Natural selection acts solely through the preservation of variations in some way advantageous, which consequently endure. But as from the high geometrical ratio of increase of all organic beings, each area is already fully stocked with inhabitants, it follows that as each selected and favoured form increases in number, so will the less favoured forms decrease and become rare. Rarity, as geology tells us, is the precursor to extinction. We can, also, see that any form represented by few individuals will, during fluctuations in the seasons or in the number of its enemies, run a good chance of utter extinction. But we may go further than this; for as new forms are continually and slowly being produced, unless we believe that the number of specific forms goes on perpetually and almost indefinitely increasing, numbers inevitably must become extinct. That the number of specific forms has not indefinitely increased, geology shows us plainly; and indeed we can see reason why they should not have thus increased, for the number of places in the polity of nature is not indefinitely great,—not that we [110]have any means of knowing that any one region has as yet got its maximum of species. Probably no region is as yet fully stocked, for at the Cape of Good Hope, where more species of plants are crowded together than in any other quarter of the world, some foreign plants have become naturalised, without causing, as far as we know, the extinction of any natives.

Extinction. — This topic will be covered in more detail in our chapter on Geology, but it needs to be mentioned here because it's closely related to natural selection. Natural selection operates by preserving variations that are beneficial in some way, which allows them to thrive. However, since all living beings increase at a high geometric rate, every area is already filled with inhabitants. This means that as favored forms increase in number, the less favored forms will decline and become rare. Rarity, as geology indicates, is a sign that extinction is imminent. Additionally, we can observe that any form represented by a small number of individuals is at a significant risk of total extinction during seasonal changes or when facing an increase in predators. But we can go further; as new forms continue to emerge slowly over time, unless we believe that the number of species can increase indefinitely, some numbers must inevitably go extinct. Geology clearly shows us that the number of species has not increased indefinitely; indeed, there are reasons to believe it shouldn't. The number of spaces in the natural order is not limitless, although we don’t yet know if any one region has reached its maximum number of species. It’s likely that no region is fully stocked yet, as seen at the Cape of Good Hope, where more plant species are found together than anywhere else in the world, and some foreign plants have become established without, so far as we can tell, causing the extinction of any native species.

Furthermore, the species which are most numerous in individuals will have the best chance of producing within any given period favourable variations. We have evidence of this, in the facts given in the second chapter, showing that it is the common species which afford the greatest number of recorded varieties, or incipient species. Hence, rare species will be less quickly modified or improved within any given period, and they will consequently be beaten in the race for life by the modified descendants of the commoner species.

Furthermore, the species with the largest populations are more likely to produce beneficial variations in any given time frame. We see evidence of this in the facts presented in the second chapter, which show that it’s the common species that have the highest number of recorded varieties or early-stage species. Therefore, rare species will be slower to change or improve over time, and as a result, they will be outpaced in the struggle for survival by the modified descendants of the more common species.

From these several considerations I think it inevitably follows, that as new species in the course of time are formed through natural selection, others will become rarer and rarer, and finally extinct. The forms which stand in closest competition with those undergoing modification and improvement, will naturally suffer most. And we have seen in the chapter on the Struggle for Existence that it is the most closely-allied forms,—varieties of the same species, and species of the same genus or of related genera,—which, from having nearly the same structure, constitution, and habits, generally come into the severest competition with each other. Consequently, each new variety or species, during the progress of its formation, will generally press hardest on its nearest kindred, and tend to exterminate them. We see the same process of extermination amongst our domesticated productions, through the selection of improved forms by man. Many curious [111]instances could be given showing how quickly new breeds of cattle, sheep, and other animals, and varieties of flowers, take the place of older and inferior kinds. In Yorkshire, it is historically known that the ancient black cattle were displaced by the long-horns, and that these "were swept away by the short-horns" (I quote the words of an agricultural writer) "as if by some murderous pestilence."

From these various points, I believe it's clear that as new species emerge over time through natural selection, others will become increasingly rare and eventually go extinct. The forms that compete most closely with those that are changing and improving will naturally be the most affected. In the chapter on the Struggle for Existence, we observed that closely related forms—varieties of the same species and species from the same genus or related genera—often have similar structures, characteristics, and behaviors, making them compete intensely with one another. As a result, any new variety or species, as it develops, will typically place the most pressure on its closest relatives, potentially leading to their extinction. We can see a similar extermination process among domesticated species due to the selection of improved forms by humans. Many interesting instances could be mentioned that illustrate how quickly new breeds of cattle, sheep, and other animals, along with different varieties of flowers, replace older and inferior types. In Yorkshire, it's historically noted that the ancient black cattle were replaced by the long-horns, which were then "swept away by the short-horns" (to quote an agricultural writer) "as if by some murderous pestilence."

 

Divergence of Character.—The principle, which I have designated by this term, is of high importance on my theory, and explains, as I believe, several important facts. In the first place, varieties, even strongly-marked ones, though having somewhat of the character of species—as is shown by the hopeless doubts in many cases how to rank them—yet certainly differ from each other far less than do good and distinct species. Nevertheless, according to my view, varieties are species in the process of formation, or are, as I have called them, incipient species. How, then, does the lesser difference between varieties become augmented into the greater difference between species? That this does habitually happen, we must infer from most of the innumerable species throughout nature presenting well-marked differences; whereas varieties, the supposed prototypes and parents of future well-marked species, present slight and ill-defined differences. Mere chance, as we may call it, might cause one variety to differ in some character from its parents, and the offspring of this variety again to differ from its parent in the very same character and in a greater degree; but this alone would never account for so habitual and large an amount of difference as that between varieties of the same species and species of the same genus.

Divergence of Character.—The principle I'm referring to with this term is very important to my theory, and I believe it explains several significant facts. First of all, varieties, even those that are strongly marked, although they have some characteristics of species—as shown by the ongoing confusion in many cases about how to classify them—definitely differ from each other much less than well-defined species do. However, from my perspective, varieties are species in the making, or as I've called them, incipient species. So, how does the smaller difference between varieties grow into the bigger difference between species? We have to conclude that this often happens because most of the countless species in nature show clear differences; meanwhile, varieties, which are thought to be the prototypes and ancestors of future well-defined species, show only slight and vague differences. Chance, as we might refer to it, could cause one variety to differ in some trait from its parents, and then this variety's offspring might again differ from its parent in the same trait and to a greater extent; but that alone wouldn’t explain the consistent and significant differences between varieties of the same species and species of the same genus.

As has always been my practice, let us seek light on [112]this head from our domestic productions. We shall here find something analogous. A fancier is struck by a pigeon having a slightly shorter beak; another fancier is struck by a pigeon having a rather longer beak; and on the acknowledged principle that "fanciers do not and will not admire a medium standard, but like extremes," they both go on (as has actually occurred with tumbler-pigeons) choosing and breeding from birds with longer and longer beaks, or with shorter and shorter beaks. Again, we may suppose that at an early period one man preferred swifter horses; another stronger and more bulky horses. The early differences would be very slight; in the course of time, from the continued selection of swifter horses by some breeders, and of stronger ones by others, the differences would become greater, and would be noted as forming two sub-breeds; finally, after the lapse of centuries, the sub-breeds would become converted into two well-established and distinct breeds. As the differences slowly become greater, the inferior animals with intermediate characters, being neither very swift nor very strong, will have been neglected, and will have tended to disappear. Here, then, we see in man's productions the action of what may be called the principle of divergence, causing differences, at first barely appreciable, steadily to increase, and the breeds to diverge in character both from each other and from their common parent.

As I've always done, let's shed light on [112]this topic from our own examples. Here we can find something similar. One breeder is fascinated by a pigeon with a slightly shorter beak; another is captivated by a pigeon with a longer beak. Following the well-known principle that "breeders don't appreciate a middle ground, but prefer extremes," they both end up (as has actually happened with tumbler pigeons) selecting and breeding birds with longer and longer beaks, or shorter and shorter beaks. Similarly, we can imagine that in the early days, one person preferred faster horses while another favored bulkier and stronger horses. Initially, the differences would be minimal; over time, through the ongoing selection of faster horses by some breeders and stronger ones by others, the differences would grow more pronounced and be recognized as two sub-breeds. Eventually, after many years, those sub-breeds would evolve into two distinct and well-established breeds. As the differences gradually increase, the weaker animals with intermediate traits, which are neither very fast nor very strong, will be neglected and tend to disappear. Here, we see in human breeding the effect of what can be called the principle of divergence, where differences, initially slight, progressively expand, causing the breeds to diverge in character both from one another and from their common ancestor.

But how, it may be asked, can any analogous principle apply in nature? I believe it can and does apply most efficiently, from the simple circumstance that the more diversified the descendants from any one species become in structure, constitution, and habits, by so much will they be better enabled to seize on many and widely diversified places in the polity of nature, and so be enabled to increase in numbers. [113]

But how, it might be asked, can any similar principle apply in nature? I believe it can and does apply very effectively, primarily because the more diverse the descendants of any one species are in terms of structure, constitution, and habits, the better they will be able to occupy many different roles in nature and, as a result, increase in numbers. [113]

We can clearly see this in the case of animals with simple habits. Take the case of a carnivorous quadruped, of which the number that can be supported in any country has long ago arrived at its full average. If its natural powers of increase be allowed to act, it can succeed in increasing (the country not undergoing any change in its conditions) only by its varying descendants seizing on places at present occupied by other animals: some of them, for instance, being enabled to feed on new kinds of prey, either dead or alive; some inhabiting new stations, climbing trees, frequenting water, and some perhaps becoming less carnivorous. The more diversified in habits and structure the descendants of our carnivorous animal became, the more places they would be enabled to occupy. What applies to one animal will apply throughout all time to all animals—that is, if they vary—for otherwise natural selection can do nothing. So it will be with plants. It has been experimentally proved, that if a plot of ground be sown with one species of grass, and a similar plot be sown with several distinct genera of grasses, a greater number of plants and a greater weight of dry herbage can thus be raised. The same has been found to hold good when first one variety and then several mixed varieties of wheat have been sown on equal spaces of ground. Hence, if any one species of grass were to go on varying, and those varieties were continually selected which differed from each other in at all the same manner as distinct species and genera of grasses differ from each other, a greater number of individual plants of this species of grass, including its modified descendants, would succeed in living on the same piece of ground. And we well know that each species and each variety of grass is annually sowing almost countless seeds; and thus, as it may be said, is striving its utmost to increase its numbers. [114]Consequently, I cannot doubt that in the course of many thousands of generations, the most distinct varieties of any one species of grass would always have the best chance of succeeding and of increasing in numbers, and thus of supplanting the less distinct varieties; and varieties, when rendered very distinct from each other, take the rank of species.

We can clearly see this in the case of animals with simple behaviors. Take a carnivorous four-legged animal, for example. The number of these animals that can thrive in any country has long reached its typical average. If they are allowed to reproduce naturally, they can only increase (assuming the country’s conditions remain unchanged) by their different offspring taking over areas currently occupied by other animals. Some of these offspring might find new types of prey to eat, whether dead or alive; others might adapt to new habitats, like climbing trees or spending time near water; and some could potentially become less meat-eating. The more varied the habits and traits of the offspring from our carnivorous animal, the more environments they could occupy. What applies to one animal will apply to all animals throughout time—that is, if they change—because otherwise, natural selection can’t do anything. The same is true for plants. It has been experimentally shown that if a piece of land is planted with one type of grass and another similar piece is planted with several different types of grasses, more plants and a heavier amount of dry grass can be produced. The same has been observed when one variety and then multiple mixed varieties of wheat were planted in equal areas. Therefore, if any one grass species continues to change and the varieties that vary most from each other are consistently selected, a greater number of individual plants of that grass species, including its modified offspring, would thrive in the same area. We know that each grass species and variety produces countless seeds every year, essentially trying its hardest to increase its numbers. [114] Consequently, I have no doubt that over many thousands of generations, the most distinct varieties of any one species of grass would always have the best chance of thriving and increasing in number, thereby replacing the less distinct varieties; and when varieties become very different from one another, they earn the status of species.

The truth of the principle, that the greatest amount of life can be supported by great diversification of structure, is seen under many natural circumstances. In an extremely small area, especially if freely open to immigration, and where the contest between individual and individual must be severe, we always find great diversity in its inhabitants. For instance, I found that a piece of turf, three feet by four in size, which had been exposed for many years to exactly the same conditions, supported twenty species of plants, and these belonged to eighteen genera and to eight orders, which shows how much these plants differed from each other. So it is with the plants and insects on small and uniform islets; and so in small ponds of fresh water. Farmers find that they can raise most food by a rotation of plants belonging to the most different orders: nature follows what may be called a simultaneous rotation. Most of the animals and plants which live close round any small piece of ground, could live on it (supposing it not to be in any way peculiar in its nature), and may be said to be striving to the utmost to live there; but, it is seen, that where they come into the closest competition with each other, the advantages of diversification of structure, with the accompanying differences of habit and constitution, determine that the inhabitants, which thus jostle each other most closely, shall, as a general rule, belong to what we call different genera and orders.

The truth of the idea that the greatest variety of life can be supported by a wide range of structures is evident in many natural situations. In a very small area, especially if it's open to new species and where competition among individuals is intense, we always see a lot of diversity among its inhabitants. For example, I discovered that a patch of grass, measuring three feet by four, which had been exposed to the same conditions for many years, supported twenty different plant species from eighteen genera and eight orders, showing how much these plants varied from each other. The same goes for the plants and insects on small, uniform islands, and in small freshwater ponds. Farmers find that they can grow the most food by rotating crops from very different orders: nature seems to operate under what might be called a simultaneous rotation. Most of the animals and plants living around any small piece of land could thrive there (assuming it isn’t uniquely different in some way), and they appear to be striving hard to make a life there; however, it becomes clear that where they compete most closely with each other, the benefits of structural diversity, along with differing habits and characteristics, lead to the conclusion that the inhabitants who are jostling for space typically belong to what we refer to as different genera and orders.

The same principle is seen in the naturalisation of [115]plants through man's agency in foreign lands. It might have been expected that the plants which have succeeded in becoming naturalised in any land would generally have been closely allied to the indigenes; for these are commonly looked at as specially created and adapted for their own country. It might, also, perhaps have been expected that naturalised plants would have belonged to a few groups more especially adapted to certain stations in their new homes. But the case is very different; and Alph. De Candolle has well remarked in his great and admirable work, that floras gain by naturalisation, proportionally with the number of the native genera and species, far more in new genera than in new species. To give a single instance: in the last edition of Dr. Asa Gray's 'Manual of the Flora of the Northern United States,' 260 naturalised plants are enumerated, and these belong to 162 genera. We thus see that these naturalised plants are of a highly diversified nature. They differ, moreover, to a large extent from the indigenes, for out of the 162 genera, no less than 100 genera are not there indigenous, and thus a large proportional addition is made to the genera of these States.

The same idea applies to the naturalization of [115]plants through human activity in foreign lands. One might think that the plants that have successfully become naturalized in any area would generally be closely related to the local species, as these are often seen as specifically created and suited for their environment. It might also be expected that naturalized plants would belong to a few groups that are particularly suited to specific habitats in their new surroundings. However, the reality is quite different; as Alph. De Candolle noted in his excellent work, floras benefit from naturalization, growing more in new genera than in new species, in proportion to the number of native genera and species. For example, in the latest edition of Dr. Asa Gray's 'Manual of the Flora of the Northern United States,' there are 260 naturalized plants listed, which belong to 162 genera. This shows that these naturalized plants are very diverse. Moreover, they largely differ from the native plants; out of the 162 genera, as many as 100 are not indigenous, making a significant proportional increase in the genera of these States.

By considering the nature of the plants or animals which have struggled successfully with the indigenes of any country, and have there become naturalised, we may gain some crude idea in what manner some of the natives would have to be modified, in order to gain an advantage over the other natives; and we may at least safely infer that diversification of structure, amounting to new generic differences, would be profitable to them.

By looking at the types of plants or animals that have managed to thrive among the local species of any country and have become established there, we can get a rough idea of how some of the natives would need to adapt in order to gain an edge over the others; and we can probably safely conclude that changes in structure, leading to new differences at the genus level, would be beneficial for them.

The advantage of diversification in the inhabitants of the same region is, in fact, the same as that of the physiological division of labour in the organs of the same individual body—a subject so well elucidated by Milne [116]Edwards. No physiologist doubts that a stomach adapted to digest vegetable matter alone, or flesh alone, draws most nutriment from these substances. So in the general economy of any land, the more widely and perfectly the animals and plants are diversified for different habits of life, so will a greater number of individuals be capable of there supporting themselves. A set of animals, with their organisation but little diversified, could hardly compete with a set more perfectly diversified in structure. It may be doubted, for instance, whether the Australian marsupials, which are divided into groups differing but little from each other, and feebly representing, as Mr. Waterhouse and others have remarked, our carnivorous, ruminant, and rodent mammals, could successfully compete with these well-pronounced orders. In the Australian mammals, we see the process of diversification in an early and incomplete stage of development.

The benefit of having a diverse range of inhabitants in the same area is similar to how different organs in a single body perform specialized functions—a concept clearly explained by Milne Edwards. No physiologist would argue that a stomach designed to digest only plant matter, or only meat, gets the most nutrients from those specific foods. Likewise, in the overall ecology of any region, the more diverse and specialized the animals and plants are for various lifestyles, the more individuals can thrive there. A group of animals with little variation in their structure would struggle to compete with a more diverse group. For example, it’s questionable whether Australian marsupials, which are categorized into groups that are quite similar to each other and only weakly represent our carnivorous, ruminant, and rodent mammals, could effectively compete with those more distinct classifications. In Australian mammals, we observe the process of diversification still at an early and incomplete stage.

After the foregoing discussion, which ought to have been much amplified, we may, I think, assume that the modified descendants of any one species will succeed by so much the better as they become more diversified in structure, and are thus enabled to encroach on places occupied by other beings. Now let us see how this principle of benefit being derived from divergence of character, combined with the principles of natural selection and of extinction, will tend to act.

After the previous discussion, which could have been expanded, I think we can assume that the altered descendants of any one species will do better the more they vary in structure, allowing them to invade areas occupied by other organisms. Now let’s explore how this principle of gaining advantages from differences in traits, along with the concepts of natural selection and extinction, will come into play.

The accompanying diagram will aid us in understanding this rather perplexing subject. Let A to L represent the species of a genus large in its own country; these species are supposed to resemble each other in unequal degrees, as is so generally the case in nature, and as is represented in the diagram by the letters standing at unequal distances. I have said a large genus, because we have seen in the second chapter, [117]that on an average more of the species of large genera vary than of small genera; and the varying species of the large genera present a greater number of varieties. We have, also, seen that the species, which are the commonest and the most widely-diffused, vary more than rare species with restricted ranges. Let (A) be a common, widely-diffused, and varying species, belonging to a genus large in its own country. The little fan of diverging dotted lines of unequal lengths proceeding from (A), may represent its varying offspring. The variations are supposed to be extremely slight, but of the most diversified nature; they are not supposed all to appear simultaneously, but often after long intervals of time; nor are they all supposed to endure for equal periods. Only those variations which are in some way profitable will be preserved or naturally selected. And here the importance of the principle of benefit being derived from divergence of character comes in; for this will generally lead to the most different or divergent variations (represented by the outer dotted lines) being preserved and accumulated by natural selection. When a dotted line reaches one of the horizontal lines, and is there marked by a small numbered letter, a sufficient amount of variation is supposed to have been accumulated to have formed a fairly well-marked variety, such as would be thought worthy of record in a systematic work.

The diagram below will help us understand this confusing topic. Let A to L represent the species of a large genus from its home country; these species are thought to resemble each other to varying degrees, which is common in nature, as shown in the diagram by the letters spaced unevenly. I referred to a large genus because, as we discussed in the second chapter, [117] on average, more species in large genera vary compared to those in small genera; and the varying species in large genera show a wider range of varieties. We've also noted that the most common and widely distributed species tend to vary more than rare species with limited ranges. Let (A) be a common, widely distributed, and varying species from a large genus in its home country. The small fan of diverging dotted lines of different lengths coming from (A) represents its varying offspring. These variations are thought to be very slight but highly diverse; they aren't all assumed to appear at once but often arise after long periods. Additionally, they are not expected to last for the same duration. Only variations that provide some benefit are likely to be preserved or naturally selected. This is where the principle of benefit from character divergence is important, as it typically leads to the most distinct or divergent variations (shown by the outer dotted lines) being preserved and accumulated through natural selection. When a dotted line reaches one of the horizontal lines and is marked with a small numbered letter, it indicates that enough variation has been gathered to form a clearly defined variety, one deserving of documentation in a systematic work.

Facing page 117.

The intervals between the horizontal lines in the diagram, may represent each a thousand generations; but it would have been better if each had represented ten thousand generations. After a thousand generations, species (A) is supposed to have produced two fairly well-marked varieties, namely a1 and m1. These two varieties will generally continue to be exposed to the same conditions which made their parents variable, [118]and the tendency to variability is in itself hereditary, consequently they will tend to vary, and generally to vary in nearly the same manner as their parents varied. Moreover, these two varieties, being only slightly modified forms, will tend to inherit those advantages which made their parent (A) more numerous than most of the other inhabitants of the same country; they will likewise partake of those more general advantages which made the genus to which the parent-species belonged, a large genus in its own country. And these circumstances we know to be favourable to the production of new varieties.

The spaces between the horizontal lines in the diagram may each represent a thousand generations, but it would have been better if each represented ten thousand generations. After a thousand generations, species (A) is expected to have produced two distinct varieties, namely a1 and m1. These two varieties will typically continue to be subjected to the same conditions that caused their parents to be variable, and the tendency to be variable itself is inherited, so they will likely continue to vary, generally in a similar way to how their parents varied. Additionally, since these two varieties are only slightly modified forms, they will likely inherit the advantages that allowed their parent (A) to be more numerous than many other species in the same area; they will also benefit from the broader advantages that contributed to the genus, to which the parent species belonged, being a large genus in its own region. We know that these factors are conducive to the generation of new varieties.

If, then, these two varieties be variable, the most divergent of their variations will generally be preserved during the next thousand generations. And after this interval, variety a1 is supposed in the diagram to have produced variety a2, which will, owing to the principle of divergence, differ more from (A) than did variety a1. Variety m1 is supposed to have produced two varieties, namely m2 and s2, differing from each other, and more considerably from their common parent (A). We may continue the process by similar steps for any length of time; some of the varieties, after each thousand generations, producing only a single variety, but in a more and more modified condition, some producing two or three varieties, and some failing to produce any. Thus the varieties or modified descendants, proceeding from the common parent (A), will generally go on increasing in number and diverging in character. In the diagram the process is represented up to the ten-thousandth generation, and under a condensed and simplified form up to the fourteen-thousandth generation.

If both of these varieties are variable, the most different of their variations will usually be preserved over the next thousand generations. After this time, variety a1 is expected, according to the diagram, to have produced variety a2, which will differ more from (A) than variety a1 did, due to the principle of divergence. Variety m1 is indicated to have produced two varieties, m2 and s2, which differ from each other and more significantly from their common ancestor (A). We can continue this process for as long as we like; some varieties, after each thousand generations, may produce a single variety that is increasingly modified, while others might produce two or three varieties, and some might not produce any. Thus, the varieties or modified descendants coming from the common ancestor (A) will generally continue to increase in number and become more different from one another. The diagram shows this process up to the ten-thousandth generation, and in a more condensed and simplified form up to the fourteen-thousandth generation.

But I must here remark that I do not suppose that the process ever goes on so regularly as is represented in the diagram, though in itself made somewhat irregular. [119]I am far from thinking that the most divergent varieties will invariably prevail and multiply: a medium form may often long endure, and may or may not produce more than one modified descendant; for natural selection will always act according to the nature of the places which are either unoccupied or not perfectly occupied by other beings; and this will depend on infinitely complex relations. But as a general rule, the more diversified in structure the descendants from any one species can be rendered, the more places they will be enabled to seize on, and the more their modified progeny will be increased. In our diagram the line of succession is broken at regular intervals by small numbered letters marking the successive forms which have become sufficiently distinct to be recorded as varieties. But these breaks are imaginary, and might have been inserted anywhere, after intervals long enough to have allowed the accumulation of a considerable amount of divergent variation.

But I should note that I don’t think the process happens as smoothly as shown in the diagram, even though it is somewhat irregular. [119]I’m not convinced that the most different varieties will always succeed and multiply; a middle form can often persist for a long time and may or may not produce more than one modified descendant. Natural selection will always operate based on the nature of places that are either unoccupied or not fully occupied by other organisms, and this will rely on incredibly complex relationships. However, as a general rule, the more diverse the structures of descendants from any one species can be, the more opportunities they will have to occupy different niches, which will increase their modified offspring. In our diagram, the line of succession is interrupted at regular points by small numbered letters indicating the successive forms that have become distinct enough to be classified as varieties. But these breaks are fictional and could have been placed anywhere, as long as the gaps allowed for enough time to accumulate a significant amount of divergent variation.

As all the modified descendants from a common and widely-diffused species, belonging to a large genus, will tend to partake of the same advantages which made their parent successful in life, they will generally go on multiplying in number as well as diverging in character: this is represented in the diagram by the several divergent branches proceeding from (A). The modified offspring from the later and more highly improved branches in the lines of descent, will, it is probable, often take the place of, and so destroy, the earlier and less improved branches: this is represented in the diagram by some of the lower branches not reaching to the upper horizontal lines. In some cases I do not doubt that the process of modification will be confined to a single line of descent, and the number of the descendants will not be increased; although the amount [120]of divergent modification may have been increased in the successive generations. This case would be represented in the diagram, if all the lines proceeding from (A) were removed, excepting that from a1 to a10. In the same way, for instance, the English race-horse and English pointer have apparently both gone on slowly diverging in character from their original stocks, without either having given off any fresh branches or races.

As all the modified descendants of a common and widely distributed species from a large genus tend to share the same advantages that helped their parent succeed in life, they will generally continue to multiply in number as well as diverge in character: this is illustrated in the diagram by the various divergent branches coming from (A). The modified offspring from later and more advanced branches in the lines of descent will likely take the place of and potentially eliminate the earlier and less advanced branches: this is shown in the diagram by some of the lower branches not reaching the upper horizontal lines. In some cases, I believe the process of modification will be limited to a single line of descent, and the number of descendants will not increase; however, the level of divergent modification may have grown in successive generations. This situation would be represented in the diagram if all the lines coming from (A) were removed except for that from a1 to a10. Similarly, the English racehorse and English pointer have seemingly continued to slowly diverge in character from their original breeds, without producing any new branches or breeds.

After ten thousand generations, species (A) is supposed to have produced three forms, a10, f10, and m10, which, from having diverged in character during the successive generations, will have come to differ largely, but perhaps unequally, from each other and from their common parent. If we suppose the amount of change between each horizontal line in our diagram to be excessively small, these three forms may still be only well-marked varieties; or they may have arrived at the doubtful category of sub-species; but we have only to suppose the steps in the process of modification to be more numerous or greater in amount, to convert these three forms into well-defined species: thus the diagram illustrates the steps by which the small differences distinguishing varieties are increased into the larger differences distinguishing species. By continuing the same process for a greater number of generations (as shown in the diagram in a condensed and simplified manner), we get eight species, marked by the letters between a14 and m14, all descended from (A). Thus, as I believe, species are multiplied and genera are formed.

After ten thousand generations, species (A) is expected to have produced three forms, a10, f10, and m10, which, having changed in character over the generations, will have come to differ significantly, though possibly unevenly, from each other and from their common ancestor. If we assume that the amount of change between each horizontal line in our diagram is extremely small, these three forms might still just be clearly defined varieties; or they might have reached the uncertain status of sub-species; however, if we consider the modifications to be more numerous or more significant, these three forms could be established as distinct species. Therefore, the diagram shows the process by which the small differences that distinguish varieties can grow into the larger differences that define species. By continuing this process over more generations (as illustrated in the diagram in a condensed and simplified way), we end up with eight species, marked by the letters between a14 and m14, all derived from (A). Thus, I believe, species multiply and genera are formed.

In a large genus it is probable that more than one species would vary. In the diagram I have assumed that a second species (I) has produced, by analogous steps, after ten thousand generations, either two well-marked varieties (w10 and z10) or two species, according to the amount of change supposed to be represented [121]between the horizontal lines. After fourteen thousand generations, six new species, marked by the letters n14 to z14, are supposed to have been produced. In each genus, the species, which are already extremely different in character, will generally tend to produce the greatest number of modified descendants; for these will have the best chance of filling new and widely different places in the polity of nature: hence in the diagram I have chosen the extreme species (A), and the nearly extreme species (I), as those which have largely varied, and have given rise to new varieties and species. The other nine species (marked by capital letters) of our original genus, may for a long period continue to transmit unaltered descendants; and this is shown in the diagram by the dotted lines not prolonged far upwards from want of space.

In a large genus, it's likely that more than one species will change. In the diagram, I have assumed that a second species (I) has developed, after ten thousand generations, either two distinct varieties (w10 and z10) or two species, depending on the extent of change represented between the horizontal lines. After fourteen thousand generations, six new species, indicated by the letters n14 to z14, are thought to have emerged. In each genus, the species that are already quite different from each other will usually produce the most modified descendants because they have the best chance of adapting to new and diverse roles in the ecosystem. Therefore, in the diagram, I have selected the extreme species (A) and the nearly extreme species (I) as those that have significantly varied and have generated new varieties and species. The other nine species (marked by capital letters) of our original genus may remain unchanged for a long time, which is shown in the diagram by the dotted lines that don't extend far upward due to lack of space.

But during the process of modification, represented in the diagram, another of our principles, namely that of extinction, will have played an important part. As in each fully stocked country natural selection necessarily acts by the selected form having some advantage in the struggle for life over other forms, there will be a constant tendency in the improved descendants of any one species to supplant and exterminate in each stage of descent their predecessors and their original parent. For it should be remembered that the competition will generally be most severe between those forms which are most nearly related to each other in habits, constitution, and structure. Hence all the intermediate forms between the earlier and later states, that is between the less and more improved state of a species, as well as the original parent-species itself, will generally tend to become extinct. So it probably will be with many whole collateral lines of descent, which will be conquered by later and improved lines of descent. If, however, the [122]modified offspring of a species get into some distinct country, or become quickly adapted to some quite new station, in which child and parent do not come into competition, both may continue to exist.

But during the process of change, shown in the diagram, another one of our principles, which is extinction, will have played a significant role. In any fully populated country, natural selection works by the chosen form having an advantage in the struggle for survival over other forms, creating a continuous tendency for the improved descendants of any species to replace and eliminate their predecessors and their original parent species at each stage of evolution. It's important to remember that competition is generally most intense between forms that are closest to each other in terms of habits, constitution, and structure. As a result, all the intermediate forms between the earlier and later stages—meaning between the less improved and more improved states of a species, as well as the original parent species itself—tend to become extinct. The same will likely happen with many entire collateral lines of descent, which will be overtaken by later and improved lines of descent. However, if the [122]modified offspring of a species end up in a completely different country, or quickly adapt to a new environment where they don’t compete with their parent, both can continue to exist.

If then our diagram be assumed to represent a considerable amount of modification, species (A) and all the earlier varieties will have become extinct, having been replaced by eight new species (a14 to m14); and (I) will have been replaced by six (n14 to z14) new species.

If we assume that our diagram shows a significant amount of change, species (A) and all the earlier varieties will have gone extinct, replaced by eight new species (a14 to m14); and (I) will have been replaced by six new species (n14 to z14).

But we may go further than this. The original species of our genus were supposed to resemble each other in unequal degrees, as is so generally the case in nature; species (A) being more nearly related to B, C, and D, than to the other species; and species (I) more to G, H, K, L, than to the others. These two species (A) and (I), were also supposed to be very common and widely diffused species, so that they must originally have had some advantage over most of the other species of the genus. Their modified descendants, fourteen in number at the fourteen-thousandth generation, will probably have inherited some of the same advantages: they have also been modified and improved in a diversified manner at each stage of descent, so as to have become adapted to many related places in the natural economy of their country. It seems, therefore, to me extremely probable that they will have taken the places of, and thus exterminated, not only their parents (A) and (I), but likewise some of the original species which were most nearly related to their parents. Hence very few of the original species will have transmitted offspring to the fourteen-thousandth generation. We may suppose that only one (F), of the two species which were least closely related to the other nine original species, has transmitted descendants to this late stage of descent. [123]

But we can take this even further. The original species in our genus were thought to be similar to each other to varying degrees, which is typically how nature works; species (A) being more closely related to B, C, and D than to the other species, and species (I) being more closely related to G, H, K, and L than to the others. These two species (A) and (I) were also believed to be quite common and widely spread, suggesting they must have had some advantage over most other species in the genus. Their modified descendants, totaling fourteen by the fourteen-thousandth generation, will likely have inherited some of those same advantages: they have also changed and improved in various ways at each stage of evolution, allowing them to adapt to many related environments in their country. Therefore, it seems very likely to me that they will have replaced and thus driven to extinction not only their parents (A) and (I) but also some of the original species that were most closely related to their parents. As a result, very few of the original species will have left descendants by the fourteen-thousandth generation. We can assume that only one (F) of the two species that were least closely related to the other nine original species has passed on descendants to this late stage of evolution. [123]

The new species in our diagram descended from the original eleven species, will now be fifteen in number. Owing to the divergent tendency of natural selection, the extreme amount of difference in character between species a14 and z14 will be much greater than that between the most different of the original eleven species. The new species, moreover, will be allied to each other in a widely different manner. Of the eight descendants from (A) the three marked a14, q14, p14, will be nearly related from having recently branched off from a10; b14 and f14, from having diverged at an earlier period from a5, will be in some degree distinct from the three first-named species; and lastly, o14, e14 and m14, will be nearly related one to the other, but from having diverged at the first commencement of the process of modification, will be widely different from the other five species, and may constitute a sub-genus or even a distinct genus.

The new species shown in our diagram evolved from the original eleven species and will now total fifteen. Because of the varied nature of natural selection, the differences in traits between species a14 and z14 will be much greater than the differences among the original eleven species. Additionally, the new species will be connected to each other in very different ways. Among the eight descendants from (A), the three marked a14, q14, and p14 will be closely related since they branched off recently from a10; b14 and f14 diverged earlier from a5 and will be somewhat distinct from the first three species; and finally, o14, e14, and m14 will be closely related to each other, but because they diverged at the very beginning of the modification process, they will be quite different from the other five species and may form a sub-genus or even a separate genus.

The six descendants from (I) will form two sub-genera or even genera. But as the original species (I) differed largely from (A), standing nearly at the extreme points of the original genus, the six descendants from (I) will, owing to inheritance alone, differ considerably from the eight descendants from (A); the two groups, moreover, are supposed to have gone on diverging in different directions. The intermediate species, also (and this is a very important consideration), which connected the original species (A) and (I), have all become, excepting (F), extinct, and have left no descendants. Hence the six new species descended from (I), and the eight descended from (A), will have to be ranked as very distinct genera, or even as distinct sub-families.

The six descendants from (I) will create two sub-genera or even genera. However, since the original species (I) was significantly different from (A), nearly at opposite ends of the original genus, the six descendants from (I) will, due to inheritance alone, differ quite a bit from the eight descendants from (A). Furthermore, the two groups are expected to have continued diverging in different directions. Additionally, the intermediate species that linked the original species (A) and (I) have all become extinct, except for (F), and have left no descendants. Therefore, the six new species descended from (I) and the eight descended from (A) will need to be categorized as very distinct genera or even as separate sub-families.

Thus it is, as I believe, that two or more genera are produced by descent with modification, from two or more species of the same genus. And the two or [124]more parent-species are supposed to have descended from some one species of an earlier genus. In our diagram, this is indicated by the broken lines, beneath the capital letters, converging in sub-branches downwards towards a single point; this point representing a single species, the supposed single parent of our several new sub-genera and genera.

Thus, I believe that two or more genera arise through descent with modification from two or more species of the same genus. These two or more parent species are thought to have descended from a single species of an earlier genus. In our diagram, this is shown by the dashed lines beneath the capital letters, coming together in sub-branches going down towards a single point; this point represents a single species, which is believed to be the sole ancestor of our various new sub-genera and genera.

It is worth while to reflect for a moment on the character of the new species F14, which is supposed not to have diverged much in character, but to have retained the form of (F), either unaltered or altered only in a slight degree. In this case, its affinities to the other fourteen new species will be of a curious and circuitous nature. Having descended from a form which stood between the two parent-species (A) and (I), now supposed to be extinct and unknown, it will be in some degree intermediate in character between the two groups descended from these species. But as these two groups have gone on diverging in character from the type of their parents, the new species (F14) will not be directly intermediate between them, but rather between types of the two groups; and every naturalist will be able to bring some such case before his mind.

It's worth taking a moment to consider the nature of the new species F14, which is believed not to have changed much in character but has kept the form of (F), either unchanged or only slightly altered. In this scenario, its connections to the other fourteen new species will be strange and indirect. Having descended from a form that was between the two parent species (A) and (I), which are now thought to be extinct and unknown, it will be somewhat intermediate in character between the two groups that descended from these species. However, since these two groups have continued to diverge from the characteristics of their parent types, the new species (F14) won't be directly intermediate between them, but rather between the types of the two groups; and every naturalist will be able to think of a similar example.

In the diagram, each horizontal line has hitherto been supposed to represent a thousand generations, but each may represent a million or hundred million generations, and likewise a section of the successive strata of the earth's crust including extinct remains. We shall, when we come to our chapter on Geology, have to refer again to this subject, and I think we shall then see that the diagram throws light on the affinities of extinct beings, which, though generally belonging to the same orders, or families, or genera, with those now living, yet are often, in some degree, intermediate in character between existing groups; and we can understand this fact, for [125]the extinct species lived at very ancient epochs when the branching lines of descent had diverged less.

In the diagram, each horizontal line has been thought to represent a thousand generations, but each could also stand for a million or even a hundred million generations. Similarly, it could represent a section of the earth's crust layers that includes extinct remains. When we discuss Geology in a later chapter, we will revisit this topic, and I believe we will then see that the diagram helps clarify the relationships of extinct beings. Although these beings generally belong to the same orders, families, or genera as those that are currently living, they often exhibit characteristics that are somewhat intermediate between existing groups. We can understand this because the extinct species existed in very ancient times when the lines of descent had diverged less. [125]

I see no reason to limit the process of modification, as now explained, to the formation of genera alone. If, in our diagram, we suppose the amount of change represented by each successive group of diverging dotted lines to be very great, the forms marked a14 to p14, those marked b14 and f14, and those marked o14 to m14, will form three very distinct genera. We shall also have two very distinct genera descended from (I); and as these latter two genera, both from continued divergence of character and from inheritance from a different parent, will differ widely from the three genera descended from (A), the two little groups of genera will form two distinct families, or even orders, according to the amount of divergent modification supposed to be represented in the diagram. And the two new families, or orders, will have descended from two species of the original genus; and these two species are supposed to have descended from one species of a still more ancient and unknown genus.

I see no reason to limit the process of change, as explained earlier, to just the formation of genera. If we imagine the amount of change represented by each successive group of diverging dotted lines to be significant, the forms labeled a14 to p14, those labeled b14 and f14, and those labeled o14 to m14, will create three very distinct genera. We will also have two very distinct genera that come from (I); and since these two genera will differ greatly from the three genera that descend from (A), due to ongoing divergence and different parental inheritance, these two small groups of genera will form two distinct families or even orders, depending on the degree of divergence indicated in the diagram. Furthermore, the two new families or orders will have originated from two species of the original genus, which are thought to have evolved from one species of an even older and unknown genus.

We have seen that in each country it is the species of the larger genera which oftenest present varieties or incipient species. This, indeed, might have been expected; for as natural selection acts through one form having some advantage over other forms in the struggle for existence, it will chiefly act on those which already have some advantage; and the largeness of any group shows that its species have inherited from a common ancestor some advantage in common. Hence, the struggle for the production of new and modified descendants, will mainly lie between the larger groups, which are all trying to increase in number. One large group will slowly conquer another large group, reduce its numbers, and thus lessen its chance of further variation and improvement. Within the same large [126]group, the later and more highly perfected sub-groups, from branching out and seizing on many new places in the polity of Nature, will constantly tend to supplant and destroy the earlier and less improved sub-groups. Small and broken groups and sub-groups will finally disappear. Looking to the future, we can predict that the groups of organic beings which are now large and triumphant, and which are least broken up, that is, which as yet have suffered least extinction, will for a long period continue to increase. But which groups will ultimately prevail, no man can predict; for we well know that many groups, formerly most extensively developed, have now become extinct. Looking still more remotely to the future, we may predict that, owing to the continued and steady increase of the larger groups, a multitude of smaller groups will become utterly extinct, and leave no modified descendants; and consequently that of the species living at any one period, extremely few will transmit descendants to a remote futurity. I shall have to return to this subject in the chapter on Classification, but I may add that on this view of extremely few of the more ancient species having transmitted descendants, and on the view of all the descendants of the same species making a class, we can understand how it is that there exist but very few classes in each main division of the animal and vegetable kingdoms. Although extremely few of the most ancient species may now have living and modified descendants, yet at the most remote geological period, the earth may have been as well peopled with many species of many genera, families, orders, and classes, as at the present day.

We have observed that in each country, it's usually the larger genera that show a greater variety of species or emerging variations. This was to be expected; natural selection works by favoring forms that have advantages in the fight for survival, and it primarily acts on those that already possess some sort of benefit. The size of any group indicates that its species have inherited some common advantages from a shared ancestor. Therefore, the competition to produce new and modified descendants mainly occurs among the larger groups, all vying to increase in number. One large group will gradually outperform another, reducing its size and consequently diminishing its chances for further variation and advancement. Within the same large group, the later and more developed sub-groups, by branching out and occupying new niches in Nature's hierarchy, will constantly push out and eliminate the earlier, less advanced sub-groups. Smaller and fragmented groups will eventually vanish. Looking ahead, we can predict that the currently dominant and less fragmented groups, which have experienced the least extinction, will continue to grow for a long time. However, it's impossible to predict which groups will ultimately prevail, as we know that many once-prominent groups have gone extinct. If we look even further into the future, we can surmise that due to the ongoing and steady growth of the larger groups, many smaller groups will completely die out without leaving any modified descendants; as a result, very few species alive at any given time will have descendants that survive into the distant future. I will revisit this topic in the chapter on Classification, but I can note that from the perspective of very few ancient species having passed on descendants, and considering all descendants of the same species form a class, we can understand why there are so few classes in each major division of the animal and plant kingdoms. Although very few of the oldest species may now have living and modified descendants, at the most distant geological period, the earth may have been as populated with many species from various genera, families, orders, and classes as it is today.

 

Summary of Chapter.—If during the long course of ages and under varying conditions of life, organic beings [127]vary at all in the several parts of their organisation, and I think this cannot be disputed; if there be, owing to the high geometrical ratio of increase of each species, a severe struggle for life at some age, season, or year, and this certainly cannot be disputed; then, considering the infinite complexity of the relations of all organic beings to each other and to their conditions of existence, causing an infinite diversity in structure, constitution, and habits, to be advantageous to them, I think it would be a most extraordinary fact if no variation ever had occurred useful to each being's own welfare, in the same manner as so many variations have occurred useful to man. But if variations useful to any organic being do occur, assuredly individuals thus characterised will have the best chance of being preserved in the struggle for life; and from the strong principle of inheritance they will tend to produce offspring similarly characterised. This principle of preservation, I have called, for the sake of brevity, Natural Selection; and it leads to the improvement of each creature in relation to its organic and inorganic conditions of life.

Summary of Chapter.—If, over the long course of time and under different life conditions, living beings [127]change at all in various parts of their structure, and I believe this is undeniable; if there is, due to the high geometric growth rate of each species, a tough struggle for survival at certain ages, seasons, or years, this too is certainly undeniable; then, considering the immense complexity of relationships among all living beings and their environments, which creates infinite diversity in structure, makeup, and behaviors that benefit them, it would be very surprising if no variations had ever happened that were beneficial to each being's well-being, just as many variations have proven beneficial to humans. However, if beneficial variations do occur in any living being, those individuals will undoubtedly have the best chance of surviving in the fight for existence; and because of the strong principle of inheritance, they will likely produce offspring with similar traits. I refer to this principle of preservation as Natural Selection for the sake of simplicity; and it results in the improvement of each creature in relation to its living and non-living conditions.

Natural selection, on the principle of qualities being inherited at corresponding ages, can modify the egg, seed, or young, as easily as the adult. Amongst many animals, sexual selection will give its aid to ordinary selection, by assuring to the most vigorous and best adapted males the greatest number of offspring. Sexual selection will also give characters useful to the males alone, in their struggles with other males.

Natural selection, based on the idea that traits are passed down at specific ages, can change the egg, seed, or young just as easily as it can the adult. In many animals, sexual selection supports regular selection by ensuring that the strongest and most well-adapted males have the most offspring. Sexual selection can also produce traits that are beneficial solely to the males as they compete with other males.

Whether natural selection has really thus acted in nature, in modifying and adapting the various forms of life to their several conditions and stations, must be judged of by the general tenour and balance of evidence given in the following chapters. But we already see how it entails extinction; and how largely extinction [128]has acted in the world's history, geology plainly declares. Natural selection, also, leads to divergence of character; for more living beings can be supported on the same area the more they diverge in structure, habits, and constitution, of which we see proof by looking to the inhabitants of any small spot or to naturalised productions. Therefore during the modification of the descendants of any one species, and during the incessant struggle of all species to increase in numbers, the more diversified these descendants become, the better will be their chance of succeeding in the battle for life. Thus the small differences distinguishing varieties of the same species, steadily tend to increase till they come to equal the greater differences between species of the same genus, or even of distinct genera.

Whether natural selection has actually worked in nature to change and adapt different forms of life to their specific environments must be judged by the overall evidence presented in the following chapters. However, we can already see how it leads to extinction, and geology clearly shows how significant extinction has been in the history of the world. Natural selection also leads to variation among species; the more different living beings are in terms of structure, habits, and makeup, the more of them can coexist in the same area, as demonstrated by the inhabitants of any small area or by introduced species. Therefore, as the descendants of any one species change and as all species constantly compete to increase their numbers, the more varied these descendants become, the better their chances of surviving in the struggle for existence. Consequently, the small differences that separate varieties of the same species tend to increase until they match the larger differences between species within the same genus, or even between distinct genera.

We have seen that it is the common, the widely-diffused, and widely-ranging species, belonging to the larger genera, which vary most; and these tend to transmit to their modified offspring that superiority which now makes them dominant in their own countries. Natural selection, as has just been remarked, leads to divergence of character and to much extinction of the less improved and intermediate forms of life. On these principles, I believe, the nature of the affinities of all organic beings may be explained. It is a truly wonderful fact—the wonder of which we are apt to overlook from familiarity—that all animals and all plants throughout all time and space should be related to each other in group subordinate to group, in the manner which we everywhere behold—namely, varieties of the same species most closely related together, species of the same genus less closely and unequally related together, forming sections and sub-genera, species of distinct genera much less closely related, and genera related in different degrees, forming [129]sub-families, families, orders, sub-classes, and classes. The several subordinate groups in any class cannot be ranked in a single file, but seem rather to be clustered round points, and these round other points, and so on in almost endless cycles. On the view that each species has been independently created, I can see no explanation of this great fact in the classification of all organic beings; but, to the best of my judgment, it is explained through inheritance and the complex action of natural selection, entailing extinction and divergence of character, as we have seen illustrated in the diagram.

We've seen that it's the common, widespread species from larger groups that vary the most; these species tend to pass on to their modified offspring the traits that make them dominant in their environments. Natural selection, as mentioned earlier, leads to differences in traits and the extinction of less advanced and intermediate life forms. Based on these principles, I believe we can explain the relationships among all living organisms. It’s truly amazing—something we often take for granted—that all animals and plants, across all times and places, are related to each other in a hierarchical manner. This is evident as varieties of the same species are closely related, species within the same genus are less closely and unequally related, forming sections and sub-genera, while species from different genera are even less related, and genera are related to varying degrees, forming sub-families, families, orders, sub-classes, and classes. The different subordinate groups in any class can’t be organized in a straight line; instead, they seem to cluster around certain points, which cluster around other points, and so on in almost endless cycles. If we assume that each species was created independently, I don’t see how we can explain this significant aspect of the classification of all living beings. However, in my opinion, it can be explained through inheritance and the complex actions of natural selection, which involve extinction and divergence of traits, as illustrated in the diagram.

The affinities of all the beings of the same class have sometimes been represented by a great tree. I believe this simile largely speaks the truth. The green and budding twigs may represent existing species; and those produced during each former year may represent the long succession of extinct species. At each period of growth all the growing twigs have tried to branch out on all sides, and to overtop and kill the surrounding twigs and branches, in the same manner as species and groups of species have tried to overmaster other species in the great battle for life. The limbs divided into great branches, and these into lesser and lesser branches, were themselves once, when the tree was small, budding twigs; and this connexion of the former and present buds by ramifying branches may well represent the classification of all extinct and living species in groups subordinate to groups. Of the many twigs which flourished when the tree was a mere bush, only two or three, now grown into great branches, yet survive and bear all the other branches; so with the species which lived during long-past geological periods, very few now have living and modified descendants. From the first growth of the tree, many a limb and branch has decayed and dropped off; and these lost branches of various [130]sizes may represent those whole orders, families, and genera which have now no living representatives, and which are known to us only from having been found in a fossil state. As we here and there see a thin straggling branch springing from a fork low down in a tree, and which by some chance has been favoured and is still alive on its summit, so we occasionally see an animal like the Ornithorhynchus or Lepidosiren, which in some small degree connects by its affinities two large branches of life, and which has apparently been saved from fatal competition by having inhabited a protected station. As buds give rise by growth to fresh buds, and these, if vigorous, branch out and overtop on all sides many a feebler branch, so by generation I believe it has been with the great Tree of Life, which fills with its dead and broken branches the crust of the earth, and covers the surface with its ever branching and beautiful ramifications.

The connections between all beings of the same class are often compared to a huge tree. I think this comparison is mostly accurate. The green and budding twigs can symbolize existing species, while those that appeared in previous years can represent the long line of extinct species. During each growth period, all the growing twigs attempted to spread out in every direction, trying to outgrow and eliminate the nearby twigs and branches, similar to how species and groups of species compete against each other in the struggle for survival. The limbs split into large branches, which then divide into smaller and smaller ones, and these were once, when the tree was younger, budding twigs; this connection between past and present buds through branching may well represent how we classify all extinct and living species into subordinate groups. Of the many twigs that thrived when the tree was just a shrub, only a couple have grown into large branches and survive to support the other branches, much like how very few species from long-ago geological periods have living and modified descendants today. Since the tree first started growing, many limbs and branches have decayed and fallen off; these lost branches of different sizes can represent entire orders, families, and genera that have no living representatives today and are known only from fossils. Just as we sometimes see a thin, straggly branch emerging low down in a tree that, by chance, is still alive at its tip, we occasionally find an animal like the Ornithorhynchus or Lepidosiren that links two major branches of life and seems to have survived fierce competition by living in a protected niche. Just like buds grow into new buds, which can then branch out and overshadow weaker branches, I believe this is how it has been with the great Tree of Life, which fills the earth's crust with its dead and broken branches and spreads across the surface with its continually branching and beautiful offshoots.


[131]

[131]

CHAPTER V.

Laws of Variation.

Variability Laws

Effects of external conditions—Use and disuse, combined with natural selection; organs of flight and of vision—Acclimatisation—Correlation of growth—Compensation and economy of growth—False correlations—Multiple, rudimentary, and lowly organised structures variable—Parts developed in an unusual manner are highly variable: specific characters more variable than generic: secondary sexual characters variable—Species of the same genus vary in an analogous manner—Reversions to long-lost characters—Summary.

Impacts of external factors—Use and disuse, along with natural selection; organs for flying and seeing—Acclimatization—Link between growth—Compensation and growth efficiency—Misleading correlations—Various, rudimentary, and simply structured features that change—Parts developed in unique ways show a lot of variation: specific traits are more variable than general traits: secondary sexual traits are variable—Species within the same genus show similar variations—Reversions to traits that were long lost—Summary.

I have hitherto sometimes spoken as if the variations—so common and multiform in organic beings under domestication, and in a lesser degree in those in a state of nature—had been due to chance. This, of course, is a wholly incorrect expression, but it serves to acknowledge plainly our ignorance of the cause of each particular variation. Some authors believe it to be as much the function of the reproductive system to produce individual differences, or very slight deviations of structure, as to make the child like its parents. But the much greater variability, as well as the greater frequency of monstrosities, under domestication or cultivation, than under nature, leads me to believe that deviations of structure are in some way due to the nature of the conditions of life, to which the parents and their more remote ancestors have been exposed during several generations. I have remarked in the first chapter—but a long catalogue of facts which cannot be here given would be necessary to show the truth of the remark—that the reproductive system is eminently susceptible to changes in the conditions of life; and to [132]this system being functionally disturbed in the parents, I chiefly attribute the varying or plastic condition of the offspring. The male and female sexual elements seem to be affected before that union takes place which is to form a new being. In the case of "sporting" plants, the bud, which in its earliest condition does not apparently differ essentially from an ovule, is alone affected. But why, because the reproductive system is disturbed, this or that part should vary more or less, we are profoundly ignorant. Nevertheless, we can here and there dimly catch a faint ray of light, and we may feel sure that there must be some cause for each deviation of structure, however slight.

I have previously stated that the variations—so common and diverse in domesticated organisms, and to a lesser extent in those in the wild—were due to chance. This is, of course, a completely incorrect statement, but it highlights our lack of understanding regarding the cause of each specific variation. Some authors believe that the reproductive system's role includes creating individual differences or slight structural deviations, as well as ensuring that offspring resemble their parents. However, the significantly greater variability and frequency of abnormalities in domesticated or cultivated organisms compared to those in nature leads me to think that structural deviations are somehow linked to the living conditions experienced by parents and their more distant ancestors over several generations. I've noted in the first chapter—but a long list of facts, which I cannot provide here, would be necessary to support this observation—that the reproductive system is highly sensitive to changes in living conditions; and I mainly attribute the varying or adaptable state of the offspring to disturbances in this system in the parents. The male and female reproductive elements appear to be influenced before the union that forms a new being takes place. In the case of "sporting" plants, the bud, which at its earliest stage doesn’t seem to differ much from an ovule, is the only part affected. However, we remain deeply in the dark about why specific parts should vary more or less when the reproductive system is disturbed. Still, here and there, we can perceive a faint glimmer of understanding, and we can be confident that there must be some cause behind each structural deviation, no matter how minor.

How much direct effect difference of climate, food, &c., produces on any being is extremely doubtful. My impression is, that the effect is extremely small in the case of animals, but perhaps rather more in that of plants. We may, at least, safely conclude that such influences cannot have produced the many striking and complex co-adaptations of structure between one organic being and another, which we see everywhere throughout nature. Some little influence may be attributed to climate, food, &c.: thus, E. Forbes speaks confidently that shells at their southern limit, and when living in shallow water, are more brightly coloured than those of the same species further north or from greater depths. Gould believes that birds of the same species are more brightly coloured under a clear atmosphere, than when living on islands or near the coast. So with insects, Wollaston is convinced that residence near the sea affects their colours. Moquin-Tandon gives a list of plants which when growing near the sea-shore have their leaves in some degree fleshy, though not elsewhere fleshy. Several other such cases could be given.

How much direct impact factors like climate and food have on any living being is pretty uncertain. I feel that the effect is very minor for animals, but maybe a bit more significant for plants. We can at least conclude that these influences likely didn't create the many striking and complex adaptations we see between different organisms in nature. Some minor influence might come from climate and food; for example, E. Forbes confidently suggests that shells at their southern limit, especially in shallow water, are more brightly colored than those of the same species further north or deeper down. Gould believes that birds of the same species are more brightly colored in clear weather compared to when they are on islands or near the coast. Similarly, Wollaston is convinced that living near the sea affects the colors of insects. Moquin-Tandon lists plants that, when growing near the shoreline, have somewhat fleshy leaves, unlike those grown elsewhere. There are several other examples like this.

The fact of varieties of one species, when they range [133]into the zone of habitation of other species, often acquiring in a very slight degree some of the characters of such species, accords with our view that species of all kinds are only well-marked and permanent varieties. Thus the species of shells which are confined to tropical and shallow seas are generally brighter-coloured than those confined to cold and deeper seas. The birds which are confined to continents are, according to Mr. Gould, brighter-coloured than those of islands. The insect-species confined to sea-coasts, as every collector knows, are often brassy or lurid. Plants which live exclusively on the sea-side are very apt to have fleshy leaves. He who believes in the creation of each species, will have to say that this shell, for instance, was created with bright colours for a warm sea; but that this other shell became bright-coloured by variation when it ranged into warmer or shallower waters.

The fact that different varieties of a species can mix into the habitats of other species, often picking up some traits from those species, supports our idea that all species are basically well-defined and stable varieties. For example, shell species that live in tropical and shallow seas are usually more colorful than those that are found in cold, deep waters. According to Mr. Gould, birds living on continents are typically more vibrant in color than those found on islands. Insects that are found along coastlines, as any collector can attest, often have a shiny or vivid appearance. Plants that thrive exclusively by the sea tend to have thick, fleshy leaves. Someone who believes in the creation of each species would argue that this particular shell was created with bright colors for a warm sea, while this other shell became colorful due to variations when it moved into warmer or shallower waters.

When a variation is of the slightest use to a being, we cannot tell how much of it to attribute to the accumulative action of natural selection, and how much to the conditions of life. Thus, it is well known to furriers that animals of the same species have thicker and better fur the more severe the climate is under which they have lived; but who can tell how much of this difference may be due to the warmest-clad individuals having been favoured and preserved during many generations, and how much to the direct action of the severe climate? for it would appear that climate has some direct action on the hair of our domestic quadrupeds.

When a variation is of the slightest benefit to a being, we can't determine how much of it is due to the cumulative impact of natural selection and how much is due to environmental conditions. For instance, furriers know that animals of the same species have thicker and better fur in harsher climates; but who can say how much of this difference is because the best-adapted individuals were favored and survived through many generations, and how much results from the direct effects of the harsh climate? It seems that climate does have some direct influence on the fur of our domestic animals.

Instances could be given of the same variety being produced under conditions of life as different as can well be conceived; and, on the other hand, of different varieties being produced from the same species under the same conditions. Such facts show how indirectly [134]the conditions of life act. Again, innumerable instances are known to every naturalist of species keeping true, or not varying at all, although living under the most opposite climates. Such considerations as these incline me to lay very little weight on the direct action of the conditions of life. Indirectly, as already remarked, they seem to play an important part in affecting the reproductive system, and in thus inducing variability; and natural selection will then accumulate all profitable variations, however slight, until they become plainly developed and appreciable by us.

There are examples of the same variety being produced in very different living conditions, and on the other hand, different varieties arising from the same species in the same conditions. These facts demonstrate how indirectly [134]living conditions influence development. Additionally, there are countless cases known to every naturalist of species remaining consistent, or not varying at all, even when living in the most contrasting climates. These points lead me to place very little emphasis on the direct impact of living conditions. Indirectly, as mentioned before, they seem to significantly influence the reproductive system, which in turn induces variability; and then, natural selection will accumulate all beneficial variations, no matter how small, until they are clearly developed and noticeable to us.

 

Effects of Use and Disuse.—From the facts alluded to in the first chapter, I think there can be little doubt that use in our domestic animals strengthens and enlarges certain parts, and disuse diminishes them; and that such modifications are inherited. Under free nature, we can have no standard of comparison, by which to judge of the effects of long-continued use or disuse, for we know not the parent-forms; but many animals have structures which can be explained by the effects of disuse. As Professor Owen has remarked, there is no greater anomaly in nature than a bird that cannot fly; yet there are several in this state. The logger-headed duck of South America can only flap along the surface of the water, and has its wings in nearly the same condition as the domestic Aylesbury duck. As the larger ground-feeding birds seldom take flight except to escape danger, I believe that the nearly wingless condition of several birds, which now inhabit or have lately inhabited several oceanic islands, tenanted by no beast of prey, has been caused by disuse. The ostrich indeed inhabits continents and is exposed to danger from which it cannot escape by flight, but by kicking it can defend itself from enemies, as well as any of the smaller [135]quadrupeds. We may imagine that the early progenitor of the ostrich had habits like those of a bustard, and that as natural selection increased in successive generations the size and weight of its body, its legs were used more, and its wings less, until they became incapable of flight.

Effects of Use and Disuse.—From the facts mentioned in the first chapter, I think it's clear that using our domesticated animals strengthens and enlarges certain parts, while not using them causes those parts to shrink; and these changes can be passed on to future generations. In the wild, we have no standard to compare and judge the effects of prolonged use or disuse, since we don’t know the original forms; however, many animals have features that can be explained by the effects of disuse. As Professor Owen pointed out, a bird that can’t fly is one of nature's greatest oddities, yet there are several such birds. The logger-headed duck from South America can only paddle on the water’s surface, and its wings are similar to those of the domestic Aylesbury duck. Because larger ground-feeding birds usually only fly to escape danger, I believe the nearly wingless state of several birds that inhabit or recently inhabited oceanic islands, which have no predators, is due to disuse. The ostrich, on the other hand, lives in continents where it faces danger it can’t escape from by flying, but it can defend itself from threats by kicking, just like smaller quadrupeds. We can imagine that the early ancestor of the ostrich had habits similar to those of a bustard, and as natural selection took effect over generations, its body grew larger and heavier, leading to its legs being used more and its wings less, until they were no longer capable of flight.

Kirby has remarked (and I have observed the same fact) that the anterior tarsi, or feet, of many male dung-feeding beetles are very often broken off; he examined seventeen specimens in his own collection, and not one had even a relic left. In the Onites apelles the tarsi are so habitually lost, that the insect has been described as not having them. In some other genera they are present, but in a rudimentary condition. In the Ateuchus or sacred beetle of the Egyptians, they are totally deficient. There is not sufficient evidence to induce me to believe that mutilations are ever inherited; and I should prefer explaining the entire absence of the anterior tarsi in Ateuchus, and their rudimentary condition in some other genera, by the long-continued effects of disuse in their progenitors; for as the tarsi are almost always lost in many dung-feeding beetles, they must be lost early in life, and therefore cannot be much used by these insects.

Kirby has pointed out (and I've noticed the same thing) that the front feet of many male dung-feeding beetles are often broken off. He looked at seventeen specimens in his collection, and not one had even the slightest remnant. In the Onites apelles, the front feet are so regularly missing that the insect has been described as not having them at all. In some other genera, they are there but in a very basic form. In the Ateuchus, or sacred beetle of the Egyptians, they are completely absent. There's not enough evidence to convince me that these mutilations are passed down; I'd rather explain the complete lack of front feet in Ateuchus and their basic form in some other genera as a result of being unused by their ancestors over a long time. Since the front feet are almost always lost in many dung-feeding beetles, they must be lost early in life and therefore aren't really used by these insects.

In some cases we might easily put down to disuse modifications of structure which are wholly, or mainly, due to natural selection. Mr. Wollaston has discovered the remarkable fact that 200 beetles, out of the 550 species inhabiting Madeira, are so far deficient in wings that they cannot fly; and that of the twenty-nine endemic genera, no less than twenty-three genera have all their species in this condition! Several facts, namely, that beetles in many parts of the world are frequently blown to sea and perish; that the beetles in Madeira, as observed by Mr. Wollaston, lie much concealed, [136]until the wind lulls and the sun shines; that the proportion of wingless beetles is larger on the exposed Desertas than in Madeira itself; and especially the extraordinary fact, so strongly insisted on by Mr. Wollaston, of the almost entire absence of certain large groups of beetles, elsewhere excessively numerous, and which groups have habits of life almost necessitating frequent flight;—these several considerations have made me believe that the wingless condition of so many Madeira beetles is mainly due to the action of natural selection, but combined probably with disuse. For during thousands of successive generations each individual beetle which flew least, either from its wings having been ever so little less perfectly developed or from indolent habit, will have had the best chance of surviving from not being blown out to sea; and, on the other hand, those beetles which most readily took to flight would oftenest have been blown to sea and thus have been destroyed.

In some cases, we might easily attribute the modifications in structure, which arise mainly from natural selection, to disuse. Mr. Wollaston has discovered the interesting fact that 200 out of the 550 beetle species living in Madeira are so lacking in wings that they cannot fly; and among the twenty-nine endemic genera, no less than twenty-three genera have all their species in this state! Several facts support this, including the observation that beetles in many regions often get blown out to sea and die; that the beetles in Madeira, as noted by Mr. Wollaston, remain hidden until the wind calms and the sun shines; that the proportion of wingless beetles is higher on the exposed Desertas than in Madeira itself; and especially the remarkable observation, emphasized by Mr. Wollaston, that certain large groups of beetles, which are very numerous elsewhere and have lifestyles that almost require frequent flight, are almost entirely absent here. These considerations lead me to believe that the wingless condition of so many beetles in Madeira mainly results from natural selection, likely combined with disuse. Over thousands of generations, each individual beetle that flew the least, whether due to wings being slightly less developed or from being more sluggish, had a better chance of surviving because it wasn't blown out to sea; conversely, those beetles that readily took flight were more often blown out to sea and consequently destroyed.

The insects in Madeira which are not ground-feeders, and which, as the flower-feeding coleoptera and lepidoptera, must habitually use their wings to gain their subsistence, have, as Mr. Wollaston suspects, their wings not at all reduced, but even enlarged. This is quite compatible with the action of natural selection. For when a new insect first arrived on the island, the tendency of natural selection to enlarge or to reduce the wings, would depend on whether a greater number of individuals were saved by successfully battling with the winds, or by giving up the attempt and rarely or never flying. As with mariners shipwrecked near a coast, it would have been better for the good swimmers if they had been able to swim still further, whereas it would have been better for the bad swimmers if they had not been able to swim at all and had stuck to the wreck. [137]

The insects in Madeira that don’t feed on the ground, and instead, like the flower-feeding beetles and butterflies, must regularly use their wings to survive, have, as Mr. Wollaston believes, wings that are not reduced at all, but even enlarged. This aligns well with the process of natural selection. When a new insect first arrived on the island, whether natural selection favored larger or smaller wings would depend on whether more individuals survived by successfully navigating the winds or by avoiding flight altogether. It's similar to shipwrecked sailors near a shore; it would have benefitted the good swimmers to be able to swim further, while it would have been better for the poor swimmers if they couldn’t swim at all and had stayed with the wreck. [137]

The eyes of moles and of some burrowing rodents are rudimentary in size, and in some cases are quite covered up by skin and fur. This state of the eyes is probably due to gradual reduction from disuse, but aided perhaps by natural selection. In South America, a burrowing rodent, the tuco-tuco, or Ctenomys, is even more subterranean in its habits than the mole; and I was assured by a Spaniard, who had often caught them, that they were frequently blind; one which I kept alive was certainly in this condition, the cause, as appeared on dissection, having been inflammation of the nictitating membrane. As frequent inflammation of the eyes must be injurious to any animal, and as eyes are certainly not indispensable to animals with subterranean habits, a reduction in their size with the adhesion of the eyelids and growth of fur over them, might in such case be an advantage; and if so, natural selection would constantly aid the effects of disuse.

The eyes of moles and some burrowing rodents are pretty small, and in some cases, they're almost completely covered by skin and fur. This situation likely comes from a gradual shrinkage due to not using them much, possibly reinforced by natural selection. In South America, there's a burrowing rodent called the tuco-tuco, or Ctenomys, which is even more underground in its lifestyle than the mole. A Spaniard I spoke to, who often caught them, told me that they were often blind; one I kept alive was definitely blind, and upon dissection, it turned out the cause was inflammation of the nictitating membrane. Since frequent eye inflammation can't be good for any animal, and since eyes aren't really necessary for animals that live underground, having smaller eyes that are stuck shut with eyelids and covered in fur could be beneficial in this case. If that's true, then natural selection would continually help enhance the effects of disuse.

It is well known that several animals, belonging to the most different classes, which inhabit the caves of Styria and of Kentucky, are blind. In some of the crabs the foot-stalk for the eye remains, though the eye is gone; the stand for the telescope is there, though the telescope with its glasses has been lost. As it is difficult to imagine that eyes, though useless, could be in any way injurious to animals living in darkness, I attribute their loss wholly to disuse. In one of the blind animals, namely, the cave-rat, the eyes are of immense size; and Professor Silliman thought that it regained, after living some days in the light, some slight power of vision. In the same manner as in Madeira the wings of some of the insects have been enlarged, and the wings of others have been reduced by natural selection aided by use and disuse, so in the case of the cave-rat natural selection seems to have struggled with the loss of light and [138]to have increased the size of the eyes; whereas with all the other inhabitants of the caves, disuse by itself seems to have done its work.

It’s well known that several animals from different classes that live in the caves of Styria and Kentucky are blind. In some crabs, the stalk for the eye remains, even though the eye is gone; the setup for the telescope still exists, but the telescope with its lenses has disappeared. Since it’s hard to believe that eyes, even if they serve no purpose, could actually harm animals living in darkness, I think their loss is purely due to disuse. One of the blind animals, specifically the cave-rat, has very large eyes, and Professor Silliman believed that it regained a bit of vision after spending some days in the light. Just like in Madeira, where the wings of some insects have become larger and others smaller due to natural selection influenced by use and disuse, it seems that in the case of the cave-rat, natural selection has worked against the lack of light and increased the size of its eyes; meanwhile, for all the other cave-dwellers, disuse alone appears to have taken its toll.

It is difficult to imagine conditions of life more similar than deep limestone caverns under a nearly similar climate; so that on the common view of the blind animals having been separately created for the American and European caverns, close similarity in their organisation and affinities might have been expected; but, as Schiödte and others have remarked, this is not the case, and the cave-insects of the two continents are not more closely allied than might have been anticipated from the general resemblance of the other inhabitants of North America and Europe. On my view we must suppose that American animals, having ordinary powers of vision, slowly migrated by successive generations from the outer world into the deeper and deeper recesses of the Kentucky caves, as did European animals into the caves of Europe. We have some evidence of this gradation of habit; for, as Schiödte remarks, "animals not far remote from ordinary forms, prepare the transition from light to darkness. Next follow those that are constructed for twilight; and, last of all, those destined for total darkness." By the time that an animal had reached, after numberless generations, the deepest recesses, disuse will on this view have more or less perfectly obliterated its eyes, and natural selection will often have effected other changes, such as an increase in the length of the antennæ or palpi, as a compensation for blindness. Notwithstanding such modifications, we might expect still to see in the cave-animals of America, affinities to the other inhabitants of that continent, and in those of Europe, to the inhabitants of the European continent. And this is the case with some of the American cave-animals, as I hear from [139]Professor Dana; and some of the European cave-insects are very closely allied to those of the surrounding country. It would be most difficult to give any rational explanation of the affinities of the blind cave-animals to the other inhabitants of the two continents on the ordinary view of their independent creation. That several of the inhabitants of the caves of the Old and New Worlds should be closely related, we might expect from the well-known relationship of most of their other productions. Far from feeling any surprise that some of the cave-animals should be very anomalous, as Agassiz has remarked in regard to the blind fish, the Amblyopsis, and as is the case with the blind Proteus with reference to the reptiles of Europe, I am only surprised that more wrecks of ancient life have not been preserved, owing to the less severe competition to which the inhabitants of these dark abodes will probably have been exposed.

It's hard to picture living conditions more alike than those found in deep limestone caves with similar climates. So one might expect that the blind animals in America's and Europe's caverns, which are thought to have been created separately, would show a close similarity in their structure and relationships. However, as Schiödte and others have pointed out, this isn’t the case. The cave insects from both continents aren't any more closely related than you'd expect based on the general similarities between the other species in North America and Europe. I believe that American animals with regular eyesight gradually migrated over generations from the outside world into the deeper parts of the Kentucky caves, just like European animals did in their own caves. We have some evidence for this gradual change in habitat; as Schiödte notes, "animals not far off from typical forms act as a link from light to darkness. Next come those adapted for twilight; and lastly, those meant for total darkness." By the time an animal has reached, after countless generations, the deepest parts of the cave, its eyes will likely have faded away due to lack of use, and natural selection may have brought about other changes, like longer antennae or palps to compensate for blindness. Even with these changes, we'd still expect to see some connections between cave animals in America and other species on that continent, and the same for Europe. This is true for some American cave animals, as I learned from [139]Professor Dana; and some European cave insects are very closely related to those in the nearby regions. It would be really difficult to provide a logical explanation for the similarities between blind cave animals and other species on the two continents if we believe they were created independently. We might expect some of the cave dwellers from the Old and New Worlds to be closely related, given the well-known similarities among most of their other species. I’m not surprised that some cave animals are quite unusual, as Agassiz mentioned regarding the blind fish, Amblyopsis, and as is the case with the blind Proteus in relation to Europe's reptiles. I’m only surprised that more remnants of ancient life haven’t survived, likely due to the less harsh competition faced by the residents of these dark habitats.

 

Acclimatisation.—Habit is hereditary with plants, as in the period of flowering, in the amount of rain requisite for seeds to germinate, in the time of sleep, &c., and this leads me to say a few words on acclimatisation. As it is extremely common for species of the same genus to inhabit very hot and very cold countries, and as I believe that all the species of the same genus have descended from a single parent, if this view be correct, acclimatisation must be readily effected during long-continued descent. It is notorious that each species is adapted to the climate of its own home: species from an arctic or even from a temperate region cannot endure a tropical climate, or conversely. So again, many succulent plants cannot endure a damp climate. But the degree of adaptation of species to the climates under which they live is often overrated. [140]We may infer this from our frequent inability to predict whether or not an imported plant will endure our climate, and from the number of plants and animals brought from warmer countries which here enjoy good health. We have reason to believe that species in a state of nature are limited in their ranges by the competition of other organic beings quite as much as, or more than, by adaptation to particular climates. But whether or not the adaptation be generally very close, we have evidence, in the case of some few plants, of their becoming, to a certain extent, naturally habituated to different temperatures, or becoming acclimatised: thus the pines and rhododendrons, raised from seed collected by Dr. Hooker from trees growing at different heights on the Himalaya, were found in this country to possess different constitutional powers of resisting cold. Mr. Thwaites informs me that he has observed similar facts in Ceylon, and analogous observations have been made by Mr. H. C. Watson on European species of plants brought from the Azores to England. In regard to animals, several authentic cases could be given of species within historical times having largely extended their range from warmer to cooler latitudes, and conversely; but we do not positively know that these animals were strictly adapted to their native climate, but in all ordinary cases we assume such to be the case; nor do we know that they have subsequently become acclimatised to their new homes.

Acclimatization.—Habit is inherited in plants, just like their flowering period, the amount of rain needed for seeds to sprout, and their sleeping schedule, etc. This brings me to say a few words about acclimatization. It’s very common for species within the same genus to live in both very hot and very cold places, and I believe that all species from the same genus come from a single ancestor. If that's true, acclimatization should happen easily over long periods of descent. It’s well-known that each species is suited to the climate of its native habitat: species from Arctic regions or even temperate zones can’t handle tropical climates, and vice versa. Likewise, many succulent plants can’t tolerate wet climates. However, the extent to which species adapt to their climates is often overstated. [140] We can see this from how often we can’t predict if an imported plant will survive our climate, as well as from the many plants and animals brought in from warmer countries that thrive here. We believe that species in their natural environment are limited in their habitats by competition with other organisms just as much, if not more, than by their adaptation to specific climates. But regardless of how closely they adapt, we see evidence in some plants of them becoming somewhat naturally accustomed to different temperatures or becoming acclimatized: for example, pines and rhododendrons grown from seeds collected by Dr. Hooker from trees at different elevations in the Himalayas showed varying abilities to withstand cold in this country. Mr. Thwaites has told me he has seen similar cases in Ceylon, and Mr. H.C. Watson has noted similar observations regarding European plant species brought from the Azores to England. Regarding animals, there are several verified cases of species having significantly expanded their range from warmer to cooler areas and vice versa, but we can’t say for sure that these animals were perfectly suited to their original climate; in most usual cases, we assume they were. We also don’t know if they have adjusted to their new environments since then.

As I believe that our domestic animals were originally chosen by uncivilised man because they were useful and bred readily under confinement, and not because they were subsequently found capable of far-extended transportation, I think the common and extraordinary capacity in our domestic animals of not only withstanding the most different climates but of being perfectly [141]fertile (a far severer test) under them, may be used as an argument that a large proportion of other animals, now in a state of nature, could easily be brought to bear widely different climates. We must not, however, push the foregoing argument too far, on account of the probable origin of some of our domestic animals from several wild stocks: the blood, for instance, of a tropical and arctic wolf or wild dog may perhaps be mingled in our domestic breeds. The rat and mouse cannot be considered as domestic animals, but they have been transported by man to many parts of the world, and now have a far wider range than any other rodent, living free under the cold climate of Faroe in the north and of the Falklands in the south, and on many islands in the torrid zones. Hence I am inclined to look at adaptation to any special climate as a quality readily grafted on an innate wide flexibility of constitution, which is common to most animals. On this view, the capacity of enduring the most different climates by man himself and by his domestic animals, and such facts as that former species of the elephant and rhinoceros were capable of enduring a glacial climate, whereas the living species are now all tropical or sub-tropical in their habits, ought not to be looked at as anomalies, but merely as examples of a very common flexibility of constitution, brought, under peculiar circumstances, into play.

I believe that our domesticated animals were initially selected by primitive humans because they were useful and could reproduce easily in captivity, not because they were later discovered to be capable of traveling great distances. I think the widespread ability of our domestic animals to not only survive in various climates but also to reproduce successfully (which is a much tougher test) can be used as evidence that a significant number of other wild animals could be adapted to thrive in different climates. However, we shouldn't take this argument too far, given that some of our domestic animals likely originated from different wild species; for example, the ancestry of a tropical and arctic wolf or wild dog might be mixed in our domestic breeds. Rats and mice aren’t considered domesticated animals, but humans have spread them across many parts of the world, and they now inhabit a wider range than any other rodent, thriving in the cold climates of the Faroe Islands in the north and the Falklands in the south, as well as on many islands in tropical areas. Therefore, I tend to view adaptation to specific climates as a trait that can be easily combined with an inherent flexibility that most animals possess. From this perspective, the ability of both humans and their domesticated animals to endure various climates, along with the fact that extinct species of elephants and rhinoceroses could survive in glacial conditions, while all living species now prefer tropical or subtropical environments, should not be seen as anomalies but rather as examples of a common adaptability in constitution, activated under unique circumstances.

How much of the acclimatisation of species to any peculiar climate is due to mere habit, and how much to the natural selection of varieties having different innate constitutions, and how much to both means combined, is a very obscure question. That habit or custom has some influence I must believe, both from analogy, and from the incessant advice given in agricultural works, even in the ancient Encyclopædias of China, to be very [142]cautious in transposing animals from one district to another; for it is not likely that man should have succeeded in selecting so many breeds and sub-breeds with constitutions specially fitted for their own districts: the result must, I think, be due to habit. On the other hand, I can see no reason to doubt that natural selection will continually tend to preserve those individuals which are born with constitutions best adapted to their native countries. In treatises on many kinds of cultivated plants, certain varieties are said to withstand certain climates better than others: this is very strikingly shown in works on fruit trees published in the United States, in which certain varieties are habitually recommended for the northern, and others for the southern States; and as most of these varieties are of recent origin, they cannot owe their constitutional differences to habit. The case of the Jerusalem artichoke, which is never propagated by seed, and of which consequently new varieties have not been produced, has even been advanced—for it is now as tender as ever it was—as proving that acclimatisation cannot be effected! The case, also, of the kidney-bean has been often cited for a similar purpose, and with much greater weight; but until some one will sow, during a score of generations, his kidney-beans so early that a very large proportion are destroyed by frost, and then collect seed from the few survivors, with care to prevent accidental crosses, and then again get seed from these seedlings, with the same precautions, the experiment cannot be said to have been even tried. Nor let it be supposed that no differences in the constitution of seedling kidney-beans ever appear, for an account has been published how much more hardy some seedlings appeared to be than others.

How much of how species adjust to unique climates is due to simple habit, natural selection of different varieties with their own innate traits, or a combination of both, is a complicated question. I believe habit or custom has some influence, based on analogy and the constant advice found in agricultural literature, including ancient Chinese encyclopedias, to be very cautious when moving animals from one area to another. It seems unlikely that humans would have succeeded in breeding so many varieties with traits specifically suited to their regions without the influence of habit. On the other hand, I have no doubt that natural selection will continually favor individuals that are born with traits best suited to their native environments. In many studies on cultivated plants, some varieties are noted to handle certain climates better than others. This is particularly obvious in works about fruit trees published in the United States, where certain varieties are consistently recommended for northern states and others for southern states. Many of these varieties are of recent origin, so their differences in constitution can't be attributed to habit. The case of the Jerusalem artichoke, which reproduces only through tubers and not seeds, and has not produced new varieties, is often presented as evidence that acclimatization is impossible; it remains just as delicate as before. The case of the kidney bean has also been frequently cited for similar reasons, with even stronger arguments. However, until someone sows kidney beans over multiple generations early enough that a significant number are killed by frost, then collects seeds from the few survivors while preventing accidental hybrids, and does this again with the seedlings while taking the same precautions, the experiment can’t genuinely be said to have been attempted. And let’s not assume that no differences in the constitution of seedling kidney beans ever occur; there are reports showing how some seedlings were notably hardier than others.

On the whole, I think we may conclude that habit, [143]use, and disuse, have, in some cases, played a considerable part in the modification of the constitution, and of the structure of various organs; but that the effects of use and disuse have often been largely combined with, and sometimes overmastered by the natural selection of innate variations.

Overall, I think we can conclude that habits, [143]usage, and neglect have, in some instances, significantly influenced the changes in the constitution and the structure of different organs; however, the effects of usage and neglect have often been largely mixed with, and at times overshadowed by, the natural selection of inherent variations.

 

Correlation of Growth.—I mean by this expression that the whole organisation is so tied together during its growth and development, that when slight variations in any one part occur, and are accumulated through natural selection, other parts become modified. This is a very important subject, most imperfectly understood. The most obvious case is, that modifications accumulated solely for the good of the young or larva, will, it may safely be concluded, affect the structure of the adult; in the same manner as any malconformation affecting the early embryo, seriously affects the whole organisation of the adult. The several parts of the body which are homologous, and which, at an early embryonic period, are alike, seem liable to vary in an allied manner: we see this in the right and left sides of the body varying in the same manner; in the front and hind legs, and even in the jaws and limbs, varying together, for the lower jaw is believed to be homologous with the limbs. These tendencies, I do not doubt, may be mastered more or less completely by natural selection: thus a family of stags once existed with an antler only on one side; and if this had been of any great use to the breed it might probably have been rendered permanent by natural selection.

Correlation of Growth.—What I mean by this is that the entire organization is interconnected during its growth and development. When small changes happen in any one part and are passed on through natural selection, other parts also get modified. This is a crucial topic that’s not well understood. The clearest example is that changes which benefit the young or larvae will likely also impact the structure of the adult; similarly, any abnormalities affecting the early embryo significantly influence the entire structure of the adult. The various parts of the body that are homologous and similar during the early embryonic stage seem to change in a related way: we see this in how the right and left sides of the body can vary similarly, as well as in the front and back legs, and even in the jaws and limbs—since the lower jaw is thought to be homologous with the limbs. I believe these tendencies can be managed to some degree by natural selection: for example, there was a family of stags that had antlers only on one side; if this feature had been particularly useful to the breed, it might have become a permanent trait through natural selection.

Homologous parts, as has been remarked by some authors, tend to cohere; this is often seen in monstrous plants; and nothing is more common than the union of homologous parts in normal structures, as the union of [144]the petals of the corolla into a tube. Hard parts seem to affect the form of adjoining soft parts; it is believed by some authors that the diversity in the shape of the pelvis in birds causes the remarkable diversity in the shape of their kidneys. Others believe that the shape of the pelvis in the human mother influences by pressure the shape of the head of the child. In snakes, according to Schlegel, the shape of the body and the manner of swallowing determine the position of several of the most important viscera.

Homologous parts, as some authors have pointed out, tend to stick together; this is often seen in unusual plants. It's quite common for homologous parts to merge in typical structures, like the joining of the petals of the corolla into a tube. Hard parts seem to shape the form of nearby soft parts; some authors believe that the differences in the shape of the pelvis in birds lead to significant variations in the shape of their kidneys. Others think that the shape of the pelvis in a human mother affects the shape of the child’s head through pressure. According to Schlegel, in snakes, the shape of the body and the way they swallow determine the placement of several important organs.

The nature of the bond of correlation is very frequently quite obscure. M. Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire has forcibly remarked, that certain malconformations very frequently, and that others rarely coexist, without our being able to assign any reason. What can be more singular than the relation between blue eyes and deafness in cats, and the tortoise-shell colour with the female sex; the feathered feet and skin between the outer toes in pigeons, and the presence of more or less down on the young birds when first hatched, with the future colour of their plumage; or, again, the relation between the hair and teeth in the naked Turkish dog, though here probably homology comes into play? With respect to this latter case of correlation, I think it can hardly be accidental, that if we pick out the two orders of mammalia which are most abnormal in their dermal covering, viz. Cetacea (whales) and Edentata (armadilloes, scaly anteaters, &c.), that these are likewise the most abnormal in their teeth.

The nature of the correlation bond is often quite unclear. M. Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire pointed out that some deformities often occur together while others rarely do, without us being able to explain why. What could be more unusual than the connection between blue eyes and deafness in cats, or the tortoise-shell color being linked to females; the feathered feet and skin between the outer toes in pigeons, and the amount of down on young birds when they first hatch, related to the future color of their feathers; or the relationship between hair and teeth in the hairless Turkish dog, although here homology might be involved? Regarding this latter correlation case, it seems unlikely to be coincidental that when we look at the two groups of mammals that are the most unusual in their skin covering, namely Cetacea (whales) and Edentata (armadillos, scaly anteaters, etc.), these are also the most remarkable in their teeth.

I know of no case better adapted to show the importance of the laws of correlation in modifying important structures, independently of utility and, therefore, of natural selection, than that of the difference between the outer and inner flowers in some Compositous and Umbelliferous plants. Every one knows the [145]difference in the ray and central florets of, for instance, the daisy, and this difference is often accompanied with the abortion of parts of the flower. But, in some Compositous plants, the seeds also differ in shape and sculpture; and even the ovary itself, with its accessory parts, differs, as has been described by Cassini. These differences have been attributed by some authors to pressure, and the shape of the seeds in the ray-florets in some Compositæ countenances this idea; but, in the case of the corolla of the Umbelliferæ, it is by no means, as Dr. Hooker informs me, in species with the densest heads that the inner and outer flowers most frequently differ. It might have been thought that the development of the ray-petals by drawing nourishment from certain other parts of the flower had caused their abortion; but in some Compositæ there is a difference in the seeds of the outer and inner florets without any difference in the corolla. Possibly, these several differences may be connected with some difference in the flow of nutriment towards the central and external flowers: we know, at least, that in irregular flowers, those nearest to the axis are oftenest subject to peloria, and become regular. I may add, as an instance of this, and of a striking case of correlation, that I have recently observed in some garden pelargoniums, that the central flower of the truss often loses the patches of darker colour in the two upper petals; and that when this occurs, the adherent nectary is quite aborted; when the colour is absent from only one of the two upper petals, the nectary is only much shortened.

I can't think of a better example to highlight the importance of correlation laws in altering significant structures, independent of their usefulness and, thus, natural selection, than the differences between the outer and inner flowers in some Composite and Umbellifer plants. Everyone knows the difference between the ray and central florets of, for example, the daisy, and this variation often comes with parts of the flower not developing. However, in certain Composite plants, the seeds also vary in shape and texture; even the ovary and its extra parts differ, as Cassini has described. Some authors have attributed these differences to pressure, and the shape of the seeds in the ray-florets of some Composites supports this idea. Yet, regarding the corolla of the Umbelliferæ, as Dr. Hooker told me, it's not necessarily the species with the densest heads that show the most frequent differences between the inner and outer flowers. One might think that the nourishment drawn from specific parts of the flower caused the development of ray-petals, leading to parts being undeveloped. However, in some Composites, there's a difference in the seeds of the outer and inner florets without any change in the corolla. These different traits might be related to some variation in the nutrient flow toward the central and outer flowers: we know that in irregular flowers, those closest to the center tend to undergo peloria and become more regular. Additionally, as a clear example of this and a striking case of correlation, I've recently noticed in some garden pelargoniums that the central flower of the truss often loses the darker patches on the two upper petals. When this happens, the nectary that is attached disappears completely; when the color is only missing from one of the two upper petals, the nectary is just significantly shorter.

With respect to the difference in the corolla of the central and exterior flowers of a head or umbel, I do not feel at all sure that C. C. Sprengel's idea that the ray-florets serve to attract insects, whose agency is highly advantageous in the fertilisation of plants of [146]these two orders, is so far-fetched, as it may at first appear: and if it be advantageous, natural selection may have come into play. But in regard to the differences both in the internal and external structure of the seeds, which are not always correlated with any differences in the flowers, it seems impossible that they can be in any way advantageous to the plant: yet in the Umbelliferæ these differences are of such apparent importance—the seeds being in some cases, according to Tausch, orthospermous in the exterior flowers and cœlospermous in the central flowers,—that the elder De Candolle founded his main divisions of the order on analogous differences. Hence we see that modifications of structure, viewed by systematists as of high value, may be wholly due to unknown laws of correlated growth, and without being, as far as we can see, of the slightest service to the species.

Regarding the difference in the petals of the central and outer flowers of a cluster or umbel, I'm not entirely convinced that C. C. Sprengel's notion that the ray flowers attract insects, which is quite beneficial for plant fertilization in these two categories, is as far-fetched as it might initially seem. If it is advantageous, natural selection might have played a role. However, when it comes to the differences in both the internal and external structures of the seeds, which don't always relate to any differences in the flowers, it seems unlikely that they provide any benefit to the plant. Yet in the Umbelliferæ, these differences appear to be quite significant—the seeds are orthospermous in the outer flowers and coelospermous in the central flowers, according to Tausch—which led the elder De Candolle to base his main classifications of the order on similar differences. Thus, we can see that structural modifications, regarded as highly valuable by taxonomists, may simply arise from unknown laws of correlated growth and may not necessarily benefit the species in any visible way.

We may often falsely attribute to correlation of growth, structures which are common to whole groups of species, and which in truth are simply due to inheritance; for an ancient progenitor may have acquired through natural selection some one modification in structure, and, after thousands of generations, some other and independent modification; and these two modifications, having been transmitted to a whole group of descendants with diverse habits, would naturally be thought to be correlated in some necessary manner. So, again, I do not doubt that some apparent correlations, occurring throughout whole orders, are entirely due to the manner alone in which natural selection can act. For instance, Alph. De Candolle has remarked that winged seeds are never found in fruits which do not open: I should explain the rule by the fact that seeds could not gradually become winged through natural selection, except in fruits which opened; so that the individual plants producing [147]seeds which were a little better fitted to be wafted further, might get an advantage over those producing seed less fitted for dispersal; and this process could not possibly go on in fruit which did not open.

We often mistakenly link the growth of certain traits to the fact that they exist in many species, when in reality, they result from inherited characteristics. An ancient ancestor might have developed a specific structural change through natural selection, and after many generations, might have developed another independent change. These traits, passed down to a diverse group of descendants, could easily be perceived as being inherently related. Additionally, I believe that some seemingly obvious connections across entire categories of species arise solely from how natural selection operates. For example, Alph. De Candolle noted that winged seeds are never found in fruits that don’t open. I would explain this by saying that seeds could only gradually develop wings through natural selection if they were in fruits that opened; thus, individual plants producing seeds that were slightly better suited for being carried further would have an advantage over those with seeds that were less suited for dispersal. This process wouldn't be possible in fruits that don’t open.

The elder Geoffroy and Goethe propounded, at about the same period, their law of compensation or balancement of growth; or, as Goethe expressed it, "in order to spend on one side, nature is forced to economise on the other side." I think this holds true to a certain extent with our domestic productions: if nourishment flows to one part or organ in excess, it rarely flows, at least in excess, to another part; thus it is difficult to get a cow to give much milk and to fatten readily. The same varieties of the cabbage do not yield abundant and nutritious foliage and a copious supply of oil-bearing seeds. When the seeds in our fruits become atrophied, the fruit itself gains largely in size and quality. In our poultry, a large tuft of feathers on the head is generally accompanied by a diminished comb, and a large beard by diminished wattles. With species in a state of nature it can hardly be maintained that the law is of universal application; but many good observers, more especially botanists, believe in its truth. I will not, however, here give any instances, for I see hardly any way of distinguishing between the effects, on the one hand, of a part being largely developed through natural selection and another and adjoining part being reduced by this same process or by disuse, and, on the other hand, the actual withdrawal of nutriment from one part owing to the excess of growth in another and adjoining part.

Elder Geoffroy and Goethe proposed around the same time their law of compensation or balance of growth; or, as Goethe put it, "to invest in one area, nature must cut back in another." I think this is somewhat true for our homegrown products: if nourishment goes to one part or organ too much, it rarely goes, at least not excessively, to another part; thus, it's tough to get a cow to produce a lot of milk while also getting it to gain weight easily. The same cabbage varieties don’t produce abundant and nutritious leaves along with a plentiful supply of oil-rich seeds. When the seeds in our fruits become underdeveloped, the fruit itself increases significantly in size and quality. In our poultry, a large tuft of feathers on the head usually comes with a smaller comb, and a big beard often means smaller wattles. With species in the wild, it's hard to argue that this law applies universally; however, many good observers, especially botanists, believe in its validity. I won't provide examples here, though, as I see little way to differentiate between the effects of one part being heavily developed through natural selection while an adjacent part is reduced by the same process or by disuse, and, on the other hand, the actual lack of nutrients going to one part due to another part's excessive growth.

I suspect, also, that some of the cases of compensation which have been advanced, and likewise some other facts, may be merged under a more general principle, namely, that natural selection is continually trying to economise in every part of the organisation. If under [148]changed conditions of life a structure before useful becomes less useful, any diminution, however slight, in its development, will be seized on by natural selection, for it will profit the individual not to have its nutriment wasted in building up an useless structure. I can thus only understand a fact with which I was much struck when examining cirripedes, and of which many other instances could be given: namely, that when a cirripede is parasitic within another and is thus protected, it loses more or less completely its own shell or carapace. This is the case with the male Ibla, and in a truly extraordinary manner with the Proteolepas: for the carapace in all other cirripedes consists of the three highly-important anterior segments of the head enormously developed, and furnished with great nerves and muscles; but in the parasitic and protected Proteolepas, the whole anterior part of the head is reduced to the merest rudiment attached to the bases of the prehensile antennæ. Now the saving of a large and complex structure, when rendered superfluous by the parasitic habits of the Proteolepas, though effected by slow steps, would be a decided advantage to each successive individual of the species; for in the struggle for life to which every animal is exposed, each individual Proteolepas would have a better chance of supporting itself, by less nutriment being wasted in developing a structure now become useless.

I also think that some of the compensation cases that have been proposed, along with other facts, might fall under a broader principle. That principle is that natural selection is always trying to conserve resources in every part of an organism. If, due to changing living conditions, a feature that was once useful becomes less helpful, any reduction, no matter how small, in its development will be taken advantage of by natural selection. This is because it benefits the individual not to waste nutrients on building an unnecessary structure. I can only understand a fact that really struck me when I was studying barnacles, and there are many other examples: when a barnacle is parasitic and protected within another, it often loses its shell or carapace almost entirely. This is true for the male Ibla and remarkably so for the Proteolepas; in most barnacles, the carapace consists of three extremely important anterior segments of the head, which are greatly developed and have large nerves and muscles. However, in the parasitic and protected Proteolepas, the entire front part of the head is reduced to a minimal remnant attached to the bases of its grasping antennae. Therefore, the reduction of a large and complex structure, rendered unnecessary by the Proteolepas's parasitic lifestyle, would definitely benefit each subsequent individual in the species, because, in the struggle for survival that every animal faces, any individual Proteolepas would have a better chance of thriving with less energy wasted on developing a now useless structure.

Thus, as I believe, natural selection will always succeed in the long run in reducing and saving every part of the organisation, as soon as it is rendered superfluous, without by any means causing some other part to be largely developed in a corresponding degree. And, conversely, that natural selection may perfectly well succeed in largely developing any organ, without requiring as a necessary compensation the reduction of some adjoining part. [149]

So, I think natural selection will always ultimately succeed in reducing and saving every part of the organism that becomes unnecessary, without significantly causing any other part to develop in a corresponding way. Conversely, natural selection can effectively develop any organ significantly, without needing a corresponding reduction in a nearby part. [149]

It seems to be a rule, as remarked by Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire, both in varieties and in species, that when any part or organ is repeated many times in the structure of the same individual (as the vertebræ in snakes, and the stamens in polyandrous flowers) the number is variable; whereas the number of the same part or organ, when it occurs in lesser numbers, is constant. The same author and some botanists have further remarked that multiple parts are also very liable to variation in structure. Inasmuch as this "vegetative repetition," to use Prof. Owen's expression, seems to be a sign of low organisation, the foregoing remark seems connected with the very general opinion of naturalists, that beings low in the scale of nature are more variable than those which are higher. I presume that lowness in this case means that the several parts of the organisation have been but little specialised for particular functions; and as long as the same part has to perform diversified work, we can perhaps see why it should remain variable, that is, why natural selection should have preserved or rejected each little deviation of form less carefully than when the part has to serve for one special purpose alone. In the same way that a knife which has to cut all sorts of things may be of almost any shape; whilst a tool for some particular object had better be of some particular shape. Natural selection, it should never be forgotten, can act on each part of each being, solely through and for its advantage.

It seems to be a rule, as noted by Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire, that in both varieties and species, when a part or organ is repeated multiple times in the structure of the same individual (like the vertebrae in snakes and the stamens in polyandrous flowers), the number is variable. On the other hand, the number of the same part or organ when it appears in smaller quantities is constant. The same author and some botanists have also pointed out that multiple parts are very prone to variation in structure. Since this "vegetative repetition," as Prof. Owen puts it, appears to indicate low organization, this observation ties into the widely held belief among naturalists that organisms lower on the evolutionary scale are more variable than those higher up. I assume that "lower" here refers to how the various parts of the organism haven't been highly specialized for specific functions; and as long as the same part has to perform different tasks, it makes sense that it would remain variable. In other words, natural selection may preserve or discard each small change in shape less carefully when that part needs to fulfill multiple roles. Just like a knife that must cut various things can be almost any shape, a tool designed for a specific purpose is better off being a specific shape. It's important to remember that natural selection operates on each part of every organism solely for its benefit.

Rudimentary parts, it has been stated by some authors, and I believe with truth, are apt to be highly variable. We shall have to recur to the general subject of rudimentary and aborted organs; and I will here only add that their variability seems to be owing to their uselessness, and therefore to natural selection having no power to check deviations in their structure. Thus [150]rudimentary parts are left to the free play of the various laws of growth, to the effects of long-continued disuse, and to the tendency to reversion.

Some authors have pointed out, and I believe rightly so, that rudimentary parts tend to be quite variable. We will need to revisit the broader topic of rudimentary and underdeveloped organs; for now, I will just add that their variability seems to stem from their lack of usefulness, which means natural selection doesn't have any influence to stabilize their structure. As a result, rudimentary parts are subject to the natural effects of growth processes, the consequences of prolonged disuse, and the inclination toward reversion. Thus [150] rudimentary parts are left to the free play of various growth laws.

 

A part developed in any species in an extraordinary degree or manner, in comparison with the same part in allied species, tends to be highly variable.—Several years ago I was much struck with a remark, nearly to the above effect, published by Mr. Waterhouse. I infer also from an observation made by Professor Owen, with respect to the length of the arms of the ourang-outang, that he has come to a nearly similar conclusion. It is hopeless to attempt to convince any one of the truth of this proposition without giving the long array of facts which I have collected, and which cannot possibly be here introduced. I can only state my conviction that it is a rule of high generality. I am aware of several causes of error, but I hope that I have made due allowance for them. It should be understood that the rule by no means applies to any part, however unusually developed, unless it be unusually developed in comparison with the same part in closely allied species. Thus, the bat's wing is a most abnormal structure in the class mammalia; but the rule would not here apply, because there is a whole group of bats having wings; it would apply only if some one species of bat had its wings developed in some remarkable manner in comparison with the other species of the same genus. The rule applies very strongly in the case of secondary sexual characters, when displayed in any unusual manner. The term, secondary sexual characters, used by Hunter, applies to characters which are attached to one sex, but are not directly connected with the act of reproduction. The rule applies to males and females; but as females more rarely offer remarkable secondary sexual characters, it applies [151]more rarely to them. The rule being so plainly applicable in the case of secondary sexual characters, may be due to the great variability of these characters, whether or not displayed in any unusual manner—of which fact I think there can be little doubt. But that our rule is not confined to secondary sexual characters is clearly shown in the case of hermaphrodite cirripedes; and I may here add, that I particularly attended to Mr. Waterhouse's remark, whilst investigating this Order, and I am fully convinced that the rule almost invariably holds good with cirripedes. I shall, in my future work, give a list of the more remarkable cases; I will here only briefly give one, as it illustrates the rule in its largest application. The opercular valves of sessile cirripedes (rock barnacles) are, in every sense of the word, very important structures, and they differ extremely little even in different genera; but in the several species of one genus, Pyrgoma, these valves present a marvellous amount of diversification: the homologous valves in the different species being sometimes wholly unlike in shape; and the amount of variation in the individuals of several of the species is so great, that it is no exaggeration to state that the varieties differ more from each other in the characters of these important valves than do other species of distinct genera.

A part that develops exceptionally in one species compared to the same part in related species tends to be very variable.—A few years ago, I was struck by a statement, similar to this one, published by Mr. Waterhouse. I also gather from an observation made by Professor Owen regarding the length of the arms of the orangutan that he has reached a nearly identical conclusion. It's pointless to try to convince anyone of the truth of this statement without presenting the extensive collection of facts I’ve gathered, which I can't possibly include here. I can only express my belief that this is a widely applicable rule. I'm aware of several potential errors, but I hope I've taken them into account. It should be noted that the rule doesn't apply to any part, no matter how unusually developed, unless it’s unusually developed compared to the same part in closely related species. For example, the bat's wing is an extremely unusual structure within mammals; however, the rule wouldn’t apply here because there’s a whole group of bats with wings. It would only apply if a specific bat species had wings developed in a remarkable way compared to other species in the same genus. The rule is particularly strong in the case of secondary sexual characteristics displayed in any unusual manner. The term, secondary sexual characteristics, used by Hunter, refers to features associated with one sex that are not directly linked to reproduction. The rule applies to both males and females, but since females rarely exhibit notable secondary sexual characteristics, it is less applicable to them. Given how clearly the rule applies to secondary sexual characteristics, it may result from the high variability of these traits, whether displayed unusually or not—which I believe is quite certain. However, our rule isn't limited to secondary sexual characteristics, as evidenced by the case of hermaphrodite cirripedes. Additionally, I paid special attention to Mr. Waterhouse's remark while studying this order, and I'm convinced that the rule almost always holds true for cirripedes. In my future work, I will provide a list of more notable cases; for now, I’ll briefly mention one that illustrates the rule in its broadest application. The opercular valves of sessile cirripedes (rock barnacles) are, in every sense, very important structures, and they vary very little even among different genera; however, in the various species of one genus, Pyrgoma, these valves show an astonishing degree of diversification. The corresponding valves in different species can be entirely different in shape, and the variation among individuals of several species is so pronounced that it is no exaggeration to say that the varieties differ more from one another in the characteristics of these crucial valves than distinct species in separate genera do.

As birds within the same country vary in a remarkably small degree, I have particularly attended to them, and the rule seems to me certainly to hold good in this class. I cannot make out that it applies to plants, and this would seriously have shaken my belief in its truth, had not the great variability in plants made it particularly difficult to compare their relative degrees of variability.

As birds within the same country vary only slightly, I have kept a close eye on them, and this rule definitely seems to apply in this case. I'm not sure it applies to plants, and this would have seriously shaken my belief in its truth if the significant variability in plants hadn't made it especially challenging to compare their levels of variability.

When we see any part or organ developed in a remarkable degree or manner in any species, the fair [152]presumption is that it is of high importance to that species; nevertheless the part in this case is eminently liable to variation. Why should this be so? On the view that each species has been independently created, with all its parts as we now see them, I can see no explanation. But on the view that groups of species have descended from other species, and have been modified through natural selection, I think we can obtain some light. In our domestic animals, if any part, or the whole animal, be neglected and no selection be applied, that part (for instance, the comb in the Dorking fowl) or the whole breed will cease to have a nearly uniform character. The breed will then be said to have degenerated. In rudimentary organs, and in those which have been but little specialised for any particular purpose, and perhaps in polymorphic groups, we see a nearly parallel natural case; for in such cases natural selection either has not or cannot come into full play, and thus the organisation is left in a fluctuating condition. But what here more especially concerns us is, that in our domestic animals those points, which at the present time are undergoing rapid change by continued selection, are also eminently liable to variation. Look at the breeds of the pigeon; see what a prodigious amount of difference there is in the beak of the different tumblers, in the beak and wattle of the different carriers, in the carriage and tail of our fantails, &c., these being the points now mainly attended to by English fanciers. Even in the sub-breeds, as in the short-faced tumbler, it is notoriously difficult to breed them nearly to perfection, and frequently individuals are born which depart widely from the standard. There may be truly said to be a constant struggle going on between, on the one hand, the tendency to reversion to a less modified state, as well as an innate tendency to further [153]variability of all kinds, and, on the other hand, the power of steady selection to keep the breed true. In the long run selection gains the day, and we do not expect to fail so far as to breed a bird as coarse as a common tumbler from a good short-faced strain. But as long as selection is rapidly going on, there may always be expected to be much variability in the structure undergoing modification. It further deserves notice that these variable characters, produced by man's selection, sometimes become attached, from causes quite unknown to us, more to one sex than to the other, generally to the male sex, as with the wattle of carriers and the enlarged crop of pouters.

When we observe any part or organ that is developed to an exceptional degree or manner in any species, it's reasonable to assume that it's very important to that species. However, this part is also very prone to variation. Why is this the case? If we assume that each species was created independently, with all its parts as we see them now, I can't find a reasonable explanation. But if we consider that groups of species have evolved from other species and have been modified through natural selection, we can find some insight. In our domestic animals, if a part, or the entire animal, is neglected and no selection is applied, that part (for example, the comb in the Dorking fowl) or the whole breed will lose its consistent characteristics. We would then say that the breed has degenerated. In the case of rudimentary organs, and those that haven’t been specialized for a specific purpose, as well as in polymorphic groups, we see a similar situation; in these instances, natural selection either hasn’t fully operated or can’t do so, leaving the organization in a fluctuating state. What particularly concerns us here is that in our domestic animals, those traits that are currently undergoing rapid changes due to ongoing selection are also very susceptible to variation. Look at the different breeds of pigeons; note the vast differences in the beaks of the various tumblers, in the beak and wattle of the different carriers, in the posture and tail of our fantails, etc., which are the main features currently focused on by English fanciers. Even within the sub-breeds, such as the short-faced tumbler, it's notoriously hard to breed them nearly perfectly, and often individuals are born that deviate significantly from the standard. There is a constant struggle happening between, on one hand, the tendency to revert to a less modified state and an inherent tendency to exhibit greater variability, and on the other hand, the consistent power of selection to maintain the breed's integrity. In the long run, selection prevails, and we don’t expect to fail to breed a bird as coarse as a common tumbler from a good short-faced lineage. However, as long as selection continues to be vigorous, we can expect considerable variability in the structures that are undergoing modification. It’s also worth noting that these variable traits, produced by humans' selection, sometimes become more associated with one sex than the other, usually the male, as seen with the wattle of carriers and the enlarged crop of pouters.

Now let us turn to nature. When a part has been developed in an extraordinary manner in any one species, compared with the other species of the same genus, we may conclude that this part has undergone an extraordinary amount of modification since the period when the species branched off from the common progenitor of the genus. This period will seldom be remote in any extreme degree, as species very rarely endure for more than one geological period. An extraordinary amount of modification implies an unusually large and long-continued amount of variability, which has continually been accumulated by natural selection for the benefit of the species. But as the variability of the extraordinarily-developed part or organ has been so great and long-continued within a period not excessively remote, we might, as a general rule, expect still to find more variability in such parts than in other parts of the organisation which have remained for a much longer period nearly constant. And this, I am convinced, is the case. That the struggle between natural selection on the one hand, and the tendency to reversion and variability on the other hand, will in the [154]course of time cease; and that the most abnormally developed organs may be made constant, I can see no reason to doubt. Hence when an organ, however abnormal it may be, has been transmitted in approximately the same condition to many modified descendants, as in the case of the wing of the bat, it must have existed, according to my theory, for an immense period in nearly the same state; and thus it comes to be no more variable than any other structure. It is only in those cases in which the modification has been comparatively recent and extraordinarily great that we ought to find the generative variability, as it may be called, still present in a high degree. For in this case the variability will seldom as yet have been fixed by the continued selection of the individuals varying in the required manner and degree, and by the continued rejection of those tending to revert to a former and less modified condition.

Now let’s look at nature. When one part of a species has developed in an extraordinary way compared to other species in the same genus, we can conclude that this part has undergone significant modification since the time the species diverged from the common ancestor of the genus. This divergence usually isn’t very far back in time because species rarely last more than one geological period. A significant amount of modification suggests a lot of variability over a long time, which has been continuously shaped by natural selection for the benefit of the species. However, since the variability of the exceptionally developed part or organ has been so extensive and persistent within a relatively recent period, we would generally expect to find even more variability in these parts than in other parts of the organism that have remained relatively constant for a much longer time. I’m convinced this is true. The struggle between natural selection and the tendency to revert and show variability will eventually diminish, and I see no reason to doubt that the most unusually developed organs can become stable over time. So, when an organ, regardless of how abnormal it is, has been passed down in roughly the same condition to many modified descendants, like the bat's wing, it must have existed, according to my theory, for a long time in nearly the same form; thus, it becomes as stable as any other structure. It’s only in cases where the modification is relatively recent and extremely significant that we should still find a high degree of generative variability. In these cases, the variability likely hasn't yet been fixed through the ongoing selection of individuals that vary in the desired way and the rejection of those reverting to an earlier, less modified form.

The principle included in these remarks may be extended. It is notorious that specific characters are more variable than generic. To explain by a simple example what is meant. If some species in a large genus of plants had blue flowers and some had red, the colour would be only a specific character, and no one would be surprised at one of the blue species varying into red, or conversely; but if all the species had blue flowers, the colour would become a generic character, and its variation would be a more unusual circumstance. I have chosen this example because an explanation is not in this case applicable, which most naturalists would advance, namely, that specific characters are more variable than generic, because they are taken from parts of less physiological importance than those commonly used for classing genera. I believe this explanation is partly, yet only indirectly, true; I shall, however, have to [155]return to this subject in our chapter on Classification. It would be almost superfluous to adduce evidence in support of the above statement, that specific characters are more variable than generic; but I have repeatedly noticed in works on natural history, that when an author has remarked with surprise that some important organ or part, which is generally very constant throughout large groups of species, has differed considerably in closely-allied species, that it has, also, been variable in the individuals of some of the species. And this fact shows that a character, which is generally of generic value, when it sinks in value and becomes only of specific value, often becomes variable, though its physiological importance may remain the same. Something of the same kind applies to monstrosities: at least Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire seems to entertain no doubt, that the more an organ normally differs in the different species of the same group, the more subject it is to individual anomalies.

The principle mentioned here can be expanded. It's well known that specific traits are usually more variable than generic ones. To illustrate this with a simple example: if some species within a large genus of plants had blue flowers and others had red, the color would be a specific trait, and it wouldn't be surprising if a blue species changed to red or vice versa. However, if all the species had blue flowers, then color would be a generic trait, and any variation would be quite unusual. I've chosen this example because an explanation typically used by most naturalists, that specific traits are more variable than generic ones because they're based on parts that have less physiological importance than those usually used to classify genera, doesn’t apply here. I believe this explanation is partly true but only indirectly; I will have to return to this topic in our chapter on Classification. It would be almost redundant to provide further evidence supporting the claim that specific traits are more variable than generic ones. Still, I’ve often noticed in natural history writings that when an author expresses surprise that an important organ or part, which is generally very consistent across large groups of species, has varied significantly in closely related species, it has also shown variability among individuals of some of those species. This observation indicates that a trait, typically considered of generic value, can become variable when it loses that value and only becomes specific, even if its physiological importance remains constant. Something similar applies to abnormalities: at least Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire seems certain that the more an organ typically varies among different species in the same group, the more likely it is to have individual irregularities.

On the ordinary view of each species having been independently created, why should that part of the structure, which differs from the same part in other independently-created species of the same genus, be more variable than those parts which are closely alike in the several species? I do not see that any explanation can be given. But on the view of species being only strongly marked and fixed varieties, we might surely expect to find them still often continuing to vary in those parts of their structure which have varied within a moderately recent period, and which have thus come to differ. Or to state the case in another manner:—the points in which all the species of a genus resemble each other, and in which they differ from the species of some other genus, are called generic characters; and these characters in common I attribute to [156]inheritance from a common progenitor, for it can rarely have happened that natural selection will have modified several species, fitted to more or less widely-different habits, in exactly the same manner: and as these so-called generic characters have been inherited from a remote period, since that period when the species first branched off from their common progenitor, and subsequently have not varied or come to differ in any degree, or only in a slight degree, it is not probable that they should vary at the present day. On the other hand, the points in which species differ from other species of the same genus, are called specific characters; and as these specific characters have varied and come to differ within the period of the branching off of the species from a common progenitor, it is probable that they should still often be in some degree variable,—at least more variable than those parts of the organisation which have for a very long period remained constant.

On the common idea that each species was created separately, why would the part of the structure that differs from the same part in other separately created species of the same genus be more variable than those parts that are very similar across the different species? I don't think any explanation can be provided. However, if we consider the idea that species are just strongly marked and fixed varieties, we might expect to see them still often continuing to vary in the parts of their structure that have changed in a moderately recent time and thus have become different. To put it another way: the traits in which all the species of a genus resemble each other and differ from the species of another genus are called generic characters; I believe these common traits come from inheritance from a shared ancestor, since it rarely happens that natural selection would modify several species, adapted to quite different habits, in exactly the same way. And because these so-called generic characters have been inherited from a distant time, when the species first separated from their common ancestor, and have not significantly varied since then, it’s unlikely that they would start to vary now. On the flip side, the traits in which species differ from other species of the same genus are called specific characters; since these specific characters have changed and become different during the time when the species branched off from a common ancestor, it makes sense that they would still often be somewhat variable—at least more variable than those parts of the organism that have remained constant for a very long time.

In connexion with the present subject, I will make only two other remarks. I think it will be admitted, without my entering on details, that secondary sexual characters are very variable; I think it also will be admitted that species of the same group differ from each other more widely in their secondary sexual characters, than in other parts of their organisation; compare, for instance, the amount of difference between the males of gallinaceous birds, in which secondary sexual characters are strongly displayed, with the amount of difference between their females; and the truth of this proposition will be granted. The cause of the original variability of secondary sexual characters is not manifest; but we can see why these characters should not have been rendered as constant and uniform as other parts of the organisation; for secondary sexual characters have been accumulated by sexual selection, which [157]is less rigid in its action than ordinary selection, as it does not entail death, but only gives fewer offspring to the less favoured males. Whatever the cause may be of the variability of secondary sexual characters, as they are highly variable, sexual selection will have had a wide scope for action, and may thus readily have succeeded in giving to the species of the same group a greater amount of difference in their sexual characters, than in other parts of their structure.

In relation to the current topic, I’ll only make two more points. I think it can be agreed, without going into detail, that secondary sexual traits are very variable; I also believe it can be accepted that species within the same group differ more noticeably in their secondary sexual traits than in other aspects of their structure. For example, look at the differences between male gallinaceous birds, where secondary sexual traits are prominently displayed, and the differences between their females; it's clear that this statement holds true. The reason behind the original variability of secondary sexual traits isn’t clear; however, we can understand why these traits haven’t become as consistent and uniform as other features of the structure. This is because secondary sexual traits have developed through sexual selection, which is less strict than regular selection since it doesn’t result in death but simply leads to fewer offspring for the less favored males. Regardless of the cause of the variability in secondary sexual traits, their high degree of variability means that sexual selection had ample opportunity to act, thus likely resulting in greater differences in sexual traits among species in the same group compared to other parts of their structure.

It is a remarkable fact, that the secondary sexual differences between the two sexes of the same species are generally displayed in the very same parts of the organisation in which the different species of the same genus differ from each other. Of this fact I will give in illustration two instances, the first which happen to stand on my list; and as the differences in these cases are of a very unusual nature, the relation can hardly be accidental. The same number of joints in the tarsi is a character generally common to very large groups of beetles, but in the Engidæ, as Westwood has remarked, the number varies greatly; and the number likewise differs in the two sexes of the same species: again in fossorial hymenoptera, the manner of neuration of the wings is a character of the highest importance, because common to large groups; but in certain genera the neuration differs in the different species, and likewise in the two sexes of the same species. This relation has a clear meaning on my view of the subject: I look at all the species of the same genus as having as certainly descended from the same progenitor, as have the two sexes of any one of the species. Consequently, whatever part of the structure of the common progenitor, or of its early descendants, became variable; variations of this part would, it is highly probable, be taken advantage of by natural and sexual selection, in order to fit [158]the several species to their several places in the economy of nature, and likewise to fit the two sexes of the same species to each other, or to fit the males and females to different habits of life, or the males to struggle with other males for the possession of the females.

It's interesting to note that the secondary sexual differences between males and females of the same species are typically found in the same parts of the organism where different species of the same genus show variations. To illustrate this, I’ll provide two examples from my list. The differences in these cases are quite unusual, so the connection is likely not coincidental. The number of joints in the tarsi is usually a trait that large groups of beetles share, but in the Engidæ, as Westwood pointed out, the number varies widely; this number also differs between the sexes of the same species. Similarly, in digging wasps, the structure of the wing veins is crucial, as it is common across many groups. However, in some genera, the vein structure varies between species, and also between the sexes of the same species. This relationship has a clear implication in my understanding of the topic: I believe all species within the same genus have certainly descended from a common ancestor, just like the two sexes of any one species have. Therefore, any part of the common ancestor's structure, or that of its early descendants, that became variable is likely to have been influenced by natural and sexual selection to adapt the various species to their roles in nature, and to help the two sexes of the same species relate to each other, or for males to compete with other males for access to females.

Finally, then, I conclude that the greater variability of specific characters, or those which distinguish species from species, than of generic characters, or those which the species possess in common;—that the frequent extreme variability of any part which is developed in a species in an extraordinary manner in comparison with the same part in its congeners; and the slight degree of variability in a part, however extraordinarily it may be developed, if it be common to a whole group of species;—that the great variability of secondary sexual characters, and the great amount of difference in these same characters between closely allied species;—that secondary sexual and ordinary specific differences are generally displayed in the same parts of the organisation,—are all principles closely connected together. All being mainly due to the species of the same group having descended from a common progenitor, from whom they have inherited much in common,—to parts which have recently and largely varied being more likely still to go on varying than parts which have long been inherited and have not varied,—to natural selection having more or less completely, according to the lapse of time, overmastered the tendency to reversion and to further variability,—to sexual selection being less rigid than ordinary selection,—and to variations in the same parts having been accumulated by natural and sexual selection, and having been thus adapted for secondary sexual, and for ordinary specific purposes. [159]

In conclusion, I find that specific traits that distinguish one species from another are generally more variable than generic traits that species share. Additionally, certain parts that develop unusually in a species tend to show a high degree of variability compared to those same parts in related species. Conversely, if a part is common to a whole group of species, it tends to show very little variability, no matter how unique it might be within that group. Secondary sexual traits are highly variable, and there are often significant differences in these traits among closely related species. Moreover, both secondary sexual differences and ordinary species differences are usually found in the same parts of an organism. All of these principles are interconnected, stemming from the idea that species within the same group have descended from a common ancestor, inheriting many traits. Parts that have recently and significantly changed are more likely to continue to evolve than those that have been inherited over a long time without change. Natural selection has increasingly influenced these traits over time, reducing the tendency to revert or further change. In contrast, sexual selection is generally more flexible than ordinary selection. Variations in the same traits have been shaped by both natural and sexual selection, adapting these traits for both secondary sexual functions and general species characteristics. [159]

 

Distinct species present analogous variations; and a variety of one species often assumes some of the characters of an allied species, or reverts to some of the characters of an early progenitor.—These propositions will be most readily understood by looking to our domestic races. The most distinct breeds of pigeons, in countries most widely apart, present sub-varieties with reversed feathers on the head and feathers on the feet,—characters not possessed by the aboriginal rock-pigeon; these then are analogous variations in two or more distinct races. The frequent presence of fourteen or even sixteen tail-feathers in the pouter, may be considered as a variation representing the normal structure of another race, the fantail. I presume that no one will doubt that all such analogous variations are due to the several races of the pigeon having inherited from a common parent the same constitution and tendency to variation, when acted on by similar unknown influences. In the vegetable kingdom we have a case of analogous variation, in the enlarged stems, or roots as commonly called, of the Swedish turnip and Ruta baga, plants which several botanists rank as varieties produced by cultivation from a common parent: if this be not so, the case will then be one of analogous variation in two so-called distinct species; and to these a third may be added, namely, the common turnip. According to the ordinary view of each species having been independently created, we should have to attribute this similarity in the enlarged stems of these three plants, not to the vera causa of community of descent, and a consequent tendency to vary in a like manner, but to three separate yet closely related acts of creation.

Different species show similar variations; and a variety within one species often takes on traits of a related species or reverts to traits of an earlier ancestor.—These ideas can be easily understood by looking at our domestic breeds. The most distinct breeds of pigeons, found in far-off countries, have sub-varieties with reversed feathers on their heads and feathers on their feet—traits that the original rock-pigeon does not have; these are analogous variations in two or more distinct breeds. The common occurrence of fourteen or even sixteen tail feathers in the pouter can be seen as a variation that reflects the normal structure of another breed, the fantail. I believe no one would doubt that all these analogous variations result from the different breeds of pigeons inheriting the same makeup and tendency to vary from a common ancestor, when influenced by similar unknown factors. In the world of plants, we see a case of analogous variation in the enlarged stems, or roots as they're often called, of the Swedish turnip and Ruta baga. Several botanists classify these as varieties developed through cultivation from a common parent: if that's not the case, then it would be an example of analogous variation in two so-called distinct species; and a third example could be added, the common turnip. According to the traditional view of each species being created independently, we would have to explain the similarity in the enlarged stems of these three plants not as a result of vera causa of shared descent and a resulting tendency to vary similarly, but as three separate yet closely related acts of creation.

With pigeons, however, we have another case, namely, the occasional appearance in all the breeds, of slaty-blue birds with two black bars on the wings, a white [160]rump, a bar at the end of the tail, with the outer feathers externally edged near their bases with white. As all these marks are characteristic of the parent rock-pigeon, I presume that no one will doubt that this is a case of reversion, and not of a new yet analogous variation appearing in the several breeds. We may I think confidently come to this conclusion, because, as we have seen, these coloured marks are eminently liable to appear in the crossed offspring of two distinct and differently coloured breeds; and in this case there is nothing in the external conditions of life to cause the reappearance of the slaty-blue, with the several marks, beyond the influence of the mere act of crossing on the laws of inheritance.

With pigeons, however, we have a different case. Occasionally, all breeds show slaty-blue birds with two black bars on their wings, a white [160]rump, a bar at the end of the tail, and the outer feathers are edged in white near their bases. Since all these features are typical of the original rock pigeon, I think no one would doubt that this is a case of reversion rather than a new but similar variation appearing in the different breeds. We can confidently reach this conclusion because, as we have seen, these colored markings often show up in the mixed offspring of two separate and differently colored breeds; and in this case, there’s nothing in the external living conditions to explain the return of the slaty-blue with its distinct markings, other than the simple act of crossing affecting the laws of inheritance.

No doubt it is a very surprising fact that characters should reappear after having been lost for many, perhaps for hundreds of generations. But when a breed has been crossed only once by some other breed, the offspring occasionally show a tendency to revert in character to the foreign breed for many generations—some say, for a dozen or even a score of generations. After twelve generations, the proportion of blood, to use a common expression, of any one ancestor, is only 1 in 2048; and yet, as we see, it is generally believed that a tendency to reversion is retained by this very small proportion of foreign blood. In a breed which has not been crossed, but in which both parents have lost some character which their progenitor possessed, the tendency, whether strong or weak, to reproduce the lost character might be, as was formerly remarked, for all that we can see to the contrary, transmitted for almost any number of generations. When a character which has been lost in a breed, reappears after a great number of generations, the most probable hypothesis is, not that the offspring suddenly takes after an ancestor some hundred generations [161]distant, but that in each successive generation there has been a tendency to reproduce the character in question, which at last, under unknown favourable conditions, gains an ascendancy. For instance, it is probable that in each generation of the barb-pigeon, which produces most rarely a blue and black-barred bird, there has been a tendency in each generation in the plumage to assume this colour. This view is hypothetical, but could be supported by some facts; and I can see no more abstract improbability in a tendency to produce any character being inherited for an endless number of generations, than in quite useless or rudimentary organs being, as we all know them to be, thus inherited. Indeed, we may sometimes observe a mere tendency to produce a rudiment inherited: for instance, in the common snapdragon (Antirrhinum) a rudiment of a fifth stamen so often appears, that this plant must have an inherited tendency to produce it.

It's definitely surprising that traits can reappear after being lost for many, possibly even hundreds of generations. However, when a breed is crossed just once with another breed, the offspring can sometimes show a tendency to revert back to the traits of the foreign breed for many generations—some people argue it's even for a dozen or more generations. After twelve generations, the genetic contribution from any one ancestor is down to just 1 in 2048; yet, it's generally believed that even this tiny amount of foreign blood can still carry the tendency to revert. In a breed that hasn't been crossed but where both parents have lost some traits that their ancestor had, the tendency—whether strong or weak—to reproduce the lost traits might still be passed down for virtually any number of generations, despite all appearances to the contrary. When a trait that has been lost in a breed reappears after many generations, the most likely explanation isn’t that the offspring suddenly resembles an ancestor from hundreds of generations ago, but rather that there has been a consistent tendency in each generation to reproduce that particular trait, which finally gains dominance under unknown favorable conditions. For example, in each generation of the barb-pigeon, which very rarely produces a blue and black-barred bird, it’s likely that there has been a consistent tendency in each generation for the plumage to take on this color. This idea is hypothetical but could be backed up by some evidence; and I don't see a greater improbability in a tendency to produce any trait being inherited for endless generations than in the way we know that useless or rudimentary organs are inherited. In fact, we can sometimes see a mere tendency to produce a rudiment being passed on: in the common snapdragon (Antirrhinum), a rudiment of a fifth stamen appears so frequently that this plant must have an inherited tendency to produce it.

As all the species of the same genus are supposed, on my theory, to have descended from a common parent, it might be expected that they would occasionally vary in an analogous manner; so that a variety of one species would resemble in some of its characters another species; this other species being on my view only a well-marked and permanent variety. But characters thus gained would probably be of an unimportant nature, for the presence of all important characters will be governed by natural selection, in accordance with the diverse habits of the species, and will not be left to the mutual action of the conditions of life and of a similar inherited constitution. It might further be expected that the species of the same genus would occasionally exhibit reversions to lost ancestral characters. As, however, we never know the exact character of the common ancestor of a group, we could not distinguish these two [162]cases: if, for instance, we did not know that the rock-pigeon was not feather-footed or turn-crowned, we could not have told, whether these characters in our domestic breeds were reversions or only analogous variations; but we might have inferred that the blueness was a case of reversion, from the number of the markings, which are correlated with the blue tint, and which it does not appear probable would all appear together from simple variation. More especially we might have inferred this, from the blue colour and marks so often appearing when distinct breeds of diverse colours are crossed. Hence, though under nature it must generally be left doubtful, what cases are reversions to an anciently existing character, and what are new but analogous variations, yet we ought, on my theory, sometimes to find the varying offspring of a species assuming characters (either from reversion or from analogous variation) which already occur in some other members of the same group. And this undoubtedly is the case in nature.

Since all species within the same genus are believed, according to my theory, to have evolved from a common ancestor, it's reasonable to expect that they would occasionally show similar variations. This means that a variety of one species might share some traits with another species, which, from my perspective, is just a clearly defined and stable variety. However, the traits they acquire are likely to be minor because all significant traits will be influenced by natural selection, reflecting the different habits of each species. They won't simply arise from the mutual influence of environmental conditions and a shared inherited makeup. Additionally, we might expect that species within the same genus would sometimes show signs of reverting to characteristics of their ancestral forms. Yet, since we never know the exact traits of the common ancestor of a group, we can't differentiate between these two scenarios: for example, if we were unaware that the rock-pigeon doesn't have feathered feet or a crown, we wouldn't be able to determine if these traits in our domestic breeds were reversions or just similar variations. However, we could suggest that the blue color is a case of reversion based on the number of markings associated with that blue hue, which seems unlikely to all appear together through simple variation alone. This inference is particularly strengthened since blue coloration and markings often arise when distinct breeds of different colors are crossed. Therefore, while in nature it often remains uncertain which cases are true reversion to formerly existing traits and which are new but similar variations, we should sometimes observe the varying offspring of a species taking on characteristics (either through reversion or analogous variation) that already exist in other members of the same group. And this is indeed the case in nature.

A considerable part of the difficulty in recognising a variable species in our systematic works, is due to its varieties mocking, as it were, some of the other species of the same genus. A considerable catalogue, also, could be given of forms intermediate between two other forms, which themselves must be doubtfully ranked as either varieties or species; and this shows, unless all these forms be considered as independently created species, that the one in varying has assumed some of the characters of the other, so as to produce the intermediate form. But the best evidence is afforded by parts or organs of an important and uniform nature occasionally varying so as to acquire, in some degree, the character of the same part or organ in an allied species. I have collected a long list of such cases; but [163]here, as before, I lie under a great disadvantage in not being able to give them. I can only repeat that such cases certainly do occur, and seem to me very remarkable.

A big part of the challenge in identifying a variable species in our systematic studies is that its varieties seem to mimic some of the other species within the same genus. There’s also a significant list of forms that are intermediate between two other forms, which themselves are often uncertain in whether to be classified as varieties or species; this indicates that unless we treat all these forms as separately created species, the one that is varying has adopted some traits of the other, leading to the formation of the intermediate form. The strongest evidence comes from parts or organs that are important and consistently uniform occasionally changing in a way that they start to resemble the same part or organ in a related species. I’ve compiled a long list of such instances; however, [163] once again, I’m at a significant disadvantage because I can’t provide them here. I can only emphasize that these cases definitely happen and seem quite remarkable to me.

I will, however, give one curious and complex case, not indeed as affecting any important character, but from occurring in several species of the same genus, partly under domestication and partly under nature. It is a case apparently of reversion. The ass not rarely has very distinct transverse bars on its legs, like those on the legs of the zebra: it has been asserted that these are plainest in the foal, and from inquiries which I have made, I believe this to be true. It has also been asserted that the stripe on each shoulder is sometimes double. The shoulder-stripe is certainly very variable in length and outline. A white ass, but not an albino, has been described without either spinal or shoulder stripe; and these stripes are sometimes very obscure, or actually quite lost, in dark-coloured asses. The koulan of Pallas is said to have been seen with a double shoulder-stripe. The hemionus has no shoulder-stripe; but traces of it, as stated by Mr. Blyth and others, occasionally appear: and I have been informed by Colonel Poole that the foals of this species are generally striped on the legs, and faintly on the shoulder. The quagga, though so plainly barred like a zebra over the body, is without bars on the legs; but Dr. Gray has figured one specimen with very distinct zebra-like bars on the hocks.

I will share one interesting and complicated case, not because it involves any significant character, but because it occurs in several species of the same genus, both domesticated and wild. It seems to be a case of reversion. The donkey often has noticeable transverse bars on its legs, like those on a zebra's legs: it’s been suggested that these are most visible in foals, and based on my inquiries, I believe this is true. It’s also claimed that the stripe on each shoulder can sometimes be double. The shoulder stripe definitely varies in length and shape. A white donkey, but not an albino, has been described as lacking both a spinal and shoulder stripe; these stripes can sometimes be very faint or completely absent in darker donkeys. The koulan of Pallas is reported to have been seen with a double shoulder stripe. The hemionus doesn’t have a shoulder stripe, but traces of it, as noted by Mr. Blyth and others, can occasionally be seen: I’ve been told by Colonel Poole that the foals of this species usually have stripes on their legs and faintly on their shoulders. The quagga, while clearly barred like a zebra across its body, has no bars on its legs; however, Dr. Gray has illustrated one specimen with very distinct zebra-like bars on its hocks.

With respect to the horse, I have collected cases in England of the spinal stripe in horses of the most distinct breeds, and of all colours; transverse bars on the legs are not rare in duns, mouse-duns, and in one instance in a chestnut: a faint shoulder-stripe may sometimes be seen in duns, and I have seen a trace in a [164]bay horse. My son made a careful examination and sketch for me of a dun Belgian cart-horse with a double stripe on each shoulder and with leg-stripes; and a man, whom I can implicitly trust, has examined for me a small dun Welch pony with three short parallel stripes on each shoulder.

Regarding horses, I've gathered information in England about the spinal stripe in horses of various distinct breeds and colors. Transverse bars on the legs are somewhat common in duns and mouse-duns, and I’ve even seen one instance in a chestnut. A faint shoulder stripe can sometimes be observed in duns, and I've noticed a trace on a bay horse. My son carefully examined and sketched a dun Belgian cart-horse that had a double stripe on each shoulder and leg stripes. Additionally, a man I completely trust has looked at a small dun Welsh pony that had three short parallel stripes on each shoulder.

In the north-west part of India the Kattywar breed of horses is so generally striped, that, as I hear from Colonel Poole, who examined the breed for the Indian Government, a horse without stripes is not considered as purely-bred. The spine is always striped; the legs are generally barred; and the shoulder-stripe, which is sometimes double and sometimes treble, is common; the side of the face, moreover, is sometimes striped. The stripes are plainest in the foal; and sometimes quite disappear in old horses. Colonel Poole has seen both gray and bay Kattywar horses striped when first foaled. I have, also, reason to suspect, from information given me by Mr. W. W. Edwards, that with the English racehorse the spinal stripe is much commoner in the foal than in the full-grown animal. Without here entering on further details, I may state that I have collected cases of leg and shoulder stripes in horses of very different breeds, in various countries from Britain to Eastern China; and from Norway in the north to the Malay Archipelago in the south. In all parts of the world these stripes occur far oftenest in duns and mouse-duns; by the term dun a large range of colour is included, from one between brown and black to a close approach to cream-colour.

In the north-western part of India, the Kattywar breed of horses is so commonly striped that, according to Colonel Poole, who studied the breed for the Indian Government, a horse without stripes isn’t seen as purebred. The spine is always striped, the legs are usually barred, and the shoulder stripe, which can sometimes be double or even triple, is common. Additionally, the side of the face can occasionally be striped. The stripes are most visible in foals and can sometimes completely disappear in older horses. Colonel Poole has observed both gray and bay Kattywar horses with stripes when they were first born. I also have reason to believe, based on information from Mr. W. W. Edwards, that in English racehorses, the spinal stripe is much more common in foals than in fully grown animals. Without going into further details, I can say that I’ve gathered examples of leg and shoulder stripes in horses of various breeds across different countries, from Britain to Eastern China, and from Norway in the north to the Malay Archipelago in the south. These stripes appear most frequently in duns and mouse-duns; by "dun," a wide range of colors is covered, from shades between brown and black to nearly cream.

I am aware that Colonel Hamilton Smith, who has written on this subject, believes that the several breeds of the horse have descended from several aboriginal species—one of which, the dun, was striped; and that the above-described appearances are all due to ancient [165]crosses with the dun stock. But I am not at all satisfied with this theory, and should be loth to apply it to breeds so distinct as the heavy Belgian cart-horse, Welch ponies, cobs, the lanky Kattywar race, &c., inhabiting the most distant parts of the world.

I know that Colonel Hamilton Smith, who has written about this topic, believes that various horse breeds have come from several original species—one of which, the dun, had stripes. He thinks that the differences we've observed are all the result of ancient crosses with the dun lineage. However, I’m not convinced by this theory at all, and I would hesitate to apply it to breeds that are as distinct as the heavy Belgian cart horse, Welsh ponies, cobs, the lanky Kattywar breed, and so on, which live in the farthest corners of the world.

Now let us turn to the effects of crossing the several species of the horse-genus. Rollin asserts, that the common mule from the ass and horse is particularly apt to have bars on its legs: according to Mr. Gosse, in certain parts of the United States about nine out of ten mules have striped legs. I once saw a mule with its legs so much striped that any one would at first have thought that it must have been the product of a zebra; and Mr. W. C. Martin, in his excellent treatise on the horse, has given a figure of a similar mule. In four coloured drawings, which I have seen, of hybrids between the ass and zebra, the legs were much more plainly barred than the rest of the body; and in one of them there was a double shoulder-stripe. In Lord Morton's famous hybrid from a chestnut mare and male quagga, the hybrid, and even the pure offspring subsequently produced from the mare by a black Arabian sire, were much more plainly barred across the legs than is even the pure quagga. Lastly, and this is another most remarkable case, a hybrid has been figured by Dr. Gray (and he informs me that he knows of a second case) from the ass and the hemionus; and this hybrid, though the ass seldom has stripes on his legs and the hemionus has none and has not even a shoulder-stripe, nevertheless had all four legs barred, and had three short shoulder-stripes, like those on the dun Welch pony, and even had some zebra-like stripes on the sides of its face. With respect to this last fact, I was so convinced that not even a stripe of colour appears from what would commonly be called an [166]accident, that I was led solely from the occurrence of the face-stripes on this hybrid from the ass and hemionus to ask Colonel Poole whether such face-stripes ever occur in the eminently striped Kattywar breed of horses, and was, as we have seen, answered in the affirmative.

Now let's look at the effects of crossing different species within the horse family. Rollin claims that common mules, which come from donkeys and horses, are especially likely to have stripes on their legs. According to Mr. Gosse, in some areas of the United States, about nine out of ten mules have striped legs. I once saw a mule with such pronounced stripes on its legs that anyone would have initially thought it was the offspring of a zebra; Mr. W. C. Martin even included a picture of a similar mule in his excellent book about horses. In four color drawings I've seen of hybrids between donkeys and zebras, the legs were much more distinctly striped than the rest of the body, and one even had a double shoulder stripe. In Lord Morton's well-known hybrid, which came from a chestnut mare and a male quagga, the hybrid—and even the pure offspring later produced from the mare by a black Arabian stallion—had much more noticeable stripes across the legs than even the pure quagga. Finally, and this is another remarkable case, Dr. Gray illustrated a hybrid between a donkey and a hemionus; he told me he knows of a second case as well. This hybrid, even though the donkey usually has no stripes on its legs and the hemionus doesn't have any stripes at all, still ended up with striped legs and three short shoulder stripes, similar to those on the dun Welsh pony, and even had some zebra-like stripes on the sides of its face. Regarding this last fact, I was so convinced that not even a single stripe of color appeared due to what would typically be called an accident, that I was prompted solely by the presence of the face stripes on this hybrid from the donkey and hemionus to ask Colonel Poole if such face stripes ever occur in the highly striped Kattywar breed of horses, and as we saw, he confirmed that they do.

What now are we to say to these several facts? We see several very distinct species of the horse-genus becoming, by simple variation, striped on the legs like a zebra, or striped on the shoulders like an ass. In the horse we see this tendency strong whenever a dun tint appears—a tint which approaches to that of the general colouring of the other species of the genus. The appearance of the stripes is not accompanied by any change of form or by any other new character. We see this tendency to become striped most strongly displayed in hybrids from between several of the most distinct species. Now observe the case of the several breeds of pigeons: they are descended from a pigeon (including two or three sub-species or geographical races) of a bluish colour, with certain bars and other marks; and when any breed assumes by simple variation a bluish tint, these bars and other marks invariably reappear; but without any other change of form or character. When the oldest and truest breeds of various colours are crossed, we see a strong tendency for the blue tint and bars and marks to reappear in the mongrels. I have stated that the most probable hypothesis to account for the reappearance of very ancient characters, is—that there is a tendency in the young of each successive generation to produce the long-lost character, and that this tendency, from unknown causes, sometimes prevails. And we have just seen that in several species of the horse-genus the stripes are either plainer or appear more commonly in the young than in the old. Call the breeds of pigeons, some of which have bred true for [167]centuries, species; and how exactly parallel is the case with that of the species of the horse-genus! For myself, I venture confidently to look back thousands on thousands of generations, and I see an animal striped like a zebra, but perhaps otherwise very differently constructed, the common parent of our domestic horse, whether or not it be descended from one or more wild stocks, of the ass, the hemionus, quagga, and zebra.

What are we supposed to make of these facts? We observe several distinct species in the horse family becoming striped on their legs like a zebra or striped on their shoulders like a donkey, simply through variation. In horses, this tendency is particularly evident whenever a dun color appears—a color that is similar to that of other species in the family. The appearance of stripes doesn’t come with any change in shape or any other new traits. This tendency to become striped is most clearly shown in hybrids from several of the most distinct species. Now, take a look at the different breeds of pigeons: they come from a pigeon (which includes two or three subspecies or geographical races) that has a bluish color with certain bars and markings; and whenever a breed develops a bluish tint through simple variation, these bars and markings consistently reappear, again without any other changes in shape or character. When the oldest and most established breeds of various colors are crossed, we see a strong tendency for the blue coloring and bars and markings to reappear in the mixed breeds. I have suggested that the most likely explanation for the reappearance of very ancient traits is that there is a tendency in the young of each new generation to bring back these long-lost characteristics, and that this tendency, for reasons unknown, sometimes becomes strong. We just observed that in several species of the horse family, stripes are either clearer or appear more frequently in young animals than in older ones. Consider the breeds of pigeons, some of which have been consistently bred true for centuries; the parallel with the species of the horse family is striking! Personally, I confidently look back through countless generations and envision an animal striped like a zebra, but perhaps very differently built, serving as the common ancestor of our domestic horse—whether or not it descended from one or more wild ancestors, including the donkey, the hemionus, the quagga, and the zebra.

He who believes that each equine species was independently created, will, I presume, assert that each species has been created with a tendency to vary, both under nature and under domestication, in this particular manner, so as often to become striped like other species of the genus; and that each has been created with a strong tendency, when crossed with species inhabiting distant quarters of the world, to produce hybrids resembling in their stripes, not their own parents, but other species of the genus. To admit this view is, as it seems to me, to reject a real for an unreal, or at least for an unknown, cause. It makes the works of God a mere mockery and deception; I would almost as soon believe with the old and ignorant cosmogonists, that fossil shells had never lived, but had been created in stone so as to mock the shells now living on the sea-shore.

Anyone who thinks that each horse species was created independently will probably argue that each species was created with a tendency to change, both in the wild and when domesticated, often becoming striped like other species in the same group. They would also say that each species has a strong tendency to produce hybrids that have stripes resembling other species of the group, not their own parents, when bred with species from far-off places. Accepting this viewpoint seems to me a rejection of a real cause for an unknown one, turning the works of God into a mere joke and trickery. I would almost prefer to believe the old, ignorant cosmologists who thought fossil shells never lived but were created in stone just to mock the shells seen today on the beach.

 

Summary.—Our ignorance of the laws of variation is profound. Not in one case out of a hundred can we pretend to assign any reason why this or that part differs, more or less, from the same part in the parents. But whenever we have the means of instituting a comparison, the same laws appear to have acted in producing the lesser differences between varieties of the same species, and the greater differences between species of the same genus. The external conditions of life, as [168]climate and food, &c., seem to have induced some slight modifications. Habit in producing constitutional differences, and use in strengthening and disuse in weakening and diminishing organs, seem to have been more potent in their effects. Homologous parts tend to vary in the same way, and homologous parts tend to cohere. Modifications in hard parts and in external parts sometimes affect softer and internal parts. When one part is largely developed, perhaps it tends to draw nourishment from the adjoining parts; and every part of the structure which can be saved without detriment to the individual, will be saved. Changes of structure at an early age will generally affect parts subsequently developed; and there are very many other correlations of growth, the nature of which we are utterly unable to understand. Multiple parts are variable in number and in structure, perhaps arising from such parts not having been closely specialised to any particular function, so that their modifications have not been closely checked by natural selection. It is probably from this same cause that organic beings low in the scale of nature are more variable than those which have their whole organisation more specialised, and are higher in the scale. Rudimentary organs, from being useless, will be disregarded by natural selection, and hence probably are variable. Specific characters—that is, the characters which have come to differ since the several species of the same genus branched off from a common parent—are more variable than generic characters, or those which have long been inherited, and have not differed within this same period. In these remarks we have referred to special parts or organs being still variable, because they have recently varied and thus come to differ; but we have also seen in the second Chapter that the same principle applies to the whole individual; [169]for in a district where many species of any genus are found—that is, where there has been much former variation and differentiation, or where the manufactory of new specific forms has been actively at work—there, on an average, we now find most varieties or incipient species. Secondary sexual characters are highly variable, and such characters differ much in the species of the same group. Variability in the same parts of the organisation has generally been taken advantage of in giving secondary sexual differences to the sexes of the same species, and specific differences to the several species of the same genus. Any part or organ developed to an extraordinary size or in an extraordinary manner, in comparison with the same part or organ in the allied species, must have gone through an extraordinary amount of modification since the genus arose; and thus we can understand why it should often still be variable in a much higher degree than other parts; for variation is a long-continued and slow process, and natural selection will in such cases not as yet have had time to overcome the tendency to further variability and to reversion to a less modified state. But when a species with any extraordinarily-developed organ has become the parent of many modified descendants—which on my view must be a very slow process, requiring a long lapse of time—in this case, natural selection may readily have succeeded in giving a fixed character to the organ, in however extraordinary a manner it may be developed. Species inheriting nearly the same constitution from a common parent and exposed to similar influences will naturally tend to present analogous variations, and these same species may occasionally revert to some of the characters of their ancient progenitors. Although new and important modifications may not arise from reversion and analogous [170]variation, such modifications will add to the beautiful and harmonious diversity of nature.

Summary.—Our understanding of the laws of variation is quite limited. In most cases, we cannot explain why one part differs from the same part in the parents. However, when we can compare different instances, the same laws seem to have worked to create the smaller differences between varieties of the same species and the larger differences between species of the same genus. External life conditions, such as climate and food, seem to have caused some minor modifications. Habit appears to cause constitutional differences, while use strengthens and disuse weakens and diminishes organs, indicating a stronger influence overall. Similar parts tend to vary similarly, and similar parts also tend to stick together. Changes in hard or external parts can sometimes influence softer or internal parts. When one part grows significantly, it might draw nourishment from nearby parts, and any part of the structure that can survive without harming the individual will be preserved. Structural changes occurring early in life generally affect later-developed parts, and there are many other growth correlations we do not yet understand. Various parts can change in number and structure, possibly because they aren't specialized for a specific function, allowing more freedom for modification without strict checks from natural selection. This might explain why simpler organisms tend to be more variable than those that are more complex and specialized. Unused rudimentary organs are likely to be overlooked by natural selection, leading to their variability. Specific characteristics—those that have changed since different species of the same genus diverged from a common ancestor—are usually more variable than generic characteristics, which have been inherited for longer without change. Our comments about special parts or organs being variable relate to their recent changes, but we've also noted in the second chapter that this principle applies to the entire individual; in regions where many species of a genus are found—indicating a history of variation and differentiation—on average, we observe the most varieties or emerging species. Secondary sexual characteristics are often highly variable and can differ significantly among species in the same group. Variability in identical parts of the organism has typically been utilized to create secondary sexual differences between the sexes of the same species and to define specific differences among various species of the same genus. Any part or organ that has developed exceptionally large or in an unusual way, when compared to the same part or organ in related species, must have gone through substantial modification since the genus emerged; this explains why it may still be much more variable than other parts, as variation is a slow, gradual process. Natural selection may not have had enough time to stabilize such traits or to revert them to a less modified state. However, when a species with a uniquely developed organ becomes the ancestor of many modified descendants—a process I believe is gradual and requires a significant amount of time—natural selection might have effectively established a stable characteristic for that organ, no matter how uniquely it is developed. Species sharing nearly the same traits from a common ancestor and facing similar environmental factors will likely show similar variations, and these species may sometimes revert to characteristics of their ancestors. Although significant new modifications may not come from these reversions and similar variations, they will still contribute to the beautiful and harmonious diversity of nature.

Whatever the cause may be of each slight difference in the offspring from their parents—and a cause for each must exist—it is the steady accumulation, through natural selection, of such differences, when beneficial to the individual, that gives rise to all the more important modifications of structure, by which the innumerable beings on the face of this earth are enabled to struggle with each other, and the best adapted to survive.

Whatever the reason for each small difference in offspring from their parents—and there has to be a reason for each—it is the ongoing accumulation of these differences, through natural selection, when they help the individual, that leads to all the significant changes in structure. This is how the countless beings on this planet can compete with one another, and those best suited for survival prevail.


[171]

[171]

CHAPTER VI.

Difficulties on Theory.

Challenges in Theory.

Difficulties on the theory of descent with modification—Transitions—Absence or rarity of transitional varieties—Transitions in habits of life—Diversified habits in the same species—Species with habits widely different from those of their allies—Organs of extreme perfection—Means of transition—Cases of difficulty—Natura non facit saltum—Organs of small importance—Organs not in all cases absolutely perfect—The law of Unity of Type and of the Conditions of Existence embraced by the theory of Natural Selection.

Challenges in the theory of evolution through modification—Transitions—Scarcity or absence of transitional forms—Lifestyle changes—Different behaviors within the same species—Species with habits that are significantly different from their relatives—Organs that are highly developed—Ways to transition—Difficult cases—Nature doesn’t skip steps—Less important organs—Organs that aren’t always fully perfected—The principle of Unity of Type and the Conditions of Existence as part of the theory of Natural Selection.

Long before having arrived at this part of my work, a crowd of difficulties will have occurred to the reader. Some of them are so grave that to this day I can never reflect on them without being staggered; but, to the best of my judgment, the greater number are only apparent, and those that are real are not, I think, fatal to my theory.

Long before reaching this point in my work, a lot of difficulties will have come to the reader's mind. Some of them are so serious that even now I can’t think about them without being taken aback; however, in my opinion, most are just illusions, and the ones that are real aren’t, I believe, detrimental to my theory.

These difficulties and objections may be classed under the following heads:—Firstly, why, if species have descended from other species by insensibly fine gradations, do we not everywhere see innumerable transitional forms? Why is not all nature in confusion instead of the species being, as we see them, well defined?

These challenges and objections can be grouped into the following categories:—First, if species have evolved from other species through slight changes over time, why don’t we see countless transitional forms everywhere? Why isn’t all of nature chaotic, instead of species being, as we observe them, clearly defined?

Secondly, is it possible that an animal having, for instance, the structure and habits of a bat, could have been formed by the modification of some animal with wholly different habits? Can we believe that natural selection could produce, on the one hand, organs of trifling importance, such as the tail of a giraffe, which serves as a fly-flapper, and, on the other hand, organs of [172]such wonderful structure, as the eye, of which we hardly as yet fully understand the inimitable perfection?

Secondly, is it possible that an animal like a bat, with its unique structure and habits, could have evolved from an entirely different animal with different behaviors? Can we believe that natural selection could create, on one hand, features of little importance, like the giraffe's tail, which is used to swat away flies, and, on the other hand, organs of such incredible design, like the eye, whose unmatched perfection we barely understand?

Thirdly, can instincts be acquired and modified through natural selection? What shall we say to so marvellous an instinct as that which leads the bee to make cells, which has practically anticipated the discoveries of profound mathematicians?

Thirdly, can instincts be developed and changed through natural selection? What can we say about such an amazing instinct as the one that drives bees to create cells, which seems to have anticipated the discoveries of deep mathematicians?

Fourthly, how can we account for species, when crossed, being sterile and producing sterile offspring, whereas, when varieties are crossed, their fertility is unimpaired?

Fourthly, how can we explain that when species are crossed, they are sterile and produce sterile offspring, while crossing varieties keeps their fertility intact?

The two first heads shall be here discussed—Instinct and Hybridism in separate chapters.

The first two topics will be discussed here — Instinct and Hybridism in separate chapters.

 

On the absence or rarity of transitional varieties.—As natural selection acts solely by the preservation of profitable modifications, each new form will tend in a fully-stocked country to take the place of, and finally to exterminate, its own less improved parent or other less-favoured forms with which it comes into competition. Thus extinction and natural selection will, as we have seen, go hand in hand. Hence, if we look at each species as descended from some other unknown form, both the parent and all the transitional varieties will generally have been exterminated by the very process of formation and perfection of the new form.

On the absence or rarity of transitional varieties.—Since natural selection works by preserving beneficial changes, each new species will usually replace and eventually wipe out its less evolved parent species or other less competitive forms in a fully populated area. Therefore, extinction and natural selection will often occur together, as we have observed. So, if we consider each species to have descended from some other unknown ancestor, both the ancestor and all the transitional forms will typically have been eliminated during the process of developing and refining the new species.

But, as by this theory innumerable transitional forms must have existed, why do we not find them embedded in countless numbers in the crust of the earth? It will be much more convenient to discuss this question in the chapter on the Imperfection of the geological record; and I will here only state that I believe the answer mainly lies in the record being incomparably less perfect than is generally supposed; the imperfection of the record being chiefly due to organic beings not inhabiting [173]profound depths of the sea, and to their remains being embedded and preserved to a future age only in masses of sediment sufficiently thick and extensive to withstand an enormous amount of future degradation; and such fossiliferous masses can be accumulated only where much sediment is deposited on the shallow bed of the sea, whilst it slowly subsides. These contingencies will concur only rarely, and after enormously long intervals. Whilst the bed of the sea is stationary or is rising, or when very little sediment is being deposited, there will be blanks in our geological history. The crust of the earth is a vast museum; but the natural collections have been made only at intervals of time immensely remote.

But, since this theory suggests that countless transitional forms must have existed, why don’t we find them in large numbers in the earth's crust? It’s easier to discuss this question in the chapter on the Imperfection of the geological record; here, I’ll just say that I believe the answer primarily lies in the record being far less complete than most people think. The incompleteness of the record is mainly because living beings didn’t inhabit the deep ocean, and their remains were only preserved for future ages in layers of sediment that are thick enough to endure a lot of degradation. These fossil-rich layers can only form where significant sediment builds up on the shallow sea floor as it slowly sinks. These conditions will only happen rarely and over extremely long periods. When the sea bed is stable, rising, or when there's little sediment deposition, there will be gaps in our geological history. The earth's crust is like a vast museum, but the natural collections have only been made at incredibly distant intervals in time.

But it may be urged that when several closely-allied species inhabit the same territory we surely ought to find at the present time many transitional forms. Let us take a simple case: in travelling from north to south over a continent, we generally meet at successive intervals with closely allied or representative species, evidently filling nearly the same place in the natural economy of the land. These representative species often meet and interlock; and as the one becomes rarer and rarer, the other becomes more and more frequent, till the one replaces the other. But if we compare these species where they intermingle, they are generally as absolutely distinct from each other in every detail of structure as are specimens taken from the metropolis inhabited by each. By my theory these allied species have descended from a common parent; and during the process of modification, each has become adapted to the conditions of life of its own region, and has supplanted and exterminated its original parent and all the transitional varieties between its past and present states. Hence we ought not to expect at the [174]present time to meet with numerous transitional varieties in each region, though they must have existed there, and may be embedded there in a fossil condition. But in the intermediate region, having intermediate conditions of life, why do we not now find closely-linking intermediate varieties? This difficulty for a long time quite confounded me. But I think it can be in large part explained.

But it can be argued that when several closely related species live in the same area, we should find many transitional forms today. Let's look at a simple example: when traveling from north to south across a continent, we typically encounter similar or related species at regular intervals, clearly occupying nearly the same ecological role in that area. These related species often overlap and interact; as one becomes less common, the other becomes more frequent until one replaces the other. However, if we compare these species where they blend, they usually remain completely distinct from each other in all structural details, just like specimens taken from the main city each one resides in. According to my theory, these related species have descended from a common ancestor; and through the process of evolution, each has adapted to the living conditions of its specific area, ultimately replacing and driving its original ancestor and all transitional forms between their past and present states to extinction. Therefore, we shouldn’t expect to see many transitional types in each area today, even though they must have existed and may still be found there as fossils. However, in the regions in between, where the living conditions are also intermediate, why don’t we find closely linked intermediate varieties now? This question puzzled me for a long time, but I believe it can be largely explained.

In the first place we should be extremely cautious in inferring, because an area is now continuous, that it has been continuous during a long period. Geology would lead us to believe that almost every continent has been broken up into islands even during the later tertiary periods; and in such islands distinct species might have been separately formed without the possibility of intermediate varieties existing in the intermediate zones. By changes in the form of the land and of climate, marine areas now continuous must often have existed within recent times in a far less continuous and uniform condition than at present. But I will pass over this way of escaping from the difficulty; for I believe that many perfectly defined species have been formed on strictly continuous areas; though I do not doubt that the formerly broken condition of areas now continuous has played an important part in the formation of new species, more especially with freely-crossing and wandering animals.

First of all, we should be very careful in concluding that just because an area is currently continuous, it has been that way for a long time. Geology suggests that almost every continent has been divided into islands even during the later tertiary periods; and in those islands, distinct species could have developed separately without any intermediate varieties existing in the gaps. Due to changes in the land's shape and climate, marine areas that are now continuous likely existed in a much less continuous and uniform state not too long ago. However, I will move past this way of addressing the issue; I believe that many clearly defined species have emerged in strictly continuous areas. Still, I don’t doubt that the previously fragmented state of areas now continuous has played a significant role in the formation of new species, especially in species that freely cross and roam.

In looking at species as they are now distributed over a wide area, we generally find them tolerably numerous over a large territory, then becoming somewhat abruptly rarer and rarer on the confines, and finally disappearing. Hence the neutral territory between two representative species is generally narrow in comparison with the territory proper to each. We see the same fact in ascending mountains, and sometimes [175]it is quite remarkable how abruptly, as Alph. de Candolle has observed, a common alpine species disappears. The same fact has been noticed by E. Forbes in sounding the depths of the sea with the dredge. To those who look at climate and the physical conditions of life as the all-important elements of distribution, these facts ought to cause surprise, as climate and height or depth graduate away insensibly. But when we bear in mind that almost every species, even in its metropolis, would increase immensely in numbers, were it not for other competing species; that nearly all either prey on or serve as prey for others; in short, that each organic being is either directly or indirectly related in the most important manner to other organic beings, we must see that the range of the inhabitants of any country by no means exclusively depends on insensibly changing physical conditions, but in large part on the presence of other species, on which it depends, or by which it is destroyed, or with which it comes into competition; and as these species are already defined objects (however they may have become so), not blending one into another by insensible gradations, the range of any one species, depending as it does on the range of others, will tend to be sharply defined. Moreover, each species on the confines of its range, where it exists in lessened numbers, will, during fluctuations in the number of its enemies or of its prey, or in the seasons, be extremely liable to utter extermination; and thus its geographical range will come to be still more sharply defined.

When we look at species across a large area, we typically find them to be quite abundant in certain regions, then suddenly becoming rarer around the edges, and eventually disappearing entirely. As a result, the neutral area between two representative species is usually narrow compared to the actual territory of each species. We observe this same phenomenon when climbing mountains, and sometimes it's striking how abruptly, as Alph. de Candolle noted, a common alpine species can vanish. E. Forbes observed a similar pattern while dredging the sea. For those who view climate and physical conditions as the key factors in distribution, these observations might be surprising, since climate and elevation or depth change gradually. However, if we consider that nearly every species, even in its center of abundance, would dramatically increase in numbers if not for competing species; that almost all either prey on or are preyed upon by others; in short, that every living organism is either directly or indirectly connected in crucial ways to other living beings, we must recognize that the distribution of species in any area does not solely depend on gradually changing physical conditions, but is largely influenced by the presence of other species that either depend on, or threaten, them, or compete with them. Since these species are already defined entities (no matter how they became that way), which do not blend into each other through gradual transitions, the distribution of each species, which depends on the distribution of others, will likely be distinctly defined. Furthermore, each species at the edge of its range, where it exists in smaller numbers, will be highly vulnerable to complete extinction during fluctuations in the abundance of its predators or prey, or due to seasonal changes, leading to an even more clearly defined geographical range.

If I am right in believing that allied or representative species, when inhabiting a continuous area, are generally so distributed that each has a wide range, with a comparatively narrow neutral territory between them, in which they become rather suddenly rarer and rarer; then, as varieties do not essentially differ from species, [176]the same rule will probably apply to both; and if we in imagination adapt a varying species to a very large area, we shall have to adapt two varieties to two large areas, and a third variety to a narrow intermediate zone. The intermediate variety, consequently, will exist in lesser numbers from inhabiting a narrow and lesser area; and practically, as far as I can make out, this rule holds good with varieties in a state of nature. I have met with striking instances of the rule in the case of varieties intermediate between well-marked varieties in the genus Balanus. And it would appear from information given me by Mr. Watson, Dr. Asa Gray, and Mr. Wollaston, that generally when varieties intermediate between two other forms occur, they are much rarer numerically than the forms which they connect. Now, if we may trust these facts and inferences, and therefore conclude that varieties linking two other varieties together have generally existed in lesser numbers than the forms which they connect, then, I think, we can understand why intermediate varieties should not endure for very long periods;—why as a general rule they should be exterminated and disappear, sooner than the forms which they originally linked together.

If I'm correct in thinking that related or representative species, when living in the same area, are generally distributed in a way that each has a broad range, with a relatively narrow neutral zone in between where they become increasingly rare; then, since varieties don't really differ from species, [176]the same principle likely applies to both. If we imagine a species that varies across a large area, we would also need to apply this idea to two varieties in two large areas, plus a third variety in a narrow middle zone. As a result, the intermediate variety will exist in smaller numbers due to living in a smaller area; and basically, as far as I can see, this principle holds true for varieties in nature. I've seen clear examples of this rule with varieties that are intermediate between well-defined varieties in the genus Balanus. It seems that, based on what Mr. Watson, Dr. Asa Gray, and Mr. Wollaston have told me, varieties that are intermediate between two other forms tend to be much less common than the forms they connect. Now, if we can rely on these facts and conclusions, and thus conclude that varieties linking two other varieties usually exist in smaller numbers than the forms they connect, then I think we can understand why intermediate varieties tend not to last for very long periods;—why, as a general rule, they should be eliminated and disappear sooner than the forms they originally connected.

For any form existing in lesser numbers would, as already remarked, run a greater chance of being exterminated than one existing in large numbers; and in this particular case the intermediate form would be eminently liable to the inroads of closely allied forms existing on both sides of it. But a far more important consideration, as I believe, is that, during the process of further modification, by which two varieties are supposed on my theory to be converted and perfected into two distinct species, the two which exist in larger numbers from inhabiting larger areas, will have a great advantage over the intermediate variety, which exists [177]in smaller numbers in a narrow and intermediate zone. For forms existing in larger numbers will always have a better chance, within any given period, of presenting further favourable variations for natural selection to seize on, than will the rarer forms which exist in lesser numbers. Hence, the more common forms, in the race for life, will tend to beat and supplant the less common forms, for these will be more slowly modified and improved. It is the same principle which, as I believe, accounts for the common species in each country, as shown in the second chapter, presenting on an average a greater number of well-marked varieties than do the rarer species. I may illustrate what I mean by supposing three varieties of sheep to be kept, one adapted to an extensive mountainous region; a second to a comparatively narrow, hilly tract; and a third to wide plains at the base; and that the inhabitants are all trying with equal steadiness and skill to improve their stocks by selection; the chances in this case will be strongly in favour of the great holders on the mountains or on the plains improving their breeds more quickly than the small holders on the intermediate narrow, hilly tract; and consequently the improved mountain or plain breed will soon take the place of the less improved hill breed; and thus the two breeds, which originally existed in greater numbers, will come into close contact with each other, without the interposition of the supplanted, intermediate hill-variety.

For any species that exists in smaller numbers would, as mentioned earlier, be at a greater risk of being wiped out compared to one that exists in larger populations; and in this case, the middle form would be especially vulnerable to being overrun by closely related forms on either side. However, a much more crucial factor, in my view, is that during the ongoing process of adaptation, which my theory suggests will lead to two varieties evolving into two distinct species, the two that exist in larger numbers due to occupying larger regions will have a significant advantage over the intermediate variety, which exists in smaller numbers within a limited area. Species that are more abundant will always have a better chance, in any given timeframe, of developing further advantageous variations for natural selection to capture compared to the rarer forms that exist in fewer numbers. Therefore, the more common forms, in the struggle to survive, will likely outcompete and replace the less common forms, as these will evolve and improve at a slower pace. This same principle, I believe, explains why common species in each country, as shown in the second chapter, typically have a greater number of well-defined varieties than rarer species. To illustrate this, let's imagine three varieties of sheep being raised: one suited for a wide mountainous region; another for a relatively narrow hilly area; and a third for expansive plains at the base. If all the farmers are equally dedicated and skilled in improving their flocks through selective breeding, the odds will heavily favor the large-scale farmers on the mountains or plains advancing their breeds more swiftly than the small-scale farmers on the intermediate narrow hilly tract. As a result, the enhanced mountain or plain breed will likely replace the less developed hill breed, leading to the two breeds, which initially existed in greater numbers, coming into close proximity without the intermediary, the replaced hill variety.

To sum up, I believe that species come to be tolerably well-defined objects, and do not at any one period present an inextricable chaos of varying and intermediate links: firstly, because new varieties are very slowly formed, for variation is a very slow process, and natural selection can do nothing until favourable [178]variations chance to occur, and until a place in the natural polity of the country can be better filled by some modification of some one or more of its inhabitants. And such new places will depend on slow changes of climate, or on the occasional immigration of new inhabitants, and, probably, in a still more important degree, on some of the old inhabitants becoming slowly modified, with the new forms thus produced and the old ones acting and reacting on each other. So that, in any one region and at any one time, we ought only to see a few species presenting slight modifications of structure in some degree permanent; and this assuredly we do see.

To sum up, I think that species are usually well-defined and don't create a confusing mix of different and intermediate forms all at once. First, because new varieties form very slowly, since variation is a slow process, and natural selection can’t do anything until favorable variations happen to arise, and until a role in the natural order of the region can be better filled by some change in one or more of its inhabitants. These new roles will depend on gradual changes in climate, or the occasional arrival of new inhabitants, and, likely even more importantly, on the slow modifications of some of the older inhabitants, with the new forms arising and the old ones interacting with each other. So, in any particular area at any given time, we should only see a few species showing slight, somewhat permanent changes in structure; and indeed, that’s what we do observe.

Secondly, areas now continuous must often have existed within the recent period in isolated portions, in which many forms, more especially amongst the classes which unite for each birth and wander much, may have separately been rendered sufficiently distinct to rank as representative species. In this case, intermediate varieties between the several representative species and their common parent, must formerly have existed in each broken portion of the land, but these links will have been supplanted and exterminated during the process of natural selection, so that they will no longer exist in a living state.

Secondly, areas that are now connected likely used to exist as isolated sections where many forms, particularly among the groups that come together for reproduction and move around a lot, may have developed enough differences to be considered distinct species. In this scenario, there must have been intermediate varieties between the different representative species and their common ancestor in each fragmented area of land, but these connections would have been replaced and eliminated during natural selection, so they no longer exist in a living state.

Thirdly, when two or more varieties have been formed in different portions of a strictly continuous area, intermediate varieties will, it is probable, at first have been formed in the intermediate zones, but they will generally have had a short duration. For these intermediate varieties will, from reasons already assigned (namely from what we know of the actual distribution of closely allied or representative species, and likewise of acknowledged varieties), exist in the intermediate zones in lesser numbers than the varieties which they [179]tend to connect. From this cause alone the intermediate varieties will be liable to accidental extermination; and during the process of further modification through natural selection, they will almost certainly be beaten and supplanted by the forms which they connect; for these from existing in greater numbers will, in the aggregate, present more variation, and thus be further improved through natural selection and gain further advantages.

Thirdly, when two or more varieties develop in different parts of a continuous area, it’s likely that intermediate varieties will initially form in the zones between them, but they will usually not last long. These intermediate varieties will exist in smaller numbers than the varieties they connect, for the reasons we've already discussed (specifically, based on what we know about the actual distribution of closely related or representative species and recognized varieties). Because of this, intermediate varieties are more vulnerable to accidental extinction; and as further changes occur through natural selection, they will almost certainly be outcompeted and replaced by the forms they connect to. The forms that are more numerous will generally show more variation, and as a result, they will be further refined through natural selection and gain additional advantages.

Lastly, looking not to any one time, but to all time, if my theory be true, numberless intermediate varieties, linking most closely all the species of the same group together, must assuredly have existed; but the very process of natural selection constantly tends, as has been so often remarked, to exterminate the parent-forms and the intermediate links. Consequently evidence of their former existence could be found only amongst fossil remains, which are preserved, as we shall in a future chapter attempt to show, in an extremely imperfect and intermittent record.

Lastly, if my theory is correct, then across all time, countless intermediate varieties that connect all species within the same group must have existed. However, the natural selection process tends to eliminate the parent forms and the intermediate links, as has been frequently noted. As a result, evidence of their past existence can only be found in fossil remains, which, as we will try to demonstrate in a future chapter, are preserved in a very incomplete and inconsistent record.

 

On the origin and transitions of organic beings with peculiar habits and structure.—It has been asked by the opponents of such views as I hold, how, for instance, a land carnivorous animal could have been converted into one with aquatic habits; for how could the animal in its transitional state have subsisted? It would be easy to show that within the same group carnivorous animals exist having every intermediate grade between truly aquatic and strictly terrestrial habits; and as each exists by a struggle for life, it is clear that each is well adapted in its habits to its place in nature. Look at the Mustela vison of North America, which has webbed feet and which resembles an otter in its fur, short legs, and form of tail; during summer this animal [180]dives for and preys on fish, but during the long winter it leaves the frozen waters, and preys like other polecats on mice and land animals. If a different case had been taken, and it had been asked how an insectivorous quadruped could possibly have been converted into a flying bat, the question would have been far more difficult, and I could have given no answer. Yet I think such difficulties have very little weight.

On the origin and changes of living beings with unique habits and structures.—Critics of my views have questioned how a land-dwelling carnivorous animal could become one that lives in water; they wonder how such an animal could survive during its transitional phase. It's easy to demonstrate that within the same group, carnivorous animals exist that range from fully aquatic to strictly land-based behaviors; and since each of these animals fights for survival, it's clear that each is well-suited to its ecological niche. Take, for example, the Mustela vison from North America, which has webbed feet and resembles an otter with its fur, short legs, and tail shape; in summer, this animal dives and hunts for fish, but during the long winter, it leaves the icy waters to hunt mice and other land animals like other polecats. If a different scenario had been posed, asking how an insect-eating quadruped could have become a flying bat, that question would have been much harder to answer, and I would have no response. Still, I believe these kinds of difficulties hold very little significance.

Here, as on other occasions, I lie under a heavy disadvantage, for out of the many striking cases which I have collected, I can give only one or two instances of transitional habits and structures in closely allied species of the same genus; and of diversified habits, either constant or occasional, in the same species. And it seems to me that nothing less than a long list of such cases is sufficient to lessen the difficulty in any particular case like that of the bat.

Here, like on other occasions, I'm at a real disadvantage. From the many striking examples I've gathered, I can only share one or two cases of transitional habits and structures in closely related species of the same genus, and varied habits, whether consistent or occasional, in the same species. It seems to me that nothing short of a long list of such cases is enough to reduce the complexity of any specific example, like that of the bat.

Look at the family of squirrels; here we have the finest gradation from animals with their tails only slightly flattened, and from others, as Sir J. Richardson has remarked, with the posterior part of their bodies rather wide and with the skin on their flanks rather full, to the so-called flying squirrels; and flying squirrels have their limbs and even the base of the tail united by a broad expanse of skin, which serves as a parachute and allows them to glide through the air to an astonishing distance from tree to tree. We cannot doubt that each structure is of use to each kind of squirrel in its own country, by enabling it to escape birds or beasts of prey, or to collect food more quickly, or, as there is reason to believe, by lessening the danger from occasional falls. But it does not follow from this fact that the structure of each squirrel is the best that it is possible to conceive under all natural conditions. Let the climate and vegetation change, let other competing [181]rodents or new beasts of prey immigrate, or old ones become modified, and all analogy would lead us to believe that some at least of the squirrels would decrease in numbers or become exterminated, unless they also became modified and improved in structure in a corresponding manner. Therefore, I can see no difficulty, more especially under changing conditions of life, in the continued preservation of individuals with fuller and fuller flank-membranes, each modification being useful, each being propagated, until by the accumulated effects of this process of natural selection, a perfect so-called flying squirrel was produced.

Look at the squirrel family; here we have a great range of animals, from those with slightly flattened tails to others, as Sir J. Richardson pointed out, with wider back ends and fuller skin on their sides, leading up to the so-called flying squirrels. Flying squirrels have their limbs and even the base of their tails connected by a broad stretch of skin that acts like a parachute, allowing them to glide impressively from tree to tree. It's clear that each squirrel's structure is beneficial for its environment, helping it dodge birds or predators, collect food faster, or, as suggested, reducing the risk of injury from occasional falls. However, this doesn’t mean that each squirrel's structure is the best possible under all natural conditions. If the climate and vegetation change, if other competing rodents or new predators come in, or if existing ones adapt, we can reason that some squirrels would likely decline or even disappear unless they also adapted and improved accordingly. So, I see no problem, especially with changing life conditions, in the ongoing survival of individuals with increasingly larger flank membranes, each adaptation being beneficial and passed on, until through the cumulative effects of natural selection, a perfect so-called flying squirrel emerges.

Now look at the Galeopithecus or flying lemur, which formerly was falsely ranked amongst bats. It has an extremely wide flank-membrane, stretching from the corners of the jaw to the tail, and including the limbs and the elongated fingers: the flank-membrane is, also, furnished with an extensor muscle. Although no graduated links of structure, fitted for gliding through the air, now connect the Galeopithecus with the other Lemuridæ, yet I see no difficulty in supposing that such links formerly existed, and that each had been formed by the same steps as in the case of the less perfectly gliding squirrels; and that each grade of structure was useful to its possessor. Nor can I see any insuperable difficulty in further believing it possible that the membrane-connected fingers and forearm of the Galeopithecus might be greatly lengthened by natural selection; and this, as far as the organs of flight are concerned, would convert it into a bat. In bats which have the wing-membrane extended from the top of the shoulder to the tail, including the hind-legs, we perhaps see traces of an apparatus originally constructed for gliding through the air rather than for flight. [182]

Now take a look at the Galeopithecus, or flying lemur, which used to be mistakenly classified as a bat. It has a very wide membrane that stretches from the corners of its jaw to its tail, including its limbs and long fingers. This membrane also has an extensor muscle. Although there are no clear transitional forms that connect the Galeopithecus with other Lemuridæ for gliding through the air, I believe that such forms likely existed in the past, developed through the same processes seen in less adept gliding squirrels, and that each structural adaptation was beneficial to its owner. I also see no major issues in believing that the membrane-connected fingers and forearm of the Galeopithecus could have been significantly elongated through natural selection, which, regarding flight, would essentially turn it into a bat. In bats with a wing membrane extending from the shoulder to the tail, including the hind legs, we might see remnants of a system originally made for gliding rather than powered flight. [182]

If about a dozen genera of birds had become extinct or were unknown, who would have ventured to have surmised that birds might have existed which used their wings solely as flappers, like the logger-headed duck (Micropterus of Eyton); as fins in the water and front legs on the land, like the penguin; as sails, like the ostrich; and functionally for no purpose, like the Apteryx. Yet the structure of each of these birds is good for it, under the conditions of life to which it is exposed, for each has to live by a struggle; but it is not necessarily the best possible under all possible conditions. It must not be inferred from these remarks that any of the grades of wing-structure here alluded to, which perhaps may all have resulted from disuse, indicate the natural steps by which birds have acquired their perfect power of flight; but they serve, at least, to show what diversified means of transition are possible.

If about a dozen types of birds had gone extinct or were unknown, who would have guessed that birds might have existed that used their wings just for flapping, like the logger-headed duck (Micropterus of Eyton); as fins in the water and front legs on land, like the penguin; as sails, like the ostrich; and for no specific purpose, like the Apteryx? Yet the structure of each of these birds works well for their specific life conditions, as each has to survive through struggle; however, it isn’t necessarily the best design possible under every condition. It shouldn’t be assumed from these comments that any of the different types of wing structures mentioned, which may have all resulted from disuse, show the natural steps by which birds developed their ability to fly; but they do at least demonstrate the diverse means of evolution that are possible.

Seeing that a few members of such water-breathing classes as the Crustacea and Mollusca are adapted to live on the land; and seeing that we have flying birds and mammals, flying insects of the most diversified types, and formerly had flying reptiles, it is conceivable that flying-fish, which now glide far through the air, slightly rising and turning by the aid of their fluttering fins, might have been modified into perfectly winged animals. If this had been effected, who would have ever imagined that in an early transitional state they had been inhabitants of the open ocean, and had used their incipient organs of flight exclusively, as far as we know, to escape being devoured by other fish?

Seeing that a few members of aquatic classes like Crustaceans and Mollusks can live on land, and that we have flying birds and mammals, as well as a wide range of flying insects, and even had flying reptiles in the past, it’s possible to think that flying fish, which now soar through the air, maneuvering and gliding with their fluttering fins, could have evolved into fully winged animals. If this had happened, who would have ever thought that in an early transitional stage they lived in the open ocean and used their developing flight abilities mainly, as far as we know, to escape being eaten by other fish?

When we see any structure highly perfected for any particular habit, as the wings of a bird for flight, we should bear in mind that animals displaying early [183]transitional grades of the structure will seldom continue to exist to the present day, for they will have been supplanted by the very process of perfection through natural selection. Furthermore, we may conclude that transitional grades between structures fitted for very different habits of life will rarely have been developed at an early period in great numbers and under many subordinate forms. Thus, to return to our imaginary illustration of the flying-fish, it does not seem probable that fishes capable of true flight would have been developed under many subordinate forms, for taking prey of many kinds in many ways, on the land and in the water, until their organs of flight had come to a high stage of perfection, so as to have given them a decided advantage over other animals in the battle for life. Hence the chance of discovering species with transitional grades of structure in a fossil condition will always be less, from their having existed in lesser numbers, than in the case of species with fully developed structures.

When we see any structure highly adapted for a specific function, like a bird's wings for flying, we should remember that animals showing early transitional forms of that structure are unlikely to exist today because they’ve been replaced by the process of natural selection leading to perfection. Moreover, we can infer that transitional forms between structures suited for very different lifestyles were rarely developed in large numbers or under many variations early on. So, going back to our example of the flying fish, it seems unlikely that fish capable of true flight would have developed in many variations since they would have needed to adapt to catching different types of prey in various ways, both on land and in water, before their flight capabilities reached a high level of perfection that gave them a clear advantage over other animals in survival. Therefore, the likelihood of finding species with transitional structural forms in the fossil record is always lower due to their having existed in smaller numbers compared to species with fully developed structures.

I will now give two or three instances of diversified and of changed habits in the individuals of the same species. When either case occurs, it would be easy for natural selection to fit the animal, by some modification of its structure, for its changed habits, or exclusively for one of its several different habits. But it is difficult to tell, and immaterial for us, whether habits generally change first and structure afterwards; or whether slight modifications of structure lead to changed habits; both probably often change almost simultaneously. Of cases of changed habits it will suffice merely to allude to that of the many British insects which now feed on exotic plants, or exclusively on artificial substances. Of diversified habits innumerable instances could be given: I have often watched a tyrant flycatcher (Saurophagus sulphuratus) in South America, hovering over one spot [184]and then proceeding to another, like a kestrel, and at other times standing stationary on the margin of water, and then dashing like a kingfisher at a fish. In our own country the larger titmouse (Parus major) may be seen climbing branches, almost like a creeper; it often, like a shrike, kills small birds by blows on the head; and I have many times seen and heard it hammering the seeds of the yew on a branch, and thus breaking them like a nuthatch. In North America the black bear was seen by Hearne swimming for hours with widely open mouth, thus catching, almost like a whale, insects in the water.

I will now provide a few examples of varied and changed behaviors in individuals of the same species. When either situation happens, it would be easy for natural selection to adapt the animal through some modification of its structure to fit its new behaviors or specifically for one of its different habits. However, it's hard to determine, and not relevant for us, whether behaviors typically change first and then structure follows; or if minor changes in structure lead to altered behaviors; likely, both often change nearly at the same time. It's sufficient to mention the many British insects that now feed on foreign plants or exclusively on artificial substances as examples of changed behaviors. There are countless examples of varied habits: I've often watched a tyrant flycatcher (Saurophagus sulphuratus) in South America hovering over one spot and then moving to another like a kestrel, while at other times it would remain still at the water's edge, then dive like a kingfisher for fish. In our country, you can see the larger titmouse (Parus major) climbing branches much like a creeper; it often kills small birds by striking them on the head like a shrike, and I’ve frequently seen and heard it hammering the seeds of the yew on a branch, breaking them open like a nuthatch. In North America, the black bear was observed by Hearne swimming for hours with its mouth wide open, catching insects in the water almost like a whale.

As we sometimes see individuals of a species following habits widely different from those of their own species and of the other species of the same genus, we might expect, on my theory, that such individuals would occasionally have given rise to new species, having anomalous habits, and with their structure either slightly or considerably modified from that of their proper type. And such instances do occur in nature. Can a more striking instance of adaptation be given than that of a woodpecker for climbing trees and for seizing insects in the chinks of the bark? Yet in North America there are woodpeckers which feed largely on fruit, and others with elongated wings which chase insects on the wing; and on the plains of La Plata, where not a tree grows, there is a woodpecker, which in every essential part of its organisation, even in its colouring, in the harsh tone of its voice, and undulatory flight, told me plainly of its close blood-relationship to our common species; yet it is a woodpecker which never climbs a tree!

As we sometimes observe individuals of a species following habits that are very different from those of their own species and other species in the same genus, we might expect, according to my theory, that these individuals occasionally give rise to new species with unusual habits, and with their structure either slightly or significantly altered from their original type. And such cases do occur in nature. Can there be a more striking example of adaptation than that of a woodpecker for climbing trees and catching insects in the gaps of the bark? Yet in North America, there are woodpeckers that primarily eat fruit, and others with long wings that chase insects in the air; and on the plains of La Plata, where there are no trees, there is a woodpecker that, in every essential aspect of its organization, even in its coloring, the harsh tone of its voice, and undulating flight, clearly shows its close genetic relationship to our common species; yet it is a woodpecker that never climbs a tree!

Petrels are the most aërial and oceanic of birds, yet in the quiet Sounds of Tierra del Fuego, the Puffinuria berardi, in its general habits, in its astonishing power of diving, its manner of swimming, and of flying when [185]unwillingly it takes flight, would be mistaken by any one for an auk or grebe; nevertheless, it is essentially a petrel, but with many parts of its organisation profoundly modified. On the other hand, the acutest observer by examining the dead body of the water-ouzel would never have suspected its sub-aquatic habits; yet this anomalous member of the strictly terrestrial thrush family wholly subsists by diving,—grasping the stones with its feet and using its wings under water.

Petrels are the most aerial and oceanic of birds, yet in the quiet Sounds of Tierra del Fuego, the Puffinuria berardi, in its general habits, its incredible diving ability, and its way of swimming and flying when it reluctantly takes flight, would be mistaken for an auk or grebe by anyone. However, it is fundamentally a petrel, though many aspects of its structure are significantly modified. On the other hand, even the sharpest observer would never guess the underwater habits of a dead water-ouzel just by examining its body; this unusual member of the strictly terrestrial thrush family survives entirely by diving—grasping stones with its feet and using its wings underwater.

He who believes that each being has been created as we now see it, must occasionally have felt surprise when he has met with an animal having habits and structure not at all in agreement. What can be plainer than that the webbed feet of ducks and geese are formed for swimming? yet there are upland geese with webbed feet which rarely or never go near the water; and no one except Audubon has seen the frigate-bird, which has all its four toes webbed, alight on the surface of the sea. On the other hand grebes and coots are eminently aquatic, although their toes are only bordered by membrane. What seems plainer than that the long toes of grallatores are formed for walking over swamps and floating plants, yet the water-hen is nearly as aquatic as the coot; and the landrail nearly as terrestrial as the quail or partridge. In such cases, and many others could be given, habits have changed without a corresponding change of structure. The webbed feet of the upland goose may be said to have become rudimentary in function, though not in structure. In the frigate-bird, the deeply-scooped membrane between the toes shows that structure has begun to change.

Anyone who thinks that every creature has been made exactly as we see it today must have occasionally felt surprised when encountering an animal with habits and structures that don’t match. What could be clearer than the fact that the webbed feet of ducks and geese are designed for swimming? Yet, there are upland geese with webbed feet that hardly ever go near water, and no one except Audubon has seen the frigate bird, which has all four toes webbed, land on the sea’s surface. On the other hand, grebes and coots are highly aquatic, even though their toes are only fringed with membranes. What seems more obvious than that the long toes of wading birds are adapted for walking over swamps and floating plants? Still, the water-hen is nearly as aquatic as the coot, and the landrail is almost as terrestrial as the quail or partridge. In these instances, and many others could be cited, habits have shifted without any corresponding change in structure. The webbed feet of the upland goose could be considered to have become rudimentary in function, though not in structure. In the frigate bird, the deeply scooped membrane between the toes indicates that the structure has begun to change.

He who believes in separate and innumerable acts of creation will say, that in these cases it has pleased the Creator to cause a being of one type to take the place of one of another type; but this seems to me only [186]restating the fact in dignified language. He who believes in the struggle for existence and in the principle of natural selection, will acknowledge that every organic being is constantly endeavouring to increase in numbers; and that if any one being vary ever so little, either in habits or structure, and thus gain an advantage over some other inhabitant of the country, it will seize on the place of that inhabitant, however different it may be from its own place. Hence it will cause him no surprise that there should be geese and frigate-birds with webbed feet, living on the dry land or most rarely alighting on the water; that there should be long-toed corncrakes living in meadows instead of in swamps; that there should be woodpeckers where not a tree grows; that there should be diving thrushes, and petrels with the habits of auks.

Anyone who believes in countless separate acts of creation would argue that it's the Creator's choice for one type of being to replace another type. However, I think that's just rephrasing the idea in a more formal way. Those who believe in the struggle for survival and the principle of natural selection will recognize that every living organism is always trying to multiply. If any organism changes even slightly in behavior or structure, gaining an advantage over another species in the area, it will occupy the space of that species, regardless of how different it may be from its original role. Therefore, it shouldn't be surprising to see geese and frigate-birds with webbed feet living on dry land or occasionally landing on water; long-toed corncrakes in meadows rather than swamps; woodpeckers where there aren't any trees; or diving thrushes and petrels exhibiting behaviors similar to auks.

 

Organs of extreme perfection and complication.—To suppose that the eye, with all its inimitable contrivances for adjusting the focus to different distances, for admitting different amounts of light, and for the correction of spherical and chromatic aberration, could have been formed by natural selection, seems, I freely confess, absurd in the highest possible degree. Yet reason tells me, that if numerous gradations from a perfect and complex eye to one very imperfect and simple, each grade being useful to its possessor, can be shown to exist; if further, the eye does vary ever so slightly, and the variations be inherited, which is certainly the case; and if any variation or modification in the organ be ever useful to an animal under changing conditions of life, then the difficulty of believing that a perfect and complex eye could be formed by natural selection, though insuperable by our imagination, can hardly be considered real. How a nerve comes to be sensitive to [187]light, hardly concerns us more than how life itself first originated; but I may remark that several facts make me suspect that any sensitive nerve may be rendered sensitive to light, and likewise to those coarser vibrations of the air which produce sound.

Organs of extreme perfection and complication.—To think that the eye, with all its unique features for adjusting focus to different distances, controlling light intake, and correcting spherical and chromatic aberration, could have developed through natural selection seems, I must admit, completely absurd. However, logic tells me that if we can find many gradations from a perfect and complex eye to a very imperfect and simple one, with each stage being beneficial to its owner; if the eye varies slightly, and those variations are inherited, which they clearly are; and if any change in the organ is helpful to an animal in changing living conditions, then the belief that a perfect and complex eye could arise through natural selection, although hard for our imagination to accept, may not be as far-fetched as it seems. How a nerve becomes sensitive to [187]light is not much more relevant to us than how life itself originated; but I can point out that several facts lead me to think that any sensitive nerve could potentially be made sensitive to light, as well as to those coarser air vibrations that create sound.

In looking for the gradations by which an organ in any species has been perfected, we ought to look exclusively to its lineal ancestors; but this is scarcely ever possible, and we are forced in each case to look to species of the same group, that is to the collateral descendants from the same original parent-form, in order to see what gradations are possible, and for the chance of some gradations having been transmitted from the earlier stages of descent, in an unaltered or little altered condition. Amongst existing Vertebrata, we find but a small amount of gradation in the structure of the eye, and from fossil species we can learn nothing on this head. In this great class we should probably have to descend far beneath the lowest known fossiliferous stratum to discover the earlier stages, by which the eye has been perfected.

In searching for the ways an organ in any species has been developed, we should ideally focus only on its direct ancestors; however, this is rarely possible. Instead, we often have to examine species within the same group, which means looking at collateral descendants from the same original form, to understand what variations might exist and whether some of those variations have been passed down from earlier stages of evolution in their original or slightly altered forms. Among the existing vertebrates, there is only a small amount of variation in eye structure, and we can't gain any insights from fossil species on this matter. In this large class, we would likely need to dig much deeper than the lowest known fossil layers to uncover the earlier stages that contributed to the development of the eye.

In the Articulata we can commence a series with an optic nerve merely coated with pigment, and without any other mechanism; and from this low stage, numerous gradations of structure, branching off in two fundamentally different lines, can be shown to exist, until we reach a moderately high stage of perfection. In certain crustaceans, for instance, there is a double cornea, the inner one divided into facets, within each of which there is a lens-shaped swelling. In other crustaceans the transparent cones which are coated by pigment, and which properly act only by excluding lateral pencils of light, are convex at their upper ends and must act by convergence; and at their lower ends there seems to be an imperfect vitreous substance. [188]With these facts, here far too briefly and imperfectly given, which show that there is much graduated diversity in the eyes of living crustaceans, and bearing in mind how small the number of living animals is in proportion to those which have become extinct, I can see no very great difficulty (not more than in the case of many other structures) in believing that natural selection has converted the simple apparatus of an optic nerve merely coated with pigment and invested by transparent membrane, into an optical instrument as perfect as is possessed by any member of the great Articulate class.

In the Articulata, we can start with an optic nerve that’s just covered in pigment and has no other mechanisms. From this basic stage, we can see many different structural variations branching off in two fundamentally different ways, until we reach a fairly advanced level of complexity. For example, some crustaceans have a double cornea, with the inner one divided into facets, each containing a lens-shaped bulge. In other crustaceans, the clear cones covered in pigment only function by blocking sideways rays of light; they are curved at the top and must work by bringing light together. At their bottom ends, there seems to be a subpar vitreous material. [188]With these facts, which are too briefly and incompletely presented here, showing that there’s a lot of graduated diversity in the eyes of living crustaceans, and considering how few living species there are compared to those that have gone extinct, I don’t find it very hard (not more than with many other structures) to believe that natural selection has transformed the simple setup of an optic nerve just covered in pigment and surrounded by a clear membrane into an optical instrument as advanced as those found in any member of the large Articulate class.

He who will go thus far, if he find on finishing this treatise that large bodies of facts, otherwise inexplicable, can be explained by the theory of descent, ought not to hesitate to go further, and to admit that a structure even as perfect as the eye of an eagle might be formed by natural selection, although in this case he does not know any of the transitional grades. His reason ought to conquer his imagination; though I have felt the difficulty far too keenly to be surprised at any degree of hesitation in extending the principle of natural selection to such startling lengths.

Anyone who gets this far and finds that extensive facts, which are otherwise hard to explain, can be clarified by the theory of evolution shouldn't hesitate to go further and accept that even a perfect structure like an eagle's eye could arise through natural selection, even though they may not know of any transitional forms. Reason should prevail over imagination; however, I've felt the challenge of this idea deeply enough to understand any hesitation in applying the principle of natural selection to such surprising extremes.

It is scarcely possible to avoid comparing the eye to a telescope. We know that this instrument has been perfected by the long-continued efforts of the highest human intellects; and we naturally infer that the eye has been formed by a somewhat analogous process. But may not this inference be presumptuous? Have we any right to assume that the Creator works by intellectual powers like those of man? If we must compare the eye to an optical instrument, we ought in imagination to take a thick layer of transparent tissue, with a nerve sensitive to light beneath, and then suppose every part of this layer to be continually changing [189]slowly in density, so as to separate into layers of different densities and thicknesses, placed at different distances from each other, and with the surfaces of each layer slowly changing in form. Further we must suppose that there is a power always intently watching each slight accidental alteration in the transparent layers; and carefully selecting each alteration which, under varied circumstances, may in any way, or in any degree, tend to produce a distincter image. We must suppose each new state of the instrument to be multiplied by the million; and each to be preserved till a better be produced, and then the old ones to be destroyed. In living bodies, variation will cause the slight alterations, generation will multiply them almost infinitely, and natural selection will pick out with unerring skill each improvement. Let this process go on for millions on millions of years; and during each year on millions of individuals of many kinds; and may we not believe that a living optical instrument might thus be formed as superior to one of glass, as the works of the Creator are to those of man?

It’s hard not to compare the eye to a telescope. We know that this instrument has been refined through the persistent efforts of the greatest human minds; naturally, we conclude that the eye has been developed through a similar process. But could this conclusion be arrogant? Do we have the right to assume that the Creator operates with intellectual abilities similar to ours? If we’re going to compare the eye to an optical device, we should imagine a thick layer of clear tissue with a light-sensitive nerve underneath, and then picture every part of this layer constantly changing slowly in density, separating into layers of different densities and thicknesses at varying distances from each other, with the shapes of each layer’s surface gradually altering. Moreover, we must suppose there’s a force always closely monitoring every slight accidental change in the transparent layers; and carefully selecting each change that, under different circumstances, might help create a clearer image. We need to assume that every new state of the instrument is reproduced millions of times; each one is kept until a better version is made, with the older ones discarded. In living organisms, variation will bring about the slight changes, reproduction will increase them almost infinitely, and natural selection will skillfully choose each improvement. Let this process continue for millions upon millions of years; and during each year, across millions of individuals of various types; can’t we believe that a living optical instrument could thus be created that is superior to one made of glass, just as the works of the Creator surpass those of man?

If it could be demonstrated that any complex organ existed, which could not possibly have been formed by numerous, successive, slight modifications, my theory would absolutely break down. But I can find out no such case. No doubt many organs exist of which we do not know the transitional grades, more especially if we look to much-isolated species, round which, according to my theory, there has been much extinction. Or again, if we look to an organ common to all the members of a large class, for in this latter case the organ must have been first formed at an extremely remote period, since which all the many members of the class have been developed; and in order to discover the early transitional grades through which the organ has [190]passed, we should have to look to very ancient ancestral forms, long since become extinct.

If it could be shown that any complex organ existed that couldn't possibly have developed through many small, successive changes, my theory would completely fall apart. But I can't find any such example. Sure, there are many organs for which we don't know the transitional forms, especially when we consider species that are very isolated, around which, according to my theory, there has been a lot of extinction. Alternatively, if we examine an organ that is common to all members of a large group, then that organ must have first appeared a very long time ago, from which all the various members of the group have since evolved; to find the early transitional forms that the organ went through, we would have to look at very ancient ancestral forms that have long since gone extinct.

We should be extremely cautious in concluding that an organ could not have been formed by transitional gradations of some kind. Numerous cases could be given amongst the lower animals of the same organ performing at the same time wholly distinct functions; thus the alimentary canal respires, digests, and excretes in the larva of the dragon-fly and in the fish Cobites. In the Hydra, the animal may be turned inside out, and the exterior surface will then digest and the stomach respire. In such cases natural selection might easily specialise, if any advantage were thus gained, a part or organ, which had performed two functions, for one function alone, and thus wholly change its nature by insensible steps. Two distinct organs sometimes perform simultaneously the same function in the same individual; to give one instance, there are fish with gills or branchiæ that breathe the air dissolved in the water, at the same time that they breathe free air in their swimbladders, this latter organ having a ductus pneumaticus for its supply, and being divided by highly vascular partitions. In these cases one of the two organs might with ease be modified and perfected so as to perform all the work by itself, being aided during the process of modification by the other organ; and then this other organ might be modified for some other and quite distinct purpose, or be quite obliterated.

We need to be very careful about concluding that an organ couldn't have developed through some gradual changes. There are many examples among simpler animals where the same organ is doing completely different jobs at the same time. For instance, the digestive system in the larvae of dragonflies and in the fish Cobites is involved in breathing, digesting, and excreting. In a Hydra, if the animal is turned inside out, the outside will digest food while the stomach handles respiration. In these situations, natural selection could easily favor the specialization of a part or organ that was doing two jobs into one that only does one, completely changing its function through subtle changes. Sometimes, two different organs perform the same function simultaneously in the same individual. For example, there are fish with gills that extract oxygen from water while also breathing air directly through their swim bladders, which has a special duct for this purpose and is lined with highly vascular partitions. In such cases, one of these organs could easily be modified and refined to do all the work by itself, using the help of the other organ during the modification process; then the other organ could be changed for a completely different purpose or may even disappear entirely.

The illustration of the swimbladder in fishes is a good one, because it shows us clearly the highly important fact that an organ originally constructed for one purpose, namely flotation, may be converted into one for a wholly different purpose, namely respiration. The swimbladder has, also, been worked in as an accessory to the auditory organs of certain fish, or, for I do not know [191]which view is now generally held, a part of the auditory apparatus has been worked in as a complement to the swimbladder. All physiologists admit that the swimbladder is homologous, or "ideally similar" in position and structure with the lungs of the higher vertebrate animals: hence there seems to me to be no great difficulty in believing that natural selection has actually converted a swimbladder into a lung, or organ used exclusively for respiration.

The illustration of the swim bladder in fish is a great example because it clearly shows the important fact that an organ originally designed for one purpose, like buoyancy, can be transformed into one for a completely different purpose, such as breathing. The swim bladder has also been incorporated as a supplement to the hearing organs of certain fish, or, I’m not sure which view is now more commonly accepted, a part of the hearing apparatus has been integrated as an addition to the swim bladder. All physiologists agree that the swim bladder is homologous, or "ideally similar" in position and structure to the lungs of higher vertebrates: therefore, it seems to me that there is no significant difficulty in believing that natural selection has actually turned a swim bladder into a lung, or an organ used solely for breathing.

I can, indeed, hardly doubt that all vertebrate animals having true lungs have descended by ordinary generation from an ancient prototype, of which we know nothing, furnished with a floating apparatus or swimbladder. We can thus, as I infer from Professor Owen's interesting description of these parts, understand the strange fact that every particle of food and drink which we swallow has to pass over the orifice of the trachea, with some risk of falling into the lungs, notwithstanding the beautiful contrivance by which the glottis is closed. In the higher Vertebrata the branchiæ have wholly disappeared—the slits on the sides of the neck and the loop-like course of the arteries still marking in the embryo their former position. But it is conceivable that the now utterly lost branchiæ might have been gradually worked in by natural selection for some quite distinct purpose: in the same manner as, on the view entertained by some naturalists that the branchiæ and dorsal scales of Annelids are homologous with the wings and wing-covers of insects, it is probable that organs which at a very ancient period served for respiration have been actually converted into organs of flight.

I can hardly doubt that all vertebrate animals with true lungs have evolved from an ancient ancestor, which we know nothing about, that had a buoyancy device or swim bladder. As I gather from Professor Owen's fascinating description of these structures, we can understand the strange fact that every bit of food and drink we swallow has to pass over the opening of the trachea, risking it going into the lungs, despite the clever mechanism that closes the glottis. In higher Vertebrates, the gills have completely disappeared—the slits on the sides of the neck and the looping paths of the arteries still indicate where they used to be in the embryo. However, it's conceivable that the now completely lost gills might have been gradually adapted through natural selection for a totally different purpose: similarly to how some naturalists believe that the gills and dorsal scales of Annelids are related to the wings and wing covers of insects, it’s likely that organs that once served for breathing have actually evolved into flight organs.

In considering transitions of organs, it is so important to bear in mind the probability of conversion from one function to another, that I will give one more instance. Pedunculated cirripedes have two minute folds of skin, [192]called by me the ovigerous frena, which serve, through the means of a sticky secretion, to retain the eggs until they are hatched within the sack. These cirripedes have no branchiæ, the whole surface of the body and sack, including the small frena, serving for respiration. The Balanidæ or sessile cirripedes, on the other hand, have no ovigerous frena, the eggs lying loose at the bottom of the sack, in the well-enclosed shell; but they have large folded branchiæ. Now I think no one will dispute that the ovigerous frena in the one family are strictly homologous with the branchiæ of the other family; indeed, they graduate into each other. Therefore I do not doubt that little folds of skin, which originally served as ovigerous frena, but which, likewise, very slightly aided the act of respiration, have been gradually converted by natural selection into branchiæ, simply through an increase in their size and the obliteration of their adhesive glands. If all pedunculated cirripedes had become extinct, and they have already suffered far more extinction than have sessile cirripedes, who would ever have imagined that the branchiæ in this latter family had originally existed as organs for preventing the ova from being washed out of the sack?

When considering the changes in organs, it’s really important to think about how one function can turn into another, so I’ll provide one more example. Pedunculated cirripedes have two tiny folds of skin, called the ovigerous frena, which help keep the eggs in place with a sticky secretion until they hatch inside the sack. These cirripedes don't have gills; the entire surface of their body and sack, including the small frena, is used for breathing. In contrast, Balanidæ or sessile cirripedes lack ovigerous frena, with the eggs free at the bottom of the sack in a tightly sealed shell; however, they do have large folded gills. I don’t think anyone would argue that the ovigerous frena in one family are fundamentally the same as the gills in the other family; in fact, they transition into each other. Therefore, I’m confident that the small skin folds that originally acted as ovigerous frena, but also slightly helped with breathing, have gradually evolved through natural selection into gills, simply by becoming larger and losing their adhesive glands. If all pedunculated cirripedes had gone extinct, and they have already faced much greater extinction than sessile cirripedes, who would have ever thought that the gills in the latter family originally served to keep the eggs from washing out of the sack?

Although we must be extremely cautious in concluding that any organ could not possibly have been produced by successive transitional gradations, yet, undoubtedly, grave cases of difficulty occur, some of which will be discussed in my future work.

Although we need to be very careful in concluding that any organ couldn't have evolved through successive transitional stages, there are certainly serious challenges that arise, some of which I will address in my upcoming work.

One of the gravest is that of neuter insects, which are often very differently constructed from either the males or fertile females; but this case will be treated of in the next chapter. The electric organs of fishes offer another case of special difficulty; it is impossible to conceive by what steps these wondrous organs have been produced; but, as Owen and others have remarked, [193]their intimate structure closely resembles that of common muscle; and as it has lately been shown that Rays have an organ closely analogous to the electric apparatus, and yet do not, as Matteucci asserts, discharge any electricity, we must own that we are far too ignorant to argue that no transition of any kind is possible.

One of the most serious issues is with neuter insects, which are often constructed quite differently from both males and fertile females; however, this topic will be discussed in the next chapter. The electric organs of fish present another challenging case; it's hard to imagine how these amazing organs developed. As Owen and others have pointed out, their intimate structure closely resembles that of regular muscle. Recent discoveries have shown that Rays have an organ that is quite similar to the electric apparatus, yet do not, as Matteucci claims, emit any electricity. We must admit that our understanding is still too limited to assert that no transition of any kind is possible.

The electric organs offer another and even more serious difficulty; for they occur in only about a dozen fishes, of which several are widely remote in their affinities. Generally when the same organ appears in several members of the same class, especially if in members having very different habits of life, we may attribute its presence to inheritance from a common ancestor; and its absence in some of the members to its loss through disuse or natural selection. But if the electric organs had been inherited from one ancient progenitor thus provided, we might have expected that all electric fishes would have been specially related to each other. Nor does geology at all lead to the belief that formerly most fishes had electric organs, which most of their modified descendants have lost. The presence of luminous organs in a few insects, belonging to different families and orders, offers a parallel case of difficulty. Other cases could be given; for instance in plants, the very curious contrivance of a mass of pollen-grains, borne on a foot-stalk with a sticky gland at the end, is the same in Orchis and Asclepias,—genera almost as remote as possible amongst flowering plants. In all these cases of two very distinct species furnished with apparently the same anomalous organ, it should be observed that, although the general appearance and function of the organ may be the same, yet some fundamental difference can generally be detected. I am inclined to believe that in nearly the same way as two men have sometimes independently hit on [194]the very same invention, so natural selection, working for the good of each being and taking advantage of analogous variations, has sometimes modified in very nearly the same manner two parts in two organic beings, which beings owe but little of their structure in common to inheritance from the same ancestor.

The electric organs present another and even more significant problem; they are found in only about a dozen fish species, many of which are not closely related. Typically, when the same organ appears in several members of the same class, especially among those with vastly different lifestyles, we can attribute its existence to inheritance from a common ancestor, while its absence in some members can be explained by loss due to disuse or natural selection. However, if the electric organs had been inherited from a single ancient ancestor that had them, we would expect all electric fish to be closely related. Additionally, geology does not support the idea that most fish once had electric organs that most of their modified descendants have now lost. The occurrence of luminescent organs in a few insects from different families and orders provides a similar challenge. There are other examples; for instance, the peculiar design of a cluster of pollen grains attached to a stalk with a sticky gland at the end is present in both Orchis and Asclepias—genera that are as distantly related as possible within flowering plants. In all these instances of two very different species having seemingly the same unusual organ, it should be noted that, although the general appearance and function may be similar, some fundamental difference is usually evident. I am inclined to think that just as two people can independently come up with the same invention, natural selection, working for the benefit of each organism and leveraging similar variations, has occasionally altered two parts in two living beings in almost the same way, even if those beings share little of their structure due to common ancestry.

Although in many cases it is most difficult to conjecture by what transitions organs could have arrived at their present state; yet, considering that the proportion of living and known forms to the extinct and unknown is very small, I have been astonished how rarely an organ can be named, towards which no transitional grade is known to lead. The truth of this remark is indeed shown by that old but somewhat exaggerated canon in natural history of "Natura non facit saltum." We meet with this admission in the writings of almost every experienced naturalist; or, as Milne Edwards has well expressed it, Nature is prodigal in variety, but niggard in innovation. Why, on the theory of Creation, should this be so? Why should all the parts and organs of many independent beings, each supposed to have been separately created for its proper place in nature, be so commonly linked together by graduated steps? Why should not Nature have taken a leap from structure to structure? On the theory of natural selection, we can clearly understand why she should not; for natural selection can act only by taking advantage of slight successive variations; she can never take a leap, but must advance by the shortest and slowest steps.

Although it’s often hard to guess how organs evolved to their current state, I’ve been surprised at how seldom we come across an organ that doesn’t have some known transitional form leading to it, especially considering the small number of living, known species compared to extinct and unknown ones. This observation is illustrated by the old but somewhat exaggerated saying in natural history, “Natura non facit saltum,” meaning that nature doesn’t make leaps. Almost every experienced naturalist acknowledges this, and as Milne Edwards put it so well, Nature is generous in variety but stingy in innovation. Why is this the case under the theory of Creation? Why are the parts and organs of so many independent beings, each supposedly created separately for their own role in nature, so often connected by gradual transitions? Why didn’t Nature jump from one structure to another? Under the theory of natural selection, it makes sense why she doesn’t; natural selection works by capitalizing on slight, gradual variations and can never make a leap, but must progress through small, measured steps.

 

Organs of little apparent importance.—As natural selection acts by life and death,—by the preservation of individuals with any favourable variation, and by the destruction of those with any unfavourable deviation of structure,—I have sometimes felt much difficulty in [195]understanding the origin of simple parts, of which the importance does not seem sufficient to cause the preservation of successively varying individuals. I have sometimes felt as much difficulty, though of a very different kind, on this head, as in the case of an organ as perfect and complex as the eye.

Organs that seem unimportant.—Since natural selection operates through life and death—by preserving individuals with any beneficial variations and eliminating those with any harmful structural deviations—I have occasionally found it quite challenging to understand the origins of simple features that don’t seem significant enough to ensure the survival of progressively varying individuals. I have also encountered a similar level of difficulty, albeit in a very different way, regarding organs that are as intricate and well-developed as the eye.

In the first place, we are much too ignorant in regard to the whole economy of any one organic being, to say what slight modifications would be of importance or not. In a former chapter I have given instances of most trifling characters, such as the down on fruit and the colour of its flesh, which, from determining the attacks of insects or from being correlated with constitutional differences, might assuredly be acted on by natural selection. The tail of the giraffe looks like an artificially constructed fly-flapper; and it seems at first incredible that this could have been adapted for its present purpose by successive slight modifications, each better and better, for so trifling an object as driving away flies; yet we should pause before being too positive even in this case, for we know that the distribution and existence of cattle and other animals in South America absolutely depends on their power of resisting the attacks of insects: so that individuals which could by any means defend themselves from these small enemies, would be able to range into new pastures and thus gain a great advantage. It is not that the larger quadrupeds are actually destroyed (except in some rare cases) by flies, but they are incessantly harassed and their strength reduced, so that they are more subject to disease, or not so well enabled in a coming dearth to search for food, or to escape from beasts of prey.

First of all, we know way too little about the entire economy of any single living being to claim what minor changes would matter or not. In a previous chapter, I provided examples of very small traits, like the fuzz on fruit and the color of its flesh, which could definitely be influenced by natural selection since they affect insect attacks or are linked to other inherent differences. The giraffe's tail looks like it's been specially designed to swat flies, and it seems almost unbelievable that this could have been shaped for its current purpose through a series of tiny changes, each one improving upon the last, for such a minor task as getting rid of flies. However, we should be cautious before being too certain about this, because we know that the distribution and survival of cattle and other animals in South America completely rely on their ability to fend off insect attacks. Therefore, individuals that could somehow protect themselves from these tiny enemies would be able to explore new grazing areas, gaining a significant advantage. It's not that larger animals are usually killed (except in a few rare cases) by flies; rather, they are constantly bothered and their strength is diminished, making them more susceptible to sickness or less capable of finding food during a scarcity or escaping from predators.

Organs now of trifling importance have probably in some cases been of high importance to an early progenitor, and, after having been slowly perfected at a [196]former period, have been transmitted in nearly the same state, although now become of very slight use; and any actually injurious deviations in their structure will always have been checked by natural selection. Seeing how important an organ of locomotion the tail is in most aquatic animals, its general presence and use for many purposes in so many land animals, which in their lungs or modified swimbladders betray their aquatic origin, may perhaps be thus accounted for. A well-developed tail having been formed in an aquatic animal, it might subsequently come to be worked in for all sorts of purposes, as a fly-flapper, an organ of prehension, or as an aid in turning, as with the dog, though the aid must be slight, for the hare, with hardly any tail, can double quickly enough.

Organs that seem unimportant now may have been very significant for an early ancestor and, after being gradually refined at a [196]previous time, have been passed down in nearly the same form, even though they are now of little use. Any harmful changes in their structure would have been eliminated by natural selection. Given the crucial role the tail plays in movement for most aquatic animals, its general presence and various uses in many land animals, which exhibit their aquatic ancestry through their lungs or modified swim bladders, can possibly be explained this way. Once a well-developed tail was created in an aquatic animal, it may have been adapted for various functions, such as swatting flies, grasping objects, or assisting with turning, like in dogs, although the help in turning is minimal, since a hare, which has almost no tail, can still turn quickly.

In the second place, we may sometimes attribute importance to characters which are really of very little importance, and which have originated from quite secondary causes, independently of natural selection. We should remember that climate, food, &c., probably have some little direct influence on the organisation; that characters reappear from the law of reversion; that correlation of growth will have had a most important influence in modifying various structures; and finally, that sexual selection will often have largely modified the external characters of animals having a will, to give one male an advantage in fighting with another or in charming the females. Moreover when a modification of structure has primarily arisen from the above or other unknown causes, it may at first have been of no advantage to the species, but may subsequently have been taken advantage of by the descendants of the species under new conditions of life and with newly acquired habits.

In the second place, we sometimes assign importance to traits that are actually of very little significance and that have come about from secondary causes, which are independent of natural selection. We should keep in mind that factors like climate and food probably have some minor direct influence on an organism's structure; that traits can reappear due to the law of reversion; that the correlation of growth can significantly influence changes in various structures; and finally, that sexual selection often plays a big role in altering the outward traits of animals in ways that give one male an edge over another in competition or in attracting females. Furthermore, when a structural change initially arises from these or other unknown factors, it may not have benefited the species at first, but it can later be utilized by the descendants of that species under new living conditions and with newly developed behaviors.

To give a few instances to illustrate these latter [197]remarks. If green woodpeckers alone had existed, and we did not know that there were many black and pied kinds, I dare say that we should have thought that the green colour was a beautiful adaptation to hide this tree-frequenting bird from its enemies; and consequently that it was a character of importance and might have been acquired through natural selection; as it is, I have no doubt that the colour is due to some quite distinct cause, probably to sexual selection. A trailing bamboo in the Malay Archipelago climbs the loftiest trees by the aid of exquisitely constructed hooks clustered around the ends of the branches, and this contrivance, no doubt, is of the highest service to the plant; but as we see nearly similar hooks on many trees which are not climbers, the hooks on the bamboo may have arisen from unknown laws of growth, and have been subsequently taken advantage of by the plant undergoing further modification and becoming a climber. The naked skin on the head of a vulture is generally looked at as a direct adaptation for wallowing in putridity; and so it may be, or it may possibly be due to the direct action of putrid matter; but we should be very cautious in drawing any such inference, when we see that the skin on the head of the clean-feeding male turkey is likewise naked. The sutures in the skulls of young mammals have been advanced as a beautiful adaptation for aiding parturition, and no doubt they facilitate, or may be indispensable for this act; but as sutures occur in the skulls of young birds and reptiles, which have only to escape from a broken egg, we may infer that this structure has arisen from the laws of growth, and has been taken advantage of in the parturition of the higher animals.

To give a few examples to illustrate these latter [197]remarks. If green woodpeckers were the only type we knew about, and we didn't realize there were many black and pied types, we might have thought that their green color was a great way to camouflage this tree-dwelling bird from predators. Consequently, we would have believed this trait was significant and developed through natural selection; as it stands, I'm sure the color comes from a completely different reason, probably from sexual selection. A trailing bamboo in the Malay Archipelago climbs the tallest trees using beautifully designed hooks that cluster around the ends of its branches, which undoubtedly benefit the plant greatly; however, since we see similar hooks on many non-climbing trees, the hooks on the bamboo might have originated from unknown growth patterns and were later used by the plant as it underwent further developments to become a climber. The bare skin on a vulture's head is often seen as a direct adaptation for wallowing in decaying matter, and while this may be true, or it may arise from the direct effects of decay, we should be very careful about making such conclusions when we note that the head of the clean-feeding male turkey is also bare. The sutures in the skulls of young mammals have been proposed as a beautiful adaptation to assist in childbirth, and they certainly help or may even be necessary for this process; but since sutures appear in the skulls of young birds and reptiles, which only need to escape from a broken egg, we might conclude that this structure developed from growth patterns and was later utilized during the birthing process of more advanced animals.

We are profoundly ignorant of the causes producing slight and unimportant variations; and we are [198]immediately made conscious of this by reflecting on the differences in the breeds of our domesticated animals in different countries,—more especially in the less civilised countries where there has been but little artificial selection. Careful observers are convinced that a damp climate affects the growth of the hair, and that with the hair the horns are correlated. Mountain breeds always differ from lowland breeds; and a mountainous country would probably affect the hind limbs from exercising them more, and possibly even the form of the pelvis; and then by the law of homologous variation, the front limbs and even the head would probably be affected. The shape, also, of the pelvis might affect by pressure the shape of the head of the young in the womb. The laborious breathing necessary in high regions would, we have some reason to believe, increase the size of the chest; and again correlation would come into play. Animals kept by savages in different countries often have to struggle for their own subsistence, and would be exposed to a certain extent to natural selection, and individuals with slightly different constitutions would succeed best under different climates; and there is reason to believe that constitution and colour are correlated. A good observer, also, states that in cattle susceptibility to the attacks of flies is correlated with colour, as is the liability to be poisoned by certain plants; so that colour would be thus subjected to the action of natural selection. But we are far too ignorant to speculate on the relative importance of the several known and unknown laws of variation; and I have here alluded to them only to show that, if we are unable to account for the characteristic differences of our domestic breeds, which nevertheless we generally admit to have arisen through ordinary generation, we ought not to lay too much stress on our ignorance of the precise cause [199]of the slight analogous differences between species. I might have adduced for this same purpose the differences between the races of man, which are so strongly marked; I may add that some little light can apparently be thrown on the origin of these differences, chiefly through sexual selection of a particular kind, but without here entering on copious details my reasoning would appear frivolous.

We know very little about the causes of minor and seemingly unimportant differences; and we're quickly reminded of this when we think about the variations in the breeds of our domesticated animals in different countries—especially in less developed countries where there has been little artificial selection. Careful observers believe that a damp climate influences hair growth, and that hair growth is linked to horn development. Mountain breeds always differ from lowland breeds; and living in a mountainous area would likely impact the hind limbs due to increased exercise, and potentially even the shape of the pelvis; then, following the principle of homologous variation, the forelimbs and even the head would probably also be affected. Additionally, the shape of the pelvis might exert pressure that alters the head shape of the developing fetus. The strenuous breathing required in high altitudes could, as we have some reasons to think, lead to a larger chest size; and again, correlation would play a role. Animals that live with indigenous people in different regions often have to fend for themselves and are somewhat subject to natural selection, where individuals with slightly different traits would thrive in different climates; and there's reason to think that constitution and color are related. A good observer also notes that in cattle, susceptibility to fly bites is linked with color, just as the likelihood of being poisoned by certain plants is; thus, color would be influenced by natural selection. However, we are far too uninformed to make guesses about the relative importance of the many known and unknown laws of variation; I've mentioned them here only to illustrate that, if we can't explain the distinct differences in our domestic breeds, which we generally accept arose through natural generation, we shouldn't place too much emphasis on our lack of understanding of the specific causes of the slight similar differences between species. I could have used the differences among human races, which are very pronounced, as an example; I can also suggest that some insight can seemingly be gained about the origins of these differences, mainly through a specific kind of sexual selection, but without further details, my reasoning might seem trivial.

The foregoing remarks lead me to say a few words on the protest lately made by some naturalists, against the utilitarian doctrine that every detail of structure has been produced for the good of its possessor. They believe that very many structures have been created for beauty in the eyes of man, or for mere variety. This doctrine, if true, would be absolutely fatal to my theory. Yet I fully admit that many structures are of no direct use to their possessors. Physical conditions probably have had some little effect on structure, quite independently of any good thus gained. Correlation of growth has no doubt played a most important part, and a useful modification of one part will often have entailed on other parts diversified changes of no direct use. So again characters which formerly were useful, or which formerly had arisen from correlation of growth, or from other unknown cause, may reappear from the law of reversion, though now of no direct use. The effects of sexual selection, when displayed in beauty to charm the females, can be called useful only in rather a forced sense. But by far the most important consideration is that the chief part of the organisation of every being is simply due to inheritance; and consequently, though each being assuredly is well fitted for its place in nature, many structures now have no direct relation to the habits of life of each species. Thus, we can hardly believe that the webbed feet of the upland [200]goose or of the frigate-bird are of special use to these birds; we cannot believe that the same bones in the arm of the monkey, in the fore-leg of the horse, in the wing of the bat, and in the nipper of the seal, are of special use to these animals. We may safely attribute these structures to inheritance. But to the progenitor of the upland goose and of the frigate-bird, webbed feet no doubt were as useful as they now are to the most aquatic of existing birds. So we may believe that the progenitor of the seal had not a nipper, but a foot with five toes fitted for walking or grasping; and we may further venture to believe that the several bones in the limbs of the monkey, horse, and bat, which have been inherited from a common progenitor, were formerly of more special use to that progenitor, or its progenitors, than they now are to these animals having such widely diversified habits. Therefore we may infer that these several bones might have been acquired through natural selection, subjected formerly, as now, to the several laws of inheritance, reversion, correlation of growth, &c. Hence every detail of structure in every living creature (making some little allowance for the direct action of physical conditions) may be viewed, either as having been of special use to some ancestral form, or as being now of special use to the descendants of this form—either directly, or indirectly through the complex laws of growth.

The earlier points bring me to address a recent protest by some naturalists against the idea that every detail of an organism's structure was created for the benefit of its owner. They believe that many structures were created for beauty in human eyes or just for variety. If this idea is true, it would completely contradict my theory. However, I fully acknowledge that many structures don't have any direct benefit for their owners. Physical conditions likely did have some impact on structure, independent of any benefits gained. The correlation of growth has undoubtedly played a significant role, and a useful change in one part often leads to diverse changes in other parts that are of no direct benefit. Likewise, traits that were once useful, or arose from growth correlation, or other unknown causes, may resurface due to the law of reversion, even if they no longer offer direct benefits. The effects of sexual selection, shown through beauty to attract females, can only be seen as useful in a somewhat forced way. The most crucial point is that the main part of each organism's structure is simply due to inheritance; thus, even though each organism is undoubtedly well-suited for its place in nature, many structures do not directly relate to the life habits of each species. Therefore, it's hard to believe that the webbed feet of the upland goose or the frigate-bird serve a special purpose for these birds; we can't believe that the same bones in the arm of a monkey, the foreleg of a horse, the wing of a bat, and the flipper of a seal have a specific use for these animals. We can confidently attribute these structures to inheritance. However, for the ancestor of the upland goose and the frigate-bird, webbed feet were likely just as useful back then as they are now for the most aquatic of birds. Similarly, we can assume the ancestor of the seal had a foot with five toes designed for walking or grasping, rather than a flipper. We can also suggest that the bones in the limbs of the monkey, horse, and bat, inherited from a common ancestor, were likely more specifically useful to that ancestor or its predecessors than they are to these animals with such different habits today. Therefore, we can infer that these specific bones might have been shaped by natural selection, affected, as they are now, by the various laws of inheritance, reversion, and growth correlation, etc. Thus, every detail of structure in every living creature (with a little allowance for the direct impact of physical conditions) can be viewed as either having been specifically useful to some ancestral form or currently being specifically useful to the descendants of that form—either directly or indirectly through the complex laws of growth.

Natural selection cannot possibly produce any modification in any one species exclusively for the good of another species; though throughout nature one species incessantly takes advantage of, and profits by, the structure of another. But natural selection can and does often produce structures for the direct injury of other species, as we see in the fang of the adder, and in the ovipositor of the ichneumon, by which its eggs are [201]deposited in the living bodies of other insects. If it could be proved that any part of the structure of any one species had been formed for the exclusive good of another species, it would annihilate my theory, for such could not have been produced through natural selection. Although many statements may be found in works on natural history to this effect, I cannot find even one which seems to me of any weight. It is admitted that the rattlesnake has a poison-fang for its own defence and for the destruction of its prey; but some authors suppose that at the same time this snake is furnished with a rattle for its own injury, namely, to warn its prey to escape. I would almost as soon believe that the cat curls the end of its tail when preparing to spring, in order to warn the doomed mouse. But I have not space here to enter on this and other such cases.

Natural selection cannot create any changes in one species solely for the benefit of another species; however, throughout nature, one species continuously takes advantage of and benefits from the traits of another. Natural selection can and often does create traits that directly harm other species, as seen in the fang of the adder and the ovipositor of the ichneumon, which lays its eggs in the living bodies of other insects. If it could be proven that any part of a species' structure was made exclusively for the benefit of another species, it would disprove my theory, as such traits couldn't have been formed through natural selection. While many claims in natural history literature suggest this idea, I can't find any that hold significant weight. It is accepted that the rattlesnake has a poison fang for its own defense and to kill its prey; yet some authors believe this snake also has a rattle that harms it by warning its prey to flee. I would almost believe that a cat arches its tail before pouncing to signal the unfortunate mouse. But I don't have the space to discuss this and other similar cases.

Natural selection will never produce in a being anything injurious to itself, for natural selection acts solely by and for the good of each. No organ will be formed, as Paley has remarked, for the purpose of causing pain or for doing an injury to its possessor. If a fair balance be struck between the good and evil caused by each part, each will be found on the whole advantageous. After the lapse of time, under changing conditions of life, if any part comes to be injurious, it will be modified; or if it be not so, the being will become extinct, as myriads have become extinct.

Natural selection will never create anything harmful to a living being because it operates entirely for the benefit of each individual. As Paley noted, no organ will develop with the intention of causing pain or harm to its owner. If we weigh the benefits and drawbacks of each part, we’ll find that, overall, they are beneficial. Over time, as life conditions change, if any part becomes harmful, it will be adjusted; if it doesn’t change, the species will go extinct, just like countless others have.

Natural selection tends only to make each organic being as perfect as, or slightly more perfect than, the other inhabitants of the same country with which it has to struggle for existence. And we see that this is the degree of perfection attained under nature. The endemic productions of New Zealand, for instance, are perfect one compared with another; but they are now rapidly yielding before the advancing legions of plants [202]and animals introduced from Europe. Natural selection will not produce absolute perfection, nor do we always meet, as far as we can judge, with this high standard under nature. The correction for the aberration of light is said, on high authority, not to be perfect even in that most perfect organ, the eye. If our reason leads us to admire with enthusiasm a multitude of inimitable contrivances in nature, this same reason tells us, though we may easily err on both sides, that some other contrivances are less perfect. Can we consider the sting of the wasp or of the bee as perfect, which, when used against many attacking animals, cannot be withdrawn, owing to the backward serratures, and so inevitably causes the death of the insect by tearing out its viscera?

Natural selection only tends to make each living organism as perfect as, or slightly more perfect than, the other species in the same area that it competes with for survival. And this is the level of perfection we see in nature. The unique species found in New Zealand, for example, are perfect compared to one another; however, they are quickly being outpaced by the invading plants [202]and animals brought over from Europe. Natural selection won’t create absolute perfection, nor do we always see this high standard in nature, as far as we can tell. It's said by trusted sources that the correction for light aberration is not even perfect in the eye, considered the most perfect organ. While our reason might lead us to enthusiastically admire many incredible designs in nature, it also reminds us, though we can be wrong in either direction, that there are some designs that are less than perfect. Can we really say that the sting of a wasp or a bee is perfect when, used against many attacking creatures, it cannot be retracted due to its backward serrations, ultimately leading to the insect’s death by tearing out its insides?

If we look at the sting of the bee, as having originally existed in a remote progenitor as a boring and serrated instrument, like that in so many members of the same great order, and which has been modified but not perfected for its present purpose, with the poison originally adapted to cause galls subsequently intensified, we can perhaps understand how it is that the use of the sting should so often cause the insect's own death: for if on the whole the power of stinging be useful to the community, it will fulfil all the requirements of natural selection, though it may cause the death of some few members. If we admire the truly wonderful power of scent by which the males of many insects find their females, can we admire the production for this single purpose of thousands of drones, which are utterly useless to the community for any other end, and which are ultimately slaughtered by their industrious and sterile sisters? It may be difficult, but we ought to admire the savage instinctive hatred of the queen-bee, which urges her instantly to destroy the [203]young queens her daughters as soon as born, or to perish herself in the combat; for undoubtedly this is for the good of the community; and maternal love or maternal hatred, though the latter fortunately is most rare, is all the same to the inexorable principle of natural selection. If we admire the several ingenious contrivances, by which the flowers of the orchis and of many other plants are fertilised through insect agency, can we consider as equally perfect the elaboration by our fir-trees of dense clouds of pollen, in order that a few granules may be wafted by a chance breeze on to the ovules?

If we think about the bee's sting as originally coming from a distant ancestor who had a simple, jagged tool, like many others in the same large group, and which has been changed but not fully refined for its current use, along with the poison that was initially meant to create galls and then strengthened, we can maybe understand why using the sting often leads to the insect's own death. If the ability to sting benefits the community as a whole, it meets the requirements of natural selection, even if it results in the death of a few individuals. If we admire the incredible sense of smell that helps male insects find their females, can we also appreciate the production of thousands of drones made just for that one purpose, who are completely useless to the community otherwise, and who ultimately get killed by their hardworking, sterile sisters? It might be hard, but we should admire the fierce instinctive hatred of the queen bee, which drives her to immediately destroy her newborn daughters, the young queens, or to perish herself in the fight; because this is undoubtedly for the community's benefit. Maternal love or maternal hatred, though the latter is thankfully quite rare, doesn't make a difference to the relentless principle of natural selection. If we admire the clever ways flowers like the orchids and many other plants are fertilized by insects, can we really view the way fir trees produce thick clouds of pollen to let just a few grains be carried by a random breeze to the ovules as equally perfect?

 

Summary of Chapter.—We have in this chapter discussed some of the difficulties and objections which may be urged against my theory. Many of them are very serious; but I think that in the discussion light has been thrown on several facts, which on the theory of independent acts of creation are utterly obscure. We have seen that species at any one period are not indefinitely variable, and are not linked together by a multitude of intermediate gradations, partly because the process of natural selection will always be very slow, and will act, at any one time, only on a very few forms; and partly because the very process of natural selection almost implies the continual supplanting and extinction of preceding and intermediate gradations. Closely allied species, now living on a continuous area, must often have been formed when the area was not continuous, and when the conditions of life did not insensibly graduate away from one part to another. When two varieties are formed in two districts of a continuous area, an intermediate variety will often be formed, fitted for an intermediate zone; but from reasons assigned, the intermediate variety will usually exist in lesser numbers than [204]the two forms which it connects; consequently the two latter, during the course of further modification, from existing in greater numbers, will have a great advantage over the less numerous intermediate variety, and will thus generally succeed in supplanting and exterminating it.

Summary of Chapter.—In this chapter, we've talked about some of the challenges and objections that can be raised against my theory. Many of these are quite significant; however, I believe that the discussion has shed light on several facts that are completely unclear under the theory of independent acts of creation. We've observed that species at any given time are not infinitely variable and are not connected by a lot of intermediate forms, partly because the process of natural selection is always very gradual and only acts on a small number of forms at any one time; and partly because the process of natural selection tends to involve the continuous replacement and extinction of earlier and intermediate forms. Closely related species currently found in a continuous area must have often developed when that area was not continuous, and when the living conditions did not gradually change from one part to another. When two varieties arise in two different regions of a continuous area, an intermediate variety frequently forms that is suited for an intermediate zone; however, for the reasons explained, the intermediate variety will usually be less numerous than the two forms it connects. As a result, the two more abundant forms, during further changes, will have a significant advantage over the less common intermediate variety and will generally succeed in replacing and eliminating it.

We have seen in this chapter how cautious we should be in concluding that the most different habits of life could not graduate into each other; that a bat, for instance, could not have been formed by natural selection from an animal which at first could only glide through the air.

We’ve seen in this chapter how careful we need to be in concluding that very different lifestyles couldn’t evolve into one another; that a bat, for example, couldn’t have developed through natural selection from an animal that could only glide through the air at first.

We have seen that a species may under new conditions of life change its habits, or have diversified habits, with some habits very unlike those of its nearest congeners. Hence we can understand, bearing in mind that each organic being is trying to live wherever it can live, how it has arisen that there are upland geese with webbed feet, ground woodpeckers, diving thrushes, and petrels with the habits of auks.

We have observed that a species can change its behaviors or develop diverse habits when faced with new living conditions, sometimes adopting habits that are quite different from those of its closest relatives. This helps us understand, considering that each living organism is striving to survive wherever it can, how it has come to be that there are upland geese with webbed feet, ground woodpeckers, diving thrushes, and petrels that behave like auks.

Although the belief that an organ so perfect as the eye could have been formed by natural selection, is more than enough to stagger any one; yet in the case of any organ, if we know of a long series of gradations in complexity, each good for its possessor, then, under changing conditions of life there is no logical impossibility in the acquirement of any conceivable degree of perfection through natural selection. In the cases in which we know of no intermediate or transitional states, we should be very cautious in concluding that none could have existed, for the homologies of many organs and their intermediate states show that wonderful metamorphoses in function are at least possible. For instance, a swim-bladder has apparently been converted into an air-breathing lung. The same organ having performed [205]simultaneously very different functions, and then having been specialised for one function; and two very distinct organs having performed at the same time the same function, the one having been perfected whilst aided by the other, must often have largely facilitated transitions.

Although the idea that such a perfectly designed organ as the eye could have evolved through natural selection is enough to astonish anyone, if we observe a long series of gradual changes in complexity, each beneficial to its owner, then under changing living conditions, there's no logical impossibility in achieving any imaginable level of perfection through natural selection. In cases where we don't have evidence of intermediate or transitional forms, we should be very careful not to assume that none existed, as the similarities between many organs and their transitional stages demonstrate that remarkable changes in function are at least possible. For example, a swim bladder has seemingly transformed into a lung that breathes air. The same organ can perform different functions at the same time, and then become specialized for one function; also, two very separate organs can perform the same function simultaneously, with one evolving while being supported by the other, which must have greatly aided these transitions.

We are far too ignorant, in almost every case, to be enabled to assert that any part or organ is so unimportant for the welfare of a species, that modifications in its structure could not have been slowly accumulated by means of natural selection. But we may confidently believe that many modifications, wholly due to the laws of growth, and at first in no way advantageous to a species, have been subsequently taken advantage of by the still further modified descendants of this species. We may, also, believe that a part formerly of high importance has often been retained (as the tail of an aquatic animal by its terrestrial descendants), though it has become of such small importance that it could not, in its present state, have been acquired by natural selection,—a power which acts solely by the preservation of profitable variations in the struggle for life.

We are usually too unaware to claim that any part or organ is so insignificant for a species' survival that changes in its structure couldn't have gradually accumulated through natural selection. However, we can confidently believe that many changes, which are entirely due to growth processes and initially offered no benefits to a species, have later been utilized by the further modified descendants of that species. We can also believe that a part that was once very important has often been kept (like the tail of an aquatic animal in its land-dwelling descendants), even though it has become so unimportant that it couldn't have been developed through natural selection in its current form—an ability that operates solely by preserving beneficial variations in the struggle for survival.

Natural selection will produce nothing in one species for the exclusive good or injury of another; though it may well produce parts, organs, and excretions highly useful or even indispensable, or highly injurious to another species, but in all cases at the same time useful to the owner. Natural selection in each well-stocked country, must act chiefly through the competition of the inhabitants one with another, and consequently will produce perfection, or strength in the battle for life, only according to the standard of that country. Hence the inhabitants of one country, generally the smaller one, will often yield, as we see they do yield, to the inhabitants of another and generally larger country. For in [206]the larger country there will have existed more individuals, and more diversified forms, and the competition will have been severer, and thus the standard of perfection will have been rendered higher. Natural selection will not necessarily produce absolute perfection; nor, as far as we can judge by our limited faculties, can absolute perfection be everywhere found.

Natural selection doesn't create anything in one species for the exclusive benefit or harm of another; however, it can produce parts, organs, and waste that are very useful or even essential, or highly harmful to another species, but in every case, they benefit the owner. In every well-populated country, natural selection mainly operates through competition among the inhabitants. This means it will lead to perfection or strength in the struggle for survival, but only based on the standards of that country. Therefore, the inhabitants of one country, typically the smaller one, will often give way, as we observe they do, to those from another and usually larger country. This is because a larger country will have had more individuals, more diverse forms, and tougher competition, thus raising the standard of perfection. Natural selection doesn't necessarily result in absolute perfection; nor, as far as we can tell with our limited understanding, can absolute perfection be found everywhere.

On the theory of natural selection we can clearly understand the full meaning of that old canon in natural history, "Natura non facit saltum." This canon, if we look only to the present inhabitants of the world, is not strictly correct, but if we include all those of past times, it must by my theory be strictly true.

On the theory of natural selection, we can clearly grasp the full significance of the old saying in natural history, "Nature doesn’t make jumps." This saying might not be completely accurate if we only consider the current inhabitants of the world, but if we take into account all those from the past, it must, according to my theory, be completely true.

It is generally acknowledged that all organic beings have been formed on two great laws—Unity of Type, and the Conditions of Existence. By unity of type is meant that fundamental agreement in structure, which we see in organic beings of the same class, and which is quite independent of their habits of life. On my theory, unity of type is explained by unity of descent. The expression of conditions of existence, so often insisted on by the illustrious Cuvier, is fully embraced by the principle of natural selection. For natural selection acts by either now adapting the varying parts of each being to its organic and inorganic conditions of life; or by having adapted them during long-past periods of time: the adaptations being aided in some cases by use and disuse, being slightly affected by the direct action of the external conditions of life, and being in all cases subjected to the several laws of growth. Hence, in fact, the law of the Conditions of Existence is the higher law; as it includes, through the inheritance of former adaptations, that of Unity of Type.

It’s widely accepted that all living things have developed based on two main principles—Unity of Type and the Conditions of Existence. Unity of Type refers to the basic similarity in structure that we observe in organisms of the same group, which is completely separate from their way of life. According to my theory, Unity of Type can be understood through a shared ancestry. The concept of Conditions of Existence, frequently emphasized by the famous Cuvier, is fully captured by the principle of natural selection. Natural selection works by either currently adjusting the different aspects of each organism to its living conditions or having adjusted them over long periods in the past: these adjustments can be influenced by use and disuse, can be slightly modified by the direct impact of external living conditions, and are always subject to various laws of growth. Therefore, the law of the Conditions of Existence is actually the more important law since it encompasses, through the inheritance of previous adaptations, the concept of Unity of Type.


[207]

[207]

CHAPTER VII.

Instinct.

Instinct.

Instincts comparable with habits, but different in their origin—Instincts graduated—Aphides and ants—Instincts variable—Domestic instincts, their origin—Natural instincts of the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees—Slave-making-ants—Hive-bee, its cell-making instinct—Difficulties on the theory of the Natural Selection of instincts—Neuter or sterile insects—Summary.

Instincts are similar to habits, but they come from different origins. Instincts can differ in complexity. For instance, consider aphids and ants. Some instincts evolve over time. Domestic instincts, like those found in pets, have specific beginnings. Natural instincts can be seen in animals such as the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees. There are also ant species that create slave colonies. The hive bee has a distinct instinct for constructing its cells. Understanding the theory of Natural Selection as it relates to instincts presents challenges. We also look at neuter or sterile insects. In conclusion.

The subject of instinct might have been worked into the previous chapters; but I have thought that it would be more convenient to treat the subject separately, especially as so wonderful an instinct as that of the hive-bee making its cells will probably have occurred to many readers, as a difficulty sufficient to overthrow my whole theory. I must premise, that I have nothing to do with the origin of the primary mental powers, any more than I have with that of life itself. We are concerned only with the diversities of instinct and of the other mental qualities of animals within the same class.

The topic of instinct could have been included in the earlier chapters; however, I believe it’s more practical to discuss it separately, especially since such an amazing instinct as that of the hive bee creating its cells likely poses a challenge for many readers and could potentially undermine my entire theory. I want to clarify that I’m not addressing the origins of the primary mental abilities, just as I’m not delving into the origins of life itself. We are only focused on the variations of instinct and other mental traits of animals within the same class.

I will not attempt any definition of instinct. It would be easy to show that several distinct mental actions are commonly embraced by this term; but every one understands what is meant, when it is said that instinct impels the cuckoo to migrate and to lay her eggs in other birds' nests. An action, which we ourselves should require experience to enable us to perform, when performed by an animal, more especially by a very young one, without any experience, and when performed by many individuals in the same way, without their knowing for what purpose it is performed, is usually said to be instinctive. [208]But I could show that none of these characters of instinct are universal. A little dose, as Pierre Huber expresses it, of judgment or reason, often comes into play, even in animals very low in the scale of nature.

I won’t try to define instinct. It would be simple to point out that several different mental processes are typically included under this term; but everyone knows what is meant when we say that instinct drives the cuckoo to migrate and lay her eggs in other birds' nests. An action that we would need experience to execute is performed by an animal, especially a very young one, without any prior experience, and is done by many individuals in the same way, without them knowing the reason behind it, is generally described as instinctive. [208]However, I could demonstrate that none of these characteristics of instinct are universal. A bit of judgment or reason, as Pierre Huber put it, often comes into play, even in animals that are quite low on the evolutionary scale.

Frederick Cuvier and several of the older metaphysicians have compared instinct with habit. This comparison gives, I think, a remarkably accurate notion of the frame of mind under which an instinctive action is performed, but not of its origin. How unconsciously many habitual actions are performed, indeed not rarely in direct opposition to our conscious will! yet they may be modified by the will or reason. Habits easily become associated with other habits, and with certain periods of time and states of the body. When once acquired, they often remain constant throughout life. Several other points of resemblance between instincts and habits could be pointed out. As in repeating a well-known song, so in instincts, one action follows another by a sort of rhythm; if a person be interrupted in a song, or in repeating anything by rote, he is generally forced to go back to recover the habitual train of thought: so P. Huber found it was with a caterpillar, which makes a very complicated hammock; for if he took a caterpillar which had completed its hammock up to, say, the sixth stage of construction, and put it into a hammock completed up only to the third stage, the caterpillar simply re-performed the fourth, fifth, and sixth stages of construction. If, however, a caterpillar were taken out of a hammock made up, for instance, to the third stage, and were put into one finished up to the sixth stage, so that much of its work, was already done for it, far from feeling the benefit of this, it was much embarrassed, and, in order to complete its hammock, seemed forced to start from the third stage, where it had left off, and thus tried to complete the already finished work. [209]

Frederick Cuvier and some of the older philosophers have compared instinct to habit. I believe this comparison provides a really accurate understanding of the mindset in which instinctive actions happen, but it doesn't explain where they come from. So many habitual actions are carried out unconsciously, often in direct contrast to our conscious intentions! Yet, they can be influenced by our will or reason. Habits can easily link with other habits and can be tied to specific times and physical states. Once formed, they often stay with us for life. There are several other similarities between instincts and habits worth mentioning. Just like singing a familiar song, instincts have a sort of rhythm where one action follows another; if someone is interrupted while singing or reciting something from memory, they usually have to go back to get back on track. P. Huber found a similar situation with a caterpillar that builds a very complex hammock. If he took a caterpillar that had completed its hammock up to, say, the sixth stage of construction, and put it into a hammock that was only finished up to the third stage, the caterpillar would just repeat the fourth, fifth, and sixth stages. However, if he took a caterpillar out of a hammock that was finished up to the third stage and placed it into one that was completed up to the sixth stage—meaning a lot of the work was already done—it didn’t benefit from this at all; instead, it became quite confused and felt it had to start from the third stage where it had left off, attempting to finish the already completed work. [209]

If we suppose any habitual action to become inherited—and I think it can be shown that this does sometimes happen—then the resemblance between what originally was a habit and an instinct becomes so close as not to be distinguished. If Mozart, instead of playing the pianoforte at three years old with wonderfully little practice, had played a tune with no practice at all, he might truly be said to have done so instinctively. But it would be the most serious error to suppose that the greater number of instincts have been acquired by habit in one generation, and then transmitted by inheritance to succeeding generations. It can be clearly shown that the most wonderful instincts with which we are acquainted, namely, those of the hive-bee and of many ants, could not possibly have been thus acquired.

If we assume that any habitual action can be inherited—and I believe this can be demonstrated to occur sometimes—then the similarity between what was originally a habit and an instinct becomes so close that they can't be distinguished. If Mozart had played the piano at three years old with absolutely no practice, it could genuinely be said that he did so instinctively. However, it would be a serious mistake to think that most instincts were acquired through habit in one generation and then passed down to the next. It can be clearly shown that the most remarkable instincts we know of, such as those of the hive bee and many ants, could not possibly have been acquired in that way.

It will be universally admitted that instincts are as important as corporeal structure for the welfare of each species, under its present conditions of life. Under changed conditions of life, it is at least possible that slight modifications of instinct might be profitable to a species; and if it can be shown that instincts do vary ever so little, then I can see no difficulty in natural selection preserving and continually accumulating variations of instinct to any extent that may be profitable. It is thus, as I believe, that all the most complex and wonderful instincts have originated. As modifications of corporeal structure arise from, and are increased by, use or habit, and are diminished or lost by disuse, so I do not doubt it has been with instincts. But I believe that the effects of habit are of quite subordinate importance to the effects of the natural selection of what may be called accidental variations of instincts;—that is of variations produced by the same unknown causes which produce slight deviations of bodily structure.

It will be universally accepted that instincts are just as crucial as physical structure for the well-being of each species, given their current life conditions. If conditions change, it’s at least possible that slight changes in instinct could benefit a species; and if we can demonstrate that instincts do vary even a little, then I see no reason why natural selection couldn’t preserve and continually accumulate variations of instinct to any extent that could be beneficial. I believe that this is how all the most complex and remarkable instincts have developed. Just as changes in physical structure arise from, and are enhanced by, use or habit, and are reduced or lost through disuse, I have no doubt that the same applies to instincts. However, I believe that the impact of habit is far less significant than the effects of natural selection on what could be seen as random variations of instincts—that is, variations caused by the same unknown factors that lead to slight changes in physical structure.

No complex instinct can possibly be produced through [210]natural selection, except by the slow and gradual accumulation of numerous, slight, yet profitable, variations. Hence, as in the case of corporeal structures, we ought to find in nature, not the actual transitional gradations by which each complex instinct has been acquired—for these could be found only in the lineal ancestors of each species—but we ought to find in the collateral lines of descent some evidence of such gradations; or we ought at least to be able to show that gradations of some kind are possible; and this we certainly can do. I have been surprised to find, making allowance for the instincts of animals having been but little observed except in Europe and North America, and for no instinct being known amongst extinct species, how very generally gradations, leading to the most complex instincts, can be discovered. Changes of instinct may sometimes be facilitated by the same species having different instincts at different periods of life, or at different seasons of the year, or when placed under different circumstances &c.; in which case either one or the other instinct might be preserved by natural selection. And such instances of diversity of instinct in the same species can be shown to occur in nature.

No complex instinct can be created through natural selection, except by the slow and gradual build-up of many small, beneficial variations. Therefore, just like with physical structures, we should find in nature not the actual transitional stages through which each complex instinct has developed—since these would only be found in the direct ancestors of each species—but we should find some evidence of such stages in related lines of descent; or at the very least, we should be able to show that stages of some sort are possible; and we definitely can do that. I've been surprised to discover that, considering the instincts of animals have mostly been studied only in Europe and North America, and that no instinct is known from extinct species, there are quite a few gradations leading to the most complex instincts. Changes in instinct can sometimes be easier to see when the same species has different instincts at different stages of life, during different seasons, or under different conditions, in which case either instinct could be preserved through natural selection. Such examples of varying instincts within the same species can indeed be observed in nature.

Again as in the case of corporeal structure, and conformably with my theory, the instinct of each species is good for itself, but has never, as far as we can judge, been produced for the exclusive good of others. One of the strongest instances of an animal apparently performing an action for the sole good of another, with which I am acquainted, is that of aphides voluntarily yielding their sweet excretion to ants: that they do so voluntarily, the following facts show. I removed all the ants from a group of about a dozen aphides on a dock-plant, and prevented their attendance during several hours. After this interval, I felt sure that the aphides [211]would want to excrete. I watched them for some time through a lens, but not one excreted; I then tickled and stroked them with a hair in the same manner, as well as I could, as the ants do with their antennæ; but not one excreted. Afterwards I allowed an ant to visit them, and it immediately seemed, by its eager way of running about, to be well aware what a rich flock it had discovered; it then began to play with its antennæ on the abdomen first of one aphis and then of another; and each aphis, as soon as it felt the antennæ, immediately lifted up its abdomen and excreted a limpid drop of sweet juice, which was eagerly devoured by the ant. Even the quite young aphides behaved in this manner, showing that the action was instinctive, and not the result of experience. But as the excretion is extremely viscid, it is probably a convenience to the aphides to have it removed; and therefore probably the aphides do not instinctively excrete for the sole good of the ants. Although I do not believe that any animal in the world performs an action for the exclusive good of another of a distinct species, yet each species tries to take advantage of the instincts of others, as each takes advantage of the weaker bodily structure of others. So again, in some few cases, certain instincts cannot be considered as absolutely perfect; but as details on this and other such points are not indispensable, they may be here passed over.

Again, just like with physical structure, and in line with my theory, the instinct of each species is beneficial for itself but has never, as far as we can tell, been developed solely for the benefit of others. One of the clearest examples of an animal seemingly acting only for the good of another is the case of aphids willingly giving their sweet excretion to ants. The following facts indicate that they do this willingly. I removed all the ants from a group of about a dozen aphids on a dock plant and kept them away for several hours. After this time, I was sure that the aphids would want to excrete. I observed them for a while through a lens, but not one of them excreted; then I tickled and stroked them with a hair, mimicking how ants use their antennae, but still none excreted. Afterward, I let an ant visit them, and it immediately seemed excited as it moved around, clearly aware of the rich find it had discovered; it then started playing with its antennae on the abdomen of one aphis and then another; as soon as each aphis felt the antennae, it lifted its abdomen and excreted a clear drop of sweet juice, which the ant eagerly consumed. Even the very young aphids acted this way, showing that the behavior was instinctive, not learned through experience. However, since the excretion is very sticky, it likely benefits the aphids to have it removed, suggesting that the aphids don't instinctively excrete solely for the ants' benefit. Although I don't believe any animal acts exclusively for the benefit of another species, each species does try to exploit the instincts of others, just as they take advantage of the weaker physical structures of other species. While in a few cases some instincts might not be completely perfect, I will skip over those details here as they aren't essential.

As some degree of variation in instincts under a state of nature, and the inheritance of such variations, are indispensable for the action of natural selection, as many instances as possible ought to be here given; but want of space prevents me. I can only assert, that instincts certainly do vary—for instance, the migratory instinct, both in extent and direction, and in its total loss. So it is with the nests of birds, which vary partly [212]in dependence on the situations chosen, and on the nature and temperature of the country inhabited, but often from causes wholly unknown to us: Audubon has given several remarkable cases of differences in the nests of the same species in the northern and southern United States. Fear of any particular enemy is certainly an instinctive quality, as may be seen in nestling birds, though it is strengthened by experience, and by the sight of fear of the same enemy in other animals. But fear of man is slowly acquired, as I have elsewhere shown, by various animals inhabiting desert islands; and we may see an instance of this, even in England, in the greater wildness of all our large birds than of our small birds; for the large birds have been most persecuted by man. We may safely attribute the greater wildness of our large birds to this cause; for in uninhabited islands large birds are not more fearful than small; and the magpie, so wary in England, is tame in Norway, as is the hooded crow in Egypt.

As some variation in instincts in a natural environment, and the inheritance of these variations, are essential for natural selection to occur, I would provide as many examples as possible here; however, space limitations prevent me from doing so. I can only state that instincts do indeed vary—for example, the migratory instinct changes in extent, direction, and even in total loss. The same applies to bird nests, which vary partly [212]based on the locations chosen and the climate of the areas they live in, but often for reasons that are entirely unknown to us: Audubon has reported several notable instances of differences in the nests of the same species in the northern and southern United States. Fear of specific predators is definitely an instinctive trait, as seen in fledgling birds, although it is reinforced by experience and by observing the fear of the same predator in other animals. However, the fear of humans is gradually learned, as I have mentioned elsewhere, by various animals living on remote islands; and we can see an example of this even in England, where larger birds are generally wilder than smaller ones, because larger birds have faced more persecution from humans. We can confidently link the greater wildness of our larger birds to this factor; in uninhabited islands, large birds do not appear to be more fearful than small ones; and the magpie, which is very cautious in England, is quite tame in Norway, just like the hooded crow is in Egypt.

That the general disposition of individuals of the same species, born in a state of nature, is extremely diversified, can be shown by a multitude of facts. Several cases also, could be given, of occasional and strange habits in certain species, which might, if advantageous to the species, give rise, through natural selection, to quite new instincts. But I am well aware that these general statements, without facts given in detail, can produce but a feeble effect on the reader's mind. I can only repeat my assurance, that I do not speak without good evidence.

That the general behavior of individuals of the same species, born in a natural environment, varies widely can be demonstrated by numerous examples. There are also several cases of unusual habits in certain species that, if beneficial to the species, could lead to entirely new instincts through natural selection. However, I understand that these broad statements, without detailed facts, may not have much impact on the reader. I assure you that I am not speaking without solid evidence.

The possibility, or even probability, of inherited variations of instinct in a state of nature will be strengthened by briefly considering a few cases under domestication. We shall thus also be enabled to see the respective parts which habit and the selection of [213]so-called accidental variations have played in modifying the mental qualities of our domestic animals. A number of curious and authentic instances could be given of the inheritance of all shades of disposition and tastes, and likewise of the oddest tricks, associated with certain frames of mind or periods of time. But let us look to the familiar case of the several breeds of dogs: it cannot be doubted that young pointers (I have myself seen a striking instance) will sometimes point and even back other dogs the very first time that they are taken out; retrieving is certainly in some degree inherited by retrievers; and a tendency to run round, instead of at, a flock of sheep, by shepherd-dogs. I cannot see that these actions, performed without experience by the young, and in nearly the same manner by each individual, performed with eager delight by each breed, and without the end being known,—for the young pointer can no more know that he points to aid his master, than the white butterfly knows why she lays her eggs on the leaf of the cabbage,—I cannot see that these actions differ essentially from true instincts. If we were to see one kind of wolf, when young and without any training, as soon as it scented its prey, stand motionless like a statue, and then slowly crawl forward with a peculiar gait; and another kind of wolf rushing round, instead of at, a herd of deer, and driving them to a distant point, we should assuredly call these actions instinctive. Domestic instincts, as they may be called, are certainly far less fixed or invariable than natural instincts; but they have been acted on by far less rigorous selection, and have been transmitted for an incomparably shorter period, under less fixed conditions of life.

The possibility, or even likelihood, of inherited variations of instinct in a natural setting will be supported by briefly looking at a few examples of domestication. This will also help us understand the roles that habit and the so-called accidental variations play in shaping the mental traits of our domestic animals. There are many interesting and genuine examples of inheriting various temperaments and preferences, as well as some quirky behaviors linked to specific states of mind or time periods. Take a familiar example of different dog breeds: it's clear that young pointers (I've seen a striking example myself) will sometimes point and even back other dogs the very first time they go out; retrieving is certainly somewhat inherited by retrievers; and shepherd dogs have a tendency to run around a flock of sheep instead of directly at them. I don't see how these actions, carried out without experience by the young dogs and nearly the same way by each individual, done with eager delight by each breed and with no clear purpose in mind—because the young pointer has no clue that he's pointing to help his owner, just like the white butterfly doesn't know why she lays her eggs on a cabbage leaf—how these actions differ fundamentally from true instincts. If we observed one type of wolf, as a young one without any training, standing still like a statue as soon as it caught the scent of its prey, then slowly crawling forward in a unique way; and another type of wolf rushing around a herd of deer instead of directly at them, driving them away to a far-off point, we would definitely label these actions as instinctive. Domestic instincts, as we might call them, are certainly much less fixed or constant than natural instincts; however, they have been influenced by much less intense selection and have existed for an immeasurably shorter time under less stable living conditions.

How strongly these domestic instincts, habits, and dispositions are inherited, and how curiously they become mingled, is well shown when different breeds of dogs are [214]crossed. Thus it is known that a cross with a bull-dog has affected for many generations the courage and obstinacy of greyhounds; and a cross with a greyhound has given to a whole family of shepherd-dogs a tendency to hunt hares. These domestic instincts, when thus tested by crossing, resemble natural instincts, which in a like manner become curiously blended together, and for a long period exhibit traces of the instincts of either parent: for example, Le Roy describes a dog, whose great-grandfather was a wolf, and this dog showed a trace of its wild parentage only in one way, by not coming in a straight line to his master when called.

How strongly these domestic instincts, habits, and traits are inherited, and how oddly they become mixed, is clearly illustrated when different breeds of dogs are crossed. It's known that breeding with a bulldog has impacted the courage and stubbornness of greyhounds for many generations; similarly, a mix with a greyhound has given a whole line of shepherd dogs a tendency to chase hares. These domestic instincts, when tested through crossing, resemble natural instincts, which also blend together in curious ways, showing signs of either parent's instincts for a long time. For example, Le Roy describes a dog whose great-grandfather was a wolf, and this dog only showed a trace of its wild ancestry by not coming straight to its owner when called.

Domestic instincts are sometimes spoken of as actions which have become inherited solely from long-continued and compulsory habit, but this, I think, is not true. No one would ever have thought of teaching, or probably could have taught, the tumbler-pigeon to tumble,—an action which, as I have witnessed, is performed by young birds, that have never seen a pigeon tumble. We may believe that some one pigeon showed a slight tendency to this strange habit, and that the long-continued selection of the best individuals in successive generations made tumblers what they now are; and near Glasgow there are house-tumblers, as I hear from Mr. Brent, which cannot fly eighteen inches high without going head over heels. It may be doubted whether any one would have thought of training a dog to point, had not some one dog naturally shown a tendency in this line; and this is known occasionally to happen, as I once saw in a pure terrier: the act of pointing is probably, as many have thought, only the exaggerated pause of an animal preparing to spring on its prey. When the first tendency to point was once displayed, methodical selection and the inherited effects of compulsory training in each successive generation would soon complete the [215]work; and unconscious selection is still at work, as each man tries to procure, without intending to improve the breed, dogs which will stand and hunt best. On the other hand, habit alone in some cases has sufficed; no animal is more difficult to tame than the young of the wild rabbit; scarcely any animal is tamer than the young of the tame rabbit; but I do not suppose that domestic rabbits have ever been selected for tameness; and I presume that we must attribute the whole of the inherited change from extreme wildness to extreme tameness, simply to habit and long-continued close confinement.

Domestic instincts are sometimes described as behaviors that have become inherited solely through long-standing and mandatory habits, but I believe that's not accurate. No one would have thought to teach, or probably could have taught, the tumbler-pigeon to tumble—a behavior that, as I've seen, is performed by young birds that have never witnessed a pigeon tumble. It's likely that one pigeon initially showed a slight inclination toward this unusual behavior, and that the ongoing selection of the best individuals over generations turned tumblers into what they are today. Near Glasgow, I've heard from Mr. Brent, there are house-tumblers that can't fly more than eighteen inches high without flipping over. One might question whether anyone would have considered training a dog to point if no dog had shown a natural tendency in that direction; this does happen occasionally, as I once observed in a pure terrier. The act of pointing is probably just an exaggerated pause from an animal preparing to pounce on its prey. Once the initial tendency to point was displayed, systematic selection and the inherited effects of enforced training in each successive generation would quickly complete the work; and unconscious selection continues, as each person attempts to get dogs that stand and hunt best without intending to improve the breed. Conversely, in some cases, habit alone has been enough; no animal is harder to tame than the young of a wild rabbit, yet almost no animal is tamer than the young of a domestic rabbit. However, I doubt that domestic rabbits have ever been selected for tameness, and I think we should attribute the entire inherited change from extreme wildness to extreme tameness simply to habit and long-term close confinement.

Natural instincts are lost under domestication: a remarkable instance of this is seen in those breeds of fowls which very rarely or never become "broody," that is, never wish to sit on their eggs. Familiarity alone prevents our seeing how universally and largely the minds of our domestic animals have been modified by domestication. It is scarcely possible to doubt that the love of man has become instinctive in the dog. All wolves, foxes, jackals, and species of the cat genus, when kept tame, are most eager to attack poultry, sheep, and pigs; and this tendency has been found incurable in dogs which have been brought home as puppies from countries, such as Tierra del Fuego and Australia, where the savages do not keep these domestic animals. How rarely, on the other hand, do our civilised dogs, even when quite young, require to be taught not to attack poultry, sheep, and pigs! No doubt they occasionally do make an attack, and are then beaten; and if not cured, they are destroyed; so that habit, with some degree of selection, has probably concurred in civilising by inheritance our dogs. On the other hand, young chickens have lost, wholly by habit, that fear of the dog and cat which no doubt was originally instinctive in them, in the same way as it is so plainly instinctive in [216]young pheasants, though reared under a hen. It is not that chickens have lost all fear, but fear only of dogs and cats, for if the hen gives the danger-chuckle, they will run (more especially young turkeys) from under her, and conceal themselves in the surrounding grass or thickets; and this is evidently done for the instinctive purpose of allowing, as we see in wild ground-birds, their mother to fly away. But this instinct retained by our chickens has become useless under domestication, for the mother-hen has almost lost by disuse the power of flight.

Natural instincts are lost through domestication: a clear example of this can be seen in certain breeds of chickens that rarely or never become "broody," meaning they don't want to sit on their eggs. We're so familiar with domestic animals that we often overlook how profoundly their minds have changed due to domestication. It's hard to deny that dogs have developed an instinctive love for humans. All wolves, foxes, jackals, and cats, when kept tame, are very eager to attack chickens, sheep, and pigs; and this behavior has proven to be unchangeable in dogs that were raised as puppies in places like Tierra del Fuego and Australia, where the local people do not keep these domestic animals. Interestingly, our domesticated dogs, even when very young, rarely need to be taught not to go after poultry, sheep, and pigs! They might occasionally go after them and get punished; if they don't change their behavior, they are often put down. So, through habit and some degree of selection, our dogs have likely become more civilized through inheritance. In contrast, young chickens have entirely lost, through habit, the fear of dogs and cats that they likely had instinctively, similar to how it remains instinctive in young pheasants raised by a hen. It's not that chickens have lost all fear, just fear of dogs and cats, because when the hen makes a warning sound, they will flee (especially young turkeys) from under her and hide in the nearby grass or bushes. This behavior seems to serve the instinctive purpose of allowing their mother to escape, as we see in wild ground birds. However, this instinct that our chickens have retained has become useless due to domestication, as the mother hen has almost entirely lost her ability to fly from disuse.

Hence, we may conclude, that domestic instincts have been acquired and natural instincts have been lost partly by habit, and partly by man selecting and accumulating during successive generations, peculiar mental habits and actions, which at first appeared from what we must in our ignorance call an accident. In some cases compulsory habit alone has sufficed to produce such inherited mental changes; in other cases compulsory habit has done nothing, and all has been the result of selection, pursued both methodically and unconsciously; but in most cases, probably, habit and selection have acted together.

Therefore, we can conclude that domestic instincts have been developed, while natural instincts have been lost, partly due to habit and partly because humans have chosen and accumulated specific mental habits and actions over generations, which initially seemed like accidents. In some cases, just the need for habit alone has been enough to create these inherited mental changes; in other cases, habit has had no effect, and everything has been the result of selection, both intentional and unintentional. However, in most cases, it's likely that habit and selection have worked together.

We shall, perhaps, best understand how instincts in a state of nature have become modified by selection, by considering a few cases. I will select only three, out of the several which I shall have to discuss in my future work,—namely, the instinct which leads the cuckoo to lay her eggs in other birds' nests; the slave-making instinct of certain ants; and the comb-making power of the hive-bee; these two latter instincts have generally, and most justly, been ranked by naturalists as the most wonderful of all known instincts.

We might best understand how instincts in their natural state have changed through selection by looking at a few examples. I will choose only three from the many I’ll cover in my upcoming work: the instinct that drives the cuckoo to lay her eggs in other birds' nests; the slave-making instinct of certain ants; and the comb-building ability of the hive bee. These last two instincts are widely regarded, and rightly so, by naturalists as the most remarkable of all known instincts.

It is now commonly admitted that the more immediate and final cause of the cuckoo's instinct is, that [217]she lays her eggs, not daily, but at intervals of two or three days; so that, if she were to make her own nest and sit on her own eggs, those first laid would have to be left for some time unincubated, or there would be eggs and young birds of different ages in the same nest. If this were the case, the process of laying and hatching might be inconveniently long, more especially as she has to migrate at a very early period; and the first hatched young would probably have to be fed by the male alone. But the American cuckoo is in this predicament; for she makes her own nest and has eggs and young successively hatched, all at the same time. It has been asserted that the American cuckoo occasionally lays her eggs in other birds' nests; but I hear on the high authority of Dr. Brewer, that this is a mistake. Nevertheless, I could give several instances of various birds which have been known occasionally to lay their eggs in other birds' nests. Now let us suppose that the ancient progenitor of our European cuckoo had the habits of the American cuckoo; but that occasionally she laid an egg in another bird's nest. If the old bird profited by this occasional habit, or if the young were made more vigorous by advantage having been taken of the mistaken maternal instinct of another bird, than by their own mother's care, encumbered as she can hardly fail to be by having eggs and young of different ages at the same time; then the old birds or the fostered young would gain an advantage. And analogy would lead me to believe, that the young thus reared would be apt to follow by inheritance the occasional and aberrant habit of their mother, and in their turn would be apt to lay their eggs in other birds' nests, and thus be successful in rearing their young. By a continued process of this nature, I believe that the strange instinct of our cuckoo could be, and has been, [218]generated. I may add that, according to Dr. Gray and to some other observers, the European cuckoo has not utterly lost all maternal love and care for her own offspring.

It’s now widely accepted that the main reason behind the cuckoo's behavior is that [217]she lays her eggs not daily, but every two to three days. This means that if she built her own nest and incubated her eggs, the first ones laid would be left without incubation for a while, leading to eggs and chicks of different ages in one nest. If that happened, the laying and hatching process could take too long, especially since she has to migrate early; the first chicks would likely have to be fed only by the male. However, the American cuckoo faces this issue because she makes her own nest, with eggs and chicks hatching at different times. Some say the American cuckoo sometimes lays her eggs in other birds' nests, but according to Dr. Brewer, that claim is incorrect. Still, I can point out several cases of different birds known to occasionally lay eggs in the nests of others. Now, let’s imagine that the ancient ancestor of our European cuckoo had the same behavior as the American cuckoo but occasionally laid an egg in another bird's nest. If this older bird benefited from this habit or if the young ended up healthier because they were raised by another bird's mistaken maternal instinct rather than their own mother—who would be burdened with eggs and chicks of different ages—then both the old birds and the fostered young would have an advantage. Analogously, I believe that the young raised this way would likely inherit their mother’s occasional abnormal behavior and would also be inclined to lay their eggs in other birds' nests, thereby succeeding in raising their young. Through this ongoing process, I think the unusual instinct of our cuckoo could be, and has been, [218]developed. I should also add that, according to Dr. Gray and other observers, the European cuckoo hasn’t completely lost all maternal care and affection for her own offspring.

The occasional habit of birds laying their eggs in other birds' nests, either of the same or of a distinct species, is not very uncommon with the Gallinaceæ; and this perhaps explains the origin of a singular instinct in the allied group of ostriches. For several hen ostriches, at least in the case of the American species, unite and lay first a few eggs in one nest and then in another; and these are hatched by the males. This instinct may probably be accounted for by the fact of the hens laying a large number of eggs; but, as in the case of the cuckoo, at intervals of two or three days. This instinct, however, of the American ostrich has not as yet been perfected; for a surprising number of eggs lie strewed over the plains, so that in one day's hunting I picked up no less than twenty lost and wasted eggs.

The occasional behavior of birds laying their eggs in other birds' nests, whether of the same species or a different one, isn’t uncommon among the Gallinaceæ; this might explain a unique instinct found in the related group of ostriches. For several female ostriches, at least in the case of the American species, come together to lay some eggs in one nest and then in another; these eggs are incubated by the males. This instinct is likely due to the hens laying a large number of eggs, but, like the cuckoo, they do so at intervals of two or three days. However, this instinct in the American ostrich is not fully developed yet; a surprising number of eggs are scattered across the plains, so during one day's hunt, I collected no less than twenty lost and wasted eggs.

Many bees are parasitic, and always lay their eggs in the nests of bees of other kinds. This case is more remarkable than that of the cuckoo; for these bees have not only their instincts but their structure modified in accordance with their parasitic habits; for they do not possess the pollen-collecting apparatus which would be necessary if they had to store food for their own young. Some species, likewise, of Sphegidæ (wasp-like insects) are parasitic on other species; and M. Fabre has lately shown good reason for believing that although the Tachytes nigra generally makes its own burrow and stores it with paralysed prey for its own larvæ to feed on, yet that when this insect finds a burrow already made and stored by another sphex, it takes advantage of the prize, and becomes for the occasion parasitic. In this case, as with the supposed case of the cuckoo, I can [219]see no difficulty in natural selection making an occasional habit permanent, if of advantage to the species, and if the insect whose nest and stored food are thus feloniously appropriated, be not thus exterminated.

Many bees are parasitic and always lay their eggs in the nests of other types of bees. This is even more interesting than the behavior of the cuckoo because these bees not only have instincts but also have physical traits altered to fit their parasitic lifestyle; they lack the pollen-collecting tools that would be necessary if they needed to gather food for their own young. Similarly, some types of Sphegidæ (wasp-like insects) are parasitic on other species. M. Fabre has recently provided strong evidence that although Tachytes nigra usually builds its own burrow and fills it with paralyzed prey for its larvae to eat, it will take advantage of a burrow that’s already been made and stocked by another sphex, becoming parasitic for that occasion. In this case, just like with the cuckoo, I see no reason to doubt that natural selection could make an occasional behavior permanent if it's beneficial to the species, as long as the insect whose nest and stored food are being taken isn’t completely wiped out. [219]

 

Slave-making instinct.—This remarkable instinct was first discovered in the Formica (Polyerges) rufescens by Pierre Huber, a better observer even than his celebrated father. This ant is absolutely dependent on its slaves; without their aid, the species would certainly become extinct in a single year. The males and fertile females do no work. The workers or sterile females, though most energetic and courageous in capturing slaves, do no other work. They are incapable of making their own nests, or of feeding their own larvæ. When the old nest is found inconvenient, and they have to migrate, it is the slaves which determine the migration, and actually carry their masters in their jaws. So utterly helpless are the masters, that when Huber shut up thirty of them without a slave, but with plenty of the food which they like best, and with their larvae and pupæ to stimulate them to work, they did nothing; they could not even feed themselves, and many perished of hunger. Huber then introduced a single slave (F. fusca), and she instantly set to work, fed and saved the survivors; made some cells and tended the larvæ, and put all to rights. What can be more extraordinary than these well-ascertained facts? If we had not known of any other slave-making ant, it would have been hopeless to have speculated how so wonderful an instinct could have been perfected.

Slave-making instinct.—This amazing instinct was first discovered in the Formica (Polyerges) rufescens by Pierre Huber, who was an even better observer than his famous father. This ant completely relies on its slaves; without their help, the species would definitely go extinct in just one year. The males and fertile females don't do any work. The workers, or sterile females, while very energetic and brave in capturing slaves, don’t perform any other tasks. They can't build their own nests or feed their own larvae. When the old nest becomes inconvenient and they need to move, it’s the slaves who guide the migration and actually carry their masters in their jaws. The masters are so helpless that when Huber confined thirty of them without a slave but provided plenty of their favorite food and their larvae and pupae to encourage them, they did absolutely nothing; they couldn’t even feed themselves, and many starved. Huber then introduced a single slave (F. fusca), and she immediately got to work, fed and saved the surviving ants, built some cells, tended to the larvae, and restored order. What could be more astonishing than these well-documented facts? If we hadn't known of any other slave-making ant, it would have been impossible to speculate how such a remarkable instinct could have developed.

Another species, Formica sanguinea, was likewise first discovered by P. Huber to be a slave-making ant. This species is found in the southern parts of England, and its habits have been attended to by Mr. F. Smith, of [220]the British Museum, to whom I am much indebted for information on this and other subjects. Although fully trusting to the statements of Huber and Mr. Smith, I tried to approach the subject in a sceptical frame of mind, as any one may well be excused for doubting the truth of so extraordinary and odious an instinct as that of making slaves. Hence I will give the observations which I have myself made, in some little detail. I opened fourteen nests of F. sanguinea, and found a few slaves in all. Males and fertile females of the slave-species (F. fusca) are found only in their own proper communities, and have never been observed in the nests of F. sanguinea. The slaves are black and not above half the size of their red masters, so that the contrast in their appearance is very great. When the nest is slightly disturbed, the slaves occasionally come out, and like their masters are much agitated and defend the nest: when the nest is much disturbed and the larvæ and pupæ are exposed, the slaves work energetically with their masters in carrying them away to a place of safety. Hence, it is clear, that the slaves feel quite at home. During the months of June and July, on three successive years, I have watched for many hours several nests in Surrey and Sussex, and never saw a slave either leave or enter a nest. As, during these months, the slaves are very few in number, I thought that they might behave differently when more numerous; but Mr. Smith informs me that he has watched the nests at various hours during May, June and August, both in Surrey and Hampshire, and has never seen the slaves, through present in large numbers in August, either leave or enter the nest. Hence he considers them as strictly household slaves. The masters, on the other hand, may be constantly seen bringing in materials for the nest, and food of all kinds. During the present year, however, in the month [221]of July, I came across a community with an unusually large stock of slaves, and I observed a few slaves mingled with their masters leaving the nest, and marching along the same road to a tall Scotch-fir-tree, twenty-five yards distant, which they ascended together, probably in search of aphides or cocci. According to Huber, who had ample opportunities for observation, in Switzerland the slaves habitually work with their masters in making the nest, and they alone open and close the doors in the morning and evening; and, as Huber expressly states, their principal office is to search for aphides. This difference in the usual habits of the masters and slaves in the two countries, probably depends merely on the slaves being captured in greater numbers in Switzerland than in England.

Another species, Formica sanguinea, was also first identified by P. Huber as a slave-making ant. This species is found in southern England, and its behavior has been studied by Mr. F. Smith from the British Museum, to whom I am very grateful for information on this and other topics. Although I completely trust the observations of Huber and Mr. Smith, I tried to approach this topic with a skeptical mindset, as it’s understandable to question the reality of such an extraordinary and unpleasant instinct as making slaves. So, I’ll detail the observations I made myself. I opened fourteen nests of F. sanguinea and found a few slaves in each. Males and fertile females of the slave species (F. fusca) are found only in their own communities and have never been seen in the nests of F. sanguinea. The slaves are black and no more than half the size of their red masters, making the contrast in their appearance quite striking. When the nest is slightly disturbed, the slaves occasionally come out, and like their masters, they are very agitated and defend the nest. When the nest is heavily disturbed and the larvae and pupae are exposed, the slaves work energetically alongside their masters to carry them to safety. This shows that the slaves feel at home. During June and July for three consecutive years, I spent many hours observing several nests in Surrey and Sussex and never saw a slave leave or enter a nest. Since there are very few slaves during these months, I thought they might behave differently when more numerous; however, Mr. Smith informs me that he has also observed the nests at various times during May, June, and August in both Surrey and Hampshire and has never seen the slaves, who are present in larger numbers in August, leave or enter the nest. Therefore, he considers them strictly household slaves. On the other hand, the masters can be constantly seen bringing in materials and various types of food for the nest. However, this year, in July, I came across a community with an unusually large number of slaves, and I observed a few slaves mingling with their masters leaving the nest and marching together to a tall Scotch fir tree, twenty-five yards away, which they climbed, probably to search for aphids or scale insects. According to Huber, who had ample opportunities for observation in Switzerland, the slaves typically work with their masters in building the nest, and they alone open and close the doors in the morning and evening; as Huber explicitly states, their main job is to search for aphids. This difference in the usual behavior of the masters and slaves in the two countries likely comes down to the slaves being captured in larger numbers in Switzerland than in England.

One day I fortunately witnessed a migration of F. sanguinea from one nest to another, and it was a most interesting spectacle to behold the masters carefully carrying (instead of being carried by, as in the case of F. rufescens) their slaves in their jaws. Another day my attention was struck by about a score of the slave-makers haunting the same spot, and evidently not in search of food; they approached and were vigorously repulsed by an independent community of the slave-species (F. fusca); sometimes as many as three of these ants clinging to the legs of the slave-making F. sanguinea. The latter ruthlessly killed their small opponents, and carried their dead bodies as food to their nest, twenty-nine yards distant; but they were prevented from getting any pupæ to rear as slaves. I then dug up a small parcel of the pupæ of F. fusca from another nest, and put them down on a bare spot near the place of combat; they were eagerly seized, and carried off by the tyrants, who perhaps fancied that, after all, they had been victorious in their late combat. [222]

One day, I was lucky enough to see a migration of F. sanguinea from one nest to another, and it was really fascinating to watch the ants carefully carrying their slaves in their jaws, instead of being carried by them like F. rufescens. Another day, I noticed about twenty of the slave-makers hanging around the same spot, clearly not looking for food; they approached and were fiercely pushed back by an independent group of the slave-species (F. fusca). Sometimes, as many as three of these ants would cling to the legs of the slave-making F. sanguinea. The latter mercilessly killed their smaller rivals and took their dead bodies back to their nest as food, which was twenty-nine yards away; however, they couldn’t get any pupae to raise as slaves. I then dug up a small handful of F. fusca pupae from another nest and placed them on a bare spot near the battleground; they were quickly snatched up and taken away by the tyrants, who probably thought that they had won their recent fight after all. [222]

At the same time I laid on the same place a small parcel of the pupæ of another species, F. flava, with a few of these little yellow ants still clinging to the fragments of the nest. This species is sometimes, though rarely, made into slaves, as has been described by Mr. Smith. Although so small a species, it is very courageous, and I have seen it ferociously attack other ants. In one instance I found to my surprise an independent community of F. flava under a stone beneath a nest of the slave-making F. sanguinea; and when I had accidentally disturbed both nests, the little ants attacked their big neighbours with surprising courage. Now I was curious to ascertain whether F. sanguinea could distinguish the pupæ of F. fusca, which they habitually make into slaves, from those of the little and furious F. flava, which they rarely capture, and it was evident that they did at once distinguish them: for we have seen that they eagerly and instantly seized the pupæ of F. fusca, whereas they were much terrified when they came across the pupæ, or even the earth from the nest of F. flava, and quickly ran away; but in about a quarter of an hour, shortly after all the little yellow ants had crawled away, they took heart and carried off the pupæ.

At the same time, I put a small bundle of pupae from another species, F. flava, in the same spot, with a few of these tiny yellow ants still hanging onto pieces of the nest. This species is sometimes, though rarely, turned into slaves, as described by Mr. Smith. Even though it's a small species, it’s very brave, and I’ve seen it fiercely attack other ants. In one surprising instance, I found a self-sufficient colony of F. flava under a stone beneath a nest of the slave-making F. sanguinea; when I accidentally disturbed both nests, the little ants boldly charged at their larger neighbors. I was curious to see if F. sanguinea could tell the pupae of F. fusca, which they usually enslave, apart from the pupae of the small and aggressive F. flava, which they rarely capture. It was clear that they could tell the difference immediately: they eagerly seized the pupae of F. fusca, while they were noticeably scared when they encountered the pupae, or even the dirt from the nest of F. flava, and quickly ran away. However, after about fifteen minutes, once all the little yellow ants had moved away, they regained their courage and took the pupae.

One evening I visited another community of F. sanguinea, and found a number of these ants returning home and entering their nests, carrying the dead bodies of F. fusca (showing that it was not a migration) and numerous pupæ. I traced a long file of ants burthened with booty, for about forty yards, to a very thick clump of heath, whence I saw the last individual of F. sanguinea emerge, carrying a pupa; but I was not able to find the desolated nest in the thick heath. The nest, however, must have been close at hand, for two or three individuals of F. fusca were rushing about in the greatest [223]agitation, and one was perched motionless with its own pupa in its mouth on the top of a spray of heath, an image of despair, over its ravaged home.

One evening, I visited another colony of F. sanguinea and saw several of these ants coming back to their nests, carrying the dead bodies of F. fusca (showing that this wasn't a migration) and many pupae. I followed a long line of ants loaded with spoils for about forty yards to a dense patch of heath, where I saw the last F. sanguinea come out, carrying a pupa. However, I couldn't find the abandoned nest in the thick heath. The nest had to be nearby because two or three F. fusca were darting around in extreme agitation, and one was sitting still with its own pupa in its mouth on top of a sprig of heath, a picture of despair, over its devastated home.

Such are the facts, though they did not need confirmation by me, in regard to the wonderful instinct of making slaves. Let it be observed what a contrast the instinctive habits of F. sanguinea present with those of the continental F. rufescens. The latter does not build its own nest, does not determine its own migrations, does not collect food for itself or its young, and cannot even feed itself: it is absolutely dependent on its numerous slaves. Formica sanguinea, on the other hand, possesses much fewer slaves, and in the early part of the summer extremely few: the masters determine when and where a new nest shall be formed, and when they migrate, the masters carry the slaves. Both in Switzerland and England the slaves seem to have the exclusive care of the larvæ, and the masters alone go on slave-making expeditions. In Switzerland the slaves and masters work together, making and bringing materials for the nest: both, but chiefly the slaves, tend, and milk as it may be called, their aphides; and thus both collect food for the community. In England the masters alone usually leave the nest to collect building materials and food for themselves, their slaves and larvæ. So that the masters in this country receive much less service from their slaves than they do in Switzerland.

Here are the facts, which didn't need my confirmation, about the incredible instinct for creating slaves. Notice the stark contrast between the instinctive behaviors of F. sanguinea and those of the continental F. rufescens. The latter doesn't build its own nest, doesn't decide its own migrations, doesn't gather food for itself or its young, and can't even feed itself: it is completely reliant on its many slaves. In contrast, Formica sanguinea has far fewer slaves, especially early in the summer. The masters decide when and where a new nest will be built, and when they migrate, the masters carry the slaves. In both Switzerland and England, the slaves appear to take exclusive care of the larvae, while the masters go on slave-making missions. In Switzerland, the slaves and masters collaborate, gathering and bringing materials for the nest: both, but mainly the slaves, tend to and "milk," as it could be called, their aphids; thus, both collect food for the community. In England, the masters typically leave the nest alone to gather building materials and food for themselves, their slaves, and larvae. Therefore, the masters in this country benefit less from their slaves than they do in Switzerland.

By what steps the instinct of F. sanguinea originated I will not pretend to conjecture. But as ants, which are not slave-makers, will, as I have seen, carry off pupæ of other species, if scattered near their nests, it is possible that such pupæ originally stored as food might become developed; and the foreign ants thus unintentionally reared would then follow their proper instincts, and do [224]what work they could. If their presence proved useful to the species which had seized them—if it were more advantageous to this species to capture workers than to procreate them—the habit of collecting pupae originally for food might by natural selection be strengthened and rendered permanent for the very different purpose of raising slaves. When the instinct was once acquired, if carried out to a much less extent even than in our British F. sanguinea, which, as we have seen, is less aided by its slaves than the same species in Switzerland, I can see no difficulty in natural selection increasing and modifying the instinct—always supposing each modification to be of use to the species—until an ant was formed as abjectly dependent on its slaves as is the Formica rufescens.

I won't pretend to guess how F. sanguinea developed its instinct. However, I've seen non-slave-making ants carry off pupae of other species if they are scattered near their nests. It's possible that these pupae, initially stored as food, could develop into ants. The foreign ants raised this way would then follow their natural instincts and do what they could. If their presence turned out to be beneficial for the species that captured them—if it was more advantageous for that species to capture workers instead of producing them—then the habit of collecting pupae originally for food might be strengthened and eventually become permanent for the very different purpose of raising slaves due to natural selection. Once this instinct was established, even if it was practiced to a lesser degree than in our British F. sanguinea—which, as we've noted, relies less on its slaves than the same species in Switzerland—I can see no issue with natural selection enhancing and modifying the instinct—provided each change benefits the species—until an ant becomes as utterly dependent on its slaves as Formica rufescens.

 

Cell-making instinct of the Hive-Bee.—I will not here enter on minute details on this subject, but will merely give an outline of the conclusions at which I have arrived. He must be a dull man who can examine the exquisite structure of a comb, so beautifully adapted to its end, without enthusiastic admiration. We hear from mathematicians that bees have practically solved a recondite problem, and have made their cells of the proper shape to hold the greatest possible amount of honey, with the least possible consumption of precious wax in their construction. It has been remarked that a skilful workman, with fitting tools and measures, would find it very difficult to make cells of wax of the true form, though this is perfectly effected by a crowd of bees working in a dark hive. Grant whatever instincts you please, and it seems at first quite inconceivable how they can make all the necessary angles and planes, or even perceive when they are correctly made. But the difficulty is not [225]nearly so great as it at first appears: all this beautiful work can be shown, I think, to follow from a few very simple instincts.

Cell-making instinct of the Hive-Bee.—I'm not going to go into the finer details on this topic, but I will provide an overview of the conclusions I’ve reached. It would take a dull person to look at the intricate structure of a honeycomb, so perfectly designed for its purpose, without feeling a sense of wonder. Mathematicians tell us that bees have practically solved a complex problem by creating their cells in a shape that maximizes honey storage while minimizing the use of precious wax in building them. It's been noted that even a skilled craftsman, with the right tools and measurements, would find it challenging to create wax cells of the perfect shape, yet a swarm of bees manages to do this flawlessly in a dark hive. No matter how many instincts you attribute to them, it initially seems impossible for these bees to construct the required angles and planes or even recognize when they're made accurately. However, the challenge isn't nearly as substantial as it first seems: all this remarkable work can be shown, I believe, to stem from just a few very basic instincts.

I was led to investigate this subject by Mr. Waterhouse, who has shown that the form of the cell stands in close relation to the presence of adjoining cells; and the following view may, perhaps, be considered only as a modification of his theory. Let us look to the great principle of gradation, and see whether Nature does not reveal to us her method of work. At one end of a short series we have humble-bees, which use their old cocoons to hold honey, sometimes adding to them short tubes of wax, and likewise making separate and very irregular rounded cells of wax. At the other end of the series we have the cells of the hive-bee, placed in a double layer: each cell, as is well known, is an hexagonal prism, with the basal edges of its six sides bevelled so as to fit on to a pyramid, formed of three rhombs. These rhombs have certain angles, and the three which form the pyramidal base of a single cell on one side of the comb, enter into the composition of the bases of three adjoining cells on the opposite side. In the series between the extreme perfection of the cells of the hive-bee and the simplicity of those of the humble-bee, we have the cells of the Mexican Melipona domestica, carefully described and figured by Pierre Huber. The Melipona itself is intermediate in structure between the hive and humble bee, but more nearly related to the latter: it forms a nearly regular waxen comb of cylindrical cells, in which the young are hatched, and, in addition, some large cells of wax for holding honey. These latter cells are nearly spherical and of nearly equal sizes, and are aggregated into an irregular mass. But the important point to notice, is that these cells are always made at that degree of nearness to each other, that they would have [226]intersected or broken into each other, if the spheres had been completed; but this is never permitted, the bees building perfectly flat walls of wax between the spheres which thus tend to intersect. Hence each cell consists of an outer spherical portion and of two, three, or more perfectly flat surfaces, according as the cell adjoins two, three, or more other cells. When one cell comes into contact with three other cells, which, from the spheres being nearly of the same size, is very frequently and necessarily the case, the three flat surfaces are united into a pyramid; and this pyramid, as Huber has remarked, is manifestly a gross imitation of the three-sided pyramidal bases of the cell of the hive-bee. As in the cells of the hive-bee, so here, the three plane surfaces in any one cell necessarily enter into the construction of three adjoining cells. It is obvious that the Melipona saves wax by this manner of building; for the flat walls between the adjoining cells are not double, but are of the same thickness as the outer spherical portions, and yet each flat portion forms a part of two cells.

I was prompted to explore this topic by Mr. Waterhouse, who has demonstrated that the shape of the cell is closely related to the presence of neighboring cells; the following perspective might be viewed as a variation of his theory. Let’s consider the key principle of gradation and see if Nature doesn’t reveal her methods to us. At one end of a short series, we have humble-bees, which use their old cocoons to store honey, sometimes adding short wax tubes and creating separate, very irregular rounded wax cells. At the other end of the series, we have the cells of the hive-bee, arranged in a double layer: each cell, as is well known, is a hexagonal prism, with the bottom edges of its six sides beveled to fit onto a pyramid made of three rhombs. These rhombs have specific angles, and the three that form the base of a single cell on one side of the comb contribute to the bases of three adjacent cells on the opposite side. In the series between the perfect cells of the hive-bee and the simplicity of those of the humble-bee, we encounter the cells of the Mexican Melipona domestica, thoroughly described and illustrated by Pierre Huber. The Melipona itself has a structure that sits between the hive and humble bees but is more closely related to the latter: it creates a nearly regular wax comb of cylindrical cells, where the young are hatched, along with some large wax cells for storing honey. These additional cells are almost spherical and of similar sizes, grouped together in an irregular mass. However, the key point to note is that these cells are always constructed at such a proximity to one another that they would intersect or overlap if the spheres were completed; but this is never allowed, as the bees build perfectly flat wax walls between the spheres that tend to intersect. Therefore, each cell consists of an outer spherical section and two, three, or more perfectly flat surfaces, depending on how many other cells it is adjacent to. When one cell comes into contact with three other cells—which is often the case due to the nearly identical sizes of the spheres—the three flat surfaces come together to form a pyramid; and this pyramid, as Huber noted, is clearly a crude imitation of the three-sided pyramidal bases of the hive-bee’s cells. Just like in the cells of the hive-bee, here too, the three flat surfaces in any one cell are integral to the structure of three neighboring cells. It’s clear that the Melipona conserves wax by this way of building; the flat walls between adjacent cells aren’t double, but have the same thickness as the outer spherical sections, and still, each flat section is part of two cells.

Reflecting on this case, it occurred to me that if the Melipona had made its spheres at some given distance from each other, and had made them of equal sizes and had arranged them symmetrically in a double layer, the resulting structure would probably have been as perfect as the comb of the hive-bee. Accordingly I wrote to Professor Miller, of Cambridge, and this geometer has kindly read over the following statement, drawn up from his information, and tells me that it is strictly correct:—

Reflecting on this case, I realized that if the Melipona had created its spheres at a specific distance apart, had made them all the same size, and had arranged them symmetrically in two layers, the resulting structure would likely have been as perfect as a honeybee's comb. So, I wrote to Professor Miller at Cambridge, and he kindly reviewed the following statement based on his insights and confirmed that it is absolutely accurate:—

If a number of equal spheres be described with their centres placed in two parallel layers; with the centre of each sphere at the distance of radius × √2, or radius × 1.41421 (or at some lesser distance), from the centres of the six surrounding spheres in the same [227]layer; and at the same distance from the centres of the adjoining spheres in the other and parallel layer; then, if planes of intersection between the several spheres in both layers be formed, there will result a double layer of hexagonal prisms united together by pyramidal bases formed of three rhombs; and the rhombs and the sides of the hexagonal prisms will have every angle identically the same with the best measurements which have been made of the cells of the hive-bee.

If you arrange several equal spheres with their centers in two parallel layers, with the center of each sphere positioned at a distance of radius × √2, or radius × 1.41421 (or at a shorter distance), from the centers of the six surrounding spheres in the same layer; and at the same distance from the centers of the adjacent spheres in the other parallel layer; then, when planes of intersection between the various spheres in both layers are created, you will end up with a double layer of hexagonal prisms connected by pyramidal bases made of three rhombs. The rhombs and the sides of the hexagonal prisms will have every angle exactly the same as the most accurate measurements taken of the cells of a honeybee's hive.

Hence we may safely conclude that if we could slightly modify the instincts already possessed by the Melipona, and in themselves not very wonderful, this bee would make a structure as wonderfully perfect as that of the hive-bee. We must suppose the Melipona to make her cells truly spherical, and of equal sizes; and this would not be very surprising, seeing that she already does so to a certain extent, and seeing what perfectly cylindrical burrows in wood many insects can make, apparently by turning round on a fixed point. We must suppose the Melipona to arrange her cells in level layers, as she already does her cylindrical cells; and we must further suppose, and this is the greatest difficulty, that she can somehow judge accurately at what distance to stand from her fellow-labourers when several are making their spheres; but she is already so far enabled to judge of distance, that she always describes her spheres so as to intersect largely; and then she unites the points of intersection by perfectly flat surfaces. We have further to suppose, but this is no difficulty, that after hexagonal prisms have been formed by the intersection of adjoining spheres in the same layer, she can prolong the hexagon to any length requisite to hold the stock of honey; in the same way as the rude humble-bee adds cylinders of wax to the circular mouths of her old cocoons. By such [228]modifications of instincts in themselves not very wonderful,—hardly more wonderful than those which guide a bird to make its nest,—I believe that the hive-bee has acquired, through natural selection, her inimitable architectural powers.

Thus, we can confidently say that if we could tweak some of the instincts already found in the Melipona, which aren't particularly impressive on their own, this bee could build a structure as remarkably perfect as that of the hive-bee. We should assume the Melipona makes her cells truly spherical and of equal sizes; this isn’t too surprising since she already does this to some extent, and many insects can create perfectly cylindrical tunnels in wood, seemingly by rotating around a fixed point. We also have to assume that the Melipona arranges her cells in level layers, just like she does with her cylindrical cells; and the biggest challenge is to suppose that she can somehow accurately gauge how far to stand from her fellow workers when several are creating their spheres. However, she is already able to judge distance well enough to ensure her spheres intersect significantly; then she connects the intersection points with perfectly flat surfaces. We also need to assume, but this is not difficult, that after hexagonal prisms are formed by the intersection of adjacent spheres in the same layer, she can extend the hexagon to whatever length is needed to hold the honey supply, much like how the simple humble-bee adds wax cylinders to the circular openings of her old cocoons. Through such [228]modifications of instincts that aren’t particularly remarkable—hardly more extraordinary than the instincts that guide a bird in making its nest—I believe that the hive-bee has developed, through natural selection, her unique architectural skills.

But this theory can be tested by experiment. Following the example of Mr. Tegetmeier, I separated two combs, and put between them a long, thick, square strip of wax: the bees instantly began to excavate minute circular pits in it; and as they deepened these little pits, they made them wider and wider until they were converted into shallow basins, appearing to the eye perfectly true or parts of a sphere, and of about the diameter of a cell. It was most interesting to me to observe that wherever several bees had begun to excavate these basins near together, they had begun their work at such a distance from each other, that by the time the basins had acquired the above stated width (i.e. about the width of an ordinary cell), and were in depth about one sixth of the diameter of the sphere of which they formed a part, the rims of the basins intersected or broke into each other. As soon as this occurred, the bees ceased to excavate, and began to build up flat walls of wax on the lines of intersection between the basins, so that each hexagonal prism was built upon the scalloped edge of a smooth basin, instead of on the straight edges of a three-sided pyramid as in the case of ordinary cells.

But this theory can be tested through experimentation. Taking a cue from Mr. Tegetmeier, I separated two combs and placed a long, thick, square strip of wax between them: the bees immediately began to carve out tiny circular pits in it; and as they deepened these small pits, they made them wider and wider until they turned into shallow basins, appearing perfectly spherical and about the size of a cell. It was fascinating to see that whenever several bees started to excavate these basins close to each other, they began their work spaced such that by the time the basins reached the stated width (i.e., about the width of a typical cell) and were about one-sixth the depth of the diameter of the sphere they were part of, the rims of the basins intersected or merged. As soon as this happened, the bees stopped excavating and started building flat wax walls along the lines where the basins intersected, so that each hexagonal prism was built on the scalloped edge of a smooth basin, rather than on the straight edges of a three-sided pyramid like in the case of ordinary cells.

I then put into the hive, instead of a thick, square piece of wax, a thin and narrow, knife-edged ridge, coloured with vermilion. The bees instantly began on both sides to excavate little basins near to each other, in the same way as before; but the ridge of wax was so thin, that the bottoms of the basins, if they had been excavated to the same depth as in the former [229]experiment, would have broken into each other from the opposite sides. The bees, however, did not suffer this to happen, and they stopped their excavations in due time; so that the basins, as soon as they had been a little deepened, came to have flat bottoms; and these flat bottoms, formed by thin little plates of the vermilion wax having been left ungnawed, were situated, as far as the eye could judge, exactly along the planes of imaginary intersection between the basins on the opposite sides of the ridge of wax. In parts, only little bits, in other parts, large portions of a rhombic plate had been left between the opposed basins, but the work, from the unnatural state of things, had not been neatly performed. The bees must have worked at very nearly the same rate on the opposite sides of the ridge of vermilion wax, as they circularly gnawed away and deepened the basins on both sides, in order to have succeeded in thus leaving flat plates between the basins, by stopping work along the intermediate planes or planes of intersection.

I then placed in the hive, instead of a thick, square piece of wax, a thin and narrow, knife-edged ridge, colored with bright red. The bees immediately started to dig little basins on both sides, just like before; however, the wax ridge was so thin that if the basins had been dug to the same depth as in the previous experiment, they would have broken through into each other from opposite sides. The bees, though, prevented this from happening and stopped their digging in time, so that once the basins were a bit deeper, they ended up with flat bottoms. These flat bottoms, created by thin little plates of the red wax that had been left unchewed, were positioned, as far as the eye could tell, exactly along the imaginary intersection lines between the basins on either side of the wax ridge. In some areas, only small bits, while in others, larger sections of a rhombic plate were left between the opposing basins, but the work, due to the unusual circumstances, wasn’t done neatly. The bees must have worked at nearly the same pace on both sides of the red wax ridge, as they continuously gnawed away and deepened the basins on either side, which allowed them to leave flat plates between the basins by stopping their work along the middle planes or points of intersection.

Considering how flexible thin wax is, I do not see that there is any difficulty in the bees, whilst at work on the two sides of a strip of wax, perceiving when they have gnawed the wax away to the proper thinness, and then stopping their work. In ordinary combs it has appeared to me that the bees do not always succeed in working at exactly the same rate from the opposite sides; for I have noticed half-completed rhombs at the base of a just-commenced cell, which were slightly concave on one side, where I suppose that the bees had excavated too quickly, and convex on the opposed side, where the bees had worked less quickly. In one well-marked instance, I put the comb back into the hive, and allowed the bees to go on working for a short time, and again examined the cell, and I found that the rhombic [230]plate had been completed, and had become perfectly flat: it was absolutely impossible, from the extreme thinness of the little rhombic plate, that they could have effected this by gnawing away the convex side; and I suspect that the bees in such cases stand in the opposed cells and push and bend the ductile and warm wax (which as I have tried is easily done) into its proper intermediate plane, and thus flatten it.

Given how flexible thin wax is, I don't think the bees have any trouble realizing when they've chewed down the wax to the right thinness while working on both sides of a strip. With normal combs, it seems to me that bees don’t always work at the same pace from opposite sides. I've seen half-finished rhombuses at the base of a newly started cell; one side was slightly concave, probably because the bees had excavated too quickly, while the other side was convex, indicating the bees had worked at a slower pace. In one clear case, I put the comb back in the hive and let the bees continue working for a bit. When I checked the cell again, I found that the rhombic [230]plate had been completed and had become perfectly flat: it seemed impossible that they could have achieved this by just gnawing away the convex side, given how thin the small rhombic plate was. I suspect that in such situations, the bees stand in the opposing cells and push and bend the soft, warm wax (which I've tested is easy to do) into the right flat shape, thus flattening it out.

From the experiment of the ridge of vermilion wax, we can clearly see that if the bees were to build for themselves a thin wall of wax, they could make their cells of the proper shape, by standing at the proper distance from each other, by excavating at the same rate, and by endeavouring to make equal spherical hollows, but never allowing the spheres to break into each other. Now bees, as may be clearly seen by examining the edge of a growing comb, do make a rough, circumferential wall or rim all round the comb; and they gnaw into this from the opposite sides, always working circularly as they deepen each cell. They do not make the whole three-sided pyramidal base of any one cell at the same time, but only the one rhombic plate which stands on the extreme growing margin, or the two plates, as the case may be; and they never complete the upper edges of the rhombic plates, until the hexagonal walls are commenced. Some of these statements differ from those made by the justly celebrated elder Huber, but I am convinced of their accuracy; and if I had space, I could show that they are conformable with my theory.

From the experiment with the ridge of vermilion wax, it’s clear that if bees were to create a thin wall of wax for themselves, they could shape their cells correctly by standing at the right distance from each other, excavating at the same pace, and attempting to create equal spherical cavities while ensuring the spheres don’t merge. As you can see by looking at the edge of a growing comb, bees do indeed form a rough, circular wall or rim around the comb; they gnaw into this from opposite sides, always working in a circular motion as they deepen each cell. They don’t build the entire three-sided pyramidal base of a single cell all at once but rather just the one rhombic plate that sits on the very outer edge or the two plates, depending on the situation; they never finish the upper edges of the rhombic plates until they start the hexagonal walls. Some of these points differ from what the well-respected older Huber stated, but I’m convinced they’re accurate; and if I had more space, I could demonstrate how they align with my theory.

Huber's statement that the very first cell is excavated out of a little parallel-sided wall of wax, is not, as far as I have seen, strictly correct; the first commencement having always been a little hood of wax; but I will not here enter on these details. We see how important [231]a part excavation plays in the construction of the cells; but it would be a great error to suppose that the bees cannot build up a rough wall of wax in the proper position—that is, along the plane of intersection between two adjoining spheres. I have several specimens showing clearly that they can do this. Even in the rude circumferential rim or wall of wax round a growing comb, flexures may sometimes be observed, corresponding in position to the planes of the rhombic basal plates of future cells. But the rough wall of wax has in every case to be finished off, by being largely gnawed away on both sides. The manner in which the bees build is curious; they always make the first rough wall from ten to twenty times thicker than the excessively thin finished wall of the cell, which will ultimately be left. We shall understand how they work, by supposing masons first to pile up a broad ridge of cement, and then to begin cutting it away equally on both sides near the ground, till a smooth, very thin wall is left in the middle; the masons always piling up the cut-away cement, and adding fresh cement, on the summit of the ridge. We shall thus have a thin wall steadily growing upward; but always crowned by a gigantic coping. From all the cells, both those just commenced and those completed, being thus crowned by a strong coping of wax, the bees can cluster and crawl over the comb without injuring the delicate hexagonal walls, which are only about one four-hundredth of an inch in thickness; the plates of the pyramidal basis being about twice as thick. By this singular manner of building, strength is continually given to the comb, with the utmost ultimate economy of wax.

Huber's claim that the very first cell is carved out of a straight wall of wax isn't entirely accurate, as I've observed. The initial structure has always started as a little dome of wax, but I won’t get into those details here. It's clear how crucial excavation is in building the cells; however, it’s a mistake to think that bees can’t create a rough wall of wax in the correct position—meaning along the line where two neighboring spheres meet. I have several examples that clearly show they can do this. Even in the rough outer edge or wall of wax surrounding a growing comb, you can sometimes see bends that align with the positions of the rhombic base plates of future cells. But this rough wall of wax always needs to be finished off by being significantly gnawed away from both sides. The way bees build is interesting; they always start by making the rough wall ten to twenty times thicker than the very thin finished wall of the cell that will eventually remain. To understand their method, imagine masons first piling up a thick ridge of cement, and then gradually cutting it away evenly on both sides near the bottom until a smooth, very thin wall is left in the center; the masons would continually pile up the removed cement and add fresh cement on top of the ridge. This creates a thin wall that grows upward steadily, always topped by a massive coping. Because all the cells, both those that are just starting and those that are completed, are topped with a strong layer of wax, the bees can cluster and move over the comb without damaging the delicate hexagonal walls, which are only about one four-hundredth of an inch thick; the plates of the pyramidal base are about twice that thickness. This unique building method continuously strengthens the comb while using the wax as efficiently as possible.

It seems at first to add to the difficulty of understanding how the cells are made, that a multitude of bees all work together; one bee after working a short time at one cell going to another, so that, as Huber has stated, [232]a score of individuals work even at the commencement of the first cell. I was able practically to show this fact, by covering the edges of the hexagonal walls of a single cell, or the extreme margin of the circumferential rim of a growing comb, with an extremely thin layer of melted vermilion wax; and I invariably found that the colour was most delicately diffused by the bees—as delicately as a painter could have done with his brush—by atoms of the coloured wax having been taken from the spot on which it had been placed, and worked into the growing edges of the cells all round. The work of construction seems to be a sort of balance struck between many bees, all instinctively standing at the same relative distance from each other, all trying to sweep equal spheres, and then building up, or leaving ungnawed, the planes of intersection between these spheres. It was really curious to note in cases of difficulty, as when two pieces of comb met at an angle, how often the bees would pull down and rebuild in different ways the same cell, sometimes recurring to a shape which they had at first rejected.

At first, it seems to make it harder to understand how the cells are made because a lot of bees work together. One bee will work for a while on one cell and then move to another, so, as Huber pointed out, [232] a number of bees can start working on the very first cell. I was able to demonstrate this by covering the edges of the hexagonal walls of a single cell, or the outer edge of a growing comb, with a super thin layer of melted red wax. I consistently found that the color was spread very delicately by the bees—almost as finely as a painter would with a brush—because tiny bits of the colored wax were taken from where I'd placed it and worked into the edges of the cells all around. The construction process seems to be a kind of balance among many bees, all instinctively maintaining the same distance from each other, all trying to create equal-sized spheres, and then building up or leaving untouched the planes where these spheres intersect. It was quite interesting to see in challenging situations, like when two pieces of comb met at an angle, how often the bees would tear down and rebuild the same cell in different ways, sometimes going back to a shape they initially discarded.

When bees have a place on which they can stand in their proper positions for working,—for instance, on a slip of wood, placed directly under the middle of a comb growing downwards so that the comb has to be built over one face of the slip—in this case the bees can lay the foundations of one wall of a new hexagon, in its strictly proper place, projecting beyond the other completed cells. It suffices that the bees should be enabled to stand at their proper relative distances from each other and from the walls of the last completed cells, and then, by striking imaginary spheres, they can build up a wall intermediate between two adjoining spheres; but, as far as I have seen, they never gnaw away and finish off the angles of a cell till a large part both of that cell and of [233]the adjoining cells has been built. This capacity in bees of laying down under certain circumstances a rough wall in its proper place between two just-commenced cells, is important, as it bears on a fact, which seems at first quite subversive of the foregoing theory; namely, that the cells on the extreme margin of wasp-combs are sometimes strictly hexagonal; but I have not space here to enter on this subject. Nor does there seem to me any great difficulty in a single insect (as in the case of a queen-wasp) making hexagonal cells, if she work alternately on the inside and outside of two or three cells commenced at the same time, always standing at the proper relative distance from the parts of the cells just begun, sweeping spheres or cylinders, and building up intermediate planes. It is even conceivable that an insect might, by fixing on a point at which to commence a cell, and then moving outside, first to one point, and then to five other points, at the proper relative distances from the central point and from each other, strike the planes of intersection, and so make an isolated hexagon: but I am not aware that any such case has been observed; nor would any good be derived from a single hexagon being built, as in its construction more materials would be required than for a cylinder.

When bees have a surface where they can stand in the right positions to work—like a piece of wood placed directly under the center of a comb growing downwards, so that the comb has to be built over one side of the wood—the bees can lay the foundations for one wall of a new hexagon in its correct spot, sticking out farther than the other completed cells. All the bees need is to be able to stand at the right distances from each other and from the walls of the completed cells; then, by imagining spheres, they can build a wall between two adjacent spheres. However, from what I’ve seen, they never chew away and finish off the corners of a cell until a significant part of that cell and the adjacent cells has been built. This ability of bees to lay down a rough wall in the right position between two newly started cells is important because it relates to a fact that initially seems to challenge the previous theory: the cells on the outer edges of wasp combs are sometimes perfectly hexagonal. But I don't have the space to discuss this topic here. I also don’t think there’s much difficulty in a single insect (like a queen wasp) creating hexagonal cells if she works alternately on the inside and outside of two or three cells started at the same time, always maintaining the proper distance from the parts of the newly begun cells, sweeping out spheres or cylinders, and building up intermediate planes. It’s even possible that an insect could start a cell at one point, then move outward to one point, and then to five other points at the correct relative distances, striking the planes of intersection to create an isolated hexagon. However, I’m not aware of any such instance being observed, and it wouldn’t be practical for a single hexagon to be built since it would require more materials than a cylinder.

As natural selection acts only by the accumulation of slight modifications of structure or instinct, each profitable to the individual under its conditions of life, it may reasonably be asked, how a long and graduated succession of modified architectural instincts, all tending towards the present perfect plan of construction, could have profited the progenitors of the hive-bee? I think the answer is not difficult: it is known that bees are often hard pressed to get sufficient nectar; and I am informed by Mr. Tegetmeier that it has been experimentally found that no less than from twelve to fifteen pounds of dry sugar [234]are consumed by a hive of bees for the secretion of each pound of wax; to that a prodigious quantity of fluid nectar must be collected and consumed by the bees in a hive for the secretion of the wax necessary for the construction of their combs. Moreover, many bees have to remain idle for many days during the process of secretion. A large store of honey is indispensable to support a large stock of bees during the winter; and the security of the hive is known mainly to depend on a large number of bees being supported. Hence the saving of wax by largely saving honey must be a most important element of success in any family of bees. Of course the success of any species of bee may be dependent on the number of its parasites or other enemies, or on quite distinct causes, and so be altogether independent of the quantity of honey which the bees could collect. But let us suppose that this latter circumstance determined, as it probably often does determine, the numbers of a humble-bee which could exist in a country; and let us further suppose that the community lived throughout the winter, and consequently required a store of honey: there can in this case be no doubt that it would be an advantage to our humble-bee, if a slight modification of her instinct led her to make her waxen cells near together, so as to intersect a little; for a wall in common even to two adjoining cells, would save some little wax. Hence it would continually be more and more advantageous to our humble-bee, if she were to make her cells more and more regular, nearer together, and aggregated into a mass, like the cells of the Melipona; for in this case a large part of the bounding surface of each cell would serve to bound other cells, and much wax would be saved. Again, from the same cause, it would be advantageous to the Melipona, if she were to make her cells closer together, and more regular in every way [235]than at present; for then, as we have seen, the spherical surfaces would wholly disappear, and would all be replaced by plane surfaces; and the Melipona would make a comb as perfect as that of the hive-bee. Beyond this stage of perfection in architecture, natural selection could not lead; for the comb of the hive-bee, as far as we can see, is absolutely perfect in economising wax.

As natural selection works through the gradual accumulation of small changes in structure or behavior that benefit individuals in their specific environments, it’s reasonable to question how a long and progressive series of modified building instincts could have benefited the ancestors of the hive-bee. The answer is not too complicated: bees often struggle to gather enough nectar. Mr. Tegetmeier has shared that research shows a hive of bees consumes between twelve to fifteen pounds of dry sugar to produce just one pound of wax. This requires a huge amount of liquid nectar to be collected and used by the bees in the hive for making the wax needed for constructing their combs. Additionally, many bees can be inactive for several days during the wax production process. A substantial amount of honey is crucial to keep a large group of bees alive during winter, and the hive's survival largely relies on a healthy population of bees. Therefore, saving wax by efficiently gathering honey must be a key factor in the success of any bee colony. While the success of a bee species can also depend on the number of parasites or predators, or other different factors, and thus may not be directly related to the amount of honey they can collect, let’s assume the amount of honey is indeed a determining factor for how many bumblebees can survive in an area. If we also assume this community lives through the winter and needs a honey supply, it’s clear that it would benefit the bumblebee if a slight change in her instinct made her build her wax cells closer together so they might share walls; this would save some wax. Consequently, it would become increasingly advantageous for the bumblebee to build her cells more regularly, closer together, and grouped into one mass, like the cells of the Melipona. In this case, a large portion of the surface area of each cell would also become the boundary for adjoining cells, thus saving more wax. Similarly, for the Melipona, it would be beneficial to make her cells closer together and more uniformly shaped than they currently are, as this would eliminate spherical surfaces entirely, replacing them with flat surfaces, resulting in a comb as efficient as that of the hive-bee. Beyond this level of architectural perfection, natural selection couldn’t advance further, because the hive-bee’s comb, as far as we can tell, is absolutely perfect in terms of wax efficiency.

Thus, as I believe, the most wonderful of all known instincts, that of the hive-bee, can be explained by natural selection having taken advantage of numerous, successive, slight modifications of simpler instincts; natural selection having by slow degrees, more and more perfectly, led the bees to sweep equal spheres at a given distance from each other in a double layer, and to build up and excavate the wax along the planes of intersection. The bees, of course, no more knowing that they swept their spheres at one particular distance from each other, than they know what are the several angles of the hexagonal prisms and of the basal rhombic plates. The motive power of the process of natural selection having been economy of wax; that individual swarm which wasted least honey in the secretion of wax, having succeeded best, and having transmitted by inheritance its newly acquired economical instinct to new swarms, which in their turn will have had the best chance of succeeding in the struggle for existence.

So, in my opinion, one of the most incredible instincts we know of, that of the hive-bee, can be understood through natural selection taking advantage of many small, successive changes in simpler instincts. Over time, natural selection has guided bees to maintain equal distances from one another in double layers and to shape and build the wax where these layers intersect. The bees, of course, don't realize they are keeping a specific distance from each other, just as they don’t understand the different angles of the hexagonal prisms and the base rhombic plates. The driving force behind natural selection in this case has been the conservation of wax; the bee swarm that wasted the least honey while producing wax thrived the most, passing down its newfound efficient instinct to the next generations, which in turn had the best chance of surviving in the fight for existence.

 

No doubt many instincts of very difficult explanation could be opposed to the theory of natural selection,—cases, in which we cannot see how an instinct could possibly have originated; cases, in which no intermediate gradations are known to exist; cases of instinct of apparently such trifling importance, that they could [236]hardly have been acted on by natural selection; cases of instincts almost identically the same in animals so remote in the scale of nature, that we cannot account for their similarity by inheritance from a common parent, and must therefore believe that they have been acquired by independent acts of natural selection. I will not here enter on these several cases, but will confine myself to one special difficulty, which at first appeared to me insuperable, and actually fatal to my whole theory. I allude to the neuters or sterile females in insect-communities: for these neuters often differ widely in instinct and in structure from both the males and fertile females, and yet, from being sterile, they cannot propagate their kind.

There are definitely many instincts that are hard to explain, which challenge the theory of natural selection. These include cases where we can’t figure out how an instinct could have developed, instances where no intermediate forms seem to exist, cases involving instincts that appear so unimportant that they couldn’t have been influenced by natural selection, and instincts that are nearly identical in creatures that are far apart on the evolutionary tree. We can’t explain their similarities through inheritance from a common ancestor, so we have to assume they were gained through separate instances of natural selection. I'm not going to discuss all these different cases here, but I want to focus on one particular issue that initially seemed impossible to solve and really undermined my entire theory. I'm referring to the neuters or sterile females in insect societies. These neuters often have instincts and structures that are significantly different from both the males and the fertile females, and since they are sterile, they cannot reproduce.

The subject well deserves to be discussed at great length, but I will here take only a single case, that of working or sterile ants. How the workers have been rendered sterile is a difficulty; but not much greater than that of any other striking modification of structure; for it can be shown that some insects and other articulate animals in a state of nature occasionally become sterile; and if such insects had been social, and it had been profitable to the community that a number should have been annually born capable of work, but incapable of procreation, I can see no very great difficulty in this being effected by natural selection. But I must pass over this preliminary difficulty. The great difficulty lies in the working ants differing widely from both the males and the fertile females in structure, as in the shape of the thorax and in being destitute of wings and sometimes of eyes, and in instinct. As far as instinct alone is concerned, the prodigious difference in this respect between the workers and the perfect females, would have been far better exemplified by the hive-bee. If a working ant or other neuter insect had been an animal [237]in the ordinary state, I should have unhesitatingly assumed that all its characters had been slowly acquired through natural selection; namely, by an individual having been born with some slight profitable modification of structure, this being inherited by its offspring, which again varied and were again selected, and so onwards. But with the working ant we have an insect differing greatly from its parents, yet absolutely sterile; so that it could never have transmitted successively acquired modifications of structure or instinct to its progeny. It may well be asked how is it possible to reconcile this case with the theory of natural selection?

The topic definitely deserves extensive discussion, but I’ll focus on just one example: working or sterile ants. There’s a question about how the workers became sterile, but it’s not much more complicated than any other significant change in structure. It can be shown that some insects and other arthropods in the wild can sometimes become sterile. If those insects were social, and it was beneficial for the group to have some individuals born each year who could work but couldn’t reproduce, I can see no major obstacle to this happening through natural selection. However, I’ll skip over that initial issue. The real challenge is that working ants differ significantly in structure from both males and fertile females, like in the shape of their thorax, and they often lack wings and sometimes even eyes, as well as in their instincts. Regarding instincts alone, the huge differences between the workers and the perfect females would be better illustrated by the hive bee. If a working ant or any other neuter insect existed normally, I would have confidently assumed that all its characteristics were slowly developed through natural selection—meaning, an individual was born with a small beneficial modification that was inherited by its offspring, which again varied and were chosen, and so on. But in the case of the working ant, we have an insect that is very different from its parents yet completely sterile; thus, it could never pass on any modifications of structure or instincts acquired over generations. One might wonder how this situation can be explained through the theory of natural selection.

First, let it be remembered that we have innumerable instances, both in our domestic productions and in those in a state of nature, of all sorts of differences of structure which have become correlated to certain ages, and to either sex. We have differences correlated not only to one sex, but to that short period alone when the reproductive system is active, as in the nuptial plumage of many birds, and in the hooked jaws of the male salmon. We have even slight differences in the horns of different breeds of cattle in relation to an artificially imperfect state of the male sex; for oxen of certain breeds have longer horns than in other breeds, in comparison with the horns of the bulls or cows of these same breeds. Hence I can see no real difficulty in any character having become correlated with the sterile condition of certain members of insect-communities: the difficulty lies in understanding how such correlated modifications of structure could have been slowly accumulated by natural selection.

First, let’s remember that we have countless examples, both in what we produce and in nature, of all kinds of structural differences that are linked to specific ages and to either sex. We see differences tied not just to one sex, but also to the brief period when the reproductive system is active, as seen in the breeding plumage of many birds and the hooked jaws of male salmon. There are even slight differences in the horns of various cattle breeds related to an artificially imperfect state of the male sex; for example, oxen from certain breeds have longer horns compared to the horns of bulls or cows from those same breeds. Therefore, I see no real challenge in a trait becoming linked to the sterile condition of certain members of insect communities; the challenge is understanding how these linked structural modifications could have been gradually developed through natural selection.

This difficulty, though appearing insuperable, is lessened, or, as I believe, disappears, when it is remembered that selection may be applied to the family, as well as to the individual, and may thus gain the [238]desired end. Thus, a well-flavoured vegetable is cooked, and the individual is destroyed; but the horticulturist sows seeds of the same stock, and confidently expects to get nearly the same variety: breeders of cattle wish the flesh and fat to be well marbled together; the animal has been slaughtered, but the breeder goes with confidence to the same family. I have such faith in the powers of selection, that I do not doubt that a breed of cattle, always yielding oxen with extraordinarily long horns, could be slowly formed by carefully watching which individual bulls and cows, when matched, produced oxen with the longest horns; and yet no one ox could ever have propagated its kind. Thus I believe it has been with social insects: a slight modification of structure, or instinct, correlated with the sterile condition of certain members of the community, has been advantageous to the community: consequently the fertile males and females of the same community flourished, and transmitted to their fertile offspring a tendency to produce sterile members having the same modification. And I believe that this process has been repeated, until that prodigious amount of difference between the fertile and sterile females of the same species has been produced, which we see in many social insects.

This challenge, while seeming impossible, is reduced, or, as I think, vanishes, when we remember that selection can apply to families as well as individuals, thus achieving the [238]desired outcome. For example, a tasty vegetable gets cooked, and the individual is gone; however, the gardener plants seeds from the same variety, expecting to get a similar crop. Cattle breeders want the meat and fat to be well marbled; the animal has been slaughtered, but the breeder confidently returns to the same lineage. I have such trust in the power of selection that I believe a breed of cattle could eventually be developed to always produce oxen with exceptionally long horns by carefully observing which individual bulls and cows, when bred together, yielded the longest-horned offspring; yet no single ox would ever be able to reproduce on its own. I think this is similar for social insects: a minor change in structure or instinct, linked to the sterile condition of some members of the colony, has benefited the group; as a result, the fertile males and females thrived and passed on a tendency to produce sterile members with that same change. I believe this process has occurred repeatedly, leading to the significant differences we observe between the fertile and sterile females of the same species in many social insects.

But we have not as yet touched on the climax of the difficulty; namely, the fact that the neuters of several ants differ, not only from the fertile females and males, but from each other, sometimes to an almost incredible degree, and are thus divided into two or even three castes. The castes, moreover, do not generally graduate into each other, but are perfectly well defined; being as distinct from each other, as are any two species of the same genus, or rather as any two genera of the same family. Thus in Eciton, there are working and soldier neuters, with jaws and instincts extraordinarily [239]different: in Cryptocerus, the workers of one caste alone carry a wonderful sort of shield on their heads, the use of which is quite unknown: in the Mexican Myrmecocystus, the workers of one caste never leave the nest; they are fed by the workers of another caste, and they have an enormously developed abdomen which secretes a sort of honey, supplying the place of that excreted by the aphides, or the domestic cattle as they may be called, which our European ants guard or imprison.

But we haven't yet addressed the main challenge; specifically, the fact that the neuters of several ant species differ not only from the fertile females and males but also from each other, sometimes to an astonishing degree, and are thus divided into two or even three castes. Moreover, these castes generally don’t blend into each other but are clearly defined; they are as distinct from one another as any two species within the same genus, or rather like any two genera within the same family. For instance, in Eciton, there are worker and soldier neuters, each with very different jaws and instincts: in Cryptocerus, the workers of one caste uniquely carry a remarkable type of shield on their heads, the purpose of which is completely unknown: in the Mexican Myrmecocystus, the workers of one caste never leave the nest; they are fed by workers of another caste, and they have an vastly enlarged abdomen that secretes a type of honey, which takes the place of what is produced by aphids, or the "domestic cattle," as they might be called, that our European ants protect or keep captive.

It will indeed be thought that I have an overweening confidence in the principle of natural selection, when I do not admit that such wonderful and well-established facts at once annihilate my theory. In the simpler case of neuter insects all of one caste or of the same kind, which have been rendered by natural selection, as I believe to be quite possible, different from the fertile males and females,—in this case, we may safely conclude from the analogy of ordinary variations, that each successive, slight, profitable modification did not probably at first appear in all the individual neuters in the same nest, but in a few alone; and that by the long-continued selection of the fertile parents which produced most neuters with the profitable modification, all the neuters ultimately came to have the desired character. On this view we ought occasionally to find neuter-insects of the same species, in the same nest, presenting gradations of structure; and this we do find, even often, considering how few neuter-insects out of Europe have been carefully examined. Mr. F. Smith has shown how surprisingly the neuters of several British ants differ from each other in size and sometimes in colour; and that the extreme forms can sometimes be perfectly linked together by individuals taken out of the same nest: I have myself compared perfect gradations of this kind. It often happens that the larger or the smaller sized workers [240]are the most numerous; or that both large and small are numerous, with those of an intermediate size scanty in numbers. Formica flava has larger and smaller workers, with some of intermediate size; and, in this species, as Mr. F. Smith has observed, the larger workers have simple eyes (ocelli), which though small can be plainly distinguished, whereas the smaller workers have their ocelli rudimentary. Having carefully dissected several specimens of these workers, I can affirm that the eyes are far more rudimentary in the smaller workers than can be accounted for merely by their proportionally lesser size; and I fully believe, though I dare not assert so positively, that the workers of intermediate size have their ocelli in an exactly intermediate condition. So that we here have two bodies of sterile workers in the same nest, differing not only in size, but in their organs of vision, yet connected by some few members in an intermediate condition. I may digress by adding, that if the smaller workers had been the most useful to the community, and those males and females had been continually selected, which produced more and more of the smaller workers, until all the workers had come to be in this condition; we should then have had a species of ant with neuters very nearly in the same condition with those of Myrmica. For the workers of Myrmica have not even rudiments of ocelli, though the male and female ants of this genus have well-developed ocelli.

It might seem like I have too much confidence in the principle of natural selection if I don't acknowledge that such amazing and well-established facts could completely disprove my theory. In simpler cases of neuter insects all belonging to one caste or type, which I believe could have been shaped by natural selection, different from the fertile males and females—here, we can safely conclude based on ordinary variations that each small, beneficial change likely did not first appear in all the individual neuters in the same nest, but in just a few. Over time, through the continued selection of fertile parents that produced the most neuters with the beneficial change, all the neuters eventually developed the desired traits. From this perspective, we should sometimes find neuter insects of the same species within the same nest showing different structural forms; and we do find this, often considering how few neuter insects outside of Europe have been thoroughly studied. Mr. F. Smith has shown how surprisingly the neuters of several British ants differ significantly in size and sometimes in color; and the extreme forms can often be perfectly linked by individuals from the same nest: I have personally examined perfect gradations of this sort. It often occurs that either the larger or smaller workers are the most numerous; or both large and small are plentiful, while those of intermediate size are sparse. Formica flava has larger and smaller workers, along with some of intermediate size; and, as Mr. F. Smith noted, the larger workers have simple eyes (ocelli), which, though small, can be clearly distinguished, while the smaller workers have rudimentary ocelli. After carefully dissecting several specimens of these workers, I can affirm that the eyes are much more rudimentary in the smaller workers than can be explained by their relatively smaller size; and I truly believe, though I can't assert it too confidently, that the workers of intermediate size have ocelli in a precisely intermediate state. So here we have two groups of sterile workers in the same nest, differing not just in size but also in their visual organs, yet linked by a few members in an intermediate state. I might add, if the smaller workers had been the most beneficial to the community, and males and females were continually selected that produced more of the smaller workers until all the workers reached this condition, we would have ended up with a species of ant where the neuters were very similar to those of Myrmica. The workers of Myrmica do not even have rudiments of ocelli, even though the male and female ants of this genus have well-developed ocelli.

I may give one other case: so confidently did I expect to find gradations in important points of structure between the different castes of neuters in the same species, that I gladly availed myself of Mr. F. Smith's offer of numerous specimens from the same nest of the driver ant (Anomma) of West Africa. The reader will perhaps best appreciate the amount of difference in these [241]workers, by my giving not the actual measurements, but a strictly accurate illustration: the difference was the same as if we were to see a set of workmen building a house of whom many were five feet four inches high, and many sixteen feet high; but we must suppose that the larger workmen had heads four instead of three times as big as those of the smaller men, and jaws nearly five times as big. The jaws, moreover, of the working ants of the several sizes differed wonderfully in shape, and in the form and number of the teeth. But the important fact for us is, that though the workers can be grouped into castes of different sizes, yet they graduate insensibly into each other, as does the widely-different structure of their jaws. I speak confidently on this latter point, as Mr. Lubbock made drawings for me with the camera lucida of the jaws which I had dissected from the workers of the several sizes.

I can share one more example: I was so sure I would find differences in key structural features among the different castes of neuter ants in the same species that I happily took Mr. F. Smith's offer of many specimens from the same nest of driver ants (Anomma) from West Africa. The reader might better grasp the differences among these [241]workers if I provide a precise illustration instead of actual measurements: it was like seeing a group of construction workers where some were five feet four inches tall and some were sixteen feet tall; but we have to imagine that the taller workers had heads four times, rather than three times, the size of the smaller men's heads, and jaws nearly five times as large. Moreover, the jaws of the working ants of various sizes differed greatly in shape and in the number and form of their teeth. The key point for us is that, even though the workers can be organized into castes of different sizes, they gradually transition into each other, just like the widely varying structures of their jaws. I speak with confidence about this latter point since Mr. Lubbock made drawings for me using the camera lucida of the jaws I dissected from the workers of different sizes.

With these facts before me, I believe that natural selection, by acting on the fertile parents, could form a species which should regularly produce neuters, either all of large size with one form of jaw, or all of small size with jaws having a widely different structure; or lastly, and this is our climax of difficulty, one set of workers of one size and structure, and simultaneously another set of workers of a different size and structure;—a graduated series having been first formed, as in the case of the driver ant, and then the extreme forms, from being the most useful to the community, having been produced in greater and greater numbers through the natural selection of the parents which generated them; until none with an intermediate structure were produced.

With these facts in mind, I believe that natural selection, by acting on fertile parents, could create a species that regularly produces neuters, either all large with one type of jaw or all small with jaws that have a completely different structure; or, lastly—and this is our biggest challenge—one group of workers with one size and structure, and at the same time another group of workers with a different size and structure;—a graduated series was first formed, as seen in the case of the driver ant, and then the extreme forms, being the most beneficial to the community, were produced in increasing numbers through the natural selection of the parents that generated them; until none with an intermediate structure were produced.

Thus, as I believe, the wonderful fact of two distinctly defined castes of sterile workers existing in the same nest, both widely different from each other and from [242]their parents, has originated. We can see how useful their production may have been to a social community of insects, on the same principle that the division of labour is useful to civilised man. As ants work by inherited instincts and by inherited organs or tools, and not by acquired knowledge and manufactured instruments, a perfect division of labour could be effected with them only by the workers being sterile; for had they been fertile, they would have intercrossed, and their instincts and structure would have become blended. And nature has, as I believe, effected this admirable division of labour in the communities of ants, by the means of natural selection. But I am bound to confess, that, with all my faith in this principle, I should never have anticipated that natural selection could have been efficient in so high a degree, had not the case of these neuter insects convinced me of the fact. I have, therefore, discussed this case, at some little but wholly insufficient length, in order to show the power of natural selection, and likewise because this is by far the most serious special difficulty, which my theory has encountered. The case, also, is very interesting, as it proves that with animals, as with plants, any amount of modification in structure can be effected by the accumulation of numerous, slight, and as we must call them accidental, variations, which are in any manner profitable, without exercise or habit having come into play. For no amount of exercise, or habit, or volition, in the utterly sterile members of a community could possibly affect the structure or instincts of the fertile members, which alone leave descendants. I am surprised that no one has advanced this demonstrative case of neuter insects, against the well-known doctrine of Lamarck.

Therefore, I believe that the remarkable situation of having two clearly defined groups of sterile workers within the same nest, both significantly different from one another and from their parents, has come about. We can see how beneficial their work might have been to an insect community, much like how the division of labor benefits civilized humans. Since ants operate through inherited instincts and natural tools rather than learned knowledge and created instruments, a true division of labor could only occur if the workers were sterile; if they had been fertile, they would have mixed, causing their instincts and structures to merge. Nature, I believe, has achieved this impressive division of labor in ant communities through natural selection. However, I must admit that despite my confidence in this principle, I never would have expected natural selection to be so effective if I hadn't been convinced by the example of these neuter insects. Thus, I have discussed this example, albeit too briefly, to illustrate the power of natural selection, and also because it represents one of the most significant challenges my theory has faced. This case is also fascinating because it shows that, just like with plants, a significant amount of structural change can result from the accumulation of many slight, what we might call accidental variations, that are beneficial in some way, without the influence of exercise or habit. For no amount of exercise, habit, or will in the completely sterile members of a community could ever affect the structure or instincts of the fertile members, who are the only ones that can produce offspring. I'm surprised no one has used this clear example of neuter insects to argue against the well-known theory of Lamarck.

 

Summary.—I have endeavoured briefly in this chapter [243]to show that the mental qualities of our domestic animals vary, and that the variations are inherited. Still more briefly I have attempted to show that instincts vary slightly in a state of nature. No one will dispute that instincts are of the highest importance to each animal. Therefore I can see no difficulty, under changing conditions of life, in natural selection accumulating slight modifications of instinct to any extent, in any useful direction. In some cases habit or use and disuse have probably come into play. I do not pretend that the facts given in this chapter strengthen in any great degree my theory; but none of the cases of difficulty, to the best of my judgment, annihilate it. On the other hand, the fact that instincts are not always absolutely perfect and are liable to mistakes;—that no instinct has been produced for the exclusive good of other animals, but that each animal takes advantage of the instincts of others;—that the canon in natural history, of "Natura non facit saltum," is applicable to instincts as well as to corporeal structure, and is plainly explicable on the foregoing views, but is otherwise inexplicable,—all tend to corroborate the theory of natural selection.

Summary.—In this chapter [243], I have briefly tried to show that the mental traits of our domestic animals differ, and that these differences are inherited. I've also attempted to demonstrate that instincts change slightly in the wild. No one can deny that instincts are extremely important for each animal. Thus, I believe there is no issue, in fluctuating life conditions, with natural selection building up small changes in instinct in any useful direction. In some cases, habits or the concepts of use and disuse probably play a role. I don’t claim that the information presented in this chapter greatly supports my theory; however, none of the challenging cases, to the best of my understanding, prove it wrong. On the contrary, the fact that instincts aren’t always perfectly developed and can make mistakes—that no instinct has evolved solely for the benefit of other animals, but instead, each animal benefits from the instincts of others—that the principle in natural history, "Natura non facit saltum," applies to instincts just as it does to physical structure and can be clearly explained by these views, but remains otherwise unexplainable—all these points support the theory of natural selection.

This theory is, also, strengthened by some few other facts in regard to instincts; as by that common case of closely allied, but certainly distinct, species, when inhabiting distant parts of the world and living under considerably different conditions of life, yet often retaining nearly the same instincts. For instance, we can understand on the principle of inheritance, how it is that the thrush of South America lines its nest with mud, in the same peculiar manner as does our British thrush: how it is that the male wrens (Troglodytes) of North America, build "cock-nests," to roost in, like the males of our distinct Kitty-wrens,—a habit wholly unlike that of [244]any other known bird. Finally, it may not be a logical deduction, but to my imagination it is far more satisfactory to look at such instincts as the young cuckoo ejecting its foster-brothers,—ants making slaves,—the larvae of ichneumonidæ feeding within the live bodies of caterpillars,—not as specially endowed or created instincts, but as small consequences of one general law, leading to the advancement of all organic beings, namely, multiply, vary, let the strongest live and the weakest die.

This theory is also supported by a few other facts about instincts, like the common situation of closely related but definitely distinct species that, despite living in far-off parts of the world and under very different conditions, often maintain nearly the same instincts. For example, it makes sense, based on the principle of inheritance, that the thrush in South America lines its nest with mud in the same unique way as our British thrush does. Similarly, male wrens (Troglodytes) in North America build "cock-nests" to roost in, just like the males of our distinct Kitty-wrens—this behavior is completely different from that of any other known bird. Finally, while it may not be a logical conclusion, to me, it feels much more satisfying to view instincts like the young cuckoo ejecting its foster siblings, ants creating slaves, and the larvae of ichneumonidæ feeding inside live caterpillars—not as specially given or created instincts, but as small outcomes of a single overarching law that drives the evolution of all living beings: multiply, vary, let the strongest survive and the weakest perish.


[245]

[245]

CHAPTER VIII.

Hybridism.

Hybridism.

Distinction between the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids—Sterility various in degree, not universal, affected by close interbreeding, removed by domestication—Laws governing the sterility of hybrids—Sterility not a special endowment, but incidental on other differences—Causes of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids—Parallelism between the effects of changed conditions of life and crossing—Fertility of varieties when crossed and of their mongrel offspring not universal—Hybrids and mongrels compared independently of their fertility—Summary.

Understanding the difference between the sterility of first crosses and hybrids—Sterility varies in intensity, isn't always present, can be affected by inbreeding, and can improve with domestication—Rules that determine hybrid sterility—Sterility is not an isolated characteristic but stems from other differences—Reasons for sterility in first crosses and hybrids—Similarities between the impacts of altered living conditions and crossbreeding—Not all varieties are fertile when crossed, and their mixed offspring aren’t always fertile—Comparing hybrids and mixed breeds without factoring in their fertility—Summary.

The view generally entertained by naturalists is that species, when intercrossed, have been specially endowed with the quality of sterility, in order to prevent the confusion of all organic forms. This view certainly seems at first probable, for species within the same country could hardly have kept distinct had they been capable of crossing freely. The importance of the fact that hybrids are very generally sterile, has, I think, been much underrated by some late writers. On the theory of natural selection the case is especially important, inasmuch as the sterility of hybrids could not possibly be of any advantage to them, and therefore could not have been acquired by the continued preservation of successive profitable degrees of sterility. I hope, however, to be able to show that sterility is not a specially acquired or endowed quality, but is incidental on other acquired differences.

The view generally held by naturalists is that when species interbreed, they are naturally equipped with the trait of sterility to avoid mixing up all organic forms. This idea seems reasonable at first, as species in the same area would likely struggle to remain distinct if they could freely intercross. The significance of the fact that hybrids are usually sterile has, in my opinion, been overlooked by some recent writers. In the context of natural selection, this situation is particularly crucial because the sterility of hybrids offers no advantage to them and therefore couldn’t have been developed through the ongoing preservation of increasingly beneficial levels of sterility. However, I hope to demonstrate that sterility is not a specifically acquired trait but rather a byproduct of other differences that are acquired.

In treating this subject, two classes of facts, to a large extent fundamentally different, have generally been confounded together; namely, the sterility of two species [246]when first crossed, and the sterility of the hybrids produced from them.

In discussing this topic, two groups of facts, which are largely different in nature, have usually been mixed together; specifically, the infertility of two species when first crossed, and the infertility of the hybrids that result from them.

Pure species have of course their organs of reproduction in a perfect condition, yet when intercrossed they produce either few or no offspring. Hybrids, on the other hand, have their reproductive organs functionally impotent, as may be clearly seen in the state of the male element in both plants and animals; though the organs themselves are perfect in structure, as far as the microscope reveals. In the first case the two sexual elements which go to form the embryo are perfect; in the second case they are either not at all developed, or are imperfectly developed. This distinction is important, when the cause of the sterility, which is common to the two cases, has to be considered. The distinction has probably been slurred over, owing to the sterility in both cases being looked on as a special endowment, beyond the province of our reasoning powers.

Pure species have their reproductive organs in perfect condition, but when they interbreed, they produce few or no offspring. Hybrids, on the other hand, have reproductive organs that are functionally ineffective, as can be clearly observed in the male components of both plants and animals; although the organs themselves are structurally complete, as revealed by the microscope. In the first case, the two sexual elements that form the embryo are perfect; in the second case, they are either not developed at all or are poorly developed. This distinction is important when considering the cause of the sterility that is common to both cases. This distinction has likely been overlooked, as the sterility in both instances is often viewed as a special trait, beyond the scope of our understanding.

The fertility of varieties, that is of the forms known or believed to have descended from common parents, when intercrossed, and likewise the fertility of their mongrel offspring, is, on my theory, of equal importance with the sterility of species; for it seems to make a broad and clear distinction between varieties and species.

The fertility of varieties, meaning the forms that are known or thought to have come from common ancestors, when crossed with each other, and also the fertility of their mixed offspring, is, according to my theory, just as important as the sterility of species; because it appears to create a clear and significant difference between varieties and species.

First, for the sterility of species when crossed and of their hybrid offspring. It is impossible to study the several memoirs and works of those two conscientious and admirable observers, Kölreuter and Gärtner, who almost devoted their lives to this subject, without being deeply impressed with the high generality of some degree of sterility. Kölreuter makes the rule universal; but then he cuts the knot, for in ten cases in which he found two forms, considered by most authors as distinct species, quite fertile together, he unhesitatingly ranks [247]them as varieties. Gärtner, also, makes the rule equally universal; and he disputes the entire fertility of Kölreuter's ten cases. But in these and in many other cases, Gärtner is obliged carefully to count the seeds, in order to show that there is any degree of sterility. He always compares the maximum number of seeds produced by two species when crossed and by their hybrid offspring, with the average number produced by both pure parent-species in a state of nature. But a serious cause of error seems to me to be here introduced: a plant to be hybridised must be castrated, and, what is often more important, must be secluded in order to prevent pollen being brought to it by insects from other plants. Nearly all the plants experimentised on by Gärtner were potted, and apparently were kept in a chamber in his house. That these processes are often injurious to the fertility of a plant cannot be doubted; for Gärtner gives in his table about a score of cases of plants which he castrated, and artificially fertilised with their own pollen, and (excluding all cases such as the Leguminosæ, in which there is an acknowledged difficulty in the manipulation) half of these twenty plants had their fertility in some degree impaired. Moreover, as Gärtner during several years repeatedly crossed the primrose and cowslip, which we have such good reason to believe to be varieties, and only once or twice succeeded in getting fertile seed; as he found the common red and blue pimpernels (Anagallis arvensis and cœrulea), which the best botanists rank as varieties, absolutely sterile together; and as he came to the same conclusion in several other analogous cases; it seems to me that we may well be permitted to doubt whether many other species are really so sterile, when intercrossed, as Gärtner believes. [248]

First, there's the issue of sterility in species when crossed and their hybrid offspring. It's hard to study the works of the dedicated and impressive observers, Kölreuter and Gärtner, who devoted much of their lives to this topic, without being struck by the general tendency toward some level of sterility. Kölreuter treats the rule as universal, but then he complicates things; in ten instances where he found two forms, which most would consider distinct species, to be quite fertile together, he confidently categorizes them as varieties. Gärtner also claims the rule is universal and challenges the complete fertility of Kölreuter's ten cases. However, in these and many other instances, Gärtner has to meticulously count the seeds to demonstrate any level of sterility. He consistently compares the maximum number of seeds produced by two species when crossed and by their hybrid offspring with the average number produced by both pure parent species in their natural state. A significant source of error seems to arise here: a plant being hybridized must be castrated and, often more crucially, must be isolated to prevent insects from bringing pollen from other plants. Most of the plants that Gärtner experimented on were potted and likely kept in a chamber in his home. There's no doubt that these processes can harm a plant's fertility; Gärtner lists about twenty cases of plants he castrated and fertilized artificially with their own pollen, and excluding cases like the Leguminosæ, where manipulation is known to be tricky, half of these twenty plants showed some degree of reduced fertility. Additionally, since Gärtner repeatedly crossed the primrose and cowslip over several years—which we have strong reasons to believe are varieties—and only succeeded in obtaining fertile seeds once or twice; since he discovered the common red and blue pimpernels (Anagallis arvensis and cœrulea), which the best botanists classify as varieties, to be completely sterile together; and as he reached similar conclusions in several other comparable cases; it seems reasonable for us to question whether many other species are truly as sterile when crossed as Gärtner asserts.

It is certain, on the one hand, that the sterility of various species when crossed is so different in degree and graduates away so insensibly, and, on the other hand, that the fertility of pure species is so easily affected by various circumstances, that for all practical purposes it is most difficult to say where perfect fertility ends and sterility begins. I think no better evidence of this can be required than that the two most experienced observers who have ever lived, namely, Kölreuter and Gärtner, should have arrived at diametrically opposite conclusions in regard to the very same species. It is also most instructive to compare—but I have not space here to enter on details—the evidence advanced by our best botanists on the question whether certain doubtful forms should be ranked as species or varieties, with the evidence from fertility adduced by different hybridisers, or by the same author, from experiments made during different years. It can thus be shown that neither sterility nor fertility affords any clear distinction between species and varieties; but that the evidence from this source graduates away, and is doubtful in the same degree as is the evidence derived from other constitutional and structural differences.

It is clear, on one hand, that the sterility of different species when crossed varies greatly and fades gradually, and on the other hand, that the fertility of pure species can be easily influenced by various factors. For all practical purposes, it’s really challenging to determine where perfect fertility ends and sterility starts. The best proof of this is that the two most knowledgeable observers ever, Kölreuter and Gärtner, reached completely opposite conclusions about the same species. It's also very informative to compare — though I don’t have the space to go into details here — the evidence from our top botanists on whether certain questionable forms should be classified as species or varieties, with the fertility evidence provided by different hybridizers, or by the same author from experiments conducted in different years. This shows that neither sterility nor fertility provides a clear distinction between species and varieties; rather, the evidence from this area varies and is just as uncertain as evidence from other constitutional and structural differences.

In regard to the sterility of hybrids in successive generations; though Gärtner was enabled to rear some hybrids, carefully guarding them from a cross with either pure parent, for six or seven, and in one case for ten generations, yet he asserts positively that their fertility never increased, but generally greatly decreased. I do not doubt that this is usually the case, and that the fertility often suddenly decreases in the first few generations. Nevertheless I believe that in all these experiments the fertility has been diminished by an independent cause, namely, from close interbreeding. I have collected so large a body of facts, showing [249]that close interbreeding lessens fertility, and, on the other hand, that an occasional cross with a distinct individual or variety increases fertility, that I cannot doubt the correctness of this almost universal belief amongst breeders. Hybrids are seldom raised by experimentalists in great numbers; and as the parent-species, or other allied hybrids, generally grow in the same garden, the visits of insects must be carefully prevented during the flowering season: hence hybrids will generally be fertilised during each generation by their own individual pollen; and I am convinced that this would be injurious to their fertility, already lessened by their hybrid origin. I am strengthened in this conviction by a remarkable statement repeatedly made by Gärtner, namely, that if even the less fertile hybrids be artificially fertilised with hybrid pollen of the same kind, their fertility, notwithstanding the frequent ill effects of manipulation, sometimes decidedly increases, and goes on increasing. Now, in artificial fertilisation pollen is as often taken by chance (as I know from my own experience) from the anthers of another flower, as from the anthers of the flower itself which is to be fertilised; so that a cross between two flowers, though probably on the same plant, would be thus effected. Moreover, whenever complicated experiments are in progress, so careful an observer as Gärtner would have castrated his hybrids, and this would have insured in each generation a cross with a pollen from a distinct flower, either from the same plant or from another plant of the same hybrid nature. And thus, the strange fact of the increase of fertility in the successive generations of artificially fertilised hybrids may, I believe, be accounted for by close interbreeding having been avoided.

Regarding the sterility of hybrids in subsequent generations; although Gärtner was able to raise some hybrids, carefully protecting them from crossing with either pure parent for six or seven, and in one case for ten generations, he firmly states that their fertility never improved, but generally decreased significantly. I don’t doubt that this is usually the case and that fertility often drops suddenly in the first few generations. However, I believe that in all these experiments, fertility has been reduced by an independent factor, namely, close interbreeding. I have gathered a substantial amount of evidence showing that close interbreeding diminishes fertility, while an occasional cross with a different individual or variety increases fertility, making me confident in the validity of this nearly universal belief among breeders. Hybrids are rarely produced in large numbers by researchers; and since the parent species or other related hybrids usually grow in the same garden, it's essential to prevent insect visits during the flowering season: thus, hybrids tend to be fertilized each generation by their own pollen. I am convinced that this could harm their fertility, which is already reduced due to their hybrid nature. This belief is reinforced by a remarkable observation repeatedly made by Gärtner, which states that even the less fertile hybrids, when artificially fertilized with hybrid pollen of the same type, sometimes show a notable increase in fertility, despite the common negative effects of manipulation. In artificial fertilization, pollen is often taken at random (as I know from my own experience) from the anthers of another flower rather than the flower itself that is to be fertilized; therefore, a cross between two flowers, even if probably on the same plant, would be achieved this way. Furthermore, whenever complex experiments are conducted, such a careful observer as Gärtner would have castrated his hybrids, ensuring that in each generation there was a cross with pollen from a different flower, whether from the same plant or from another plant of the same hybrid type. Thus, the unusual fact of increasing fertility in the successive generations of artificially fertilized hybrids may be explained by the avoidance of close interbreeding.

Now let us turn to the results arrived at by the third most experienced hybridiser, namely, the Hon. and [250]Rev. W. Herbert. He is as emphatic in his conclusion that some hybrids are perfectly fertile—as fertile as the pure parent-species—as are Kölreuter and Gärtner that some degree of sterility between distinct species is a universal law of nature. He experimentised on some of the very same species as did Gärtner. The difference in their results may, I think, be in part accounted for by Herbert's great horticultural skill, and by his having hothouses at his command. Of his many important statements I will here give only a single one as an example, namely, that "every ovule in a pod of Crinum capense fertilised by C. revolutum produced a plant, which (he says) I never saw to occur in a case of its natural fecundation." So that we here have perfect, or even more than commonly perfect, fertility in a first cross between two distinct species.

Now let’s look at the results from the third most experienced hybridizer, the Hon. and [250]Rev. W. Herbert. He strongly believes that some hybrids are fully fertile—just as fertile as the pure parent species—just as Kölreuter and Gärtner argued that some level of sterility between different species is a universal law of nature. He experimented with some of the same species as Gärtner. I think the difference in their results can partly be explained by Herbert's extensive horticultural skills and his access to hothouses. Among his many important statements, I'll share just one as an example: "every ovule in a pod of Crinum capense fertilized by C. revolutum produced a plant, which (he says) I never saw happen in the case of its natural fertilization." So here we have perfect, or even unusually perfect, fertility in a first cross between two distinct species.

This case of the Crinum leads me to refer to a most singular fact, namely, that there are individual plants of certain species of Lobelia and of some other genera, which can be far more easily fertilised by the pollen of another and distinct species, than by their own pollen; and all the individuals of nearly all the species of Hippeastrum seem to be in this predicament. For these plants have been found to yield seed to the pollen of a distinct species, though quite sterile with their own pollen, notwithstanding that their own pollen was found to be perfectly good, for it fertilised distinct species. So that certain individual plants and all the individuals of certain species can actually be hybridised much more readily than they can be self-fertilised! For instance, a bulb of Hippeastrum aulicum produced four flowers; three were fertilised by Herbert with their own pollen, and the fourth was subsequently fertilised by the pollen of a compound hybrid descended from three other and distinct [251]species: the result was that "the ovaries of the three first flowers soon ceased to grow, and after a few days perished entirely, whereas the pod impregnated by the pollen of the hybrid made vigorous growth and rapid progress to maturity, and bore good seed, which vegetated freely." In a letter to me, in 1839, Mr. Herbert told me that he had then tried the experiment during five years, and he continued to try it during several subsequent years, and always with the same result. This result has, also, been confirmed by other observers in the case of Hippeastrum with its sub-genera, and in the case of some other genera, as Lobelia, Passiflora and Verbascum. Although the plants in these experiments appeared perfectly healthy, and although both the ovules and pollen of the same flower were perfectly good with respect to other species, yet as they were functionally imperfect in their mutual self-action, we must infer that the plants were in an unnatural state. Nevertheless these facts show on what slight and mysterious causes the lesser or greater fertility of species when crossed, in comparison with the same species when self-fertilised, sometimes depends.

This case of the Crinum leads me to mention a very unique fact: some individual plants of certain species of Lobelia and other genera can be much more easily fertilized by pollen from a different species than by their own pollen. Almost all individuals of nearly all species of Hippeastrum seem to be in this situation. These plants can produce seeds from the pollen of a different species, even though they are completely sterile with their own pollen. Interestingly, their own pollen has been found to be perfectly viable since it can fertilize distinct species. So, certain individual plants, and all individuals of some species, can actually be hybridized much more easily than they can self-fertilize! For example, a bulb of Hippeastrum aulicum produced four flowers; three were fertilized by Herbert with their own pollen, and the fourth was later fertilized by pollen from a hybrid that came from three other distinct species: the result was that “the ovaries of the first three flowers soon stopped growing and eventually withered, whereas the pod fertilized by the hybrid pollen grew vigorously and quickly matured, producing good seeds that germinated easily.” In a letter to me in 1839, Mr. Herbert mentioned that he had been conducting this experiment for five years and continued to see the same outcome in the following years. This outcome has also been confirmed by other observers in the case of Hippeastrum and its sub-genera, as well as in some other genera like Lobelia, Passiflora, and Verbascum. Even though the plants in these experiments seemed perfectly healthy, and both the ovules and pollen of the same flower were completely viable concerning other species, since they were functionally inadequate in their self-pollination, we can conclude that the plants were in an unnatural state. Nevertheless, these facts show how slight and mysterious factors can influence the varying fertility of species when crossed, compared to their fertility when self-fertilized.

The practical experiments of horticulturists, though not made with scientific precision, deserve some notice. It is notorious in how complicated a manner the species of Pelargonium, Fuchsia, Calceolaria, Petunia, Rhododendron, &c., have been crossed, yet many of these hybrids seed freely. For instance, Herbert asserts that a hybrid from Calceolaria integrifolia and plantaginea, species most widely dissimilar in general habit, "reproduced itself as perfectly as if it had been a natural species from the mountains of Chile." I have taken some pains to ascertain the degree of fertility of some of the complex crosses of Rhododendrons, and I am assured that many of them [252]are perfectly fertile. Mr. C. Noble, for instance, informs me that he raises stocks for grafting from a hybrid between Rhod. Ponticum and Catawbiense, and that this hybrid "seeds as freely as it is possible to imagine." Had hybrids, when fairly treated, gone on decreasing in fertility in each successive generation, as Gärtner believes to be the case, the fact would have been notorious to nurserymen. Horticulturists raise large beds of the same hybrids, and such alone are fairly treated, for by insect agency the several individuals of the same hybrid variety are allowed to freely cross with each other, and the injurious influence of close interbreeding is thus prevented. Any one may readily convince himself of the efficiency of insect-agency by examining the flowers of the more sterile kinds of hybrid rhododendrons, which produce no pollen, for he will find on their stigmas plenty of pollen brought from other flowers.

The hands-on experiments done by gardeners, even if not perfectly scientific, are worth mentioning. It’s well known how complex it has been to cross species like Pelargonium, Fuchsia, Calceolaria, Petunia, and Rhododendron, yet many of these hybrids produce seeds easily. For example, Herbert claims that a hybrid between Calceolaria integrifolia and plantaginea, which are quite different in general appearance, "reproduced itself just as perfectly as if it had been a natural species from the mountains of Chile." I've put in effort to determine how fertile some of the complicated crosses of Rhododendrons are, and I’ve been told that many of them [252]are completely fertile. Mr. C. Noble, for instance, tells me that he grows stocks for grafting from a hybrid between Rhod. Ponticum and Catawbiense, and that this hybrid "seeds as freely as you could imagine." If hybrids had been declining in fertility with each generation as Gärtner believes, it would be a well-known fact among nurserymen. Gardeners cultivate large beds of the same hybrids, and such practices are fair because insects allow different individuals of the same hybrid variety to cross freely, preventing the harmful effects of close interbreeding. Anyone can easily verify the effectiveness of insect pollination by looking at the flowers of the more sterile types of hybrid rhododendrons, which produce no pollen; they will find plenty of pollen from other flowers on their stigmas.

In regard to animals, much fewer experiments have been carefully tried than with plants. If our systematic arrangements can be trusted, that is if the genera of animals are as distinct from each other, as are the genera of plants, then we may infer that animals more widely separated in the scale of nature can be more easily crossed than in the case of plants; but the hybrids themselves are, I think, more sterile. I doubt whether any case of a perfectly fertile hybrid animal can be considered as thoroughly well authenticated. It should, however, be borne in mind that, owing to few animals breeding freely under confinement, few experiments have been fairly tried: for instance, the canary-bird has been crossed with nine other finches, but as not one of these nine species breeds freely in confinement, we have no right to expect that the first crosses between them and the canary, or that their hybrids, [253]should be perfectly fertile. Again, with respect to the fertility in successive generations of the more fertile hybrid animals, I hardly know of an instance in which two families of the same hybrid have been raised at the same time from different parents, so as to avoid the ill effects of close interbreeding. On the contrary, brothers and sisters have usually been crossed in each successive generation, in opposition to the constantly repeated admonition of every breeder. And in this case, it is not at all surprising that the inherent sterility in the hybrids should have gone on increasing. If we were to act thus, and pair brothers and sisters in the case of any pure animal, which from any cause had the least tendency to sterility, the breed would assuredly be lost in a very few generations.

When it comes to animals, there have been far fewer experiments conducted compared to plants. If our systematic classifications are reliable, meaning if animal genera are as distinct from each other as plant genera, then we can assume that animals that are more distantly related in the natural order can be more easily crossed than plants; however, I believe the hybrids tend to be more sterile. I’m not sure if there’s a well-documented case of a completely fertile hybrid animal. It’s important to remember that because few animals breed freely in captivity, there have been limited experiments conducted: for example, the canary has been crossed with nine other finches, but none of those nine species breed freely in confinement, so we can’t expect that the initial crosses with canaries or their hybrids should be completely fertile. Additionally, regarding the fertility of more fertile hybrid animals in successive generations, I hardly know of an instance where two families of the same hybrid have been simultaneously raised from different parents to prevent the negative effects of close interbreeding. On the contrary, siblings have typically been crossed in each generation, despite the continuous warnings from breeders. Given this situation, it’s not surprising that the inherent sterility of the hybrids has continued to increase. If we were to do the same and pair siblings of any pure animal that had even a slight tendency toward sterility, the breed would definitely be lost in just a few generations.

Although I do not know of any thoroughly well-authenticated cases of perfectly fertile hybrid animals, I have some reason to believe that the hybrids from Cervulus vaginalis and Reevesii, and from Phasianus colchicus with P. torquatus and with P. versicolor are perfectly fertile. There is no doubt that these three pheasants, namely, the common, the true ring-necked, and the Japan, intercross, and are becoming blended together in the woods of several parts of England. The hybrids from the common and Chinese geese (A. cygnoides), species which are so different that they are generally ranked in distinct genera, have often bred in this country with either pure parent, and in one single instance they have bred inter se. This was effected by Mr. Eyton, who raised two hybrids from the same parents but from different hatches; and from these two birds he raised no less than eight hybrids (grandchildren of the pure geese) from one nest. In India, however, these cross-bred geese must be far more fertile; for I am assured by two eminently capable judges, namely [254]Mr. Blyth and Capt. Hutton, that whole flocks of these crossed geese are kept in various parts of the country; and as they are kept for profit, where neither pure parent-species exists, they must certainly be highly fertile.

Although I'm not aware of any completely verified cases of fully fertile hybrid animals, I have some reason to believe that hybrids from Cervulus vaginalis and Reevesii, as well as from Phasianus colchicus with P. torquatus and P. versicolor, are fully fertile. It's clear that these three pheasants—the common, the true ring-necked, and the Japan—interbreed and are mixing in the woods across various parts of England. The hybrids from the common and Chinese geese (A. cygnoides), species that are so different they are usually placed in separate genera, have often successfully bred in this country with either pure parent, and on one occasion they have bred inter se. This was done by Mr. Eyton, who raised two hybrids from the same parents but from different hatches, and from these two birds, he produced eight hybrids (grandchildren of the pure geese) from one nest. In India, however, these cross-bred geese must be even more fertile; as I’ve been told by two highly qualified judges, Mr. Blyth and Capt. Hutton, that whole flocks of these crossed geese are kept in various regions of the country, and since they are kept for profit where neither pure parent species exists, they must certainly be very fertile.

A doctrine which originated with Pallas, has been largely accepted by modern naturalists; namely, that most of our domestic animals have descended from two or more wild species, since commingled by intercrossing. On this view, the aboriginal species must either at first have produced quite fertile hybrids, or the hybrids must have become in subsequent generations quite fertile under domestication. This latter alternative seems to me the most probable, and I am inclined to believe in its truth, although it rests on no direct evidence. I believe, for instance, that our dogs have descended from several wild stocks; yet, with perhaps the exception of certain indigenous domestic dogs of South America, all are quite fertile together; and analogy makes me greatly doubt, whether the several aboriginal species would at first have freely bred together and have produced quite fertile hybrids. So again there is reason to believe that our European and the humped Indian cattle are quite fertile together; but from facts communicated to me by Mr. Blyth, I think they must be considered as distinct species. On this view of the origin of many of our domestic animals, we must either give up the belief of the almost universal sterility of distinct species of animals when crossed; or we must look at sterility, not as an indelible characteristic, but as one capable of being removed by domestication.

A theory that started with Pallas has been widely accepted by modern naturalists. This theory suggests that most of our domestic animals have descended from two or more wild species that have interbred. According to this idea, the original species must have initially produced highly fertile hybrids, or the hybrids must have become fertile over time through domestication. I find the latter scenario to be the most likely and lean toward believing it, even though it lacks direct evidence. For example, I think our dogs have come from several wild ancestors; however, except for certain native domestic dogs from South America, they all seem to be quite fertile together. This makes me seriously doubt that the original wild species would have freely interbred and created fertile hybrids. Similarly, it appears that our European cattle and the humped Indian cattle are also fertile when bred together, but based on information from Mr. Blyth, I believe they should be considered distinct species. With this perspective on the origins of many of our domestic animals, we either have to abandon the belief that distinct animal species are almost universally sterile when crossed or we need to see sterility as something not permanent but rather something that can be overcome through domestication.

Finally, looking to all the ascertained facts on the intercrossing of plants and animals, it may be concluded that some degree of sterility, both in first crosses [255]and in hybrids, is an extremely general result; but that it cannot, under our present state of knowledge, be considered as absolutely universal.

Finally, based on all the established facts about the crossbreeding of plants and animals, we can conclude that some level of sterility occurs quite commonly in both first crosses [255] and hybrids; however, we cannot, given our current understanding, say that this is completely universal.

 

Laws governing the Sterility of first Crosses and of Hybrids.—We will now consider a little more in detail the circumstances and rules governing the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. Our chief object will be to see whether or not the rules indicate that species have specially been endowed with this quality, in order to prevent their crossing and blending together in utter confusion. The following rules and conclusions are chiefly drawn up from Gärtner's admirable work on the hybridisation of plants. I have taken much pains to ascertain how far the rules apply to animals, and considering how scanty our knowledge is in regard to hybrid animals, I have been surprised to find how generally the same rules apply to both kingdoms.

Laws Governing the Sterility of First Crosses and Hybrids.—Now, let’s take a closer look at the circumstances and rules regarding the sterility of first crosses and hybrids. Our main goal is to determine whether these rules suggest that species are specifically designed with this trait to prevent them from crossing and merging in complete chaos. The following rules and conclusions are mainly derived from Gärtner's excellent work on plant hybridization. I've put in a lot of effort to see how these rules apply to animals, and given how limited our knowledge is regarding hybrid animals, I was surprised to find that the same rules generally apply to both groups.

It has been already remarked, that the degree of fertility, both of first crosses and of hybrids, graduates from zero to perfect fertility. It is surprising in how many curious ways this gradation can be shown to exist; but only the barest outline of the facts can here be given. When pollen from a plant of one family is placed on the stigma of a plant of a distinct family, it exerts no more influence than so much inorganic dust. From this absolute zero of fertility, the pollen of different species of the same genus applied to the stigma of some one species, yields a perfect gradation in the number of seeds produced, up to nearly complete or even quite complete fertility; and, as we have seen, in certain abnormal cases, even to an excess of fertility, beyond that which the plant's own pollen will produce. So in hybrids themselves, there are some which never have produced, and probably never would produce, even [256]with the pollen of either pure parent, a single fertile seed: but in some of these cases a first trace of fertility may be detected, by the pollen of one of the pure parent-species causing the flower of the hybrid to wither earlier than it otherwise would have done; and the early withering of the flower is well known to be a sign of incipient fertilisation. From this extreme degree of sterility we have self-fertilised hybrids producing a greater and greater number of seeds up to perfect fertility.

It's already been noted that the level of fertility, both in first crosses and hybrids, ranges from zero to perfect fertility. It's surprising how many different ways this range can be demonstrated, but only a brief overview of the facts can be given here. When pollen from a plant in one family is placed on the stigma of a plant from a different family, it has no more effect than inorganic dust. From this absolute zero of fertility, when pollen from different species within the same genus is applied to the stigma of a specific species, there is a clear progression in the number of seeds produced, reaching nearly complete or even fully complete fertility; and, as we've seen, in certain unusual cases, there can even be an excess of fertility, exceeding what the plant's own pollen would produce. Likewise, among hybrids themselves, some have never produced, and likely will never produce, not even with the pollen of either pure parent, a single fertile seed: however, in some of these cases, there may be a slight indication of fertility, as the pollen from one of the pure parent species causes the flower of the hybrid to wilt earlier than it normally would; and the premature wilting of the flower is well known to indicate the beginning stages of fertilization. From this extreme sterility, we have self-fertilized hybrids that produce an increasing number of seeds up to perfect fertility.

Hybrids from two species which are very difficult to cross, and which rarely produce any offspring, are generally very sterile; but the parallelism between the difficulty of making a first cross, and the sterility of the hybrids thus produced—two classes of facts which are generally confounded together—is by no means strict. There are many cases, in which two pure species can be united with unusual facility, and produce numerous hybrid-offspring, yet these hybrids are remarkably sterile. On the other hand, there are species which can be crossed very rarely, or with extreme difficulty, but the hybrids, when at last produced, are very fertile. Even within the limits of the same genus, for instance in Dianthus, these two opposite cases occur.

Hybrids from two species that are really hard to cross and rarely produce offspring tend to be very sterile. However, the correlation between how hard it is to make the initial cross and the sterility of the hybrids produced—two facts that are often confused—is not always strict. There are many situations where two pure species can be easily combined and produce a lot of hybrid offspring, yet those hybrids tend to be very sterile. Conversely, there are species that can be crossed very rarely or with a lot of difficulty, but when hybrids are finally produced, they are quite fertile. Even within the same genus, like Dianthus, both of these opposite cases can happen.

The fertility, both of first crosses and of hybrids, is more easily affected by unfavourable conditions, than is the fertility of pure species. But the degree of fertility is likewise innately variable; for it is not always the same when the same two species are crossed under the same circumstances, but depends in part upon the constitution of the individuals which happen to have been chosen for the experiment. So it is with hybrids, for their degree of fertility is often found to differ greatly in the several individuals raised from seed out of the same capsule and exposed to exactly the same conditions. [257]

The fertility of first crosses and hybrids is more easily influenced by unfavorable conditions than that of pure species. However, the level of fertility is also naturally variable; it doesn't always stay the same when the same two species are crossed under the same conditions, as it partly depends on the makeup of the specific individuals chosen for the experiment. This is also true for hybrids, as their level of fertility can vary significantly among different individuals grown from seeds from the same capsule and subjected to exactly the same conditions. [257]

By the term systematic affinity is meant, the resemblance between species in structure and in constitution, more especially in the structure of parts which are of high physiological importance and which differ little in the allied species. Now the fertility of first crosses between species, and of the hybrids produced from them, is largely governed by their systematic affinity. This is clearly shown by hybrids never having been raised between species ranked by systematists in distinct families; and on the other hand, by very closely allied species generally uniting with facility. But the correspondence between systematic affinity and the facility of crossing is by no means strict. A multitude of cases could be given of very closely allied species which will not unite, or only with extreme difficulty; and on the other hand of very distinct species which unite with the utmost facility. In the same family there may be a genus, as Dianthus, in which very many species can most readily be crossed; and another genus, as Silene, in which the most persevering efforts have failed to produce between extremely close species a single hybrid. Even within the limits of the same genus, we meet with this same difference; for instance, the many species of Nicotiana have been more largely crossed than the species of almost any other genus; but Gärtner found that N. acuminata, which is not a particularly distinct species, obstinately failed to fertilise, or to be fertilised by, no less than eight other species of Nicotiana. Very many analogous facts could be given.

By "systematic affinity," we mean the similarity between species in their structure and makeup, especially in the parts that are crucial for their functions and that show little difference among related species. The ability of different species to successfully reproduce when crossed, as well as the hybrids that come from these crossings, is largely determined by their systematic affinity. This is evident because hybrids have never been produced between species that systematists classify as being in entirely different families, while closely related species usually have no trouble hybridizing. However, the relationship between systematic affinity and the ease of crossing is not perfect. Many examples exist of very closely related species that cannot cross or do so only with great difficulty, and conversely, some quite different species can hybridize effortlessly. Within the same family, for example, there might be a genus like Dianthus where many species can easily be crossed, while another genus, like Silene, may have many attempts fail to produce even a single hybrid between very closely related species. Even within a single genus, this variation appears; for instance, the various species of Nicotiana have been crossed more frequently than almost any other genus, yet Gärtner found that N. acuminata, which isn't particularly distinct, stubbornly failed to fertilize or be fertilized by eight other Nicotiana species. There are many similar cases that could be mentioned.

No one has been able to point out what kind, or what amount, of difference in any recognisable character is sufficient to prevent two species crossing. It can be shown that plants most widely different in habit and general appearance, and having strongly marked [258]differences in every part of the flower, even in the pollen, in the fruit, and in the cotyledons, can be crossed. Annual and perennial plants, deciduous and evergreen trees, plants inhabiting different stations and fitted for extremely different climates, can often be crossed with ease.

No one has been able to identify what kind or how much of a difference in any noticeable traits is enough to stop two species from interbreeding. It has been demonstrated that plants that are very different in their growth habits and overall appearance, with significant differences in every part of the flower, even in the pollen, fruit, and seed leaves, can still be crossed. Annual and perennial plants, deciduous and evergreen trees, as well as plants that thrive in very different environments and are suited for extremely diverse climates, can often be crossed without difficulty.

By a reciprocal cross between two species, I mean the case, for instance, of a stallion-horse being first crossed with a female-ass, and then a male-ass with a mare: these two species may then be said to have been reciprocally crossed. There is often the widest possible difference in the facility of making reciprocal crosses. Such cases are highly important, for they prove that the capacity in any two species to cross is often completely independent of their systematic affinity, or of any recognisable difference in their whole organisation. On the other hand, these cases clearly show that the capacity for crossing is connected with constitutional differences imperceptible by us, and confined to the reproductive system. This difference in the result of reciprocal crosses between the same two species was long ago observed by Kölreuter. To give an instance: Mirabilis jalapa can easily be fertilised by the pollen of M. longiflora, and the hybrids thus produced are sufficiently fertile; but Kölreuter tried more than two hundred times, during eight following years, to fertilise reciprocally M. longiflora with the pollen of M. jalapa, and utterly failed. Several other equally striking cases could be given. Thuret has observed the same fact with certain sea-weeds or Fuci. Gärtner, moreover, found that this difference of facility in making reciprocal crosses is extremely common in a lesser degree. He has observed it even between forms so closely related (as Matthiola annua and glabra) that many botanists rank them only as varieties. It is also a remarkable fact, that hybrids raised from reciprocal crosses, though [259]of course compounded of the very same two species, the one species having first been used as the father and then as the mother, generally differ in fertility in a small, and occasionally in a high degree.

By a reciprocal cross between two species, I mean the situation where a male horse is first crossed with a female donkey, and then a male donkey is crossed with a female horse: these two species can then be said to have been reciprocally crossed. There can be a significant difference in how easily these reciprocal crosses can be made. Such cases are very important because they demonstrate that the ability of two species to cross is often completely independent of how closely related they are or any noticeable differences in their overall structure. Conversely, these instances clearly show that the ability to cross is related to constitutional differences that we can't perceive, which are limited to the reproductive system. This difference in the outcomes of reciprocal crosses between the same two species was noted long ago by Kölreuter. For example, Mirabilis jalapa can easily be fertilized by the pollen of M. longiflora, and the hybrids that result are quite fertile; however, Kölreuter attempted over two hundred times, over the course of eight years, to fertilize M. longiflora with the pollen of M. jalapa and failed completely. Several other equally striking examples could be mentioned. Thuret has observed the same phenomenon with certain seaweeds or Fuci. Additionally, Gärtner found that this difference in how easily reciprocal crosses can be made is very common, albeit to a lesser degree. He has observed this even between forms that are so closely related (like Matthiola annua and glabra) that many botanists only classify them as varieties. It’s also notable that the hybrids produced from reciprocal crosses, even though they are made from the same two species—with one used first as the father and then as the mother—typically show differences in fertility to some extent, and sometimes to a significant degree.

Several other singular rules could be given from Gärtner: for instance, some species have a remarkable power of crossing with other species; other species of the same genus have a remarkable power of impressing their likeness on their hybrid offspring; but these two powers do not at all necessarily go together. There are certain hybrids which instead of having, as is usual, an intermediate character between their two parents, always closely resemble one of them; and such hybrids, though externally so like one of their pure parent-species, are with rare exceptions extremely sterile. So again amongst hybrids which are usually intermediate in structure between their parents, exceptional and abnormal individuals sometimes are born, which closely resemble one of their pure parents; and these hybrids are almost always utterly sterile, even when the other hybrids raised from seed from the same capsule have a considerable degree of fertility. These facts show how completely fertility in the hybrid is independent of its external resemblance to either pure parent.

Several other unique rules can be noted from Gärtner: for example, some species have an impressive ability to cross with other species; other species within the same genus can strongly influence the traits of their hybrid offspring; however, these two abilities don't necessarily go hand in hand. There are certain hybrids that, instead of displaying the usual intermediate traits of their two parents, closely resemble one of them; and these hybrids, despite looking so similar to one of their pure parent species, are often extremely sterile, with few exceptions. Similarly, among hybrids that typically show intermediate characteristics between their parents, exceptional and abnormal individuals can sometimes appear that closely resemble one of their pure parents; these hybrids are almost always completely sterile, even when other hybrids produced from seeds from the same capsule show a reasonable level of fertility. These facts demonstrate how completely fertility in hybrids is independent of their external resemblance to either pure parent.

Considering the several rules now given, which govern the fertility of first crosses and of hybrids, we see that when forms, which must be considered as good and distinct species, are united, their fertility graduates from zero to perfect fertility, or even to fertility under certain conditions in excess. That their fertility, besides being eminently susceptible to favourable and unfavourable conditions, is innately variable. That it is by no means always the same in degree in the first cross and in the hybrids produced [260]from this cross. That the fertility of hybrids is not related to the degree in which they resemble in external appearance either parent. And lastly, that the facility of making a first cross between any two species is not always governed by their systematic affinity or degree of resemblance to each other. This latter statement is clearly proved by reciprocal crosses between the same two species, for according as the one species or the other is used as the father or the mother, there is generally some difference, and occasionally the widest possible difference, in the facility of effecting an union. The hybrids, moreover, produced from reciprocal crosses often differ in fertility.

Considering the various rules now established that determine the fertility of first crosses and hybrids, we see that when forms which should be recognized as good and distinct species are combined, their fertility ranges from zero to perfect, or sometimes even exceeds certain conditions. Their fertility, in addition to being highly responsive to favorable and unfavorable conditions, is inherently variable. It is not consistently the same in degree between the first cross and the hybrids produced from this cross. Furthermore, the fertility of hybrids does not correlate with how much they resemble either parent in appearance. Lastly, the ease of creating a first cross between any two species is not always dictated by their systematic relationship or degree of similarity to each other. This last point is clearly demonstrated by reciprocal crosses between the same two species, as there tends to be some difference—sometimes significant—in the ease of achieving a union depending on which species is used as the male or female parent. Additionally, hybrids produced from reciprocal crossings often vary in fertility.

Now do these complex and singular rules indicate that species have been endowed with sterility simply to prevent their becoming confounded in nature? I think not. For why should the sterility be so extremely different in degree, when various species are crossed, all of which we must suppose it would be equally important to keep from blending together? Why should the degree of sterility be innately variable in the individuals of the same species? Why should some species cross with facility, and yet produce very sterile hybrids; and other species cross with extreme difficulty, and yet produce fairly fertile hybrids? Why should there often be so great a difference in the result of a reciprocal cross between the same two species? Why, it may even be asked, has the production of hybrids been permitted? to grant to species the special power of producing hybrids, and then to stop their further propagation by different degrees of sterility, not strictly related to the facility of the first union between their parents, seems to be a strange arrangement.

Do these complex and unique rules suggest that species have been given sterility just to prevent them from mixing in nature? I don't think so. Why would the level of sterility vary so much when different species are crossed, if we assume it’s equally important to keep them from blending? Why should the degree of sterility be inherently different among individuals of the same species? Why do some species cross easily, yet produce very sterile hybrids, while others cross with great difficulty but produce pretty fertile hybrids? Why is there often such a major difference in the outcome of a reciprocal cross between the same two species? Additionally, why has hybrid production been allowed at all? It seems strange to give species the ability to create hybrids and then limit their further reproduction through various levels of sterility, which don’t seem directly linked to how easily the parents could combine in the first place.

The foregoing rules and facts, on the other hand, [261]appear to me clearly to indicate that the sterility both of first crosses and of hybrids is simply incidental or dependent on unknown differences, chiefly in the reproductive systems, of the species which are crossed. The differences being of so peculiar and limited a nature, that, in reciprocal crosses between two species the male sexual element of the one will often freely act on the female sexual element of the other, but not in a reversed direction. It will be advisable to explain a little more fully by an example what I mean by sterility being incidental on other differences, and not a specially endowed quality. As the capacity of one plant to be grafted or budded on another is so entirely unimportant for its welfare in a state of nature, I presume that no one will suppose that this capacity is a specially endowed quality, but will admit that it is incidental on differences in the laws of growth of the two plants. We can sometimes see the reason why one tree will not take on another, from differences in their rate of growth, in the hardness of their wood, in the period of the flow or nature of their sap, &c.; but in a multitude of cases we can assign no reason whatever. Great diversity in the size of two plants, one being woody and the other herbaceous, one being evergreen and the other deciduous, and adaptation to widely different climates, does not always prevent the two grafting together. As in hybridisation, so with grafting, the capacity is limited by systematic affinity, for no one has been able to graft trees together belonging to quite distinct families; and, on the other hand, closely allied species, and varieties of the same species, can usually, but not invariably, be grafted with ease. But this capacity, as in hybridisation, is by no means absolutely governed by systematic affinity. Although many distinct genera within the same family have been grafted [262]together, in other cases species of the same genus will not take on each other. The pear can be grafted far more readily on the quince, which is ranked as a distinct genus, than on the apple, which is a member of the same genus. Even different varieties of the pear take with different degrees of facility on the quince; so do different varieties of the apricot and peach on certain varieties of the plum.

The rules and facts mentioned earlier clearly indicate that the sterility seen in both first crosses and hybrids is simply a result of unknown differences, mainly in the reproductive systems, of the species being crossed. These differences are so unique and specific that, in reciprocal crosses of two species, the male reproductive element of one can often interact freely with the female reproductive element of the other, but not the other way around. It’s helpful to illustrate what I mean by sterility being incidental due to other differences, rather than a special trait. Just as the ability of one plant to be grafted onto another is not critical for its survival in the wild, no one should assume this ability is a specially endowed quality; rather, it’s due to differences in how the two plants grow. Sometimes we can see why one tree doesn’t take to another due to differences in their growth rates, wood hardness, sap flow periods, etc.; however, in many cases, we cannot identify any reason at all. Great variations in the size of two plants—one being woody and the other herbaceous, one evergreen and the other deciduous, and their adaptations to very different climates—don’t always prevent successful grafting. Just like in hybridization, grafting ability is limited by systematic affinity, as no one has been able to graft trees from entirely different families; conversely, closely related species and varieties of the same species can typically, though not always, be grafted easily. Yet, this ability to graft, as in hybridization, isn’t strictly controlled by systematic affinity. While many distinct genera within the same family can be grafted together, there are instances where species of the same genus cannot be grafted onto each other. For example, the pear can be grafted much more successfully onto the quince, which is classified as a separate genus, than onto the apple, which belongs to the same genus. Additionally, different varieties of the pear can attach to the quince with varying levels of ease; the same goes for different varieties of apricot and peach when grafted onto certain varieties of plum.

As Gärtner found that there was sometimes an innate difference in different individuals of the same two species in crossing; so Sagaret believes this to be the case with different individuals of the same two species in being grafted together. As in reciprocal crosses, the facility of effecting an union is often very far from equal, so it sometimes is in grafting; the common gooseberry, for instance, cannot be grafted on the currant, whereas the currant will take, though with difficulty, on the gooseberry.

As Gärtner observed, there can be a natural difference in various individuals of the same two species when crossing; similarly, Sagaret believes this applies to different individuals of the same two species when being grafted together. Just like with reciprocal crosses, the ease of forming a union is often very unequal, and this can also happen in grafting. For example, the common gooseberry cannot be grafted onto the currant, while the currant can be grafted onto the gooseberry, although it’s challenging.

We have seen that the sterility of hybrids, which have their reproductive organs in an imperfect condition, is a very different case from the difficulty of uniting two pure species, which have their reproductive organs perfect; yet these two distinct cases run to a certain extent parallel. Something analogous occurs in grafting; for Thouin found that three species of Robinia, which seeded freely on their own roots, and which could be grafted with no great difficulty on another species, when thus grafted were rendered barren. On the other hand, certain species of Sorbus, when grafted on other species, yielded twice as much fruit as when on their own roots. We are reminded by this latter fact of the extraordinary case of Hippeastrum, Lobelia, &c., which seeded much more freely when fertilised with the pollen of distinct species, than when self-fertilised with their own pollen. [263]

We’ve observed that the sterility of hybrids, which have reproductive organs that aren’t fully developed, is quite different from the challenge of merging two pure species that have fully functional reproductive organs; yet these two situations do share some similarities. A similar phenomenon occurs in grafting; for instance, Thouin discovered that three species of Robinia, which produced seeds easily on their own roots and could be grafted onto another species without much trouble, became infertile once grafted. Conversely, certain species of Sorbus produced twice as much fruit when grafted onto other species as compared to when they were on their own roots. This latter fact reminds us of the remarkable case of Hippeastrum, Lobelia, etc., which produced seeds far more readily when fertilized with pollen from different species than when self-fertilized with their own pollen. [263]

We thus see, that although there is a clear and fundamental difference between the mere adhesion of grafted stocks, and the union of the male and female elements in the act of reproduction, yet that there is a rude degree of parallelism in the results of grafting and of crossing distinct species. And as we must look at the curious and complex laws governing the facility with which trees can be grafted on each other as incidental on unknown differences in their vegetative systems, so I believe that the still more complex laws governing the facility of first crosses, are incidental on unknown differences, chiefly in their reproductive systems. These differences, in both cases, follow to a certain extent, as might have been expected, systematic affinity, by which every kind of resemblance and dissimilarity between organic beings is attempted to be expressed. The facts by no means seem to me to indicate that the greater or lesser difficulty of either grafting or crossing together various species has been a special endowment; although in the case of crossing, the difficulty is as important for the endurance and stability of specific forms, as in the case of grafting it is unimportant for their welfare.

We can see that, while there is a clear and fundamental difference between simply joining grafted plants and the union of male and female elements during reproduction, there is still a basic similarity in the outcomes of grafting and crossing different species. Just as we need to consider the strange and complex rules that determine how easily trees can be grafted together as a result of unknown differences in their growth systems, I believe that the even more intricate rules influencing the ease of first crosses are due to unknown differences, mainly in their reproductive systems. These differences, in both cases, tend to follow a certain degree of systematic connection, which tries to express all types of resemblance and dissimilarity among living organisms. The facts do not suggest to me that the greater or lesser difficulty of either grafting or crossing various species has been a unique trait; however, in the case of crossing, the difficulty is crucial for the survival and stability of specific forms, while in the case of grafting, it is not important for their well-being.

 

Causes of the Sterility of first Crosses and of Hybrids.—We may now look a little closer at the probable causes of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. These two cases are fundamentally different, for, as just remarked, in the union of two pure species the male and female sexual elements are perfect, whereas in hybrids they are imperfect. Even in first crosses, the greater or lesser difficulty in effecting a union apparently depends on several distinct causes. There must sometimes be a physical impossibility in the male element reaching the ovule, as would be the case with a plant [264]having a pistil too long for the pollen-tubes to reach the ovarium. It has also been observed that when pollen of one species is placed on the stigma of a distantly allied species, though the pollen-tubes protrude, they do not penetrate the stigmatic surface. Again, the male element may reach the female element, but be incapable of causing an embryo to be developed, as seems to have been the case with some of Thuret's experiments on Fuci. No explanation can be given of these facts, any more than why certain trees cannot be grafted on others. Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then perish at an early period. This latter alternative has not been sufficiently attended to; but I believe, from observations communicated to me by Mr. Hewitt, who has had great experience in hybridising gallinaceous birds, that the early death of the embryo is a very frequent cause of sterility in first crosses. I was at first very unwilling to believe in this view; as hybrids, when once born, are generally healthy and long-lived, as we see in the case of the common mule. Hybrids, however, are differently circumstanced before and after birth: when born and living in a country where their two parents can live, they are generally placed under suitable conditions of life. But a hybrid partakes of only half of the nature and constitution of its mother, and therefore before birth, as long as it is nourished within its mother's womb or within the egg or seed produced by the mother, it may be exposed to conditions in some degree unsuitable, and consequently be liable to perish at an early period; more especially as all very young beings seem eminently sensitive to injurious or unnatural conditions of life.

Causes of the Sterility of First Crosses and Hybrids.—Now let's take a closer look at the likely reasons behind the sterility of first crosses and hybrids. These two situations are fundamentally different. As mentioned earlier, in the combination of two pure species, both the male and female reproductive elements are fully developed, while in hybrids, they are not. Even in first crosses, the varying difficulty of achieving a union seems to be influenced by several distinct factors. Sometimes, there is a physical barrier preventing the male element from reaching the ovule, which could happen if a plant has a pistil that is too long for the pollen tubes to reach the ovary. It's also been noted that when pollen from one species is placed on the stigma of a remotely related species, the pollen tubes may grow but won't penetrate the stigma's surface. Alternatively, the male element might reach the female element but fail to initiate embryo development, as was observed in some of Thuret's experiments on Fuci. There's no clear explanation for these occurrences, just as we can't explain why some trees cannot be grafted onto others. Lastly, an embryo might begin to develop but die early on. This scenario hasn't received enough attention, but based on observations from Mr. Hewitt, who has extensive experience breeding gallinaceous birds, I believe that the early death of an embryo is a common reason for sterility in first crosses. Initially, I was skeptical about this idea since hybrids, once born, are usually healthy and live long lives, as seen with the common mule. However, hybrids experience different circumstances before and after birth: when born in an environment where both parents can thrive, they tend to be raised under favorable conditions. A hybrid only inherits half of the nature and constitution of its mother, so while developing inside the mother's womb or within the egg or seed, it may be exposed to somewhat unsuitable conditions, leading to a higher risk of early death. This is especially true since very young organisms appear to be particularly sensitive to harmful or unnatural living conditions.

In regard to the sterility of hybrids, in which the sexual elements are imperfectly developed, the case is [265]very different. I have more than once alluded to a large body of facts, which I have collected, showing that when animals and plants are removed from their natural conditions, they are extremely liable to have their reproductive systems seriously affected. This, in fact, is the great bar to the domestication of animals. Between the sterility thus superinduced and that of hybrids, there are many points of similarity. In both cases the sterility is independent of general health, and is often accompanied by excess of size or great luxuriance. In both cases, the sterility occurs in various degrees; in both, the male element is the most liable to be affected; but sometimes the female more than the male. In both, the tendency goes to a certain extent with systematic affinity, for whole groups of animals and plants are rendered impotent by the same unnatural conditions; and whole groups of species tend to produce sterile hybrids. On the other hand, one species in a group will sometimes resist great changes of conditions with unimpaired fertility; and certain species in a group will produce unusually fertile hybrids. No one can tell, till he tries, whether any particular animal will breed under confinement or any exotic plant seed freely under culture; nor can he tell, till he tries, whether any two species of a genus will produce more or less sterile hybrids. Lastly, when organic beings are placed during several generations under conditions not natural to them, they are extremely liable to vary, which is due, as I believe, to their reproductive systems having been specially affected, though in a lesser degree than when sterility ensues. So it is with hybrids, for hybrids in successive generations are eminently liable to vary, as every experimentalist has observed.

When it comes to the sterility of hybrids, where the sexual parts are not fully developed, the situation is very different. I’ve mentioned several times a wealth of evidence I’ve gathered showing that when animals and plants are taken out of their natural environments, their reproductive systems can be greatly affected. This is actually the main obstacle to the domestication of animals. There are many similarities between the sterility caused by these unnatural conditions and that of hybrids. In both situations, the sterility is not linked to overall health and is often associated with excessive size or lushness. Sterility can occur to varying degrees in both cases, and the male element is typically the most affected, though sometimes the female is more impacted than the male. In both situations, there is a tendency related to systematic affinity; entire groups of animals and plants can become infertile due to the same unnatural conditions, and whole groups of species often produce sterile hybrids. Conversely, one species in a group might withstand significant changes in conditions and remain fertile, while certain species in a group can produce unusually fertile hybrids. No one can really know, until they try, whether a specific animal will reproduce in captivity or if any exotic plant seed will thrive in cultivation; the same goes for whether two species of a genus will produce hybrids that are more or less sterile. Lastly, when living beings are placed under unnatural conditions for several generations, they are very likely to change, which, I believe, is because their reproductive systems have been affected, though to a lesser extent than when sterility happens. The same applies to hybrids, as they are particularly prone to variation in successive generations, as every experimenter has noted.

Thus we see that when organic beings are placed under new and unnatural conditions, and when hybrids [266]are produced by the unnatural crossing of two species, the reproductive system, independently of the general state of health, is affected by sterility in a very similar manner. In the one case, the conditions of life have been disturbed, though often in so slight a degree as to be inappreciable by us; in the other case, or that of hybrids, the external conditions have remained the same, but the organisation has been disturbed by two different structures and constitutions having been blended into one. For it is scarcely possible that two organisations should be compounded into one, without some disturbance occurring in the development, or periodical action, or mutual relation of the different parts and organs one to another, or to the conditions of life. When hybrids are able to breed inter se, they transmit to their offspring from generation to generation the same compounded organisation, and hence we need not be surprised that their sterility, though in some degree variable, rarely diminishes.

So, we see that when living organisms are placed in new and unnatural conditions, and when hybrids [266]are created by the unnatural crossing of two species, the reproductive system, regardless of overall health, is similarly affected by sterility. In one case, the conditions of life have been disrupted, often to such a slight degree that we can’t even perceive it; in the other case, which involves hybrids, the external conditions remain the same, but the organization has been disrupted by the blending of two different structures and types. It’s hard to believe that two distinct organizations can merge into one without causing some issues in the development, regular functioning, or interactions between the various parts and organs, as well as their relationship to the living conditions. When hybrids can breed inter se, they pass on the same mixed organization to their offspring from generation to generation, so it’s not surprising that their sterility, while somewhat variable, rarely decreases.

It must, however, be confessed that we cannot understand, excepting on vague hypotheses, several facts with respect to the sterility of hybrids; for instance, the unequal fertility of hybrids produced from reciprocal crosses; or the increased sterility in those hybrids which occasionally and exceptionally resemble closely either pure parent. Nor do I pretend that the foregoing remarks go to the root of the matter: no explanation is offered why an organism, when placed under unnatural conditions, is rendered sterile. All that I have attempted to show, is that in two cases, in some respects allied, sterility is the common result,—in the one case from the conditions of life having been disturbed, in the other case from the organisation having been disturbed by two organisations having been compounded into one.

It must, however, be acknowledged that we cannot fully understand, except through vague theories, several facts regarding the sterility of hybrids; for example, the unequal fertility of hybrids created from reciprocal crosses; or the increased sterility in those hybrids that occasionally and exceptionally resemble one of the pure parents closely. Nor do I claim that the previous points get to the heart of the matter: no explanation is given for why an organism becomes sterile when placed under unnatural conditions. All I have tried to demonstrate is that in two related cases, sterility is the common outcome—one case due to disturbed living conditions, and the other due to the disruption of organization caused by combining two different organisms into one.

It may seem fanciful, but I suspect that a similar [267]parallelism extends to an allied yet very different class of facts. It is an old and almost universal belief, founded, I think, on a considerable body of evidence, that slight changes in the conditions of life are beneficial to all living things. We see this acted on by farmers and gardeners in their frequent exchanges of seed, tubers, &c., from one soil or climate to another, and back again. During the convalescence of animals, we plainly see that great benefit is derived from almost any change in the habits of life. Again, both with plants and animals, there is abundant evidence, that a cross between very distinct individuals of the same species, that is between members of different strains or sub-breeds, gives vigour and fertility to the offspring. I believe, indeed, from the facts alluded to in our fourth chapter, that a certain amount of crossing is indispensable even with hermaphrodites; and that close interbreeding continued during several generations between the nearest relations, especially if these be kept under the same conditions of life, always induces weakness and sterility in the progeny.

It might sound a bit far-fetched, but I think a similar [267]parallelism applies to a related but very different set of facts. It's an old and almost universal belief, which I believe is backed by a significant amount of evidence, that slight changes in living conditions benefit all living beings. We can see this practice among farmers and gardeners who frequently exchange seeds, tubers, etc., from one type of soil or climate to another, and then back again. During the recovery of animals, it's clear that any change in their lifestyle habits brings great benefits. Additionally, for both plants and animals, there is plenty of evidence that breeding between very different individuals of the same species, meaning members of different strains or sub-breeds, results in stronger and more fertile offspring. I truly believe, based on the facts mentioned in our fourth chapter, that some level of crossing is essential even in hermaphrodites; and that close inbreeding over several generations between close relatives, especially if they are kept in the same living conditions, will inevitably lead to weakness and sterility in their offspring.

Hence it seems that, on the one hand, slight changes in the conditions of life benefit all organic beings, and on the other hand, that slight crosses, that is crosses between the males and females of the same species which have varied and become slightly different, give vigour and fertility to the offspring. But we have seen that greater changes, or changes of a particular nature, often render organic beings in some degree sterile; and that greater crosses, that is crosses between males and females which have become widely or specifically different, produce hybrids which are generally sterile in some degree. I cannot persuade myself that this parallelism is an accident or an illusion. Both series of facts seem to be connected together by some [268]common but unknown bond, which is essentially related to the principle of life.

Therefore, it appears that, on one hand, minor changes in living conditions benefit all living organisms, and on the other hand, slight breeding—meaning the mating between males and females of the same species that have varied slightly—boosts the energy and fertility of the offspring. However, we've observed that more significant changes, or changes of a specific nature, often make living organisms somewhat sterile; and that more extensive breeding—referring to mating between males and females that have become widely or specifically different—tends to produce hybrids that are generally somewhat sterile. I can't convince myself that this parallelism is merely a coincidence or an illusion. Both sets of facts seem to be linked by some [268]common yet unknown connection, which is fundamentally related to the principle of life.

 

Fertility of Varieties when crossed, and of their Mongrel offspring.—It may be urged, as a most forcible argument, that there must be some essential distinction between species and varieties, and that there must be some error in all the foregoing remarks, inasmuch as varieties, however much they may differ from each other in external appearance, cross with perfect facility, and yield perfectly fertile offspring. I fully admit that this is almost invariably the case. But if we look to varieties produced under nature, we are immediately involved in hopeless difficulties; for if two hitherto reputed varieties be found in any degree sterile together, they are at once ranked by most naturalists as species. For instance, the blue and red pimpernel, the primrose and cowslip, which are considered by many of our best botanists as varieties, are said by Gärtner not to be quite fertile when crossed, and he consequently ranks them as undoubted species. If we thus argue in a circle, the fertility of all varieties produced under nature will assuredly have to be granted.

Fertility of Varieties when crossed, and of their Hybrid offspring.—It can be argued strongly that there must be a fundamental difference between species and varieties, and that there must be some mistake in all the previous comments, since varieties, no matter how different they may look, can easily cross and produce fertile offspring. I completely acknowledge that this is almost always true. However, when we look at varieties that occur naturally, we quickly encounter significant challenges; if two varieties that were previously thought to be distinct are found to be somewhat sterile together, most naturalists immediately classify them as species. For example, the blue and red pimpernel, as well as the primrose and cowslip, which many of our top botanists consider to be varieties, are stated by Gärtner to not be entirely fertile when crossed, and he therefore classifies them as definite species. If we keep reasoning in this way, the fertility of all varieties that occur naturally will certainly have to be accepted.

If we turn to varieties, produced, or supposed to have been produced, under domestication, we are still involved in doubt. For when it is stated, for instance, that the German Spitz dog unites more easily than other dogs with foxes, or that certain South American indigenous domestic dogs do not readily cross with European dogs, the explanation which will occur to every one, and probably the true one, is that these dogs have descended from several aboriginally distinct species. Nevertheless the perfect fertility of so many domestic varieties, differing widely from each other in appearance, for instance of the pigeon or of the cabbage, is [269]a remarkable fact; more especially when we reflect how many species there are, which, though resembling each other most closely, are utterly sterile when intercrossed. Several considerations, however, render the fertility of domestic varieties less remarkable than at first appears. It can, in the first place, be clearly shown that mere external dissimilarity between two species does not determine their greater or lesser degree of sterility when crossed; and we may apply the same rule to domestic varieties. In the second place, some eminent naturalists believe that a long course of domestication tends to eliminate sterility in the successive generations of hybrids which were at first only slightly sterile; and if this be so, we surely ought not to expect to find sterility both appearing and disappearing under nearly the same conditions of life. Lastly, and this seems to me by far the most important consideration, new races of animals and plants are produced under domestication by man's methodical and unconscious power of selection, for his own use and pleasure: he neither wishes to select, nor could select, slight differences in the reproductive system, or other constitutional differences correlated with the reproductive system. He supplies his several varieties with the same food; treats them in nearly the same manner, and does not wish to alter their general habits of life. Nature acts uniformly and slowly during vast periods of time on the whole organisation, in any way which may be for each creature's own good; and thus she may, either directly, or more probably indirectly, through correlation, modify the reproductive system in the several descendants from any one species. Seeing this difference in the process of selection, as carried on by man and nature, we need not be surprised at some difference in the result.

If we look at varieties produced, or thought to have been produced, through domestication, we still face uncertainty. For example, when it's said that the German Spitz dog can mix more easily with foxes than other dogs, or that some South American native domestic dogs don't easily breed with European dogs, the explanation that comes to mind—likely the correct one—is that these dogs descended from several originally distinct species. Still, the complete fertility of many domestic varieties, which vary greatly in appearance, such as pigeons or cabbage, is a noteworthy fact; especially when we consider how many species, despite looking very similar, are completely sterile when crossed. However, there are several reasons that make the fertility of domestic varieties less surprising than it first seems. First, it's clear that just because two species look different doesn’t mean they will have a greater or lesser degree of sterility when crossed, and the same applies to domestic varieties. Second, some prominent naturalists think that a long period of domestication helps eliminate sterility in successive generations of hybrids that were initially only slightly sterile; if this is true, we shouldn't expect to see sterility both appear and disappear under nearly the same living conditions. Lastly, and this seems to be the most important point, new breeds of animals and plants are created through man's systematic and often unintentional selection for his own benefit and enjoyment: he doesn't try to select for slight differences in the reproductive system or other related traits. He provides his different varieties with the same food, treats them similarly, and generally doesn't want to change their overall way of life. Nature operates consistently and slowly over long periods, affecting the whole organism in ways that benefit each creature; this can lead to modifications in the reproductive system among the descendants of any one species, either directly or, more likely, indirectly through correlation. Given this difference in how man and nature select, we shouldn't be surprised by some differences in the outcomes.

I have as yet spoken as if the varieties of the same [270]species were invariably fertile when intercrossed. But it seems to me impossible to resist the evidence of the existence of a certain amount of sterility in the few following cases, which I will briefly abstract. The evidence is at least as good as that from which we believe in the sterility of a multitude of species. The evidence is, also, derived from hostile witnesses, who in all other cases consider fertility and sterility as safe criterions of specific distinction. Gärtner kept during several years a dwarf kind of maize with yellow seeds, and a tall variety with red seeds, growing near each other in his garden; and although these plants have separated sexes, they never naturally crossed. He then fertilised thirteen flowers of the one with the pollen of the other; but only a single head produced any seed, and this one head produced only five grains. Manipulation in this case could not have been injurious, as the plants have separated sexes. No one, I believe, has suspected that these varieties of maize are distinct species; and it is important to notice that the hybrid plants thus raised were themselves perfectly fertile; so that even Gärtner did not venture to consider the two varieties as specifically distinct.

I have so far spoken as if different varieties of the same species were always fertile when crossed. However, I find it hard to ignore the evidence of some level of sterility in the few cases I'll briefly summarize. The evidence is at least as strong as what leads us to believe in the sterility of many species. Additionally, this evidence comes from unbiased sources, who in all other cases view fertility and sterility as reliable indicators of species differences. Gärtner kept a dwarf variety of maize with yellow seeds and a tall variety with red seeds growing next to each other in his garden for several years. Even though these plants have separate sexes, they never naturally crossed. He then fertilized thirteen flowers from one variety with the pollen from the other, but only one ear produced seeds, and that ear only yielded five grains. In this case, manipulation couldn’t have caused issues, as the plants have separate sexes. I believe no one has suggested that these varieties of maize are distinct species, and it's important to note that the hybrid plants produced were themselves perfectly fertile. So even Gärtner didn’t dare to consider the two varieties as separate species.

Girou de Buzareingues crossed three varieties of gourd, which like the maize has separated sexes, and he asserts that their mutual fertilisation is by so much the less easy as their differences are greater. How far these experiments may be trusted, I know not; but the forms experimentised on, are ranked by Sagaret, who mainly founds his classification by the test of infertility, as varieties.

Girou de Buzareingues crossed three types of gourd, which, like maize, have separate sexes, and he claims that their mutual fertilization becomes more difficult the greater their differences are. I'm not sure how reliable these experiments are, but the varieties tested are classified by Sagaret, who primarily bases his classification on the test of infertility, as varieties.

The following case is far more remarkable, and seems at first quite incredible; but it is the result of an astonishing number of experiments made during many years on nine species of Verbascum, by so good an observer [271]and so hostile a witness, as Gärtner: namely, that yellow and white varieties of the same species of Verbascum when intercrossed produce less seed, than do either coloured varieties when fertilised with pollen from their own coloured flowers. Moreover, he asserts that when yellow and white varieties of one species are crossed with yellow and white varieties of a distinct species, more seed is produced by the crosses between the similarly coloured flowers, than between those which are differently coloured. Yet these varieties of Verbascum present no other difference besides the mere colour of the flower; and one variety can sometimes be raised from the seed of the other.

The following case is much more remarkable and seems quite incredible at first; however, it comes from an astonishing number of experiments conducted over many years on nine species of Verbascum, by an excellent observer [271]and a very critical witness, Gärtner. Specifically, yellow and white varieties of the same Verbascum species, when crossbred, produce fewer seeds than either color variety when fertilized with pollen from their own colored flowers. Furthermore, he claims that when yellow and white varieties of one species are crossed with yellow and white varieties of a distinct species, more seeds are produced by the crosses between similarly colored flowers than between those that are differently colored. Yet, these varieties of Verbascum show no other differences besides the flower color, and one variety can sometimes be grown from the seeds of the other.

From observations which I have made on certain varieties of hollyhock, I am inclined to suspect that they present analogous facts.

From my observations of certain types of hollyhock, I suspect that they show similar patterns.

Kölreuter, whose accuracy has been confirmed by every subsequent observer, has proved the remarkable fact, that one variety of the common tobacco is more fertile, when crossed with a widely distinct species, than are the other varieties. He experimentised on five forms, which are commonly reputed to be varieties, and which he tested by the severest trial, namely, by reciprocal crosses, and he found their mongrel offspring perfectly fertile. But one of these five varieties, when used either as father or mother, and crossed with the Nicotiana glutinosa, always yielded hybrids not so sterile as those which were produced from the four other varieties when crossed with N. glutinosa. Hence the reproductive system of this one variety must have been in some manner and in some degree modified.

Kölreuter, whose findings have been backed by every observer since, has demonstrated the amazing fact that one variety of common tobacco is more fertile when crossed with a very different species than the other varieties. He experimented with five forms, which are generally considered to be varieties, and tested them rigorously through reciprocal crossings, finding that their mixed offspring were completely fertile. However, one of these five varieties, when used as either the male or female parent and crossed with Nicotiana glutinosa, consistently produced hybrids that were less sterile than those from the other four varieties crossed with N. glutinosa. Therefore, the reproductive system of this one variety must have been somehow and to some degree altered.

From these facts; from the great difficulty of ascertaining the infertility of varieties in a state of nature, for a supposed variety if infertile in any degree would generally be ranked as species; from man selecting only [272]external characters in the production of the most distinct domestic varieties, and from not wishing or being able to produce recondite and functional differences in the reproductive system; from these several considerations and facts, I do not think that the very general fertility of varieties can be proved to be of universal occurrence, or to form a fundamental distinction between varieties and species. The general fertility of varieties does not seem to me sufficient to overthrow the view which I have taken with respect to the very general, but not invariable, sterility of first crosses and of hybrids, namely, that it is not a special endowment, but is incidental on slowly acquired modifications, more especially in the reproductive systems of the forms which are crossed.

From these facts; considering the great difficulty of determining the infertility of varieties in their natural state, as any variety deemed infertile to any extent would usually be classified as a separate species; from the fact that humans only select external traits to create the most distinct domestic varieties, and from the lack of desire or ability to produce subtle and functional differences in the reproductive system; based on these various considerations and facts, I don’t believe that the widespread fertility of varieties can be conclusively proven to be universally applicable, or to create a fundamental distinction between varieties and species. The overall fertility of varieties doesn’t seem strong enough to contradict my perspective regarding the generally frequent, but not consistent, sterility of first crosses and hybrids, which I believe is not a special trait, but rather an incidental result of slowly acquired modifications, particularly in the reproductive systems of the forms that are being crossed.

 

Hybrids and Mongrels compared, independently of their fertility.—Independently of the question of fertility, the offspring of species when crossed and of varieties when crossed may be compared in several other respects. Gärtner, whose strong wish was to draw a marked line of distinction between species and varieties, could find very few and, as it seems to me, quite unimportant differences between the so-called hybrid offspring of species, and the so-called mongrel offspring of varieties. And, on the other hand, they agree most closely in very many important respects.

Hybrids and Mongrels compared, independently of their fertility.—Aside from the issue of fertility, the offspring produced from crossing different species and those from crossing different varieties can be compared in various other ways. Gärtner, who was eager to clearly distinguish between species and varieties, found very few and, in my opinion, rather insignificant differences between the so-called hybrid offspring of species and the so-called mongrel offspring of varieties. Moreover, they are very similar in many important ways.

I shall here discuss this subject with extreme brevity. The most important distinction is, that in the first generation mongrels are more variable than hybrids; but Gärtner admits that hybrids from species which have long been cultivated are often variable in the first generation; and I have myself seen striking instances of this fact. Gärtner further admits that hybrids between very closely allied species are more variable [273]than those from very distinct species; and this shows that the difference in the degree of variability graduates away. When mongrels and the more fertile hybrids are propagated for several generations an extreme amount of variability in their offspring is notorious; but some few cases both of hybrids and mongrels long retaining uniformity of character could be given. The variability, however, in the successive generations of mongrels is, perhaps, greater than in hybrids.

I will discuss this topic briefly. The key difference is that in the first generation, mongrels are more variable than hybrids; however, Gärtner acknowledges that hybrids from species that have been cultivated for a long time can also be variable in the first generation, and I have personally witnessed compelling examples of this. Gärtner also notes that hybrids between very closely related species are more variable than those from very different species, indicating that the difference in variability diminishes over time. When mongrels and the more fertile hybrids are bred for several generations, their offspring tend to show a significant amount of variability; however, there are a few cases where both hybrids and mongrels maintain uniformity over time. Nonetheless, the variability in successive generations of mongrels may be greater than that in hybrids.

This greater variability of mongrels than of hybrids does not seem to me at all surprising. For the parents of mongrels are varieties, and mostly domestic varieties (very few experiments having been tried on natural varieties), and this implies in most cases that there has been recent variability; and therefore we might expect that such variability would often continue and be superadded to that arising from the mere act of crossing. The slight degree of variability in hybrids from the first cross or in the first generation, in contrast with their extreme variability in the succeeding generations, is a curious fact and deserves attention. For it bears on and corroborates the view which I have taken on the cause of ordinary variability; namely, that it is due to the reproductive system being eminently sensitive to any change in the conditions of life, being thus often rendered either impotent or at least incapable of its proper function of producing offspring identical with the parent-form. Now hybrids in the first generation are descended from species (excluding those long cultivated) which have not had their reproductive systems in any way affected, and they are not variable; but hybrids themselves have their reproductive systems seriously affected, and their descendants are highly variable.

The greater variability seen in mongrels compared to hybrids doesn’t surprise me at all. Mongrels come from different varieties, mostly domestic ones (since very few experiments have been done on natural varieties), which usually indicates recent variability. Therefore, we might expect that this variability would often continue and combine with the changes from simply crossing them. The minimal variability in hybrids from the first cross or in the first generation, compared to their significant variability in later generations, is an interesting observation and deserves attention. This supports my idea about the cause of normal variability, which is that it stems from the reproductive system being highly sensitive to changes in living conditions, often making it either ineffective or at least unable to perform its role of producing offspring that are identical to the parent. Hybrids in the first generation come from species (not including those that have been cultivated for a long time) whose reproductive systems haven't been affected, which is why they aren’t variable; however, hybrids themselves do have their reproductive systems significantly impacted, resulting in their descendants being highly variable.

But to return to our comparison of mongrels and [274]hybrids: Gärtner states that mongrels are more liable than hybrids to revert to either parent-form; but this, if it be true, is certainly only a difference in degree. Gärtner further insists that when any two species, although most closely allied to each other, are crossed with a third species, the hybrids are widely different from each other; whereas if two very distinct varieties of one species are crossed with another species, the hybrids do not differ much. But this conclusion, as far as I can make out, is founded on a single experiment; and seems directly opposed to the results of several experiments made by Kölreuter.

But to go back to our comparison of mongrels and [274]hybrids: Gärtner claims that mongrels are more likely than hybrids to revert to one of their parent forms; but if this is true, it’s really just a matter of degree. Gärtner also argues that when two species, even if they are very similar, are crossed with a third species, the hybrids end up being quite different from each other; whereas if two very distinct varieties of the same species are crossed with another species, the hybrids don’t differ much. However, as far as I can tell, this conclusion is based on just one experiment and seems to go against the results of several experiments conducted by Kölreuter.

These alone are the unimportant differences, which Gärtner is able to point out, between hybrid and mongrel plants. On the other hand, the resemblance in mongrels and in hybrids to their respective parents, more especially in hybrids produced from nearly related species, follows according to Gärtner the same laws. When two species are crossed, one has sometimes a prepotent power of impressing its likeness on the hybrid; and so I believe it to be with varieties of plants. With animals one variety certainly often has this prepotent power over another variety. Hybrid plants produced from a reciprocal cross, generally resemble each other closely; and so it is with mongrels from a reciprocal cross. Both hybrids and mongrels can be reduced to either pure parent-form, by repeated crosses in successive generations with either parent.

These are the minor differences that Gärtner can identify between hybrid and mongrel plants. However, the similarities in mongrels and hybrids to their respective parent species, especially in hybrids formed from closely related species, follow the same principles according to Gärtner. When two species are crossed, one can sometimes dominate and strongly influence the appearance of the hybrid; I think this is also true for plant varieties. With animals, one variety often has this dominating influence over another. Hybrid plants from a reciprocal cross usually look very similar to each other, and the same applies to mongrels from a reciprocal cross. Both hybrids and mongrels can revert to either pure parent form through repeated crossings with either parent over multiple generations.

These several remarks are apparently applicable to animals; but the subject is here excessively complicated, partly owing to the existence of secondary sexual characters; but more especially owing to prepotency in transmitting likeness running more strongly in one sex than in the other, both when one species is crossed with another, and when, one variety is crossed with [275]another variety. For instance, I think those authors are right, who maintain that the ass has a prepotent power over the horse, so that both the mule and the hinny more resemble the ass than the horse; but that the prepotency runs more strongly in the male-ass than in the female, so that the mule, which is the offspring of the male-ass and mare, is more like an ass, than is the hinny, which is the offspring of the female-ass and stallion.

These various comments clearly apply to animals, but the topic is quite complex here, partly due to the presence of secondary sexual traits and more significantly because of the strong tendency for one sex to transmit traits more effectively than the other. This occurs both when one species is crossed with another and when one variety is crossed with another variety. For example, I believe those researchers are correct in asserting that the donkey has a dominant influence over the horse, causing both the mule and the hinny to resemble the donkey more than the horse. However, this dominance is more pronounced in the male donkey than in the female, meaning that the mule, which is the offspring of the male donkey and mare, resembles a donkey more than the hinny, which is the offspring of the female donkey and stallion.

Much stress has been laid by some authors on the supposed fact, that mongrel animals alone are born closely like one of their parents; but it can be shown that this does sometimes occur with hybrids; yet I grant much less frequently with hybrids than with mongrels. Looking to the cases which I have collected of cross-bred animals closely resembling one parent, the resemblances seem chiefly confined to characters almost monstrous in their nature, and which have suddenly appeared—such as albinism, melanism, deficiency of tail or horns, or additional fingers and toes; and do not relate to characters which have been slowly acquired by selection. Consequently, sudden reversions to the perfect character of either parent would be more likely to occur with mongrels, which are descended from varieties often suddenly produced and semi-monstrous in character, than with hybrids, which are descended from species slowly and naturally produced. On the whole I entirely agree with Dr. Prosper Lucas, who, after arranging an enormous body of facts with respect to animals, comes to the conclusion, that the laws of resemblance of the child to its parents are the same, whether the two parents differ much or little from each other, namely in the union of individuals of the same variety, or of different varieties, or of distinct species.

Many authors have emphasized the idea that only mixed-breed animals closely resemble one of their parents. However, it can be demonstrated that this also happens with hybrids, although I admit it's less common in hybrids than in mixed-breeds. Looking at the cases I've gathered of crossbred animals that closely resemble one parent, the similarities seem mostly tied to traits that are almost monstrous in nature and that have appeared suddenly—such as albinism, melanism, loss of tails or horns, or extra fingers and toes; these traits are not related to characteristics that have been developed slowly through selection. Therefore, sudden reappearances of the perfect traits of either parent are more likely to occur with mixed-breeds, which come from varieties often produced suddenly and with semi-monstrous traits, than with hybrids, which are derived from species that have developed slowly and naturally. Overall, I completely agree with Dr. Prosper Lucas, who, after compiling a vast amount of data on animals, concludes that the laws of resemblance between offspring and parents are the same, whether the parents differ significantly or only slightly from one another, whether they are individuals of the same variety, different varieties, or distinct species.

Laying aside the question of fertility and sterility, [276]in all other respects there seems to be a general and close similarity in the offspring of crossed species, and of crossed varieties. If we look at species as having been specially created, and at varieties as having been produced by secondary laws, this similarity would be an astonishing fact. But it harmonises perfectly with the view that there is no essential distinction between species and varieties.

Ignoring the issue of fertility and sterility, [276]in every other way, there appears to be a strong and notable similarity in the offspring of crossed species and crossed varieties. If we consider species to have been specially created and varieties to have emerged through secondary processes, this similarity would be remarkable. However, it aligns perfectly with the idea that there is no fundamental difference between species and varieties.

 

Summary of Chapter.—First crosses between forms sufficiently distinct to be ranked as species, and their hybrids, are very generally, but not universally, sterile. The sterility is of all degrees, and is often so slight that the two most careful experimentalists who have ever lived, have come to diametrically opposite conclusions in ranking forms by this test. The sterility is innately variable in individuals of the same species, and is eminently susceptible of favourable and unfavourable conditions. The degree of sterility does not strictly follow systematic affinity, but is governed by several curious and complex laws. It is generally different, and sometimes widely different, in reciprocal crosses between the same two species. It is not always equal in degree in a first cross and in the hybrid produced from this cross.

Summary of Chapter.—The first crosses between forms that are distinct enough to be considered separate species, as well as their hybrids, are generally, though not always, sterile. The sterility can vary widely and often is so slight that the two most thorough experimentalists in history have reached completely opposite conclusions when ranking forms based on this criterion. Sterility varies naturally among individuals of the same species and can be significantly affected by both favorable and unfavorable conditions. The level of sterility doesn't strictly align with systematic relationships but is influenced by several fascinating and complex factors. It often differs, and sometimes varies significantly, in reciprocal crosses between the same two species. Additionally, the sterility level is not always the same in a first cross and in the hybrid produced from that cross.

In the same manner as in grafting trees, the capacity of one species or variety to take on another, is incidental on generally unknown differences in their vegetative systems, so in crossing, the greater or less facility of one species to unite with another, is incidental on unknown differences in their reproductive systems. There is no more reason to think that species have been specially endowed with various degrees of sterility to prevent them crossing and blending in nature, than to think that trees have been specially endowed with various and [277]somewhat analogous degrees of difficulty in being grafted together in order to prevent them becoming inarched in our forests.

In the same way that grafting trees depends on usually unknown differences in their vegetative systems, crossing species relies on unknown differences in their reproductive systems. There’s no more reason to believe that species have been specially designed with varying levels of sterility to stop them from crossing and blending in nature than to think that trees have been intentionally given different levels of difficulty in being grafted together to prevent them from merging in our forests. [277]

The sterility of first crosses between pure species, which have their reproductive systems perfect, seems to depend on several circumstances; in some cases largely on the early death of the embryo. The sterility of hybrids, which have their reproductive systems imperfect, and which have had this system and their whole organisation disturbed by being compounded of two distinct species, seems closely allied to that sterility which so frequently affects pure species, when their natural conditions of life have been disturbed. This view is supported by a parallelism of another kind;—namely, that the crossing of forms only slightly different is favourable to the vigour and fertility of their offspring; and that slight changes in the conditions of life are apparently favourable to the vigour and fertility of all organic beings. It is not surprising that the degree of difficulty in uniting two species, and the degree of sterility of their hybrid-offspring should generally correspond, though due to distinct causes; for both depend on the amount of difference of some kind between the species which are crossed. Nor is it surprising that the facility of effecting a first cross, the fertility of the hybrids produced from it, and the capacity of being grafted together—though this latter capacity evidently depends on widely different circumstances—should all run, to a certain extent, parallel with the systematic affinity of the forms which are subjected to experiment; for systematic affinity attempts to express all kinds of resemblance between all species.

The infertility of the first hybrids between pure species, which have perfect reproductive systems, seems to depend on several factors; in some instances, it’s largely due to the early death of the embryo. The infertility of hybrids, which have imperfect reproductive systems and whose entire makeup has been disrupted by being made up of two different species, appears closely related to the infertility that often impacts pure species when their natural living conditions have been altered. This perspective is backed by a different kind of parallel; specifically, that crossing forms that are only slightly different enhances the vigor and fertility of their offspring; and that minor changes in living conditions seem to benefit the vigor and fertility of all living beings. It’s not surprising that the difficulty of uniting two species and the level of infertility of their hybrid offspring generally correspond, even though they stem from different causes; both depend on the degree of difference between the species being crossed. It’s also not surprising that the ease of making a first cross, the fertility of the resulting hybrids, and the ability to graft them together—although this last ability is clearly influenced by very different factors—should all be somewhat aligned with the systematic relationship of the forms involved in the experiment; because systematic relationship seeks to illustrate all kinds of similarities between all species.

First crosses between forms known to be varieties, or sufficiently alike to be considered as varieties, and their mongrel offspring, are very generally, but not quite [278]universally, fertile. Nor is this nearly general and perfect fertility surprising, when we remember how liable we are to argue in a circle with respect to varieties in a state of nature; and when we remember that the greater number of varieties have been produced under domestication by the selection of mere external differences, and not of differences in the reproductive system. In all other respects, excluding fertility, there is a close general resemblance between hybrids and mongrels. Finally, then, the facts briefly given in this chapter do not seem to me opposed to, but even rather to support the view, that there is no fundamental distinction between species and varieties.

First crosses between forms known to be varieties, or similar enough to be considered varieties, and their mixed offspring are generally, though not entirely, fertile. This near-universal fertility is not surprising when we consider how often we fall into circular reasoning regarding varieties in nature. Additionally, most varieties have been produced under domestication through the selection of superficial differences rather than differences in the reproductive system. In every other aspect, apart from fertility, there is a significant general resemblance between hybrids and mongrels. Therefore, the facts briefly presented in this chapter seem to support, rather than contradict, the idea that there is no fundamental difference between species and varieties.


[279]

[279]

CHAPTER IX.

On the Imperfection of the Geological Record.

On the Incompleteness of the Geological Record.

On the absence of intermediate varieties at the present day—On the nature of extinct intermediate varieties; on their number—On the vast lapse of time, as inferred from the rate of deposition and of denudation—On the poorness of our palæontological collections—On the intermittence of geological formations—On the absence of intermediate varieties in any one formation—On the sudden appearance of groups of species—On their sudden appearance in the lowest known fossiliferous strata.

Regarding the absence of intermediate varieties today—About the nature of extinct intermediate varieties; how many there were—About the immense amount of time suggested by deposition and erosion rates—About the limited quality of our paleontological collections—About the irregularity of geological formations—About the lack of intermediate varieties within any one formation—About the sudden appearance of groups of species—About their abrupt emergence in the oldest known fossil-rich layers.

In the sixth chapter I enumerated the chief objections which might be justly urged against the views maintained in this volume. Most of them have now been discussed. One, namely the distinctness of specific forms, and their not being blended together by innumerable transitional links, is a very obvious difficulty. I assigned reasons why such links do not commonly occur at the present day, under the circumstances apparently most favourable for their presence, namely on an extensive and continuous area with graduated physical conditions. I endeavoured to show, that the life of each species depends in a more important manner on the presence of other already defined organic forms, than on climate; and, therefore, that the really governing conditions of life do not graduate away quite insensibly like heat or moisture. I endeavoured, also, to show that intermediate varieties, from existing in lesser numbers than the forms which they connect, will generally be beaten out and exterminated during the course of further modification and improvement. The main cause, however, of innumerable intermediate links not now occurring everywhere throughout nature [280]depends on the very process of natural selection, through which new varieties continually take the places of and exterminate their parent-forms. But just in proportion as this process of extermination has acted on an enormous scale, so must the number of intermediate varieties, which have formerly existed on the earth, be truly enormous. Why then is not every geological formation and every stratum full of such intermediate links? Geology assuredly does not reveal any such finely graduated organic chain; and this, perhaps, is the most obvious and gravest objection which can be urged against my theory. The explanation lies, as I believe, in the extreme imperfection of the geological record.

In the sixth chapter, I outlined the main objections that could be fairly raised against the ideas presented in this book. Most of these have now been addressed. One significant challenge is the distinctiveness of specific forms and the lack of numerous transitional links connecting them. This is a clear issue. I provided reasons why these links are not often found today, even in situations that seem most conducive to their existence, specifically on large, continuous areas with varying physical conditions. I argued that the survival of each species relies more on the presence of other established organic forms than on climate; thus, the key conditions for life don’t fade away smoothly like heat or moisture. I also suggested that intermediate varieties, being less numerous than the forms they link, are usually outcompeted and eliminated as modification and improvement occur. However, the main reason so many intermediate links aren't found throughout nature today depends on the process of natural selection, where new varieties continuously replace and eliminate their parent forms. The scale of this extermination process indicates that the number of intermediate varieties that once existed must have been quite large. So, why are geological formations and layers not filled with these intermediate links? Geology certainly doesn’t show such a finely graduated organic chain, and this might be the most straightforward and serious objection to my theory. I believe the explanation lies in the significant gaps in the geological record.

In the first place it should always be borne in mind what sort of intermediate forms must, on my theory, have formerly existed. I have found it difficult, when looking at any two species, to avoid picturing to myself, forms directly intermediate between them. But this is a wholly false view; we should always look for forms intermediate between each species and a common but unknown progenitor; and the progenitor will generally have differed in some respects from all its modified descendants. To give a simple illustration: the fantail and pouter pigeons have both descended from the rock-pigeon; if we possessed all the intermediate varieties which have ever existed, we should have an extremely close series between both and the rock-pigeon; but we should have no varieties directly intermediate between the fantail and pouter; none, for instance, combining a tail somewhat expanded with a crop somewhat enlarged, the characteristic features of these two breeds. These two breeds, moreover, have become so much modified, that if we had no historical or indirect evidence regarding their origin, it would not have been possible to have [281]determined from a mere comparison of their structure with that of the rock-pigeon, whether they had descended from this species or from some other allied species, such as C. oenas.

First of all, it’s important to remember what kind of intermediate forms, according to my theory, must have existed in the past. I've found it challenging, when looking at any two species, to avoid envisioning forms that are directly intermediate between them. But that’s a completely misleading perspective; we should always look for forms that are intermediate between each species and a common, but unknown, ancestor. This ancestor will typically have differed in some ways from all its modified descendants. For example: the fantail and pouter pigeons both come from the rock-pigeon. If we had all the intermediate varieties that have ever existed, we would have a very close series between both and the rock-pigeon; however, we wouldn’t find any varieties that are directly intermediate between the fantail and pouter. There are none, for instance, that combine a somewhat expanded tail with a somewhat enlarged crop, which are the defining features of these two breeds. Additionally, these two breeds have been modified so significantly that if we only relied on historical or indirect evidence about their origin, it would be impossible to determine, just by comparing their structure with that of the rock-pigeon, whether they came from this species or from some other related species, like C. oenas.

So with natural species, if we look to forms very distinct, for instance to the horse and tapir, we have no reason to suppose that links ever existed directly intermediate between them, but between each and an unknown common parent. The common parent will have had in its whole organisation much general resemblance to the tapir and to the horse; but in some points of structure may have differed considerably from both, even perhaps more than they differ from each other. Hence in all such cases, we should be unable to recognise the parent-form of any two or more species, even if we closely compared the structure of the parent with that of its modified descendants, unless at the same time we had a nearly perfect chain of the intermediate links.

So, with natural species, if we consider very distinct forms, like the horse and the tapir, we have no reason to think that direct links ever existed between them, but rather between each of them and some unknown common ancestor. This common ancestor would have had a general resemblance to both the tapir and the horse overall, but in certain structural aspects, it might have differed significantly from both, possibly even more than they differ from each other. Therefore, in such cases, we would not be able to identify the parent form of any two or more species, even if we closely compared the structure of the ancestor with that of its modified descendants, unless we also had a nearly complete chain of intermediate links.

It is just possible by my theory, that one of two living forms might have descended from the other; for instance, a horse from a tapir; and in this case direct intermediate links will have existed between them. But such a case would imply that one form had remained for a very long period unaltered, whilst its descendants had undergone a vast amount of change; and the principle of competition between organism and organism, between child and parent, will render this a very rare event; for in all cases the new and improved forms of life tend to supplant the old and unimproved forms.

It’s possible according to my theory that one of two living forms could have evolved from the other; for example, a horse from a tapir. In this scenario, there would have been direct intermediate links between them. However, this would mean that one form stayed the same for a very long time while its descendants went through significant changes; and the competition between organisms, between offspring and parents, makes this a very rare occurrence. In most cases, newer and better forms of life tend to replace older and less advanced ones.

By the theory of natural selection all living species have been connected with the parent-species of each genus, by differences not greater than we see between the varieties of the same species at the present [282]day; and these parent-species, now generally extinct, have in their turn been similarly connected with more ancient species; and so on backwards, always converging to the common ancestor of each great class. So that the number of intermediate and transitional links, between all living and extinct species, must have been inconceivably great. But assuredly, if this theory be true, such have lived upon this earth.

According to the theory of natural selection, all living species are connected to the parent species of each genus by differences no greater than those we see among the varieties of the same species today [282]; and these parent species, which are mostly extinct now, were also connected to even older species in the same way; and this pattern continues back, always linking to the common ancestor of each major class. Therefore, the number of intermediate and transitional links between all living and extinct species must have been unimaginably large. If this theory is correct, then such species have indeed existed on this earth.

 

On the lapse of Time.—Independently of our not finding fossil remains of such infinitely numerous connecting links, it may be objected, that time will not have sufficed for so great an amount of organic change, all changes having been effected very slowly through natural selection. It is hardly possible for me even to recall to the reader, who may not be a practical geologist, the facts leading the mind feebly to comprehend the lapse of time. He who can read Sir Charles Lyell's grand work on the Principles of Geology, which the future historian will recognise as having produced a revolution in natural science, yet does not admit how incomprehensively vast have been the past periods of time, may at once close this volume. Not that it suffices to study the Principles of Geology, or to read special treatises by different observers on separate formations, and to mark how each author attempts to give an inadequate idea of the duration of each formation or even each stratum. A man must for years examine for himself great piles of superimposed strata, and watch the sea at work grinding down old rocks and making fresh sediment, before he can hope to comprehend anything of the lapse of time, the monuments of which we see around us.

On the passage of Time.—Aside from the fact that we can’t find fossil remains of such countless connecting links, one might argue that there hasn’t been enough time for such a significant amount of organic change, as all changes have occurred very slowly through natural selection. It’s tough for me to remind the reader, who might not be a practical geologist, of the facts that help us vaguely grasp the concept of time passing. Anyone who can read Sir Charles Lyell's remarkable work on the Principles of Geology, which future historians will acknowledge as having sparked a revolution in natural science, yet still can't recognize how incomprehensibly vast the past periods of time have been, should just stop reading this book. It's not enough to study the Principles of Geology or to read specialized writings by different researchers on various formations and note how each tries to convey the inadequacy of understanding the duration of each formation or even each layer. A person must spend years examining large stacks of layered rocks and observe the sea as it erodes old rocks and creates new sediment before they can hope to grasp anything about the passage of time represented by the landmarks we see around us.

It is good to wander along lines of sea-coast, when formed of moderately hard rocks, and mark the [283]process of degradation. The tides in most cases reach the cliffs only for a short time twice a day, and the waves eat into them only when they are charged with sand or pebbles; for there is good evidence that pure water can effect little or nothing in wearing away rock. At last the base of the cliff is undermined, huge fragments fall down, and these remaining fixed, have to be worn away, atom by atom, until reduced in size they can be rolled about by the waves, and then are more quickly ground into pebbles, sand, or mud. But how often do we see along the bases of retreating cliffs rounded boulders, all thickly clothed by marine productions, showing how little they are abraded and how seldom they are rolled about! Moreover, if we follow for a few miles any line of rocky cliff, which is undergoing degradation, we find that it is only here and there, along a short length or round a promontory, that the cliffs are at the present time suffering. The appearance of the surface and the vegetation show that elsewhere years have elapsed since the waters washed their base.

It’s nice to stroll along the coastline when it’s made up of moderately hard rocks and observe the process of erosion. The tides usually only reach the cliffs for a brief period twice a day, and the waves only wear them down when they’re carrying sand or pebbles. There’s clear evidence that pure water has little effect on eroding rock. Eventually, the bottom of the cliff gets eroded, large chunks collapse, and those that remain fixed get worn down, grain by grain, until they’re small enough to be rolled about by the waves, which then grind them into pebbles, sand, or mud more quickly. Yet, how often do we find rounded boulders at the bases of retreating cliffs, densely covered with marine life, indicating how little they have worn down and how rarely they get moved around? Furthermore, if we follow any section of a rocky cliff that’s eroding for a few miles, we’ll notice that it’s only in specific spots, like along a short stretch or around a point, that the cliffs are currently being impacted. The condition of the surface and the vegetation indicates that in other areas, it’s been years since the waves washed against their base.

He who most closely studies the action of the sea on our shores, will, I believe, be most deeply impressed with the slowness with which rocky coasts are worn away. The observations on this head by Hugh Miller, and by that excellent observer Mr. Smith of Jordan Hill, are most impressive. With the mind thus impressed, let any one examine beds of conglomerate many thousand feet in thickness, which, though probably formed at a quicker rate than many other deposits, yet, from being formed of worn and rounded pebbles, each of which bears the stamp of time, are good to show how slowly the mass has been accumulated. In the Cordillera I estimated one pile of conglomerate at ten thousand feet in thickness. Let the [284]observer remember Lyell's profound remark that the thickness and extent of sedimentary formations are the result and measure of the degradation which the earth's crust has elsewhere suffered. And what an amount of degradation is implied by the sedimentary deposits of many countries! Professor Ramsay has given me the maximum thickness, in most cases from actual measurement, in a few cases from estimate, of each formation in different parts of Great Britain; and this is the result:—

Whoever studies the action of the sea on our shores most closely will, I believe, be most struck by how slowly rocky coasts are eroded. The observations by Hugh Miller and the keen observer Mr. Smith of Jordan Hill are very compelling. With that understanding, anyone should examine conglomerate beds that are thousands of feet thick, which, although likely formed more quickly than many other deposits, show how slowly the total mass has built up because they consist of worn and rounded pebbles, each showing the effects of time. In the Cordillera, I estimated one pile of conglomerate to be ten thousand feet thick. Let the [284]observer keep in mind Lyell's insightful remark that the thickness and extent of sedimentary formations reflect the degradation the earth's crust has experienced elsewhere. And just think about how much degradation is suggested by the sedimentary deposits found in many countries! Professor Ramsay has provided me with the maximum thickness of each formation in different parts of Great Britain, derived mostly from actual measurements and in some cases from estimates, and this is the result:—

Feet.

Feet.

Palæozoic strata (not including igneous beds)

Paleozoic layers (excluding igneous formations)

57,154

57,154

Secondary strata

Secondary layers

13,190

13,190

Tertiary strata

Tertiary layers

2,240

2,240

—making altogether 72,584 feet; that is, very nearly thirteen and three-quarters British miles. Some of the formations, which are represented in England by thin beds, are thousands of feet in thickness on the Continent. Moreover, between each successive formation, we have, in the opinion of most geologists, enormously long blank periods. So that the lofty pile of sedimentary rocks in Britain, gives but an inadequate idea of the time which has elapsed during their accumulation; yet what time this must have consumed! Good observers have estimated that sediment is deposited by the great Mississippi river at the rate of only 600 feet in a hundred thousand years. This estimate has no pretension to strict exactness; yet, considering over what wide spaces very fine sediment is transported by the currents of the sea, the process of accumulation in any one area must be extremely slow.

—making a total of 72,584 feet; that’s almost thirteen and three-quarters British miles. Some of the formations, which are shown in England by thin layers, are thousands of feet thick on the Continent. Moreover, between each successive formation, most geologists believe there are incredibly long blank periods. So, the impressive stack of sedimentary rocks in Britain gives only a limited understanding of the time that has passed during their buildup; yet think about how much time this must have taken! Good observers have estimated that sediment is deposited by the great Mississippi River at a rate of only 600 feet in a hundred thousand years. This estimate isn't perfectly precise; however, considering the vast distances over which very fine sediment is carried by the sea currents, the accumulation process in any one area must be extremely slow.

But the amount of denudation which the strata have in many places suffered, independently of the rate of accumulation of the degraded matter, probably offers the best evidence of the lapse of time. I remember [285]having been much struck with the evidence of denudation, when viewing volcanic islands, which have been worn by the waves and pared all round into perpendicular cliffs of one or two thousand feet in height; for the gentle slope of the lava-streams, due to their formerly liquid state, showed at a glance how far the hard, rocky beds had once extended into the open ocean. The same story is still more plainly told by faults,—those great cracks along which the strata have been upheaved on one side, or thrown down on the other, to the height or depth of thousands of feet; for since the crust cracked, the surface of the land has been so completely planed down by the action of the sea, that no trace of these vast dislocations is externally visible.

But the extent of erosion that the layers have experienced in many areas, regardless of how fast the worn materials are accumulating, likely provides the clearest evidence of the passage of time. I remember [285]being really struck by the signs of erosion when looking at volcanic islands, which have been worn down by the waves and shaped all around into vertical cliffs that are one or two thousand feet high; the gentle slope of the lava flows, because they were once liquid, clearly showed how far the solid, rocky layers used to reach into the open ocean. The same narrative is even more clearly illustrated by faults—those massive cracks where the layers have been lifted on one side or dropped on the other by thousands of feet; since the crust fractured, the land's surface has been so thoroughly flattened by the sea's action that no evidence of these enormous dislocations is visible on the surface.

The Craven fault, for instance, extends for upwards of 30 miles, and along this line the vertical displacement of the strata has varied from 600 to 3000 feet. Prof. Ramsay has published an account of a downthrow in Anglesea of 2300 feet; and he informs me that he fully believes there is one in Merionethshire of 12,000 feet; yet in these cases there is nothing on the surface to show such prodigious movements; the pile of rocks on the one or other side having been smoothly swept away. The consideration of these facts impresses my mind almost in the same manner as does the vain endeavour to grapple with the idea of eternity.

The Craven fault, for example, stretches over 30 miles, and along this line, the vertical shift of the rock layers has ranged from 600 to 3000 feet. Prof. Ramsay has published a report of a drop in Anglesea of 2300 feet; he also tells me that he truly believes there’s one in Merionethshire of 12,000 feet. However, in these instances, there’s nothing on the surface to indicate such massive movements; the pile of rocks on either side has been smoothly swept away. Reflecting on these facts weighs on my mind almost like the futile attempt to grasp the concept of eternity.

I am tempted to give one other case, the well-known one of the denudation of the Weald. Though it must be admitted that the denudation of the Weald has been a mere trifle, in comparison with that which has removed masses of our palæozoic strata, in parts ten thousand feet in thickness, as shown in Prof. Ramsay's masterly memoir on this subject: yet it is an admirable lesson to stand on the intermediate hilly country and look on the one hand at the North Downs, and [286]on the other hand at the South Downs; for, remembering that at no great distance to the west the northern and southern escarpments meet and close, one can safely picture to oneself the great dome of rocks which must have covered up the Weald within so limited a period as since the latter part of the Chalk formation. The distance from the northern to the southern Downs is about 22 miles, and the thickness of the several formations is on an average about 1100 feet, as I am informed by Prof. Ramsay. But if, as some geologists suppose, a range of older rocks underlies the Weald, on the flanks of which the overlying sedimentary deposits might have accumulated in thinner masses than elsewhere, the above estimate would be erroneous; but this source of doubt probably would not greatly affect the estimate as applied to the western extremity of the district. If, then, we knew the rate at which the sea commonly wears away a line of cliff of any given height, we could measure the time requisite to have denuded the Weald. This, of course cannot be done; but we may, in order to form some crude notion on the subject, assume that the sea would eat into cliffs 500 feet in height at the rate of one inch in a century. This will at first appear much too small an allowance; but it is the same as if we were to assume a cliff one yard in height to be eaten back along a whole line of coast at the rate of one yard in nearly every twenty-two years. I doubt whether any rock, even as soft as chalk, would yield at this rate excepting on the most exposed coasts; though no doubt the degradation of a lofty cliff would be more rapid from the breakage of the fallen fragments. On the other hand, I do not believe that any line of coast, ten or twenty miles in length, ever suffers degradation at the same time along its whole indented length; and we [287]must remember that almost all strata contain harder layers or nodules, which from long resisting attrition form a breakwater at the base. We may at least confidently believe that no rocky coast 500 feet in height commonly yields at the rate of a foot per century; for this would be the same in amount as a cliff one yard in height retreating twelve yards in twenty-two years; and no one, I think, who has carefully observed the shape of old fallen fragments at the base of cliffs, will admit any near approach to such rapid wearing away. Hence, under ordinary circumstances, I should infer that for a cliff 500 feet in height, a denudation of one inch per century for the whole length would be a sufficient allowance. At this rate, on the above data, the denudation of the Weald must have required 306,662,400 years; or say three hundred million years. But perhaps it would be safer to allow two or three inches per century, and this would reduce the number of years to one hundred and fifty or one hundred million years.

I'm tempted to mention another case, the well-known example of the erosion of the Weald. While it's clear that the erosion of the Weald is just a minor occurrence compared to what has stripped away massive sections of our Paleozoic layers, which can be up to ten thousand feet thick, as detailed in Prof. Ramsay's expert study on this topic, it still provides an invaluable lesson. Standing in the hilly area and looking towards the North Downs on one side and the South Downs on the other, one can easily visualize the massive dome of rocks that must have covered the Weald not long ago, since the latter part of the Chalk formation. The distance from the northern to the southern Downs is about 22 miles, and the various formations average about 1100 feet thick, according to Prof. Ramsay. However, if some geologists are right in believing that older rocks lie beneath the Weald, where sedimentary deposits may have accumulated in thinner layers, then the earlier estimate might be incorrect; yet this uncertainty likely wouldn’t significantly impact the estimate for the western end of the region. If we knew how quickly the sea typically erodes a cliff of a certain height, we could estimate the time it would take to erode the Weald. This, of course, is not feasible, but to get a rough idea, let’s assume that the sea erodes cliffs of 500 feet high at a rate of one inch per century. Initially, this might seem too low, but it’s comparable to a one-yard-high cliff eroding one yard along an entire coastline in about 22 years. I doubt any rock, even soft chalk, would erode at this rate except on the most exposed shores; yet it’s true that the degradation of a tall cliff would happen faster because of the fall of fragments. Conversely, I don't believe any coast ten or twenty miles long erodes uniformly along its entire shape; we must remember that almost all layers have harder sections or nodules that resist erosion and create a protective barrier at the base. We can confidently assume that no rocky coast of 500 feet typically erodes at a foot per century since that would equate to a one-yard-high cliff retreating twelve yards in 22 years. I think anyone who has closely observed the old fallen fragments at the base of cliffs would agree that the rate of erosion is not nearly that fast. Therefore, under normal conditions, I’d estimate that for a cliff 500 feet high, a total erosion of one inch per century for the entire length would be reasonable. At that rate, based on the data, the erosion of the Weald would have taken 306,662,400 years, or roughly three hundred million years. However, it might be more prudent to estimate two or three inches per century, which would bring the number down to about one hundred and fifty to one hundred million years.

The action of fresh water on the gently inclined Wealden district, when upraised, could hardly have been great, but it would somewhat reduce the above estimate. On the other hand, during oscillations of level, which we know this area has undergone, the surface may have existed for millions of years as land, and thus have escaped the action of the sea: when deeply submerged for perhaps equally long periods, it would, likewise, have escaped the action of the coast-waves. So that it is not improbable that a longer period than 300 million years has elapsed since the latter part of the Secondary period.

The effect of fresh water on the slightly sloped Wealden region, when it was raised, couldn’t have been significant, but it would slightly lower the above estimate. On the flip side, during the level changes that this area has experienced, the surface might have been land for millions of years, therefore avoiding the impact of the sea. Similarly, when it was underwater for possibly just as long, it would have also avoided the effects of coastal waves. So, it’s not unlikely that more than 300 million years have passed since the end of the Secondary period.

I have made these few remarks because it is highly important for us to gain some notion, however imperfect, of the lapse of years. During each of these years, [288]over the whole world, the land and the water has been peopled by hosts of living forms. What an infinite number of generations, which the mind cannot grasp, must have succeeded each other in the long roll of years! Now turn to our richest geological museums, and what a paltry display we behold!

I’ve made these few comments because it's really important for us to get some sense, even if it's not perfect, of how the years have gone by. Over each of these years, [288] the land and water around the world have been filled with countless living beings. It’s hard to imagine how many generations have come and gone in the vast expanse of time! Now, when we look at our most impressive geological museums, it’s a pretty small collection we see!

 

On the poorness of our Palæontological collections.—That our palæontological collections are very imperfect, is admitted by every one. The remark of that admirable palæontologist, the late Edward Forbes, should not be forgotten, namely, that numbers of our fossil species are known and named from single and often broken specimens, or from a few specimens collected on some one spot. Only a small portion of the surface of the earth has been geologically explored, and no part with sufficient care, as the important discoveries made every year in Europe prove. No organism wholly soft can be preserved. Shells and bones will decay and disappear when left on the bottom of the sea, where sediment is not accumulating. I believe we are continually taking a most erroneous view, when we tacitly admit to ourselves that sediment is being deposited over nearly the whole bed of the sea, at a rate sufficiently quick to embed and preserve fossil remains. Throughout an enormously large proportion of the ocean, the bright blue tint of the water bespeaks its purity. The many cases on record of a formation conformably covered, after an enormous interval of time, by another and later formation, without the underlying bed having suffered in the interval any wear and tear, seem explicable only on the view of the bottom of the sea not rarely lying for ages in an unaltered condition. The remains which do become embedded, if in sand or gravel, will when the beds are upraised generally be dissolved [289]by the percolation of rain-water. I suspect that but few of the very many animals which live on the beach between high and low watermark are preserved. For instance, the several species of the Chthamalinæ (a subfamily of sessile cirripedes) coat the rocks all over the world in infinite numbers: they are all strictly littoral, with the exception of a single Mediterranean species, which inhabits deep water and has been found fossil in Sicily, whereas not one other species has hitherto been found in any tertiary formation: yet it is now known that the genus Chthamalus existed during the chalk period. The molluscan genus Chiton offers a partially analogous case.

On the inadequacy of our paleontological collections.—Everyone agrees that our paleontological collections are quite incomplete. We shouldn't forget the remark made by the late Edward Forbes, a brilliant paleontologist, pointing out that many of our fossil species are identified and named based on single, often fragmented specimens, or from a few specimens found in one location. Only a small portion of the Earth's surface has been studied geologically, and none has been examined with the thoroughness required, as shown by the significant discoveries made in Europe every year. No entirely soft organism can be preserved. Shells and bones will decay and vanish when left on the ocean floor, especially where sediment isn't accumulating. I believe we often hold a mistaken assumption when we silently acknowledge that sediment is being deposited over nearly the entire sea floor at a rate fast enough to embed and preserve fossil remains. In a vast part of the ocean, the clear blue water indicates its purity. Numerous documented cases show that one layer can be covered conformably by another layer after a long time, with the underlying layer remaining unchanged in the meantime; this seems only explainable if we accept that parts of the ocean floor can remain in an unaltered state for ages. The remains that do get embedded, if they’re in sand or gravel, will generally dissolve when the layers are lifted due to rainwater percolation. I suspect that only a few of the many animals that live on the beach between high and low tide are preserved. For example, various species of Chthamalinæ (a subfamily of sessile barnacles) cover rocks worldwide in countless numbers; they are all strictly coastal, except for one Mediterranean species, which lives in deep water and has been found fossilized in Sicily. Interestingly, no other species from this group has been discovered in any tertiary formation, yet it is now known that the genus Chthamalus existed during the chalk period. The molluskan genus Chiton provides a somewhat similar example.

With respect to the terrestrial productions which lived during the Secondary and Palæozoic periods, it is superfluous to state that our evidence from fossil remains is fragmentary in an extreme degree. For instance, not a land shell is known belonging to either of these vast periods, with the exception of one species discovered by Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Dawson in the carboniferous strata of North America, of which shell several specimens have now been collected. In regard to mammiferous remains, a single glance at the historical table published in the Supplement to Lyell's Manual, will bring home the truth, how accidental and rare is their preservation, far better than pages of detail. Nor is their rarity surprising, when we remember how large a proportion of the bones of tertiary mammals have been discovered either in caves or in lacustrine deposits; and that not a cave or true lacustrine bed is known belonging to the age of our secondary or palæozoic formations.

Regarding the land life that existed during the Secondary and Paleozoic periods, it’s unnecessary to mention that our fossil evidence is extremely incomplete. For example, no land shells are known from either of these extensive periods, except for one species found by Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Dawson in the carboniferous layers of North America, of which several specimens have now been gathered. When it comes to mammal remains, a quick look at the historical table in the Supplement to Lyell's Manual clearly shows how accidental and rare their preservation is, more effectively than lengthy explanations. Their rarity isn’t surprising, considering how many bones of tertiary mammals have been found either in caves or in lake deposits; and there’s no known cave or true lake bed from the time of our Secondary or Paleozoic formations.

But the imperfection in the geological record mainly results from another and more important cause than any of the foregoing; namely, from the several formations [290]being separated from each other by wide intervals of time. When we see the formations tabulated in written works, or when we follow them in nature, it is difficult to avoid believing that they are closely consecutive. But we know, for instance, from Sir R. Murchison's great work on Russia, what wide gaps there are in that country between the superimposed formations; so it is in North America, and in many other parts of the world. The most skilful geologist, if his attention had been exclusively confined to these large territories, would never have suspected that during the periods which were blank and barren in his own country, great piles of sediment, charged with new and peculiar forms of life, had elsewhere been accumulated. And if in each separate territory, hardly any idea can be formed of the length of time which has elapsed between the consecutive formations, we may infer that this could nowhere be ascertained. The frequent and great changes in the mineralogical composition of consecutive formations, generally implying great changes in the geography of the surrounding lands, whence the sediment has been derived, accords with the belief of vast intervals of time having elapsed between each formation.

But the gaps in the geological record mostly come from a more significant reason than any of the ones mentioned earlier; specifically, the different formations [290] being separated by long intervals of time. When we see these formations listed in books or observe them in nature, it's hard to avoid thinking they follow one after another closely. However, we know from Sir R. Murchison's extensive research on Russia that there are huge gaps between the stacked formations in that country; the same is true in North America and many other regions around the world. Even the most skilled geologist, if only focused on these large areas, would never guess that during the blank and lifeless periods in his own country, substantial amounts of sediment rich in new and unique life forms were building up elsewhere. And since it's almost impossible to grasp how much time has passed between the formations in every specific area, we can assume that this could not be determined anywhere. The frequent and significant changes in the mineral composition of successive formations, which typically suggest major shifts in the geography of the nearby lands where the sediment originated, supports the idea that long intervals of time have occurred between each formation.

But we can, I think, see why the geological formations of each region are almost invariably intermittent; that is, have not followed each other in close sequence. Scarcely any fact struck me more when examining many hundred miles of the South American coasts, which have been upraised several hundred feet within the recent period, than the absence of any recent deposits sufficiently extensive to last for even a short geological period. Along the whole west coast, which is inhabited by a peculiar marine fauna, tertiary beds are so poorly developed, that no record of several [291]successive and peculiar marine faunas will probably be preserved to a distant age. A little reflection will explain why along the rising coast of the western side of South America, no extensive formations with recent or tertiary remains can anywhere be found, though the supply of sediment must for ages have been great, from the enormous degradation of the coast-rocks and from muddy streams entering the sea. The explanation, no doubt, is, that the littoral and sub-littoral deposits are continually worn away, as soon as they are brought up by the slow and gradual rising of the land within the grinding action of the coast-waves.

But I think we can see why the geological formations in each region are almost always intermittent; that is, they haven't followed each other in a close sequence. One thing that struck me while examining the hundreds of miles of the South American coasts, which have risen several hundred feet recently, was the lack of any recent deposits that are large enough to last for even a brief geological period. Along the entire west coast, which is home to a unique marine fauna, tertiary layers are so poorly developed that no record of multiple successive and distinct marine faunas will likely be preserved for future generations. A bit of thought will clarify why, along the rising coast of western South America, there are no extensive formations with recent or tertiary remains, even though the supply of sediment must have been substantial for ages, due to the significant erosion of coastal rocks and muddy rivers flowing into the sea. The reason, no doubt, is that the shoreline and nearshore deposits are constantly worn away as soon as they are lifted by the slow and gradual rising of the land under the relentless action of the coast waves.

We may, I think, safely conclude that sediment must be accumulated in extremely thick, solid, or extensive masses, in order to withstand the incessant action of the waves, when first upraised and during subsequent oscillations of level. Such thick and extensive accumulations of sediment may be formed in two ways; either, in profound depths of the sea, in which case, judging from the researches of E. Forbes, we may conclude that the bottom will be inhabited by extremely few animals, and the mass when upraised will give a most imperfect record of the forms of life which then existed; or, sediment may be accumulated to any thickness and extent over a shallow bottom, if it continue slowly to subside. In this latter case, as long as the rate of subsidence and supply of sediment nearly balance each other, the sea will remain shallow and favourable for life, and thus a fossiliferous formation thick enough, when upraised, to resist any amount of degradation, may be formed.

We can safely conclude that sediment needs to build up in very thick, solid, or large masses to withstand the constant action of the waves when it's first raised and during later fluctuations in level. These thick and extensive accumulations of sediment can form in two ways: either in the deep parts of the ocean, where, based on E. Forbes's research, we can infer that the seafloor will have very few animals, and the mass raised will provide a very incomplete record of the life forms that existed at that time; or, sediment can accumulate to any thickness and extent over a shallow bottom, as long as it continues to gradually sink. In this second scenario, as long as the rate of sinking and the supply of sediment are nearly balanced, the sea will stay shallow and conducive to life, allowing a formation rich in fossils to develop thick enough, when raised, to resist significant erosion.

I am convinced that all our ancient formations, which are rich in fossils, have thus been formed during subsidence. Since publishing my views on this subject in 1845, I have watched the progress of [292]Geology, and have been surprised to note how author after author, in treating of this or that great formation, has come to the conclusion that it was accumulated during subsidence. I may add, that the only ancient tertiary formation on the west coast of South America, which has been bulky enough to resist such degradation as it has as yet suffered, but which will hardly last to a distant geological age, was certainly deposited during a downward oscillation of level, and thus gained considerable thickness.

I am convinced that all our ancient formations, which are rich in fossils, were formed during subsidence. Since I published my views on this topic in 1845, I have followed the progress of [292]Geology, and I've been surprised to see how many authors, when discussing this or that major formation, have come to the conclusion that it accumulated during subsidence. I should also note that the only ancient tertiary formation on the west coast of South America that has been large enough to withstand the degradation it has faced so far, but probably won’t last until a distant geological age, was definitely deposited during a downward shift in level and thus became significantly thicker.

All geological facts tell us plainly that each area has undergone numerous slow oscillations of level, and apparently these oscillations have affected wide spaces. Consequently formations rich in fossils and sufficiently thick and extensive to resist subsequent degradation, may have been formed over wide spaces during periods of subsidence, but only where the supply of sediment was sufficient to keep the sea shallow and to embed and preserve the remains before they had time to decay. On the other hand, as long as the bed of the sea remained stationary, thick deposits could not have been accumulated in the shallow parts, which are the most favourable to life. Still less could this have happened during the alternate periods of elevation; or, to speak more accurately, the beds which were then accumulated will have been destroyed by being upraised and brought within the limits of the coast-action.

All geological evidence clearly shows that each area has experienced many slow changes in elevation, and these changes seem to have impacted large regions. As a result, formations rich in fossils, which are thick and widespread enough to withstand later erosion, may have developed over extensive areas during times of subsidence, but only in places where there was enough sediment to keep the sea shallow and to bury and preserve remains before they could decay. On the other hand, as long as the sea floor stayed level, thick deposits could not form in the shallow areas, which are the most favorable for life. Even less likely is this happening during the alternating periods of rising land; or, to be more precise, the layers that formed during those times would have been destroyed as they were uplifted and exposed to coastal processes.

Thus the geological record will almost necessarily be rendered intermittent. I feel much confidence in the truth of these views, for they are in strict accordance with the general principles inculcated by Sir C. Lyell; and E. Forbes subsequently but independently arrived at a similar conclusion.

Thus the geological record will almost certainly be inconsistent. I have a lot of confidence in the truth of these ideas because they align closely with the general principles taught by Sir C. Lyell; and E. Forbes later came to a similar conclusion independently.

One remark is here worth a passing notice. During periods of elevation the area of the land and of the [293]adjoining shoal parts of the sea will be increased, and new stations will often be formed;—all circumstances most favourable, as previously explained, for the formation of new varieties and species; but during such periods there will generally be a blank in the geological record. On the other hand, during subsidence, the inhabited area and number of inhabitants will decrease (excepting the productions on the shores of a continent when first broken up into an archipelago), and consequently during subsidence, though there will be much extinction, fewer new varieties or species will be formed; and it is during these very periods of subsidence, that our great deposits rich in fossils have been accumulated. Nature may almost be said to have guarded against the frequent discovery of her transitional or linking forms.

One observation is worth noting. During times of uplift, the amount of land and the nearby shallow areas of the sea will increase, often leading to the formation of new habitats—conditions that are particularly favorable, as mentioned earlier, for the development of new varieties and species. However, during these times, there is usually a gap in the geological record. On the flip side, during periods of sinking, the inhabited land area and the population will decrease (excluding the resources along the shores of a continent when it first breaks into an archipelago). As a result, during subsidence, while many species will go extinct, fewer new varieties or species will emerge. It is during these periods of subsidence that our major fossil-rich deposits have formed. Nature seems to have almost ensured that her transitional or linking forms are rarely discovered.

From the foregoing considerations it cannot be doubted that the geological record, viewed as a whole, is extremely imperfect; but if we confine our attention to any one formation, it becomes more difficult to understand, why we do not therein find closely graduated varieties between the allied species which lived at its commencement and at its close. Some cases are on record of the same species presenting distinct varieties in the upper and lower parts of the same formation, but, as they are rare, they may be here passed over. Although each formation has indisputably required a vast number of years for its deposition, I can see several reasons why each should not include a graduated series of links between the species which then lived; but I can by no means pretend to assign due proportional weight to the following considerations.

From these observations, it's clear that the geological record, when looked at as a whole, is very incomplete. However, when we focus on any single formation, it becomes harder to understand why we don't see a smooth transition between related species that existed at the start and end of that formation. There are documented cases of the same species showing different varieties in the upper and lower sections of the same formation, but these are uncommon and can be overlooked here. While we know that each formation definitely took a huge amount of time to form, I see several reasons why each might not have a continuous series of connections between the species that lived at that time; however, I can’t claim to give proper weight to the following reasons.

Although each formation may mark a very long lapse of years, each perhaps is short compared with the period requisite to change one species into another. I am [294]aware that two palæontologists, whose opinions are worthy of much deference, namely Bronn and Woodward, have concluded that the average duration of each formation is twice or thrice as long as the average duration of specific forms. But insuperable difficulties, as it seems to me, prevent us coming to any just conclusion on this head. When we see a species first appearing in the middle of any formation, it would be rash in the extreme to infer that it had not elsewhere previously existed. So again when we find a species disappearing before the uppermost layers have been deposited, it would be equally rash to suppose that it then became wholly extinct. We forget how small the area of Europe is compared with the rest of the world; nor have the several stages of the same formation throughout Europe been correlated with perfect accuracy.

Although each formation may represent a very long period of time, each one is likely short compared to the time needed for one species to evolve into another. I am [294]aware that two paleontologists, Bronn and Woodward, whose opinions deserve a lot of respect, have concluded that the average duration of each formation is two to three times longer than the average existence of specific forms. However, I believe there are significant challenges that prevent us from reaching any fair conclusion on this matter. When we see a species first appearing in the middle of a formation, it would be extremely rash to assume it hadn’t existed elsewhere before. Similarly, when we find a species disappearing before the top layers have formed, it would also be unwise to assume it became completely extinct at that point. We often overlook how small Europe is compared to the rest of the world; furthermore, the various stages of the same formation across Europe have not been perfectly aligned.

With marine animals of all kinds, we may safely infer a large amount of migration during climatal and other changes; and when we see a species first appearing in any formation, the probability is that it only then first immigrated into that area. It is well known, for instance, that several species appeared somewhat earlier in the palæozoic beds of North America than in those of Europe; time having apparently been required for their migration from the American to the European seas. In examining the latest deposits of various quarters of the world, it has everywhere been noted, that some few still existing species are common in the deposit, but have become extinct in the immediately surrounding sea; or, conversely, that some are now abundant in the neighbouring sea, but are rare or absent in this particular deposit. It is an excellent lesson to reflect on the ascertained amount of migration of the inhabitants of Europe during the Glacial period, which forms only a part of one whole geological period; [295]and likewise to reflect on the great changes of level, on the inordinately great change of climate, on the prodigious lapse of time, all included within this same glacial period. Yet it may be doubted whether in any quarter of the world, sedimentary deposits, including fossil remains, have gone on accumulating within the same area during the whole of this period. It is not, for instance, probable that sediment was deposited during the whole of the glacial period near the mouth of the Mississippi, within that limit of depth at which marine animals can flourish; for we know what vast geographical changes occurred in other parts of America during this space of time. When such beds as were deposited in shallow water near the mouth of the Mississippi during some part of the glacial period shall have been upraised, organic remains will probably first appear and disappear at different levels, owing to the migration of species and to geographical changes. And in the distant future, a geologist examining these beds, might be tempted to conclude that the average duration of life of the embedded fossils had been less than that of the glacial period, instead of having been really far greater, that is extending from before the glacial epoch to the present day.

With marine animals of all kinds, we can safely assume there was a lot of migration during climate changes and other shifts. When we see a species first showing up in a particular formation, it’s likely that it just migrated to that area. For example, it's well-known that several species appeared somewhat earlier in the Paleozoic layers of North America than in those of Europe; time seems to have been necessary for their migration from the American to European seas. When looking at the newest deposits from various parts of the world, it's been observed everywhere that a few existing species are common in the deposits but have become extinct in the nearby sea; or, on the other hand, some species are now abundant in the neighboring sea but are rare or absent in this specific deposit. It’s a valuable lesson to consider the known amount of migration among the inhabitants of Europe during the Ice Age, which is just a part of one entire geological period; [295] and also to think about the significant changes in sea levels, the drastic climate changes, and the immense span of time that all occurred within this same glacial period. However, it’s uncertain whether in any part of the world, sedimentary deposits, including fossil remains, have been continuously accumulating in the same area throughout this entire period. For example, it’s unlikely that sediment was deposited throughout the Ice Age near the mouth of the Mississippi, within the depth range suitable for marine animals to thrive; we know that many significant geographical changes took place in other areas of America during this time. When the layers deposited in shallow water near the mouth of the Mississippi during part of the Ice Age have been raised, organic remains will likely first appear and disappear at different levels due to species migration and geographical changes. In the distant future, a geologist studying these layers might be inclined to think that the average lifespan of the embedded fossils was shorter than that of the Ice Age, instead of actually being much longer, extending from before the Ice Age to the present day.

In order to get a perfect gradation between two forms in the upper and lower parts of the same formation, the deposit must have gone on accumulating for a very long period, in order to have given sufficient time for the slow process of variation; hence the deposit will generally have to be a very thick one; and the species undergoing modification will have had to live on the same area throughout this whole time. But we have seen that a thick fossiliferous formation can only be accumulated during a period of subsidence; and to keep the depth approximately the same, which is necessary in [296]order to enable the same species to live on the same space, the supply of sediment must nearly have counterbalanced the amount of subsidence. But this same movement of subsidence will often tend to sink the area whence the sediment is derived, and thus diminish the supply whilst the downward movement continues. In fact, this nearly exact balancing between the supply of sediment and the amount of subsidence is probably a rare contingency; for it has been observed by more than one palæontologist, that very thick deposits are usually barren of organic remains, except near their upper or lower limits.

To achieve a smooth transition between two forms in the upper and lower parts of the same formation, the deposit must have built up over a long time, allowing enough time for gradual changes to occur. So, the deposit is usually quite thick, and the species that are changing must have lived in the same area throughout this period. However, we know that a thick fossil-rich formation can only form during a time when the ground is sinking. To keep the depth about the same, which is necessary for the same species to survive in the same area, the sediment supply must almost balance out the amount of sinking. But this sinking movement often causes the area where sediment comes from to also drop, reducing the supply while the downward movement continues. In fact, this precise balance between sediment supply and subsidence is likely to be uncommon; several paleontologists have noted that very thick deposits are usually devoid of organic material, except near their top or bottom edges.

It would seem that each separate formation, like the whole pile of formations in any country, has generally been intermittent in its accumulation. When we see, as is so often the case, a formation composed of beds of different mineralogical composition, we may reasonably suspect that the process of deposition has been much interrupted, as a change in the currents of the sea and a supply of sediment of a different nature will generally have been due to geographical changes requiring much time. Nor will the closest inspection of a formation give any idea of the time which its deposition has consumed. Many instances could be given of beds only a few feet in thickness, representing formations, elsewhere thousands of feet in thickness, and which must have required an enormous period for their accumulation; yet no one ignorant of this fact would have suspected the vast lapse of time represented by the thinner formation. Many cases could be given of the lower beds of a formation having been upraised, denuded, submerged, and then re-covered by the upper beds of the same formation,—facts, showing what wide, yet easily overlooked, intervals have occurred in its accumulation. In other cases we have the plainest evidence [297]in great fossilised trees, still standing upright as they grew, of many long intervals of time and changes of level during the process of deposition, which would never even have been suspected, had not the trees chanced to have been preserved: thus Messrs. Lyell and Dawson found carboniferous beds 1400 feet thick in Nova Scotia, with ancient root-bearing strata, one above the other, at no less than sixty-eight different levels. Hence, when the same species occur at the bottom, middle, and top of a formation, the probability is that they have not lived on the same spot during the whole period of deposition, but have disappeared and reappeared, perhaps many times, during the same geological period. So that if such species were to undergo a considerable amount of modification during any one geological period, a section would not probably include all the fine intermediate gradations which must on my theory have existed between them, but abrupt, though perhaps very slight, changes of form.

It seems that each individual geological formation, like the entire collection of formations in any country, has usually built up in an inconsistent manner. When we see a formation made up of layers with different mineral compositions, we can reasonably suspect that the deposition process was frequently interrupted, as changes in sea currents and the introduction of different sediments are typically due to geographical shifts that take a long time. Even a close examination of a formation won't reveal how long it took to form. Many examples exist of layers just a few feet thick that represent formations that are thousands of feet thick elsewhere, which must have taken a tremendous amount of time to accumulate; yet, someone unaware of this would not suspect the extensive timespan represented by the thinner layer. Numerous instances show how the lower layers of a formation have been lifted, eroded, submerged, and then covered again by the upper layers of the same formation—evidence that significant, yet easily overlooked, gaps occurred during its accumulation. In other cases, we have clear evidence in the form of fossilized trees, still standing as they grew, indicating many long intervals of time and changes in level throughout the deposition process that would never have been guessed without the trees being preserved. For example, Lyell and Dawson discovered carboniferous layers 1400 feet thick in Nova Scotia, with ancient root-bearing layers at no less than sixty-eight different levels. Therefore, when the same species appear at the bottom, middle, and top of a formation, it's likely they didn't live in the same spot the entire time of deposition but have vanished and reappeared multiple times during the same geological period. So, if such species experienced significant changes during any one geological period, a section wouldn’t likely show all the fine intermediate variations that must have existed between them, but rather abrupt, although possibly slight, changes in form.

It is all-important to remember that naturalists have no golden rule by which to distinguish species and varieties; they grant some little variability to each species, but when they meet with a somewhat greater amount of difference between any two forms, they rank both as species, unless they are enabled to connect them together by close intermediate gradations. And this from the reasons just assigned we can seldom hope to effect in any one geological section. Supposing B and C to be two species, and a third, A, to be found in an underlying bed; even if A were strictly intermediate between B and C, it would simply be ranked as a third and distinct species, unless at the same time it could be most closely connected with either one or both forms by intermediate varieties. Nor should it be forgotten, as before explained, that A might be the actual progenitor [298]of B and C, and yet might not at all necessarily be strictly intermediate between them in all points of structure. So that we might obtain the parent-species and its several modified descendants from the lower and upper beds of a formation, and unless we obtained numerous transitional gradations, we should not recognise their relationship, and should consequently be compelled to rank them all as distinct species.

It’s crucial to remember that naturalists don’t have a strict rule for distinguishing between species and varieties; they allow some small variability within each species. However, when they encounter a more significant difference between two forms, they classify both as separate species, unless they can connect them through closely related intermediate forms. For the reasons mentioned, it's rare to achieve this in any particular geological section. If we consider B and C as two species, and A as a third species found in an underlying layer; even if A is strictly intermediate between B and C, it would still just be classified as a third and distinct species unless it could be closely linked to either or both of the other forms through intermediate varieties. Additionally, it’s important to remember, as previously explained, that A could actually be the direct ancestor of B and C, but may not be strictly intermediate between them in all structural aspects. Thus, we might find the parent species and its various modified descendants in the lower and upper layers of a formation, and unless we find many transitional forms, we wouldn’t recognize their relationship and would likely classify them all as separate species.

It is notorious on what excessively slight differences many palæontologists have founded their species; and they do this the more readily if the specimens come from different sub-stages of the same formation. Some experienced conchologists are now sinking many of the very fine species of D'Orbigny and others into the rank of varieties; and on this view we do find the kind of evidence of change which on my theory we ought to find. Moreover, if we look to rather wider intervals, namely, to distinct but consecutive stages of the same great formation, we find that the embedded fossils, though almost universally ranked as specifically different, yet are far more closely allied to each other than are the species found in more widely separated formations; but to this subject I shall have to return in the following chapter.

It's well-known that paleontologists often base their species classifications on very minor differences. They tend to do this even more easily when the specimens come from different sub-stages of the same formation. Some skilled shell collectors are currently grouping many of the very fine species identified by D'Orbigny and others as varieties instead. Through this perspective, we see the kind of evidence of change that aligns with my theory. Additionally, if we examine broader timeframes—specifically, different but consecutive stages within the same major formation—we notice that the embedded fossils, while typically classified as separate species, are actually much more closely related to one another than the species found in more distantly located formations. However, I will address this topic further in the following chapter.

One other consideration is worth notice: with animals and plants that can propagate rapidly and are not highly locomotive, there is reason to suspect, as we have formerly seen, that their varieties are generally at first local; and that such local varieties do not spread widely and supplant their parent-forms until they have been modified and perfected in some considerable degree. According to this view, the chance of discovering in a formation in any one country all the early stages of transition between any two forms, is small, for the successive changes are supposed to have been local or [299]confined to some one spot. Most marine animals have a wide range; and we have seen that with plants it is those which have the widest range, that oftenest present varieties; so that with shells and other marine animals, it is probably those which have had the widest range, far exceeding the limits of the known geological formations of Europe, which have oftenest given rise, first to local varieties and ultimately to new species; and this again would greatly lessen the chance of our being able to trace the stages of transition in any one geological formation.

One more point is worth mentioning: for animals and plants that can reproduce quickly and don’t move around much, there is reason to think, as we've seen before, that their varieties are usually initially local. These local varieties don't spread far and replace their parent forms until they've been significantly modified and improved. From this perspective, the likelihood of finding in a single location all the early stages of transition between two forms is low because the changes are expected to have been local or confined to one area. Most marine animals have a broad distribution; and we’ve observed that among plants, those with the widest distribution often show the most varieties. Therefore, for shells and other marine animals, it's likely that those with the broadest range, far beyond the known geological formations of Europe, have frequently led to the emergence of local varieties and eventually new species. This again greatly reduces the chance of tracing the stages of transition in any single geological formation.

It should not be forgotten, that at the present day, with perfect specimens for examination, two forms can seldom be connected by intermediate varieties and thus proved to be the same species, until many specimens have been collected from many places; and in the case of fossil species this could rarely be effected by palæontologists. We shall, perhaps, best perceive the improbability of our being enabled to connect species by numerous, fine, intermediate, fossil links, by asking ourselves whether, for instance, geologists at some future period will be able to prove, that our different breeds of cattle, sheep, horses, and dogs have descended from a single stock or from several aboriginal stocks; or, again, whether certain sea-shells inhabiting the shores of North America, which are ranked by some conchologists as distinct species from their European representatives, and by other conchologists as only varieties, are really varieties or are, as it is called, specifically distinct. This could be effected only by the future geologist discovering in a fossil state numerous intermediate gradations; and such success seems to me improbable in the highest degree.

We shouldn’t forget that nowadays, with perfect specimens available for examination, it’s rare to link two forms through intermediate varieties and prove they’re the same species until many specimens are collected from various locations. In the case of fossil species, this is hardly achievable by paleontologists. We might better understand how unlikely it is to connect species through numerous, fine, intermediate fossil links by asking ourselves whether, for instance, geologists in the future will be able to prove that our different breeds of cattle, sheep, horses, and dogs all descended from a single stock or from multiple original stocks. Or whether certain sea shells found along the shores of North America, which some conchologists classify as distinct species from their European counterparts, while others only see them as varieties, are truly varieties or, as it’s called, specifically distinct. This can only be determined if future geologists find numerous intermediate gradations in fossil form, and such a success seems highly improbable to me.

Geological research, though it has added numerous species to existing and extinct genera, and has made the [300]intervals between some few groups less wide than they otherwise would have been, yet has done scarcely anything in breaking down the distinction between species, by connecting them together by numerous, fine, intermediate varieties; and this not having been effected, is probably the gravest and most obvious of all the many objections which may be urged against my views. Hence it will be worth while to sum up the foregoing remarks, under an imaginary illustration. The Malay Archipelago is of about the size of Europe from the North Cape to the Mediterranean, and from Britain to Russia; and therefore equals all the geological formations which have been examined with any accuracy, excepting those of the United States of America. I fully agree with Mr. Godwin-Austen, that the present condition of the Malay Archipelago, with its numerous large islands separated by wide and shallow seas, probably represents the former state of Europe, whilst most of our formations were accumulating. The Malay Archipelago is one of the richest regions of the whole world in organic beings; yet if all the species were to be collected which have ever lived there, how imperfectly would they represent the natural history of the world!

Geological research, while it has added many species to both existing and extinct genera, and has made the gaps between some groups narrower than they would have been, has hardly done anything to break down the distinctions between species by connecting them through numerous, fine, intermediate varieties. The lack of this connection is likely the most serious and apparent objection that can be raised against my views. Therefore, it’s worth summarizing the previous remarks with a hypothetical illustration. The Malay Archipelago is about the size of Europe from the North Cape to the Mediterranean, and from Britain to Russia; thus, it encompasses all the geological formations that have been studied in detail, except for those of the United States of America. I completely agree with Mr. Godwin-Austen that the current layout of the Malay Archipelago, with its many large islands separated by broad, shallow seas, probably reflects Europe’s former state while most of our formations were being formed. The Malay Archipelago is one of the richest areas in the world when it comes to living organisms; yet if we were to gather all the species that have ever existed there, how poorly would they represent the natural history of the world!

But we have every reason to believe that the terrestrial productions of the archipelago would be preserved in an excessively imperfect manner in the formations which we suppose to be there accumulating. I suspect that not many of the strictly littoral animals, or of those which lived on naked submarine rocks, would be embedded; and those embedded in gravel or sand, would not endure to a distant epoch. Wherever sediment did not accumulate on the bed of the sea, or where it did not accumulate at a sufficient rate to protect organic bodies from decay, no remains could be preserved.

But we have every reason to believe that the land-based productions of the archipelago would be preserved in a very imperfect way in the formations we think are accumulating there. I suspect that not many of the strictly coastal animals, or those that lived on bare underwater rocks, would be buried; and those buried in gravel or sand wouldn't last until a distant time. Wherever sediment didn't accumulate on the sea floor, or where it didn't accumulate fast enough to protect organic materials from decay, no remains could be preserved.

I believe that fossiliferous formations could be formed [301]in the archipelago, of thickness sufficient to last to an age as distant in futurity as the secondary formations lie in the past, only during periods of subsidence. These periods of subsidence would be separated from each other by enormous intervals, during which the area would be either stationary or rising; whilst rising, each fossiliferous formation would be destroyed, almost as soon as accumulated, by the incessant coast-action, as we now see on the shores of South America. During the periods of subsidence there would probably be much extinction of life; during the periods of elevation, there would be much variation, but the geological record would then be least perfect.

I think that fossil-rich formations could form [301]in the archipelago, thick enough to last until a time in the future as far away as the secondary formations are in the past, but only during times of sinking. These sinking periods would be separated by long intervals, when the area would either stay still or rise; while it was rising, each fossil-rich formation would be almost immediately destroyed by ongoing coastal erosion, like what we currently see along the shores of South America. During the sinking times, a lot of life would probably go extinct; during the rising times, there would be a lot of variation, but the geological record would be the least complete then.

It may be doubted whether the duration of any one great period of subsidence over the whole or part of the archipelago, together with a contemporaneous accumulation of sediment, would exceed the average duration of the same specific forms; and these contingencies are indispensable for the preservation of all the transitional gradations between any two or more species. If such gradations were not fully preserved, transitional varieties would merely appear as so many distinct species. It is, also, probable that each great period of subsidence would be interrupted by oscillations of level, and that slight climatal changes would intervene during such lengthy periods; and in these cases the inhabitants of the archipelago would have to migrate, and no closely consecutive record of their modifications could be preserved in any one formation.

It’s questionable whether any single major period of sinking across the entire archipelago, along with the simultaneous buildup of sediment, would exceed the average duration of the same specific forms; and these situations are vital for maintaining all the gradual changes between two or more species. If these changes weren’t fully preserved, transitional varieties would just seem like separate species. It’s also likely that each major period of sinking would be interrupted by shifts in levels, and that slight climate changes would occur during these long periods; in these situations, the residents of the archipelago would need to migrate, and no direct record of their changes could be kept in any one formation.

Very many of the marine inhabitants of the archipelago now range thousands of miles beyond its confines; and analogy leads me to believe that it would be chiefly these far-ranging species which would oftenest produce new varieties; and the varieties would at first generally be local or confined to one place, but if possessed [302]of any decided advantage, or when further modified and improved, they would slowly spread and supplant their parent-forms. When such varieties returned to their ancient homes, as they would differ from their former state, in a nearly uniform, though perhaps extremely slight degree, they would, according to the principles followed by many palæontologists, be ranked as new and distinct species.

Many of the marine creatures in the archipelago now exist thousands of miles beyond its boundaries. I believe that it is primarily these widely-ranging species that are most likely to produce new varieties. Initially, these varieties would generally be local or limited to one area, but if they have any significant advantages or are further improved and modified, they would gradually spread and replace their original forms. When such varieties return to their original habitats, they would differ from their previous state in a nearly uniform, though possibly very slight, way. According to the principles followed by many paleontologists, they would be classified as new and distinct species.

If then, there be some degree of truth in these remarks, we have no right to expect to find in our geological formations, an infinite number of those fine transitional forms, which on my theory assuredly have connected all the past and present species of the same group into one long and branching chain of life. We ought only to look for a few links, some more closely, some more distantly related to each other; and these links, let them be ever so close, if found in different stages of the same formation, would, by most palæontologists, be ranked as distinct species. But I do not pretend that I should ever have suspected how poor a record of the mutations of life, the best preserved geological section presented, had not the difficulty of our not discovering innumerable transitional links between the species which appeared at the commencement and close of each formation, pressed so hardly on my theory.

If there’s some truth to these comments, we shouldn’t expect to find an endless number of those smooth transitional forms in our geological formations, which my theory definitely suggests have linked all past and present species of the same group into one long and branching chain of life. We should only look for a few links, some that are more closely related and some that are more distantly related to each other; and these links, no matter how closely related they are, if found in different stages of the same formation, would typically be classified as distinct species by most paleontologists. But I don’t claim that I would have ever realized how incomplete the record of life’s changes was, even in the best-preserved geological sections, if the challenge of not finding countless transitional links between the species that appeared at the start and end of each formation hadn’t weighed so heavily on my theory.

 

On the sudden appearance of whole groups of Allied Species.—The abrupt manner in which whole groups of species suddenly appear in certain formations, has been urged by several palæontologists—for instance, by Agassiz, Pictet, and by none more forcibly than by Professor Sedgwick—as a fatal objection to the belief in the transmutation of species. If numerous species, belonging to the same genera or families, have really [303]started into life all at once, the fact would be fatal to the theory of descent with slow modification through natural selection. For the development of a group of forms, all of which have descended from some one progenitor, must have been an extremely slow process; and the progenitors must have lived long ages before their modified descendants. But we continually over-rate the perfection of the geological record, and falsely infer, because certain genera or families have not been found beneath a certain stage, that they did not exist before that stage. We continually forget how large the world is, compared with the area over which our geological formations have been carefully examined; we forget that groups of species may elsewhere have long existed and have slowly multiplied before they invaded the ancient archipelagoes of Europe and of the United States. We do not make due allowance for the enormous intervals of time, which have probably elapsed between our consecutive formations,—longer perhaps in most cases than the time required for the accumulation of each formation. These intervals will have given time for the multiplication of species from some one or some few parent-forms; and in the succeeding formation such species will appear as if suddenly created.

On the sudden appearance of whole groups of Allied Species.—The sudden way in which entire groups of species appear in certain formations has been pointed out by several paleontologists—for example, Agassiz, Pictet, and especially Professor Sedgwick—as a strong argument against the belief in the evolution of species. If many species from the same genera or families truly appeared all at once, this would seriously challenge the theory of gradual changes through natural selection. The development of a group of forms that all come from a single ancestor must have been a very slow process, and those ancestors must have existed long before their modified descendants. However, we often overestimate the completeness of the geological record and mistakenly conclude that because certain genera or families haven't been found below a certain layer, they didn’t exist before that layer. We forget how vast the world is compared to the areas where our geological formations have been carefully studied; we overlook that species groups may have existed and gradually multiplied elsewhere before they spread to the ancient archipelagoes of Europe and the United States. We do not take into account the significant gaps in time that probably occurred between our successive formations—gaps that might be longer than the time it took to form each layer. These gaps would have allowed for the multiplication of species from one or a few parent forms; when they appear in the next formation, they might seem like they were suddenly created.

I may here recall a remark formerly made, namely that it might require a long succession of ages to adapt an organism to some new and peculiar line of life, for instance to fly through the air; but that when this had been effected, and a few species had thus acquired a great advantage over other organisms, a comparatively short time would be necessary to produce many divergent forms, which would be able to spread rapidly and widely throughout the world.

I’d like to mention a point I made earlier: it might take a very long time for an organism to evolve for a completely new way of life, like flying in the air. However, once that adaptation happens and a few species gain a significant advantage over others, it wouldn’t take long to produce many different forms that could spread quickly and widely across the globe.

I will now give a few examples to illustrate these [304]remarks, and to show how liable we are to error in supposing that whole groups of species have suddenly been produced. I may recall the well-known fact that in geological treatises, published not many years ago, the great class of mammals was always spoken of as having abruptly come in at the commencement of the tertiary series. And now one of the richest known accumulations of fossil mammals, for its thickness, belongs to the middle of the secondary series; and one true mammal has been discovered in the new red sandstone at nearly the commencement of this great series. Cuvier used to urge that no monkey occurred in any tertiary stratum; but now extinct species have been discovered in India, South America, and in Europe even as far back as the eocene stage. Had it not been for the rare accident of the preservation of footsteps in the new red sandstone of the United States, who would have ventured to suppose that, besides reptiles, no less than at least thirty kinds of birds, some of gigantic size, existed during that period? Not a fragment of bone has been discovered in these beds. Notwithstanding that the number of joints shown in the fossil impressions correspond with the number in the several toes of living birds' feet, some authors doubt whether the animals which left the impressions were really birds. Until quite recently these authors might have maintained, and some have maintained, that the whole class of birds came suddenly into existence during an early tertiary period; but now we know, on the authority of Professor Owen (as may be seen in Lyell's 'Manual'), that a bird certainly lived during the deposition of the upper greensand.

I’ll now share a few examples to illustrate these [304]remarks and to show how prone we are to mistakes when we assume that entire groups of species appeared suddenly. I can point out that in geological texts published not long ago, the large class of mammals was always described as having suddenly emerged at the start of the tertiary period. Now, one of the richest known collections of fossil mammals, in terms of thickness, belongs to the middle of the secondary period; and one true mammal has been found in the new red sandstone nearly at the beginning of this major period. Cuvier used to argue that no monkeys were found in any tertiary layers, but now extinct species have been discovered in India, South America, and even Europe dating back to the eocene phase. If it weren’t for the rare chance of footprints being preserved in the new red sandstone of the United States, who would have guessed that, besides reptiles, at least thirty different kinds of birds, some enormous, existed during that time? No bones have been found in these layers. Even though the number of joints visible in the fossil impressions matches the number in the toes of living birds, some authors doubt whether the creatures that left those impressions were actually birds. Until very recently, these authors could have claimed, and some have claimed, that the entire class of birds appeared suddenly during an early tertiary period; but now we know, according to Professor Owen (as noted in Lyell's 'Manual'), that a bird definitely lived during the formation of the upper greensand.

I may give another instance, which from having passed under my own eyes has much struck me. In a memoir on Fossil Sessile Cirripedes, I have stated that, from the [305]number of existing and extinct tertiary species; from the extraordinary abundance of the individuals of many species all over the world, from the Arctic regions to the equator, inhabiting various zones of depths from the upper tidal limits to 50 fathoms; from the perfect manner in which specimens are preserved in the oldest tertiary beds; from the ease with which even a fragment of a valve can be recognised; from all these circumstances, I inferred that had sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary periods, they would certainly have been preserved and discovered; and as not one species had then been discovered in beds of this age, I concluded that this great group had been suddenly developed at the commencement of the tertiary series. This was a sore trouble to me, adding as I thought one more instance of the abrupt appearance of a great group of species. But my work had hardly been published, when a skilful palæontologist, M. Bosquet, sent me a drawing of a perfect specimen of an unmistakeable sessile cirripede, which he had himself extracted from the chalk of Belgium. And, as if to make the case as striking as possible, this sessile cirripede was a Chthamalus, a very common, large, and ubiquitous genus, of which not one specimen has as yet been found even in any tertiary stratum. Hence we now positively know that sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary period; and these cirripedes might have been the progenitors of our many tertiary and existing species.

I can share another example that really caught my attention because I witnessed it myself. In a paper about Fossil Sessile Cirripedes, I mentioned that, considering the number of existing and extinct tertiary species; the amazing abundance of individuals of many species around the globe, from the Arctic to the equator; their presence in various depth zones from the upper tidal limits to 50 fathoms; the exceptional preservation of specimens in the oldest tertiary layers; and the ease with which even a fragment of a valve can be identified, I concluded that if sessile cirripedes had existed during the secondary periods, they would definitely have been preserved and found. Since no species had been discovered in rocks of this age, I thought this major group must have suddenly emerged at the start of the tertiary period. This was quite a worry for me, adding to my belief in the abrupt appearance of significant species groups. However, right after my work was published, a skilled paleontologist, M. Bosquet, sent me a drawing of a perfect specimen of an unmistakable sessile cirripede that he had found in the chalk of Belgium. And to make the situation even more remarkable, this sessile cirripede was a Chthamalus, a very common, large, and widespread genus, of which no specimens have yet been discovered in any tertiary strata. Therefore, we now know for sure that sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary period, and these cirripedes might have been the ancestors of many of our tertiary and current species.

The case most frequently insisted on by palæontologists of the apparently sudden appearance of a whole group of species, is that of the teleostean fishes, low down in the Chalk period. This group includes the large majority of existing species. Lately, Professor Pictet has carried their existence one sub-stage further back; and some palæontologists believe that certain [306]much older fishes, of which the affinities are as yet imperfectly known, are really teleostean. Assuming, however, that the whole of them did appear, as Agassiz believes, at the commencement of the chalk formation, the fact would certainly be highly remarkable; but I cannot see that it would be an insuperable difficulty on my theory, unless it could likewise be shown that the species of this group appeared suddenly and simultaneously throughout the world at this same period. It is almost superfluous to remark that hardly any fossil-fish are known from south of the equator; and by running through Pictet's Palæontology it will be seen that very few species are known from several formations in Europe. Some few families of fish now have a confined range; the teleostean fish might formerly have had a similarly confined range, and after having been largely developed in some one sea, might have spread widely. Nor have we any right to suppose that the seas of the world have always been so freely open from south to north as they are at present. Even at this day, if the Malay Archipelago were converted into land, the tropical parts of the Indian Ocean would form a large and perfectly enclosed basin, in which any great group of marine animals might be multiplied; and here they would remain confined, until some of the species became adapted to a cooler climate, and were enabled to double the southern capes of Africa or Australia, and thus reach other and distant seas.

The case most often emphasized by paleontologists regarding the seemingly sudden appearance of an entire group of species is that of the teleostean fishes, found early in the Chalk period. This group includes the vast majority of species we have today. Recently, Professor Pictet has identified their existence one sub-stage earlier, and some paleontologists think that certain much older fish, whose relationships are still not well understood, are actually teleostean. However, assuming that all of them did appear, as Agassiz believes, at the start of the chalk formation, it would indeed be quite remarkable. Still, I don't see it as an insurmountable issue for my theory unless it can also be shown that the species in this group appeared suddenly and simultaneously all around the world during this same time. It’s almost unnecessary to point out that hardly any fossil fish are known from south of the equator; and if we look through Pictet's Paleontology, it becomes clear that very few species are documented from several formations in Europe. A few fish families currently have a limited distribution; the teleostean fish might have had a similarly restricted range in the past and, after developing significantly in one sea, could have spread widely. We should also not assume that the world’s seas have always been as open from south to north as they are today. Even now, if the Malay Archipelago were turned into land, the tropical regions of the Indian Ocean would create a large and completely enclosed basin, where any major group of marine animals could thrive; they would stay confined there until some species adapted to cooler climates, allowing them to navigate around the southern tips of Africa or Australia and reach other distant seas.

From these and similar considerations, but chiefly from our ignorance of the geology of other countries beyond the confines of Europe and the United States; and from the revolution in our palæontological ideas on many points, which the discoveries of even the last dozen years have effected, it seems to me to be about as rash in us to dogmatize on the succession of organic [307]beings throughout the world, as it would be for a naturalist to land for five minutes on some one barren point in Australia, and then to discuss the number and range of its productions.

From these and similar thoughts, but mainly from our lack of knowledge about the geology of countries outside of Europe and the United States; and from the major shifts in our understanding of paleontology on many issues that have occurred due to discoveries in just the last twelve years, it seems just as foolish for us to make strong claims about the succession of living beings around the world, as it would be for a naturalist to spend five minutes on a remote spot in Australia and then discuss the diversity and range of its wildlife.

 

On the sudden appearance of groups of Allied Species in the lowest known fossiliferous strata.—There is another and allied difficulty, which is much graver. I allude to the manner in which numbers of species of the same group, suddenly appear in the lowest known fossiliferous rocks. Most of the arguments which have convinced me that all the existing species of the same group have descended from one progenitor, apply with nearly equal force to the earliest known species. For instance, I cannot doubt that all the Silurian trilobites have descended from some one crustacean, which must have lived long before the Silurian age, and which probably differed greatly from any known animal. Some of the most ancient Silurian animals, as the Nautilus, Lingula, &c., do not differ much from living species; and it cannot on my theory be supposed, that these old species were the progenitors of all the species of the orders to which they belong, for they do not present characters in any degree intermediate between them. If, moreover, they had been the progenitors of these orders, they would almost certainly have been long ago supplanted and exterminated by their numerous and improved descendants.

On the sudden appearance of groups of Allied Species in the lowest known fossil-rich layers.—There's another related issue that's even more serious. I'm talking about how many species from the same group suddenly appear in the lowest known fossil-rich rocks. Most of the reasons that have led me to believe that all existing species of the same group come from one ancestor also apply to the earliest known species. For example, I can't doubt that all the Silurian trilobites originated from some single crustacean that must have lived long before the Silurian period and was probably very different from any known animal. Some of the oldest Silurian creatures, like the Nautilus and Lingula, don’t differ much from living species; and according to my theory, it can't be assumed that these ancient species were the ancestors of all the species in their groups because they don't show any characteristics that are intermediate between them. Furthermore, if they had been the ancestors of these groups, they would have most likely been replaced and wiped out long ago by their numerous and improved descendants.

Consequently, if my theory be true, it is indisputable that before the lowest Silurian stratum was deposited, long periods elapsed, as long as, or probably far longer than, the whole interval from the Silurian age to the present day; and that during these vast, yet quite unknown, periods of time, the world swarmed with living creatures. [308]

So, if my theory is correct, it’s clear that before the earliest Silurian layer was laid down, a significant amount of time passed, as much as, or likely much longer than, the entire period from the Silurian era to today; and that during these extensive, yet completely unknown, times, the world was filled with living beings. [308]

To the question why we do not find records of these vast primordial periods, I can give no satisfactory answer. Several of the most eminent geologists, with Sir E. Murchison at their head, are convinced that we see in the organic remains of the lowest Silurian stratum the dawn of life on this planet. Other highly competent judges, as Lyell and the late E. Forbes, dispute this conclusion. We should not forget that only a small portion of the world is known with accuracy. M. Barrande has lately added another and lower stage to the Silurian system, abounding with new and peculiar species. Traces of life have been detected in the Longmynd beds, beneath Barrande's so-called primordial zone. The presence of phosphatic nodules and bituminous matter in some of the lowest azoic rocks, probably indicates the former existence of life at these periods. But the difficulty of understanding the absence of vast piles of fossiliferous strata, which on my theory no doubt were somewhere accumulated before the Silurian epoch, is very great. If these most ancient beds had been wholly worn away by denudation, or obliterated by metamorphic action, we ought to find only small remnants of the formations next succeeding them in age, and these ought to be very generally in a metamorphosed condition. But the descriptions which we now possess of the Silurian deposits over immense territories in Russia and in North America, do not support the view, that the older a formation is, the more it has always suffered the extremity of denudation and metamorphism.

To the question of why we don't find records of these vast primordial periods, I can't provide a satisfactory answer. Several leading geologists, including Sir E. Murchison, believe that the organic remains in the lowest Silurian layer mark the beginning of life on this planet. However, other highly qualified experts, like Lyell and the late E. Forbes, disagree with this conclusion. We shouldn't forget that only a small part of the world is accurately known. M. Barrande has recently added another lower stage to the Silurian system, filled with new and unique species. Evidence of life has been found in the Longmynd beds, beneath Barrande's so-called primordial zone. The presence of phosphatic nodules and bituminous matter in some of the lowest azoic rocks likely indicates that life once existed during these times. However, it's quite challenging to understand the absence of large amounts of fossil-rich layers, which, according to my theory, must have accumulated somewhere before the Silurian period. If these ancient layers had been entirely worn away by erosion or erased by metamorphic activity, we would expect to find only small remnants of the subsequent formations, and they would likely be in a metamorphosed state. But the descriptions we have of the Silurian deposits spread over vast areas in Russia and North America do not support the idea that the older a formation is, the more it has undergone extreme erosion and metamorphism.

The case at present must remain inexplicable; and may be truly urged as a valid argument against the views here entertained. To show that it may hereafter receive some explanation, I will give the following hypothesis. From the nature of the organic remains which [309]do not appear to have inhabited profound depths, in the several formations of Europe and of the United States; and from the amount of sediment, miles in thickness, of which the formations are composed, we may infer that from first to last large islands or tracts of land, whence the sediment was derived, occurred in the neighbourhood of the existing continents of Europe and North America. But we do not know what was the state of things in the intervals between the successive formations; whether Europe and the United States during these intervals existed as dry land, or as a submarine surface near land, on which sediment was not deposited, or as the bed of an open and unfathomable sea.

The current case must remain unexplained and can actually be considered a strong argument against the ideas presented here. To suggest that it might eventually be understood, I will propose the following hypothesis. Based on the type of organic remains which do not seem to have lived in deep waters across various formations in Europe and the United States, and considering the thick layers of sediment that make up these formations, we can infer that throughout history, large islands or land areas, from which the sediment originated, were located near the existing continents of Europe and North America. However, we don’t know what the situation was like during the gaps between these formations; whether Europe and the United States were dry land during these times, or a submerged area close to land where sediment was not deposited, or the bottom of an open and immeasurable sea.

Looking to the existing oceans, which are thrice as extensive as the land, we see them studded with many islands; but not one oceanic island is as yet known to afford even a remnant of any palæozoic or secondary formation. Hence we may perhaps infer, that during the palæozoic and secondary periods, neither continents nor continental islands existed where our oceans now extend; for had they existed there, palæozoic and secondary formations would in all probability have been accumulated from sediment derived from their wear and tear; and would have been at least partially upheaved by the oscillations of level, which we may fairly conclude must have intervened during these enormously long periods. If then we may infer anything from these facts, we may infer that where our oceans now extend, oceans have extended from the remotest period of which we have any record; and on the other hand, that where continents now exist, large tracts of land have existed, subjected no doubt to great oscillations of level, since the earliest silurian period. The coloured map appended to my volume on Coral Reefs, led me to conclude that the great oceans are still mainly areas of [310]subsidence, the great archipelagoes still areas of oscillations of level, and the continents areas of elevation. But have we any right to assume that things have thus remained from the beginning of this world? Our continents seem to have been formed by a preponderance, during many oscillations of level, of the force of elevation; but may not the areas of preponderant movement have changed in the lapse of ages? At a period immeasurably antecedent to the silurian epoch, continents may have existed where oceans are now spread out; and clear and open oceans may have existed where our continents now stand. Nor should we be justified in assuming that if, for instance, the bed of the Pacific Ocean were now converted into a continent, we should there find formations older than the silurian strata, supposing such to have been formerly deposited; for it might well happen that strata which had subsided some miles nearer to the centre of the earth, and which had been pressed on by an enormous weight of superincumbent water, might have undergone far more metamorphic action than strata which have always remained nearer to the surface. The immense areas in some parts of the world, for instance in South America, of bare metamorphic rocks, which must have been heated under great pressure, have always seemed to me to require some special explanation; and we may perhaps believe that we see in these large areas, the many formations long anterior to the silurian epoch in a completely metamorphosed condition.

Looking at the existing oceans, which are three times larger than the land, we see they're dotted with many islands; however, not a single oceanic island is known to have any remnants of Paleozoic or secondary formations. Therefore, we might conclude that during the Paleozoic and secondary periods, there were neither continents nor continental islands where our oceans now are; if they had existed, Paleozoic and secondary formations would likely have accumulated from sediment that came from their erosion and would at least have been partially uplifted by the changes in sea level, which we can reasonably believe occurred during these incredibly long times. So, if we can draw any conclusions from these facts, we might infer that where our oceans currently spread, oceans have existed since the earliest times recorded; conversely, where continents are now, extensive landmasses have also existed, subject to significant changes in sea level, since the earliest Silurian period. The colored map attached to my volume on Coral Reefs led me to conclude that the great oceans are still mostly areas of subsidence, the vast archipelagos are still areas of changes in sea level, and the continents are regions of elevation. But do we have any reason to believe that things have remained this way since the beginning of the world? Our continents seem to have formed from a dominance of elevating forces during many changes in sea level; however, could it be that these areas of predominant movement have shifted over ages? Long before the Silurian epoch, continents might have existed where oceans are now, and clear, open oceans might have existed where our continents currently are. We should also not assume that if, for example, the bed of the Pacific Ocean became a continent now, we would find formations older than the Silurian strata there, assuming such formations had been previously deposited; it's quite possible that layers which had sunk closer to the Earth's center, under immense pressure from the weight of the water above, might have experienced much more metamorphic change than layers that have always stayed closer to the surface. The vast areas of bare metamorphic rocks found in some parts of the world, such as South America, which must have been heated under great pressure, have always seemed to me to need some special explanation; and we might believe these large areas show formations that are much older than the Silurian epoch in a completely metamorphosed state.

 

The several difficulties here discussed, namely our not finding in the successive formations infinitely numerous transitional links between the many species which now exist or have existed; the sudden manner [311]in which whole groups of species appear in our European formations; the almost entire absence, as at present known, of fossiliferous formations beneath the Silurian strata, are all undoubtedly of the gravest nature. We see this in the plainest manner by the fact that all the most eminent palæontologists, namely Cuvier, Agassiz, Barrande, Falconer, E. Forbes, &c., and all our greatest geologists, as Lyell, Murchison, Sedgwick, &c., have unanimously, often vehemently, maintained the immutability of species. But I have reason to believe that one great authority, Sir Charles Lyell, from further reflexion entertains grave doubts on this subject. I feel how rash it is to differ from these authorities, to whom, with others, we owe all our knowledge. Those who think the natural geological record in any degree perfect, and who do not attach much weight to the facts and arguments of other kinds given in this volume, will undoubtedly at once reject my theory. For my part, following out Lyell's metaphor, I look at the natural geological record, as a history of the world imperfectly kept, and written in a changing dialect; of this history we possess the last volume alone, relating only to two or three countries. Of this volume, only here and there a short chapter has been preserved; and of each page, only here and there a few lines. Each word of the slowly-changing language, in which the history is supposed to be written, being more or less different in the interrupted succession of chapters, may represent the apparently abruptly changed forms of life, entombed in our consecutive, but widely separated, formations. On this view, the difficulties above discussed are greatly diminished, or even disappear.

The various difficulties we've talked about—like not finding countless transitional links between the many species that currently exist or have existed, the sudden appearance of entire groups of species in our European formations, and the almost complete lack of fossil-rich formations beneath the Silurian layers—are definitely serious issues. This is made clear by the fact that all the leading paleontologists, like Cuvier, Agassiz, Barrande, Falconer, E. Forbes, and others, as well as the top geologists like Lyell, Murchison, and Sedgwick, have all consistently, and often passionately, asserted that species remain unchanged. However, I believe that one significant figure, Sir Charles Lyell, has serious doubts about this as he reflects more on the topic. I realize how bold it is to disagree with these respected authorities, to whom we owe almost all our knowledge. Those who consider the natural geological record to be fairly complete and who don’t prioritize the other facts and arguments presented in this book will likely dismiss my theory immediately. Personally, I view the natural geological record, following Lyell's metaphor, as an incomplete history of the world that’s been recorded in a shifting language; we only have the last volume of this history, which relates to only two or three regions. In this volume, only a few short chapters have been preserved, and from each page, there are just a handful of lines left. Each word in this slowly-evolving language, where the history is thought to be written, differs somewhat throughout the fragmented chapters, representing the seemingly abrupt changes in forms of life found in our successive but widely spaced formations. From this perspective, the difficulties we've discussed significantly lessen or even vanish.


[312]

[312]

CHAPTER X.

On the Geological Succession of Organic Beings.

On the Geological Sequence of Living Organisms.

On the slow and successive appearance of new species—On their different rates of change—Species once lost do not reappear—Groups of species follow the same general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single species—On Extinction—On simultaneous changes in the forms of life throughout the world—On the affinities of extinct species to each other and to living species—On the state of development of ancient forms—On the succession of the same types within the same areas—Summary of preceding and present chapters.

The gradual and ongoing emergence of new species—Their different rates of change—Species that go extinct do not return—Groups of species exhibit similar patterns in their emergence and extinction as individual species—On extinction—On simultaneous changes in life forms worldwide—On the relationships between extinct species and living species—On the developmental stages of ancient forms—On the succession of similar types in the same areas—Summary of previous and current chapters.

Let us now see whether the several facts and rules relating to the geological succession of organic beings, better accord with the common view of the immutability of species, or with that of their slow and gradual modification, through descent and natural selection.

Let’s now examine whether the various facts and principles about the geological succession of living organisms align more with the traditional belief in the unchanging nature of species, or with the idea of their gradual change over time through descent and natural selection.

New species have appeared very slowly, one after another, both on the land and in the waters. Lyell has shown that it is hardly possible to resist the evidence on this head in the case of the several tertiary stages; and every year tends to fill up the blanks between them, and to make the percentage system of lost and new forms more gradual. In some of the most recent beds, though undoubtedly of high antiquity if measured by years, only one or two species are lost forms, and only one or two are new forms, having here appeared for the first time, either locally, or, as far as we know, on the face of the earth. If we may trust the observations of Philippi in Sicily, the successive changes in the marine inhabitants of that island have been many and most gradual. The secondary formations are more broken; but, as Bronn has remarked, neither the appearance [313]nor disappearance of their many now extinct species has been simultaneous in each separate formation.

New species have emerged very slowly, one after another, both on land and in water. Lyell has demonstrated that it’s nearly impossible to ignore the evidence regarding this in the various tertiary stages; each year helps fill in the gaps between them, making the percentage system of lost and new forms more gradual. In some of the most recent geological layers, even though they are quite ancient in terms of years, only one or two species are represented as lost forms, and just one or two are new forms that have appeared here for the first time, either locally or, as far as we know, anywhere on the planet. If we can trust Philippi's observations in Sicily, the gradual changes in the island's marine life have been numerous and gradual. The secondary formations are more fragmented; however, as Bronn has pointed out, neither the appearance nor the disappearance of their many now-extinct species has happened at the same time within each separate formation.

Species of different genera and classes have not changed at the same rate, or in the same degree. In the oldest tertiary beds a few living shells may still be found in the midst of a multitude of extinct forms. Falconer has given a striking instance of a similar fact, in an existing crocodile associated with many strange and lost mammals and reptiles in the sub-Himalayan deposits. The Silurian Lingula differs but little from the living species of this genus; whereas most of the other Silurian Molluscs and all the Crustaceans have changed greatly. The productions of the land seem to change at a quicker rate than those of the sea, of which a striking instance has lately been observed in Switzerland. There is some reason to believe that organisms, considered high in the scale of nature, change more quickly than those that are low: though there are exceptions to this rule. The amount of organic change, as Pictet has remarked, does not strictly correspond with the succession of our geological formations; so that between each two consecutive formations, the forms of life have seldom changed in exactly the same degree. Yet if we compare any but the most closely related formations, all the species will be found to have undergone some change. When a species has once disappeared from the face of the earth, we have reason to believe that the same identical form never reappears. The strongest apparent exception to this latter rule, is that of the so-called "colonies" of M. Barrande, which intrude for a period in the midst of an older formation, and then allow the pre-existing fauna to reappear; but Lyell's explanation, namely, that it is a case of temporary migration from a distinct geographical province, seems to me satisfactory. [314]

Species from different genera and classes haven't changed at the same pace or to the same extent. In the oldest tertiary layers, you might still find a few living shells among a wide variety of extinct ones. Falconer pointed out a striking example of this with a living crocodile found alongside many unusual mammals and reptiles in the sub-Himalayan deposits. The Silurian Lingula is quite similar to the living species in this genus, while most other Silurian mollusks and all crustaceans have changed significantly. It seems that land organisms change faster than those in the sea, a notable fact recently observed in Switzerland. There's some evidence to suggest that organisms considered to be higher on the evolutionary scale evolve more rapidly than those that are lower, although there are exceptions. As Pictet noted, the extent of organic change doesn't always align with the sequence of our geological formations, meaning that between any two consecutive formations, the life forms rarely change to the same degree. However, if we look at formations that aren't the most closely related, we generally find that all species have experienced some change. Once a species has vanished from the earth, we have reason to believe that the exact same form never reappears. The most significant apparent exception to this rule involves the so-called "colonies" of M. Barrande, which temporarily appear in the middle of an older formation before allowing the earlier fauna to reemerge; but Lyell's explanation, which suggests it's a case of temporary migration from a different geographical region, seems reasonable to me. [314]

These several facts accord well with my theory. I believe in no fixed law of development, causing all the inhabitants of a country to change abruptly, or simultaneously, or to an equal degree. The process of modification must be extremely slow. The variability of each species is quite independent of that of all others. Whether such variability be taken advantage of by natural selection, and whether the variations be accumulated to a greater or lesser amount, thus causing a greater or lesser amount of modification in the varying species, depends on many complex contingencies,—on the variability being of a beneficial nature, on the power of intercrossing, on the rate of breeding, on the slowly changing physical conditions of the country, and more especially on the nature of the other inhabitants with which the varying species comes into competition. Hence it is by no means surprising that one species should retain the same identical form much longer than others; or, if changing, that it should change less. We see the same fact in geographical distribution; for instance, in the land-shells and coleopterous insects of Madeira having come to differ considerably from their nearest allies on the continent of Europe, whereas the marine shells and birds have remained unaltered. We can perhaps understand the apparently quicker rate of change in terrestrial and in more highly organised productions compared with marine and lower productions, by the more complex relations of the higher beings to their organic and inorganic conditions of life, as explained in a former chapter. When many of the inhabitants of a country have become modified and improved, we can understand, on the principle of competition, and on that of the many all-important relations of organism to organism, that any form which does not become in some degree modified and improved, [315]will be liable to be exterminated. Hence we can see why all the species in the same region do at last, if we look to wide enough intervals of time, become modified; for those which do not change will become extinct.

These facts fit well with my theory. I don’t believe in a fixed law of development that causes all the inhabitants of a country to change suddenly, simultaneously, or to the same extent. The process of change must be very slow. The variability of each species is completely independent of that of others. Whether natural selection takes advantage of this variability and whether the variations accumulate to a greater or lesser extent—leading to more or less change in the adapting species—depends on many complicated factors. This includes whether the variability is beneficial, the ability to interbreed, the breeding rate, the slowly changing physical conditions of the area, and, importantly, the nature of the other inhabitants competing with the adapting species. Therefore, it’s not surprising that one species may maintain the same exact form much longer than others; or, if it does change, that it should change less. We see the same phenomenon in geographical distribution; for example, the land snails and beetles of Madeira have diverged significantly from their closest relatives on the European continent, while the marine shells and birds have remained unchanged. We can perhaps understand the seemingly faster rate of change in land species and more complex organisms compared to marine and simpler forms, due to the more complicated relationships of higher beings to their environmental conditions, as explained in a previous chapter. When many residents of a country have become modified and improved, we can understand, based on competition and the crucial relationships between organisms, that any form that doesn’t become somewhat modified and improved will be at risk of extinction. This explains why all species in the same area eventually, over long enough periods, become modified; those that don’t change will die out.

In members of the same class the average amount of change, during long and equal periods of time, may, perhaps, be nearly the same; but as the accumulation of long-enduring fossiliferous formations depends on great masses of sediment having been deposited on areas whilst subsiding, our formations have been almost necessarily accumulated at wide and irregularly intermittent intervals; consequently the amount of organic change exhibited by the fossils embedded in consecutive formations is not equal. Each formation, on this view, does not mark a new and complete act of creation, but only an occasional scene, taken almost at hazard, in a slowly changing drama.

In members of the same class, the average amount of change over long and equal periods of time may be pretty much the same; however, since the buildup of long-lasting fossil-bearing formations relies on large amounts of sediment being deposited in areas while they sink, our formations have been accumulated at broad and irregular intervals. As a result, the level of organic change shown by the fossils found in successive formations isn’t the same. Each formation, from this perspective, doesn’t represent a new and complete act of creation but rather an occasional snapshot, taken almost randomly, in a slowly evolving drama.

We can clearly understand why a species when once lost should never reappear, even if the very same conditions of life, organic and inorganic, should recur. For though the offspring of one species might be adapted (and no doubt this has occurred in innumerable instances) to fill the exact place of another species in the economy of nature, and thus supplant it; yet the two forms—the old and the new—would not be identically the same; for both would almost certainly inherit different characters from their distinct progenitors. For instance, it is just possible, if our fantail-pigeons were all destroyed, that fanciers, by striving during long ages for the same object, might make a new breed hardly distinguishable from our present fantail; but if the parent rock-pigeon were also destroyed, and in nature we have every reason to believe that the parent-form will generally be supplanted and exterminated by its improved offspring, it is quite [316]incredible that a fantail, identical with the existing breed, could be raised from any other species of pigeon, or even from the other well-established races of the domestic pigeon, for the newly-formed fantail would be almost sure to inherit from its new progenitor some slight characteristic differences.

We can clearly see why a species, once lost, should never come back, even if the same living conditions, both organic and inorganic, return. Because while the descendants of one species might adapt (and no doubt this has happened countless times) to fill the exact role of another species in the ecosystem and replace it; the two forms—the old and the new—would not be exactly the same; each would likely inherit different traits from their distinct ancestors. For example, it's possible that if all our fantail pigeons were wiped out, breeders, after many years of effort, could create a new breed that's barely different from our current fantail; however, if the original rock pigeon were also gone, we have every reason to believe that the original form would generally be replaced and eliminated by its improved descendants. It's highly unlikely that a fantail, identical to the existing breed, could be produced from any other species of pigeon, or even from the other well-known breeds of domestic pigeon, because the newly-created fantail would almost certainly inherit some slight trait differences from its new ancestor.

Groups of species, that is, genera and families, follow the same general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single species, changing more or less quickly, and in a greater or lesser degree. A group does not reappear after it has once disappeared; or its existence, as long as it lasts, is continuous. I am aware that there are some apparent exceptions to this rule, but the exceptions are surprisingly few, so few that E. Forbes, Pictet, and Woodward (though all strongly opposed to such views as I maintain) admit its truth; and the rule strictly accords with my theory. For as all the species of the same group have descended from some one species, it is clear that as long as any species of the group have appeared in the long succession of ages, so long must its members have continuously existed, in order to have generated either new and modified or the same old and unmodified forms. Species of the genus Lingula, for instance, must have continuously existed by an unbroken succession of generations, from the lowest Silurian stratum to the present day.

Groups of species, like genera and families, follow the same general patterns in their emergence and extinction as individual species do, changing at varying rates and degrees. A group doesn’t come back after it has disappeared; if it exists, it does so continuously. I know that there are some apparent exceptions to this rule, but they are surprisingly few—so few that E. Forbes, Pictet, and Woodward (who all strongly disagree with my views) acknowledge its validity; and the rule aligns perfectly with my theory. Since all species in the same group have descended from a single species, it’s clear that as long as any species of the group has existed over the ages, its members must have continuously existed as well, in order to produce either new and modified forms or the same old unmodified ones. For example, species of the genus Lingula must have continuously existed through an unbroken series of generations, from the earliest Silurian layers to today.

We have seen in the last chapter that the species of a group sometimes falsely appear to have come in abruptly; and I have attempted to give an explanation of this fact, which if true would have been fatal to my views. But such cases are certainly exceptional; the general rule being a gradual increase in number, till the group reaches its maximum, and then, sooner or later, it gradually decreases. If the number of the species of a genus, or the number of [317]the genera of a family, be represented by a vertical line of varying thickness, crossing the successive geological formations in which the species are found, the line will sometimes falsely appear to begin at its lower end, not in a sharp point, but abruptly; it then gradually thickens upwards, sometimes keeping for a space of equal thickness, and ultimately thins out in the upper beds, marking the decrease and final extinction of the species. This gradual increase in number of the species of a group is strictly conformable with my theory; as the species of the same genus, and the genera of the same family, can increase only slowly and progressively; for the process of modification and the production of a number of allied forms must be slow and gradual,—one species giving rise first to two or three varieties, these being slowly converted into species, which in their turn produce by equally slow steps other species, and so on, like the branching of a great tree from a single stem, till the group becomes large.

We saw in the last chapter that sometimes the species of a group can seem to appear suddenly, and I tried to explain this phenomenon, which, if true, would undermine my theories. However, these instances are definitely exceptions; the general trend is a gradual increase in number until the group reaches its peak, and then it slowly decreases over time. If we represent the number of species in a genus, or the number of genera in a family, with a vertical line of varying thickness that intersects different geological layers where the species are found, the line might misleadingly seem to start at its lower end not as a sharp point but abruptly; it then gradually thickens upwards, sometimes maintaining a uniform thickness for a while, and eventually tapers off in the upper layers, indicating the decline and final extinction of the species. This gradual increase in the number of species within a group aligns with my theory, as the species of the same genus and the genera of the same family can only increase slowly and progressively; the process of modification and the emergence of several related forms must happen gradually—one species first giving rise to two or three varieties, which are then slowly transformed into distinct species, each of which in turn produces more species through equally slow steps, much like the branching of a large tree from a single trunk, until the group becomes extensive.

 

On Extinction.—We have as yet spoken only incidentally of the disappearance of species and of groups of species. On the theory of natural selection the extinction of old forms and the production of new and improved forms are intimately connected together. The old notion of all the inhabitants of the earth having been swept away at successive periods by catastrophes, is very generally given up, even by those geologists, as Elie de Beaumont, Murchison, Barrande, &c., whose general views would naturally lead them to this conclusion. On the contrary, we have every reason to believe, from the study of the tertiary formations, that species and groups of species gradually disappear, one after another, first from one spot, then from another, and finally from the world. Both single species and whole [318]groups of species last for very unequal periods; some groups, as we have seen, having endured from the earliest known dawn of life to the present day; some having disappeared before the close of the palæozoic period. No fixed law seems to determine the length of time during which any single species or any single genus endures. There is reason to believe that the complete extinction of the species of a group is generally a slower process than their production: if the appearance and disappearance of a group of species be represented, as before, by a vertical line of varying thickness, the line is found to taper more gradually at its upper end, which marks the progress of extermination, than at its lower end, which marks the first appearance and increase in numbers of the species. In some cases, however, the extermination of whole groups of beings, as of ammonites towards the close of the secondary period, has been wonderfully sudden.

On Extinction.—So far, we've only touched on the disappearance of species and groups of species. According to the theory of natural selection, the extinction of older forms and the emergence of new and better forms are closely linked. The old idea that all the Earth's inhabitants were wiped out in successive cataclysms is largely abandoned, even by geologists like Elie de Beaumont, Murchison, Barrande, and others whose general perspectives might lead them to that conclusion. Instead, we have good reason to believe, based on our study of tertiary formations, that species and groups of species gradually disappear, one after another, starting from one location, then another, until they vanish entirely. Individual species and whole groups of species exist for very different amounts of time; as we've seen, some groups have lasted from the earliest known life to the present day, while others disappeared before the end of the Paleozoic era. There's no fixed rule that dictates how long any single species or genus survives. It appears that the complete extinction of a species group is usually a slower process than their emergence: if we depict the rise and fall of a species group with a vertical line of varying thickness, the line tapers off more gently at the top, which represents the extinction process, compared to the bottom, which marks the initial appearance and growth of the species. However, in some instances, the extinction of entire groups, like ammonites towards the end of the secondary period, has been remarkably abrupt.

The whole subject of the extinction of species has been involved in the most gratuitous mystery. Some authors have even supposed that as the individual has a definite length of life, so have species a definite duration. No one I think can have marvelled more at the extinction of species, than I have done. When I found in La Plata the tooth of a horse embedded with the remains of Mastodon, Megatherium, Toxodon, and other extinct monsters, which all co-existed with still living shells at a very late geological period, I was filled with astonishment; for seeing that the horse, since its introduction by the Spaniards into South America, has run wild over the whole country and has increased in numbers at an unparalleled rate, I asked myself what could so recently have exterminated the former horse under conditions of life apparently so favourable. But how utterly groundless was my astonishment! [319]Professor Owen soon perceived that the tooth, though so like that of the existing horse, belonged to an extinct species. Had this horse been still living, but in some degree rare, no naturalist would have felt the least surprise at its rarity; for rarity is the attribute of a vast number of species of all classes, in all countries. If we ask ourselves why this or that species is rare, we answer that something is unfavourable in its conditions of life; but what that something is, we can hardly ever tell. On the supposition of the fossil horse still existing as a rare species, we might have felt certain from the analogy of all other mammals, even of the slow-breeding elephant, and from the history of the naturalisation of the domestic horse in South America, that under more favourable conditions it would in a very few years have stocked the whole continent. But we could not have told what the unfavourable conditions were which checked its increase, whether some one or several contingencies, and at what period of the horse's life, and in what degree, they severally acted. If the conditions had gone on, however slowly, becoming less and less favourable, we assuredly should not have perceived the fact, yet the fossil horse would certainly have become rarer and rarer, and finally extinct;—its place being seized on by some more successful competitor.

The entire topic of species extinction has been wrapped in unnecessary mystery. Some writers have even suggested that just as individual organisms have a set lifespan, so do species have a defined duration. No one, I believe, has been more amazed by species extinction than I have. When I discovered in La Plata the tooth of a horse buried alongside the remains of Mastodon, Megatherium, Toxodon, and other extinct creatures that all coexisted with still-living shells at a relatively recent geological period, I was completely astonished. Considering that horses, since being introduced by the Spaniards to South America, have gone wild across the entire continent and have increased in numbers at an unprecedented rate, I wondered what could have possibly wiped out the earlier horse under circumstances that seemed so favorable. But how completely unfounded was my astonishment! Professor Owen quickly pointed out that the tooth, despite resembling that of the modern horse, belonged to an extinct species. If this horse had still been alive, but somewhat rare, no naturalist would have been surprised at its rarity; after all, rarity is a common characteristic among many species across all categories and countries. If we ask why a particular species is rare, we say that something about its living conditions is unfavorable, but we can rarely pinpoint what that something is. If we assumed the fossil horse still existed as a rare species, we could have reasonably concluded, based on the behavior of all other mammals, even slowly reproducing elephants, and the history of domestic horses in South America, that under better conditions it would have populated the entire continent in just a few years. However, we could never identify the unfavorable conditions that limited its growth—whether they were due to one or multiple factors, and at what point in the horse's life they each took effect. If the conditions gradually worsened, even slowly, we surely wouldn’t have noticed, yet the fossil horse would have indeed become increasingly rare and ultimately extinct, making way for a more successful competitor.

It is most difficult always to remember that the increase of every living being is constantly being checked by unperceived injurious agencies; and that these same unperceived agencies are amply sufficient to cause rarity, and finally extinction. We see in many cases in the more recent tertiary formations, that rarity precedes extinction; and we know that this has been the progress of events with those animals which have been exterminated, either locally or wholly, through [320]man's agency. I may repeat what I published in 1845, namely, that to admit that species generally become rare before they become extinct—to feel no surprise at the rarity of a species, and yet to marvel greatly when it ceases to exist, is much the same as to admit that sickness in the individual is the forerunner of death—to feel no surprise at sickness, but when the sick man dies, to wonder and to suspect that he died by some unknown deed of violence.

It’s really hard to remember that the growth of every living thing is constantly impacted by unseen harmful factors; and that these same unseen factors are more than enough to lead to scarcity and eventually extinction. We can see in many cases from the more recent tertiary formations that scarcity comes before extinction; and we know this has happened with those animals that have been wiped out, either locally or completely, through [320]human actions. I can reiterate what I published in 1845—that to acknowledge that species generally become rare before they go extinct—to not be surprised by a species’ rarity, yet to be greatly astonished when it disappears, is very similar to acknowledging that illness in a person often precedes death—to not be surprised by sickness, but when the ill person dies, to wonder and suspect that it was due to some unknown act of violence.

The theory of natural selection is grounded on the belief that each new variety, and ultimately each new species, is produced and maintained by having some advantage over those with which it comes into competition; and the consequent extinction of less-favoured forms almost inevitably follows. It is the same with our domestic productions: when a new and slightly improved variety has been raised, it at first supplants the less improved varieties in the same neighbourhood; when much improved it is transported far and near, like our short-horn cattle, and takes the place of other breeds in other countries. Thus the appearance of new forms and the disappearance of old forms, both natural and artificial, are bound together. In certain flourishing groups, the number of new specific forms which have been produced within a given time is probably greater than that of the old specific forms which have been exterminated; but we know that the number of species has not gone on indefinitely increasing, at least during the later geological periods, so that looking to later times we may believe that the production of new forms has caused the extinction of about the same number of old forms.

The theory of natural selection is based on the idea that each new variety, and ultimately each new species, is created and sustained by having some advantage over those it competes with; and the resulting extinction of less favored forms almost inevitably follows. The same goes for our domesticated products: when a new and slightly improved variety is developed, it initially replaces the less improved varieties in the same area; when it's significantly better, it spreads far and wide, like our short-horn cattle, and takes the place of other breeds in different countries. Therefore, the emergence of new forms and the disappearance of old forms, both natural and artificial, are interconnected. In certain thriving groups, the number of new species that have emerged in a given time is likely greater than the number of old species that have been wiped out; however, we know that the number of species hasn’t just kept increasing indefinitely, at least in the later geological periods, so looking toward more recent times, we can believe that the creation of new forms has led to the extinction of about the same number of old forms.

The competition will generally be most severe, as formerly explained and illustrated by examples, between the forms which are most like each other in all respects. [321]Hence the improved and modified descendants of a species will generally cause the extermination of the parent-species; and if many new forms have been developed from any one species, the nearest allies of that species, i.e. the species of the same genus, will be the most liable to extermination. Thus, as I believe, a number of new species descended from one species, that is a new genus, comes to supplant an old genus, belonging to the same family. But it must often have happened that a new species belonging to some one group will have seized on the place occupied by a species belonging to a distinct group, and thus caused its extermination; and if many allied forms be developed from the successful intruder, many will have to yield their places; and it will generally be allied forms, which will suffer from some inherited inferiority in common. But whether it be species belonging to the same or to a distinct class, which yield their places to other species which have been modified and improved, a few of the sufferers may often long be preserved, from being fitted to some peculiar line of life, or from inhabiting some distant and isolated station, where they have escaped severe competition. For instance, a single species of Trigonia, a great genus of shells in the secondary formations, survives in the Australian seas; and a few members of the great and almost extinct group of Ganoid fishes still inhabit our fresh waters. Therefore the utter extinction of a group is generally, as we have seen, a slower process than its production.

The competition is usually toughest, as explained and shown in examples before, between forms that are most similar to each other in every way. [321]As a result, the improved and modified descendants of a species will often lead to the extinction of the parent species; and if many new forms arise from one species, the closest relatives of that species, meaning those from the same genus, will be the most likely to face extinction. So, I believe that several new species descended from one species, forming a new genus, will replace an old genus from the same family. However, it's also likely that a new species from one group will take over the space occupied by a species from a different group, leading to that species' extinction; if many closely related forms develop from the successful newcomer, many others will have to give up their spots, usually those that are similar and share some inherited disadvantages. But whether it’s species from the same or a different group that lose their places to modified and improved species, some of the ones that suffer can often survive for a long time, either because they are suited to a specific lifestyle or because they live in a remote and isolated location where they avoid intense competition. For example, a single species of Trigonia, a large genus of shells from the secondary formations, still exists in the Australian seas; and a few members of the nearly extinct group of Ganoid fishes still inhabit our freshwater. Therefore, the complete extinction of a group is typically a slower process than its emergence.

With respect to the apparently sudden extermination of whole families or orders, as of Trilobites at the close of the palæozoic period and of Ammonites at the close of the secondary period, we must remember what has been already said on the probable wide intervals of time [322]between our consecutive formations; and in these intervals there may have been much slow extermination. Moreover, when by sudden immigration or by unusually rapid development, many species of a new group have taken possession of a new area, they will have exterminated in a correspondingly rapid manner many of the old inhabitants; and the forms which thus yield their places will commonly be allied, for they will partake of some inferiority in common.

In relation to the seemingly sudden extinction of entire families or groups, like Trilobites at the end of the Paleozoic era and Ammonites at the end of the Mesozoic era, we should keep in mind what has already been mentioned about the likely long gaps of time [322] between our successive formations; during these gaps, there may have been a lot of gradual extinction. Additionally, when a new group of species rapidly moves in or develops quickly, they can wipe out many of the existing inhabitants just as quickly; and the species that lose their places will usually be related, as they will share some common weaknesses.

Thus, as it seems to me, the manner in which single species and whole groups of species become extinct, accords well with the theory of natural selection. We need not marvel at extinction; if we must marvel, let it be at our presumption in imagining for a moment that we understand the many complex contingencies, on which the existence of each species depends. If we forget for an instant, that each species tends to increase inordinately, and that some check is always in action, yet seldom perceived by us, the whole economy of nature will be utterly obscured. Whenever we can precisely say why this species is more abundant in individuals than that; why this species and not another can be naturalised in a given country; then, and not till then, we may justly feel surprise why we cannot account for the extinction of this particular species or group of species.

So, it seems to me that the way individual species and entire groups of species go extinct aligns well with the theory of natural selection. We shouldn’t be amazed by extinction; if we need to be amazed, it should be at our arrogance in thinking we truly understand the many complex factors that affect the survival of each species. If we forget for a moment that each species tends to grow excessively, and that some form of limitation is always at work—yet often unnoticed by us—the entire balance of nature will be completely unclear. When we can clearly explain why this species has more individuals than that one, or why this species can thrive in a certain country while another cannot, only then can we reasonably be surprised that we can’t explain the extinction of a particular species or group of species.

 

On the Forms of Life changing almost simultaneously throughout the World.—Scarcely any palæontological discovery is more striking than the fact, that the forms of life change almost simultaneously throughout the world. Thus our European Chalk formation can be recognised in many distant parts of the world, under the most different climates, where not a fragment of the mineral chalk itself can be found; namely, in North [323]America, in equatorial South America, in Tierra del Fuego, at the Cape of Good Hope, and in the peninsula of India. For at these distant points, the organic remains in certain beds present an unmistakeable degree of resemblance to those of the Chalk. It is not that the same species are met with; for in some cases not one species is identically the same, but they belong to the same families, genera, and sections of genera, and sometimes are similarly characterised in such trifling points as mere superficial sculpture. Moreover other forms, which are not found in the Chalk of Europe, but which occur in the formations either above or below, are similarly absent at these distant points of the world. In the several successive palæozoic formations of Russia, Western Europe and North America, a similar parallelism in the forms of life has been observed by several authors: so it is, according to Lyell, with the several European and North American tertiary deposits. Even if the few fossil species which are common to the Old and New Worlds be kept wholly out of view, the general parallelism in the successive forms of life, in the stages of the widely separated palæozoic and tertiary periods, would still be manifest, and the several formations could be easily correlated.

On the Forms of Life changing almost simultaneously throughout the World.—Few paleontological discoveries are as remarkable as the fact that forms of life change almost simultaneously all over the world. Our European Chalk formation can be identified in many far-flung regions, under various climates, where not a single fragment of the mineral chalk itself is found; that is, in North [323]America, equatorial South America, Tierra del Fuego, the Cape of Good Hope, and the Indian peninsula. At these distant locations, the organic remains in certain layers show a clear resemblance to those of the Chalk. It's not that the same species are present; in fact, in some cases, no species are identical, but they belong to the same families, genera, and sections of genera, and sometimes they are similarly characterized by tiny details like superficial texture. Furthermore, other forms that are not found in the Chalk of Europe but occur in the layers above or below it are also absent at these distant global points. Various authors have noted a similar parallelism in the forms of life across the different paleozoic formations of Russia, Western Europe, and North America: according to Lyell, the same is true for various European and North American tertiary deposits. Even if the few fossil species shared between the Old and New Worlds are disregarded, the overall parallelism in the successive forms of life during the widely separated paleozoic and tertiary periods remains evident, and the various formations can be easily correlated.

These observations, however, relate to the marine inhabitants of distant parts of the world: we have not sufficient data to judge whether the productions of the land and of fresh water change at distant points in the same parallel manner. We may doubt whether they have thus changed: if the Megatherium, Mylodon, Macrauchenia, and Toxodon had been brought to Europe from La Plata, without any information in regard to their geological position, no one would have suspected that they had co-existed with still living sea-shells; but as these anomalous monsters co-existed with the [324]Mastodon and Horse, it might at least have been inferred that they had lived during one of the later tertiary stages.

These observations, however, refer to the marine life in far-off parts of the world: we don't have enough data to determine whether the land and freshwater organisms change in the same way at different locations. We might question whether they have indeed changed: if the Megatherium, Mylodon, Macrauchenia, and Toxodon had been brought to Europe from La Plata, without any information about their geological context, no one would have guessed that they coexisted with still-living sea shells; but since these unusual creatures existed alongside the Mastodon and Horse, it could at least be suggested that they lived during one of the later tertiary periods.

When the marine forms of life are spoken of as having changed simultaneously throughout the world, it must not be supposed that this expression relates to the same thousandth or hundred-thousandth year, or even that it has a very strict geological sense; for if all the marine animals which live at the present day in Europe, and all those that lived in Europe during the pleistocene period (an enormously remote period as measured by years, including the whole glacial epoch), were to be compared with those now living in South America or in Australia, the most skilful naturalist would hardly be able to say whether the existing or the pleistocene inhabitants of Europe resembled most closely those of the southern hemisphere. So, again, several highly competent observers believe that the existing productions of the United States are more closely related to those which lived in Europe during certain later tertiary stages, than to those which now live here; and if this be so, it is evident that fossiliferous beds deposited at the present day on the shores of North America would hereafter be liable to be classed with somewhat older European beds. Nevertheless, looking to a remotely future epoch, there can, I think, be little doubt that all the more modern marine formations, namely, the upper pliocene, the pleistocene and strictly modern beds, of Europe, North and South America, and Australia, from containing fossil remains in some degree allied, and from not including those forms which are only found in the older underlying deposits, would be correctly ranked as simultaneous in a geological sense.

When we talk about marine life changing around the world at the same time, we shouldn't assume this means it happened in the same thousandth or hundred-thousandth year, or that it has a precise geological meaning. For instance, if we compare all the marine animals that are currently found in Europe with those that existed in Europe during the Pleistocene era (which is an incredibly distant time in terms of years, covering the entire ice age), even the most skilled naturalist would struggle to determine whether today's marine life in Europe resembles the Pleistocene species more closely than those found in South America or Australia. Similarly, some experienced observers think that the current organisms in the United States are actually more similar to those that existed in Europe during certain later Tertiary periods than to those that live here now. If that's the case, it would mean that fossil beds formed today along the shores of North America could eventually be classified alongside somewhat older European fossil beds. However, looking ahead to a far-off future, I believe it's clear that all the more recent marine formations, such as the Upper Pliocene, the Pleistocene, and modern layers in Europe, North and South America, and Australia, would be properly considered contemporaneous in a geological sense because they contain fossil remains that are somewhat related and exclude forms that are only found in the older layers below them.

The fact of the forms of life changing simultaneously, in the above large sense, at distant parts of the world, has greatly struck those admirable observers, MM. [325]de Verneuil and d'Archiac. After referring to the parallelism of the palæozoic forms of life in various parts of Europe, they add, "If struck by this strange sequence, we turn our attention to North America, and there discover a series of analogous phenomena, it will appear certain that all these modifications of species, their extinction, and the introduction of new ones, cannot be owing to mere changes in marine currents or other causes more or less local and temporary, but depend on general laws which govern the whole animal kingdom." M. Barrande has made forcible remarks to precisely the same effect. It is, indeed, quite futile to look to changes of currents, climate, or other physical conditions, as the cause of these great mutations in the forms of life throughout the world, under the most different climates. We must, as Barrande has remarked, look to some special law. We shall see this more clearly when we treat of the present distribution of organic beings, and find how slight is the relation between the physical conditions of various countries, and the nature of their inhabitants.

The fact that different forms of life are changing at the same time across distant parts of the world has greatly impressed notable observers, MM. [325]de Verneuil and d'Archiac. After noting the parallelism of Paleozoic life forms in various parts of Europe, they state, "If we are intrigued by this strange sequence and focus on North America, we discover a series of similar phenomena. This suggests that all these changes in species, their extinction, and the introduction of new ones cannot be attributed to mere shifts in marine currents or other more or less local and temporary causes, but are governed by general laws that apply to the entire animal kingdom." M. Barrande has made strong observations that align with this viewpoint. Indeed, it's pointless to blame changes in currents, climate, or other physical conditions for these significant shifts in life forms around the world, even in vastly different climates. As Barrande pointed out, we should look for some specific law. This will become clearer when we discuss the current distribution of organic beings and observe how little correlation exists between the physical conditions of different countries and the nature of their inhabitants.

This great fact of the parallel succession of the forms of life throughout the world, is explicable on the theory of natural selection. New species are formed by new varieties arising, which have some advantage over older forms; and those forms, which are already dominant, or have some advantage over the other forms in their own country, would naturally oftenest give rise to new varieties or incipient species; for these latter must be victorious in a still higher degree in order to be preserved and to survive. We have distinct evidence on this head, in the plants which are dominant, that is, which are commonest in their own homes, and are most widely diffused, having produced the greatest number of new varieties. It is also natural that the [326]dominant, varying, and far-spreading species, which already have invaded to a certain extent the territories of other species, should be those which would have the best chance of spreading still further, and of giving rise in new countries to new varieties and species. The process of diffusion may often be very slow, being dependent on climatal and geographical changes, or on strange accidents, but in the long run the dominant forms will generally succeed in spreading. The diffusion would, it is probable, be slower with the terrestrial inhabitants of distinct continents than with the marine inhabitants of the continuous sea. We might therefore expect to find, as we apparently do find, a less strict degree of parallel succession in the productions of the land than of the sea.

This significant fact about the parallel development of life forms around the world can be explained by the theory of natural selection. New species emerge from new varieties that have advantages over older ones, and those forms that are already common or have some competitive edge in their environment are more likely to produce new varieties or early species. For these new varieties to survive, they must excel even more. We have clear evidence for this in the plants that dominate their regions—those that are most abundant and widespread tend to generate the most new varieties. It makes sense that dominant, adaptable, and widely dispersed species, which have already encroached on the territories of other species, will have the best potential to spread even further and give rise to new varieties and species in different areas. While the process of spreading can be quite slow, depending on climate and geographical changes or random events, over time, dominant forms typically succeed in expanding their range. It is likely that the spread will be slower for land species on separate continents compared to marine species in the open sea. Therefore, we can expect to see, as we seemingly do, less consistent parallel development among land organisms than among those in the ocean.

Dominant species spreading from any region might encounter still more dominant species, and then their triumphant course, or even their existence, would cease. We know not at all precisely what are all the conditions most favourable for the multiplication of new and dominant species; but we can, I think, clearly see that a number of individuals, from giving a better chance of the appearance of favourable variations, and that severe competition with many already existing forms, would be highly favourable, as would be the power of spreading into new territories. A certain amount of isolation, recurring at long intervals of time, would probably be also favourable, as before explained. One quarter of the world may have been most favourable for the production of new and dominant species on the land, and another for those in the waters of the sea. If two great regions had been for a long period favourably circumstanced in an equal degree, whenever their inhabitants met, the battle would be prolonged and severe; and some from one birthplace and some from the other might be victorious. But in the course of time, the [327]forms dominant in the highest degree, wherever produced, would tend everywhere to prevail. As they prevailed, they would cause the extinction of other and inferior forms; and as these inferior forms would be allied in groups by inheritance, whole groups would tend slowly to disappear; though here and there a single member might long be enabled to survive.

Dominant species spreading from any area might face even more dominant species, leading to the end of their successful expansion or even their survival. We don’t know exactly what all the conditions are that favor the growth of new dominant species, but it seems clear that having a larger number of individuals increases the chances of favorable variations appearing, and intense competition with many existing forms would also be beneficial, along with the ability to expand into new areas. Some degree of isolation, occurring at long intervals, would likely help, as previously explained. One part of the world might have been particularly good for creating new dominant species on land, while another might have been better for those in water. If two large regions had been equally favorable for a long time, whenever their populations met, the conflict would be fierce, with some from one region and some from the other possibly emerging victorious. However, over time, the most dominant forms produced anywhere would likely come to prevail everywhere. As they dominated, they would lead to the extinction of other, weaker forms; and since these weaker forms would belong to groups based on inheritance, entire groups would gradually disappear, although occasionally, a single member might survive for a long time.

Thus, as it seems to me, the parallel, and, taken in a large sense, simultaneous, succession of the same forms of life throughout the world, accords well with the principle of new species having been formed by dominant species spreading widely and varying; the new species thus produced being themselves dominant owing to inheritance, and to having already had some advantage over their parents or over other species; these again spreading, varying, and producing new species. The forms which are beaten and which yield their places to the new and victorious forms, will generally be allied in groups, from inheriting some inferiority in common; and therefore as new and improved groups spread throughout the world, old groups will disappear from the world; and the succession of forms in both ways will everywhere tend to correspond.

So, it seems to me that the parallel, and in a broader sense, simultaneous occurrence of the same types of life across the globe aligns well with the idea that new species are formed when dominant species spread out and adapt. The new species produced become dominant themselves because of their inheritance and because they already have some advantages over their parents or other species; these new species then spread, adapt, and create more new species. The forms that are outcompeted and give way to the new victorious forms will generally be related in groups, sharing some common weaknesses. Therefore, as new and improved groups spread around the world, the old groups will vanish; and the succession of forms in both situations will tend to match everywhere.

There is one other remark connected with this subject worth making. I have given my reasons for believing that all our greater fossiliferous formations were deposited during periods of subsidence; and that blank intervals of vast duration occurred during the periods when the bed of the sea was either stationary or rising, and likewise when sediment was not thrown down quickly enough to embed and preserve organic remains. During these long and blank intervals I suppose that the inhabitants of each region underwent a considerable amount of modification and extinction, and that there was much migration from [328]other parts of the world. As we have reason to believe that large areas are affected by the same movement, it is probable that strictly contemporaneous formations have often been accumulated over very wide spaces in the same quarter of the world; but we are far from having any right to conclude that this has invariably been the case, and that large areas have invariably been affected by the same movements. When two formations have been deposited in two regions during nearly, but not exactly the same period, we should find in both, from the causes explained in the foregoing paragraphs, the same general succession in the forms of life; but the species would not exactly correspond; for there will have been a little more time in the one region than in the other for modification, extinction, and immigration.

There’s one more point related to this topic that’s worth mentioning. I’ve explained my reasons for thinking that all our major fossil-bearing formations were formed during times of land sinking; and that long periods of inactivity occurred when the seafloor was either stable or rising, as well as when sediment wasn't deposited quickly enough to encase and preserve organic remains. During these extended and inactive periods, I believe that the species in each area underwent significant changes and extinctions, and that there was a lot of movement from [328]other regions of the world. Since we have reason to think that large areas are influenced by similar geological movements, it’s likely that closely timed formations have been built up over very large areas in the same part of the world; but we can’t assume that this has always been the case, or that large areas have constantly been affected by the same movements. When two formations have formed in two regions during almost, but not exactly the same timeframe, we should find in both, due to the reasons discussed earlier, a similar order in the types of life; however, the species wouldn’t match up precisely, because one area might have had a bit more time than the other for change, extinction, and immigration.

I suspect that cases of this nature occur in Europe. Mr. Prestwich, in his admirable Memoirs on the eocene deposits of England and France, is able to draw a close general parallelism between the successive stages in the two countries; but when he compares certain stages in England with those in France, although he finds in both a curious accordance in the numbers of the species belonging to the same genera, yet the species themselves differ in a manner very difficult to account for, considering the proximity of the two areas,—unless, indeed, it be assumed that an isthmus separated two seas inhabited by distinct, but contemporaneous, faunas. Lyell has made similar observations on some of the later tertiary formations. Barrande, also, shows that there is a striking general parallelism in the successive Silurian deposits of Bohemia and Scandinavia; nevertheless he finds a surprising amount of difference in the species. If the several formations in these regions have not been deposited during the same exact [329]periods,—a formation in one region often corresponding with a blank interval in the other,—and if in both regions the species have gone on slowly changing during the accumulation of the several formations and during the long intervals of time between them; in this case, the several formations in the two regions could be arranged in the same order, in accordance with the general succession of the form of life, and the order would falsely appear to be strictly parallel; nevertheless the species would not all be the same in the apparently corresponding stages in the two regions.

I suspect that situations like this happen in Europe. Mr. Prestwich, in his impressive Memoirs on the Eocene deposits of England and France, is able to draw a close general comparison between the successive stages in both countries. However, when he compares certain stages in England with those in France, while he notes a curious similarity in the number of species within the same genera in both, the species themselves differ in ways that are hard to explain, given how close the two areas are—unless we assume that an isthmus separated two seas home to distinct but contemporary faunas. Lyell has made similar observations about some of the later Tertiary formations. Barrande also points out a striking general parallelism in the successive Silurian deposits of Bohemia and Scandinavia; nevertheless, he finds a surprising amount of difference in the species. If the various formations in these regions weren't deposited during the same exact periods—a formation in one region often corresponding with a gap in the other—and if species in both areas changed slowly over the accumulation of the formations and during the long intervals of time between them, then the formations in both regions could be arranged in the same order, in line with the general succession of life forms, and it would seem like the order is strictly parallel. However, the species wouldn't all be the same in the seemingly corresponding stages in the two regions.

 

On the Affinities of extinct Species to each other, and to living forms.—Let us now look to the mutual affinities of extinct and living species. They all fall into one grand natural system; and this fact is at once explained on the principle of descent. The more ancient any form is, the more, as a general rule, it differs from living forms. But, as Buckland long ago remarked, all fossils can be classed either in still existing groups, or between them. That the extinct forms of life help to fill up the wide intervals between existing genera, families, and orders, cannot be disputed. For if we confine our attention either to the living or to the extinct alone, the series is far less perfect than if we combine both into one general system. With respect to the Vertebrata, whole pages could be filled with striking illustrations from our great palaeontologist, Owen, showing how extinct animals fall in between existing groups. Cuvier ranked the Ruminants and Pachyderms, as the two most distinct orders of mammals; but Owen has discovered so many fossil links, that he has had to alter the whole classification of these two orders; and has placed certain pachyderms in the same sub-order with ruminants: for example, he dissolves by fine gradations the apparently [330]wide difference between the pig and the camel. In regard to the Invertebrata, Barrande, and a higher authority could not be named, asserts that he is every day taught that Palaeozoic animals, though belonging to the same orders, families, or genera with those living at the present day, were not at this early epoch limited in such distinct groups as they now are.

On the Affinities of Extinct Species to Each Other, and to Living Forms.—Now, let’s examine the mutual connections between extinct and living species. They all fit into one large natural system, and this is explained by the principle of descent. Generally, the older any form is, the more it tends to differ from living forms. However, as Buckland noted long ago, all fossils can be categorized either into still-existing groups or between them. It’s undeniable that extinct life forms help bridge the significant gaps between existing genera, families, and orders. If we focus only on living or only on extinct forms, the continuity is much less complete than when we bring both together into one comprehensive system. Regarding the Vertebrata, we could fill entire pages with striking examples from our great paleontologist, Owen, illustrating how extinct animals fit between existing groups. Cuvier classified Ruminants and Pachyderms as the two most distinct orders of mammals, but Owen has found so many fossil connections that he has had to revise the entire classification of these two orders, placing certain pachyderms in the same sub-order as ruminants. For instance, he effectively blurs the considerable difference between pigs and camels through subtle gradations. Concerning the Invertebrata, Barrande, and there could be no higher authority, claims that he is learning daily that Paleozoic animals, while belonging to the same orders, families, or genera as those living today, were not categorized in such distinct groups during that early period as they are now.

Some writers have objected to any extinct species or group of species being considered as intermediate between living species or groups. If by this term it is meant that an extinct form is directly intermediate in all its characters between two living forms, the objection is probably valid. But I apprehend that in a perfectly natural classification many fossil species would have to stand between living species, and some extinct genera between living genera, even between genera belonging to distinct families. The most common case, especially with respect to very distinct groups, such as fish and reptiles, seems to be, that supposing them to be distinguished at the present day from each other by a dozen characters, the ancient members of the same two groups would be distinguished by a somewhat lesser number of characters, so that the two groups, though formerly quite distinct, at that period made some small approach to each other.

Some writers have argued against considering any extinct species or group of species as intermediates between living species or groups. If by this term it’s meant that an extinct form is directly intermediate in all its traits between two living forms, then that objection is probably valid. However, I believe that in a completely natural classification, many fossil species would need to fit between living species, and some extinct genera would need to fit between living genera, even between genera in different families. The most common scenario, especially regarding very distinct groups like fish and reptiles, seems to be that if we assume they are currently distinguished from each other by a dozen traits, the ancient members of those two groups would be distinguished by a slightly lesser number of traits. This means that although the two groups were once quite distinct, at that time they showed some minor similarities.

It is a common belief that the more ancient a form is, by so much the more it tends to connect by some of its characters groups now widely separated from each other. This remark no doubt must be restricted to those groups which have undergone much change in the course of geological ages; and it would be difficult to prove the truth of the proposition, for every now and then even a living animal, as the Lepidosiren, is discovered having affinities directed towards very distinct groups. Yet if we compare the older Reptiles and [331]Batrachians, the older Fish, the older Cephalopods, and the eocene Mammals, with the more recent members of the same classes, we must admit that there is some truth in the remark.

It’s a common belief that the more ancient a form is, the more it tends to connect certain groups that are now widely separated. This observation should be limited to those groups that have changed a lot over geological time; proving this idea can be challenging because, occasionally, even a living animal like the Lepidosiren is found to have connections to very different groups. However, if we compare the older reptiles and Batrachians, the older fish, the older cephalopods, and the Eocene mammals with the more recent members of the same classes, we have to acknowledge that there is some truth to this observation.

Let us see how far these several facts and inferences accord with the theory of descent with modification. As the subject is somewhat complex, I must request the reader to turn to the diagram in the fourth chapter. We may suppose that the numbered letters represent genera, and the dotted lines diverging from them the species in each genus. The diagram is much too simple, too few genera and too few species being given, but this is unimportant for us. The horizontal lines may represent successive geological formations, and all the forms beneath the uppermost line may be considered as extinct. The three existing genera, a14, q14, p14, will form a small family; b14 and f14 a closely allied family or sub-family; and o14, e14, m14, a third family. These three families, together with the many extinct genera on the several lines of descent diverging from the parent-form (A), will form an order; for all will have inherited something in common from their ancient and common progenitor. On the principle of the continued tendency to divergence of character, which was formerly illustrated by this diagram, the more recent any form is, the more it will generally differ from its ancient progenitor. Hence we can understand the rule that the most ancient fossils differ most from existing forms. We must not, however, assume that divergence of character is a necessary contingency; it depends solely on the descendants from a species being thus enabled to seize on many and different places in the economy of nature. Therefore it is quite possible, as we have seen in the case of some Silurian forms, that a species might go on being slightly modified in relation to its slightly altered conditions of [332]life, and yet retain throughout a vast period the same general characteristics. This is represented in the diagram by the letter F14.

Let’s see how these various facts and conclusions align with the theory of evolution through change. Since the topic is a bit complicated, I ask the reader to refer to the diagram in the fourth chapter. We can assume that the numbered letters represent genera, and the dotted lines branching from them represent the species within each genus. The diagram is overly simplistic, presenting too few genera and species, but that doesn’t really matter for our discussion. The horizontal lines could represent successive geological formations, and all the forms below the top line can be considered extinct. The three existing genera, a14, q14, p14, will form a small family; b14 and f14 will form a closely related family or sub-family; and o14, e14, m14, will form a third family. These three families, along with many extinct genera on the various lines of descent from the parent form (A), will create an order, as they will have all inherited something in common from their ancient ancestor. Based on the principle of the ongoing tendency for character divergence, which was previously illustrated by this diagram, the more recent any form is, the more it will generally differ from its ancient ancestor. This helps explain the rule that the oldest fossils differ the most from current forms. However, we shouldn’t assume that character divergence is inevitable; it depends entirely on descendants of a species being able to occupy many different niches in nature. Therefore, it’s quite possible, as we’ve seen with some Silurian forms, that a species might continue to be slightly modified in response to its changing conditions of life, while still maintaining the same overall characteristics for a long time. This is shown in the diagram by the letter F14.

All the many forms, extinct and recent, descended from (A), make, as before remarked, one order; and this order, from the continued effects of extinction and divergence of character, has become divided into several sub-families and families, some of which are supposed to have perished at different periods, and some to have endured to the present day.

All the many forms, both extinct and recent, that come from (A) create, as mentioned earlier, one order; and this order, due to the ongoing effects of extinction and variation in characteristics, has split into several sub-families and families, some of which are believed to have disappeared at different times, while others have survived to the present day.

By looking at the diagram we can see that if many of the extinct forms, supposed to be embedded in the successive formations, were discovered at several points low down in the series, the three existing families on the uppermost line would be rendered less distinct from each other. If, for instance, the genera a1, a5, a10, f8, m3, m6, m9, were disinterred, these three families would be so closely linked together that they probably would have to be united into one great family, in nearly the same manner as has occurred with ruminants and pachyderms. Yet he who objected to call the extinct genera, which thus linked the living genera of three families together, intermediate in character, would be justified, as they are intermediate, not directly, but only by a long and circuitous course through many widely different forms. If many extinct forms were to be discovered above one of the middle horizontal lines or geological formations —for instance, above No. VI.—but none from beneath this line, then only the two families on the left hand (namely, a14, &c., and b14, &c.) would have to be united into one family; and the two other families (namely, a14 to f14 now including five genera, and o14 to m14) would yet remain distinct. These two families, however, would be less distinct from each other than they were before the discovery of the fossils. If, for instance, we suppose the existing genera of the two families to differ from each [333]other by a dozen characters, in this case the genera, at the early period marked VI., would differ by a lesser number of characters; for at this early stage of descent they have not diverged in character from the common progenitor of the order, nearly so much as they subsequently diverged. Thus it comes that ancient and extinct genera are often in some slight degree intermediate in character between their modified descendants, or between their collateral relations.

By looking at the diagram, we can see that if many of the extinct forms that are thought to be found in the different layers were discovered at several points lower down in the series, the three existing families at the top would be less distinct from one another. For example, if the genera a1, a5, a10, f8, m3, m6, and m9 were uncovered, these three families would be so closely linked that they might need to be combined into one large family, much like what has happened with ruminants and pachyderms. However, anyone who argues against calling the extinct genera that connect the living genera of the three families intermediate would be justified, since they are intermediate only by a long and roundabout route through many very different forms. If many extinct forms were found above one of the middle horizontal lines or geological formations—let's say, above No. VI.—but none were found below that line, then only the two families on the left (that is, a14, etc., and b14, etc.) would need to be combined into one family; and the other two families (from a14 to f14, now including five genera, and from o14 to m14) would still remain distinct. However, these two families would be less distinct from each other than they were before the fossils were discovered. For instance, if we assume that the existing genera of the two families differ from each other by a dozen characteristics, then the genera at the early period marked VI would differ by fewer characteristics; because at this early stage of evolution, they haven't diverged in characteristics from the common ancestor of the group nearly as much as they did later on. This explains why ancient and extinct genera are often somewhat intermediate in character between their modified descendants or between their collateral relatives.

In nature the case will be far more complicated than is represented in the diagram; for the groups will have been more numerous, they will have endured for extremely unequal lengths of time, and will have been modified in various degrees. As we possess only the last volume of the geological record, and that in a very broken condition, we have no right to expect, except in very rare cases, to fill up wide intervals in the natural system, and thus unite distinct families or orders. All that we have a right to expect, is that those groups, which have within known geological periods undergone much modification, should in the older formations make some slight approach to each other; so that the older members should differ less from each other in some of their characters than do the existing members of the same groups; and this by the concurrent evidence of our best palæontologists seems frequently to be the case.

In nature, things are much more complicated than what's shown in the diagram; the groups will be more numerous, have lasted for very different amounts of time, and have been changed to varying degrees. Since we only have the last volume of the geological record, and that is quite incomplete, we can't expect, except in very rare cases, to fill in the significant gaps in the natural system and connect different families or orders. All we can reasonably expect is that groups which have gone through a lot of changes in known geological periods should show some similarities in older formations, so that the older members are less different from each other in certain features than the current members of the same groups. According to the consensus of our best paleontologists, this often appears to be the case.

Thus, on the theory of descent with modification, the main facts with respect to the mutual affinities of the extinct forms of life to each other and to living forms, seem to me explained in a satisfactory manner. And they are wholly inexplicable on any other view.

Thus, based on the theory of descent with modification, the main facts about the relationships between extinct life forms and their connections to living forms seem to be explained satisfactorily. They are completely unexplainable from any other perspective.

On this same theory, it is evident that the fauna of any great period in the earth's history will be intermediate in general character between that which preceded and that which succeeded it. Thus, the species which lived at the sixth great stage of descent in the [334]diagram are the modified offspring of those which lived at the fifth stage, and are the parents of those which became still more modified at the seventh stage; hence they could hardly fail to be nearly intermediate in character between the forms of life above and below. We must, however, allow for the entire extinction of some preceding forms, and in any one region for the immigration of new forms from other regions, and for a large amount of modification, during the long and blank intervals between the successive formations. Subject to these allowances, the fauna of each geological period undoubtedly is intermediate in character, between the preceding and succeeding faunas. I need give only one instance, namely, the manner in which the fossils of the Devonian system, when this system was first discovered, were at once recognised by palæontologists as intermediate in character between those of the overlying carboniferous, and underlying Silurian system. But each fauna is not necessarily exactly intermediate, as unequal intervals of time have elapsed between consecutive formations.

According to this same theory, it's clear that the animal life from any significant period in Earth’s history will generally be a blend between what came before and what came after. So, the species that existed during the sixth major stage of evolution in the [334] diagram are the evolved descendants of those from the fifth stage and are the ancestors of those that evolved even more by the seventh stage; therefore, they would naturally be quite intermediate when compared to the life forms above and below them. We must, however, take into account the complete extinction of some earlier forms, along with the potential for new species to migrate from other areas, and considerable modification that occurred during the long and empty gaps between successive formations. With these considerations in mind, the animal life of each geological period is undoubtedly intermediate in nature, lying between the faunas before and after it. For example, when fossils from the Devonian system were first discovered, paleontologists immediately recognized them as intermediate between the overlying Carboniferous and the underlying Silurian systems. However, each fauna isn’t necessarily exactly intermediate, as there have been uneven lengths of time between successive formations.

It is no real objection to the truth of the statement, that the fauna of each period as a whole is nearly intermediate in character between the preceding and succeeding faunas, that certain genera offer exceptions to the rule. For instance, mastodons and elephants, when arranged by Dr. Falconer in two series, first according to their mutual affinities and then according to their periods of existence, do not accord in arrangement. The species extreme in character are not the oldest, or the most recent; nor are those which are intermediate in character, intermediate in age. But supposing for an instant, in this and other such cases, that the record of the first appearance and disappearance of the species was perfect, we have no reason to believe that forms successively produced necessarily endure for [335]corresponding lengths of time: a very ancient form might occasionally last much longer than a form elsewhere subsequently produced, especially in the case of terrestrial productions inhabiting separated districts. To compare small things with great: if the principal living and extinct races of the domestic pigeon were arranged as well as they could be in serial affinity, this arrangement would not closely accord with the order in time of their production, and still less with the order of their disappearance; for the parent rock-pigeon now lives; and many varieties between the rock-pigeon and the carrier have become extinct; and carriers which are extreme in the important character of length of beak originated earlier than short-beaked tumblers, which are at the opposite end of the series in this same respect.

It’s not really a problem for the validity of the statement that the overall fauna of each period is generally in between the characteristics of the faunas before and after it, that some genera are exceptions to this. For example, when Dr. Falconer arranged mastodons and elephants in two series—first by their mutual relationships and then by their periods of existence—the arrangement didn’t match up. The species that are most extreme in their characteristics aren’t necessarily the oldest or the newest; nor are those that are intermediate in characteristics, intermediate in age. But if we momentarily assume that the record of when species first appeared and disappeared is perfect, we have no reason to think that forms produced successively necessarily exist for the same lengths of time: a very ancient form could sometimes last much longer than a form that appeared later, especially in the case of land-dwelling species living in isolated areas. To put it simply: if we arranged the main living and extinct types of domestic pigeons according to their serial relationships, this arrangement wouldn’t correspond closely to the order in which they were created, and even less so with the order of their extinction; because the original rock-pigeon is still alive, and many varieties that lie between the rock-pigeon and the carrier have gone extinct; and the carriers, which are extreme in the significant characteristic of beak length, originated before the short-beaked tumblers, which are at the opposite end of the spectrum in this same feature.

Closely connected with the statement, that the organic remains from an intermediate formation are in some degree intermediate in character, is the fact, insisted on by all palæontologists, that fossils from two consecutive formations are far more closely related to each other, than are the fossils from two remote formations. Pictet gives as a well-known instance, the general resemblance of the organic remains from the several stages of the Chalk formation, though the species are distinct in each stage. This fact alone, from its generality, seems to have shaken Professor Pictet in his firm belief in the immutability of species. He who is acquainted with the distribution of existing species over the globe, will not attempt to account for the close resemblance of the distinct species in closely consecutive formations, by the physical conditions of the ancient areas having remained nearly the same. Let it be remembered that the forms of life, at least those inhabiting the sea, have changed almost simultaneously throughout the world, and therefore under the most different climates and conditions. Consider the [336]prodigious vicissitudes of climate during the pleistocene period, which includes the whole glacial period, and note how little the specific forms of the inhabitants of the sea have been affected.

Closely related to the idea that the organic remains from an intermediate formation are somewhat intermediate in nature is the understanding, emphasized by all paleontologists, that fossils from two consecutive formations are much more closely related to each other than fossils from two distant formations. Pictet points out a well-known example: the general similarity of the organic remains from various stages of the Chalk formation, even though the species in each stage are different. This fact alone, due to its broad applicability, seems to have shaken Professor Pictet's strong belief in the unchangeability of species. Anyone familiar with how current species are distributed around the globe will not try to explain the close resemblance of distinct species in closely consecutive formations by claiming that the ancient area's physical conditions were nearly the same. It's important to recognize that life forms, especially those living in the ocean, have changed almost simultaneously all over the world, even in the most diverse climates and conditions. Think about the enormous climate changes during the Pleistocene epoch, which encompasses the entire glacial period, and observe how little the specific types of marine life have been affected.

On the theory of descent, the full meaning of the fact of fossil remains from closely consecutive formations, though ranked as distinct species, being closely related, is obvious. As the accumulation of each formation has often been interrupted, and as long blank intervals have intervened between successive formations, we ought not to expect to find, as I attempted to show in the last chapter, in any one or two formations all the intermediate varieties between the species which appeared at the commencement and close of these periods; but we ought to find after intervals, very long as measured by years, but only moderately long as measured geologically, closely allied forms, or, as they have been called by some authors, representative species; and these we assuredly do find. We find, in short, such evidence of the slow and scarcely sensible mutation of specific forms, as we have a just right to expect to find.

On the theory of evolution, the full significance of fossil remains from closely successive formations, even though classified as different species, being closely related, is clear. Since the buildup of each formation has often been interrupted, and there have been long gaps between successive formations, we shouldn’t expect to find, as I tried to demonstrate in the last chapter, all the intermediate varieties between the species that appeared at the beginning and end of these periods in just one or two formations. Instead, we should find, after long intervals—long in terms of years but reasonably short in geological terms—closely related forms, or what some authors refer to as representative species; and indeed, we do find these. In short, we see evidence of the slow and barely noticeable changes in specific forms, which we rightfully expect to find.

 

On the state of Development of Ancient Forms.—There has been much discussion whether recent forms are more highly developed than ancient. I will not here enter on this subject, for naturalists have not as yet defined to each other's satisfaction what is meant by high and low forms. The best definition probably is, that the higher forms have their organs more distinctly specialised for different functions; and as such division of physiological labour seems to be an advantage to each being, natural selection will constantly tend in so far to make the later and more modified forms higher than their early progenitors, or than the slightly modified descendants of such progenitors. In a more general sense the [337]more recent forms must, on my theory, be higher than the more ancient; for each new species is formed by having had some advantage in the struggle for life over other and preceding forms. If under a nearly similar climate, the eocene inhabitants of one quarter of the world were put into competition with the existing inhabitants of the same or some other quarter, the eocene fauna or flora would certainly be beaten and exterminated; as would a secondary fauna by an eocene, and a palæozoic fauna by a secondary fauna. I do not doubt that this process of improvement has affected in a marked and sensible manner the organisation of the more recent and victorious forms of life, in comparison with the ancient and beaten forms; but I can see no way of testing this sort of progress. Crustaceans, for instance, not the highest in their own class, may have beaten the highest molluscs. From the extraordinary manner in which European productions have recently spread over New Zealand, and have seized on places which must have been previously occupied, we may believe, if all the animals and plants of Great Britain were set free in New Zealand, that in the course of time a multitude of British forms would become thoroughly naturalized there, and would exterminate many of the natives. On the other hand, from what we see now occurring in New Zealand, and from hardly a single inhabitant of the southern hemisphere having become wild in any part of Europe, we may doubt, if all the productions of New Zealand were set free in Great Britain, whether any considerable number would be enabled to seize on places now occupied by our native plants and animals. Under this point of view, the productions of Great Britain may be said to be higher than those of New Zealand. Yet the most skilful naturalist from an examination of the [338]species of the two countries could not have foreseen this result.

On the state of Development of Ancient Forms.—There has been a lot of debate about whether modern forms are more advanced than ancient ones. I won't dive into this topic here, as naturalists have yet to satisfactorily define what is meant by high and low forms. A likely definition is that higher forms have their organs more distinctly specialized for different functions, and this specialization appears to benefit each organism. Thus, natural selection tends to favor newer and more modified forms over their earlier ancestors or the slightly modified descendants of those ancestors. More generally, according to my theory, newer forms must be higher than older ones because each new species has gained some advantage in the struggle for survival over previous forms. If the eocene inhabitants from one part of the world were to compete with the current inhabitants from the same or another area under similar climate conditions, the eocene fauna or flora would undoubtedly be outcompeted and wiped out; similarly, a secondary fauna would outcompete an eocene one, and a Paleozoic fauna would be outmatched by a secondary fauna. I have no doubt that this improvement process has significantly impacted the organization of the more recent and successful life forms compared to the ancient and defeated ones, but I don't see a way to measure this kind of progress. For example, crustaceans, although not the highest in their class, may have outcompeted the highest mollusks. The remarkable way that European species have recently spread across New Zealand and taken over areas that must have been previously inhabited suggests that if all animals and plants from Great Britain were released in New Zealand, eventually many British species would become fully naturalized there and would drive out many native species. Conversely, based on current events in New Zealand and the fact that hardly any species from the southern hemisphere have become wild in Europe, we might doubt that if all New Zealand species were released in Great Britain, any significant number would be able to establish themselves in places now occupied by our native plants and animals. From this perspective, we could argue that the species from Great Britain are superior to those from New Zealand. Yet, a skilled naturalist examining the [338]species of both countries would not have been able to predict this outcome.

Agassiz insists that ancient animals resemble to a certain extent the embryos of recent animals of the same classes; or that the geological succession of extinct forms is in some degree parallel to the embryological development of recent forms. I must follow Pictet and Huxley in thinking that the truth of this doctrine is very far from proved. Yet I fully expect to see it hereafter confirmed, at least in regard to subordinate groups, which have branched off from each other within comparatively recent times. For this doctrine of Agassiz accords well with the theory of natural selection. In a future chapter I shall attempt to show that the adult differs from its embryo, owing to variations supervening at a not early age, and being inherited at a corresponding age. This process, whilst it leaves the embryo almost unaltered, continually adds, in the course of successive generations, more and more difference to the adult.

Agassiz argues that ancient animals resemble the embryos of modern animals in the same classes to some extent, or that the sequence of extinct forms in the geological record somewhat mirrors the embryological development of current forms. I must agree with Pictet and Huxley that the validity of this idea is very far from established. However, I do expect it to be confirmed in the future, especially regarding smaller groups that have diverged from each other in more recent times. This idea from Agassiz aligns well with the theory of natural selection. In a later chapter, I plan to show that the adult differs from its embryo because of variations that occur at a later age and are inherited at a similar age. This process allows the embryo to remain nearly unchanged while increasingly adding differences to the adult over successive generations.

Thus the embryo comes to be left as a sort of picture, preserved by nature, of the ancient and less modified condition of each animal. This view may be true, and yet it may never be capable of full proof. Seeing, for instance, that the oldest known mammals, reptiles, and fish strictly belong to their own proper classes, though some of these old forms are in a slight degree less distinct from each other than are the typical members of the same groups at the present day, it would be vain to look for animals having the common embryological character of the Vertebrata, until beds far beneath the lowest Silurian strata are discovered—a discovery of which the chance is very small.

Thus, the embryo ends up being a kind of snapshot, preserved by nature, of the ancient and less evolved state of each animal. This perspective might be true, but it may never be completely proven. For example, the oldest known mammals, reptiles, and fish all belong strictly to their specific classes, even though some of these ancient types are slightly less distinct from one another than the typical members of the same groups today. It would be pointless to search for animals that share the common embryological traits of the Vertebrata until layers far below the lowest Silurian rock are found—a discovery that is very unlikely.

 

On the Succession of the same Types within the same [339]areas, during the later tertiary periods.—Mr. Clift many years ago showed that the fossil mammals from the Australian caves were closely allied to the living marsupials of that continent. In South America, a similar relationship is manifest, even to an uneducated eye, in the gigantic pieces of armour like those of the armadillo, found in several parts of La Plata; and Professor Owen has shown in the most striking manner that most of the fossil mammals, buried there in such numbers, are related to South American types. This relationship is even more clearly seen in the wonderful collection of fossil bones made by MM. Lund and Clausen in the caves of Brazil. I was so much impressed with these facts that I strongly insisted, in 1839 and 1845, on this "law of the succession of types,"—on "this wonderful relationship in the same continent between the dead and the living." Professor Owen has subsequently extended the same generalisation to the mammals of the Old World. We see the same law in this author's restorations of the extinct and gigantic birds of New Zealand. We see it also in the birds of the caves of Brazil. Mr. Woodward has shown that the same law holds good with sea-shells, but from the wide distribution of most genera of molluscs, it is not well displayed by them. Other cases could be added, as the relation between the extinct and living land-shells of Madeira; and between the extinct and living brackish-water shells of the Aralo-Caspian Sea.

On the Succession of the same Types within the same [339]areas, during the later tertiary periods.—Many years ago, Mr. Clift demonstrated that the fossil mammals found in Australian caves are closely related to the living marsupials of that continent. In South America, a similar connection is apparent, even to an untrained eye, in the large armoured pieces similar to those of the armadillo, discovered in various regions of La Plata. Professor Owen has compellingly shown that most of the fossil mammals found there in such abundance are linked to South American species. This connection is even more obvious in the impressive collection of fossil bones gathered by MM. Lund and Clausen in the caves of Brazil. I was so struck by these findings that I strongly advocated, in 1839 and 1845, this "law of the succession of types,"—this remarkable relationship between the extinct and living species within the same continent. Professor Owen has since expanded this idea to include the mammals of the Old World. We see this law reflected in the author's reconstructions of the extinct and massive birds of New Zealand. It's also evident in the birds from the caves of Brazil. Mr. Woodward has indicated that this law is applicable to sea-shells as well, but due to the broad distribution of most mollusk genera, it's not easily observed in them. Other examples could be mentioned, like the relationship between the extinct and living land-shells of Madeira and between the extinct and living brackish-water shells of the Aralo-Caspian Sea.

Now what does this remarkable law of the succession of the same types within the same areas mean? He would be a bold man, who after comparing the present climate of Australia and of parts of South America under the same latitude, would attempt to account, on the one hand, by dissimilar physical conditions for the dissimilarity of the inhabitants of these two continents, [340]and, on the other hand, by similarity of conditions, for the uniformity of the same types in each during the later tertiary periods. Nor can it be pretended that it is an immutable law that marsupials should have been chiefly or solely produced in Australia; or that Edentata and other American types should have been solely produced in South America. For we know that Europe in ancient times was peopled by numerous marsupials; and I have shown in the publications above alluded to, that in America the law of distribution of terrestrial mammals was formerly different from what it now is. North America formerly partook strongly of the present character of the southern half of the continent; and the southern half was formerly more closely allied, than it is at present, to the northern half. In a similar manner we know from Falconer and Cautley's discoveries, that northern India was formerly more closely related in its mammals to Africa than it is at the present time. Analogous facts could be given in relation to the distribution of marine animals.

What does this interesting law about similar species appearing in the same areas mean? It would take someone quite brave to compare the current climate of Australia and certain parts of South America at the same latitude and try to explain, on one hand, how different physical conditions account for the differences in the inhabitants of these two continents, and on the other hand, how similar conditions explain the similarities in species there during the later tertiary periods. We also can't claim it's a fixed rule that marsupials should primarily or exclusively come from Australia, or that Edentata and other American species should only originate from South America. We know that Europe used to be home to many marsupials, and I've shown in previous publications that the distribution of land mammals in America used to be different than it is now. North America used to share a lot of characteristics with the southern part of the continent, and the southern half was once more closely linked to the northern half than it is today. Similarly, we know from Falconer and Cautley’s findings that northern India used to have mammals that were more closely related to those in Africa than they are now. There are similar examples related to the distribution of marine animals.

On the theory of descent with modification, the great law of the long enduring, but not immutable, succession of the same types within the same areas, is at once explained; for the inhabitants of each quarter of the world will obviously tend to leave in that quarter, during the next succeeding period of time, closely allied though in some degree modified descendants. If the inhabitants of one continent formerly differed greatly from those of another continent, so will their modified descendants still differ in nearly the same manner and degree. But after very long intervals of time and after great geographical changes, permitting much inter-migration, the feebler will yield to the more dominant forms, and there will be nothing immutable in the laws of past and present distribution. [341]

On the theory of evolution through change, the essential rule of the long-lasting, yet not unchanging, prevalence of the same types in the same regions is easily understood; because the inhabitants of each part of the world will clearly tend to leave behind closely related, albeit somewhat modified, descendants in that area over the next period of time. If the inhabitants of one continent used to be very different from those of another continent, their modified descendants will likely still differ in almost the same way and level. However, after very long periods and significant geographical changes that allow for much migration, the weaker forms will give way to the stronger ones, and the laws governing past and present distribution will not be fixed. [341]

It may be asked in ridicule, whether I suppose that the megatherium and other allied huge monsters have left behind them in South America, the sloth, armadillo, and anteater, as their degenerate descendants. This cannot for an instant be admitted. These huge animals have become wholly extinct, and have left no progeny. But in the caves of Brazil, there are many extinct species which are closely allied in size and in other characters to the species still living in South America; and some of these fossils may be the actual progenitors of living species. It must not be forgotten that, on my theory, all the species of the same genus have descended from some one species; so that if six genera, each having eight species, be found in one geological formation, and in the next succeeding formation there be six other allied or representative genera with the same number of species, then we may conclude that only one species of each of the six older genera has left modified descendants, constituting the six new genera. The other seven species of the old genera have all died out and have left no progeny. Or, which would probably be a far commoner case, two or three species of two or three alone of the six older genera will have been the parents of the six new genera; the other old species and the other whole old genera having become utterly extinct. In failing orders, with the genera and species decreasing in numbers, as apparently is the case of the Edentata of South America, still fewer genera and species will have left modified blood-descendants.

It might be asked in mockery whether I think that the megatherium and other huge related creatures have left behind in South America the sloth, armadillo, and anteater as their lesser descendants. This cannot be accepted for a moment. These massive animals have completely gone extinct and have left no offspring. However, in the caves of Brazil, there are many extinct species that are closely related in size and other characteristics to the species still found in South America; some of these fossils may actually be the ancestors of living species. It's important to remember that, according to my theory, all species of the same genus have descended from a single species; therefore, if six genera, each with eight species, are found in one geological formation, and in the next formation, there are six other related or representative genera with the same number of species, we can conclude that only one species from each of the six older genera has produced modified descendants, forming the six new genera. The other seven species from the old genera have all become extinct and left no descendants. Alternatively, which is probably a more common scenario, two or three species from two or three of the six older genera may have been the parents of the six new genera, while the other old species and entire old genera have become entirely extinct. In failing orders, where the genera and species numbers are declining, as seems to be the case with the Edentata of South America, even fewer genera and species will have left modified descendants.

 

Summary of the preceding and present Chapters.—I have attempted to show that the geological record is extremely imperfect; that only a small portion of the globe has been geologically explored with care; that [342]only certain classes of organic beings have been largely preserved in a fossil state; that the number both of specimens and of species, preserved in our museums, is absolutely as nothing compared with the incalculable number of generations which must have passed away even during a single formation; that, owing to subsidence being necessary for the accumulation of fossiliferous deposits thick enough to resist future degradation, enormous intervals of time have elapsed between the successive formations; that there has probably been more extinction during the periods of subsidence, and more variation during the periods of elevation, and during the latter the record will have been least perfectly kept; that each single formation has not been continuously deposited; that the duration of each formation is, perhaps, short compared with the average duration of specific forms; that migration has played an important part in the first appearance of new forms in any one area and formation; that widely ranging species are those which have varied most, and have oftenest given rise to new species; and that varieties have at first often been local. All these causes taken conjointly, must have tended to make the geological record extremely imperfect, and will to a large extent explain why we do not find interminable varieties, connecting together all the extinct and existing forms of life by the finest graduated steps.

Summary of the preceding and present Chapters.—I've tried to show that the geological record is very incomplete; that only a small part of the Earth has been thoroughly studied geologically; that [342]only certain types of living beings have been mostly preserved as fossils; that the number of specimens and species in our museums is almost insignificant compared to the countless generations that must have disappeared even during a single geological formation; that, because subsidence is necessary for the buildup of thick fossil-bearing deposits that can withstand future erosion, huge gaps of time have occurred between successive formations; that more extinctions probably happened during periods of subsidence, and more variations occurred during periods of uplift, and during the latter, the record has been least well maintained; that each formation hasn’t been deposited continuously; that the length of time each formation lasts is likely short compared to the average duration of specific forms; that migration has played a key role in the first appearance of new forms in any area and formation; that species that range widely have varied the most and have frequently led to the emergence of new species; and that varieties were often initially local. All these factors together must have contributed to making the geological record very incomplete, and will largely explain why we don’t see endless varieties connecting all the extinct and existing forms of life through the finest graduated transitions.

He who rejects these views on the nature of the geological record, will rightly reject my whole theory. For he may ask in vain where are the numberless transitional links which must formerly have connected the closely allied or representative species, found in the several stages of the same great formation. He may disbelieve in the enormous intervals of time which have elapsed between our consecutive formations; he [343]may overlook how important a part migration must have played, when the formations of any one great region alone, as that of Europe, are considered; he may urge the apparent, but often falsely apparent, sudden coming in of whole groups of species. He may ask where are the remains of those infinitely numerous organisms which must have existed long before the first bed of the Silurian system was deposited: I can answer this latter question only hypothetically, by saying that as far as we can see, where our oceans now extend they have for an enormous period extended, and where our oscillating continents now stand they have stood ever since the Silurian epoch; but that long before that period, the world may have presented a wholly different aspect; and that the older continents, formed of formations older than any known to us, may now all be in a metamorphosed condition, or may lie buried under the ocean.

Anyone who dismisses these ideas about the geological record is justified in rejecting my entire theory. They might rightfully question where the countless transitional forms are that must have once connected the closely related species found in the different stages of the same major formation. They may doubt the vast time gaps that have existed between our successive formations; they may not recognize how significant migration has been, especially when we consider the formations of a single major region like Europe; they might point out the seemingly abrupt appearance of entire groups of species, which often seems misleading. They may wonder why we don't find the remains of the countless organisms that must have existed long before the first layer of the Silurian system was laid down. I can only answer this last question hypothetically, suggesting that where our oceans exist now, they have likely been there for an immense period, and where our shifting continents are now, they have remained since the Silurian epoch. However, long before that time, the world might have looked completely different, and the older continents, made of formations that are older than any we currently know, may now be transformed or may lie buried beneath the ocean.

Passing from these difficulties, all the other great leading facts in palæontology seem to me simply to follow on the theory of descent with modification through natural selection. We can thus understand how it is that new species come in slowly and successively; how species of different classes do not necessarily change together, or at the same rate, or in the same degree; yet in the long run that all undergo modification to some extent. The extinction of old forms is the almost inevitable consequence of the production of new forms. We can understand why when a species has once disappeared it never reappears. Groups of species increase in numbers slowly, and endure for unequal periods of time; for the process of modification is necessarily slow, and depends on many complex contingencies. The dominant species of the larger dominant groups tend to leave many modified [344]descendants, and thus new sub-groups and groups are formed. As these are formed, the species of the less vigorous groups, from their inferiority inherited from a common progenitor, tend to become extinct together, and to leave no modified offspring on the face of the earth. But the utter extinction of a whole group of species may often be a very slow process, from the survival of a few descendants, lingering in protected and isolated situations. When a group has once wholly disappeared, it does not reappear; for the link of generation has been broken.

Moving past these challenges, all the significant facts in paleontology seem to clearly align with the theory of descent through modification via natural selection. This helps us understand how new species emerge gradually and one after another; how species from different classifications don’t necessarily evolve together, at the same pace, or to the same extent; yet in the long run, all species undergo some degree of change. The extinction of older forms is almost always a natural result of the emergence of new forms. We can see why a species that has vanished never returns. Groups of species grow in number slowly and last for varying lengths of time; the process of change is inherently slow and hinges on many complex factors. The dominant species of the larger, more successful groups tend to leave behind a lot of modified descendants, leading to the formation of new sub-groups and groups. As these are created, the species from less robust groups, due to their disadvantages inherited from a common ancestor, tend to go extinct together, leaving no modified offspring on Earth. However, the complete extinction of an entire group of species can often be a very gradual process, due to a few descendants surviving in protected and isolated environments. Once a group has completely vanished, it doesn’t return; the link of generation has been severed.

We can understand how the spreading of the dominant forms of life, which are those that oftenest vary, will in the long run tend to people the world with allied, but modified, descendants; and these will generally succeed in taking the places of those groups of species which are their inferiors in the struggle for existence. Hence, after long intervals of time, the productions of the world will appear to have changed simultaneously.

We can see how the dominant forms of life, which often change the most, will eventually populate the world with related but altered descendants. These will typically replace the groups of species that are weaker in the competition for survival. Therefore, over long periods, the world's life forms will seem to have changed all at once.

We can understand how it is that all the forms of life, ancient and recent, make together one grand system; for all are connected by generation. We can understand, from the continued tendency to divergence of character, why the more ancient a form is, the more it generally differs from those now living. Why ancient and extinct forms often tend to fill up gaps between existing forms, sometimes blending two groups previously classed as distinct into one; but more commonly only bringing them a little closer together. The more ancient a form is, the more often, apparently, it displays characters in some degree intermediate between groups now distinct; for the more ancient a form is, the more nearly it will be related to, and consequently resemble, the common progenitor of groups, since [345]become widely divergent. Extinct forms are seldom directly intermediate between existing forms; but are intermediate only by a long and circuitous course through many extinct and very different forms. We can clearly see why the organic remains of closely consecutive formations are more closely allied to each other, than are those of remote formations; for the forms are more closely linked together by generation: we can clearly see why the remains of an intermediate formation are intermediate in character.

We can see how all forms of life, both ancient and recent, come together to create one big system; they are all connected through reproduction. We understand that, due to the ongoing tendency to develop differences, the older a form is, the more it typically differs from those living today. Ancient and extinct forms often help fill gaps between existing ones, sometimes merging two previously separate groups into one; but more often, they just bring them a bit closer together. The older a form is, the more frequently it seems to show traits that are somewhat between groups that are now distinct; because the older a form is, the more closely it will be related to, and thus resemble, the common ancestor of those groups, since they have since become very different. Extinct forms are rarely directly intermediate between existing forms; they are only intermediate after a long and complex sequence through many extinct and quite different ones. We can clearly see why the organic remains of closely consecutive formations are more closely related to each other than those of far-apart formations; because these forms are more directly linked through reproduction: we can clearly see why the remains of an intermediate formation show intermediate characteristics.

The inhabitants of each successive period in the world's history have beaten their predecessors in the race for life, and are, in so far, higher in the scale of nature; and this may account for that vague yet ill-defined sentiment, felt by many palæontologists, that organisation on the whole has progressed. If it should hereafter be proved that ancient animals resemble to a certain extent the embryos of more recent animals of the same class, the fact will be intelligible. The succession of the same types of structure within the same areas during the later geological periods ceases to be mysterious, and is simply explained by inheritance.

The people living in each historical period have outperformed those who came before them in the struggle for survival, which suggests they are, to some degree, more advanced in the natural order. This could explain the vague yet unclear feeling many paleontologists have that organization overall has improved. If it's proven in the future that ancient animals somewhat resemble the embryos of more modern animals in the same category, that would make sense. The persistence of the same structural types in the same regions during later geological periods is no longer a mystery and can be clearly understood through inheritance.

If then the geological record be as imperfect as I believe it to be, and it may at least be asserted that the record cannot be proved to be much more perfect, the main objections to the theory of natural selection are greatly diminished or disappear. On the other hand, all the chief laws of palæontology plainly proclaim, as it seems to me, that species have been produced by ordinary generation: old forms having been supplanted by new and improved forms of life, produced by the laws of variation still acting round us, and preserved by Natural Selection.

If the geological record is as incomplete as I think it is, and it can at least be said that the record can't be shown to be much more complete, then the main objections to the theory of natural selection are significantly reduced or vanish entirely. On the other hand, all the major laws of paleontology clearly indicate, in my view, that species have developed through ordinary generation: older forms have been replaced by newer and improved forms of life, created by the ongoing laws of variation around us, and maintained by Natural Selection.


[346]

[346]

CHAPTER XI.

Geographical Distribution.

Geographic Distribution.

Present distribution cannot be accounted for by differences in physical conditions—Importance of barriers—Affinity of the productions of the same continent—Centres of creation—Means of dispersal, by changes of climate and of the level of the land, and by occasional means—Dispersal during the Glacial period co-extensive with the world.

The current distribution can't be explained by differences in physical conditions—The role of barriers—Similarities among species from the same continent—Centers of origin—Methods of spreading, including climatic changes and shifts in land elevation, along with occasional methods—Dispersal during the Glacial period was global.

In considering the distribution of organic beings over the face of the globe, the first great fact which strikes us is, that neither the similarity nor the dissimilarity of the inhabitants of various regions can be accounted for by their climatal and other physical conditions. Of late, almost every author who has studied the subject has come to this conclusion. The case of America alone would almost suffice to prove its truth: for if we exclude the northern parts where the circumpolar land is almost continuous, all authors agree that one of the most fundamental divisions in geographical distribution is that between the New and Old Worlds; yet if we travel over the vast American continent, from the central parts of the United States to its extreme southern point, we meet with the most diversified conditions; the most humid districts, arid deserts, lofty mountains, grassy plains, forests, marshes, lakes, and great rivers, under almost every temperature. There is hardly a climate or condition in the Old World which cannot be paralleled in the New—at least as closely as the same species generally require; for it is a most rare case to find a group of organisms confined to any small spot, having conditions peculiar in only a slight [347]degree; for instance, small areas in the Old World could be pointed out hotter than any in the New World, yet these are not inhabited by a peculiar fauna or flora. Notwithstanding this parallelism in the conditions of the Old and New Worlds, how widely different are their living productions!

In looking at how living organisms are spread across the globe, the first major observation we make is that the similarities and differences among the inhabitants of different regions cannot be explained by their climate and other physical conditions. Recently, almost every author who has explored this topic has reached this conclusion. The case of America alone could almost prove this point: if we ignore the northern areas where the circumpolar land is nearly continuous, all authors agree that one of the key divisions in geographical distribution is between the New and Old Worlds. Yet, if we travel across the vast American continent, from the central United States down to its southern tip, we encounter a wide range of conditions: humid areas, arid deserts, tall mountains, grassy plains, forests, marshes, lakes, and major rivers, all under almost every type of temperature. There’s hardly a climate or condition in the Old World that doesn't have a counterpart in the New—at least as closely as the same species generally need; it's quite rare to find a group of organisms limited to a small area with only slightly unique conditions. For example, some small areas in the Old World are hotter than any in the New World, but they don’t support a unique fauna or flora. Despite this similarity in conditions between the Old and New Worlds, the living organisms are vastly different!

In the southern hemisphere, if we compare large tracts of land in Australia, South Africa, and western South America, between latitudes 25° and 35°, we shall find parts extremely similar in all their conditions, yet it would not be possible to point out three faunas and floras more utterly dissimilar. Or again we may compare the productions of South America south of lat. 35° with those north of 25°, which consequently inhabit a considerably different climate, and they will be found incomparably more closely related to each other, than they are to the productions of Australia or Africa under nearly the same climate. Analogous facts could be given with respect to the inhabitants of the sea.

In the southern hemisphere, when we look at large areas of land in Australia, South Africa, and western South America between latitudes 25° and 35°, we find parts that are very similar in many ways. However, it’s hard to find three faunas and floras that are more completely different. We can also compare the species in South America south of latitude 35° with those north of 25°, which live in quite different climates, and they turn out to be much more closely related to each other than to the species in Australia or Africa that are in similar climates. Similar examples could be provided regarding sea life.

A second great fact which strikes us in our general review is, that barriers of any kind, or obstacles to free migration, are related in a close and important manner to the differences between the productions of various regions. We see this in the great difference of nearly all the terrestrial productions of the New and Old Worlds, excepting in the northern parts, where the land almost joins, and where, under a slightly different climate, there might have been free migration for the northern temperate forms, as there now is for the strictly arctic productions. We see the same fact in the great difference between the inhabitants of Australia, Africa, and South America under the same latitude: for these countries are almost as much isolated from each other as is possible. On each continent, also, we see the same fact; for on the opposite sides of [348]lofty and continuous mountain-ranges, and of great deserts, and sometimes even of large rivers, we find different productions; though as mountain-chains, deserts, &c., are not as impassable, or likely to have endured so long as the oceans separating continents, the differences are very inferior in degree to those characteristic of distinct continents.

A second significant point that stands out in our overall review is that barriers of any kind or obstacles to free migration are closely and importantly linked to the differences in the produce of various regions. We see this in the substantial contrast of nearly all the natural products of the New and Old Worlds, except in the northern areas where the land almost connects, and where, under a slightly different climate, there might have been free migration for the northern temperate species, as there is now for the strictly arctic ones. We observe the same pattern in the significant differences among the inhabitants of Australia, Africa, and South America at the same latitude: these regions are almost as isolated from one another as is possible. On each continent, we also see the same pattern; for on the opposite sides of [348]high and continuous mountain ranges, vast deserts, and sometimes even large rivers, we discover different natural products; although mountain ranges, deserts, etc., are not as insurmountable or likely to have lasted as long as the oceans separating continents, the differences are much less pronounced than those found between distinct continents.

Turning to the sea, we find the same law. No two marine faunas are more distinct, with hardly a fish, shell, or crab in common, than those of the eastern and western shores of South and Central America; yet these great faunas are separated only by the narrow, but impassable, isthmus of Panama. Westward of the shores of America, a wide space of open ocean extends, with not an island as a halting-place for emigrants; here we have a barrier of another kind, and as soon as this is passed we meet in the eastern islands of the Pacific, with another and totally distinct fauna. So that here three marine faunas range far northward and southward, in parallel lines not far from each other, under corresponding climates; but from being separated from each other by impassable barriers, either of land or open sea, they are wholly distinct. On the other hand, proceeding still further westward from the eastern islands of the tropical parts of the Pacific, we encounter no impassable barriers, and we have innumerable islands as halting-places, or continuous coasts, until after travelling over a hemisphere we come to the shores of Africa; and over this vast space we meet with no well-defined and distinct marine faunas. Although hardly one shell, crab or fish is common to the above-named three approximate faunas of Eastern and Western America and the eastern Pacific islands, yet many fish range from the Pacific into the Indian Ocean, and many shells are common to the eastern islands of the Pacific [349]and the eastern shores of Africa, on almost exactly opposite meridians of longitude.

Turning to the sea, we see the same principle at work. The marine life on the eastern and western coasts of South and Central America is incredibly different, with almost no shared fish, shells, or crabs; yet these diverse communities are only separated by the narrow but impassable Isthmus of Panama. West of America, a vast expanse of open ocean stretches out, with no islands as stops for migrating species. Here, we face a different kind of barrier, and once we cross it, we encounter another unique marine ecosystem in the eastern islands of the Pacific. This means there are three distinct marine communities that extend north and south in parallel lines, close to each other and under similar climates; however, they remain completely separate due to insurmountable barriers of land or open sea. On the other hand, if we continue further west from the eastern islands of the tropical Pacific, we find no unbridgeable barriers, and countless islands or continuous coastlines serve as stopovers until, after traveling across a hemisphere, we reach the shores of Africa. Throughout this vast area, there are no clearly defined and distinct marine communities. Although there’s hardly a shell, crab, or fish shared among the three nearby marine communities of Eastern and Western America and the eastern Pacific islands, many fish travel from the Pacific to the Indian Ocean, and numerous shells are found in both the eastern Pacific islands and the eastern shores of Africa, situated almost directly opposite each other in longitude. [349]

A third great fact, partly included in the foregoing statements, is the affinity of the productions of the same continent or sea, though the species themselves are distinct at different points and stations. It is a law of the widest generality, and every continent offers innumerable instances. Nevertheless the naturalist in travelling, for instance, from north to south never fails to be struck by the manner in which successive groups of beings, specifically distinct, yet clearly related, replace each other. He hears from closely allied, yet distinct kinds of birds, notes nearly similar, and sees their nests similarly constructed, but not quite alike, with eggs coloured in nearly the same manner. The plains near the Straits of Magellan are inhabited by one species of Rhea (American ostrich), and northward the plains of La Plata by another species of the same genus; and not by a true ostrich or emu, like those found in Africa and Australia under the same latitude. On these same plains of La Plata, we see the agouti and bizcacha, animals having nearly the same habits as our hares and rabbits and belonging to the same order of Rodents, but they plainly display an American type of structure. We ascend the lofty peaks of the Cordillera and we find an alpine species of bizcacha; we look to the waters, and we do not find the beaver or musk-rat, but the coypu and capybara, rodents of the American type. Innumerable other instances could be given. If we look to the islands off the American shore, however much they may differ in geological structure, the inhabitants, though they may be all peculiar species, are essentially American. We may look back to past ages, as shown in the last chapter, and we find American types then prevalent on [350]the American continent and in the American seas. We see in these facts some deep organic bond, prevailing throughout space and time, over the same areas of land and water, and independent of their physical conditions. The naturalist must feel little curiosity, who is not led to inquire what this bond is.

A third important fact, which is partly covered in the previous statements, is the connection between the species found in the same continent or sea, even though the species themselves are different in various locations. This is a widely applicable rule, and every continent showcases countless examples. Still, a naturalist traveling from north to south is always amazed by how different groups of organisms, while distinct, are clearly related and take turns appearing. He hears songs from closely related but different types of birds, notes that sound nearly the same, and observes their nests, which are built in similar ways but not exactly alike, with eggs colored in a similar manner. The plains near the Straits of Magellan are home to one species of Rhea (American ostrich), while northward in the plains of La Plata, there’s another species from the same group; neither of these is a true ostrich or emu, like those found in Africa and Australia at the same latitude. On the plains of La Plata, we see the agouti and bizcacha, animals with habits similar to our hares and rabbits and belonging to the same order of Rodents, but they clearly show an American type of structure. As we climb the high peaks of the Cordillera, we discover an alpine species of bizcacha; when we look into the waters, we don’t see beavers or musk-rats, but rather coypus and capybaras, which are rodents native to America. Countless other examples could be noted. If we look at the islands off the American coast, despite their differing geological structures, the inhabitants—though they may all be unique species—are fundamentally American. If we look back into earlier ages, as discussed in the last chapter, we find that American types were prevalent on the American continent and in the American seas. These observations reveal a profound organic connection that spans across time and space, existing over the same areas of land and water, irrespective of their physical conditions. A naturalist who isn’t curious about the nature of this connection must be somewhat indifferent.

This bond, on my theory, is simply inheritance, that cause which alone, as far as we positively know, produces organisms quite like, or, as we see in the case of varieties, nearly like each other. The dissimilarity of the inhabitants of different regions may be attributed to modification through natural selection, and in a quite subordinate degree to the direct influence of different physical conditions. The degree of dissimilarity will depend on the migration of the more dominant forms of life from one region into another having been effected with more or less ease, at periods more or less remote;—on the nature and number of the former immigrants;—and on their action and reaction, in their mutual struggles for life;—the relation of organism to organism being, as I have already often remarked, the most important of all relations. Thus the high importance of barriers comes into play by checking migration; as does time for the slow process of modification through natural selection. Widely-ranging species, abounding in individuals, which have already triumphed over many competitors in their own widely-extended homes will have the best chance of seizing on new places, when they spread into new countries. In their new homes they will be exposed to new conditions, and will frequently undergo further modification and improvement; and thus they will become still further victorious, and will produce groups of modified descendants. On this principle of inheritance with modification, we can understand how it is that sections of genera, whole genera, [351]and even families are confined to the same areas, as is so commonly and notoriously the case.

This connection, according to my theory, is simply inheritance, the only cause that we definitively know produces organisms that are very similar or, as we see with varieties, nearly similar to each other. The differences between the inhabitants of various regions can be linked to changes through natural selection, and to a lesser extent, to the direct effects of different physical conditions. The extent of these differences will depend on how easily the more dominant forms of life migrated from one area to another, whether that happened recently or a long time ago; on the nature and number of the earlier immigrants; and on their interactions and competition for survival; the relationship between organisms, as I have often pointed out, is the most crucial of all relationships. This is where the significance of barriers comes in, as they limit migration; and time is essential for the gradual process of change through natural selection. Species that are widespread and have many individuals, which have already outcompeted various rivals in their broad habitats, will be best suited to occupy new areas when they spread into new regions. In their new environments, they will face new conditions, and will often experience further changes and improvements; thus, they will become even more successful and produce groups of modified descendants. Based on this principle of inheritance with modification, we can understand how parts of genera, entire genera, and even families are often found confined to the same regions, which is a common and well-known occurrence.

I believe, as was remarked in the last chapter, in no law of necessary development. As the variability of each species is an independent property, and will be taken advantage of by natural selection, only so far as it profits the individual in its complex struggle for life, so the degree of modification in different species will be no uniform quantity. If, for instance, a number of species, which stand in direct competition with each other, migrate in a body into a new and afterwards isolated country, they will be little liable to modification; for neither migration nor isolation in themselves can do anything. These principles come into play only by bringing organisms into new relations with each other, and in a lesser degree with the surrounding physical conditions. As we have seen in the last chapter that some forms have retained nearly the same character from an enormously remote geological period, so certain species have migrated over vast spaces, and have not become greatly modified.

I believe, as mentioned in the last chapter, that there's no absolute law of necessary development. Since the variability of each species is an independent trait, it will only be influenced by natural selection to the extent that it benefits the individual in its complex struggle for survival. Therefore, the extent of modification in different species won't be consistent. For example, if several species that directly compete with each other move together into a new and then isolated area, they are unlikely to change much; neither migration nor isolation alone can effect that change. These principles only come into play when organisms are brought into new relationships with each other, and to a lesser extent with their surrounding physical conditions. As we observed in the last chapter, some forms have retained nearly the same characteristics since an incredibly distant geological period, just as certain species have traveled vast distances without undergoing significant modifications.

On these views, it is obvious, that the several species of the same genus, though inhabiting the most distant quarters of the world, must originally have proceeded from the same source, as they have descended from the same progenitor. In the case of those species, which have undergone during whole geological periods but little modification, there is not much difficulty in believing that they may have migrated from the same region; for during the vast geographical and climatal changes which will have supervened since ancient times, almost any amount of migration is possible. But in many other cases, in which we have reason to believe that the species of a genus have been produced within comparatively recent times, there is great difficulty on this head. It [352]is also obvious that the individuals of the same species, though now inhabiting distant and isolated regions, must have proceeded from one spot, where their parents were first produced: for, as explained in the last chapter, it is incredible that individuals identically the same should ever have been produced through natural selection from parents specifically distinct.

On these views, it’s clear that different species within the same genus, even if they live in very far apart parts of the world, must have originally come from the same source, since they share the same ancestor. For those species that have changed very little over long geological periods, it’s not hard to believe they might have migrated from the same area; given the huge geographical and climate changes since ancient times, almost any amount of migration could have happened. However, in many other cases, where we have reason to think that the species of a genus appeared relatively recently, it's much harder to understand this. It [352]is also clear that individuals of the same species, even though they now live in separate and isolated areas, must have come from one location, where their ancestors first appeared: as discussed in the last chapter, it seems unlikely that identical individuals could have been produced through natural selection from distinctly different parents.

We are thus brought to the question which has been largely discussed by naturalists, namely, whether species have been created at one or more points of the earth's surface. Undoubtedly there are very many cases of extreme difficulty, in understanding how the same species could possibly have migrated from some one point to the several distant and isolated points, where now found. Nevertheless the simplicity of the view that each species was first produced within a single region captivates the mind. He who rejects it, rejects the vera causa of ordinary generation with subsequent migration, and calls in the agency of a miracle. It is universally admitted, that in most cases the area inhabited by a species is continuous; and when a plant or animal inhabits two points so distant from each other, or with an interval of such a nature, that the space could not be easily passed over by migration, the fact is given as something remarkable and exceptional. The capacity of migrating across the sea is more distinctly limited in terrestrial mammals, than perhaps in any other organic beings; and, accordingly, we find no inexplicable cases of the same mammal inhabiting distant points of the world. No geologist will feel any difficulty in such cases as Great Britain having been formerly united to Europe, and consequently possessing the same quadrupeds. But if the same species can be produced at two separate points, why do we not find a single mammal common to Europe and [353]Australia or South America? The conditions of life are nearly the same, so that a multitude of European animals and plants have become naturalised in America and Australia; and some of the aboriginal plants are identically the same at these distant points of the northern and southern hemispheres? The answer, as I believe, is, that mammals have not been able to migrate, whereas some plants, from their varied means of dispersal, have migrated across the vast and broken interspace. The great and striking influence which barriers of every kind have had on distribution, is intelligible only on the view that the great majority of species have been produced on one side alone, and have not been able to migrate to the other side. Some few families, many sub-families, very many genera, and a still greater number of sections of genera are confined to a single region; and it has been observed by several naturalists, that the most natural genera, or those genera in which the species are most closely related to each other, are generally local, or confined to one area. What a strange anomaly it would be, if, when coming one step lower in the series, to the individuals of the same species, a directly opposite rule prevailed; and species were not local, but had been produced in two or more distinct areas!

We are now led to the question that has been widely debated by naturalists: whether species were created at one or more locations on Earth. Clearly, there are many challenging cases that make it hard to understand how the same species could have migrated from a single point to various distant and isolated locations where they are now found. Nonetheless, the straightforward idea that each species first emerged in a specific region is appealing. Those who dismiss this idea reject the ordinary explanation of generation followed by migration and instead invoke a miraculous cause. It is generally accepted that in most instances, the area inhabited by a species is continuous; when a plant or animal is found in two very distant locations, or with such a gap that migration seems unlikely, the situation is seen as remarkable and exceptional. The ability to migrate across the sea is significantly more restricted in land mammals than in perhaps any other organisms; hence, we don't encounter any unexplainable cases of the same mammal appearing in far-off places around the globe. No geologist would struggle with cases like Great Britain once being connected to Europe, and thus sharing the same quadrupeds. But if the same species can arise in two separate locations, why don’t we find any mammals common to Europe and Australia or South America? The living conditions are quite similar, which is why many European animals and plants have adapted to America and Australia; and some native plants are exactly the same in these far-apart northern and southern regions. I believe the answer lies in the fact that mammals haven't been able to migrate, whereas some plants, due to their diverse ways of dispersal, have crossed the vast and fragmented distances. The significant and noticeable impact barriers of all kinds have on distribution makes sense only if the vast majority of species originated on one side and couldn't migrate to the other. A few families, many sub-families, numerous genera, and even more subdivisions of genera are restricted to a single region; and several naturalists have noted that the most natural genera, or those in which the species are closely related to one another, are usually local or confined to one area. What a strange anomaly it would be if, when considering the next level down in this hierarchy, the same species individuals did not follow the same pattern and were instead produced in two or more distinct areas!

Hence it seems to me, as it has to many other naturalists, that the view of each species having been produced in one area alone, and having subsequently migrated from that area as far as its powers of migration and subsistence under past and present conditions permitted, is the most probable. Undoubtedly many cases occur, in which we cannot explain how the same species could have passed from one point to the other. But the geographical and climatal changes, which have certainly occurred within recent geological times, must have interrupted or rendered discontinuous the [354]formerly continuous range of many species. So that we are reduced to consider whether the exceptions to continuity of range are so numerous and of so grave a nature, that we ought to give up the belief, rendered probable by general considerations, that each species has been produced within one area, and has migrated thence as far as it could. It would be hopelessly tedious to discuss all the exceptional cases of the same species, now living at distant and separated points; nor do I for a moment pretend that any explanation could be offered of many such cases. But after some preliminary remarks, I will discuss a few of the most striking classes of facts; namely, the existence of the same species on the summits of distant mountain-ranges, and at distant points in the arctic and antarctic regions; and secondly (in the following chapter), the wide distribution of freshwater productions; and thirdly, the occurrence of the same terrestrial species on islands and on the mainland, though separated by hundreds of miles of open sea. If the existence of the same species at distant and isolated points of the earth's surface, can in many instances be explained on the view of each species having migrated from a single birthplace; then, considering our ignorance with respect to former climatal and geographical changes and various occasional means of transport, the belief that this has been the universal law, seems to me incomparably the safest.

It seems to me, as it does to many other naturalists, that the idea of each species originating in one area and then migrating from there as far as its ability to move and survive allowed is the most likely scenario. Certainly, there are many instances where we can't explain how the same species moved from one place to another. However, the geographical and climatic changes that have definitely occurred in recent geological times must have interrupted or disrupted the previously continuous range of many species. We need to consider whether the exceptions to this continuity are so numerous and significant that we should abandon the belief, supported by general observations, that each species was produced in a single area and migrated from there as far as it could. It would be excessively tedious to examine all the unusual cases of the same species living in distant and separate locations, and I don’t claim to provide explanations for many of these cases. However, after some introductory comments, I will address a few of the most striking examples, namely, the presence of the same species on the peaks of distant mountain ranges and in remote arctic and antarctic regions; and then (in the next chapter), the wide distribution of freshwater organisms; and finally, the presence of the same terrestrial species on islands and on the mainland, even when separated by hundreds of miles of open ocean. If the existence of the same species at far-flung and isolated points on Earth can often be explained by the idea that each species migrated from a single origin, then, given our ignorance about past climatic and geographical changes and various occasional means of transport, the belief that this has been a universal law seems to me to be by far the safest.

In discussing this subject, we shall be enabled at the same time to consider a point equally important for us, namely, whether the several distinct species of a genus, which on my theory have all descended from a common progenitor, can have migrated (undergoing modification during some part of their migration) from the area inhabited by their progenitor. If it can be shown to be almost invariably the case, that a region, of which [355]most of its inhabitants are closely related to, or belong to the same genera with the species of a second region, has probably received at some former period immigrants from this other region, my theory will be strengthened; for we can clearly understand, on the principle of modification, why the inhabitants of a region should be related to those of another region, whence it has been stocked. A volcanic island, for instance, upheaved and formed at the distance of a few hundreds of miles from a continent, would probably receive from it in the course of time a few colonists, and their descendants, though modified, would still be plainly related by inheritance to the inhabitants of the continent. Cases of this nature are common, and are, as we shall hereafter more fully see, inexplicable on the theory of independent creation. This view of the relation of species in one region to those in another, does not differ much (by substituting the word variety for species) from that lately advanced in an ingenious paper by Mr. Wallace, in which he concludes, that "every species has come into existence coincident both in space and time with a pre-existing closely allied species." And I now know from correspondence, that this coincidence he attributes to generation with modification.

In discussing this topic, we will also consider another important point for us, which is whether the different species of a genus, that in my theory have all descended from a common ancestor, could have migrated (and changed during part of their migration) from the area where their ancestor lived. If it can be shown that it is almost always the case that a region, where most of its inhabitants are closely related to or belong to the same genera as the species from another region, likely received immigrants from that other region at some earlier time, my theory will be bolstered. We can clearly see, based on the principle of modification, why the inhabitants of one region would be related to those of another region from which it has been populated. For example, a volcanic island that is formed hundreds of miles away from a continent would likely receive a few colonists from it over time, and their descendants, although modified, would still be obviously related by inheritance to the residents of the continent. Cases like this are common and, as we will explore more deeply later, cannot be explained by the theory of independent creation. This perspective on the relationship between species in one region and those in another is not very different (by swapping the term variety for species) from what Mr. Wallace recently proposed in a clever paper, where he concludes that "every species has come into existence simultaneously in both space and time with a closely related pre-existing species." And I now understand from our correspondence that he believes this coincidence is due to generation with modification.

The previous remarks on "single and multiple centres of creation" do not directly bear on another allied question,—namely whether all the individuals of the same species have descended from a single pair, or single hermaphrodite, or whether, as some authors suppose, from many individuals simultaneously created. With those organic beings which never intercross (if such exist), the species, on my theory, must have descended from a succession of improved varieties, which will never have blended with other individuals or varieties, but will have supplanted each other; so that, at each [356]successive stage of modification and improvement, all the individuals of each variety will have descended from a single parent. But in the majority of cases, namely, with all organisms which habitually unite for each birth, or which often intercross, I believe that during the slow process of modification the individuals of the species will have been kept nearly uniform by intercrossing; so that many individuals will have gone on simultaneously changing, and the whole amount of modification will not have been due, at each stage, to descent from a single parent. To illustrate what I mean: our English racehorses differ slightly from the horses of every other breed; but they do not owe their difference and superiority to descent from any single pair, but to continued care in selecting and training many individuals during many generations.

The earlier comments on "single and multiple centers of creation" don’t directly address another related question—whether all individuals of the same species come from a single pair, or a single hermaphrodite, or, as some authors suggest, from many individuals created at the same time. For those living beings that never cross-breed (if such exist), the species, according to my theory, must have evolved from a series of improved varieties that never mixed with other individuals or varieties but replaced each other; thus, at each stage of modification and improvement, all individuals of each variety would have descended from a single parent. However, in most cases, particularly for organisms that regularly combine for each new generation, or that often interbreed, I believe that throughout the gradual process of change, the individuals of the species have remained relatively uniform due to interbreeding; many individuals would have changed simultaneously, and the total amount of change at each stage wouldn’t have come solely from descent from a single parent. To clarify what I mean: our English racehorses are slightly different from horses of other breeds; their differences and superior qualities don’t stem from any single pair of ancestors but from the ongoing selection and training of many individuals over several generations.

Before discussing the three classes of facts, which I have selected as presenting the greatest amount of difficulty on the theory of "single centres of creation," I must say a few words on the means of dispersal.

Before discussing the three types of facts that I think are the most challenging for the theory of "single centers of creation," I need to say a few words about the ways of dispersal.

 

Means of Dispersal.—Sir C. Lyell and other authors have ably treated this subject. I can give here only the briefest abstract of the more important facts. Change of climate must have had a powerful influence on migration: a region when its climate was different may have been a high road for migration, but now be impassable; I shall, however, presently have to discuss this branch of the subject in some detail. Changes of level in the land must also have been highly influential: a narrow isthmus now separates two marine faunas; submerge it, or let it formerly have been submerged, and the two faunas will now blend or may formerly have blended: where the sea now extends, land may at a former period have connected islands or [357]possibly even continents together, and thus have allowed terrestrial productions to pass from one to the other. No geologist will dispute that great mutations of level have occurred within the period of existing organisms. Edward Forbes insisted that all the islands in the Atlantic must recently have been connected with Europe or Africa, and Europe likewise with America. Other authors have thus hypothetically bridged over every ocean, and have united almost every island to some mainland. If indeed the arguments used by Forbes are to be trusted, it must be admitted that scarcely a single island exists which has not recently been united to some continent. This view cuts the Gordian knot of the dispersal of the same species to the most distant points, and removes many a difficulty: but to the best of my judgment we are not authorized in admitting such enormous geographical changes within the period of existing species. It seems to me that we have abundant evidence of great oscillations of level in our continents; but not of such vast changes in their position and extension, as to have united them within the recent period to each other and to the several intervening oceanic islands. I freely admit the former existence of many islands, now buried beneath the sea, which may have served as halting places for plants and for many animals during their migration. In the coral-producing oceans such sunken islands are now marked, as I believe, by rings of coral or atolls standing over them. Whenever it is fully admitted, as I believe it will some day be, that each species has proceeded from a single birthplace, and when in the course of time we know something definite about the means of distribution, we shall be enabled to speculate with security on the former extension of the land. But I do not believe that it will ever be proved that within the [358]recent period continents which are now quite separate, have been continuously, or almost continuously, united with each other, and with the many existing oceanic islands. Several facts in distribution,—such as the great difference in the marine faunas on the opposite sides of almost every continent,—the close relation of the tertiary inhabitants of several lands and even seas to their present inhabitants,—a certain degree of relation (as we shall hereafter see) between the distribution of mammals and the depth of the sea,—these and other such facts seem to me opposed to the admission of such prodigious geographical revolutions within the recent period, as are necessitated on the view advanced by Forbes and admitted by his many followers. The nature and relative proportions of the inhabitants of oceanic islands likewise seem to me opposed to the belief of their former continuity with continents. Nor does their almost universally volcanic composition favour the admission that they are the wrecks of sunken continents;—if they had originally existed as mountain-ranges on the land, some at least of the islands would have been formed, like other mountain-summits, of granite, metamorphic schists, old fossiliferous or other such rocks, instead of consisting of mere piles of volcanic matter.

Means of Dispersal.—Sir C. Lyell and other writers have effectively explored this topic. I can only provide a brief summary of the key points here. Changes in climate must have had a strong impact on migration: an area that had a different climate could have served as a migration route that is now impossible to traverse; however, I will discuss this aspect of the topic in more depth shortly. Changes in land elevation must have also played a significant role: a narrow isthmus currently separates two marine ecosystems; if it were submerged in the past, or becomes submerged, those ecosystems might blend or may have blended in the past: where the sea now exists, land may once have connected islands or possibly even continents, allowing land-based species to move between them. No geologist will argue against the fact that significant changes in elevation have occurred during the time of existing organisms. Edward Forbes argued that all the islands in the Atlantic must have been connected to Europe or Africa recently, and Europe also to America. Other writers have theoretically connected every ocean and linked almost every island to some mainland. If Forbes' arguments hold water, it must be acknowledged that hardly any island exists that hasn't recently been attached to some continent. This perspective simplifies the issue of how the same species might have dispersed over vast distances and resolves many challenges: however, in my opinion, we are not justified in accepting such massive geographical changes within the timeframe of existing species. It seems to me that we have plenty of evidence of significant shifts in elevation on our continents; yet, not of such vast changes in their positions and extents that they would have been connected in recent times to each other and to the various intervening oceanic islands. I readily acknowledge the past presence of many islands now hidden beneath the sea, which may have acted as resting spots for plants and many animals during their migration. In the coral-producing oceans, these submerged islands are now indicated, I believe, by rings of coral or atolls that sit on top of them. Whenever it is fully accepted, as I believe it will be one day, that each species originated from a single place, and as we gradually learn something concrete about the means of distribution, we will be able to speculate confidently about the former land extensions. However, I do not think it will ever be proven that, within the [358]recent period, continents that are currently separate have been continuously, or nearly continuously, connected to each other and to the many existing oceanic islands. Several facts regarding distribution—such as the significant differences in marine ecosystems on opposite sides of nearly every continent—the close relationship between the tertiary inhabitants of various lands and even seas with their present-day inhabitants—a certain degree of correlation (as we will see later) between the distribution of mammals and the depth of the sea—these and other such facts seem to contradict the acceptance of such enormous geographical upheavals in recent times, as suggested by Forbes and acknowledged by many of his followers. The nature and relative proportions of the inhabitants of oceanic islands also seem to oppose the idea of their previous connection to continents. Furthermore, their almost universally volcanic makeup does not support the notion that they are the remnants of submerged continents; if they had originally existed as mountain ranges on land, at least some of the islands would have formed, like other mountain peaks, from granite, metamorphic schists, old fossil-bearing rocks, or other similar materials, rather than being made up solely of volcanic debris.

I must now say a few words on what are called accidental means, but which more properly might be called occasional means of distribution. I shall here confine myself to plants. In botanical works, this or that plant is stated to be ill adapted for wide dissemination; but for transport across the sea, the greater or less facilities may be said to be almost wholly unknown. Until I tried, with Mr. Berkeley's aid, a few experiments, it was not even known how far seeds could resist the injurious action of sea-water. To my surprise I found that [359]out of 87 kinds, 64 germinated after an immersion of 28 days, and a few survived an immersion of 137 days. For convenience' sake I chiefly tried small seeds, without the capsule or fruit; and as all of these sank in a few days, they could not be floated across wide spaces of the sea, whether or not they were injured by the salt-water. Afterwards I tried some larger fruits, capsules, &c., and some of these floated for a long time. It is well known what a difference there is in the buoyancy of green and seasoned timber; and it occurred to me that floods might wash down plants or branches, and that these might be dried on the banks, and then by a fresh rise in the stream be washed into the sea. Hence I was led to dry stems and branches of 94 plants with ripe fruit, and to place them on sea-water. The majority sank quickly, but some which whilst green floated for a very short time, when dried floated much longer; for instance, ripe hazel-nuts sank immediately, but when dried they floated for 90 days, and afterwards when planted they germinated; an asparagus plant with ripe berries floated for 23 days, when dried it floated for 85 days, and the seeds afterwards germinated; the ripe seeds of Helosciadium sank in two days, when dried they floated for above 90 days, and afterwards germinated. Altogether out of the 94 dried plants, 18 floated for above 28 days, and some of the 18 floated for a very much longer period. So that as 64/87 seeds germinated after an immersion of 28 days; and as 18/94 plants with ripe fruit (but not all the same species as in the foregoing experiment) floated, after being dried, for above 28 days, as far as we may infer anything from these scanty facts, we may conclude that the seeds of 14/100 plants of any country might be floated by sea-currents during 28 days, and would retain their power of germination. In Johnston's Physical Atlas, the average [360]rate of the several Atlantic currents is 33 miles per diem (some currents running at the rate of 60 miles per diem); on this average, the seeds of 14/100 plants belonging to one country might be floated across 924 miles of sea to another country; and when stranded, if blown to a favourable spot by an inland gale, they would germinate.

I need to talk about what are known as accidental means, which are better described as occasional ways of distribution. I'll focus on plants here. In botanical literature, certain plants are said to be poorly suited for widespread distribution; however, the ability to transport them across the ocean is largely unknown. Until I conducted a few experiments with the help of Mr. Berkeley, it wasn’t even clear how long seeds could withstand the damaging effects of seawater. To my surprise, I found that out of 87 types, 64 germinated after being immersed for 28 days, and a few survived 137 days of immersion. For practicality, I primarily tested small seeds, without their capsules or fruit; since all of these sank within a few days, they couldn't be floated over large ocean distances, regardless of whether they were harmed by the saltwater. Later, I tried some larger fruits and capsules, and some of these floated for a long time. It's well-known that there's a notable difference in the buoyancy of green versus dried wood; it occurred to me that floods might carry down plants or branches that could dry out on the banks and then be washed into the sea by a rise in water levels. This led me to dry the stems and branches of 94 plants with ripe fruit and place them in seawater. Most sank quickly, but some that floated briefly as green plants, when dried, floated for much longer; for example, ripe hazelnuts sank immediately, but when dried, they floated for 90 days and later germinated. An asparagus plant with ripe berries floated for 23 days, and when dried, it floated for 85 days and also germinated. The ripe seeds of Helosciadium sank in two days, but when dried, they floated for over 90 days and then germinated. In total, out of the 94 dried plants, 18 floated for more than 28 days, with some of those lasting significantly longer. Thus, since 64 out of 87 seeds germinated after a 28-day immersion, and 18 out of 94 plants with ripe fruit (though not all of the same species from the earlier experiment) floated for over 28 days after drying, we can infer from these limited observations that the seeds of 14 out of 100 plants from any area might be carried by ocean currents for 28 days and still retain their ability to germinate. According to Johnston's Physical Atlas, the average rate of various Atlantic currents is 33 miles per day (with some currents traveling at up to 60 miles per day); based on this average, the seeds of 14 out of 100 plants from one region could be floated across 924 miles of sea to another region, and once they washed ashore, if carried by a favorable breeze, they would germinate.

Subsequently to my experiments, M. Martens tried similar ones, but in a much better manner, for he placed the seeds in a box in the actual sea, so that they were alternately wet and exposed to the air like really floating plants. He tried 98 seeds, mostly different from mine; but he chose many large fruits and likewise seeds from plants which live near the sea; and this would have favoured the average length of their flotation and of their resistance to the injurious action of the salt-water. On the other hand he did not previously dry the plants or branches with the fruit; and this, as we have seen, would have caused some of them to have floated much longer. The result was that 18/98 of his seeds floated for 42 days, and were then capable of germination. But I do not doubt that plants exposed to the waves would float for a less time than those protected from violent movement as in our experiments. Therefore it would perhaps be safer to assume that the seeds of about 10/100 plants of a flora, after having been dried, could be floated across a space of sea 900 miles in width, and would then germinate. The fact of the larger fruits often floating longer than the small, is interesting; as plants with large seeds or fruit could hardly be transported by any other means; and Alph. de Candolle has shown that such plants generally have restricted ranges.

After my experiments, M. Martens conducted similar tests, but in a much better way. He placed the seeds in a box in the actual sea, so they were alternately wet and exposed to the air like real floating plants. He tested 98 seeds, mostly different from mine; he chose many large fruits and also seeds from plants that grow near the sea, which likely improved their average flotation duration and resistance to the harmful effects of saltwater. However, he didn’t dry the plants or branches with the fruits beforehand, which, as we’ve seen, would have allowed some to float for a much longer time. The outcome was that 18 out of 98 of his seeds floated for 42 days and were then capable of germination. But I’m sure that plants exposed to waves would float for a shorter time than those protected from strong movements, like in our experiments. Therefore, it might be safer to assume that the seeds of about 10 out of 100 plants from a flora, after being dried, could float across a stretch of sea 900 miles wide and still germinate. It’s interesting that larger fruits often float longer than the smaller ones; as plants with large seeds or fruits could hardly be transported by any other means, and Alph. de Candolle has shown that such plants usually have limited ranges.

But seeds may be occasionally transported in another manner. Drift timber is thrown up on most islands, [361]even on those in the midst of the widest oceans; and the natives of the coral-islands in the Pacific, procure stones for their tools, solely from the roots of drifted trees, these stones being a valuable royal tax. I find on examination, that when irregularly shaped stones are embedded in the roots of trees, small parcels of earth are very frequently enclosed in their interstices and behind them,—so perfectly that not a particle could be washed away in the longest transport: out of one small portion of earth thus completely enclosed by wood in an oak about 50 years old, three dicotyledonous plants germinated: I am certain of the accuracy of this observation. Again, I can show that the carcasses of birds, when floating on the sea, sometimes escape being immediately devoured; and seeds of many kinds in the crops of floating birds long retain their vitality: peas and vetches, for instance, are killed by even a few days' immersion in sea-water; but some taken out of the crop of a pigeon, which had floated on artificial salt-water for 30 days, to my surprise nearly all germinated.

But seeds can sometimes be transported in another way. Driftwood washes up on most islands, [361]even those in the middle of the vastest oceans; and the people living on the coral islands in the Pacific get stones for their tools exclusively from the roots of drifted trees, as these stones are a valuable royal tax. Upon investigation, I find that when oddly shaped stones are embedded in the roots of trees, small amounts of soil are often trapped in their gaps and behind them—so perfectly that not a grain could be washed away during long transport: from one small clump of soil thus completely enclosed by wood in an oak about 50 years old, three dicotyledonous plants sprouted: I am sure about the accuracy of this observation. Additionally, I can demonstrate that the bodies of birds, when floating on the sea, sometimes avoid being eaten right away; and seeds of many types in the stomachs of floating birds can retain their vitality for a long time: peas and vetches, for instance, get damaged by even a few days submerged in seawater; however, some taken from the crop of a pigeon that had floated in artificial saltwater for 30 days, surprisingly, all nearly germinated.

Living birds can hardly fail to be highly effective agents in the transportation of seeds. I could give many facts showing how frequently birds of many kinds are blown by gales to vast distances across the ocean. We may I think safely assume that under such circumstances their rate of flight would often be 35 miles an hour; and some authors have given a far higher estimate. I have never seen an instance of nutritious seeds passing through the intestines of a bird; but hard seeds of fruit pass uninjured through even the digestive organs of a turkey. In the course of two months, I picked up in my garden 12 kinds of seeds, out of the excrement of small birds, and these seemed perfect, and some of them, which I tried, germinated. [362]But the following fact is more important: the crops of birds do not secrete gastric juice, and do not in the least injure, as I know by trial, the germination of seeds; now after a bird has found and devoured a large supply of food, it is positively asserted that all the grains do not pass into the gizzard for 12 or even 18 hours. A bird in this interval might easily be blown to the distance of 500 miles, and hawks are known to look out for tired birds, and the contents of their torn crops might thus readily get scattered. Mr. Brent informs me that a friend of his had to give up flying carrier-pigeons from France to England, as the hawks on the English coast destroyed so many on their arrival. Some hawks and owls bolt their prey whole, and after an interval of from twelve to twenty hours, disgorge pellets, which, as I know from experiments made in the Zoological Gardens, include seeds capable of germination. Some seeds of the oat, wheat, millet, canary, hemp, clover, and beet germinated after having been from twelve to twenty-one hours in the stomachs of different birds of prey; and two seeds of beet grew after having been thus retained for two days and fourteen hours. Freshwater fish, I find, eat seeds of many land and water plants: fish are frequently devoured by birds, and thus the seeds might be transported from place to place. I forced many kinds of seeds into the stomachs of dead fish, and then gave their bodies to fishing-eagles, storks, and pelicans; these birds after an interval of many hours, either rejected the seeds in pellets or passed them in their excrement; and several of these seeds retained their power of germination. Certain seeds, however, were always killed by this process.

Living birds are really effective at transporting seeds. I could share many examples of how birds of various types are carried by strong winds over long distances across the ocean. I think we can assume that their flight speed during these times is often around 35 miles per hour, with some authors suggesting even higher speeds. I've never seen a case of nutritious seeds surviving after passing through a bird's intestines, but tough seeds from fruits can make it through the digestive system of a turkey without damage. Over two months, I collected 12 different kinds of seeds from the droppings of small birds in my garden, and they looked perfect; some of them even germinated when I tried. [362]But more importantly, the crops of birds don’t produce gastric juice, which, as I’ve tested, does not harm the germination of seeds. After a bird has eaten a large amount of food, it's said that the grains can stay in the crop for 12 to 18 hours without going into the gizzard. During that time, a bird could easily be blown 500 miles away, and hawks are known to hunt for tired birds, scattering the contents of their damaged crops. Mr. Brent told me that a friend of his stopped transporting carrier pigeons from France to England because so many were taken by hawks upon arrival. Some hawks and owls swallow their prey whole, and after 12 to 20 hours, they regurgitate pellets that contain seeds capable of germination. I found that seeds from oats, wheat, millet, canary, hemp, clover, and beet germinated after being in the stomachs of different birds of prey for 12 to 21 hours; two beet seeds even grew after sticking around for 2 days and 14 hours. Freshwater fish eat seeds from many land and water plants, and fish are often eaten by birds, allowing seeds to be transported around. I forced various seeds into the stomachs of dead fish and then fed those fish to fishing eagles, storks, and pelicans. After several hours, these birds either rejected the seeds in pellets or passed them in their droppings, and many of those seeds still had the ability to germinate. However, some seeds always got killed by this process.

Although the beaks and feet of birds are generally quite clean, I can show that earth sometimes adheres to them: in one instance I removed twenty-two grains [363]of dry argillaceous earth from one foot of a partridge, and in this earth there was a pebble quite as large as the seed of a vetch. Thus seeds might occasionally be transported to great distances; for many facts could be given showing that soil almost everywhere is charged with seeds. Reflect for a moment on the millions of quails which annually cross the Mediterranean; and can we doubt that the earth adhering to their feet would sometimes include a few minute seeds? But I shall presently have to recur to this subject.

Although birds' beaks and feet are usually pretty clean, I can show that dirt sometimes sticks to them: in one case, I found twenty-two tiny grains [363] of dry clay on one foot of a partridge, and in that dirt, there was a pebble as big as a vetch seed. This suggests that seeds can occasionally be carried over long distances; there are many examples showing that soil nearly everywhere is full of seeds. Think for a moment about the millions of quails that cross the Mediterranean each year; can we really doubt that the dirt on their feet sometimes contains a few tiny seeds? But I’ll have to come back to this topic shortly.

As icebergs are known to be sometimes loaded with earth and stones, and have even carried brushwood, bones, and the nest of a land-bird, I can hardly doubt that they must occasionally have transported seeds from one part to another of the arctic and antarctic regions, as suggested by Lyell; and during the Glacial period from one part of the now temperate regions to another. In the Azores, from the large number of the species of plants common to Europe, in comparison with the plants of other oceanic islands nearer to the mainland, and (as remarked by Mr. H. C. Watson) from the somewhat northern character of the flora in comparison with the latitude, I suspected that these islands had been partly stocked by ice-borne seeds, during the Glacial epoch. At my request Sir C. Lyell wrote to M. Hartung to inquire whether he had observed erratic boulders on these islands, and he answered that he had found large fragments of granite and other rocks, which do not occur in the archipelago. Hence we may safely infer that icebergs formerly landed their rocky burthens on the shores of these mid-ocean islands, and it is at least possible that they may have brought thither the seeds of northern plants.

As icebergs are sometimes filled with dirt and stones, and have even carried branches, bones, and the nest of a land bird, I can’t help but think that they must have occasionally transported seeds from one part of the Arctic and Antarctic regions to another, as Lyell suggested; and during the Glacial period from one part of what are now temperate regions to another. In the Azores, because of the large number of plant species that are common in Europe compared to those on other oceanic islands closer to the mainland, and (as noted by Mr. H. C. Watson) due to the somewhat northern character of the flora in relation to the latitude, I suspected that these islands had been partly populated by seeds carried by ice during the Glacial epoch. At my request, Sir C. Lyell wrote to M. Hartung to see if he had found erratic boulders on these islands, and he replied that he had discovered large pieces of granite and other rocks that aren’t found in the archipelago. Thus, we can reasonably conclude that icebergs once deposited their rocky loads on the shores of these mid-ocean islands, and it’s at least possible that they also brought northern plant seeds there.

Considering that the several above means of transport, and that several other means, which without [364]doubt remain to be discovered, have been in action year after year, for centuries and tens of thousands of years, it would I think be a marvellous fact if many plants had not thus become widely transported. These means of transport are sometimes called accidental, but this is not strictly correct: the currents of the sea are not accidental, nor is the direction of prevalent gales of wind. It should be observed that scarcely any means of transport would carry seeds for very great distances; for seeds do not retain their vitality when exposed for a great length of time to the action of sea-water; nor could they be long carried in the crops or intestines of birds. These means, however, would suffice for occasional transport across tracts of sea some hundred miles in breadth, or from island to island, or from a continent to a neighbouring island, but not from one distant continent to another. The floras of distant continents would not by such means become mingled in any great degree; but would remain as distinct as we now see them to be. The currents, from their course, would never bring seeds from North America to Britain, though they might and do bring seeds from the West Indies to our western shores, where, if not killed by so long an immersion in salt-water, they could not endure our climate. Almost every year, one or two land-birds are blown across the whole Atlantic Ocean, from North America to the western shores of Ireland and England; but seeds could be transported by these wanderers only by one means, namely, in dirt sticking to their feet, which is in itself a rare accident. Even in this case, how small would the chance be of a seed falling on favourable soil, and coming to maturity! But it would be a great error to argue that because a well-stocked island, like Great Britain, has not, as far as is known [365](and it would be very difficult to prove this), received within the last few centuries, through occasional means of transport, immigrants from Europe or any other continent, that a poorly-stocked island, though standing more remote from the mainland, would not receive colonists by similar means. I do not doubt that out of twenty seeds or animals transported to an island, even if far less well-stocked than Britain, scarcely more than one would be so well fitted to its new home, as to become naturalised. But this, as it seems to me, is no valid argument against what would be effected by occasional means of transport, during the long lapse of geological time, whilst an island was being upheaved and formed, and before it had become fully stocked with inhabitants. On almost bare land, with few or no destructive insects or birds living there, nearly every seed, which chanced to arrive, if fitted for the climate, would be sure to germinate and survive.

Considering the various forms of transport mentioned above, along with many others that are likely still to be discovered, which have been in use year after year for centuries and tens of thousands of years, it would be remarkable if many plants hadn’t been widely spread as a result. These means of transport are often called accidental, but that’s not entirely accurate: ocean currents are not accidental, nor are the prevailing winds. It should be noted that very few transport methods would carry seeds over long distances; seeds lose their viability when exposed for a long time to sea water, and they can't survive lengthy trips inside the crops or intestines of birds. However, these methods could facilitate occasional transport across stretches of sea a few hundred miles wide, or from island to island, or from a continent to a nearby island, but not from one distant continent to another. The plant life of distant continents wouldn’t mix significantly through these means; it would remain as distinct as we currently observe. The currents, based on their paths, would never carry seeds from North America to Britain, though they can and do bring seeds from the West Indies to our western shores, where, if they aren't killed by extended immersion in salt water, they couldn't survive our climate. Almost every year, one or two land birds are blown across the entire Atlantic Ocean from North America to the western coasts of Ireland and England; yet, these birds could transport seeds only in dirt stuck to their feet, which is itself a rare occurrence. Even in this case, the chance of a seed landing on suitable soil and maturing would be very small! However, it would be a significant error to conclude that because a well-populated island like Great Britain has not, as far as we know (and it would be challenging to prove this), received immigrants from Europe or any other continent in the last few centuries through occasional means of transport, a less populated island, even if further from the mainland, wouldn’t receive colonists in a similar manner. I believe that out of twenty seeds or animals transported to an island, even if it were much less populated than Britain, hardly more than one would be well-suited to its new environment and become naturalized. But, in my opinion, this is no strong argument against what could happen from occasional means of transport over the extensive periods of geological time, especially while an island was emerging and forming, and before it became fully populated. On almost barren land, with few or no destructive insects or birds present, nearly every seed that happened to arrive, if suited for the climate, would be likely to germinate and survive.

 

Dispersal during the Glacial period.—The identity of many plants and animals, on mountain-summits, separated from each other by hundreds of miles of lowlands, where the Alpine species could not possibly exist, is one of the most striking cases known of the same species living at distant points, without the apparent possibility of their having migrated from one to the other. It is indeed a remarkable fact to see so many of the same plants living on the snowy regions of the Alps or Pyrenees, and in the extreme northern parts of Europe; but it is far more remarkable, that the plants on the White Mountains, in the United States of America, are all the same with those of Labrador, and nearly all the same, as we hear from Asa Gray, with those on the loftiest mountains of Europe. Even as long ago as 1747, such facts led Gmelin to conclude that the [366]same species must have been independently created at several distinct points; and we might have remained in this same belief, had not Agassiz and others called vivid attention to the Glacial period, which, as we shall immediately see, affords a simple explanation of these facts. We have evidence of almost every conceivable kind, organic and inorganic, that within a very recent geological period, central Europe and North America suffered under an Arctic climate. The ruins of a house burnt by fire do not tell their tale more plainly, than do the mountains of Scotland and Wales, with their scored flanks, polished surfaces, and perched boulders, of the icy streams with which their valleys were lately filled. So greatly has the climate of Europe changed, that in Northern Italy, gigantic moraines, left by old glaciers, are now clothed by the vine and maize. Throughout a large part of the United States, erratic boulders, and rocks scored by drifted icebergs and coast-ice, plainly reveal a former cold period.

Dispersal during the Glacial period.—The fact that many plants and animals on mountain peaks are separated by hundreds of miles of lowlands, where Alpine species couldn't possibly survive, is one of the most striking examples of the same species existing at far apart locations, seemingly without the chance of having migrated between them. It's truly remarkable to find so many of the same plants living in the snowy areas of the Alps or Pyrenees, and in the far northern regions of Europe; but it's even more astonishing that the plants on the White Mountains in the United States are all the same as those in Labrador, and nearly identical, as noted by Asa Gray, to those on the highest mountains in Europe. As early as 1747, these facts led Gmelin to conclude that the [366]same species must have been created independently at different locations; and we might still hold this belief if Agassiz and others hadn't highlighted the Glacial period, which provides a straightforward explanation for these observations. We have nearly every type of evidence, both organic and inorganic, that within a very recent geological timeframe, central Europe and North America experienced an Arctic climate. The remnants of a house that has been burnt are more clearly indicative of their history than the mountains of Scotland and Wales, with their scratched slopes, smooth surfaces, and boulders perched on high, tell the story of the icy streams that once filled their valleys. The climatic shift in Europe is so significant that in Northern Italy, massive moraines left by ancient glaciers are now covered in vineyards and corn. Across much of the United States, erratic boulders and rocks marked by drifting icebergs and coastal ice clearly indicate a former cold era.

The former influence of the glacial climate on the distribution of the inhabitants of Europe, as explained with remarkable clearness by Edward Forbes, is substantially as follows. But we shall follow the changes more readily, by supposing a new glacial period to come slowly on, and then pass away, as formerly occurred. As the cold came on, and as each more southern zone became fitted for arctic beings and ill-fitted for their former more temperate inhabitants, the latter would be supplanted and arctic productions would take their places. The inhabitants of the more temperate regions would at the same time travel southward, unless they were stopped by barriers, in which case they would perish. The mountains would become covered with snow and ice, and their former Alpine inhabitants would descend to the plains. By the time that the cold had reached [367]its maximum, we should have a uniform arctic fauna and flora, covering the central parts of Europe, as far south as the Alps and Pyrenees, and even stretching into Spain. The now temperate regions of the United States would likewise be covered by arctic plants and animals, and these would be nearly the same with those of Europe; for the present circumpolar inhabitants, which we suppose to have everywhere travelled southward, are remarkably uniform round the world. We may suppose that the Glacial period came on a little earlier or later in North America than in Europe, so will the southern migration there have been a little earlier or later; but this will make no difference in the final result.

The previous impact of the glacial climate on the distribution of people in Europe, explained clearly by Edward Forbes, is essentially as follows. We can better understand the changes by imagining a new glacial period gradually arriving and then retreating, just as it did before. As the cold set in, each more southern area became suitable for Arctic species and unsuitable for their previous temperate inhabitants, who would be replaced by Arctic species. At the same time, the people from the more temperate regions would move south, unless blocked by barriers, in which case they would die out. The mountains would become covered in snow and ice, causing their former Alpine residents to move down to the plains. By the time the cold reached its peak, we would see a uniform Arctic fauna and flora covering central Europe, extending as far south as the Alps and Pyrenees, and even into Spain. The currently temperate regions of the United States would also be blanketed by Arctic plants and animals, which would be very similar to those in Europe; because the current circumpolar inhabitants, who we assume traveled southward everywhere, are surprisingly uniform around the globe. We can assume that the Glacial period started a little earlier or later in North America than in Europe, so the southern migration there happened a bit earlier or later too; but this won’t change the final outcome.

As the warmth returned, the arctic forms would retreat northward, closely followed up in their retreat by the productions of the more temperate regions. And as the snow melted from the bases of the mountains, the arctic forms would seize on the cleared and thawed ground, always ascending higher and higher, as the warmth increased, whilst their brethren were pursuing their northern journey. Hence, when the warmth had fully returned, the same arctic species, which had lately lived in a body together on the lowlands of the Old and New Worlds, would be left isolated on distant mountain-summits (having been exterminated on all lesser heights) and in the arctic regions of both hemispheres.

As the warmth returned, the arctic species would move northward, closely followed by those from more temperate areas. As the snow melted at the base of the mountains, the arctic species would take over the cleared and thawed ground, always climbing higher as the temperature rose, while their counterparts continued their northern journey. So, when the warmth was fully restored, the same arctic species that had recently lived together in the lowlands of the Old and New Worlds would find themselves isolated on distant mountain peaks (having been wiped out at all lower elevations) and in the arctic regions of both hemispheres.

Thus we can understand the identity of many plants at points so immensely remote as on the mountains of the United States and of Europe. We can thus also understand the fact that the Alpine plants of each mountain-range are more especially related to the arctic forms living due north or nearly due north of them: for the migration as the cold came on, and the re-migration on the returning warmth, will generally [368]have been due south and north. The Alpine plants, for example, of Scotland, as remarked by Mr. H. C. Watson, and those of the Pyrenees, as remarked by Ramond, are more especially allied to the plants of northern Scandinavia; those of the United States to Labrador; those of the mountains of Siberia to the arctic regions of that country. These views, grounded as they are on the perfectly well-ascertained occurrence of a former Glacial period, seem to me to explain in so satisfactory a manner the present distribution of the Alpine and Arctic productions of Europe and America, that when in other regions we find the same species on distant mountain-summits, we may almost conclude without other evidence, that a colder climate permitted their former migration across the low intervening tracts, since become too warm for their existence.

So, we can see the connection between many plants in places as far apart as the mountains in the United States and Europe. We can also see that the Alpine plants from each mountain range are particularly related to the arctic forms that live directly north or nearly directly north of them. The migration occurred as the cold set in, and the return migration happened with the warming weather, typically going south and north. For instance, the Alpine plants in Scotland, as noted by Mr. H. C. Watson, and those in the Pyrenees, as noted by Ramond, are especially related to the plants of northern Scandinavia; those in the United States are related to Labrador; and those in the Siberian mountains are linked to the arctic regions of that area. These ideas, which are based on the well-documented occurrence of a past Glacial period, convincingly clarify the current distribution of Alpine and Arctic species in Europe and America. Therefore, when we find the same species on distant mountain summits in other regions, we can almost conclude—without needing additional evidence—that a colder climate allowed their previous migration across the now-warm lowlands that no longer support them.

If the climate, since the Glacial period, has ever been in any degree warmer than at present (as some geologists in the United States believe to have been the case, chiefly from the distribution of the fossil Gnathodon), then the arctic and temperate productions will at a very late period have marched a little further north, and subsequently have retreated to their present homes; but I have met with no satisfactory evidence with respect to this intercalated slightly warmer period, since the Glacial period.

If the climate since the Ice Age has ever been warmer than it is now (which some geologists in the United States think might be true, mainly because of the way the fossil Gnathodon is distributed), then the Arctic and temperate species may have moved a bit further north at some point and then moved back to where they are now. However, I haven't found any convincing evidence to support this idea of a slightly warmer period since the Ice Age.

The arctic forms, during their long southern migration and re-migration northward, will have been exposed to nearly the same climate, and, as is especially to be noticed, they will have kept in a body together; consequently their mutual relations will not have been much disturbed, and, in accordance with the principles inculcated in this volume, they will not have been liable to much modification. But with our Alpine productions, left isolated from the moment of the returning warmth, [369]first at the bases and ultimately on the summits of the mountains, the case will have been somewhat different; for it is not likely that all the same arctic species will have been left on mountain ranges distant from each other, and have survived there ever since; they will, also, in all probability have become mingled with ancient Alpine species, which must have existed on the mountains before the commencement of the Glacial epoch, and which during its coldest period will have been temporarily driven down to the plains; they will, also, have been exposed to somewhat different climatal influences. Their mutual relations will thus have been in some degree disturbed; consequently they will have been liable to modification; and this we find has been the case; for if we compare the present Alpine plants and animals of the several great European mountain-ranges, though very many of the species are identically the same, some present varieties, some are ranked as doubtful forms, and some few are distinct yet closely allied or representative species.

The arctic species, during their long migration south and then back north, will have been exposed to nearly the same climate. It’s important to note that they will have remained together as a group; therefore, their relationships would not have been significantly disturbed, and, following the principles outlined in this book, they wouldn’t have undergone much change. However, the situation for our Alpine species, isolated from the moment the warmth returned—first at the bases and eventually on the mountain peaks—will have been somewhat different. It’s unlikely that all the same arctic species were left on mountain ranges far apart from each other and have survived there without change since then. They will also have likely mixed with ancient Alpine species that must have been on the mountains before the beginning of the Glacial epoch, and which, during the coldest period, were temporarily pushed down to the plains. They will also have experienced somewhat different climate influences. Thus, their relationships would have been somewhat disturbed; consequently, they would have been subject to modification; and this is what we observe. When we compare the current Alpine plants and animals of the various major European mountain ranges, while many species are exactly the same, some show variations, some are classified as uncertain forms, and a few are distinct yet closely related or representative species.

In illustrating what, as I believe, actually took place during the Glacial period, I assumed that at its commencement the arctic productions were as uniform round the polar regions as they are at the present day. But the foregoing remarks on distribution apply not only to strictly arctic forms, but also to many sub-arctic and to some few northern temperate forms, for some of these are the same on the lower mountains and on the plains of North America and Europe; and it may be reasonably asked how I account for the necessary degree of uniformity of the sub-arctic and northern temperate forms round the world, at the commencement of the Glacial period. At the present day, the sub-arctic and northern temperate productions of the Old and New Worlds are separated from each other by the [370]Atlantic Ocean and by the extreme northern part of the Pacific. During the Glacial period, when the inhabitants of the Old and New Worlds lived further southwards than at present, they must have been still more completely separated by wider spaces of ocean. I believe the above difficulty may be surmounted by looking to still earlier changes of climate of an opposite nature. We have good reason to believe that during the newer Pliocene period, before the Glacial epoch, and whilst the majority of the inhabitants of the world were specifically the same as now, the climate was warmer than at the present day. Hence we may suppose that the organisms now living under the climate of latitude 60°, during the Pliocene period lived further north under the Polar Circle, in latitude 66°-67°; and that the strictly arctic productions then lived on the broken land still nearer to the pole. Now if we look at a globe, we shall see that under the Polar Circle there is almost continuous land from western Europe, through Siberia, to eastern America. And to this continuity of the circumpolar land, and to the consequent freedom for intermigration under a more favourable climate, I attribute the necessary amount of uniformity in the sub-arctic and northern temperate productions of the Old and New Worlds, at a period anterior to the Glacial epoch.

In explaining what I believe actually happened during the Glacial period, I assumed that at the start, Arctic species were just as uniform around the polar regions as they are today. However, the previous comments on distribution apply not only to strictly Arctic species but also to many sub-Arctic and a few northern temperate species, because some of these are found on the lower mountains and plains of North America and Europe. It’s reasonable to ask how I explain the necessary level of uniformity in sub-Arctic and northern temperate species around the world at the start of the Glacial period. Today, the sub-Arctic and northern temperate species of the Old and New Worlds are divided by the [370]Atlantic Ocean and the far northern part of the Pacific. During the Glacial period, when the inhabitants of these regions lived further south than they do now, they must have been even more completely separated by larger expanses of ocean. I believe this challenge can be addressed by looking at earlier climate changes that were opposite in nature. We have strong evidence that during the newer Pliocene period, before the Glacial epoch, while most of the earth’s inhabitants were similar to those today, the climate was warmer. Thus, we can assume that organisms currently living in the climate of latitude 60° were once found further north, just inside the Polar Circle at latitude 66°-67°; and that strictly Arctic species lived even closer to the pole on fragmented land. If we look at a globe, we can see that there is almost continuous land under the Polar Circle from western Europe, through Siberia, to eastern America. I attribute the necessary level of uniformity in the sub-Arctic and northern temperate species of the Old and New Worlds to this continuity of circumpolar land and the resulting opportunities for migration under a more favorable climate, at a time prior to the Glacial epoch.

Believing, from reasons before alluded to, that our continents have long remained in nearly the same relative position, though subjected to large, but partial oscillations of level, I am strongly inclined to extend the above view, and to infer that during some earlier and still warmer period, such as the older Pliocene period, a large number of the same plants and animals inhabited the almost continuous circumpolar land; and that these plants and animals, both in the Old and [371]New Worlds, began slowly to migrate southwards as the climate became less warm, long before the commencement of the Glacial period. We now see, as I believe, their descendants, mostly in a modified condition, in the central parts of Europe and the United States. On this view we can understand the relationship, with very little identity, between the productions of North America and Europe,—a relationship which is most remarkable, considering the distance of the two areas, and their separation by the Atlantic Ocean. We can further understand the singular fact remarked on by several observers, that the productions of Europe and America during the later tertiary stages were more closely related to each other than they are at the present time; for during these warmer periods the northern parts of the Old and New Worlds will have been almost continuously united by land, serving as a bridge, since rendered impassable by cold, for the intermigration of their inhabitants.

Believing, for the reasons mentioned earlier, that our continents have largely maintained the same relative positions, even though they've experienced significant but localized changes in elevation, I am inclined to expand on this idea. I suggest that during an earlier and warmer time, like the older Pliocene period, many of the same plants and animals lived on the nearly continuous circumpolar land. As the climate cooled, these plants and animals began to migrate southward in both the Old and New Worlds, long before the beginning of the Glacial period. Today, I believe we see their descendants, mostly in modified forms, in central Europe and the United States. This perspective helps explain the surprisingly close relationship, despite the differences, between the species in North America and Europe—a relationship that is particularly striking given the distance between the two regions and their separation by the Atlantic Ocean. Furthermore, it clarifies the unusual observation made by several researchers that during the later Tertiary stages, the species in Europe and America were more closely related than they are now. During those warmer times, the northern parts of the Old and New Worlds were likely connected by land, which served as a bridge—now blocked by cold—that allowed for the migration of their inhabitants.

During the slowly decreasing warmth of the Pliocene period, as soon as the species in common, which inhabited the New and Old Worlds, migrated south of the Polar Circle, they must have been completely cut off from each other. This separation, as far as the more temperate productions are concerned, took place long ages ago. And as the plants and animals migrated southward, they will have become mingled in the one great region with the native American productions, and have had to compete with them; and in the other great region, with those of the Old World. Consequently we have here everything favourable for much modification,—for far more modification than with the Alpine productions, left isolated, within a much more recent period, on the several mountain-ranges and on the arctic lands of the two Worlds. Hence it has come, that when we compare [372]the now living productions of the temperate regions of the New and Old Worlds, we find very few identical species (though Asa Gray has lately shown that more plants are identical than was formerly supposed), but we find in every great class many forms, which some naturalists rank as geographical races, and others as distinct species; and a host of closely allied or representative forms which are ranked by all naturalists as specifically distinct.

During the gradually cooling Pliocene period, when the species common to both the New and Old Worlds migrated south of the Polar Circle, they must have been completely isolated from each other. This separation, especially regarding the more temperate species, happened a long time ago. As the plants and animals moved southward, they would have mixed with the native species of America and had to compete with them; in the Old World, they faced competition from its native species as well. As a result, we have everything necessary for significant changes—much more than with the Alpine species, which were left isolated more recently on various mountain ranges and the arctic regions of both Worlds. Thus, when we compare the living species of the temperate regions of the New and Old Worlds, we find very few identical species (though Asa Gray has recently shown that more plants are the same as previously thought), but we see many forms in each major group, which some naturalists classify as geographical races, while others view them as distinct species; and many closely related or representative forms that all naturalists agree are specifically distinct.

As on the land, so in the waters of the sea, a slow southern migration of a marine fauna, which during the Pliocene or even a somewhat earlier period, was nearly uniform along the continuous shores of the Polar Circle, will account, on the theory of modification, for many closely allied forms now living in areas completely sundered. Thus, I think, we can understand the presence of many existing and tertiary representative forms on the eastern and western shores of temperate North America; and the still more striking case of many closely allied crustaceans (as described in Dana's admirable work), of some fish and other marine animals, in the Mediterranean and in the seas of Japan,—areas now separated by a continent and by nearly a hemisphere of equatorial ocean.

As it is on land, so it is in the sea: a gradual migration of marine life from the south, which during the Pliocene or even earlier was almost consistent along the shores of the Arctic Circle, can explain, through the lens of modification, many closely related species that currently inhabit completely separated areas. This helps us understand the presence of various existing and ancient representative species on the eastern and western coasts of temperate North America, and even more notably, the many closely related crustaceans (as described in Dana's excellent work), some fish, and other marine creatures found in the Mediterranean and the seas of Japan—regions now divided by a continent and almost a hemisphere of equatorial ocean.

These cases of relationship, without identity, of the inhabitants of seas now disjoined, and likewise of the past and present inhabitants of the temperate lands of North America and Europe, are inexplicable on the theory of creation. We cannot say that they have been created alike, in correspondence with the nearly similar physical conditions of the areas; for if we compare, for instance, certain parts of South America with the southern continents of the Old World, we see countries closely corresponding in all their physical conditions, but with their inhabitants utterly dissimilar. [373]

These cases of relationships, without shared identity, among the inhabitants of seas that are now separated, and also between the past and present inhabitants of the temperate regions of North America and Europe, cannot be explained by the theory of creation. We can't claim that they were created similarly, in line with the almost identical physical conditions of these areas; for example, if we compare certain parts of South America with the southern continents of the Old World, we find countries that closely match in all their physical conditions, yet their inhabitants are completely different. [373]

But we must return to our more immediate subject, the Glacial period. I am convinced that Forbes's view may be largely extended. In Europe we have the plainest evidence of the cold period, from the western shores of Britain to the Oural range, and southward to the Pyrenees. We may infer from the frozen mammals and nature of the mountain vegetation, that Siberia was similarly affected. Along the Himalaya, at points 900 miles apart, glaciers have left the marks of their former low descent; and in Sikkim, Dr. Hooker saw maize growing on gigantic ancient moraines. South of the equator, we have some direct evidence of former glacial action in New Zealand; and the same plants, found on widely separated mountains in that island, tell the same story. If one account which has been published can be trusted, we have direct evidence of glacial action in the south-eastern corner of Australia.

But we need to get back to our main topic, the Ice Age. I believe that Forbes's perspective can be expanded significantly. In Europe, we have clear evidence of the cold period, from the western coasts of Britain to the Ural Mountains, and down to the Pyrenees. We can deduce from the frozen animals and the type of vegetation in the mountains that Siberia was similarly impacted. Along the Himalayas, at points 900 miles apart, glaciers have left signs of their past low positions, and in Sikkim, Dr. Hooker observed maize growing on huge ancient moraines. In the southern hemisphere, we have some concrete evidence of past glacial activity in New Zealand; the same plants found on widely separated mountains in that country tell the same story. If one report that has been published is reliable, we have direct evidence of glacial activity in the southeastern corner of Australia.

Looking to America; in the northern half, ice-borne fragments of rock have been observed on the eastern side as far south as lat. 36°-37°, and on the shores of the Pacific, where the climate is now so different, as far south as lat. 46°; erratic boulders have, also, been noticed on the Rocky Mountains. In the Cordillera of Equatorial South America, glaciers once extended far below their present level. In central Chili I was astonished at the structure of a vast mound of detritus, about 800 feet in height, crossing a valley of the Andes; and this I now feel convinced was a gigantic moraine, left far below any existing glacier. Further south on both sides of the continent, from lat. 41° to the southernmost extremity, we have the clearest evidence of former glacial action, in huge boulders transported far from their parent source.

Looking at America, in the northern half, ice-covered bits of rock have been seen on the eastern side as far south as latitude 36°-37°, and on the Pacific shores, where the climate is now so different, as far south as latitude 46°; unusual boulders have also been noticed in the Rocky Mountains. In the Andes of Equatorial South America, glaciers once reached much lower than they do today. In central Chile, I was amazed by the structure of a huge mound of debris, about 800 feet high, crossing a valley in the Andes; I now believe this was a massive moraine, left far below any existing glacier. Further south, on both sides of the continent, from latitude 41° to the southernmost tip, we have clear evidence of past glacial activity, in the form of huge boulders moved far from where they originated.

We do not know that the Glacial epoch was strictly simultaneous at these several far distant points on [374]opposite sides of the world. But we have good evidence in almost every case, that the epoch was included within the latest geological period. We have, also, excellent evidence, that it endured for an enormous time, as measured by years, at each point. The cold may have come on, or have ceased, earlier at one point of the globe than at another, but seeing that it endured for long at each, and that it was contemporaneous in a geological sense, it seems to me probable that it was, during a part at least of the period, actually simultaneous throughout the world. Without some distinct evidence to the contrary, we may at least admit as probable that the glacial action was simultaneous on the eastern and western sides of North America, in the Cordillera under the equator and under the warmer temperate zones, and on both sides of the southern extremity of the continent. If this be admitted, it is difficult to avoid believing that the temperature of the whole world was at this period simultaneously cooler. But it would suffice for my purpose, if the temperature was at the same time lower along certain broad belts of longitude.

We don't know if the Glacial epoch happened at the same time in these various distant places on [374]opposite sides of the planet. However, we have solid evidence that this epoch took place during the latest geological period. There's also strong evidence that it lasted a very long time, in terms of years, at each location. The cold might have started or ended earlier in one part of the world than in another, but since it lasted for a long time in each area and was contemporaneous in a geological sense, I think it's likely that, at least for part of the period, it was actually simultaneous worldwide. Unless we find clear evidence to the contrary, we can at least consider it likely that the glacial activity was happening at the same time on both the eastern and western sides of North America, in the mountainous regions near the equator, and in the warmer temperate zones, as well as on both sides of the southern tip of the continent. If we accept this, it’s hard not to believe that the temperature across the globe was cooler at that time. But for my purposes, it would be enough to know that the temperature was lower along certain broad lines of longitude at the same time.

On this view of the whole world, or at least of broad longitudinal belts, having been simultaneously colder from pole to pole, much light can be thrown on the present distribution of identical and allied species. In America, Dr. Hooker has shown that between forty and fifty of the flowering plants of Tierra del Fuego, forming no inconsiderable part of its scanty flora, are common to Europe, enormously remote as these two points are; and there are many closely allied species. On the lofty mountains of equatorial America a host of peculiar species belonging to European genera occur. On the highest mountains of Brazil, some few European genera were found by Gardner, which do not exist in the wide [375]intervening hot countries. So on the Silla of Caraccas the illustrious Humboldt long ago found species belonging to genera characteristic of the Cordillera. On the mountains of Abyssinia, several European forms and some few representatives of the peculiar flora of the Cape of Good Hope occur. At the Cape of Good Hope a very few European species, believed not to have been introduced by man, and on the mountains, some few representative European forms are found, which have not been discovered in the intertropical parts of Africa. On the Himalaya, and on the isolated mountain-ranges of the peninsula of India, on the heights of Ceylon, and on the volcanic cones of Java, many plants occur, either identically the same or representing each other, and at the same time representing plants of Europe, not found in the intervening hot lowlands. A list of the genera collected on the loftier peaks of Java raises a picture of a collection made on a hill in Europe! Still more striking is the fact that southern Australian forms are clearly represented by plants growing on the summits of the mountains of Borneo. Some of these Australian forms, as I hear from Dr. Hooker, extend along the heights of the peninsula of Malacca, and are thinly scattered, on the one hand over India and on the other as far north as Japan.

On this perspective of the entire world, or at least broad regions, having been simultaneously colder from pole to pole, we can better understand the current distribution of similar and related species. In America, Dr. Hooker has shown that between forty and fifty flowering plants from Tierra del Fuego, which make up a significant part of its limited flora, are also found in Europe, despite the vast distance between these two locations; and there are numerous closely related species. In the high mountains of equatorial America, many unique species from European genera can be found. On the highest mountains of Brazil, Gardner discovered a few European genera that do not exist in the surrounding hot countries. Similarly, on the Silla of Caraccas, the renowned Humboldt found, long ago, species belonging to genera typical of the Cordillera. In the mountains of Abyssinia, several European forms and a few representatives of the unique flora of the Cape of Good Hope can be found. At the Cape of Good Hope itself, a handful of European species—thought to not have been introduced by humans—are present, along with a few representative European forms found in the mountains, which haven't been discovered in the tropical regions of Africa. In the Himalayas, and on the isolated mountain ranges of the Indian peninsula, on the heights of Ceylon, and on the volcanic peaks of Java, many plants either match exactly or represent one another, while simultaneously being related to European plants not found in the hot lowlands in between. A list of the genera collected from the higher peaks of Java resembles a collection from a hill in Europe! Even more striking is the fact that southern Australian forms are clearly represented by plants growing on the mountaintops of Borneo. Some of these Australian forms, as stated by Dr. Hooker, are found along the heights of the Malacca peninsula, and are sparsely scattered from India all the way to northern Japan.

On the southern mountains of Australia, Dr. F. Müller has discovered several European species; other species, not introduced by man, occur on the lowlands; and a long list can be given, as I am informed by Dr. Hooker, of European genera, found in Australia, but not in the intermediate torrid regions. In the admirable 'Introduction to the Flora of New Zealand,' by Dr. Hooker, analogous and striking facts are given in regard to the plants of that large island. Hence we see that throughout the world, the plants growing on the [376]more lofty mountains, and on the temperate lowlands of the northern and southern hemispheres, are sometimes identically the same; but they are much oftener specifically distinct, though related to each other in a most remarkable manner.

On the southern mountains of Australia, Dr. F. Müller has discovered several European species; other species that weren't introduced by humans are found in the lowlands; and there’s a long list of European genera that Dr. Hooker has informed me about, which are found in Australia but not in the tropical regions in between. In the excellent 'Introduction to the Flora of New Zealand' by Dr. Hooker, similar and notable facts regarding the plants of that large island are presented. Thus, we see that all over the world, the plants growing on the more elevated mountains and in the temperate lowlands of the northern and southern hemispheres are sometimes exactly the same; but they are often specifically different, though remarkably related to each other.

This brief abstract applies to plants alone: some strictly analogous facts could be given on the distribution of terrestrial animals. In marine productions, similar cases occur; as an example, I may quote a remark by the highest authority, Prof. Dana, that "it is certainly a wonderful fact that New Zealand should have a closer resemblance in its Crustacea to Great Britain, its antipode, than to any other part of the world." Sir J. Richardson, also, speaks of the reappearance on the shores of New Zealand, Tasmania, &c., of northern forms of fish. Dr. Hooker informs me that twenty-five species of Algæ are common to New Zealand and to Europe, but have not been found in the intermediate tropical seas.

This brief summary applies only to plants: some comparable facts could be presented regarding the distribution of land animals. Similar situations occur in marine life; for instance, I can reference a statement by the leading expert, Prof. Dana, who said, "it is certainly a remarkable fact that New Zealand has a closer resemblance in its Crustacea to Great Britain, its opposite, than to any other area in the world." Sir J. Richardson also mentions the reappearance of northern fish species along the coasts of New Zealand, Tasmania, etc. Dr. Hooker tells me that twenty-five species of algae are shared between New Zealand and Europe, but haven’t been found in the tropical seas in between.

It should be observed that the northern species and forms found in the southern parts of the southern hemisphere, and on the mountain-ranges of the intertropical regions, are not arctic, but belong to the northern temperate zones. As Mr. H. C. Watson has recently remarked, "In receding from polar towards equatorial latitudes, the Alpine or mountain floras really become less and less arctic." Many of the forms living on the mountains of the warmer regions of the earth and in the southern hemisphere are of doubtful value, being ranked by some naturalists as specifically distinct, by others as varieties; but some are certainly identical, and many, though closely related to northern forms, must be ranked as distinct species.

It should be noted that the northern species and forms found in the southern parts of the Southern Hemisphere and on the mountain ranges of tropical regions are not arctic but belong to the northern temperate zones. As Mr. H. C. Watson recently pointed out, "As we move from polar to equatorial latitudes, the alpine or mountain floras noticeably become less arctic." Many of the forms living in the mountains of warmer areas and in the Southern Hemisphere have uncertain classifications, with some naturalists considering them as separate species and others viewing them as varieties. However, some are definitely identical, and many, while closely related to northern forms, should be regarded as distinct species.

Now let us see what light can be thrown on the foregoing facts, on the belief, supported as it is by a large [377]body of geological evidence, that the whole world, or a large part of it, was during the Glacial period simultaneously much colder than at present. The Glacial period, as measured by years, must have been very long; and when we remember over what vast spaces some naturalised plants and animals have spread within a few centuries, this period will have been ample for any amount of migration. As the cold came slowly on, all the tropical plants and other productions will have retreated from both sides towards the equator, followed in the rear by the temperate productions, and these by the arctic; but with the latter we are not now concerned. The tropical plants probably suffered much extinction; how much no one can say; perhaps formerly the tropics supported as many species as we see at the present day crowded together at the Cape of Good Hope, and in parts of temperate Australia. As we know that many tropical plants and animals can withstand a considerable amount of cold, many might have escaped extermination during a moderate fall of temperature, more especially by escaping into the lowest, most protected, and warmest districts. But the great fact to bear in mind is, that all tropical productions will have suffered to a certain extent. On the other hand, the temperate productions, after migrating nearer to the equator, though they will have been placed under somewhat new conditions, will have suffered less. And it is certain that many temperate plants, if protected from the inroads of competitors, can withstand a much warmer climate than their own. Hence, it seems to me possible, bearing in mind that the tropical productions were in a suffering state and could not have presented a firm front against intruders, that a certain number of the more vigorous and dominant temperate forms might have penetrated the native ranks and have reached or [378]even crossed the equator. The invasion would, of course, have been greatly favoured by high land, and perhaps by a dry climate; for Dr. Falconer informs me that it is the damp with the heat of the tropics which is so destructive to perennial plants from a temperate climate. On the other hand, the most humid and hottest districts will have afforded an asylum to the tropical natives. The mountain-ranges north-west of the Himalaya, and the long line of the Cordillera, seem to have afforded two great lines of invasion: and it is a striking fact, lately communicated to me by Dr. Hooker, that all the flowering plants, about forty-six in number, common to Tierra del Fuego and to Europe still exist in North America, which must have lain on the line of march. But I do not doubt that some temperate productions entered and crossed even the lowlands of the tropics at the period when the cold was most intense,—when arctic forms had migrated some twenty-five degrees of latitude from their native country and covered the land at the foot of the Pyrenees. At this period of extreme cold, I believe that the climate under the equator at the level of the sea was about the same with that now felt there at the height of six or seven thousand feet. During this the coldest period, I suppose that large spaces of the tropical lowlands were clothed with a mingled tropical and temperate vegetation, like that now growing with strange luxuriance at the base of the Himalaya, as graphically described by Hooker.

Now let’s see what insights we can gain from the facts mentioned earlier, regarding the belief, supported by a substantial [377]body of geological evidence, that much of the world was significantly colder during the Glacial period than it is today. The Glacial period must have lasted a long time; and when we think about how quickly some plants and animals have spread over vast areas in just a few centuries, it’s clear that there was plenty of time for significant migration. As the cold increased gradually, all the tropical plants and other life forms likely retreated toward the equator, followed by temperate species, and finally the arctic ones—though we won’t focus on those now. Many tropical plants probably went extinct; exactly how many, no one can say. It’s possible that the tropics once supported as many species as we see grouped together today at the Cape of Good Hope and in certain parts of temperate Australia. Many tropical plants and animals can survive a fair amount of cold, so some may have avoided extinction during a moderate drop in temperature, especially by moving to the lowest, most sheltered, and warmest areas. However, the main point to remember is that all tropical life forms would have experienced some degree of hardship. In contrast, the temperate species, after moving closer to the equator, would have faced somewhat new conditions but would have suffered less. It’s certain that many temperate plants, if shielded from competition, can endure a climate much warmer than their own. Therefore, it seems possible that, given the tropical life was struggling and couldn’t resist newcomers effectively, some of the more vigorous temperate species might have infiltrated the native populations and even crossed the equator. This invasion would have been greatly aided by high terrain and possibly a dry climate; Dr. Falconer has pointed out that the dampness combined with the heat of the tropics is particularly harmful to perennial plants from temperate zones. Conversely, the most humid and hottest areas would have offered refuge for the tropical natives. The mountain ranges northwest of the Himalayas and the long stretch of the Cordillera seem to have provided two major routes for invasion. It’s striking to note, as Dr. Hooker recently shared with me, that around forty-six flowering plants common to both Tierra del Fuego and Europe are still found in North America, which must have been along the route of migration. However, I believe that some temperate species made it into and crossed even the low-lying regions of the tropics when temperatures were at their coldest—when arctic species had migrated about twenty-five degrees of latitude from their native areas and covered the land at the base of the Pyrenees. During this period of extreme cold, I think the climate at sea level near the equator was similar to what we experience now at elevations of six or seven thousand feet. Throughout this coldest phase, I imagine that many areas of the tropical lowlands were covered with a mix of tropical and temperate vegetation, much like what we see thriving at the base of the Himalayas, as vividly described by Hooker.

Thus, as I believe, a considerable number of plants, a few terrestrial animals, and some marine productions, migrated during the Glacial period from the northern and southern temperate zones into the intertropical regions, and some even crossed the equator. As the warmth returned, these temperate forms would naturally ascend the higher mountains, being exterminated on the [379]lowlands; those which had not reached the equator would re-migrate northward or southward towards their former homes; but the forms, chiefly northern, which had crossed the equator, would travel still further from their homes into the more temperate latitudes of the opposite hemisphere. Although we have reason to believe from geological evidence that the whole body of arctic shells underwent scarcely any modification during their long southern migration and re-migration northward, the case may have been wholly different with those intruding forms which settled themselves on the intertropical mountains, and in the southern hemisphere. These being surrounded by strangers will have had to compete with many new forms of life; and it is probable that selected modifications in their structure, habits, and constitutions will have profited them. Thus many of these wanderers, though still plainly related by inheritance to their brethren of the northern or southern hemispheres, now exist in their new homes as well-marked varieties or as distinct species.

So, I believe that many plants, a few land animals, and some marine life migrated during the Ice Age from the northern and southern temperate zones to the tropical regions, with some even crossing the equator. As the climate warmed up, these temperate species would naturally move up to higher mountains, getting wiped out in the lowlands; those that hadn’t reached the equator would migrate back north or south to their original homes. However, the species, mostly from the north, that crossed the equator would continue to travel further into the more temperate latitudes of the opposite hemisphere. Although geological evidence suggests that arctic shells underwent hardly any changes during their long southern migration and the return north, the situation was likely very different for those species that settled in the tropical mountains and the southern hemisphere. Surrounded by new species, they had to compete with many different forms of life, and it’s likely that some beneficial changes in their structure, behaviors, and adaptations helped them thrive. As a result, many of these wanderers, while still clearly related to their counterparts in the northern or southern hemispheres, now exist in their new environments as distinct varieties or separate species.

It is a remarkable fact, strongly insisted on by Hooker in regard to America, and by Alph. de Candolle in regard to Australia, that many more identical plants and allied forms have apparently migrated from the north to the south, than in a reversed direction. We see, however, a few southern vegetable forms on the mountains of Borneo and Abyssinia. I suspect that this preponderant migration from north to south is due to the greater extent of land in the north, and to the northern forms having existed in their own homes in greater numbers, and having consequently been advanced through natural selection and competition to a higher stage of perfection or dominating power, than the southern forms. And thus, when they became commingled during the Glacial period, the northern forms [380]were enabled to beat the less powerful southern forms. Just in the same manner as we see at the present day, that very many European productions cover the ground in La Plata, and in a lesser degree in Australia, and have to a certain extent beaten the natives; whereas extremely few southern forms have become naturalised in any part of Europe, though hides, wool, and other objects likely to carry seeds have been largely imported into Europe during the last two or three centuries from La Plata, and during the last thirty or forty years from Australia. Something of the same kind must have occurred on the intertropical mountains: no doubt before the Glacial period they were stocked with endemic Alpine forms; but these have almost everywhere largely yielded to the more dominant forms, generated in the larger areas and more efficient workshops of the north. In many islands the native productions are nearly equalled or even outnumbered by the naturalised; and if the natives have not been actually exterminated, their numbers have been greatly reduced, and this is the first stage towards extinction. A mountain is an island on the land; and the intertropical mountains before the Glacial period must have been completely isolated; and I believe that the productions of these islands on the land yielded to those produced within the larger areas of the north, just in the same way as the productions of real islands have everywhere lately yielded to continental forms, naturalised by man's agency.

It's a striking fact, emphasized by Hooker regarding America and by Alph. de Candolle concerning Australia, that far more identical plants and related species seem to have moved from the north to the south than vice versa. However, we do see a few southern plant species in the mountains of Borneo and Abyssinia. I think this significant migration from north to south is because there's more land in the north, and the northern species existed in larger numbers in their native habitats. As a result, they evolved through natural selection and competition to a higher level of development or dominance compared to the southern species. Therefore, when they mixed during the Glacial period, the northern species were able to outcompete the weaker southern ones. We can observe today that many European species thrive in La Plata and, to a lesser extent, in Australia, often outcompeting local species. Conversely, very few southern species have become established in Europe, even though hides, wool, and other items that could carry seeds have been widely brought to Europe from La Plata over the last two to three centuries, and from Australia in the last thirty to forty years. A similar situation likely happened on the intertropical mountains: undoubtedly, before the Glacial period, these mountains were populated with unique alpine species, but they were largely replaced by the more dominant species that emerged in the larger and more productive northern areas. In many islands, the number of introduced species nearly matches or even exceeds that of the native ones; and if the natives haven’t been completely wiped out, their populations have significantly dwindled, marking the beginning of the path toward extinction. A mountain is like an island in the land; and the intertropical mountains before the Glacial period must have been completely isolated. I believe that the life forms on these land islands succumbed to those developed in the larger northern areas, just like how life forms on actual islands have often been overshadowed by introduced continental species through human involvement.

I am far from supposing that all difficulties are removed on the view here given in regard to the range and affinities of the allied species which live in the northern and southern temperate zones and on the mountains of the intertropical regions. Very many difficulties remain to be solved. I do not pretend to [381]indicate the exact lines and means of migration, or the reason why certain species and not others have migrated; why certain species have been modified and have given rise to new groups of forms, and others have remained unaltered. We cannot hope to explain such facts, until we can say why one species and not another becomes naturalised by man's agency in a foreign land; why one ranges twice or thrice as far, and is twice or thrice as common, as another species within their own homes.

I certainly don’t think that all challenges are resolved regarding the distribution and relationships of the related species that live in the northern and southern temperate zones and on the mountains of the tropical regions. Many challenges still need to be addressed. I’m not claiming to pinpoint the exact pathways and reasons behind migration, or why certain species have migrated while others have not; why some species have evolved into new groups, while others have remained unchanged. We can’t expect to explain these phenomena until we understand why one species, instead of another, becomes established through human intervention in a foreign environment; why one species extends its range two or three times further and is two or three times more common than another species in their native habitats.

I have said that many difficulties remain to be solved: some of the most remarkable are stated with admirable clearness by Dr. Hooker in his botanical works on the antarctic regions. These cannot be here discussed. I will only say that as far as regards the occurrence of identical species at points so enormously remote as Kerguelen Land, New Zealand, and Fuegia, I believe that towards the close of the Glacial period, icebergs, as suggested by Lyell, have been largely concerned in their dispersal. But the existence of several quite distinct species, belonging to genera exclusively confined to the south, at these and other distant points of the southern hemisphere, is, on my theory of descent with modification, a far more remarkable case of difficulty. For some of these species are so distinct, that we cannot suppose that there has been time since the commencement of the Glacial period for their migration, and for their subsequent modification to the necessary degree. The facts seem to me to indicate that peculiar and very distinct species have migrated in radiating lines from some common centre; and I am inclined to look in the southern, as in the northern hemisphere, to a former and warmer period, before the commencement of the Glacial period, when the antarctic lands, now covered with ice, supported a highly peculiar [382]and isolated flora. I suspect that before this flora was exterminated by the Glacial epoch, a few forms were widely dispersed to various points of the southern hemisphere by occasional means of transport, and by the aid, as halting-places, of existing and now sunken islands: By these means, as I believe, the southern shores of America, Australia, New Zealand, have become slightly tinted by the same peculiar forms of vegetable life.

I have noted that many challenges still need to be addressed: some of the most significant are clearly outlined by Dr. Hooker in his botanical studies of the Antarctic regions. I won't delve into those here. I will say that regarding the presence of the same species at vastly distant locations like Kerguelen Land, New Zealand, and Fuegia, I believe that towards the end of the Glacial period, icebergs, as Lyell suggested, played a major role in their spread. However, the presence of several completely different species, belonging to genera that are exclusively found in the south, at these and other remote locations in the southern hemisphere presents an even bigger challenge for my theory of descent with modification. Some of these species are so distinct that it's hard to imagine there was enough time since the start of the Glacial period for them to migrate and subsequently change to the necessary extent. The evidence suggests to me that unique and very different species have spread out from a common origin point, and I suspect that in the southern hemisphere, like the northern, there was a previous warmer period, before the Glacial period began, when the Antarctic lands, now covered in ice, had a highly unique and isolated flora. I believe that before this flora was wiped out by the Glacial epoch, a few forms were widely carried to various parts of the southern hemisphere through occasional means of transport and with the help of existing and now submerged islands as stopping points. It is through these means, I think, that the southern coasts of America, Australia, and New Zealand have been slightly touched by the same unique types of plant life.

Sir C. Lyell in a striking passage has speculated, in language almost identical with mine, on the effects of great alternations of climate on geographical distribution. I believe that the world has recently felt one of his great cycles of change; and that on this view, combined with modification through natural selection, a multitude of facts in the present distribution both of the same and of allied forms of life can be explained. The living waters may be said to have flowed during one short period from the north and from the south, and to have crossed at the equator; but to have flowed with greater force from the north so as to have freely inundated the south. As the tide leaves its drift in horizontal lines, though rising higher on the shores where the tide rises highest, so have the living waters left their living drift on our mountain-summits, in a line gently rising from the arctic lowlands to a great height under the equator. The various beings thus left stranded may be compared with savage races of man, driven up and surviving in the mountain-fastnesses of almost every land, which serve as a record, full of interest to us, of the former inhabitants of the surrounding lowlands.

Sir C. Lyell, in a notable passage, has speculated—using language almost identical to mine—on the effects of significant climate changes on geographical distribution. I believe the world has recently experienced one of his major cycles of change; and from this perspective, along with natural selection, we can explain many facts about the current distribution of both the same and related forms of life. The living waters can be said to have flowed during a brief period from the north and the south, crossing at the equator, but with a stronger flow from the north, which inundated the south more freely. Just as the tide leaves its mark in horizontal lines, rising higher along the shores where the tide is strongest, so too have the living waters left their trace on our mountain peaks, in a line gently ascending from the arctic lowlands to considerable heights near the equator. The various beings left stranded can be compared to isolated human communities, pushed up and surviving in the mountain strongholds of almost every land, serving as a fascinating record of the former inhabitants of the surrounding lowlands.


[383]

[383]

CHAPTER XII.

Geographical Distributioncontinued.

Geographical Distribution—continued.

Distribution of fresh-water productions—On the inhabitants of oceanic islands—Absence of Batrachians and of terrestrial Mammals—On the relation of the inhabitants of islands to those of the nearest mainland—On colonisation from the nearest source with subsequent modification—Summary of the last and present chapters.

Distribution of freshwater resources—About the people living on oceanic islands—The absence of amphibians and land mammals—The relationship between island residents and those from the nearest mainland—The colonization from the closest source followed by later changes—Summary of the previous and current chapters.

As lakes and river-systems are separated from each other by barriers of land, it might have been thought that fresh-water productions would not have ranged widely within the same country, and as the sea is apparently a still more impassable barrier, that they never would have extended to distant countries. But the case is exactly the reverse. Not only have many fresh-water species, belonging to quite different classes, an enormous range, but allied species prevail in a remarkable manner throughout the world. I well remember, when first collecting in the fresh waters of Brazil, feeling much surprise at the similarity of the fresh-water insects, shells, &c., and at the dissimilarity of the surrounding terrestrial beings, compared with those of Britain.

As lakes and river systems are separated by land barriers, it might seem that freshwater species would not have a wide distribution within the same country, and since the sea appears to be an even more difficult barrier, they likely wouldn’t spread to distant countries. However, the opposite is true. Many freshwater species from quite different groups have a huge range, and related species are surprisingly common all over the world. I clearly remember collecting in Brazil’s freshwater environments and being amazed by the similarities of the freshwater insects, shells, etc., contrasted with the differences of the surrounding land creatures compared to those in Britain.

But this power in fresh-water productions of ranging widely, though so unexpected, can, I think, in most cases be explained by their having become fitted, in a manner highly useful to them, for short and frequent migrations from pond to pond, or from stream to stream; and liability to wide dispersal would follow from this capacity as an almost necessary consequence. We can here consider only a few cases. In regard to [384]fish, I believe that the same species never occur in the fresh waters of distant continents. But on the same continent the species often range widely and almost capriciously; for two river-systems will have some fish in common and some different. A few facts seem to favour the possibility of their occasional transport by accidental means; like that of the live fish not rarely dropped by whirlwinds in India, and the vitality of their ova when removed from the water. But I am inclined to attribute the dispersal of fresh-water fish mainly to slight changes within the recent period in the level of the land, having caused rivers to flow into each other. Instances, also, could be given of this having occurred during floods, without any change of level. We have evidence in the loess of the Rhine of considerable changes of level in the land within a very recent geological period, and when the surface was peopled by existing land and fresh-water shells. The wide difference of the fish on opposite sides of continuous mountain-ranges, which from an early period must have parted river-systems and completely prevented their inosculation, seems to lead to this same conclusion. With respect to allied fresh-water fish occurring at very distant points of the world, no doubt there are many cases which cannot at present be explained: but some fresh-water fish belong to very ancient forms, and in such cases there will have been ample time for great geographical changes, and consequently time and means for much migration. In the second place, salt-water fish can with care be slowly accustomed to live in fresh water; and, according to Valenciennes, there is hardly a single group of fishes confined exclusively to fresh water, so that we may imagine that a marine member of a fresh-water group might travel far along the shores of the sea, and [385]subsequently become modified and adapted to the fresh waters of a distant land.

But this ability of freshwater species to travel widely, although unexpected, can usually be explained by their adaptation for short and frequent migrations between ponds or streams. This ability likely leads to their widespread distribution as a natural outcome. We can only look at a few examples here. Regarding fish, I believe that the same species do not exist in the freshwater of distant continents. However, within the same continent, species often range widely and almost unpredictably; two river systems will share some fish but also have different ones. Some evidence suggests they might occasionally be transported by chance, such as live fish occasionally dropped by whirlwinds in India, or the resilience of their eggs when taken out of water. But I think the dispersal of freshwater fish is mainly due to slight changes in land levels during recent times, which have caused rivers to merge. We can also provide examples of this occurring during floods without any change in elevation. The loess of the Rhine shows significant land level changes in a very recent geological period, when the surface was populated by existing land and freshwater shells. The stark differences in fish species on opposite sides of continuous mountain ranges, which must have separated river systems early on and completely blocked their mixing, seem to support this conclusion. As for related freshwater fish found in very distant parts of the world, there are undoubtedly many cases currently unexplained; however, some freshwater fish belong to very ancient forms, suggesting that there has been plenty of time for significant geographical changes and, consequently, for migration. Furthermore, saltwater fish can gradually be adapted to live in freshwater; and according to Valenciennes, there is hardly any group of fish that is exclusively confined to freshwater, so we can imagine that a marine member of a freshwater group might travel far along the coast, and then eventually become modified and adapted to the fresh waters of a distant land.

Some species of fresh-water shells have a very wide range, and allied species, which, on my theory, are descended from a common parent and must have proceeded from a single source, prevail throughout the world. Their distribution at first perplexed me much, as their ova are not likely to be transported by birds, and they are immediately killed by sea-water, as are the adults. I could not even understand how some naturalised species have rapidly spread throughout the same country. But two facts, which I have observed—and no doubt many others remain to be observed—throw some light on this subject. When a duck suddenly emerges from a pond covered with duck-weed, I have twice seen these little plants adhering to its back; and it has happened to me, in removing a little duckweed from one aquarium to another, that I have quite unintentionally stocked the one with fresh-water shells from the other. But another agency is perhaps more effectual: I suspended a duck's feet, which might represent those of a bird sleeping in a natural pond, in an aquarium, where many ova of fresh-water shells were hatching; and I found that numbers of the extremely minute and just-hatched shells crawled on the feet, and clung to them so firmly that when taken out of the water they could not be jarred off, though at a somewhat more advanced age they would voluntarily drop off. These just hatched molluscs, though aquatic in their nature, survived on the duck's feet, in damp air, from twelve to twenty hours; and in this length of time a duck or heron might fly at least six or seven hundred miles, and would be sure to alight on a pool or rivulet, if blown across sea to an oceanic island or to any other distant point. Sir Charles Lyell also [386]informs me that a Dyticus has been caught with an Ancylus (a fresh-water shell like a limpet) firmly adhering to it; and a water-beetle of the same family, a Colymbetes, once flew on board the 'Beagle,' when forty-five miles distant from the nearest land: how much farther it might have flown with a favouring gale no one can tell.

Some species of freshwater shells have a very wide range, and related species, which I believe are descended from a common ancestor and must have come from a single source, are found all over the world. Their distribution confused me at first, since their eggs are unlikely to be carried by birds, and both the eggs and the adults die in seawater. I struggled to understand how some naturalized species have spread rapidly throughout the same country. However, I observed two facts—and I'm sure many more exist—that shed light on this topic. When a duck suddenly comes out of a pond covered in duckweed, I've seen the little plants sticking to its back a couple of times. I’ve also accidentally transferred freshwater shells between aquariums while removing duckweed. But perhaps a more effective method is this: I suspended a duck's feet, which might resemble those of a bird resting in a natural pond, in an aquarium where many freshwater shell eggs were hatching; I found that several extremely tiny, newly hatched shells crawled onto the feet and clung so tightly that even when I took them out of the water, they couldn't be shaken off, although they would drop off on their own as they got a bit older. These newly hatched mollusks, while aquatic by nature, survived on the duck's feet in damp air for twelve to twenty hours; in that time, a duck or heron could fly at least six or seven hundred miles and would surely land in a pool or stream if blown across the sea to an oceanic island or any other remote location. Sir Charles Lyell also informs me that a Dyticus was found with an Ancylus (a freshwater shell similar to a limpet) firmly attached to it; and a water beetle from the same family, a Colymbetes, once flew onto the 'Beagle' when it was forty-five miles away from the nearest land: how much farther it could have traveled with a favorable wind, no one can say.

With respect to plants, it has long been known what enormous ranges many fresh-water and even marsh-species have, both over continents and to the most remote oceanic islands. This is strikingly shown, as remarked by Alph. de Candolle, in large groups of terrestrial plants, which have only a very few aquatic members; for these latter seem immediately to acquire, as if in consequence, a very wide range. I think favourable means of dispersal explain this fact. I have before mentioned that earth occasionally, though rarely, adheres in some quantity to the feet and beaks of birds. Wading birds, which frequent the muddy edges of ponds, if suddenly flushed, would be the most likely to have muddy feet. Birds of this order I can show are the greatest wanderers, and are occasionally found on the most remote and barren islands in the open ocean; they would not be likely to alight on the surface of the sea, so that the dirt would not be washed off their feet; when making land, they would be sure to fly to their natural fresh-water haunts. I do not believe that botanists are aware how charged the mud of ponds is with seeds: I have tried several little experiments, but will here give only the most striking case: I took in February three table-spoonfuls of mud from three different points, beneath water, on the edge of a little pond; this mud when dry weighed only 6¾ ounces; I kept it covered up in my study for six months, pulling up and counting each plant as it grew; the plants were [387]of many kinds, and were altogether 537 in number; and yet the viscid mud was all contained in a breakfast cup! Considering these facts, I think it would be an inexplicable circumstance if water-birds did not transport the seeds of fresh-water plants to vast distances, and if consequently the range of these plants was not very great. The same agency may have come into play with the eggs of some of the smaller fresh-water animals.

When it comes to plants, it’s well-known that many freshwater and even marsh species have huge distributions, both across continents and to the farthest oceanic islands. This is clearly illustrated, as noted by Alph. de Candolle, in large groups of land plants that have only a few aquatic members; the aquatic members seem to quickly gain, as if as a result, a broad range. I think that favorable means of dispersal explain this. I’ve mentioned before that dirt sometimes, although rarely, sticks to the feet and beaks of birds. Wading birds, which often frequent the muddy edges of ponds, would most likely have muddy feet if they were suddenly startled. I can show that these birds are the greatest wanderers and are sometimes found on the most remote and barren islands in the open ocean; they wouldn’t likely land on the sea’s surface, so the dirt wouldn’t wash off their feet; when they reach land, they would surely fly to their usual freshwater spots. I don’t believe that botanists realize how packed pond mud is with seeds: I’ve done several small experiments, but I’ll mention only the most striking one: I took three tablespoons of mud from three different underwater spots along the edge of a small pond in February; when dry, this mud weighed only 6¾ ounces; I kept it covered in my study for six months, pulling up and counting each plant as it grew; the plants were of many kinds, totaling 537; and yet all the sticky mud fit in a breakfast cup! Given these facts, I think it would be hard to explain how water birds don’t transport seeds of freshwater plants over great distances, and thus why the range of these plants isn’t very large. The same process may also apply to the eggs of some smaller freshwater animals.

Other and unknown agencies probably have also played a part. I have stated that fresh-water fish eat some kinds of seeds, though they reject many other kinds after having swallowed them; even small fish swallow seeds of moderate size, as of the yellow water-lily and Potamogeton. Herons and other birds, century after century, have gone on daily devouring fish; they then take flight and go to other waters, or are blown across the sea; and we have seen that seeds retain their power of germination, when rejected in pellets or in excrement, many hours afterwards. When I saw the great size of the seeds of that fine water-lily, the Nelumbium, and remembered Alph. de Candolle's remarks on this plant, I thought that its distribution must remain quite inexplicable; but Audubon states that he found the seeds of the great southern water-lily (probably, according to Dr. Hooker, the Nelumbium luteum) in a heron's stomach; although I do not know the fact, yet analogy makes me believe that a heron flying to another pond and getting a hearty meal of fish, would probably reject from its stomach a pellet containing the seeds of the Nelumbium undigested; or the seeds might be dropped by the bird whilst feeding its young, in the same way as fish are known sometimes to be dropped.

Other unknown factors probably played a role too. I've mentioned that freshwater fish consume some types of seeds, although they often reject many others after swallowing them. Even small fish can ingest seeds of a moderate size, like those from the yellow water-lily and Potamogeton. Herons and other birds have been eating fish daily for centuries; they then take off and move to different waters, sometimes even getting blown across the sea. We've observed that seeds can stay viable for germination when expelled in pellets or droppings, many hours later. When I noticed the large seeds of the beautiful water-lily, the Nelumbium, and recalled Alph. de Candolle's comments on this plant, I thought its distribution was puzzling. However, Audubon mentions finding the seeds of the great southern water-lily (likely Nelumbium luteum, as Dr. Hooker suggested) in a heron's stomach. While I'm not sure of this fact, it seems reasonable to think that a heron, flying to another pond and enjoying a good meal of fish, would possibly expel a pellet with undigested Nelumbium seeds. Alternatively, the seeds might fall from the bird while it’s feeding its young, similar to how fish can sometimes be dropped.

In considering these several means of distribution, [388]it should be remembered that when a pond or stream is first formed, for instance, on a rising islet, it will be unoccupied; and a single seed or egg will have a good chance of succeeding. Although there will always be a struggle for life between the individuals of the species, however few, already occupying any pond, yet as the number of kinds is small, compared with those on the land, the competition will probably be less severe between aquatic than between terrestrial species; consequently an intruder from the waters of a foreign country, would have a better chance of seizing on a place, than in the case of terrestrial colonists. We should, also, remember that some, perhaps many, freshwater productions are low in the scale of nature, and that we have reason to believe that such low beings change or become modified less quickly than the high; and this will give longer time than the average for the migration of the same aquatic species. We should not forget the probability of many species having formerly ranged as continuously as fresh-water productions ever can range, over immense areas, and having subsequently become extinct in intermediate regions. But the wide distribution of fresh-water plants and of the lower animals, whether retaining the same identical form or in some degree modified, I believe mainly depends on the wide dispersal of their seeds and eggs by animals, more especially by fresh-water birds, which have large powers of flight, and naturally travel from one to another and often distant piece of water. Nature, like a careful gardener, thus takes her seeds from a bed of a particular nature, and drops them in another equally well fitted for them.

In considering these various ways of distributing species, [388]it’s important to remember that when a pond or stream is first created, like on a rising island, it will be empty; and a single seed or egg will have a good chance of thriving. Although there will always be competition for survival among the individuals of the species already living in any pond, and even if there are few, since the number of species is small compared to those on land, the competition is likely to be less intense for aquatic species than for terrestrial ones. Therefore, an intruder from the waters of another country would have a better chance of establishing itself than a land colonizer would. We should also keep in mind that some, maybe many, freshwater organisms are positioned lower on the natural hierarchy, and we have reason to believe that these simpler beings change or adapt more slowly than the more complex ones; this gives them a longer timeframe on average for the migration of the same aquatic species. We shouldn't overlook that many species may have previously extended as continuously across vast areas as freshwater organisms can, becoming extinct in the regions between. However, the widespread distribution of freshwater plants and lower animals, whether they remain the same or adapt slightly, mainly depends on the extensive dispersal of their seeds and eggs by animals, especially freshwater birds, which can fly great distances and naturally travel from one body of water to another, often far apart. Nature, like a careful gardener, takes her seeds from a specific environment and plants them in another area that is equally suitable.

 

On the Inhabitants of Oceanic Islands.—We now come to the last of the three classes of facts, which I [389]have selected as presenting the greatest amount of difficulty, on the view that all the individuals both of the same and of allied species have descended from a single parent; and therefore have all proceeded from a common birthplace, notwithstanding that in the course of time they have come to inhabit distant points of the globe. I have already stated that I cannot honestly admit Forbes's view on continental extensions, which, if legitimately followed out, would lead to the belief that within the recent period all existing islands have been nearly or quite joined to some continent. This view would remove many difficulties, but it would not, I think, explain all the facts in regard to insular productions. In the following remarks I shall not confine myself to the mere question of dispersal; but shall consider some other facts, which bear on the truth of the two theories of independent creation and of descent with modification.

On the Inhabitants of Oceanic Islands.—We now turn to the last of the three types of facts that I [389]have chosen because they present significant challenges, given the idea that all individuals of the same and related species have evolved from a single ancestor; and thus, they all originated from a common place, even though over time they have ended up in far-off locations around the world. I have already mentioned that I can't genuinely accept Forbes's view on continental connections, which, if taken seriously, would suggest that in recent times all current islands were almost or completely attached to a continent. While this perspective could resolve many issues, I believe it doesn’t fully explain all the facts related to island biodiversity. In the following discussion, I won’t just focus on the issue of dispersal; I will also explore other facts that relate to the validity of the two theories of independent creation and descent with modification.

The species of all kinds which inhabit oceanic islands are few in number compared with those on equal continental areas: Alph. de Candolle admits this for plants, and Wollaston for insects. If we look to the large size and varied stations of New Zealand, extending over 780 miles of latitude, and compare its flowering plants, only 750 in number, with those on an equal area at the Cape of Good Hope or in Australia, we must, I think, admit that something quite independently of any difference in physical conditions has caused so great a difference in number. Even the uniform county of Cambridge has 847 plants, and the little island of Anglesea 764, but a few ferns and a few introduced plants are included in these numbers, and the comparison in some other respects is not quite fair. We have evidence that the barren island of Ascension aboriginally possessed under half-a-dozen flowering plants; [390]yet many have become naturalised on it, as they have on New Zealand and on every other oceanic island which can be named. In St. Helena there is reason to believe that the naturalised plants and animals have nearly or quite exterminated many native productions. He who admits the doctrine of the creation of each separate species, will have to admit, that a sufficient number of the best adapted plants and animals have not been created on oceanic islands; for man has unintentionally stocked them from various sources far more fully and perfectly than has nature.

The number of species living on oceanic islands is much lower compared to those in similar-sized continental areas. Alph. de Candolle acknowledges this for plants, and Wollaston for insects. If we consider the vast size and diverse environments of New Zealand, which spans 780 miles of latitude, and compare its 750 flowering plants to those in an equal area at the Cape of Good Hope or in Australia, we must admit that some factor, beyond just differences in physical conditions, has led to such a significant disparity in numbers. Even the largely uniform county of Cambridge has 847 plant species, while the small island of Anglesea has 764. However, these counts include a few ferns and some introduced plants, making the comparison a bit skewed. There's evidence that the barren island of Ascension originally had fewer than six flowering plants; yet, many new species have become naturalized there, just as they have on New Zealand and other named oceanic islands. In St. Helena, it seems that naturalized plants and animals have nearly or completely wiped out many native species. Anyone who accepts the idea of each species being created separately will have to acknowledge that not enough of the best-suited plants and animals were created on oceanic islands, as humans have unintentionally introduced a wider variety of species from different sources than nature has.

Although in oceanic islands the number of kinds of inhabitants is scanty, the proportion of endemic species (i.e. those found nowhere else in the world) is often extremely large. If we compare, for instance, the number of the endemic land-shells in Madeira, or of the endemic birds in the Galapagos Archipelago, with the number found on any continent, and then compare the area of the islands with that of the continent, we shall see that this is true. This fact might have been expected on my theory, for, as already explained, species occasionally arriving after long intervals in a new and isolated district, and having to compete with new associates, will be eminently liable to modification, and will often produce groups of modified descendants. But it by no means follows, that, because in an island nearly all the species of one class are peculiar, those of another class, or of another section of the same class, are peculiar; and this difference seems to depend partly on the species which do not become modified having immigrated with facility and in a body, so that their mutual relations have not been much disturbed; and partly on the frequent arrival of unmodified immigrants from the mother-country, and the consequent intercrossing with them. With respect to the effects of this intercrossing, [391]it should be remembered that the offspring of such crosses would almost certainly gain in vigour; so that even an occasional cross would produce more effect than might at first have been anticipated. To give a few examples: in the Galapagos Islands nearly every land-bird, but only two out of the eleven marine birds, are peculiar; and it is obvious that marine birds could arrive at these islands more easily than land-birds. Bermuda, on the other hand, which lies at about the same distance from North America as the Galapagos Islands do from South America, and which has a very peculiar soil, does not possess one endemic land-bird; and we know from Mr. J. M. Jones's admirable account of Bermuda, that very many North American birds, during their great annual migrations, visit either periodically or occasionally this island. Madeira does not possess one peculiar bird, and many European and African birds are almost every year blown there, as I am informed by Mr. E. V. Harcourt. So that these two islands of Bermuda and Madeira have been stocked by birds, which for long ages have struggled together in their former homes, and have become mutually adapted to each other; and when settled in their new homes, each kind will have been kept by the others to their proper places and habits, and will consequently have been little liable to modification. Any tendency to modification will, also, have been checked by intercrossing with the unmodified immigrants from the mother-country. Madeira, again, is inhabited by a wonderful number of peculiar land-shells, whereas not one species of sea-shell is confined to its shores: now, though we do not know how sea-shells are dispersed, yet we can see that their eggs or larvae, perhaps attached to seaweed or floating timber, or to the feet of wading-birds, might be transported far more easily than [392]land-shells, across three or four hundred miles of open sea. The different orders of insects in Madeira apparently present analogous facts.

Although oceanic islands have a limited variety of inhabitants, they often have a surprisingly high percentage of unique species (i.e., those found nowhere else in the world). For example, if we look at the number of unique land snails in Madeira or the unique birds in the Galapagos Islands compared to what we find on any continent, and then consider the size of the islands versus the continent, this holds true. This outcome aligns with my theory, which suggests that species arriving after long periods in a new and isolated area, where they must compete with new neighbors, are likely to change significantly and often produce groups of altered descendants. However, it doesn't follow that if almost all species of one type in an island are unique, species of another type, or another subset of the same type, will also be unique. This discrepancy seems to relate partly to the species that haven't changed much being able to immigrate easily and in large numbers, allowing their relationships to remain stable; and partly to the frequent arrival of unchanged immigrants from the original habitat, leading to interbreeding with them. Regarding the effects of this interbreeding, it should be noted that the offspring of such mixes would likely gain strength; thus, even an occasional cross could have a more significant impact than expected. For instance, in the Galapagos Islands, nearly all land birds are unique, while only two out of eleven marine birds are. It's clear that marine birds can reach these islands more easily than land birds. In contrast, Bermuda, which is roughly the same distance from North America as the Galapagos Islands are from South America, and has very distinctive soil, does not have any unique land birds. We know from Mr. J. M. Jones's excellent account of Bermuda that many North American birds visit the island during their major annual migrations, either regularly or occasionally. Madeira also lacks any unique birds, and many European and African birds are blown there almost every year, as noted by Mr. E. V. Harcourt. Therefore, both Bermuda and Madeira have been populated by birds that have competed together for many ages in their original habitats and have adapted to each other over time; when these birds settled in their new environments, each species would have been kept in check by the others regarding their appropriate roles and behaviors and would consequently have changed little. Any inclination for change would have also been limited by interbreeding with the unchanged immigrants from their original habitats. Madeira, on the other hand, is home to a remarkable number of unique land snails, while not a single species of sea snail is exclusive to its shores. Although we're uncertain how sea snails spread, we can see that their eggs or larvae, perhaps attached to seaweed or floating timber or even to the feet of wading birds, could be carried much more easily than land snails across several hundred miles of open sea. The various groups of insects in Madeira seem to show similar patterns.

Oceanic islands are sometimes deficient in certain classes, and their places are apparently occupied by the other inhabitants; in the Galapagos Islands reptiles, and in New Zealand gigantic wingless birds, take the place of mammals. In the plants of the Galapagos Islands, Dr. Hooker has shown that the proportional numbers of the different orders are very different from what they are elsewhere. Such cases are generally accounted for by the physical conditions of the islands; but this explanation seems to me not a little doubtful. Facility of immigration, I believe, has been at least as important as the nature of the conditions.

Oceanic islands often lack certain types of species, and other inhabitants seem to fill those gaps; for example, in the Galapagos Islands, reptiles occupy the role of mammals, while in New Zealand, large flightless birds do the same. Dr. Hooker has demonstrated that the proportions of different plant orders in the Galapagos Islands are quite different from those found elsewhere. These differences are usually attributed to the islands' physical conditions, but I find that explanation somewhat questionable. I believe that ease of immigration has been at least as significant as the nature of those conditions.

Many remarkable little facts could be given with respect to the inhabitants of remote islands. For instance, in certain islands not tenanted by mammals, some of the endemic plants have beautifully hooked seeds; yet few relations are more striking than the adaptation of hooked seeds for transportal by the wool and fur of quadrupeds. This case presents no difficulty on my view, for a hooked seed might be transported to an island by some other means; and the plant then becoming slightly modified, but still retaining its hooked seeds, would form an endemic species, having as useless an appendage as any rudimentary organ,—for instance, as the shrivelled wings under the soldered elytra of many insular beetles. Again, islands often possess trees or bushes belonging to orders which elsewhere include only herbaceous species; now trees, as Alph. de Candolle has shown, generally have, whatever the cause may be, confined ranges. Hence trees would be little likely to reach distant oceanic islands; and an herbaceous plant, though it would have no chance of [393]successfully competing in stature with a fully developed tree, when established on an island and having to compete with herbaceous plants alone, might readily gain an advantage by growing taller and taller and overtopping the other plants. If so, natural selection would often tend to add to the stature of herbaceous plants when growing on an oceanic island, to whatever order they belonged, and thus convert them first into bushes and ultimately into trees.

Many interesting little facts can be shared about the inhabitants of remote islands. For example, in some islands without mammals, certain native plants have beautifully hooked seeds; however, few examples are more striking than the way hooked seeds are adapted for transport by the wool and fur of animals. This isn’t a problem for my perspective, as a hooked seed might reach an island through different means; then the plant, slightly modified but still having its hooked seeds, would evolve into a native species with a seemingly useless feature, similar to how some island beetles have shriveled wings under their fused elytra. Additionally, islands often have trees or bushes from plant families that, elsewhere, only include herbaceous species; as Alph. de Candolle has indicated, trees typically have limited distributions for various reasons. Consequently, trees would be unlikely to reach far-off oceanic islands; meanwhile, a herbaceous plant, though it would struggle to compete in height with a large tree, might thrive when on an island competing only with other herbaceous plants, allowing it to grow taller and surpass its neighbors. In this way, natural selection would often favor the increase in height of herbaceous plants on oceanic islands, regardless of their original plant family, ultimately transforming them from bushes into trees.

With respect to the absence of whole orders on oceanic islands, Bory St. Vincent long ago remarked that Batrachians (frogs, toads, newts) have never been found on any of the many islands with which the great oceans are studded. I have taken pains to verify this assertion, and I have found it strictly true. I have, however, been assured that a frog exists on the mountains of the great island of New Zealand; but I suspect that this exception (if the information be correct) may be explained through glacial agency. This general absence of frogs, toads, and newts on so many oceanic islands cannot be accounted for by their physical conditions; indeed it seems that islands are peculiarly well fitted for these animals; for frogs have been introduced into Madeira, the Azores, and Mauritius, and have multiplied so as to become a nuisance. But as these animals and their spawn are known to be immediately killed by sea-water, on my view we can see that there would be great difficulty in their transportal across the sea, and therefore why they do not exist on any oceanic island. But why, on the theory of creation, they should not have been created there, it would be very difficult to explain.

Regarding the lack of entire groups on oceanic islands, Bory St. Vincent pointed out long ago that amphibians (frogs, toads, newts) have never been found on any of the numerous islands scattered throughout the great oceans. I have made it a point to verify this claim, and I found it to be completely accurate. However, I've been told that a frog does live in the mountains of the large island of New Zealand; but I suspect that this exception (if the information is correct) may be explained by glacial factors. This overall lack of frogs, toads, and newts on so many oceanic islands cannot be attributed to their physical conditions; in fact, it seems that islands are particularly suitable for these animals, as frogs have been introduced to Madeira, the Azores, and Mauritius, where they have multiplied to the point of becoming a nuisance. However, since these animals and their eggs are known to be instantly killed by seawater, it appears that transporting them across the ocean would be very difficult, which explains their absence from any oceanic island. Yet, it would be challenging to explain why they wouldn't have been created there according to the theory of creation.

Mammals offer another and similar case. I have carefully searched the oldest voyages, but have not finished my search; as yet I have not found a single [394]instance, free from doubt, of a terrestrial mammal (excluding domesticated animals kept by the natives) inhabiting an island situated above 300 miles from a continent or great continental island; and many islands situated at a much less distance are equally barren. The Falkland Islands, which are inhabited by a wolf-like fox, come nearest to an exception; but this group cannot be considered as oceanic, as it lies on a bank connected with the mainland; moreover, icebergs formerly brought boulders to its western shores, and they may have formerly transported foxes, as so frequently now happens in the arctic regions. Yet it cannot be said that small islands will not support small mammals, for they occur in many parts of the world on very small islands, if close to a continent; and hardly an island can be named on which our smaller quadrupeds have not become naturalised and greatly multiplied. It cannot be said, on the ordinary view of creation, that there has not been time for the creation of mammals; many volcanic islands are sufficiently ancient, as shown by the stupendous degradation which they have suffered and by their tertiary strata: there has also been time for the production of endemic species belonging to other classes; and on continents it is thought that mammals appear and disappear at a quicker rate than other and lower animals. Though terrestrial mammals do not occur on oceanic islands, aërial mammals do occur on almost every island. New Zealand possesses two bats found nowhere else in the world: Norfolk Island, the Viti Archipelago, the Bonin Islands, the Caroline and Marianne Archipelagoes, and Mauritius, all possess their peculiar bats. Why, it may be asked, has the supposed creative force produced bats and no other mammals on remote islands? On my view this question can easily be answered; for no [395]terrestrial mammal can be transported across a wide space of sea, but bats can fly across. Bats have been seen wandering by day far over the Atlantic Ocean; and two North American species either regularly or occasionally visit Bermuda, at the distance of 600 miles from the mainland. I hear from Mr. Tomes, who has specially studied this family, that many of the same species have enormous ranges, and are found on continents and on far distant islands. Hence we have only to suppose that such wandering species have been modified through natural selection in their new homes in relation to their new position, and we can understand the presence of endemic bats on islands, with the absence of all terrestrial mammals.

Mammals provide another similar example. I've thoroughly examined the earliest voyages, but I haven’t completed my search; so far, I haven’t found a single [394]instance, without question, of a land mammal (not counting domesticated animals kept by locals) living on an island more than 300 miles from a continent or a large continental island; and many islands that are much closer are equally barren. The Falkland Islands, which are home to a fox-like wolf, come closest to being an exception; however, this group can't be considered oceanic, as it’s located on a bank connected to the mainland; furthermore, icebergs used to bring boulders to its western shores, and they may have once carried foxes, just as frequently occurs today in Arctic regions. Even though it can't be said that small islands won't support small mammals, as they exist in many parts of the world on tiny islands close

Besides the absence of terrestrial mammals in relation to the remoteness of islands from continents, there is also a relation, to a certain extent independent of distance, between the depth of the sea separating an island from the neighbouring mainland, and the presence in both of the same mammiferous species or of allied species in a more or less modified condition. Mr. Windsor Earl has made some striking observations on this head in regard to the great Malay Archipelago, which is traversed near Celebes by a space of deep ocean; and this space separates two widely distinct mammalian faunas. On either side the islands are situated on moderately deep submarine banks, and they are inhabited by closely allied or identical quadrupeds. No doubt some few anomalies occur in this great archipelago, and there is much difficulty in forming a judgment in some cases owing to the probable naturalisation of certain mammals through man's agency; but we shall soon have much light thrown on the natural history of this archipelago by the admirable zeal and researches of Mr. Wallace. I have not as yet had time to [396]follow up this subject in all other quarters of the world; but as far as I have gone, the relation generally holds good. We see Britain separated by a shallow channel from Europe, and the mammals are the same on both sides; we meet with analogous facts on many islands separated by similar channels from Australia. The West Indian Islands stand on a deeply submerged bank, nearly 1000 fathoms in depth, and here we find American forms, but the species and even the genera are distinct. As the amount of modification in all cases depends to a certain degree on the lapse of time, and as during changes of level it is obvious that islands separated by shallow channels are more likely to have been continuously united within a recent period to the mainland than islands separated by deeper channels, we can understand the frequent relation between the depth of the sea and the degree of affinity of the mammalian inhabitants of islands with those of a neighbouring continent,—an inexplicable relation on the view of independent acts of creation.

Aside from the lack of land mammals on islands due to their isolation from continents, there's also a connection, somewhat independent of distance, between how deep the sea is that separates an island from the nearest mainland and the presence of the same or closely related mammal species, albeit in slightly different forms. Mr. Windsor Earl has noted some remarkable observations regarding this in the vast Malay Archipelago, where a deep ocean gap near Celebes divides two very different mammal populations. On either side, the islands sit atop moderately deep underwater banks and are home to closely related or identical land animals. While there are a few exceptions in this large archipelago, it can be challenging to judge in some instances due to the likely introduction of certain mammals by humans; however, we can expect to learn more about the natural history of this area thanks to the excellent dedication and research from Mr. Wallace. I haven’t had the chance to explore this topic in other parts of the world yet, but from what I’ve observed so far, the connection generally holds true. For example, Britain is separated from Europe by a shallow channel, and the mammals are the same on both sides. We find similar facts on many islands that are also separated by comparable channels from Australia. The West Indian Islands are located on a submerged bank nearly 1000 fathoms deep, and here we encounter American forms, but the species and even the genera are different. Since the amount of variation generally depends on the passage of time, and considering that during changes in sea level, it’s clear that islands divided by shallow channels are more likely to have been connected to the mainland recently compared to those separated by deeper channels, we can grasp the frequent correlation between sea depth and the degree of similarity of island mammals to those of a nearby continent—an elusive connection if we view it through the lens of separate acts of creation.

All the foregoing remarks on the inhabitants of oceanic islands,—namely, the scarcity of kinds—the richness in endemic forms in particular classes or sections of classes,—the absence of whole groups, as of batrachians, and of terrestrial mammals notwithstanding the presence of aërial bats,—the singular proportions of certain orders of plants,—herbaceous forms having been developed into trees, &c.,—seem to me to accord better with the view of occasional means of transport having been largely efficient in the long course of time, than with the view of all our oceanic islands having been formerly connected by continuous land with the nearest continent; for on this latter view the migration would probably have been more complete; and if modification be admitted, all the forms of life would have been more [397]equally modified, in accordance with the paramount importance of the relation of organism to organism.

All the comments above about the inhabitants of oceanic islands—specifically, the limited variety of species, the abundance of unique forms in certain groups, the absence of entire categories like amphibians and land mammals despite the presence of flying bats, and the unusual proportions of certain plant orders, where herbaceous types have evolved into trees, etc.—seem to me to support the idea that occasional means of transportation have played a significant role over time, rather than the idea that all our oceanic islands were once connected by continuous land to the nearest continent. If the latter were true, migration would likely have been more thorough; and if we accept that species can change, we would expect all forms of life to be more equally modified, given the crucial importance of the relationships between different organisms. [397]

I do not deny that there are many and grave difficulties in understanding how several of the inhabitants of the more remote islands, whether still retaining the same specific form or modified since their arrival, could have reached their present homes. But the probability of many islands having existed as halting-places, of which not a wreck now remains, must not be overlooked. I will here give a single instance of one of the cases of difficulty. Almost all oceanic islands, even the most isolated and smallest, are inhabited by land-shells, generally by endemic species, but sometimes by species found elsewhere. Dr. Aug. A. Gould has given several interesting cases in regard to the land-shells of the islands of the Pacific. Now it is notorious that land-shells are very easily killed by salt; their eggs, at least such as I have tried, sink in sea-water and are killed by it. Yet there must be, on my view, some unknown, but highly efficient means for their transportal. Would the just-hatched young occasionally crawl on and adhere to the feet of birds roosting on the ground, and thus get transported? It occurred to me that land-shells, when hybernating and having a membranous diaphragm over the mouth of the shell, might be floated in chinks of drifted timber across moderately wide arms of the sea. And I found that several species did in this state withstand uninjured an immersion in sea-water during seven days: one of these shells was the Helix pomatia, and after it had again hybernated I put it in sea-water for twenty days, and it perfectly recovered. As this species has a thick calcareous operculum, I removed it, and when it had formed a new membranous one, I immersed it for fourteen days in sea-water, and it recovered and crawled away: but more experiments are wanted on this head. [398]

I don’t deny that there are many serious challenges in figuring out how some of the inhabitants of the more remote islands, whether they still look the same or have changed since their arrival, could have ended up where they are now. However, we shouldn’t overlook the likelihood that many islands served as stopping points, none of which remain as wrecks today. Let me share one specific example of this challenge. Almost all oceanic islands, even those that are the most isolated and smallest, have land snails living on them, often unique species, but sometimes species found in other places. Dr. Aug. A. Gould has highlighted several interesting examples regarding the land snails of the Pacific islands. It’s a well-known fact that land snails are very vulnerable to salt; their eggs, at least those I’ve experimented with, sink in seawater and are destroyed by it. Yet, I believe there must be some unknown but effective way for them to be transported. Could it be that young snails, just hatched, occasionally crawl onto and cling to the feet of birds resting on the ground, getting moved that way? I thought that land snails, while hibernating and with a thin membrane covering the opening of their shells, might be carried by bits of driftwood across fairly wide stretches of water. I found that several species in this state survived being submerged in seawater for seven days without any harm: one of these snails was the Helix pomatia, and after it hibernated again, I put it in seawater for twenty days, and it recovered completely. Since this species has a thick calcareous lid, I removed it, and when it formed a new membranous one, I submerged it for fourteen days in seawater, and it recovered and crawled away: but I still need to conduct more experiments on this topic. [398]

The most striking and important fact for us in regard to the inhabitants of islands, is their affinity to those of the nearest mainland, without being actually the same species. Numerous instances could be given of this fact. I will give only one, that of the Galapagos Archipelago, situated under the equator, between 500 and 600 miles from the shores of South America. Here almost every product of the land and water bears the unmistakeable stamp of the American continent. There are twenty-six land-birds, and twenty-five of these are ranked by Mr. Gould as distinct species, supposed to have been created here; yet the close affinity of most of these birds to American species in every character, in their habits, gestures, and tones of voice, was manifest. So it is with the other animals, and with nearly all the plants, as shown by Dr. Hooker in his admirable memoir on the Flora of this archipelago. The naturalist, looking at the inhabitants of these volcanic islands in the Pacific, distant several hundred miles from the continent, yet feels that he is standing on American land. Why should this be so? why should the species which are supposed to have been created in the Galapagos Archipelago, and nowhere else, bear so plain a stamp of affinity to those created in America? There is nothing in the conditions of life, in the geological nature of the islands, in their height or climate, or in the proportions in which the several classes are associated together, which resembles closely the conditions of the South American coast: in fact there is a considerable dissimilarity in all these respects. On the other hand, there is a considerable degree of resemblance in the volcanic nature of the soil, in climate, height, and size of the islands, between the Galapagos and Cape de Verde Archipelagos: but what an entire and absolute difference in their inhabitants! The inhabitants of the Cape de Verde Islands are related to [399]those of Africa, like those of the Galapagos to America. I believe this grand fact can receive no sort of explanation on the ordinary view of independent creation; whereas on the view here maintained, it is obvious that the Galapagos Islands would be likely to receive colonists, whether by occasional means of transport or by formerly continuous land, from America; and the Cape de Verde Islands from Africa; and that such colonists would be liable to modification;—the principle of inheritance still betraying their original birthplace.

The most striking and important fact about the inhabitants of islands is their connection to the species on the nearest mainland, even though they aren’t exactly the same species. There are many examples of this, but I will mention just one: the Galapagos Archipelago, located near the equator, about 500 to 600 miles off the coast of South America. Almost every plant and animal here shows a clear link to the American continent. There are twenty-six land birds, and Mr. Gould classifies twenty-five of them as distinct species, believed to have originated here; yet the close resemblance of most of these birds to American species in their behaviors, movements, and calls is obvious. The same is true for other animals and nearly all the plants, as Dr. Hooker highlights in his excellent work on the Flora of this archipelago. A naturalist observing the residents of these volcanic islands in the Pacific, hundreds of miles away from the mainland, still gets the sense of being on American territory. Why is this? Why do the species thought to have evolved in the Galapagos, and nowhere else, show such a clear resemblance to those from America? There is nothing about their living conditions, geological features, elevation, or climate that closely matches the South American coast; in fact, there are significant differences in all these aspects. However, there are considerable similarities in the volcanic nature of the soil, climate, elevation, and size of the islands between the Galapagos and Cape Verde Archipelagos; yet the differences in their inhabitants are stark. The residents of the Cape Verde Islands are related to those of Africa, just as the ones in the Galapagos are related to America. I believe this significant fact cannot be explained by the usual theory of independent creation; instead, it's clear from the perspective maintained here that the Galapagos Islands likely received colonists from America, either through occasional transport or once-connected land, and the Cape Verde Islands received theirs from Africa; these colonists would likely undergo changes while still showing traces of their original homeland.

Many analogous facts could be given: indeed it is an almost universal rule that the endemic productions of islands are related to those of the nearest continent, or of other near islands. The exceptions are few, and most of them can be explained. Thus the plants of Kerguelen Land, though standing nearer to Africa than to America, are related, and that very closely, as we know from Dr. Hooker's account, to those of America: but on the view that this island has been mainly stocked by seeds brought with earth and stones on icebergs, drifted by the prevailing currents, this anomaly disappears. New Zealand in its endemic plants is much more closely related to Australia, the nearest mainland, than to any other region: and this is what might have been expected; but it is also plainly related to South America, which, although the next nearest continent, is so enormously remote, that the fact becomes an anomaly. But this difficulty almost disappears on the view that both New Zealand, South America, and other southern lands were long ago partially stocked from a nearly intermediate though distant point, namely from the antarctic islands, when they were clothed with vegetation, before the commencement of the Glacial period. The affinity, which, though feeble, I am assured by Dr. Hooker is real, between the flora of the south-western corner of Australia and of the Cape of Good [400]Hope, is a far more remarkable case, and is at present inexplicable: but this affinity is confined to the plants, and will, I do not doubt, be some day explained.

Many similar examples could be provided: it is almost a universal rule that the native species of islands are related to those of the closest continent or other nearby islands. There are few exceptions, and most of them can be explained. For instance, the plants of Kerguelen Land, although closer to Africa than to America, are closely related to those of America, as noted in Dr. Hooker's account. This strange occurrence can be explained by the idea that seeds were brought to the island with soil and stones on icebergs carried by ocean currents. New Zealand’s native plants are much more closely connected to Australia, the nearest mainland, than to any other area, which is what we would expect; however, it also has a clear connection to South America, which, although the next closest continent, is so extraordinarily far away that this becomes puzzling. This issue can be resolved with the theory that New Zealand, South America, and other southern regions were partially populated long ago from an intermediate but distant point, specifically the Antarctic islands, when they were covered with vegetation before the onset of the Glacial period. The relationship, although weak, is genuine as I have been assured by Dr. Hooker, between the flora of the southwestern corner of Australia and that of the Cape of Good [400]Hope, is a much more striking case and currently remains unexplained; however, this connection is limited to the plants and, I believe, will someday be clarified.

The law which causes the inhabitants of an archipelago, though specifically distinct, to be closely allied to those of the nearest continent, we sometimes see displayed on a small scale, yet in a most interesting manner, within the limits of the same archipelago. Thus the several islands of the Galapagos Archipelago are tenanted, as I have elsewhere shown, in a quite marvellous manner, by very closely related species; so that the inhabitants of each separate island, though mostly distinct, are related in an incomparably closer degree to each other than to the inhabitants of any other part of the world. And this is just what might have been expected on my view, for the islands are situated so near each other that they would almost certainly receive immigrants from the same original source, or from each other. But this dissimilarity between the endemic inhabitants of the islands may be used as an argument against my views; for it may be asked, how has it happened in the several islands situated within sight of each other, having the same geological nature, the same height, climate, &c., that many of the immigrants should have been differently modified, though only in a small degree. This long appeared to me a great difficulty: but it arises in chief part from the deeply-seated error of considering the physical conditions of a country as the most important for its inhabitants; whereas it cannot, I think, be disputed that the nature of the other inhabitants, with which each has to compete, is as least as important, and generally a far more important element of success. Now if we look to those inhabitants of the Galapagos Archipelago which are found in other parts of the world (laying on one side for the moment the [401]endemic species, which cannot be here fairly included, as we are considering how they have come to be modified since their arrival), we find a considerable amount of difference in the several islands. This difference might indeed have been expected on the view of the islands having been stocked by occasional means of transport—a seed, for instance, of one plant having been brought to one island, and that of another plant to another island. Hence when in former times an immigrant settled on any one or more of the islands, or when it subsequently spread from one island to another, it would undoubtedly be exposed to different conditions of life in the different islands, for it would have to compete with different sets of organisms: a plant for instance, would find the best-fitted ground more perfectly occupied by distinct plants in one island than in another, and it would be exposed to the attacks of somewhat different enemies. If then it varied, natural selection would probably favour different varieties in the different islands. Some species, however, might spread and yet retain the same character throughout the group, just as we see on continents some species spreading widely and remaining the same.

The law that connects the inhabitants of an archipelago, even though they are distinctly different, to those of the nearest continent can sometimes be seen on a smaller scale, in a fascinating way, within the same archipelago. For example, the islands of the Galapagos Archipelago are home to closely related species, as I've shown elsewhere, so that the inhabitants of each island, while mostly distinct, are much more closely related to each other than to those from any other part of the world. This aligns with my view, as the islands are so close together that they likely receive immigrants from the same original source or from one another. However, the differences among the endemic inhabitants of these islands could be seen as a challenge to my views; one might wonder how, in islands that are in sight of each other, share the same geological features, height, climate, etc., many of the immigrants could have become slightly modified in different ways. This has long posed a significant dilemma for me, but it mainly stems from the common mistake of viewing the physical conditions of a region as the most crucial factor for its inhabitants. I believe it cannot be denied that the nature of the competing organisms inhabiting that region is at least as important and often a far more critical aspect of success. If we observe the inhabitants of the Galapagos Archipelago found in other parts of the world (setting aside the endemic species, which we can't fairly include in this discussion, as we're examining how they have been modified since their arrival), we notice a significant degree of variation among the islands. This variation might be anticipated given that the islands were likely populated by occasional means of transport—like a seed from one plant reaching one island while another plant's seed reached a different island. Therefore, when an immigrant settled on any of the islands, or when it later spread from one island to another, it would have faced different living conditions across the islands and would need to compete with various sets of organisms. For example, a plant might find the most suitable ground better occupied by different plants on one island than on another and face attacks from slightly different pests. If it did undergo variation, natural selection would likely favor different varieties on the different islands. However, some species might spread and still maintain the same characteristics throughout the group, just as we observe on continents where some species widely spread and remain unchanged.

The really surprising fact in this case of the Galapagos Archipelago, and in a lesser degree in some analogous instances, is that the new species formed in the separate islands have not quickly spread to the other islands. But the islands, though in sight of each other, are separated by deep arms of the sea, in most cases wider than the British Channel, and there is no reason to suppose that they have at any former period been continuously united. The currents of the sea are rapid and sweep across the archipelago, and gales of wind are extraordinarily rare; so that the islands are far more effectually separated from each other than they appear to be on a map. Nevertheless a good many [402]species, both those found in other parts of the world and those confined to the archipelago, are common to the several islands, and we may infer from certain facts that these have probably spread from some one island to the others. But we often take, I think, an erroneous view of the probability of closely-allied species invading each other's territory, when put into free intercommunication. Undoubtedly if one species has any advantage whatever over another, it will in a very brief time wholly or in part supplant it; but if both are equally well fitted for their own places in nature, both probably will hold their own places and keep separate for almost any length of time. Being familiar with the fact that many species, naturalised through man's agency, have spread with astonishing rapidity over new countries, we are apt to infer that most species would thus spread; but we should remember that the forms which become naturalised in new countries are not generally closely allied to the aboriginal inhabitants, but are very distinct species, belonging in a large proportion of cases, as shown by Alph. de Candolle, to distinct genera. In the Galapagos Archipelago, many even of the birds, though so well adapted for flying from island to island, are distinct on each; thus there are three closely-allied species of mocking-thrush, each confined to its own island. Now let us suppose the mocking-thrush of Chatham Island to be blown to Charles Island, which has its own mocking-thrush: why should it succeed in establishing itself there? We may safely infer that Charles Island is well stocked with its own species, for annually more eggs are laid there than can possibly be reared; and we may infer that the mocking-thrush peculiar to Charles Island is at least as well fitted for its home as is the species peculiar to Chatham Island. Sir C. Lyell and Mr. Wollaston have communicated to me a remarkable fact bearing on this [403]subject; namely, that Madeira and the adjoining islet of Porto Santo possess many distinct but representative land-shells, some of which live in crevices of stone; and although large quantities of stone are annually transported from Porto Santo to Madeira, yet this latter island has not become colonised by the Porto Santo species: nevertheless both islands have been colonised by some European land-shells, which no doubt had some advantage over the indigenous species. From these considerations I think we need not greatly marvel at the endemic and representative species, which inhabit the several islands of the Galapagos Archipelago, not having universally spread from island to island. In many other instances, as in the several districts of the same continent, pre-occupation has probably played an important part in checking the commingling of species under the same conditions of life. Thus, the south-east and south-west corners of Australia have nearly the same physical conditions, and are united by continuous land, yet they are inhabited by a vast number of distinct mammals, birds, and plants.

The truly surprising thing about the Galapagos Archipelago, and to a lesser extent in some similar cases, is that new species formed on separate islands haven't quickly spread to other islands. The islands, even though they're visible to each other, are separated by deep stretches of sea, usually wider than the English Channel, and there's no reason to believe they were ever continuously connected in the past. The ocean currents are strong and sweep through the archipelago, and strong winds are exceedingly rare; thus, the islands are much more effectively isolated from each other than they appear on a map. Still, quite a few species, both those found elsewhere and those unique to the archipelago, are common across the islands, and we can infer from certain facts that these probably spread from one island to the others. However, I think we often have a mistaken view of the likelihood of closely related species invading each other's territory when given free communication. Clearly, if one species has any advantage over another, it will quickly replace it, at least in part; but if both are equally suited to their environments, they'll likely maintain their distinct places and stay separate for a considerable time. Given that many species, introduced by human activity, have spread remarkably fast across new lands, we tend to assume that most species would do the same; but we should remember that the ones that successfully establish themselves in new regions usually aren't closely related to the native species, but are quite distinct in many cases, as shown by Alph. de Candolle's research, belonging to different genera. In the Galapagos Archipelago, many birds, despite being well-adapted for flying between islands, are distinct to each one; for instance, there are three closely related species of mocking-thrush, each confined to its respective island. Now, let's imagine a mocking-thrush from Chatham Island gets blown to Charles Island, which has its own mocking-thrush: why would it be able to settle there? We can safely deduce that Charles Island has plenty of its own species, since every year more eggs are laid than can actually be raised; and we can also infer that the mocking-thrush native to Charles Island is at least as well adapted to its environment as the species native to Chatham Island. Sir C. Lyell and Mr. Wollaston have shared a fascinating fact related to this topic; namely, that Madeira and the nearby islet of Porto Santo have many distinct but representative land-snails, some of which live in crevices of rocks; and even though large amounts of stone are regularly transported from Porto Santo to Madeira, the latter island hasn’t been colonized by the species from Porto Santo. Still, both islands have been colonized by some European land-snails, which clearly had some advantages over the native species. From these observations, I think we shouldn’t be too surprised that the endemic and representative species found on the various islands of the Galapagos Archipelago haven’t universally spread from one island to another. In many other situations, like in different regions within the same continent, competition has likely played an important role in preventing the mixing of species under similar living conditions. For example, the southeast and southwest corners of Australia have nearly identical physical conditions and are connected by land, yet they are home to a wide variety of distinct mammals, birds, and plants.

The principle which determines the general character of the fauna and flora of oceanic islands, namely, that the inhabitants, when not identically the same, yet are plainly related to the inhabitants of that region whence colonists could most readily have been derived,—the colonists having been subsequently modified and better fitted to their new homes,—is of the widest application throughout nature. We see this on every mountain, in every lake and marsh. For Alpine species, excepting in so far as the same forms, chiefly of plants, have spread widely throughout the world during the recent Glacial epoch, are related to those of the surrounding lowlands;—thus we have in South America, Alpine humming-birds, Alpine rodents, Alpine plants, [404]&c., all of strictly American forms, and it is obvious that a mountain, as it became slowly upheaved, would naturally be colonised from the surrounding lowlands. So it is with the inhabitants of lakes and marshes, excepting in so far as great facility of transport has given the same general forms to the whole world. We see this same principle in the blind animals inhabiting the caves of America and of Europe. Other analogous facts could be given. And it will, I believe, be universally found to be true, that wherever in two regions, let them be ever so distant, many closely-allied or representative species occur, there will likewise be found some identical species, showing, in accordance with the foregoing view, that at some former period there has been intercommunication or migration between the two regions. And wherever many closely-allied species occur, there will be found many forms which some naturalists rank as distinct species, and some as varieties; these doubtful forms showing us the steps in the process of modification.

The principle that shapes the overall character of the plants and animals on oceanic islands is that the inhabitants, while not always identical, are clearly related to those from the regions that could have easily supplied colonizers. These colonizers then adapted and evolved to better fit their new environments. This principle applies broadly across nature. We can see it on every mountain and in every lake and marsh. For example, Alpine species, except for those plants that spread widely during the recent Ice Age, are related to those of the surrounding lowlands. In South America, we find Alpine hummingbirds, Alpine rodents, and Alpine plants, all strictly American species, making it clear that as mountains slowly rose, they would naturally be colonized by organisms from the nearby lowlands. The same pattern applies to the inhabitants of lakes and marshes, unless the ease of transport has given similar forms to species worldwide. This principle is also evident in the blind animals found in caves in both America and Europe. Many other similar examples could be cited. I believe it will generally be recognized that whenever two regions, no matter how far apart, have many closely related or representative species, there will also be some identical species present. This suggests that at some point, there was communication or migration between those two regions. Furthermore, where many closely related species exist, there will be forms that some naturalists classify as distinct species, while others consider them varieties; these uncertain forms illustrate the stages in the process of modification.

This relation between the power and extent of migration of a species, either at the present time or at some former period under different physical conditions, and the existence at remote points of the world of other species allied to it, is shown in another and more general way. Mr. Gould remarked to me long ago, that in those genera of birds which range over the world, many of the species have very wide ranges. I can hardly doubt that this rule is generally true, though it would be difficult to prove it. Amongst mammals, we see it strikingly displayed in Bats, and in a lesser degree in the Felidæ and Canidæ. We see it, if we compare the distribution of butterflies and beetles. So it is with most fresh-water productions, in which so many genera range over the world, and many individual species have [405]enormous ranges. It is not meant that in world-ranging genera all the species have a wide range, or even that they have on an average a wide range; but only that some of the species range very widely; for the facility with which widely-ranging species vary and give rise to new forms will largely determine their average range. For instance, two varieties of the same species inhabit America and Europe, and the species thus has an immense range; but, if the variation had been a little greater, the two varieties would have been ranked as distinct species, and the common range would have been greatly reduced. Still less is it meant, that a species which apparently has the capacity of crossing barriers and ranging widely, as in the case of certain powerfully-winged birds, will necessarily range widely; for we should never forget that to range widely implies not only the power of crossing barriers, but the more important power of being victorious in distant lands in the struggle for life with foreign associates. But on the view of all the species of a genus having descended from a single parent, though now distributed to the most remote points of the world, we ought to find, and I believe as a general rule we do find, that some at least of the species range very widely; for it is necessary that the unmodified parent should range widely, undergoing modification during its diffusion, and should place itself under diverse conditions favourable for the conversion of its offspring, firstly into new varieties and ultimately into new species.

This relationship between the power and extent of a species' migration, whether now or in the past under different physical conditions, and the presence of other related species in distant parts of the world, can be demonstrated in a more general way. Mr. Gould pointed out to me a long time ago that in those genera of birds that are found worldwide, many species have very broad ranges. I have no doubt that this rule generally holds true, though proving it can be challenging. Among mammals, this is clearly seen in bats and, to a lesser extent, in felids and canids. We can observe it by comparing the distribution of butterflies and beetles. The same applies to most freshwater organisms, where many genera are found globally, and many individual species have incredibly large ranges. It’s not to say that all species within globally-ranging genera have wide distributions, or even that they have a wide range on average; it only means that some species have extensive ranges. The ease with which widely-ranging species vary and create new forms significantly influences their average range. For example, two varieties of the same species live in America and Europe, resulting in an immense range for the species; however, if the variation had been slightly more pronounced, those two varieties might be classified as separate species, greatly reducing their combined range. Furthermore, just because a species appears to have the ability to cross barriers and migrate widely, as seen in certain strong-flying birds, does not guarantee that it will actually have a broad range. It’s essential to remember that widespread distribution requires not only the ability to cross barriers but also the crucial ability to succeed in distant areas while competing with local species. Nevertheless, if we consider that all species in a genus descended from a single ancestor, we should find, and I believe we generally do find, that at least some species have extensive ranges. This is because the unmodified ancestor must have a wide range, undergoing changes as it disperses and facing different conditions that encourage the emergence of new varieties and eventually new species.

In considering the wide distribution of certain genera, we should bear in mind that some are extremely ancient, and must have branched off from a common parent at a remote epoch; so that in such cases there will have been ample time for great climatal and geographical changes and for accidents of transport; and consequently for the migration of some of the species into all [406]quarters of the world, where they may have become slightly modified in relation to their new conditions. There is, also, some reason to believe from geological evidence that organisms low in the scale within each great class, generally change at a slower rate than the higher forms; and consequently the lower forms will have had a better chance of ranging widely and of still retaining the same specific character. This fact, together with the seeds and eggs of many low forms being very minute and better fitted for distant transportation, probably accounts for a law which has long been observed, and which has lately been admirably discussed by Alph. de Candolle in regard to plants, namely, that the lower any group of organisms is, the more widely it is apt to range.

When we think about how widely certain genera are distributed, we should remember that some are really ancient and must have separated from a common ancestor a long time ago. This means there has been plenty of time for significant climate and geographical changes, as well as transportation accidents, leading to some species migrating to different parts of the world, where they may have slightly adapted to their new environments. Additionally, geological evidence suggests that organisms lower on the evolutionary scale within each major class tend to change more slowly than those higher up; therefore, lower forms have had a greater opportunity to spread out widely while still keeping the same specific characteristics. This, along with the fact that many low forms produce very small seeds and eggs that are well-suited for long-distance travel, likely explains a long-observed principle noted by Alph. de Candolle concerning plants: the lower the group of organisms, the more widely it tends to spread.

The relations just discussed,—namely, low and slowly-changing organisms ranging more widely than the high,—some of the species of widely-ranging genera themselves ranging widely,—such facts, as alpine, lacustrine, and marsh productions being related (with the exceptions before specified) to those on the surrounding low lands and dry lands, though these stations are so different,—the very close relation of the distinct species which inhabit the islets of the same archipelago,—and especially the striking relation of the inhabitants of each whole archipelago or island to those of the nearest mainland,—are, I think, utterly inexplicable on the ordinary view of the independent creation of each species, but are explicable on the view of colonisation from the nearest or readiest source, together with the subsequent modification and better adaptation of the colonists to their new homes.

The relationships we've just talked about—specifically, low and slowly changing organisms that have a wider range than the high ones, and some species within widely-ranging genera also covering large areas—these facts, such as alpine, lake, and marsh organisms being connected (with the exceptions noted earlier) to those in the nearby lowlands and dry lands despite their differences—along with the close connections between distinct species living on the same islands within an archipelago—and especially the notable relationship between the inhabitants of each entire archipelago or island and those of the closest mainland—are, in my view, completely inexplicable through the usual perspective of each species being created independently. However, they make sense when considering colonization from the nearest available source and the subsequent modifications and better adaptations of those colonists to their new environments.

 

Summary of last and present Chapters.—In these chapters I have endeavoured to show, that if we make due allowance for our ignorance of the full effects of all [407]the changes of climate and of the level of the land, which have certainly occurred within the recent period, and of other similar changes which may have occurred within the same period; if we remember how profoundly ignorant we are with respect to the many and curious means of occasional transport,—a subject which has hardly ever been properly experimentised on; if we bear in mind how often a species may have ranged continuously over a wide area, and then have become extinct in the intermediate tracts, I think the difficulties in believing that all the individuals of the same species, wherever located, have descended from the same parents, are not insuperable. And we are led to this conclusion, which has been arrived at by many naturalists under the designation of single centres of creation, by some general considerations, more especially from the importance of barriers and from the analogical distribution of sub-genera, genera, and families.

Summary of last and present Chapters.—In these chapters, I have tried to show that if we take into account our lack of knowledge about the full effects of changes in climate and land elevation that have definitely happened recently, along with other similar changes that may have also occurred in this time frame; if we recognize how deeply unaware we are of the many unique methods of occasional transport—a topic that has rarely been thoroughly tested; if we remember how often a species might have spread continuously across a large area and then gone extinct in the regions in between, I believe the challenges in accepting that all individuals of the same species, no matter where they are found, have descended from the same ancestors are not impossible to overcome. This leads us to a conclusion that many naturalists have come to, referred to as single centres of creation, based on some general considerations, particularly the significance of barriers and the analogous distribution of sub-genera, genera, and families.

With respect to the distinct species of the same genus, which on my theory must have spread from one parent-source; if we make the same allowances as before for our ignorance, and remember that some forms of life change most slowly, enormous periods of time being thus granted for their migration, I do not think that the difficulties are insuperable; though they often are in this case, and in that of the individuals of the same species, extremely great.

Regarding the different species within the same genus, which I believe must have originated from a common ancestor; if we continue to acknowledge our ignorance and consider that some life forms evolve very slowly, allowing for immense spans of time for their migration, I don’t think the challenges are impossible to overcome; although they often seem to be in this situation, and even more so for individuals of the same species, the obstacles are quite significant.

As exemplifying the effects of climatal changes on distribution, I have attempted to show how important has been the influence of the modern Glacial period, which I am fully convinced simultaneously affected the whole world, or at least great meridional belts. As showing how diversified are the means of occasional transport, I have discussed at some little length the means of dispersal of fresh-water productions. [408]

As an example of how climate changes affect distribution, I've tried to demonstrate the significant impact of the modern Glacial period, which I firmly believe has influenced the entire world, or at least large latitudinal regions. To illustrate the variety of occasional transport methods, I've discussed in some detail the ways fresh-water species are dispersed. [408]

If the difficulties be not insuperable in admitting that in the long course of time the individuals of the same species, and likewise of allied species, have proceeded from some one source; then I think all the grand leading facts of geographical distribution are explicable on the theory of migration (generally of the more dominant forms of life), together with subsequent modification and the multiplication of new forms. We can thus understand the high importance of barriers, whether of land or water, which separate our several zoological and botanical provinces. We can thus understand the localisation of sub-genera, genera, and families; and how it is that under different latitudes, for instance in South America, the inhabitants of the plains and mountains, of the forests, marshes, and deserts, are in so mysterious a manner linked together by affinity, and are likewise linked to the extinct beings which formerly inhabited the same continent. Bearing in mind that the mutual relation of organism to organism is of the highest importance, we can see why two areas having nearly the same physical conditions should often be inhabited by very different forms of life; for according to the length of time which has elapsed since new inhabitants entered one region; according to the nature of the communication which allowed certain forms and not others to enter, either in greater or lesser numbers; according or not, as those which entered happened to come in more or less direct competition with each other and with the aborigines; and according as the immigrants were capable of varying more or less rapidly, there would ensue in different regions, independently of their physical conditions, infinitely diversified conditions of life,—there would be an almost endless amount of organic action and reaction,—and we should find, as we do find, some groups of beings greatly, and some only slightly modified,—some [409]developed in great force, some existing in scanty numbers—in the different great geographical provinces of the world.

If we can accept that the individuals of the same species, and also related species, have come from a common source over time, then I believe that all the major facts of geographical distribution can be explained by migration (generally of the dominant life forms), along with subsequent changes and the emergence of new forms. This helps us understand the significant role of barriers, whether land or water, that separate different zoological and botanical areas. It clarifies the location of sub-genera, genera, and families, and why, for instance, in South America, the organisms of plains, mountains, forests, marshes, and deserts are strangely interconnected and also linked to the extinct species that once inhabited the same continent. Considering the critical relationship between organisms, we can see why two areas with similar physical conditions can have very different forms of life; this is due to how long it has been since new organisms entered one region, the type of communication that allowed certain forms to enter—some in larger numbers and some in smaller—whether they competed directly with each other and with the native species, and how quickly those immigrants could adapt. As a result, in different regions, regardless of their physical conditions, we observe highly varied life conditions—leading to countless organic interactions—and we find, as we do find, some groups are heavily modified while others are only slightly changed, with some thriving and others existing in small numbers across the major geographical areas of the world.

On these same principles, we can understand, as I have endeavoured to show, why oceanic islands should have few inhabitants, but of these a great number should be endemic or peculiar; and why, in relation to the means of migration, one group of beings, even within the same class, should have all its species endemic, and another group should have all its species common to other quarters of the world. We can see why whole groups of organisms, as batrachians and terrestrial mammals, should be absent from oceanic islands, whilst the most isolated islands possess their own peculiar species of aërial mammals or bats. We can see why there should be some relation between the presence of mammals, in a more or less modified condition, and the depth of the sea between an island and the mainland. We can clearly see why all the inhabitants of an archipelago, though specifically distinct on the several islets, should be closely related to each other, and likewise be related, but less closely, to those of the nearest continent or other source whence immigrants were probably derived. We can see why in two areas, however distant from each other, there should be a correlation, in the presence of identical species, of varieties, of doubtful species, and of distinct but representative species.

Based on the same principles, we can understand, as I’ve tried to explain, why oceanic islands tend to have few inhabitants, but many of these are endemic or unique. We can see why, regarding migration methods, one group of beings—even within the same class—might have all its species being endemic, while another group might have all its species common to other parts of the world. It makes sense why entire groups of organisms, like amphibians and land mammals, are missing from oceanic islands, while the most isolated islands have their own unique species of flying mammals or bats. We can also understand why there might be a connection between the presence of mammals, in varying degrees of adaptation, and the depth of the sea between an island and the mainland. It's clear why all the inhabitants of an archipelago, while specifically distinct on different islets, should be closely related to each other, and also related, though less so, to those from the nearest continent or other potential sources of immigrants. We can see why, in two areas that might be far apart, there should be a correlation in the presence of identical species, varieties, uncertain species, and distinct but representative species.

As the late Edward Forbes often insisted, there is a striking parallelism in the laws of life throughout time and space: the laws governing the succession of forms in past times being nearly the same with those governing at the present time the differences in different areas. We see this in many facts. The endurance of each species and group of species is continuous in time; for the exceptions to the rule are so few, that they may [410]fairly be attributed to our not having as yet discovered in an intermediate deposit the forms which are therein absent, but which occur above and below: so in space, it certainly is the general rule that the area inhabited by a single species, or by a group of species, is continuous; and the exceptions, which are not rare, may, as I have attempted to show, be accounted for by migration at some former period under different conditions or by occasional means of transport, and by the species having become extinct in the intermediate tracts. Both in time and space, species and groups of species have their points of maximum development. Groups of species, belonging either to a certain period of time, or to a certain area, are often characterised by trifling characters in common, as of sculpture or colour. In looking to the long succession of ages, as in now looking to distant provinces throughout the world, we find that some organisms differ little, whilst others belonging to a different class, or to a different order, or even only to a different family of the same order, differ greatly. In both time and space the lower members of each class generally change less than the higher; but there are in both cases marked exceptions to the rule. On my theory these several relations throughout time and space are intelligible; for whether we look to the forms of life which have changed during successive ages within the same quarter of the world, or to those which have changed after having migrated into distant quarters, in both cases the forms within each class have been connected by the same bond of ordinary generation; and the more nearly any two forms are related in blood, the nearer they will generally stand to each other in time and space; in both cases the laws of variation have been the same, and modifications have been accumulated by the same power of natural selection.

As the late Edward Forbes often pointed out, there is a noticeable similarity in the laws of life across time and space: the laws that governed the succession of forms in the past are almost identical to those governing the present, with differences only found in various regions. We can see this in many examples. The continuity of each species and groups of species over time is largely unbroken; the exceptions to this rule are so few that they can fairly be explained by the fact that we haven't yet discovered the missing forms in intermediate deposits, which appear above and below them. Likewise, in terms of space, it is generally true that the area occupied by a single species or a group of species is continuous. The exceptions, although not uncommon, can often be explained by migration at some earlier time under different conditions or by occasional means of transport, along with the extinction of species in the intermediate areas. Both in time and space, species and groups of species have their points of maximum development. Groups of species, whether from a certain time period or from a specific area, are often identified by minor shared characteristics, such as sculpture or color. Looking at the long succession of ages or examining distant regions around the world, we find that some organisms show little difference, while others from a different class, order, or even just a different family within the same order, can vary greatly. In both time and space, the lower members of each class typically change less than the higher members; however, there are notable exceptions to this trend. According to my theory, these various relationships across time and space make sense; when we consider the forms of life that have changed over successive ages in the same region or those that have altered after migrating to distant places, the forms within each class have been connected through the same process of ordinary generation. The more closely related two forms are genetically, the more similar they will generally be in both time and space; in both cases, the laws of variation have remained consistent, and modifications have accumulated through the same mechanism of natural selection.


[411]

[411]

CHAPTER XIII.

Mutual Affinities of Organic Beings: Morphology: Embryology: Rudimentary Organs.

Connections Between Living Things: Structure: Development: Unused Organs.

Classification, groups subordinate to groups—Natural system—Rules and difficulties in classification, explained on the theory of descent with modification—Classification of varieties—Descent always used in classification—Analogical or adaptive characters—Affinities, general, complex and radiating—Extinction separates and defines groups—Morphology, between members of the same class, between parts of the same individual—Embryology, laws of, explained by variations not supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a corresponding age—Rudimentary organs; their origin explained—Summary.

Classification involves organizing groups within groups—A natural system—The rules and challenges of classification are discussed through the theory of evolution with changes over time—Classification of varieties—Descent is always a key factor in classification—Analogous or adaptive traits—Relationships: general, complex, and radiating—Extinction helps to separate and define groups—Morphology, within members of the same category and between parts of the same organism—Embryology, with its laws explained by variations that don't occur early on but are inherited at later stages—Rudimentary organs; their origin is explained—Summary.

From the first dawn of life, all organic beings are found to resemble each other in descending degrees, so that they can be classed in groups under groups. This classification is evidently not arbitrary like the grouping of the stars in constellations. The existence of groups would have been of simple signification, if one group had been exclusively fitted to inhabit the land, and another the water; one to feed on flesh, another on vegetable matter, and so on; but the case is widely different in nature; for it is notorious how commonly members of even the same sub-group have different habits. In our second and fourth chapters, on Variation and on Natural Selection, I have attempted to show that it is the widely ranging, the much diffused and common, that is the dominant species belonging to the larger genera, which vary most. The varieties, or incipient species, thus produced ultimately become converted, as I believe, into new and distinct species; and these, on the principle of inheritance, tend to produce other new and dominant [412]species. Consequently the groups which are now large, and which generally include many dominant species, tend to go on increasing indefinitely in size. I further attempted to show that from the varying descendants of each species trying to occupy as many and as different places as possible in the economy of nature, there is a constant tendency in their characters to diverge. This conclusion was supported by looking at the great diversity of the forms of life which, in any small area, come into the closest competition, and by looking to certain facts in naturalisation.

From the very beginning of life, all living beings are seen to be similar to each other in varying degrees, so they can be categorized into groups and subgroups. This classification isn’t arbitrary like how we group stars into constellations. The existence of groups would have a straightforward meaning if one group was solely suited for land and another for water; one group for eating meat, and another for plants, and so on. But that’s not how it works in nature; it’s well-known that members of the same subgroup often have different habits. In our second and fourth chapters, on Variation and Natural Selection, I’ve tried to demonstrate that the widely spread, common species in larger genera are the ones that vary the most. The varieties, or emerging species, that arise from this process ultimately become new and distinct species, which, based on the principle of inheritance, tend to produce other new dominant species. Therefore, the large groups we see today, which usually include many dominant species, tend to grow indefinitely in size. I’ve also pointed out that from the varying descendants of each species trying to occupy as many different roles as possible in nature, there is a constant tendency for their characteristics to diverge. This conclusion is supported by observing the great diversity of life forms competing closely in any small area, as well as some facts related to naturalization.

I attempted also to show that there is a constant tendency in the forms which are increasing in number and diverging in character, to supplant and exterminate the less divergent, the less improved, and preceding forms. I request the reader to turn to the diagram illustrating the action, as formerly explained, of these several principles; and he will see that the inevitable result is that the modified descendants proceeding from one progenitor become broken up into groups subordinate to groups. In the diagram each letter on the uppermost line may represent a genus including several species; and all the genera on this line form together one class, for all have descended from one ancient but unseen parent, and, consequently, have inherited something in common. But the three genera on the left hand have, on this same principle, much in common, and form a sub-family, distinct from that including the next two genera on the right hand, which diverged from a common parent at the fifth stage of descent. These five genera have also much, though less, in common; and they form a family distinct from that including the three genera still further to the right hand, which diverged at a still earlier period. And all these genera, descended from (A), form an order distinct from the [413]genera descended from (I). So that we here have many species descended from a single progenitor grouped into genera; and the genera are included in, or subordinate to, sub-families, families, and orders, all united into one class. Thus, the grand fact in natural history of the subordination of group under group, which, from its familiarity, does not always sufficiently strike us, is in my judgment explained.

I also tried to show that there is a constant tendency for the forms that are increasing in number and varying in character to replace and eliminate the less varied, less advanced, and earlier forms. I ask the reader to look at the diagram that illustrates the action of these different principles, as explained earlier; and you will notice that the inevitable outcome is that the modified descendants from one ancestor get organized into groups that are subordinate to other groups. In the diagram, each letter on the top line can represent a genus that includes several species; and all the genera on this line together make up one class, as they all descended from one ancient but unseen ancestor, and therefore share something in common. However, the three genera on the left share much in common based on the same principle and form a sub-family, separate from the next two genera on the right, which branched off from a common ancestor at the fifth stage of descent. These five genera also share a lot, although less so, and they form a family distinct from the three genera that are even further to the right, which diverged from an even earlier ancestor. All these genera that descended from (A) create an order separate from the [413]genera descended from (I). So, here we have many species that descended from a single ancestor grouped into genera; and those genera are included in or subordinate to sub-families, families, and orders, all united into one class. Thus, the important fact in natural history of the organization of groups within groups, which might not always stand out due to its familiarity, is explained in my opinion.

Naturalists try to arrange the species, genera, and families in each class, on what is called the Natural System. But what is meant by this system? Some authors look at it merely as a scheme for arranging together those living objects which are most alike, and for separating those which are most unlike; or as an artificial means for enunciating, as briefly as possible, general propositions,—that is, by one sentence to give the characters common, for instance, to all mammals, by another those common to all carnivora, by another those common to the dog-genus, and then by adding a single sentence, a full description is given of each kind of dog. The ingenuity and utility of this system are indisputable. But many naturalists think that something more is meant by the Natural System; they believe that it reveals the plan of the Creator; but unless it be specified whether order in time or space, or what else is meant by the plan of the Creator, it seems to me that nothing is thus added to our knowledge. Such expressions as that famous one of Linnæus, and which we often meet with in a more or less concealed form, that the characters do not make the genus, but that the genus gives the characters, seem to imply that something more is included in our classification, than mere resemblance. I believe that something more is included; and that propinquity of descent,—the only known cause of the similarity of organic beings,—is the bond, hidden as it is by various degrees of [414]modification, which is partially revealed to us by our classifications.

Naturalists aim to organize species, genera, and families within each class according to what's known as the Natural System. But what does this system actually mean? Some authors see it simply as a way to group similar living things together and separate those that are very different, or as an artificial method to express general ideas as concisely as possible. For example, one sentence might describe traits common to all mammals, another for all carnivores, another for the dog genus, and a final sentence would give a full description of each dog breed. The cleverness and practicality of this system are undeniable. However, many naturalists believe that the Natural System implies something deeper; they think it reveals the Creator's plan. Yet, unless it is clarified whether this plan refers to order in time, space, or something else, I feel that it doesn't really add to our understanding. Phrases like the famous one from Linnaeus, which we often encounter in various forms, suggest that the traits do not define the genus, but rather, the genus defines the traits. This implies that our classification encompasses more than just similarities. I believe there is indeed more involved; the closeness of descent—the only known reason for the similarities among living beings—serves as the underlying connection, though it's obscured by different levels of modification, which our classifications partly reveal.

Let us now consider the rules followed in classification, and the difficulties which are encountered on the view that classification either gives some unknown plan of creation, or is simply a scheme for enunciating general propositions and of placing together the forms most like each other. It might have been thought (and was in ancient times thought) that those parts of the structure which determined the habits of life, and the general place of each being in the economy of nature, would be of very high importance in classification. Nothing can be more false. No one regards the external similarity of a mouse to a shrew, of a dugong to a whale, of a whale to a fish, as of any importance. These resemblances, though so intimately connected with the whole life of the being, are ranked as merely "adaptive or analogical characters;" but to the consideration of these resemblances we shall have to recur. It may even be given as a general rule, that the less any part of the organisation is concerned with special habits, the more important it becomes for classification. As an instance: Owen, in speaking of the dugong, says, "The generative organs being those which are most remotely related to the habits and food of an animal, I have always regarded as affording very clear indications of its true affinities. We are least likely in the modifications of these organs to mistake a merely adaptive for an essential character." So with plants, how remarkable it is that the organs of vegetation, on which their whole life depends, are of little signification, excepting in the first main divisions; whereas the organs of reproduction, with their product the seed, are of paramount importance!

Let’s now look at the rules for classification and the challenges that arise when we believe that classification either reveals an unknown creation plan or is just a way to state general ideas and group similar forms together. It may have been thought (and was believed in ancient times) that the structural parts that dictate life habits and an organism's role in nature would be very significant in classification. This idea is completely false. No one considers the external similarity of a mouse to a shrew, of a dugong to a whale, or of a whale to a fish as important. These resemblances, although closely tied to the whole life of the organism, are classified as merely "adaptive or analogical characters;" however, we will need to revisit these similarities later. A general rule can even be stated: the less involved any part of an organism's structure is with specific habits, the more important it is for classification. For example, Owen, when discussing the dugong, notes, "The reproductive organs, being the least connected to an animal’s habits and diet, have always seemed to me to provide very clear insights into its true relationships. We are least likely to confuse these organs’ modifications with a mere adaptive feature." The same applies to plants; it’s striking that the parts responsible for growth, which are essential for their entire life, are not very significant except in the primary categories, while the reproductive organs and their product, the seed, are of utmost importance!

We must not, therefore, in classifying, trust to resemblances in parts of the organisation, however important [415]they may be for the welfare of the being in relation to the outer world. Perhaps from this cause it has partly arisen, that almost all naturalists lay the greatest stress on resemblances in organs of high vital or physiological importance. No doubt this view of the classificatory importance of organs which are important is generally, but by no means always, true. But their importance for classification, I believe, depends on their greater constancy throughout large groups of species; and this constancy depends on such organs having generally been subjected to less change in the adaptation of the species to their conditions of life. That the mere physiological importance of an organ does not determine its classificatory value, is almost shown by the one fact, that in allied groups, in which the same organ, as we have every reason to suppose, has nearly the same physiological value, its classificatory value is widely different. No naturalist can have worked at any group without being struck with this fact; and it has been fully acknowledged in the writings of almost every author. It will suffice to quote the highest authority, Robert Brown, who in speaking of certain organs in the Proteaceæ, says their generic importance, "like that of all their parts, not only in this but, as I apprehend, in every natural family, is very unequal, and in some cases seems to be entirely lost." Again in another work he says, the genera of the Connaraceæ "differ in having one or more ovaria, in the existence or absence of albumen, in the imbricate or valvular æstivation. Any one of these characters singly is frequently of more than generic importance, though here even when all taken together they appear insufficient to separate Cnestis from Connarus." To give an example amongst insects, in one great division of the Hymenoptera, the antennæ, as Westwood has remarked, are most constant in structure; [416]in another division they differ much, and the differences are of quite subordinate value in classification; yet no one probably will say that the antennae in these two divisions of the same order are of unequal physiological importance. Any number of instances could be given of the varying importance for classification of the same important organ within the same group of beings.

We shouldn't rely on similarities in parts of an organism when classifying them, no matter how significant they might be for the organism's overall well-being in relation to the environment. This may be why many naturalists place such a strong emphasis on similarities in organs that have high vital or physiological significance. While it's true that important organs often have a major role in classification, this is generally the case, but not always. Their classification value seems to depend on their greater consistency across many species, and this consistency is typically due to these organs undergoing less change as the species adapt to their living conditions. The fact that an organ's physiological importance doesn't determine its classification value is highlighted by the observation that in related groups, where the same organ appears to have a similar physiological function, its classification value can vary greatly. Any naturalist who has studied any group has likely noticed this fact, which is recognized in various authors' writings. To cite a leading authority, Robert Brown mentions certain organs in the Proteaceae, stating their generic importance "like that of all their parts, not only in this but, as I understand, in every natural family, is very unequal and in some cases seems to be completely lost." In another work, he notes that the genera of the Connaraceae "differ by having one or more ovaries, the presence or absence of albumen, and the arrangement of the petals. Any one of these traits can often be more significant than generic level, yet even when all are considered, they still appear insufficient to separate Cnestis from Connarus." For an example among insects, in one major division of the Hymenoptera, the antennae, as Westwood pointed out, are very consistent in structure; in another division, they vary greatly, but those differences are less important for classification. However, it's unlikely anyone would argue that the antennae in these two divisions of the same order have unequal physiological importance. There are numerous examples of how the classification importance of the same vital organ can differ within the same group of organisms.

Again, no one will say that rudimentary or atrophied organs are of high physiological or vital importance; yet, undoubtedly, organs in this condition are often of high value in classification. No one will dispute that the rudimentary teeth in the upper jaws of young ruminants, and certain rudimentary bones of the leg, are highly serviceable in exhibiting the close affinity between Ruminants and Pachyderms. Robert Brown has strongly insisted on the fact that the rudimentary florets are of the highest importance in the classification of the Grasses.

Again, no one would argue that basic or underdeveloped organs are of great physiological or vital significance; however, it's clear that organs in this state are often very useful for classification. Nobody would contest that the underdeveloped teeth in the upper jaws of young ruminants, and some underdeveloped bones in the leg, are quite helpful in demonstrating the close relationship between Ruminants and Pachyderms. Robert Brown has strongly emphasized that the underdeveloped florets are extremely important for classifying Grasses.

Numerous instances could be given of characters derived from parts which must be considered of very trifling physiological importance, but which are universally admitted as highly serviceable in the definition of whole groups. For instance, whether or not there is an open passage from the nostrils to the mouth, the only character, according to Owen, which absolutely distinguishes fishes and reptiles—the inflection of the angle of the jaws in Marsupials—the manner in which the wings of insects are folded—mere colour in certain Algæ—mere pubescence on parts of the flower in grasses—the nature of the dermal covering, as hair or feathers, in the Vertebrata. If the Ornithorhynchus had been covered with feathers instead of hair, this external and trifling character would, I think, have been considered by naturalists as important an aid in determining the degree of affinity of this strange creature to [417]birds and reptiles, as an approach in structure in any one internal and important organ.

There are many examples of features that come from parts considered to be of little physiological significance but are widely recognized as very useful for defining entire groups. For instance, whether there’s a connection from the nostrils to the mouth, which is the only trait that, according to Owen, clearly separates fish from reptiles; the way the angle of the jaws is bent in marsupials; how insect wings are folded; just the color in some algae; simply the fuzziness on parts of the flower in grasses; or the type of skin covering, like hair or feathers, in vertebrates. If the platypus had been covered in feathers instead of hair, I believe this external and minor trait would have been seen by naturalists as a significant help in determining how closely related this unusual creature is to birds and reptiles, as much as any similarity in a key internal organ.

The importance, for classification, of trifling characters, mainly depends on their being correlated with several other characters of more or less importance. The value indeed of an aggregate of characters is very evident in natural history. Hence, as has often been remarked, a species may depart from its allies in several characters, both of high physiological importance and of almost universal prevalence, and yet leave us in no doubt where it should be ranked. Hence, also, it has been found, that a classification founded on any single character, however important that may be, has always failed; for no part of the organisation is universally constant. The importance of an aggregate of characters, even when none are important, alone explains, I think, that saying of Linnæus, that the characters do not give the genus, but the genus gives the characters; for this saying seems founded on an appreciation of many trifling points of resemblance, too slight to be defined. Certain plants, belonging to the Malpighiaceæ, bear perfect and degraded flowers; in the latter, as A. de Jussieu has remarked, "the greater number of the characters proper to the species, to the genus, to the family, to the class, disappear, and thus laugh at our classification." But when Aspicarpa produced in France, during several years, only degraded flowers, departing so wonderfully in a number of the most important points of structure from the proper type of the order, yet M. Richard sagaciously saw, as Jussieu observes, that this genus should still be retained amongst the Malpighiaceæ. This case seems to me well to illustrate the spirit with which our classifications are sometimes necessarily founded.

The importance of minor characteristics for classification mainly relies on how they connect with various other traits of more or less significance. The value of a set of traits is very clear in natural history. Thus, as has often been noted, a species can diverge from its relatives in several traits, some of which are highly physiologically important and widely prevalent, yet we have no doubt about where it falls in classification. It's also been shown that any classification based on a single trait, no matter how significant, always fails; no part of an organism is universally consistent. The significance of a collection of traits, even when none are particularly important, explains, I believe, the saying of Linnaeus that "the traits do not define the genus, but the genus defines the traits." This idea seems to stem from recognizing many minor points of similarity that are too subtle to clearly define. Certain plants from the Malpighiaceae family produce both perfect and degraded flowers; in the latter, as A. de Jussieu noted, "most traits specific to the species, genus, family, and class disappear, laughing at our classification." However, when Aspicarpa consistently produced only degraded flowers in France over several years, diverging significantly in various crucial structural aspects from the true type of the order, M. Richard wisely concluded, as Jussieu points out, that this genus should still remain classified within the Malpighiaceae. This instance illustrates to me the spirit behind which our classifications are sometimes necessarily constructed.

Practically when naturalists are at work, they do [418]not trouble themselves about the physiological value of the characters which they use in defining a group, or in allocating any particular species. If they find a character nearly uniform, and common to a great number of forms, and not common to others, they use it as one of high value; if common to some lesser number, they use it as of subordinate value. This principle has been broadly confessed by some naturalists to be the true one; and by none more clearly than by that excellent botanist, Aug. St. Hilaire. If certain characters are always found correlated with others, though no apparent bond of connexion can be discovered between them, especial value is set on them. As in most groups of animals, important organs, such as those for propelling the blood, or for aërating it, or those for propagating the race, are found nearly uniform, they are considered as highly serviceable in classification; but in some groups of animals all these, the most important vital organs, are found to offer characters of quite subordinate value.

When naturalists are working, they usually don't worry about the physiological significance of the traits they use to define a group or classify a specific species. If they find a trait that is mostly consistent and common among many forms, but not found in others, they consider it highly valuable. If it's common to fewer forms, they see it as less important. Some naturalists have openly acknowledged this principle as valid, especially the notable botanist Aug. St. Hilaire. If certain traits are always associated with others, even if there's no clear link between them, they are given special importance. For most animal groups, key organs like those that circulate blood, oxygenate it, or aid in reproduction tend to be quite uniform, making them very useful for classification. However, in some animal groups, even these vital organs can provide traits that are considered much less significant.

We can see why characters derived from the embryo should be of equal importance with those derived from the adult, for our classifications of course include all ages of each species. But it is by no means obvious, on the ordinary view, why the structure of the embryo should be more important for this purpose than that of the adult, which alone plays its full part in the economy of nature. Yet it has been strongly urged by those great naturalists, Milne Edwards and Agassiz, that embryonic characters are the most important of any in the classification of animals; and this doctrine has very generally been admitted as true. The same fact holds good with flowering plants, of which the two main divisions have been founded on characters derived from the embryo,—on the number and position of the [419]embryonic leaves or cotyledons, and on the mode of development of the plumule and radicle. In our discussion on embryology, we shall see why such characters are so valuable, on the view of classification tacitly including the idea of descent.

We can see why traits from the embryo should be just as important as those from the adult since our classifications naturally include all ages of each species. However, it's not immediately clear why the embryo's structure should be considered more important for this purpose than that of the adult, which plays its full role in nature. Yet, prominent naturalists like Milne Edwards and Agassiz have strongly argued that embryonic traits are the most crucial in classifying animals, and this idea has largely been accepted as true. The same applies to flowering plants, where the two main divisions are based on characteristics derived from the embryo—specifically, the number and position of the [419]embryonic leaves or cotyledons, and the way the plumule and radicle develop. In our discussion on embryology, we will explore why such traits are so valuable, considering that classification implicitly includes the concept of descent.

Our classifications are often plainly influenced by chains of affinities. Nothing can be easier than to define a number of characters common to all birds; but in the case of crustaceans, such definition has hitherto been found impossible. There are crustaceans at the opposite ends of the series, which have hardly a character in common; yet the species at both ends, from being plainly allied to others, and these to others, and so onwards, can be recognised as unequivocally belonging to this, and to no other class of the Articulata.

Our classifications are often clearly influenced by connections between related species. It's easy to define several characteristics that all birds share; however, doing the same for crustaceans has been impossible so far. There are crustaceans at both extremes of the series that barely share any characteristics; yet, the species at both ends are clearly linked to others, and those to more, and so on, making it easy to recognize them as definitely belonging to this class, and not to any other class of the Articulata.

Geographical distribution has often been used, though perhaps not quite logically, in classification, more especially in very large groups of closely allied forms. Temminck insists on the utility or even necessity of this practice in certain groups of birds; and it has been followed by several entomologists and botanists.

Geographical distribution has often been used, though perhaps not very logically, in classification, especially in large groups of closely related forms. Temminck emphasizes the usefulness or even necessity of this practice in certain groups of birds; and it has been adopted by several entomologists and botanists.

Finally, with respect to the comparative value of the various groups of species, such as orders, sub-orders, families, sub-families, and genera, they seem to be, at least at present, almost arbitrary. Several of the best botanists, such as Mr. Bentham and others, have strongly insisted on their arbitrary value. Instances could be given amongst plants and insects, of a group of forms, first ranked by practised naturalists as only a genus, and then raised to the rank of a sub-family or family; and this has been done, not because further research has detected important structural differences, at first overlooked, but because numerous allied species, with slightly different grades of difference, have been subsequently discovered. [420]

Finally, regarding the comparative value of the different groups of species, such as orders, sub-orders, families, sub-families, and genera, they appear to be, at least for now, almost arbitrary. Several leading botanists, like Mr. Bentham and others, have strongly argued for their arbitrary nature. Examples can be found among plants and insects, where a group of forms was initially classified by experienced naturalists as just a genus, and later promoted to a sub-family or family. This change was not due to new research revealing significant structural differences that were initially missed, but because many related species, showing slight variations, have been discovered afterward. [420]

All the foregoing rules and aids and difficulties in classification are explained, if I do not greatly deceive myself, on the view that the natural system is founded on descent with modification; that the characters which naturalists consider as showing true affinity between any two or more species, are those which have been inherited from a common parent, and, in so far, all true classification is genealogical; that community of descent is the hidden bond which naturalists have been unconsciously seeking, and not some unknown plan of creation, or the enunciation of general propositions, and the mere putting together and separating objects more or less alike.

All the rules, tools, and challenges in classification explained above arise from the idea that the natural system is based on descent with modification. The traits that naturalists regard as indicating a true connection between two or more species are those inherited from a common ancestor. Therefore, all genuine classification is genealogical. The shared descent is the underlying link that naturalists have been searching for, rather than an unknown design of creation or the formulation of general principles, along with simply grouping and separating objects that have some similarities.

But I must explain my meaning more fully. I believe that the arrangement of the groups within each class, in due subordination and relation to the other groups, must be strictly genealogical in order to be natural; but that the amount of difference in the several branches or groups, though allied in the same degree in blood to their common progenitor, may differ greatly, being due to the different degrees of modification which they have undergone; and this is expressed by the forms being ranked under different genera, families, sections, or orders. The reader will best understand what is meant, if he will take the trouble of referring to the diagram in the fourth chapter. We will suppose the letters A to L to represent allied genera, which lived during the Silurian epoch, and these have descended from a species which existed at an unknown anterior period. Species of three of these genera (A, F, and I) have transmitted modified descendants to the present day, represented by the fifteen genera (a14 to z14) on the uppermost horizontal line. Now all these modified descendants from a single species, are represented as related in blood or descent to the same [421]degree; they may metaphorically be called cousins to the same millionth degree; yet they differ widely and in different degrees from each other. The forms descended from A, now broken up into two or three families, constitute a distinct order from those descended from I, also broken up into two families. Nor can the existing species, descended from A, be ranked in the same genus with the parent A; or those from I, with the parent I. But the existing genus F14 may be supposed to have been but slightly modified; and it will then rank with the parent-genus F; just as some few still living organic beings belong to Silurian genera. So that the amount or value of the differences between organic beings all related to each other in the same degree in blood, has come to be widely different. Nevertheless their genealogical arrangement remains strictly true, not only at the present time, but at each successive period of descent. All the modified descendants from A will have inherited something in common from their common parent, as will all the descendants from I; so will it be with each subordinate branch of descendants, at each successive period. If, however, we choose to suppose that any of the descendants of A or of I have been so much modified as to have more or less completely lost traces of their parentage, in this case, their places in a natural classification will have been more or less completely lost,—as sometimes seems to have occurred with existing organisms. All the descendants of the genus F, along its whole line of descent, are supposed to have been but little modified, and they yet form a single genus. But this genus, though much isolated, will still occupy its proper intermediate position; for F originally was intermediate in character between A and I, and the several genera descended from these two genera will [422]have inherited to a certain extent their characters. This natural arrangement is shown, as far as is possible on paper, in the diagram, but in much too simple a manner. If a branching diagram had not been used, and only the names of the groups had been written in a linear series, it would have been still less possible to have given a natural arrangement; and it is notoriously not possible to represent in a series, on a flat surface, the affinities which we discover in nature amongst the beings of the same group. Thus, on the view which I hold, the natural system is genealogical in its arrangement, like a pedigree; but the degrees of modification which the different groups have undergone, have to be expressed by ranking them under different so-called genera, sub-families, families, sections, orders, and classes.

But I need to explain my point more clearly. I think that the organization of the groups within each class, in proper order and relation to the other groups, has to be strictly genealogical to be natural. However, the degree of difference among the various branches or groups, while being equally related by blood to their common ancestor, can vary greatly because of different levels of change they have gone through. This is shown by classifying them under different genera, families, sections, or orders. The reader will understand this better if they refer to the diagram in the fourth chapter. Let’s assume letters A to L represent related genera that existed during the Silurian period, which descended from a species that lived in an unknown earlier time. Species from three of these genera (A, F, and I) have passed on modified descendants to the present day, shown by the fifteen genera (a14 to z14) on the top horizontal line. All these modified descendants from a single species are shown as related in blood or descent to the same degree; they could metaphorically be called cousins to the same millionth degree; yet they vary widely and to different extents from each other. The forms descending from A, which are now split into two or three families, make up a distinct order compared to those descended from I, which are also divided into two families. Furthermore, current species from A cannot be classified in the same genus as parent A; nor can those from I be classified with parent I. However, the existing genus F14 is thought to have been only slightly modified, and it will therefore be classified with parent genus F, similar to some few still living organisms belonging to Silurian genera. Thus, the extent or significance of differences among organisms that are all equally related by blood has varied widely. Yet their genealogical organization remains strictly accurate, not just now, but at every stage of descent. All modified descendants from A will have inherited something in common from their common ancestor, as will all the descendants from I; and this will hold true for each subordinate branch of descendants at every subsequent period. If, however, we consider that some descendants of A or I have been so much modified that they have lost most or all traces of their ancestry, in this case, their positions in a natural classification will have been more or less completely lost— as sometimes seems to happen with existing organisms. All the descendants of genus F, through its entire lineage, are believed to have been only slightly modified, and they still form a single genus. This genus, though quite isolated, will maintain its proper spot in the hierarchy; since F originally had characteristics that were in between A and I, the various genera descended from these two will have retained some of those traits. This natural arrangement is illustrated, to the extent that it's possible on paper, in the diagram, though it is presented in a much too simplistic way. If a branching diagram hadn't been used, and only the names of the groups had been listed in a straight line, it would have been even less possible to depict a natural arrangement; and it's well-known that it's not feasible to represent the relationships we find in nature among beings of the same group on a flat surface. Therefore, according to my view, the natural system has a genealogical arrangement, similar to a family tree; but the levels of change that different groups have undergone need to be represented by ranking them under different so-called genera, sub-families, families, sections, orders, and classes.

It may be worth while to illustrate this view of classification, by taking the case of languages. If we possessed a perfect pedigree of mankind, a genealogical arrangement of the races of man would afford the best classification of the various languages now spoken throughout the world; and if all extinct languages, and all intermediate and slowly changing dialects, had to be included, such an arrangement would, I think, be the only possible one. Yet it might be that some very ancient language had altered little, and had given rise to few new languages, whilst others (owing to the spreading and subsequent isolation and states of civilisation of the several races, descended from a common race) had altered much, and had given rise to many new languages and dialects. The various degrees of difference in the languages from the same stock, would have to be expressed by groups subordinate to groups; but the proper or even only possible arrangement would still be genealogical; and this would be strictly natural, as [423]it would connect together all languages, extinct and modern, by the closest affinities, and would give the filiation and origin of each tongue.

It might be useful to illustrate this perspective on classification by considering languages. If we had a complete family tree of humanity, organizing the races of people would provide the best way to classify the various languages spoken around the globe today. Including all extinct languages and the many dialects that have slowly evolved would make this arrangement, I believe, the only feasible one. However, it’s possible that some very ancient languages have changed little and have led to few new languages, while others—due to the expansion and later isolation of various peoples descended from a common ancestry—have changed significantly and produced many new languages and dialects. The different degrees of variation among languages from the same origin would need to be categorized in subordinate groups; nevertheless, the most appropriate or even sole viable arrangement would still be genealogical. This would be utterly natural, as it would link all languages, both extinct and modern, by their closest relationships and reveal the lineage and origins of each language.

In confirmation of this view, let us glance at the classification of varieties, which are believed or known to have descended from one species. These are grouped under species, with sub-varieties under varieties; and with our domestic productions, several other grades of difference are requisite, as we have seen with pigeons. The origin of the existence of groups subordinate to groups, is the same with varieties as with species, namely, closeness of descent with various degrees of modification. Nearly the same rules are followed in classifying varieties, as with species. Authors have insisted on the necessity of classing varieties on a natural instead of an artificial system; we are cautioned, for instance, not to class two varieties of the pine-apple together, merely because their fruit, though the most important part, happens to be nearly identical; no one puts the swedish and common turnips together, though the esculent and thickened stems are so similar. Whatever part is found to be most constant, is used in classing varieties: thus the great agriculturist Marshall says the horns are very useful for this purpose with cattle, because they are less variable than the shape or colour of the body, &c.; whereas with sheep the horns are much less serviceable, because less constant. In classing varieties, I apprehend if we had a real pedigree, a genealogical classification would be universally preferred; and it has been attempted by some authors. For we might feel sure, whether there had been more or less modification, the principle of inheritance would keep the forms together which were allied in the greatest number of points. In tumbler pigeons, though some sub-varieties differ from the others [424]in the important character of having a longer beak, yet all are kept together from having the common habit of tumbling; but the short-faced breed has nearly or quite lost this habit; nevertheless, without any reasoning or thinking on the subject, these tumblers are kept in the same group, because allied in blood and alike in some other respects. If it could be proved that the Hottentot had descended from the Negro, I think he would be classed under the Negro group, however much he might differ in colour and other important characters from negroes.

To support this idea, let’s take a look at how varieties are categorized, which are thought to have come from a single species. These are organized under species, with sub-varieties falling under varieties; and along with our domesticated products, we need several other levels of difference, as we've seen with pigeons. The reason for having groups within groups is the same for varieties as it is for species, which is the closeness of descent with various degrees of change. The guidelines for classifying varieties are similar to those for species. Authors emphasize the importance of classifying varieties using a natural system rather than an artificial one; for example, we should avoid grouping two varieties of pineapples together just because their fruit, which is the most significant part, happens to be very similar. No one would group Swedish and common turnips together, even though the edible and thickened stems are quite alike. The most consistent feature is used for classifying varieties: for instance, the prominent agriculturist Marshall notes that horns are very helpful for this purpose with cattle, since they are less variable than the shape or color of the body, etc.; however, with sheep, horns are much less useful for classification because they are less reliable. When it comes to classifying varieties, I believe that if we had an actual pedigree, a genealogical classification would be favored universally; this has been attempted by some authors. We could be confident that, regardless of the degree of modification, the principle of inheritance would keep together the forms that are most closely related. In tumbler pigeons, even though some sub-varieties differ from others in the important feature of having a longer beak, they are all classified together because they share the common behavior of tumbling; yet the short-faced breed has nearly or completely lost this habit. Still, without any reasoning or thought on the matter, these tumblers are grouped together because they are related by blood and share some other traits. If it could be shown that the Hottentot descended from the Negro, I believe he would be classified within the Negro group, no matter how much he might differ in color and other significant characteristics from Negroes.

With species in a state of nature, every naturalist has in fact brought descent into his classification; for he includes in his lowest grade, or that of a species, the two sexes; and how enormously these sometimes differ in the most important characters, is known to every naturalist: scarcely a single fact can be predicated in common of the males and hermaphrodites of certain cirripedes, when adult, and yet no one dreams of separating them. The naturalist includes as one species the several larval stages of the same individual, however much they may differ from each other and from the adult; as he likewise includes the so-called alternate generations of Steenstrup, which can only in a technical sense be considered as the same individual. He includes monsters; he includes varieties, not solely because they closely resemble the parent-form, but because they are descended from it. He who believes that the cowslip is descended from the primrose, or conversely, ranks them together as a single species, and gives a single definition. As soon as three Orchidean forms (Monochanthus, Myanthus, and Catasetum), which had previously been ranked as three distinct genera, were known to be sometimes produced on the same spike, they were immediately included as a single species. [425]

With species in their natural state, every naturalist has actually incorporated descent into their classification; they include both sexes in the lowest category, or that of a species, and it's well-known to every naturalist how significantly these can differ in key traits. There’s hardly a single fact that holds true for the males and hermaphrodites of certain barnacles when they’re adults, yet no one thinks to separate them. The naturalist also classifies all the larval stages of the same individual as one species, no matter how different they are from each other and from the adult. Similarly, the so-called alternate generations identified by Steenstrup can only be considered the same individual in a technical sense. They include anomalies; they include varieties, not just because they closely resemble the parent form, but because they are descended from it. Anyone who believes that the cowslip comes from the primrose, or vice versa, groups them as a single species and provides a single definition. As soon as three orchid forms (Monochanthus, Myanthus, and Catasetum), which had previously been considered three distinct genera, were found to sometimes appear on the same spike, they were instantly grouped as one species. [425]

As descent has universally been used in classing together the individuals of the same species, though the males and females and larvæ are sometimes extremely different; and as it has been used in classing varieties which have undergone a certain, and sometimes a considerable amount of modification, may not this same element of descent have been unconsciously used in grouping species under genera, and genera under higher groups, though in these cases the modification has been greater in degree, and has taken a longer time to complete? I believe it has thus been unconsciously used; and only thus can I understand the several rules and guides which have been followed by our best systematists. We have no written pedigrees; we have to make out community of descent by resemblances of any kind. Therefore we choose those characters which, as far as we can judge, are the least likely to have been modified in relation to the conditions of life to which each species has been recently exposed. Rudimentary structures on this view are as good as, or even sometimes better than, other parts of the organisation. We care not how trifling a character may be—let it be the mere inflection of the angle of the jaw, the manner in which an insect's wing is folded, whether the skin be covered by hair or feathers—if it prevail throughout many and different species, especially those having very different habits of life, it assumes high value; for we can account for its presence in so many forms with such different habits, only by its inheritance from a common parent. We may err in this respect in regard to single points of structure, but when several characters, let them be ever so trifling, occur together throughout a large group of beings having different habits, we may feel almost sure, on the theory of descent, that these characters have been inherited from a common ancestor. [426]And we know that such correlated or aggregated characters have especial value in classification.

Since descent has always been used to categorize individuals of the same species, even when males, females, and larvae can be extremely different, and since it's also been used to classify varieties that have undergone varying degrees of modification, could it be that this same concept of descent has been unconsciously applied to group species into genera and genera into broader categories, even though the modifications in these cases are greater and take longer to develop? I believe it has been used in this way; this is the only way I can make sense of the various rules and guidelines followed by our top systematists. We don't have written family trees; we have to determine shared descent through any observable similarities. Thus, we select traits that, as far as we can tell, are least likely to have changed due to the life conditions each species has recently faced. In this view, rudimentary structures are as valuable as, or sometimes even more valuable than, other parts of the organism. We don't mind how trivial a trait might seem—whether it's the slight angle of the jaw, the way an insect folds its wing, or if the skin is covered with hair or feathers—if it is consistently found across many different species, especially those with very different lifestyles, it gains significant importance. We can only explain its occurrence among so many forms with such diverse habits by tracing it back to a common ancestor. We might make mistakes regarding individual structural points, but when multiple traits, no matter how minor, appear together across a large group of beings with different lifestyles, we can feel fairly confident, based on the theory of descent, that these traits have been inherited from a common ancestor. [426]Additionally, we understand that such related or grouped traits hold special value in classification.

We can understand why a species or a group of species may depart, in several of its most important characteristics, from its allies, and yet be safely classed with them. This may be safely done, and is often done, as long as a sufficient number of characters, let them be ever so unimportant, betrays the hidden bond of community of descent. Let two forms have not a single character in common, yet if these extreme forms are connected together by a chain of intermediate groups, we may at once infer their community of descent, and we put them all into the same class. As we find organs of high physiological importance—those which serve to preserve life under the most diverse conditions of existence—are generally the most constant, we attach especial value to them; but if these same organs, in another group or section of a group, are found to differ much, we at once value them less in our classification. We shall hereafter, I think, clearly see why embryological characters are of such high classificatory importance. Geographical distribution may sometimes be brought usefully into play in classing large and widely-distributed genera, because all the species of the same genus, inhabiting any distinct and isolated region, have in all probability descended from the same parents.

We can see why a species or group of species might differ significantly in some of their main characteristics from their relatives, yet still be grouped with them. This can be done safely and is often the case, as long as there are enough characteristics, no matter how trivial, that reveal a shared ancestry. Let’s say two forms have no traits in common; if these extreme forms are connected by a series of intermediate groups, we can immediately infer their shared ancestry, and we categorize them all together. We note that organs of high physiological importance—those that help preserve life under various conditions—are usually the most consistent, so we place significant value on them. However, if these same organs differ greatly in another group or section, we give them less weight in our classification. Later, I believe we will clearly understand why embryological traits are so crucial for classification. Geographical distribution can also be useful when classifying large and widely distributed genera, because all species within the same genus that inhabit a specific and isolated region probably share the same ancestors.

We can understand, on these views, the very important distinction between real affinities and analogical or adaptive resemblances. Lamarck first called attention to this distinction, and he has been ably followed by Macleay and others. The resemblance, in the shape of the body and in the fin-like anterior limbs, between the dugong, which is a pachydermatous animal, and the whale, and between both these mammals and fishes, is analogical. Amongst insects there are innumerable [427]instances: thus Linnæus, misled by external appearances, actually classed an homopterous insect as a moth. We see something of the same kind even in our domestic varieties, as in the thickened stems of the common and swedish turnip. The resemblance of the greyhound and racehorse is hardly more fanciful than the analogies which have been drawn by some authors between very distinct animals. On my view of characters being of real importance for classification, only in so far as they reveal descent, we can clearly understand why analogical or adaptive character, although of the utmost importance to the welfare of the being, are almost valueless to the systematist. For animals, belonging to two most distinct lines of descent, may readily become adapted to similar conditions, and thus assume a close external resemblance; but such resemblances will not reveal—will rather tend to conceal their blood-relationship to their proper lines of descent. We can also understand the apparent paradox, that the very same characters are analogical when one class or order is compared with another, but give true affinities when the members of the same class or order are compared one with another: thus the shape of the body and fin-like limbs are only analogical when whales are compared with fishes, being adaptations in both classes for swimming through the water; but the shape of the body and fin-like limbs serve as characters exhibiting true affinity between the several members of the whale family; for these cetaceans agree in so many characters, great and small, that we cannot doubt that they have inherited their general shape of body and structure of limbs from a common ancestor. So it is with fishes.

We can understand, based on these views, the important difference between real connections and analogical or adaptive similarities. Lamarck was the first to point out this distinction, and Macleay and others have built on his ideas. The resemblance in body shape and fin-like front limbs between the dugong, which is a thick-skinned animal, and the whale, as well as between these mammals and fish, is analogical. There are countless examples among insects: for instance, Linnæus was misled by external appearances and mistakenly classified a homopterous insect as a moth. We see something similar in our domestic varieties, like the thickened stems of common and Swedish turnips. The similarities between greyhounds and racehorses are hardly more fanciful than the analogies some authors have drawn between very different animals. From my perspective, where characters are truly important for classification only insofar as they indicate descent, we can clearly see why analogical or adaptive traits, while crucial for the survival of the organism, are nearly useless to someone trying to classify them. Animals from two very distinct lines of descent can easily adapt to similar conditions and thus look very similar on the outside; however, these similarities don’t reveal their actual blood relationships within their lines of descent and may even hide them. We can also understand the seeming paradox that the same traits are analogical when comparing one class or order with another, but show real connections when comparing members of the same class or order. For example, the shape of the body and fin-like limbs are only analogical when whales are compared to fish, as these adaptations in both classes are for swimming in water. However, the shape of the body and fin-like limbs serve as characteristics showing true connection among the various members of the whale family; these cetaceans share so many features, both large and small, that it’s clear they inherited their general shape and limb structure from a common ancestor. The same goes for fish.

As members of distinct classes have often been adapted by successive slight modifications to live under nearly similar circumstances,—to inhabit for instance [428]the three elements of land, air, and water,—we can perhaps understand how it is that a numerical parallelism has sometimes been observed between the sub-groups in distinct classes. A naturalist, struck by a parallelism of this nature in any one class, by arbitrarily raising or sinking the value of the groups in other classes (and all our experience shows that this valuation has hitherto been arbitrary), could easily extend the parallelism over a wide range; and thus the septenary, quinary, quaternary, and ternary classifications have probably arisen.

As members of different classes have often been adjusted through small changes to thrive in almost the same environments—like living in land, air, and water—we can possibly understand why a numerical similarity has sometimes been noticed between sub-groups in different classes. A naturalist, noticing this type of similarity in a specific class, could easily broaden the comparison across other classes by arbitrarily increasing or decreasing the value of the groups (and all our experience shows that this valuation has been arbitrary so far). This is likely how the sevenfold, fivefold, fourfold, and threefold classifications have come about.

As the modified descendants of dominant species, belonging to the larger genera, tend to inherit the advantages, which made the groups to which they belong large and their parents dominant, they are almost sure to spread widely, and to seize on more and more places in the economy of nature. The larger and more dominant groups thus tend to go on increasing in size; and they consequently supplant many smaller and feebler groups. Thus we can account for the fact that all organisms, recent and extinct, are included under a few great orders, under still fewer classes, and all in one great natural system. As showing how few the higher groups are in number, and how widely spread they are throughout the world, the fact is striking, that the discovery of Australia has not added a single insect belonging to a new class; and that in the vegetable kingdom, as I learn from Dr. Hooker, it has added only two or three orders of small size.

As the modified descendants of dominant species from larger genera tend to inherit the advantages that made their groups large and their parents dominant, they are almost guaranteed to spread widely and take over more places in the ecosystem. As a result, the larger and more dominant groups continue to grow in size, pushing out many smaller, weaker groups. This explains why all organisms, both recent and extinct, fit into a few major orders, even fewer classes, all within one overarching natural system. To illustrate how few the higher groups are and how widely they’re spread around the world, it’s notable that the discovery of Australia hasn’t introduced any insects from a new class and, according to Dr. Hooker, has only added two or three small orders in the plant kingdom.

In the chapter on geological succession I attempted to show, on the principle of each group having generally diverged much in character during the long-continued process of modification, how it is that the more ancient forms of life often present characters in some slight degree intermediate between existing groups. A few [429]old and intermediate parent-forms having occasionally transmitted to the present day descendants but little modified, will give to us our so-called osculant or aberrant groups. The more aberrant any form is, the greater must be the number of connecting forms which on my theory have been exterminated and utterly lost. And we have some evidence of aberrant forms having suffered severely from extinction, for they are generally represented by extremely few species; and such species as do occur are generally very distinct from each other, which again implies extinction. The genera Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren, for example, would not have been less aberrant had each been represented by a dozen species instead of by a single one; but such richness in species, as I find after some investigation, does not commonly fall to the lot of aberrant genera. We can, I think, account for this fact only by looking at aberrant forms as failing groups conquered by more successful competitors, with a few members preserved by some unusual coincidence of favourable circumstances.

In the chapter on geological succession, I tried to explain that each group of organisms has generally evolved quite differently over a long period. This helps us understand why older forms of life often display traits that are somewhat intermediate between existing groups. Occasionally, some old and intermediate parent forms have passed down descendants to today that have changed very little, which gives us what we call osculant or aberrant groups. The more unusual a form is, the more connecting forms, according to my theory, must have been wiped out and completely lost. We have evidence that aberrant forms have been heavily impacted by extinction, as they are typically represented by very few species; and when such species do exist, they are usually quite distinct from one another, which also suggests extinction. For example, the genera Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren wouldn’t be any less unusual if each had a dozen species instead of just one; however, my research shows that aberrant genera rarely have that kind of species richness. I believe we can explain this by viewing aberrant forms as groups that have struggled against more successful competitors, with only a few members surviving due to some rare combination of favorable conditions.

Mr. Waterhouse has remarked that, when a member belonging to one group of animals exhibits an affinity to a quite distinct group, this affinity in most cases is general and not special: thus, according to Mr. Waterhouse, of all Rodents, the bizcacha is most nearly related to Marsupials; but in the points in which it approaches this order, its relations are general, and not to any one marsupial species more than to another. As the points of affinity of the bizcacha to Marsupials are believed to be real and not merely adaptive, they are due on my theory to inheritance in common. Therefore we must suppose either that all Rodents, including the bizcacha, branched off from some very ancient Marsupial, which will have had a character in some degree intermediate with respect to all existing Marsupials; or [430]that both Rodents and Marsupials branched off from a common progenitor, and that both groups have since undergone much modification in divergent directions. On either view we may suppose that the bizcacha has retained, by inheritance, more of the character of its ancient progenitor than have other Rodents; and therefore it will not be specially related to any one existing Marsupial, but indirectly to all or nearly all Marsupials, from having partially retained the character of their common progenitor, or of an early member of the group. On the other hand, of all Marsupials, as Mr. Waterhouse has remarked, the phascolomys resembles most nearly, not any one species, but the general order of Rodents. In this case, however, it may be strongly suspected that the resemblance is only analogical, owing to the phascolomys having become adapted to habits like those of a Rodent. The elder De Candolle has made nearly similar observations on the general nature of the affinities of distinct orders of plants.

Mr. Waterhouse has noted that when an animal from one group shows a connection to a completely different group, this connection is usually general rather than specific. For instance, Mr. Waterhouse states that among all Rodents, the bizcacha is most closely related to Marsupials; however, the connection it has with this group is general and not specifically tied to any single marsupial species more than another. Since the similarities between the bizcacha and Marsupials are thought to be genuine rather than just an adaptation, I believe they stem from a common inheritance. Therefore, we must consider either that all Rodents, including the bizcacha, evolved from a very ancient Marsupial that had characteristics somewhat intermediate to all existing Marsupials; or that both Rodents and Marsupials descended from a common ancestor, with both groups significantly diverging over time. In either case, we can assume that the bizcacha has preserved, through inheritance, more traits of its ancient ancestor than other Rodents have; hence, it won't be specifically related to any one existing Marsupial but rather indirectly related to all or nearly all Marsupials, because it has partially retained characteristics of their common ancestor or an early member of that group. On the other hand, among all Marsupials, as Mr. Waterhouse pointed out, the phascolomys resembles not just one species but the overall order of Rodents. However, in this instance, it’s likely that the resemblance is only analogical, due to the phascolomys adapting to a lifestyle similar to that of a Rodent. The elder De Candolle has made similar observations about the general nature of affinities among different plant orders.

On the principle of the multiplication and gradual divergence in character of the species descended from a common parent, together with their retention by inheritance of some characters in common, we can understand the excessively complex and radiating affinities by which all the members of the same family or higher group are connected together. For the common parent of a whole family of species, now broken up by extinction into distinct groups and sub-groups, will have transmitted some of its characters, modified in various ways and degrees, to all; and the several species will consequently be related to each other by circuitous lines of affinity of various lengths (as may be seen in the diagram so often referred to), mounting up through many predecessors. As it is difficult to show the blood-relationship between the numerous kindred [431]of any ancient and noble family, even by the aid of a genealogical tree, and almost impossible to do this without this aid, we can understand the extraordinary difficulty which naturalists have experienced in describing, without the aid of a diagram, the various affinities which they perceive between the many living and extinct members of the same great natural class.

On the principle of the multiplication and gradual divergence in character of the species that descended from a common ancestor, along with their inheritance of some shared traits, we can understand the incredibly complex and wide-ranging connections that link all members of the same family or higher group. The common ancestor of an entire family of species, now divided into distinct groups and sub-groups due to extinction, will have passed on some of its traits, modified in various ways and to different extents, to all; as a result, the different species will be related to each other through indirect lines of connection of varying lengths (as shown in the diagram frequently referenced), stretching back through many predecessors. Since it is challenging to demonstrate the blood relationships among the numerous relatives of any ancient and noble family, even with the help of a family tree, and almost impossible to do this without such assistance, we can appreciate the extraordinary difficulty that naturalists have faced in describing, without the use of a diagram, the various connections they observe between the many living and extinct members of the same large natural class.

Extinction, as we have seen in the fourth chapter, has played an important part in defining and widening the intervals between the several groups in each class. We may thus account even for the distinctness of whole classes from each other—for instance, of birds from all other vertebrate animals—by the belief that many ancient forms of life have been utterly lost, through which the early progenitors of birds were formerly connected with the early progenitors of the other vertebrate classes. There has been less entire extinction of the forms of life which once connected fishes with batrachians. There has been still less in some other classes, as in that of the Crustacea, for here the most wonderfully diverse forms are still tied together by a long, but broken, chain of affinities. Extinction has only separated groups: it has by no means made them; for if every form which has ever lived on this earth were suddenly to reappear, though it would be quite impossible to give definitions by which each group could be distinguished from other groups, as all would blend together by steps as fine as those between the finest existing varieties, nevertheless a natural classification, or at least a natural arrangement, would be possible. We shall see this by turning to the diagram: the letters, A to L, may represent eleven Silurian genera, some of which have produced large groups of modified descendants. Every intermediate link between these eleven genera and their primordial parent, and every [432]intermediate link in each branch and sub-branch of their descendants, may be supposed to be still alive; and the links to be as fine as those between the finest varieties. In this case it would be quite impossible to give any definition by which the several members of the several groups could be distinguished from their more immediate parents; or these parents from their ancient and unknown progenitor. Yet the natural arrangement in the diagram would still hold good; and, on the principle of inheritance, all the forms descended from A, or from I, would have something in common. In a tree we can specify this or that branch, though at the actual fork the two unite and blend together. We could not, as I have said, define the several groups; but we could pick out types, or forms, representing most of the characters of each group, whether large or small, and thus give a general idea of the value of the differences between them. This is what we should be driven to, if we were ever to succeed in collecting all the forms in any class which have lived throughout all time and space. We shall certainly never succeed in making so perfect a collection: nevertheless, in certain classes, we are tending in this direction; and Milne Edwards has lately insisted, in an able paper, on the high importance of looking to types, whether or not we can separate and define the groups to which such types belong.

Extinction, as we discussed in the fourth chapter, has been significant in shaping and expanding the gaps between different groups within each class. This helps us understand why some classes are so distinct from one another—for example, birds compared to all other vertebrates—because many ancient life forms have been completely lost, cutting off the early ancestors of birds from those of other vertebrate classes. The extinction of forms that once linked fish to amphibians has been less complete. Even less so in other classes, like Crustacea, where a stunning variety of forms are still connected by a long, though broken, chain of relationships. Extinction has only separated groups; it hasn't created them. If every form of life that has ever existed were to suddenly reappear, it would be impossible to define each group distinctly, as they would all merge together with gradations as subtle as those between the finest existing varieties. Still, a natural classification, or at least a natural arrangement, would be achievable. Looking at the diagram, the letters A to L can represent eleven Silurian genera, some of which have led to large groups of modified descendants. Every intermediate link between these eleven genera and their original ancestor, and every intermediate link in each branch and sub-branch of their descendants, could be imagined as still alive, with connections as delicate as those between the finest varieties. In this scenario, it would be impossible to provide any definition distinguishing the members of different groups from their nearest ancestors, or those ancestors from their ancient and unknown progenitor. Yet, the natural arrangement in the diagram would still apply, and based on the principle of inheritance, all forms descended from A or I would share common characteristics. In a tree, we can identify specific branches, even though at the fork the two merge and intermingle. As I mentioned, we couldn't define the various groups, but we could identify types or forms that represent most characteristics of each group, regardless of size, giving a general idea of the significance of the differences between them. This is what we would have to do if we aimed to gather all forms in any class that have existed through time and space. We'll likely never achieve such a perfect collection; however, in specific classes, we are moving in this direction. Milne Edwards has recently emphasized, in a compelling paper, the importance of focusing on types, whether or not we can separate and define the groups these types belong to.

Finally, we have seen that natural selection, which results from the struggle for existence, and which almost inevitably induces extinction and divergence of character in the many descendants from one dominant parent-species, explains that great and universal feature in the affinities of all organic beings, namely, their subordination in group under group. We use the element of descent in classing the individuals of both sexes and of all ages, although having few characters in common, [433]under one species; we use descent in classing acknowledged varieties, however different they may be from their parent; and I believe this element of descent is the hidden bond of connexion which naturalists have sought under the term of the Natural System. On this idea of the natural system being, in so far as it has been perfected, genealogical in its arrangement, with the grades of difference between the descendants from a common parent, expressed by the terms genera, families, orders, &c., we can understand the rules which we are compelled to follow in our classification. We can understand why we value certain resemblances far more than others; why we are permitted to use rudimentary and useless organs, or others of trifling physiological importance; why, in comparing one group with a distinct group, we summarily reject analogical or adaptive characters, and yet use these same characters within the limits of the same group. We can clearly see how it is that all living and extinct forms can be grouped together in one great system; and how the several members of each class are connected together by the most complex and radiating lines of affinities. We shall never, probably, disentangle the inextricable web of affinities between the members of any one class; but when we have a distinct object in view, and do not look to some unknown plan of creation, we may hope to make sure but slow progress.

Finally, we've seen that natural selection, which results from the struggle for survival, almost inevitably leads to extinction and the divergence of traits in many descendants from one dominant parent species. This explains a major and universal aspect of the relationships among all living things, which is their organization into groups within groups. We use the concept of descent to classify individuals of both sexes and all ages, even if they share few characteristics, under one species. We also apply descent to classify recognized varieties, no matter how different they are from their parent species; and I believe this concept of descent is the hidden connection that naturalists have sought with the term "Natural System." Based on the idea that the natural system, as it has been refined, is organized genealogically, with the degrees of difference among descendants from a common ancestor represented by terms like genera, families, orders, etc., we can understand the rules we must follow in our classification. We can see why we value certain similarities more than others, why we can include rudimentary and useless organs, or those of minimal physiological importance; and why, when comparing one group to a different group, we ignore analogous or adaptive traits, yet apply those same traits within the same group. We can clearly see how all living and extinct forms can be organized into one large system and how the various members of each class are interconnected through complex and branching lines of relationships. We may never fully untangle the complicated web of relationships among the members of any one class; however, when we have a clear purpose and don’t focus on an unknown plan of creation, we can hope for steady, if slow, progress.

 

Morphology.—We have seen that the members of the same class, independently of their habits of life, resemble each other in the general plan of their organisation. This resemblance is often expressed by the term "unity of type;" or by saying that the several parts and organs in the different species of the class are homologous. The whole subject is included under [434]the general name of Morphology. This is the most interesting department of natural history, and may be said to be its very soul. What can be more curious than that the hand of a man, formed for grasping, that of a mole for digging, the leg of the horse, the paddle of the porpoise, and the wing of the bat, should all be constructed on the same pattern, and should include similar bones, in the same relative positions? Geoffroy St. Hilaire has insisted strongly on the high importance of relative connexion in homologous organs: the parts may change to almost any extent in form and size, and yet they always remain connected together in the same order. We never find, for instance, the bones of the arm and forearm, or of the thigh and leg, transposed. Hence the same names can be given to the homologous bones in widely different animals. We see the same great law in the construction of the mouths of insects: what can be more different than the immensely long spiral proboscis of a sphinx-moth, the curious folded one of a bee or bug, and the great jaws of a beetle?—yet all these organs, serving for such different purposes, are formed by infinitely numerous modifications of an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillæ. Analogous laws govern the construction of the mouths and limbs of crustaceans. So it is with the flowers of plants.

Morphology.—We’ve noticed that members of the same class, regardless of their lifestyles, share similarities in their overall body structure. This similarity is often described as "unity of type" or by stating that the various parts and organs in different species of the class are homologous. The entire topic falls under the general term Morphology. This is one of the most fascinating areas of natural history and can be considered its essence. What could be more interesting than the fact that the human hand, which is designed for grasping, the mole's hand, which is adapted for digging, a horse's leg, a porpoise's paddle, and a bat's wing are all built on the same framework and contain similar bones in the same relative positions? Geoffroy St. Hilaire strongly emphasized the significance of the relative connection in homologous organs: the parts might change significantly in shape and size, yet they always remain connected in the same order. For instance, we never find the bones of the arm and forearm, or the thigh and leg, switched around. Therefore, the same names can be assigned to homologous bones in very different animals. We observe the same fundamental principle in the construction of insect mouths: what could be more different than the long, spiral proboscis of a sphinx moth, the uniquely folded one of a bee or bug, and the large jaws of a beetle?—yet all these organs, which serve such distinct functions, are created from countless modifications of an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillae. Similar principles apply to the structure of the mouths and limbs of crustaceans. This also applies to the flowers of plants.

Nothing can be more hopeless than to attempt to explain this similarity of pattern in members of the same class, by utility or by the doctrine of final causes. The hopelessness of the attempt has been expressly admitted by Owen in his most interesting work on the 'Nature of Limbs.' On the ordinary view of the independent creation of each being, we can only say that so it is;—that it has so pleased the Creator to construct each animal and plant.

Nothing is more futile than trying to explain this similarity in patterns among members of the same class through usefulness or the idea of final causes. This futility has been clearly acknowledged by Owen in his fascinating work on the 'Nature of Limbs.' From the standard perspective of the independent creation of each being, we can only state that it is what it is—that the Creator has chosen to design each animal and plant this way.

The explanation is manifest on the theory of the [435]natural selection of successive slight modifications,—each modification being profitable in some way to the modified form, but often affecting by correlation of growth other parts of the organisation. In changes of this nature, there will be little or no tendency to modify the original pattern, or to transpose parts. The bones of a limb might be shortened and widened to any extent, and become gradually enveloped in thick membrane, so as to serve as a fin; or a webbed foot might have all its bones, or certain bones, lengthened to any extent, and the membrane connecting them increased to any extent, so as to serve as a wing: yet in all this great amount of modification there will be no tendency to alter the framework of bones or the relative connexion of the several parts. If we suppose that the ancient progenitor, the archetype as it may be called, of all mammals, had its limbs constructed on the existing general pattern, for whatever purpose they served, we can at once perceive the plain signification of the homologous construction of the limbs throughout the whole class. So with the mouths of insects, we have only to suppose that their common progenitor had an upper lip, mandibles, and two pair of maxillæ, these parts being perhaps very simple in form; and then natural selection, acting on some originally created form, will account for the infinite diversity in structure and function of the mouths of insects. Nevertheless, it is conceivable that the general pattern of an organ might become so much obscured as to be finally lost, by the atrophy and ultimately by the complete abortion of certain parts, by the soldering together of other parts, and by the doubling or multiplication of others,—variations which we know to be within the limits of possibility. In the paddles of the extinct gigantic sea-lizards, and in the mouths of certain suctorial crustaceans, the [436]general pattern seems to have been thus to a certain extent obscured.

The explanation is clear in the theory of the [435]natural selection of small, successive modifications—each change being beneficial in some way to the modified form, but often impacting other parts of the organism due to correlated growth. In such changes, there is little or no tendency to alter the original pattern or to rearrange parts. The bones of a limb might be shortened and widened to any extent and gradually covered in thick membrane to function as a fin; or a webbed foot might have all its bones, or specific bones, lengthened to any extent, with the membrane connecting them expanded to serve as a wing. Yet, despite this significant amount of modification, there will be no inclination to change the bone structure or the relative connections of the various parts. If we assume that the ancient ancestor, or archetype, of all mammals had its limbs designed based on the existing general pattern for whatever purpose they served, we can easily understand the clear significance of the similar limb structure throughout the entire class. Similarly, with the mouths of insects, we just need to assume that their common ancestor had an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillae, these components possibly being very simple in form; then, natural selection acting on some originally created form will explain the endless variety in the structure and function of insect mouths. Nonetheless, it is possible that the general pattern of an organ might become so obscured that it is ultimately lost due to the atrophy and eventually complete loss of certain parts, the merging of other parts, and the duplication or multiplication of others—variations we know to be within the realm of possibility. In the paddles of the extinct giant sea lizards and in the mouths of certain sucking crustaceans, the [436]general pattern seems to have become somewhat obscured.

There is another and equally curious branch of the present subject; namely, the comparison not of the same part in different members of a class, but of the different parts or organs in the same individual. Most physiologists believe that the bones of the skull are homologous with—that is correspond in number and in relative connexion with—the elemental parts of a certain number of vertebræ. The anterior and posterior limbs in each member of the vertebrate and articulate classes are plainly homologous. We see the same law in comparing the wonderfully complex jaws and legs in crustaceans. It is familiar to almost every one, that in a flower the relative position of the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils, as well as their intimate structure, are intelligible on the view that they consist of metamorphosed leaves, arranged in a spire. In monstrous plants, we often get direct evidence of the possibility of one organ being transformed into another; and we can actually see in embryonic crustaceans and in many other animals, and in flowers, that organs, which when mature become extremely different, are at an early stage of growth exactly alike.

There’s another fascinating aspect of this topic; specifically, it’s the comparison not of the same part in different members of a group, but of the different parts or organs within the same individual. Most physiologists think that the bones of the skull are similar to—that is, they match in number and relative connection to—the basic parts of several vertebrae. The front and back limbs in each member of the vertebrate and arthropod classes are clearly homologous. We see the same principle when comparing the incredibly complex jaws and legs of crustaceans. It's well known that in a flower, the arrangement of the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils, as well as their detailed structure, makes sense if we consider them as modified leaves organized in a spiral. In unusual plants, we often find direct proof of how one organ can change into another; and we can actually observe in embryonic crustaceans and in many other animals, as well as in flowers, that organs that become quite different when mature are identical at an early growth stage.

How inexplicable are these facts on the ordinary view of creation! Why should the brain be enclosed in a box composed of such numerous and such extraordinary shaped pieces of bone? As Owen has remarked, the benefit derived from the yielding of the separate pieces in the act of parturition of mammals, will by no means explain the same construction in the skulls of birds. Why should similar bones have been created in the formation of the wing and leg of a bat, used as they are for such totally different purposes? Why should one crustacean, which has an extremely complex [437]mouth formed of many parts, consequently always have fewer legs; or conversely, those with many legs have simpler mouths? Why should the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils in any individual flower, though fitted for such widely different purposes, be all constructed on the same pattern?

How strange are these facts about our usual understanding of creation! Why is the brain surrounded by a structure made of so many uniquely shaped bones? As Owen pointed out, the advantage gained from the flexibility of the individual pieces during mammal birth doesn't explain the same structure in bird skulls. Why have similar bones been created in the wing and leg of a bat, which serve such completely different functions? Why does one crustacean, with a very complex mouth made of many parts, always have fewer legs, while those with many legs have simpler mouths? Why are the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils in any single flower, despite being suited for such different roles, all made in the same way?

On the theory of natural selection, we can satisfactorily answer these questions. In the vertebrata, we see a series of internal vertebræ bearing certain processes and appendages; in the articulata, we see the body divided into a series of segments, bearing external appendages; and in flowering plants, we see a series of successive spiral whorls of leaves. An indefinite repetition of the same part or organ is the common characteristic (as Owen has observed) of all low or little-modified forms; therefore we may readily believe that the unknown progenitor of the vertebrata possessed many vertebræ; the unknown progenitor of the articulata, many segments; and the unknown progenitor of flowering plants, many spiral whorls of leaves. We have formerly seen that parts many times repeated are eminently liable to vary in number and structure; consequently it is quite probable that natural selection, during a long-continued course of modification, should have seized on a certain number of the primordially similar elements, many times repeated, and have adapted them to the most diverse purposes. And as the whole amount of modification will have been effected by slight successive steps, we need not wonder at discovering in such parts or organs, a certain degree of fundamental resemblance, retained by the strong principle of inheritance.

On the theory of natural selection, we can satisfactorily answer these questions. In vertebrates, we see a series of internal vertebrae with certain processes and appendages; in arthropods, we notice the body divided into segments, each with external appendages; and in flowering plants, there are successive spiral whorls of leaves. An indefinite repetition of the same part or organ is a common characteristic (as Owen has noted) of all simple or minimally modified forms; therefore, we can easily believe that the unknown ancestor of vertebrates had many vertebrae, the unknown ancestor of arthropods had many segments, and the unknown ancestor of flowering plants had many spiral whorls of leaves. We've previously seen that parts repeated many times are highly likely to vary in number and structure; thus, it's quite probable that natural selection, over a long period of modification, would have focused on a certain number of the originally similar elements, repeated many times, and adapted them for various purposes. Since the total amount of modification would have occurred through gradual changes, we shouldn’t be surprised to find a certain degree of fundamental similarity in such parts or organs, maintained by the strong principle of inheritance.

In the great class of molluscs, though we can homologise the parts of one species with those of other and distinct species, we can indicate but few serial homologies; that is, we are seldom enabled to say that one [438]part or organ is homologous with another in the same individual. And we can understand this fact; for in molluscs, even in the lowest members of the class, we do not find nearly so much indefinite repetition of any one part, as we find in the other great classes of the animal and vegetable kingdoms.

In the large group of mollusks, while we can compare the parts of one species to those of other different species, there are very few instances of serial homologies. This means we rarely can say that one part or organ is homologous to another within the same individual. This makes sense since, in mollusks, even in the simplest members of the group, we don't see nearly as much indefinite repetition of any one part as we do in the other major groups of the animal and plant kingdoms.

Naturalists frequently speak of the skull as formed of metamorphosed vertebræ: the jaws of crabs as metamorphosed legs; the stamens and pistils of flowers as metamorphosed leaves; but it would in these cases probably be more correct, as Professor Huxley has remarked, to speak of both skull and vertebræ, both jaws and legs, &c.,—as having been metamorphosed, not one from the other, but from some common element. Naturalists, however, use such language only in a metaphorical sense: they are far from meaning that during a long course of descent, primordial organs of any kind—vertebræ in the one case and legs in the other—have actually been modified into skulls or jaws. Yet so strong is the appearance of a modification of this nature having occurred, that naturalists can hardly avoid employing language having this plain signification. On my view these terms may be used literally; and the wonderful fact of the jaws, for instance, of a crab retaining numerous characters, which they would probably have retained through inheritance, if they had really been metamorphosed during a long course of descent from true legs, or from some simple appendage, is explained.

Naturalists often talk about the skull as being made up of changed vertebrae, the jaws of crabs as transformed legs, and the stamens and pistils of flowers as changed leaves. However, as Professor Huxley pointed out, it might be more accurate to say that both the skull and vertebrae, as well as the jaws and legs, have been transformed from some common element, rather than one evolving from the other. Naturalists use this language metaphorically; they don't mean to imply that, over time, original organs like vertebrae or legs have actually turned into skulls or jaws. Yet, the strong resemblance to such a transformation makes it difficult for them to avoid using language that suggests this meaning. In my view, these terms can be taken literally, and the amazing fact that crab jaws, for example, maintain many characteristics they likely would have inherited if they had truly evolved over time from actual legs or some simple appendage, becomes clear.

 

Embryology.—It has already been casually remarked that certain organs in the individual, which when mature become widely different and serve for different purposes, are in the embryo exactly alike. The embryos, also, of distinct animals within the same class are often strikingly similar: a better proof of this cannot be given, than a [439]circumstance mentioned by Agassiz, namely, that having forgotten to ticket the embryo of some vertebrate animal, he cannot now tell whether it be that of a mammal, bird, or reptile. The vermiform larvæ of moths, flies, beetles, &c., resemble each other much more closely than do the mature insects; but in the case of larvæ, the embryos are active, and have been adapted for special lines of life. A trace of the law of embryonic resemblance, sometimes lasts till a rather late age: thus birds of the same genus, and of closely allied genera, often resemble each other in their first and second plumage; as we see in the spotted feathers in the thrush group. In the cat tribe, most of the species are striped or spotted in lines; and stripes can be plainly distinguished in the whelp of the lion. We occasionally though rarely see something of this kind in plants: thus the embryonic leaves of the ulex or furze, and the first leaves of the phyllodineous acaceas, are pinnate or divided like the ordinary leaves of the leguminosæ.

Embryology.—It's already been noted that certain organs in an individual, which eventually become very different and serve various purposes, are identical in the embryo. Additionally, the embryos of different animals within the same class often look remarkably similar. A strong example of this is the case mentioned by Agassiz, where he forgot to label the embryo of a vertebrate animal and couldn't now determine whether it was from a mammal, bird, or reptile. The worm-like larvae of moths, flies, beetles, etc., are much more alike than the adult insects; however, in the case of larvae, the embryos are active and have adapted for specific life stages. A hint of this embryonic similarity often persists into later stages: birds of the same genus, and closely related genera, frequently look alike in their first and second plumage, as seen in the spotted feathers of the thrush group. In cats, most species are striped or spotted in lines; stripes can be clearly seen in a lion cub. Occasionally, though rarely, we observe something similar in plants: for example, the embryonic leaves of the ulex or furze and the first leaves of the phyllodineous acacias are pinnate or divided, resembling the typical leaves of legumes.

The points of structure, in which the embryos of widely different animals of the same class resemble each other, often have no direct relation to their conditions of existence. We cannot, for instance, suppose that in the embryos of the vertebrata the peculiar loop-like course of the arteries near the branchial slits are related to similar conditions,—in the young mammal which is nourished in the womb of its mother, in the egg of the bird which is hatched in a nest, and in the spawn of a frog under water. We have no more reason to believe in such a relation, than we have to believe that the same bones in the hand of a man, wing of a bat, and fin of a porpoise, are related to similar conditions of life. No one will suppose that the stripes on the whelp of a lion, or the spots on the young blackbird, [440]are of any use to these animals, or are related to the conditions to which they are exposed.

The structural features where the embryos of very different animals in the same class look alike often don't have any direct connection to their living conditions. For example, we can't assume that the unique loop-like path of the arteries near the gill slits in vertebrate embryos is linked to similar environments—like in the young mammal that develops in its mother's womb, in the bird embryo that hatches in a nest, or in the frog spawn that exists underwater. We have no more reason to think there's a connection than we do for the fact that the same bones in a human hand, a bat's wing, and a porpoise's fin are linked to similar life conditions. No one would think that the stripes on a lion cub or the spots on a young blackbird are useful to these animals or connected to the situations they face. [440]

The case, however, is different when an animal during any part of its embryonic career is active, and has to provide for itself. The period of activity may come on earlier or later in life; but whenever it comes on, the adaptation of the larva to its conditions of life is just as perfect and as beautiful as in the adult animal. From such special adaptations, the similarity of the larvæ or active embryos of allied animals is sometimes much obscured; and cases could be given of the larvæ of two species, or of two groups of species, differing quite as much, or even more, from each other than do their adult parents. In most cases, however, the larvæ, though active, still obey, more or less closely, the law of common embryonic resemblance. Cirripedes afford a good instance of this: even the illustrious Cuvier did not perceive that a barnacle was, as it certainly is, a crustacean; but a glance at the larva shows this to be the case in an unmistakeable manner. So again the two main divisions of cirripedes, the pedunculated and sessile, which differ widely in external appearance, have larvæ in all their stages barely distinguishable.

The situation is different when an animal is active at any point during its embryonic development and needs to fend for itself. This period of activity might start earlier or later in life, but whenever it begins, the larva's adaptation to its environment is just as perfect and beautiful as in the adult animal. Due to these specific adaptations, the similarities between the larvae or active embryos of related animals can sometimes be quite obscured; there are examples of larvae from two species or two groups of species that differ as much, or even more, from each other than their adult counterparts do. However, in most cases, the larvae, although active, still follow the principle of common embryonic resemblance to a greater or lesser extent. Cirripedes provide a clear example of this: even the famous Cuvier did not recognize that a barnacle is, in fact, a crustacean; but a look at the larva makes this unmistakably clear. Similarly, the two main groups of cirripedes, the stalked and sessile types, which look very different from one another, have larvae at all their stages that are barely distinguishable.

The embryo in the course of development generally rises in organisation: I use this expression, though I am aware that it is hardly possible to define clearly what is meant by the organisation being higher or lower. But no one probably will dispute that the butterfly is higher than the caterpillar. In some cases, however, the mature animal is generally considered as lower in the scale than the larva, as with certain parasitic crustaceans. To refer once again to cirripedes: the larvæ in the first stage have three pairs of legs, a very simple single eye, and a probosciformed mouth, with which they feed largely, for they increase much in [441]size. In the second stage, answering to the chrysalis stage of butterflies, they have six pairs of beautifully constructed natatory legs, a pair of magnificent compound eyes, and extremely complex antennæ; but they have a closed and imperfect mouth, and cannot feed: their function at this stage is, to search by their well-developed organs of sense, and to reach by their active powers of swimming, a proper place on which to become attached and to undergo their final metamorphosis. When this is completed they are fixed for life: their legs are now converted into prehensile organs; they again obtain a well-constructed mouth; but they have no antennæ, and their two eyes are now reconverted into a minute, single, and very simple eye-spot. In this last and complete state, cirripedes may be considered as either more highly or more lowly organised than they were in the larval condition. But in some genera the larvæ become developed either into hermaphrodites having the ordinary structure, or into what I have called complemental males: and in the latter, the development has assuredly been retrograde; for the male is a mere sack, which lives for a short time, and is destitute of mouth, stomach, or other organ of importance, excepting for reproduction.

The embryo generally becomes more organized as it develops. I use this term, even though it's difficult to clearly define what it means for organization to be higher or lower. But no one is likely to argue that a butterfly is more advanced than a caterpillar. In some cases, though, the fully formed animal is considered less advanced than the larva, like with certain parasitic crustaceans. Going back to barnacles: the larvae in the first stage have three pairs of legs, a simple single eye, and a mouth shaped like a proboscis, which they use to feed and grow significantly. In the second stage, similar to the chrysalis stage of butterflies, they have six pairs of beautifully designed swimming legs, a pair of impressive compound eyes, and very complex antennae; however, they have a closed and rudimentary mouth and cannot eat. Their purpose at this stage is to use their well-developed sensory organs and active swimming abilities to find a suitable place to attach themselves and go through their final transformation. Once this transformation is complete, they are fixed for life: their legs turn into grasping organs; they acquire a well-formed mouth again, but they lose their antennae, and their two eyes revert to a tiny, simple eye-spot. In this final and complete state, barnacles can be viewed as either more or less advanced than they were in the larval stage. However, in some genera, the larvae develop either into hermaphrodites with a standard structure or into what I refer to as complemental males; in the latter case, the development has certainly gone backward, as the male is essentially just a sack that lives for a short time, lacking a mouth, stomach, or other important organs except for reproduction.

We are so much accustomed to see differences in structure between the embryo and the adult, and likewise a close similarity in the embryos of widely different animals within the same class, that we might be led to look at these facts as necessarily contingent in some manner on growth. But there is no obvious reason why, for instance, the wing of a bat, or the fin of a porpoise, should not have been sketched out with all the parts in proper proportion, as soon as any structure became visible in the embryo. And in some whole groups of animals and in certain members of other groups, the embryo does not at any period differ widely from the [442]adult: thus Owen has remarked in regard to cuttle-fish, "there is no metamorphosis; the cephalopodic character is manifested long before the parts of the embryo are completed;" and again in spiders, "there is nothing worthy to be called a metamorphosis." The larvæ of insects, whether adapted to the most diverse and active habits, or quite inactive, being fed by their parents or placed in the midst of proper nutriment, yet nearly all pass through a similar worm-like stage of development; but in some few cases, as in that of Aphis, if we look to the admirable drawings by Professor Huxley of the development of this insect, we see no trace of the vermiform stage.

We are so accustomed to seeing differences in structure between embryos and adults, and likewise a close similarity in the embryos of very different animals within the same class, that we might think these facts are necessarily linked to growth. However, there's no clear reason why, for example, the wing of a bat or the fin of a porpoise couldn't have been developed with all the parts in proportion as soon as any structure became visible in the embryo. In some entire groups of animals and in certain members of other groups, the embryo does not differ much from the adult at any stage; thus, Owen pointed out regarding cuttlefish, "there is no metamorphosis; the cephalopodic character appears long before the parts of the embryo are complete," and again in spiders, "there is nothing really called a metamorphosis." The larvae of insects, whether adapted to very different and active habits or completely inactive, whether fed by their parents or surrounded by suitable food, nearly all go through a similar worm-like stage of development; but in a few cases, like that of Aphis, if we look at the remarkable drawings by Professor Huxley of the development of this insect, we see no sign of the worm-like stage.

How, then, can we explain these several facts in embryology,—namely the very general, but not universal difference in structure between the embryo and the adult;—of parts in the same individual embryo, which ultimately become very unlike and serve for diverse purposes, being at this early period of growth alike;—of embryos of different species within the same class, generally, but not universally, resembling each other;—of the structure of the embryo not being closely related to its conditions of existence, except when the embryo becomes at any period of life active and has to provide for itself;—of the embryo apparently having sometimes a higher organisation than the mature animal, into which it is developed? I believe that all these facts can be explained, as follows, on the view of descent with modification.

How can we explain these different facts in embryology? For instance, there’s the common, but not universal, difference in structure between the embryo and the adult; parts of the same person embryo that eventually become quite different and serve various purposes, yet are similar during this early growth stage; embryos of different species within the same class that generally, but not universally, look alike; the structure of the embryo not being closely tied to its living conditions, except when the embryo becomes active at any point in its life and needs to fend for itself; and the embryo sometimes apparently having a more advanced organization than the mature animal it develops into? I believe all these facts can be explained through the concept of descent with modification.

It is commonly assumed, perhaps from monstrosities often affecting the embryos at a very early period, that slight variations necessarily appear at an equally early period. But we have little evidence on this head—indeed the evidence rather points the other way; for it is notorious that breeders of cattle, horses, and various [443]fancy animals, cannot positively tell, until some time after the animal has been born, what its merits or form will ultimately turn out. We see this plainly in our own children; we cannot always tell whether the child will be tall or short, or what its precise features will be. The question is not, at what period of life any variation has been caused, but at what period it is fully displayed. The cause may have acted, and I believe generally has acted, even before the embryo is formed; and the variation may be due to the male and female sexual elements having been affected by the conditions to which either parent, or their ancestors, have been exposed. Nevertheless an effect thus caused at a very early period, even before the formation of the embryo, may appear late in life; as when an hereditary disease, which appears in old age alone, has been communicated to the offspring from the reproductive element of one parent. Or again, as when the horns of cross-bred cattle have been affected by the shape of the horns of either parent. For the welfare of a very young animal, as long as it remains in its mother's womb, or in the egg, or as long as it is nourished and protected by its parent, it must be quite unimportant whether most of its characters are fully acquired a little earlier or later in life. It would not signify, for instance, to a bird which obtained its food best by having a long beak, whether or not it assumed a beak of this particular length, as long as it was fed by its parents. Hence, I conclude, that it is quite possible, that each of the many successive modifications, by which each species has acquired its present structure, may have supervened at a not very early period of life; and some direct evidence from our domestic animals supports this view. But in other cases it is quite possible that each successive modification, or [444]most of them, may have appeared at an extremely early period.

It’s often assumed, maybe because of the deformities that affect embryos early on, that slight variations must also show up early. However, we have little evidence to support this notion—in fact, the evidence suggests the opposite; it’s well-known that breeders of cattle, horses, and various fancy animals can’t definitively predict what an animal’s qualities or shape will be until some time after it’s born. We can see this clearly in our own children; we can’t always tell if a child will be tall or short, or what their exact features will be. The question isn’t about when a variation occurs but rather when it is fully visible. The cause may have occurred, and I believe often does occur, even before the embryo forms; the variation could be due to the male and female reproductive elements being influenced by the conditions either parent or their ancestors experienced. Still, an effect caused at such an early stage, even before the embryo is formed, may not be evident until later in life; for example, an inherited disease that shows up only in old age can be passed on to offspring through one parent’s reproductive cells. Similarly, the shape of the horns in crossbred cattle can be influenced by the horn shape of either parent. For the well-being of a very young animal, whether it’s in its mother’s womb, in an egg, or being cared for by a parent, it doesn’t matter much whether most of its traits develop a bit earlier or later in life. It wouldn’t matter, for instance, to a bird that feeds best with a long beak whether it developed such a beak earlier or later, as long as it was fed by its parents. Therefore, I conclude it’s entirely possible that each of the many successive changes that led to a species’ current structure could have appeared not very early in life; some direct evidence from our domesticated animals supports this idea. However, in other situations, it’s also possible that each successive change, or most of them, may have occurred at a very early stage.

I have stated in the first chapter, that there is some evidence to render it probable, that at whatever age any variation first appears in the parent, it tends to reappear at a corresponding age in the offspring. Certain variations can only appear at corresponding ages, for instance, peculiarities in the caterpillar, cocoon, or imago states of the silk-moth; or, again, in the horns of almost full-grown cattle. But further than this, variations which, for all that we can see, might have appeared earlier or later in life, tend to appear at a corresponding age in the offspring and parent. I am far from meaning that this is invariably the case; and I could give a good many cases of variations (taking the word in the largest sense) which have supervened at an earlier age in the child than in the parent.

I mentioned in the first chapter that there’s some evidence suggesting that whenever a variation first shows up in a parent, it often appears at a similar age in the offspring. Certain variations can only emerge at specific ages, like unique traits in the caterpillar, cocoon, or adult stages of the silk moth; or in the horns of nearly fully grown cattle. However, beyond this, variations that, as far as we can tell, could have emerged earlier or later in life tend to show up at a similar age in both parents and offspring. I'm not saying this always happens; I could cite several instances of variations (in the broadest sense of the term) that appear at an earlier age in the child than in the parent.

These two principles, if their truth be admitted, will, I believe, explain all the above specified leading facts in embryology. But first let us look at a few analogous cases in domestic varieties. Some authors who have written on Dogs, maintain that the greyhound and bulldog, though appearing so different, are really varieties most closely allied, and have probably descended from the same wild stock; hence I was curious to see how far their puppies differed from each other: I was told by breeders that they differed just as much as their parents, and this, judging by the eye, seemed almost to be the case; but on actually measuring the old dogs and their six-days old puppies, I found that the puppies had not nearly acquired their full amount of proportional difference. So, again, I was told that the foals of cart and race-horses differed as much as the full-grown animals; and this surprised me greatly, as I think it probable that the difference between these two breeds has been wholly [445]caused by selection under domestication; but having had careful measurements made of the dam and of a three-days old colt of a race and heavy cart-horse, I find that the colts have by no means acquired their full amount of proportional difference.

These two principles, if we accept them as true, will, I believe, explain all the major facts in embryology mentioned above. But first, let’s look at a few similar cases in domestic varieties. Some authors who have written about dogs argue that the greyhound and bulldog, although they appear so different, are actually closely related varieties and probably descended from the same wild ancestors. This made me curious to see how much their puppies differed from each other: breeders told me that they differed as much as their parents, and judging by appearance, this seemed almost true; however, when I actually measured the adult dogs and their six-day-old puppies, I found that the puppies had not nearly developed their full proportional differences. Similarly, I was told that the foals of cart and race horses differed as much as the fully grown animals, which surprised me greatly, as I think the difference between these two breeds has been entirely caused by selection during domestication. But after taking careful measurements of the mother and a three-day-old colt of a racehorse and a heavy cart horse, I found that the colts had not yet developed their full proportional differences.

As the evidence appears to me conclusive, that the several domestic breeds of Pigeon have descended from one wild species, I compared young pigeons of various breeds, within twelve hours after being hatched; I carefully measured the proportions (but will not here give details) of the beak, width of mouth, length of nostril and of eyelid, size of feet and length of leg, in the wild stock, in pouters, fantails, runts, barbs, dragons, carriers, and tumblers. Now some of these birds, when mature, differ so extraordinarily in length and form of beak, that they would, I cannot doubt, be ranked in distinct genera, had they been natural productions. But when the nestling birds of these several breeds were placed in a row, though most of them could be distinguished from each other, yet their proportional differences in the above specified several points were incomparably less than in the full-grown birds. Some characteristic points of difference—for instance, that of the width of mouth—could hardly be detected in the young. But there was one remarkable exception to this rule, for the young of the short-faced tumbler differed from the young of the wild rock-pigeon and of the other breeds, in all its proportions, almost exactly as much as in the adult state.

As the evidence seems conclusive to me that the various domestic breeds of pigeons have evolved from one wild species, I compared young pigeons of different breeds within twelve hours of hatching. I carefully measured the proportions (but won’t go into details here) of the beak, mouth width, nostril length, eyelid size, foot size, and leg length in the wild stock, as well as in pouters, fantails, runts, barbs, dragons, carriers, and tumblers. Some of these birds, when fully grown, differ so much in beak length and shape that I have no doubt they would be classified as different genera if they were naturally occurring. However, when the nestling birds of these various breeds were lined up, while most could be identified from one another, their proportional differences in the specified characteristics were significantly less than those observed in the adult birds. Some distinguishing features—like mouth width—were almost impossible to detect in the young. Yet, there was one striking exception to this rule: the young of the short-faced tumbler differed from the young of the wild rock-pigeon and other breeds in all its proportions almost as much as it does in adulthood.

The two principles above given seem to me to explain these facts in regard to the later embryonic stages of our domestic varieties. Fanciers select their horses, dogs, and pigeons, for breeding, when they are nearly grown up: they are indifferent whether the desired qualities and structures have been acquired earlier or [446]later in life, if the full-grown animal possesses them. And the cases just given, more especially that of pigeons, seem to show that the characteristic differences which give value to each breed, and which have been accumulated by man's selection, have not generally first appeared at an early period of life, and have been inherited by the offspring at a corresponding not early period. But the case of the short-faced tumbler, which when twelve hours old had acquired its proper proportions, proves that this is not the universal rule; for here the characteristic differences must either have appeared at an earlier period than usual, or, if not so, the differences must have been inherited, not at the corresponding, but at an earlier age.

The two principles mentioned above seem to explain these facts regarding the later embryonic stages of our domestic varieties. Breeders choose their horses, dogs, and pigeons for breeding when they are nearly fully grown; they don’t care whether the desired traits and structures developed earlier or later in life, as long as the adult animal has them. The examples provided, especially that of pigeons, suggest that the key differences that add value to each breed, which have been built up through human selection, usually don’t first appear early in life and aren’t passed down to the offspring at an early age either. However, the case of the short-faced tumbler, which had developed its proper proportions just twelve hours after hatching, shows that this isn’t always the case; either the characteristic differences appeared earlier than normal or, if not, those differences must have been inherited earlier rather than at the corresponding later age.

Now let us apply these facts and the above two principles—which latter, though not proved true, can be shown to be in some degree probable—to species in a state of nature. Let us take a genus of birds, descended on my theory from some one parent-species, and of which the several new species have become modified through natural selection in accordance with their diverse habits. Then, from the many slight successive steps of variation having supervened at a rather late age, and having been inherited at a corresponding age, the young of the new species of our supposed genus will manifestly tend to resemble each other much more closely than do the adults, just as we have seen in the case of pigeons. We may extend this view to whole families or even classes. The fore-limbs, for instance, which served as legs in the parent-species, may have become, by a long course of modification, adapted in one descendant to act as hands, in another as paddles, in another as wings; and on the above two principles—namely of each successive modification supervening at a rather late age, and being inherited at a [447]corresponding late age—the fore-limbs in the embryos of the several descendants of the parent-species will still resemble each other closely, for they will not have been modified. But in each of our new species, the embryonic fore-limbs will differ greatly from the fore-limbs in the mature animal; the limbs in the latter having undergone much modification at a rather late period of life, and having thus been converted into hands, or paddles, or wings. Whatever influence long-continued exercise or use on the one hand, and disuse on the other, may have in modifying an organ, such influence will mainly affect the mature animal, which has come to its full powers of activity and has to gain its own living; and the effects thus produced will be inherited at a corresponding mature age. Whereas the young will remain unmodified, or be modified in a lesser degree, by the effects of use and disuse.

Now let’s apply these facts and the two principles mentioned above—though they're not definitively proven, they can be shown to be somewhat probable—to species in their natural environment. Let’s take a group of birds, which my theory suggests come from a common parent species, where the various new species have been modified through natural selection based on their different habits. From the many small, successive variations that have occurred at a relatively late stage of development and have been passed down at a similar stage, the young of our hypothetical genus will clearly tend to look much more alike than the adults, similar to what we’ve observed in pigeons. We can expand this idea to entire families or even classes. For example, the fore-limbs that functioned as legs in the parent species might, after a long period of modification, have evolved in one descendant to become hands, in another to become paddles, and in another to become wings; and based on the two principles mentioned above—of each successive change happening at a relatively late age and being inherited at a corresponding late age—the fore-limbs in the embryos of the various descendants of the parent species will still closely resemble each other since they haven’t undergone any modifications yet. However, in each of our new species, the embryonic fore-limbs will be very different from the fore-limbs in the adult animal; the limbs in the latter will have experienced significant changes during a later stage of life, turning into hands, paddles, or wings. Any influence that long-term use or exercise might have on modifying an organ, along with the effects of disuse, will primarily impact the mature animal, which has developed its full capabilities and needs to sustain itself; and the changes resulting from this will be inherited at a corresponding mature age. In contrast, the young will remain unchanged or experience lesser modifications from the effects of use and disuse.

In certain cases the successive steps of variation might supervene, from causes of which we are wholly ignorant, at a very early period of life, or each step might be inherited at an earlier period than that at which it first appeared. In either case (as with the short-faced tumbler) the young or embryo would closely resemble the mature parent-form. We have seen that this is the rule of development in certain whole groups of animals, as with cuttle-fish and spiders, and with a few members of the great class of insects, as with Aphis. With respect to the final cause of the young in these cases not undergoing any metamorphosis, or closely resembling their parents from their earliest age, we can see that this would result from the two following contingencies: firstly, from the young, during a course of modification carried on for many generations, having to provide for their own wants at a very early stage [448]of development, and secondly, from their following exactly the same habits of life with their parents; for in this case, it would be indispensable for the existence of the species, that the child should be modified at a very early age in the same manner with its parents, in accordance with their similar habits. Some further explanation, however, of the embryo not undergoing any metamorphosis is perhaps requisite. If, on the other hand, it profited the young to follow habits of life in any degree different from those of their parent, and consequently to be constructed in a slightly different manner, then, on the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages, the active young or larvæ might easily be rendered by natural selection different to any conceivable extent from their parents. Such differences might, also, become correlated with successive stages of development; so that the larvæ, in the first stage, might differ greatly from the larvæ in the second stage, as we have seen to be the case with cirripedes. The adult might become fitted for sites or habits, in which organs of locomotion or of the senses, &c., would be useless; and in this case the final metamorphosis would be said to be retrograde.

In some cases, the different stages of variation might happen due to reasons we're completely unaware of, early in life, or each stage might be inherited earlier than when it first showed up. In either case (like with the short-faced tumbler), the young or embryo would closely resemble the fully grown parent. We've observed that this is the general pattern of development in specific groups of animals, such as cuttlefish and spiders, and with some members of the large class of insects, like aphids. Regarding why the young in these situations don’t undergo any metamorphosis or resemble their parents from a very early age, we can see it would result from two factors: first, the young, after many generations of changes, needing to meet their own needs at an early stage of development, and second, their following the exact same lifestyle as their parents; in this scenario, it would be crucial for species survival that the offspring develop in the same way as their parents, in line with their similar habits. However, some additional explanation about the embryo not going through any metamorphosis might be necessary. Conversely, if it benefited the young to adopt slightly different lifestyles from their parents, which could lead to them being shaped in a somewhat different way, then, based on the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages, the active young or larvae could easily become quite different from their parents through natural selection. Such differences might also be connected with successive stages of development, so that the larvae in the first stage could be very different from those in the second stage, as we've seen in cirripedes. The adult could become adapted to environments or habits where locomotion or sensory organs, etc., would be unnecessary; in this case, the final metamorphosis would be considered retrogressive.

As all the organic beings, extinct and recent, which have ever lived on this earth have to be classed together, and as all have been connected by the finest gradations, the best, or indeed, if our collections were nearly perfect, the only possible arrangement, would be genealogical. Descent being on my view the hidden bond of connexion which naturalists have been seeking under the term of the natural system. On this view we can understand how it is that, in the eyes of most naturalists, the structure of the embryo is even more important for classification than that of the adult. For the embryo is the animal in its less modified state; [449]and in so far it reveals the structure of its progenitor. In two groups of animals, however much they may at present differ from each other in structure and habits, if they pass through the same or similar embryonic stages, we may feel assured that they have both descended from the same or nearly similar parents, and are therefore in that degree closely related. Thus, community in embryonic structure reveals community of descent. It will reveal this community of descent, however much the structure of the adult may have been modified and obscured; we have seen, for instance, that cirripedes can at once be recognised by their larvæ as belonging to the great class of crustaceans. As the embryonic state of each species and group of species partially shows us the structure of their less modified ancient progenitors, we can clearly see why ancient and extinct forms of life should resemble the embryos of their descendants,—our existing species. Agassiz believes this to be a law of nature; but I am bound to confess that I only hope to see the law hereafter proved true. It can be proved true in those cases alone in which the ancient state, now supposed to be represented in existing embryos, has not been obliterated, either by the successive variations in a long course of modification having supervened at a very early age, or by the variations having been inherited at an earlier period than that at which they first appeared. It should also be borne in mind, that the supposed law of resemblance of ancient forms of life to the embryonic stages of recent forms, may be true, but yet, owing to the geological record not extending far enough back in time, may remain for a long period, or for ever, incapable of demonstration.

Since all living and extinct organisms on this planet need to be categorized together, and since they are all interconnected by subtle variations, the most effective way to classify them—even the only feasible method, if our collections were nearly complete—would be genealogical. Descent represents, in my view, the hidden link that naturalists have been searching for under the term "natural system." This perspective helps us understand why the structure of embryos is considered more significant for classification than that of adults by most naturalists. The embryo represents the organism in a less altered state, thus revealing the structure of its ancestor. In two groups of animals, no matter how different they might be in structure and behavior today, if they undergo similar embryonic stages, we can be confident that they both descended from the same or very similar ancestors, indicating a close relationship. Therefore, shared embryonic structure points to a shared ancestry. This connection of descent can be identified regardless of how drastically adult structures may have changed and become masked; for example, we can immediately recognize that barnacles belong to the larger class of crustaceans by looking at their larvae. As the embryonic state of each species and group partly reflects the structure of their less altered ancient ancestors, it becomes clear why ancient and extinct life forms should resemble the embryos of their descendants—our current species. Agassiz believes this to be a natural law; however, I must admit that I only hope to see this law confirmed in the future. It can only be validated in cases where the ancient state, now thought to be represented in the existing embryos, has not been erased—either by successive changes occurring early in development or by those changes being inherited before they first appeared. It's also important to keep in mind that this supposed law of resemblance between ancient life forms and the embryonic stages of more recent forms may hold true, but due to the geological record not going back far enough, it may remain unprovable for a long time, or possibly forever.

Thus, as it seems to me, the leading facts in embryology, which are second in importance to none in natural history, are explained on the principle of slight [450]modifications not appearing, in the many descendants from some one ancient progenitor, at a very early period in the life of each, though perhaps caused at the earliest, and being inherited at a corresponding not early period. Embryology rises greatly in interest, when we thus look at the embryo as a picture, more or less obscured, of the common parent-form of each great class of animals.

Thus, it seems to me that the key facts in embryology, which are just as important as anything in natural history, are explained by the principle of slight modifications that don't show up in many descendants from a single ancient ancestor at a very early stage in each one's life, even though they might have originated early on and are inherited at a later stage. Embryology becomes much more interesting when we view the embryo as a more or less unclear representation of the common ancestor for each major class of animals.

 

Rudimentary, atrophied, or aborted Organs.—Organs or parts in this strange condition, bearing the stamp of inutility, are extremely common throughout nature. For instance, rudimentary mammæ are very general in the males of mammals: I presume that the "bastard-wing" in birds may be safely considered as a digit in a rudimentary state: in very many snakes one lobe of the lungs is rudimentary; in other snakes there are rudiments of the pelvis and hind limbs. Some of the cases of rudimentary organs are extremely curious; for instance, the presence of teeth in fœtal whales, which when grown up have not a tooth in their heads; and the presence of teeth, which never cut through the gums, in the upper jaws of our unborn calves. It has even been stated on good authority that rudiments of teeth can be detected in the beaks of certain embryonic birds. Nothing can be plainer than that wings are formed for flight, yet in how many insects do we see wings so reduced in size as to be utterly incapable of flight, and not rarely lying under wing-cases, firmly soldered together!

Rudimentary, atrophied, or aborted Organs.—Organs or parts in this unusual condition, showing a clear lack of usefulness, are very common in nature. For example, rudimentary mammary glands are quite common in male mammals. I assume that the "bastard-wing" in birds can definitely be seen as a digit in a rudimentary form: in many snakes, one lobe of the lungs is rudimentary; in other snakes, there are remnants of the pelvis and hind limbs. Some examples of rudimentary organs are really interesting; for instance, fetal whales have teeth that never emerge when they grow up, and unborn calves have teeth that never break through the gums in their upper jaws. It's even been reported by credible sources that remnants of teeth can be found in the beaks of certain developing birds. It's pretty obvious that wings are designed for flight, yet how many insects do we see with wings so small that they can't fly at all, often tucked under wing-cases that are stuck together?

The meaning of rudimentary organs is often quite unmistakeable: for instance there are beetles of the same genus (and even of the same species) resembling each other most closely in all respects, one of which will have full-sized wings, and another mere rudiments of membrane; and here it is impossible to doubt, that the [451]rudiments represent wings. Rudimentary organs sometimes retain their potentiality, and are merely not developed: this seems to be the case with the mammæ of male mammals, for many instances are on record of these organs having become well developed in full-grown males, and having secreted milk. So again there are normally four developed and two rudimentary teats in the udders of the genus Bos, but in our domestic cows the two sometimes become developed and give milk. In plants of the same species the petals sometimes occur as mere rudiments, and sometimes in a well-developed state. In plants with separated sexes, the male flowers often have a rudiment of a pistil; and Kölreuter found that by crossing such male plants with an hermaphrodite species, the rudiment of the pistil in the hybrid offspring was much increased in size; and this shows that the rudiment and the perfect pistil are essentially alike in nature.

The meaning of rudimentary organs is often very clear: for example, there are beetles of the same genus (and even of the same species) that closely resemble each other in every way, but one will have fully developed wings while another has only the basic remnants of wings; in this case, it’s undeniable that the remnants represent wings. Rudimentary organs sometimes still have the potential to develop, they just aren't fully formed: this appears to be the case with the mammary glands of male mammals, as there are many documented instances of these organs becoming well developed in fully grown males and producing milk. Similarly, there are typically four fully developed teats and two rudimentary teats in the udders of the genus Bos, but in our domestic cows, the two rudimentary ones can sometimes become functional and produce milk. In plants of the same species, petals can sometimes appear as mere remnants, while in other cases, they are fully developed. In plants with separate sexes, male flowers often possess a rudimentary pistil; Kölreuter discovered that crossbreeding such male plants with a hermaphrodite species significantly increased the size of the pistil remnants in the hybrid offspring, showing that the rudiment and the fully formed pistil are fundamentally similar in nature.

An organ serving for two purposes, may become rudimentary or utterly aborted for one, even the more important purpose; and remain perfectly efficient for the other. Thus in plants, the office of the pistil is to allow the pollen-tubes to reach the ovules protected in the ovarium at its base. The pistil consists of a stigma supported on the style; but in some Compositæ, the male florets, which of course cannot be fecundated, have a pistil, which is in a rudimentary state, for it is not crowned with a stigma; but the style remains well developed, and is clothed with hairs as in other compositæ, for the purpose of brushing the pollen out of the surrounding anthers. Again, an organ may become rudimentary for its proper purpose, and be used for a distinct object: in certain fish the swim-bladder seems to be nearly rudimentary for its proper function of giving buoyancy, but has become converted into a [452]nascent breathing organ or lung. Other similar instances could be given.

An organ that serves two functions can become basic or completely useless for one, even the more crucial function, while still working well for the other. For example, in plants, the pistil helps the pollen tubes reach the ovules protected in the ovary at its base. The pistil has a stigma supported by the style; however, in some Compositæ, the male florets, which can't be fertilized, have a pistil that is in a basic state since it lacks a stigma. Nevertheless, the style is well developed and covered with hairs like in other Compositæ, to brush the pollen out of the surrounding anthers. Additionally, an organ can become underdeveloped for its original purpose and then be used for a different function: in certain fish, the swim bladder seems nearly underdeveloped for its main role of providing buoyancy, but it has turned into a nascent breathing organ or lung. More examples like this could be provided.

Organs, however little developed, if of use, should not be called rudimentary; they cannot properly be said to be in an atrophied condition; they may be called nascent, and may hereafter be developed to any extent by natural selection. Rudimentary organs, on the other hand, are essentially useless, as teeth which never cut through the gums; in a still less developed condition, they would be of still less use. They cannot, therefore, under their present condition, have been formed by natural selection, which acts solely by the preservation of useful modifications; they have been retained, as we shall see, by inheritance, and relate to a former condition of their possessor. It is difficult to know what are nascent organs; looking to the future, we cannot of course tell how any part will be developed, and whether it is now nascent; looking to the past, creatures with an organ in a nascent condition will generally have been supplanted and exterminated by their successors with the organ in a more perfect and developed condition. The wing of the penguin is of high service, and acts as a fin; it may, therefore, represent the nascent state of the wings of birds; not that I believe this to be the case, it is more probably a reduced organ, modified for a new function: the wing of the Apteryx is useless, and is truly rudimentary. The mammary glands of the Ornithorhynchus may, perhaps, be considered, in comparison with the udder of a cow, as in a nascent state. The ovigerous frena of certain cirripedes, which are only slightly developed and which have ceased to give attachment to the ova, are nascent branchiæ.

Organs, no matter how underdeveloped, shouldn't be called rudimentary if they serve a purpose; they can't really be said to be atrophied. They can be described as nascent and could potentially develop further through natural selection. On the other hand, rudimentary organs are essentially useless, like teeth that never break through the gums; if they were even less developed, they would be even less useful. Therefore, in their current state, they couldn't have formed through natural selection, which only preserves beneficial modifications; they have been retained, as we will discuss, through inheritance, and relate to a prior condition of their owner. It's hard to identify nascent organs; when looking to the future, we can't know how any part will develop or if it's currently nascent; when looking back, creatures with an organ in a nascent state have usually been replaced and wiped out by their successors with the organ in a more advanced and developed form. The penguin's wing is very functional and acts like a fin; it could represent the nascent stage of bird wings; however, I don't actually think this is the case. It's more likely a reduced organ that has adapted for a new purpose: the wing of the Apteryx is useless and is truly rudimentary. The mammary glands of the Ornithorhynchus might be seen as, compared to a cow's udder, being in a nascent state. The ovigerous frena of certain cirripedes, which are only slightly developed and no longer attach to the eggs, are nascent branchiæ.

Rudimentary organs in the individuals of the same species are very liable to vary in degree of development [453]and in other respects. Moreover, in closely allied species, the degree to which the same organ has been rendered rudimentary occasionally differs much. This latter fact is well exemplified in the state of the wings of the female moths in certain groups. Rudimentary organs may be utterly aborted; and this implies, that we find in an animal or plant no trace of an organ, which analogy would lead us to expect to find, and which is occasionally found in monstrous individuals of the species. Thus in the snapdragon (antirrhinum) we generally do not find a rudiment of a fifth stamen; but this may sometimes be seen. In tracing the homologies of the same part in different members of a class, nothing is more common, or more necessary, than the use and discovery of rudiments. This is well shown in the drawings given by Owen of the bones of the leg of the horse, ox, and rhinoceros.

Rudimentary organs in individuals of the same species can vary significantly in their level of development [453] and in other ways. Additionally, in closely related species, the extent to which the same organ has become rudimentary can vary quite a bit. A good example of this is seen in the wings of female moths in certain groups. Rudimentary organs can be completely absent, which means that in an animal or plant, we may not find any sign of an organ that we would expect to see based on analogy, even though it can sometimes appear in abnormal individuals of the species. For instance, in the snapdragon (antirrhinum), we usually do not find a trace of a fifth stamen, but it can occasionally be observed. When examining the homologies of the same part in different members of a class, using and identifying rudiments is often common and essential. This is clearly illustrated in the drawings by Owen of the leg bones of the horse, ox, and rhinoceros.

It is an important fact that rudimentary organs, such as teeth in the upper jaws of whales and ruminants, can often be detected in the embryo, but afterwards wholly disappear. It is also, I believe, a universal rule, that a rudimentary part or organ is of greater size relatively to the adjoining parts in the embryo, than in the adult; so that the organ at this early age is less rudimentary, or even cannot be said to be in any degree rudimentary. Hence, also, a rudimentary organ in the adult is often said to have retained its embryonic condition.

It’s an important fact that basic organs, like the teeth in the upper jaws of whales and herbivores, can often be seen in the embryo but then disappear completely. I also believe it’s a general rule that a rudimentary part or organ is relatively larger compared to the surrounding parts in the embryo than it is in the adult. This means that the organ at this early stage is less rudimentary, or it might not even be considered rudimentary at all. Therefore, a rudimentary organ in adults is often said to have kept its embryonic condition.

I have now given the leading facts with respect to rudimentary organs. In reflecting on them, every one must be struck with astonishment: for the same reasoning power which tells us plainly that most parts and organs are exquisitely adapted for certain purposes, tells us with equal plainness that these rudimentary or atrophied organs, are imperfect and useless. In works [454]on natural history rudimentary organs are generally said to have been created "for the sake of symmetry," or in order "to complete the scheme of nature;" but this seems to me no explanation, merely a re-statement of the fact. Would it be thought sufficient to say that because planets revolve in elliptic courses round the sun, satellites follow the same course round the planets, for the sake of symmetry, and to complete the scheme of nature? An eminent physiologist accounts for the presence of rudimentary organs, by supposing that they serve to excrete matter in excess, or injurious to the system; but can we suppose that the minute papilla, which often represents the pistil in male flowers, and which is formed merely of cellular tissue, can thus act? Can we suppose that the formation of rudimentary teeth, which are subsequently absorbed, can be of any service to the rapidly growing embryonic calf by the excretion of precious phosphate of lime? When a man's fingers have been amputated, imperfect nails sometimes appear on the stumps: I could as soon believe that these vestiges of nails have appeared, not from unknown laws of growth, but in order to excrete horny matter, as that the rudimentary nails on the fin of the manatee were formed for this purpose.

I have now shared the main facts about rudimentary organs. When thinking about them, it’s hard not to be amazed: because the same reasoning that clearly shows us that most parts and organs are finely tuned for specific functions also plainly indicates that these rudimentary or atrophied organs are flawed and useless. In works [454]on natural history, rudimentary organs are often said to have been created "for the sake of symmetry" or to "complete the scheme of nature;" but to me, this isn't really an explanation, just a rephrasing of the fact. Would it be considered enough to state that because planets orbit the sun in elliptical paths, satellites orbit the planets for symmetry and to complete nature's scheme? A noted physiologist explains the existence of rudimentary organs by suggesting they help get rid of excess or harmful substances in the body; but can we really believe that the tiny papilla, which often represents the pistil in male flowers and is made up of just cellular tissue, functions this way? Can we think that the development of rudimentary teeth, which are later absorbed, provides any benefit to the quickly growing embryonic calf by excreting valuable phosphate of lime? When a person's fingers are amputated, imperfect nails sometimes appear on the stumps: I could just as easily believe these nail remnants appeared due to unknown growth laws, rather than for the purpose of excreting keratin, just like I could believe the rudimentary nails on the fin of the manatee were formed for that reason.

On my view of descent with modification, the origin of rudimentary organs is simple. We have plenty of cases of rudimentary organs in our domestic productions,—as the stump of a tail in tailless breeds,—the vestige of an ear in earless breeds,—the reappearance of minute dangling horns in hornless breeds of cattle, more especially, according to Youatt, in young animals,—and the state of the whole flower in the cauliflower. We often see rudiments of various parts in monsters. But I doubt whether any of these cases throw light on the origin of rudimentary organs in a state of nature, [455]further than by showing that rudiments can be produced; for I doubt whether species under nature ever undergo abrupt changes. I believe that disuse has been the main agency; that it has led in successive generations to the gradual reduction of various organs, until they have become rudimentary,—as in the case of the eyes of animals inhabiting dark caverns, and of the wings of birds inhabiting oceanic islands, which have seldom been forced to take flight, and have ultimately lost the power of flying. Again, an organ useful under certain conditions, might become injurious under others, as with the wings of beetles living on small and exposed islands; and in this case natural selection would continue slowly to reduce the organ, until it was rendered harmless and rudimentary.

In my view of evolution through gradual change, the origins of rudimentary organs are straightforward. We see many examples of rudimentary organs in our domesticated animals—like the tail stump in tailless breeds, the leftover ear in earless breeds, and the tiny dangling horns in hornless cattle, especially in younger animals, according to Youatt—and the overall structure of the cauliflower flower. We also often observe rudiments of various parts in abnormal cases. However, I’m not sure if any of these examples provide insight into how rudimentary organs originate in nature, [455]other than demonstrating that rudimentary features can develop; I question whether species in nature actually undergo sudden changes. I believe that disuse has played a significant role, causing gradual reductions in various organs over generations until they become rudimentary—like the eyes of animals that live in dark caves, and the wings of birds on oceanic islands that rarely need to fly and eventually lose their ability to do so. Additionally, an organ that is beneficial in certain situations might become harmful in others, such as the wings of beetles that live on small, exposed islands; in this case, natural selection would gradually minimize the organ until it became harmless and rudimentary.

Any change in function, which can be effected by insensibly small steps, is within the power of natural selection; so that an organ rendered, during changed habits of life, useless or injurious for one purpose, might be modified and used for another purpose. Or an organ might be retained for one alone of its former functions. An organ, when rendered useless, may well be variable, for its variations cannot be checked by natural selection. At whatever period of life disuse or selection reduces an organ, and this will generally be when the being has come to maturity and to its full powers of action, the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages will reproduce the organ in its reduced state at the same age, and consequently will seldom affect or reduce it in the embryo. Thus we can understand the greater relative size of rudimentary organs in the embryo, and their lesser relative size in the adult. But if each step of the process of reduction were to be inherited, not at the corresponding age, but at an extremely early period of life (as we have good [456]reason to believe to be possible), the rudimentary part would tend to be wholly lost, and we should have a case of complete abortion. The principle, also, of economy, explained in a former chapter, by which the materials forming any part or structure, if not useful to the possessor, will be saved as far as is possible, will probably often come into play; and this will tend to cause the entire obliteration of a rudimentary organ.

Any change in function, which can happen through very small steps, is possible due to natural selection. This means that an organ that becomes useless or harmful due to changes in lifestyle might be altered and used for a different purpose. Alternatively, an organ might be kept for just one of its previous functions. When an organ becomes useless, it can change a lot, as its variations aren’t limited by natural selection. No matter when in life disuse or selection decreases an organ, this generally happens when the individual reaches maturity and is at its peak performance. The principle of inheritance at corresponding ages will then reproduce the organ in its diminished form at that same age, so it usually won't affect or reduce it in the embryo. This helps us understand why rudimentary organs are relatively larger in embryos and smaller in adults. However, if each stage of the reduction process were inherited not at the corresponding age but at a very early point in life (as we have good reason to believe is possible), the rudimentary part could be completely lost, leading to total abortion. The economy principle, discussed in a previous chapter, which states that any part or structure that isn’t useful to the organism will be conserved as much as possible, will likely play a role here; this will probably lead to the complete elimination of a rudimentary organ.

As the presence of rudimentary organs is thus due to the tendency in every part of the organisation, which has long existed, to be inherited—we can understand, on the genealogical view of classification, how it is that systematists have found rudimentary parts as useful as, or even sometimes more useful than, parts of high physiological importance. Rudimentary organs may be compared with the letters in a word, still retained in the spelling, but become useless in the pronunciation, but which serve as a clue in seeking for its derivation. On the view of descent with modification, we may conclude that the existence of organs in a rudimentary, imperfect, and useless condition, or quite aborted, far from presenting a strange difficulty, as they assuredly do on the ordinary doctrine of creation, might even have been anticipated, and can be accounted for by the laws of inheritance.

As the existence of basic organs is a result of the long-standing tendency in every part of the organism to be inherited, we can see, from a genealogical perspective of classification, why systematists have found rudimentary parts just as useful, or sometimes even more useful, than parts that have significant physiological importance. Rudimentary organs can be likened to the letters in a word that are still present in the spelling but are useless in pronunciation; they serve as a hint in tracing the word's origin. Considering descent with modification, we can conclude that the presence of organs in a rudimentary, imperfect, and non-functional state, or completely undeveloped, is not as puzzling as it seems under traditional creation theory; rather, it might have been expected and can be explained by the principles of inheritance.

 

Summary.—In this chapter I have attempted to show, that the subordination of group to group in all organisms throughout all time; that the nature of the relationship, by which all living and extinct beings are united by complex, radiating, and circuitous lines of affinities into one grand system; the rules followed and the difficulties encountered by naturalists in their classifications; the value set upon characters, if constant and prevalent, whether of high vital importance, or of the most trifling [457]importance, or, as in rudimentary organs, of no importance; the wide opposition in value between analogical or adaptive characters, and characters of true affinity; and other such rules;—all naturally follow on the view of the common parentage of those forms which are considered by naturalists as allied, together with their modification through natural selection, with its contingencies of extinction and divergence of character. In considering this view of classification, it should be borne in mind that the element of descent has been universally used in ranking together the sexes, ages, and acknowledged varieties of the same species, however different they may be in structure. If we extend the use of this element of descent,—the only certainly known cause of similarity in organic beings,—we shall understand what is meant by the natural system: it is genealogical in its attempted arrangement, with the grades of acquired difference marked by the terms varieties, species, genera, families, orders, and classes.

Summary.—In this chapter, I aimed to show that there is a hierarchy of groups in all organisms throughout time; the nature of the relationships that connect all living and extinct beings through complex, branching, and indirect lines of connections into one large system; the methods used and the challenges faced by naturalists in their classifications; the importance placed on traits, whether they are consistently present and significant, or merely trivial, or, in the case of rudimentary organs, irrelevant; the significant differences in importance between analogous or adaptive traits and traits that reflect true relationships; and other similar rules. All of this naturally follows from the idea of common ancestry among those forms seen by naturalists as related, along with their changes through natural selection, including the processes of extinction and divergence in characteristics. In considering this classification approach, it's important to remember that the element of descent has been universally applied when grouping together the sexes, ages, and recognized varieties of the same species, regardless of how structurally different they may be. If we broaden the application of this element of descent—the only clearly known cause of similarity in living organisms—we will understand what is meant by the natural system: it is genealogical in its organization, with the degrees of acquired differences identified by the terms varieties, species, genera, families, orders, and classes.

On this same view of descent with modification, all the great facts in Morphology become intelligible,—whether we look to the same pattern displayed in the homologous organs, to whatever purpose applied, of the different species of a class; or to the homologous parts constructed on the same pattern in each individual animal and plant.

On this same idea of evolution with changes over time, all the major concepts in Morphology make sense—whether we consider the same design seen in the similar organs, regardless of their function, across different species in a class; or the similar parts built on the same design in each individual animal and plant.

On the principle of successive slight variations, not necessarily or generally supervening at a very early period of life, and being inherited at a corresponding period, we can understand the great leading facts in Embryology; namely, the resemblance in an individual embryo of the homologous parts, which when matured will become widely different from each other in structure and function; and the resemblance in different species of a class of the homologous parts or [458]organs, though fitted in the adult members for purposes as different as possible. Larvæ are active embryos, which have become specially modified in relation to their habits of life, through the principle of modifications being inherited at corresponding ages. On this same principle—and bearing in mind, that when organs are reduced in size, either from disuse or selection, it will generally be at that period of life when the being has to provide for its own wants, and bearing in mind how strong is the principle of inheritance—the occurrence of rudimentary organs and their final abortion, present to us no inexplicable difficulties; on the contrary, their presence might have been even anticipated. The importance of embryological characters and of rudimentary organs in classification is intelligible, on the view that an arrangement is only so far natural as it is genealogical.

On the principle of making small changes over time, which don’t always happen early in life but are passed down at similar times, we can grasp the key ideas in Embryology. This includes the similarities in an individual embryo’s homologous parts, which, when fully developed, will differ significantly in structure and function; as well as the similarities in homologous parts or organs across different species within a class, even though these parts serve very different purposes in the adult forms. Larvae are active embryos that have been specifically adapted based on their life habits, following the idea that modifications are inherited at similar stages of life. Using this same principle—and remembering that when body parts shrink either due to lack of use or selective pressures, it usually occurs when the organism starts to fend for itself, along with how strong the inheritance principle is—we can understand the appearance of rudimentary organs and their eventual loss without any puzzling issues; in fact, their existence might have even been expected. The significance of embryological traits and rudimentary organs in classification makes sense when considering that a system is only natural to the extent that it reflects genealogical relationships.

Finally, the several classes of facts which have been considered in this chapter, seem to me to proclaim so plainly, that the innumerable species, genera, and families of organic beings, with which this world is peopled, have all descended, each within its own class or group, from common parents, and have all been modified in the course of descent, that I should without hesitation adopt this view, even if it were unsupported by other facts or arguments.

Finally, the various types of facts discussed in this chapter clearly indicate to me that the countless species, genera, and families of living beings that inhabit this world have all evolved, each within its own category or group, from common ancestors, and have been changed over time through descent. I would confidently accept this perspective, even if there were no additional supporting facts or arguments.


[459]

[459]

CHAPTER XIV.

Recapitulation and Conclusion.

Summary and Conclusion.

Recapitulation of the difficulties on the theory of Natural Selection—Recapitulation of the general and special circumstances in its favour—Causes of the general belief in the immutability of species—How far the theory of natural selection may be extended—Effects of its adoption on the study of Natural history—Concluding remarks.

Summary of the challenges associated with the theory of Natural Selection—Overview of the general and specific factors that support it—Reasons for the common belief in the fixed nature of species—The limits of applying the theory of natural selection—The effect of its acceptance on the study of Natural History—Concluding thoughts.

As this whole volume is one long argument, it may be convenient to the reader to have the leading facts and inferences briefly recapitulated.

As this entire volume is a lengthy argument, it might be helpful for the reader to have the main facts and conclusions summarized briefly.

That many and serious objections may be advanced against the theory of descent with modification through natural selection, I do not deny. I have endeavoured to give to them their full force. Nothing at first can appear more difficult to believe than that the more complex organs and instincts should have been perfected, not by means superior to, though analogous with, human reason, but by the accumulation of innumerable slight variations, each good for the individual possessor. Nevertheless, this difficulty, though appearing to our imagination insuperably great, cannot be considered real if we admit the following propositions, namely,—that gradations in the perfection of any organ or instinct which we may consider, either do now exist or could have existed, each good of its kind,—that all organs and instincts are, in ever so slight a degree, variable,—and, lastly, that there is a struggle for existence leading to the preservation of each profitable deviation of structure or instinct. The truth of these propositions cannot, I think, be disputed. [460]

I don't deny that there are many serious objections to the theory of descent with modification through natural selection. I’ve tried to address them fully. At first glance, it seems incredibly hard to believe that complex organs and instincts developed not through superior methods but through the accumulation of countless small variations, each beneficial to the individual. However, this difficulty, while it may seem overwhelmingly great in our minds, isn't real if we accept the following points: that there are or could be gradations in the perfection of any organ or instinct we consider, each effective in its own way; that all organs and instincts are, even in slight ways, variable; and finally, that there is a struggle for existence that results in the survival of each advantageous change in structure or instinct. I think the truth of these points cannot be disputed. [460]

It is, no doubt, extremely difficult even to conjecture by what gradations many structures have been perfected, more especially amongst broken and failing groups of organic beings; but we see so many strange gradations in nature, that we ought to be extremely cautious in saying that any organ or instinct, or any whole being, could not have arrived at its present state by many graduated steps. There are, it must be admitted, cases of special difficulty on the theory of natural selection; and one of the most curious of these is the existence of two or three defined castes of workers or sterile females in the same community of ants; but I have attempted to show how this difficulty can be mastered.

It’s definitely really challenging to even imagine how many structures have been developed over time, especially among broken and struggling groups of living beings. However, since we observe so many unusual variations in nature, we should be very careful in claiming that any organ, instinct, or entire being couldn't have reached its current state through many gradual steps. There are, of course, some particularly tricky cases for the theory of natural selection, and one of the most interesting is the existence of two or three distinct castes of workers or non-reproductive females within the same ant community. Still, I have tried to explain how this challenge can be addressed.

With respect to the almost universal sterility of species when first crossed, which forms so remarkable a contrast with the almost universal fertility of varieties when crossed, I must refer the reader to the recapitulation of the facts given at the end of the eighth chapter, which seem to me conclusively to show that this sterility is no more a special endowment than is the incapacity of two trees to be grafted together; but that it is incidental on constitutional differences in the reproductive systems of the intercrossed species. We see the truth of this conclusion in the vast difference in the result, when the same two species are crossed reciprocally; that is, when one species is first used as the father and then as the mother.

Regarding the almost universal sterility of species when initially crossed, which stands in sharp contrast to the nearly universal fertility of varieties when crossed, I direct the reader to the summary of the facts provided at the end of the eighth chapter. These facts strongly suggest that this sterility is not a unique trait, just as the inability of two trees to be grafted together isn't a special characteristic; rather, it arises from constitutional differences in the reproductive systems of the species being crossed. We can see the truth in this conclusion through the significant differences in outcomes when the same two species are crossed in both directions; that is, when one species is first used as the male parent and then as the female parent.

The fertility of varieties when intercrossed and of their mongrel offspring cannot be considered as universal; nor is their very general fertility surprising when we remember that it is not likely that either their constitutions or their reproductive systems should have been profoundly modified. Moreover, most of the varieties which have been experimentised on have been [461]produced under domestication; and as domestication (I do not mean mere confinement) apparently tends to eliminate sterility, we ought not to expect it also to produce sterility.

The fertility of different varieties when crossed with each other and their mixed offspring shouldn't be seen as a given. It's not surprising that they tend to be quite fertile, especially considering that it's unlikely their biology or reproductive systems have changed a lot. Additionally, most of the varieties tested have been [461]produced through domestication; and since domestication (I don’t mean just keeping them in captivity) seems to help reduce sterility, we shouldn't expect it to create sterility either.

The sterility of hybrids is a very different case from that of first crosses, for their reproductive organs are more or less functionally impotent; whereas in first crosses the organs on both sides are in a perfect condition. As we continually see that organisms of all kinds are rendered in some degree sterile from their constitutions having been disturbed by slightly different and new conditions of life, we need not feel surprise at hybrids being in some degree sterile, for their constitutions can hardly fail to have been disturbed from being compounded of two distinct organisations. This parallelism is supported by another parallel, but directly opposite, class of facts; namely, that the vigour and fertility of all organic beings are increased by slight changes in their conditions of life, and that the offspring of slightly modified forms or varieties acquire from being crossed increased vigour and fertility. So that, on the one hand, considerable changes in the conditions of life and crosses between greatly modified forms, lessen fertility; and on the other hand, lesser changes in the conditions of life and crosses between less modified forms, increase fertility.

The sterility of hybrids is quite different from that of first crosses, because their reproductive organs are somewhat functionally impotent, while in first crosses, the organs on both sides are fully functional. We often observe that organisms of all types become somewhat sterile when their constitutions are disrupted by slightly different and new living conditions, so it's not surprising that hybrids are somewhat sterile since their constitutions are likely disturbed by being made up of two distinct organisms. This comparison is backed by another set of facts that are directly opposite: namely, that the vigor and fertility of all living beings increase with slight changes in their living conditions, and that the offspring of slightly modified forms or varieties gain increased vigor and fertility from being crossed. Thus, on one hand, significant changes in living conditions and crosses between highly modified forms reduce fertility, while on the other hand, minor changes in living conditions and crosses between less modified forms enhance fertility.

Turning to geographical distribution, the difficulties encountered on the theory of descent with modification are grave enough. All the individuals of the same species, and all the species of the same genus, or even higher group, must have descended from common parents; and therefore, in however distant and isolated parts of the world they are now found, they must in the course of successive generations have passed from some one part to the others. We are often wholly unable [462]even to conjecture how this could have been effected. Yet, as we have reason to believe that some species have retained the same specific form for very long periods, enormously long as measured by years, too much stress ought not to be laid on the occasional wide diffusion of the same species; for during very long periods of time there will always have been a good chance for wide migration by many means. A broken or interrupted range may often be accounted for by the extinction of the species in the intermediate regions. It cannot be denied that we are as yet very ignorant of the full extent of the various climatal and geographical changes which have affected the earth during modern periods; and such changes will obviously have greatly facilitated migration. As an example, I have attempted to show how potent has been the influence of the Glacial period on the distribution both of the same and of representative species throughout the world. We are as yet profoundly ignorant of the many occasional means of transport. With respect to distinct species of the same genus inhabiting very distant and isolated regions, as the process of modification has necessarily been slow, all the means of migration will have been possible during a very long period; and consequently the difficulty of the wide diffusion of species of the same genus is in some degree lessened.

When it comes to geographical distribution, the challenges related to the theory of descent with modification are significant. All individuals of the same species, and all species within the same genus—or even higher classifications—must have come from common ancestors. Therefore, despite being found in distant and isolated parts of the world today, they must have migrated from one location to another over many generations. Often, we cannot even begin to guess how this migration occurred. However, since we have reason to believe that some species have maintained the same specific form for incredibly long periods, measured in years, we shouldn't place too much emphasis on the occasional widespread presence of the same species. Over such long spans of time, there would always be numerous opportunities for migration through various means. A fragmented or interrupted range might often be explained by the extinction of the species in the areas in between. It’s undeniable that we still know very little about the full range of climatic and geographical changes that have affected the Earth in more recent periods, and these changes would have greatly facilitated migration. For example, I have tried to illustrate how significant the Glacial period has been on the distribution of both the same and related species around the globe. We are still largely unaware of many potential means of transportation that may have existed. Regarding distinct species of the same genus that live in very far-flung and isolated regions, since the process of modification has been necessarily slow, all means of migration would have been possible over a lengthy period; as a result, the challenges related to the widespread distribution of species within the same genus are somewhat alleviated.

As on the theory of natural selection an interminable number of intermediate forms must have existed, linking together all the species in each group by gradations as fine as our present varieties, it may be asked, Why do we not see these linking forms all around us? Why are not all organic beings blended together in an inextricable chaos? With respect to existing forms, we should remember that we have no right to expect (excepting in rare cases) to discover directly connecting [463]links between them, but only between each and some extinct and supplanted form. Even on a wide area, which has during a long period remained continuous, and of which the climate and other conditions of life change insensibly in going from a district occupied by one species into another district occupied by a closely allied species, we have no just right to expect often to find intermediate varieties in the intermediate zone. For we have reason to believe that only a few species are undergoing change at any one period; and all changes are slowly effected. I have also shown that the intermediate varieties which will at first probably exist in the intermediate zones, will be liable to be supplanted by the allied forms on either hand; and the latter, from existing in greater numbers, will generally be modified and improved at a quicker rate than the intermediate varieties, which exist in lesser numbers; so that the intermediate varieties will, in the long run, be supplanted and exterminated.

As the theory of natural selection suggests, an endless number of intermediate forms must have existed, connecting all the species in each group through gradual changes as subtle as our current varieties. This raises the question: Why don’t we see these connecting forms all around us? Why aren’t all living beings mixed together in a tangled mess? When it comes to existing forms, we should remember that we shouldn't expect (except in rare cases) to find directly connecting [463]links between them, but only between each species and some extinct or replaced form. Even in a large area that has remained continuous for a long time, where the climate and other living conditions gradually change from a region occupied by one species to another region occupied by a closely related species, we shouldn't expect to often find intermediate varieties in the transition zone. This is because we have reason to believe that only a few species are changing at any given time, and all changes occur slowly. I’ve also shown that the intermediate varieties that might initially exist in these transition zones are likely to be replaced by closely related forms on either side; and these forms, being more numerous, will usually evolve and improve more quickly than the intermediate varieties, which exist in smaller numbers. As a result, over time, the intermediate varieties will be replaced and eliminated.

On this doctrine of the extermination of an infinitude of connecting links, between the living and extinct inhabitants of the world, and at each successive period between the extinct and still older species, why is not every geological formation charged with such links? Why does not every collection of fossil remains afford plain evidence of the gradation and mutation of the forms of life? We meet with no such evidence, and this is the most obvious and forcible of the many objections which may be urged against my theory. Why, again, do whole groups of allied species appear, though certainly they often falsely appear, to have come in suddenly on the several geological stages? Why do we not find great piles of strata beneath the Silurian system, stored with the remains of the progenitors of the Silurian groups of fossils? For certainly on my theory such [464]strata must somewhere have been deposited at these ancient and utterly unknown epochs in the world's history.

On this idea of wiping out countless connections between the living and extinct inhabitants of the world, and at each stage between the extinct and even older species, why isn't every geological formation filled with these connections? Why doesn't every collection of fossil remains provide clear evidence of the progression and changes in forms of life? We don't find such evidence, and this is the most obvious and compelling of the many objections that can be raised against my theory. Why, once again, do entire groups of related species appear, even though they often seem to appear suddenly in different geological periods? Why don’t we find large layers of rock beneath the Silurian system filled with the remains of the ancestors of the Silurian fossil groups? Because certainly, according to my theory, such [464]layers must have been deposited somewhere during those ancient and completely unknown times in the history of the world.

I can answer these questions and grave objections only on the supposition that the geological record is far more imperfect than most geologists believe. It cannot be objected that there has not been time sufficient for any amount of organic change; for the lapse of time has been so great as to be utterly inappreciable by the human intellect. The number of specimens in all our museums is absolutely as nothing compared with the countless generations of countless species which certainly have existed. We should not be able to recognise a species as the parent of any one or more species if we were to examine them ever so closely, unless we likewise possessed many of the intermediate links between their past or parent and present states; and these many links we could hardly ever expect to discover, owing to the imperfection of the geological record. Numerous existing doubtful forms could be named which are probably varieties; but who will pretend that in future ages so many fossil links will be discovered, that naturalists will be able to decide, on the common view, whether or not these doubtful forms are varieties? As long as most of the links between any two species are unknown, if any one link or intermediate variety be discovered, it will simply be classed as another and distinct species. Only a small portion of the world has been geologically explored. Only organic beings of certain classes can be preserved in a fossil condition, at least in any great number. Widely ranging species vary most, and varieties are often at first local,—both causes rendering the discovery of intermediate links less likely. Local varieties will not spread into other and distant regions until they are considerably modified and [465]improved; and when they do spread, if discovered in a geological formation, they will appear as if suddenly created there, and will be simply classed as new species. Most formations have been intermittent in their accumulation; and their duration, I am inclined to believe, has been shorter than the average duration of specific forms. Successive formations are separated from each other by enormous blank intervals of time; for fossiliferous formations, thick enough to resist future degradation, can be accumulated only where much sediment is deposited on the subsiding bed of the sea. During the alternate periods of elevation and of stationary level the record will be blank. During these latter periods there will probably be more variability in the forms of life; during periods of subsidence, more extinction.

I can answer these questions and serious objections only if we assume that the geological record is much more incomplete than most geologists think. It cannot be argued that there's not enough time for any significant organic change; the amount of time that has passed is so vast that it's completely beyond human comprehension. The number of specimens in all our museums is utterly insignificant compared to the countless generations of countless species that have certainly existed. We wouldn’t be able to recognize a species as the ancestor of one or more other species, even if we examined them very closely, unless we also had many of the intermediate links between their past or parent forms and their current states; and we can hardly expect to find those many links, due to the shortcomings of the geological record. There are many existing ambiguous forms that could be identified as likely varieties; but who would claim that, in future ages, enough fossil links will be found for naturalists to determine, according to the common view, whether these ambiguous forms are varieties? As long as most of the connections between any two species are unknown, if any single link or intermediate variety is discovered, it will simply be classified as another distinct species. Only a small part of the world has been geologically studied. Only certain classes of living organisms can be preserved as fossils, at least in significant numbers. Species with wide distributions tend to vary the most, and varieties are often initially local—both of which make the finding of intermediate links less likely. Local varieties will not spread to other distant regions until they've changed and developed considerably; and when they do spread, if found in a geological formation, they'll seem to have appeared there suddenly and will simply be classified as new species. Most formations have been irregular in their accumulation, and I believe their duration has generally been shorter than the average time that specific forms exist. Successive formations are often separated by vast stretches of time, as fossil-rich formations thick enough to withstand future erosion can only accumulate where a lot of sediment is deposited on the sinking seabed. During times of tectonic uplift and stable conditions, the record will be blank. During these stable periods, there will likely be more variation in life forms; during periods of subsidence, there will be more extinctions.

With respect to the absence of fossiliferous formations beneath the lowest Silurian strata, I can only recur to the hypothesis given in the ninth chapter. That the geological record is imperfect all will admit; but that it is imperfect to the degree which I require, few will be inclined to admit. If we look to long enough intervals of time, geology plainly declares that all species have changed; and they have changed in the manner which my theory requires, for they have changed slowly and in a graduated manner. We clearly see this in the fossil remains from consecutive formations invariably being much more closely related to each other, than are the fossils from formations distant from each other in time.

Regarding the absence of fossil-rich formations below the oldest Silurian layers, I can only refer back to the hypothesis presented in the ninth chapter. Everyone agrees that the geological record is incomplete; however, few will likely accept that it is as incomplete as I suggest. When we consider long spans of time, geology clearly shows that all species have evolved; they have evolved in the way my theory posits, as they have changed gradually and incrementally. We can see this clearly in the fossil remains from successive formations, which are consistently much more closely related to each other than the fossils from formations that are farther apart in time.

Such is the sum of the several chief objections and difficulties which may justly be urged against my theory; and I have now briefly recapitulated the answers and explanations which can be given to them. I have felt these difficulties far too heavily during many years to [466]doubt their weight. But it deserves especial notice that the more important objections relate to questions on which we are confessedly ignorant; nor do we know how ignorant we are. We do not know all the possible transitional gradations between the simplest and the most perfect organs; it cannot be pretended that we know all the varied means of Distribution during the long lapse of years, or that we know how imperfect the Geological Record is. Grave as these several difficulties are, in my judgment they do not overthrow the theory of descent from a few created forms with subsequent modification.

These are the main objections and challenges that can reasonably be raised against my theory, and I've briefly summarized the responses and explanations to them. I've felt these challenges weigh heavily on me for many years to doubt their importance. However, it's important to note that the more significant objections relate to areas where we admit we lack knowledge; we don't even realize how much we don't know. We aren't aware of all the potential transitional stages between the simplest and the most complex organs; we can't claim to know all the different ways distribution has occurred over long periods, nor do we understand how incomplete the Geological Record is. Despite the seriousness of these various challenges, I believe they don't negate the theory of descent from a few original forms with later modifications.

 

Now let us turn to the other side of the argument. Under domestication we see much variability. This seems to be mainly due to the reproductive system being eminently susceptible to changes in the conditions of life; so that this system, when not rendered impotent, fails to reproduce offspring exactly like the parent-form. Variability is governed by many complex laws,—by correlation of growth, by use and disuse, and by the direct action of the physical conditions of life. There is much difficulty in ascertaining how much modification our domestic productions have undergone; but we may safely infer that the amount has been large, and that modifications can be inherited for long periods. As long as the conditions of life remain the same, we have reason to believe that a modification, which has already been inherited for many generations, may continue to be inherited for an almost infinite number of generations. On the other hand we have evidence that variability, when it has once come into play, does not wholly cease; for new varieties are still occasionally produced by our most anciently domesticated productions. [467]

Now let’s look at the other side of the argument. With domestication, we see a lot of variability. This seems to be mainly because the reproductive system is highly sensitive to changes in living conditions; so, when this system isn't rendered ineffective, it fails to reproduce offspring that are exactly like the parent form. Variability is influenced by many complex factors—like the correlation of growth, the effects of use and disuse, and the direct influence of physical living conditions. It’s challenging to determine how much our domesticated products have changed; however, we can confidently conclude that the changes have been significant and that modifications can be passed down for a long time. As long as living conditions stay the same, we have reason to believe that a modification that has already been inherited for many generations may continue to be inherited for an almost infinite number of generations. On the flip side, we have evidence that once variability is set in motion, it doesn’t completely stop; new varieties are still occasionally produced by our oldest domesticated products. [467]

Man does not actually produce variability; he only unintentionally exposes organic beings to new conditions of life, and then nature acts on the organisation, and causes variability. But man can and does select the variations given to him by nature, and thus accumulate them in any desired manner. He thus adapts animals and plants for his own benefit or pleasure. He may do this methodically, or he may do it unconsciously by preserving the individuals most useful to him at the time, without any thought of altering the breed. It is certain that he can largely influence the character of a breed by selecting, in each successive generation, individual differences so slight as to be quite inappreciable by an uneducated eye. This process of selection has been the great agency in the production of the most distinct and useful domestic breeds. That many of the breeds produced by man have to a large extent the character of natural species, is shown by the inextricable doubts whether very many of them are varieties or aboriginal species.

Man doesn’t actually create variability; he just unintentionally exposes living organisms to new conditions, and then nature takes over and causes variability. However, man can and does choose the variations that nature offers, accumulating them in any way he wants. This allows him to adapt animals and plants for his own benefit or enjoyment. He can do this intentionally, or he might do it unknowingly by keeping the individuals that are most useful to him at the time, without any intention of changing the breed. It’s clear that he can significantly influence the characteristics of a breed by selecting individual differences in each generation that are so slight that an untrained eye wouldn’t notice them. This selection process has been a major factor in creating the most distinct and useful domestic breeds. The fact that many of the breeds created by humans closely resemble natural species raises complex questions about whether many of them are varieties or original species.

There is no obvious reason why the principles which have acted so efficiently under domestication should not have acted under nature. In the preservation of favoured individuals and races, during the constantly-recurrent Struggle for Existence, we see the most powerful and ever-acting means of selection. The struggle for existence inevitably follows from the high geometrical ratio of increase which is common to all organic beings. This high rate of increase is proved by calculation,—by the rapid increase of many animals and plants during a succession of peculiar seasons, or when naturalised in a new country. More individuals are born than can possibly survive. A grain in the balance will determine which individual shall live and which shall die,—which variety or species shall increase in number, and which [468]shall decrease, or finally become extinct. As the individuals of the same species come in all respects into the closest competition with each other, the struggle will generally be most severe between them; it will be almost equally severe between the varieties of the same species, and next in severity between the species of the same genus. But the struggle will often be very severe between beings most remote in the scale of nature. The slightest advantage in one being, at any age or during any season, over those with which it comes into competition, or better adaptation in however slight a degree to the surrounding physical conditions, will turn the balance.

There’s no clear reason why the principles that work so effectively in domestication wouldn’t apply in nature. The survival of favored individuals and species during the ongoing struggle for existence is the most powerful and consistent method of selection. This struggle is a direct result of the high rate at which all living beings can increase. This high growth rate is demonstrated through calculations, such as the rapid population growth of certain animals and plants during specific seasons or when they are introduced to a new environment. More individuals are born than can survive. A tiny difference can decide which individual lives or dies, which variety or species grows in number, and which declines or eventually becomes extinct. Since individuals of the same species compete closely with one another, the struggle is often most intense among them. It’s also quite intense among different varieties of the same species, and somewhat less intense among various species within the same genus. However, competition can be very fierce even among organisms that are quite different from each other in the natural hierarchy. The smallest advantage at any stage or during any season for one organism over its competitors, or a slightly better adaptation to environmental conditions, can tip the scales.

With animals having separated sexes there will in most cases be a struggle between the males for possession of the females. The most vigorous individuals, or those which have most successfully struggled with their conditions of life, will generally leave most progeny. But success will often depend on having special weapons or means of defence, or on the charms of the males; and the slightest advantage will lead to victory.

With animals having distinct sexes, there’s usually competition among the males for access to the females. The strongest individuals, or those that have adapted best to their environment, typically produce the most offspring. However, success often relies on having certain traits or defenses, or on the appeal of the males; even the smallest advantage can lead to victory.

As geology plainly proclaims that each land has undergone great physical changes, we might have expected that organic beings would have varied under nature, in the same way as they generally have varied under the changed conditions of domestication. And if there be any variability under nature, it would be an unaccountable fact if natural selection had not come into play. It has often been asserted, but the assertion is quite incapable of proof, that the amount of variation under nature is a strictly limited quantity. Man, though acting on external characters alone and often capriciously, can produce within a short period a great result by adding up mere individual differences in his domestic productions; and every one admits that there are at least individual differences in species under [469]nature. But, besides such differences, all naturalists have admitted the existence of varieties, which they think sufficiently distinct to be worthy of record in systematic works. No one can draw any clear distinction between individual differences and slight varieties; or between more plainly marked varieties and sub-species, and species. Let it be observed how naturalists differ in the rank which they assign to the many representative forms in Europe and North America.

As geology clearly shows, every piece of land has experienced significant physical changes. We might expect that living beings would have varied in nature, just like they do under the different conditions of domestication. If there is any variability in nature, it would be strange if natural selection hadn't played a role. People have often claimed that the amount of natural variation is a strictly limited quantity, but this claim is impossible to prove. Even though humans usually only focus on external traits and often do so randomly, they can achieve substantial results in a short time by accumulating individual differences in their domesticated animals and plants. It's universally acknowledged that there are at least individual differences among species in nature. Additionally, every naturalist accepts that there are varieties that they believe are distinct enough to be documented in systematic works. No one can clearly separate individual differences from slight varieties, or distinguish more clearly defined varieties from sub-species and species. It's interesting to note how naturalists disagree on the classification of the many representative forms found in Europe and North America.

If then we have under nature variability and a powerful agent always ready to act and select, why should we doubt that variations in any way useful to beings, under their excessively complex relations of life, would be preserved, accumulated, and inherited? Why, if man can by patience select variations most useful to himself, should nature fail in selecting variations useful, under changing conditions of life, to her living products? What limit can be put to this power, acting during long ages and rigidly scrutinising the whole constitution, structure, and habits of each creature,—favouring the good and rejecting the bad? I can see no limit to this power, in slowly and beautifully adapting each form to the most complex relations of life. The theory of natural selection, even if we looked no further than this, seems to me to be in itself probable. I have already recapitulated, as fairly as I could, the opposed difficulties and objections: now let us turn to the special facts and arguments in favour of the theory.

If we acknowledge that nature has variability and a strong force always ready to act and select, why should we doubt that variations beneficial to living beings, given their extremely complex life relationships, would be preserved, accumulated, and passed down? If humans can patiently choose variations that are most useful to themselves, why would nature not be able to select variations that are beneficial, under changing life conditions, for her living organisms? What limit can we impose on this power, which operates over long periods, rigorously examining the entire makeup, structure, and behaviors of each creature—favoring the good while rejecting the bad? I see no limit to this power, gently and gradually adapting each form to the most intricate life relationships. The theory of natural selection, even if we consider nothing else, seems probable to me. I have already summarized, as fairly as I could, the opposing difficulties and objections: now let’s focus on the specific facts and arguments supporting the theory.

On the view that species are only strongly marked and permanent varieties, and that each species first existed as a variety, we can see why it is that no line of demarcation can be drawn between species, commonly supposed to have been produced by special acts of creation, and varieties which are acknowledged to have been produced by secondary laws. On this same [470]view we can understand how it is that in each region where many species of a genus have been produced, and where they now flourish, these same species should present many varieties; for where the manufactory of species has been active, we might expect, as a general rule, to find it still in action; and this is the case if varieties be incipient species. Moreover, the species of the larger genera, which afford the greater number of varieties or incipient species, retain to a certain degree the character of varieties; for they differ from each other by a less amount of difference than do the species of smaller genera. The closely allied species also of the larger genera apparently have restricted ranges, and in their affinities they are clustered in little groups round other species—in which respects they resemble varieties. These are strange relations on the view of each species having been independently created, but are intelligible if all species first existed as varieties.

On the idea that species are just well-defined and permanent varieties, and that every species originally came from a variety, it's clear why we can't draw a distinct line between species—often thought to come from special acts of creation—and varieties, which are recognized to have been formed through secondary laws. From this perspective, we can understand why in areas where many species of a genus have developed and are now thriving, these species display many varieties; when the production of species has been active, we would generally expect it to continue, especially if varieties are seen as early forms of species. Additionally, species within larger genera, which produce the most varieties or budding species, still show some traits of varieties; they differ from one another less than species from smaller genera. The closely related species in larger genera also seem to have limited ranges and are grouped closely with other species, resembling the relationships found in varieties. These connections are unusual if each species was created independently, but make sense if all species initially started as varieties.

As each species tends by its geometrical ratio of reproduction to increase inordinately in number; and as the modified descendants of each species will be enabled to increase by so much the more as they become diversified in habits and structure, so as to be enabled to seize on many and widely different places in the economy of nature, there will be a constant tendency in natural selection to preserve the most divergent offspring of any one species. Hence during a long-continued course of modification, the slight differences, characteristic of varieties of the same species, tend to be augmented into the greater differences characteristic of species of the same genus. New and improved varieties will inevitably supplant and exterminate the older, less improved and intermediate varieties; and thus species are rendered to a large extent defined and distinct objects. Dominant species belonging to the [471]larger groups tend to give birth to new and dominant forms; so that each large group tends to become still larger, and at the same time more divergent in character. But as all groups cannot thus succeed in increasing in size, for the world would not hold them, the more dominant groups beat the less dominant. This tendency in the large groups to go on increasing in size and diverging in character, together with the almost inevitable contingency of much extinction, explains the arrangement of all the forms of life, in groups subordinate to groups, all within a few great classes, which we now see everywhere around us, and which has prevailed throughout all time. This grand fact of the grouping of all organic beings seems to me utterly inexplicable on the theory of creation.

As each species tends to increase dramatically in number based on its reproductive rate, and as the modified descendants of each species are better able to thrive as they adapt in habits and structure—allowing them to occupy diverse roles in nature—there will always be a natural selection tendency to preserve the most varied offspring of any one species. Therefore, over a long period of change, the minor differences typical of varieties within the same species tend to grow into the more significant differences that characterize species within the same genus. New and improved varieties will inevitably replace and wipe out the older, less advanced, and intermediate varieties, thus making species largely defined and distinct entities. Dominant species within larger groups tend to produce new and dominant forms, which means each large group continues to grow and also becomes more diverse. However, since not all groups can keep increasing in size—because the world wouldn't be able to accommodate them—the more dominant groups outcompete the less dominant ones. This tendency of large groups to expand and diversify, along with the unavoidable occurrence of significant extinctions, explains how all life forms are organized into subordinate groups under a few overarching classes, which we now observe all around us and which has persisted throughout time. This overarching fact about the grouping of all living beings seems completely inexplicable when considering the theory of creation.

As natural selection acts solely by accumulating slight, successive, favourable variations, it can produce no great or sudden modification; it can act only by very short and slow steps. Hence the canon of "Natura non facit saltum," which every fresh addition to our knowledge tends to make truer, is on this theory simply intelligible. We can plainly see why nature is prodigal in variety, though niggard in innovation. But why this should be a law of nature if each species has been independently created, no man can explain.

As natural selection works by gradually building up small, favorable changes, it can't create major or sudden shifts; it can only progress through tiny, slow steps. That's why the saying "Nature doesn't make leaps" becomes more accurate with each new discovery. It's clear why nature offers a lot of variety but is stingy with new developments. However, no one can explain why this should be a natural law if each species was created independently.

Many other facts are, as it seems to me, explicable on this theory. How strange it is that a bird, under the form of woodpecker, should have been created to prey on insects on the ground; that upland geese, which never or rarely swim, should have been created with webbed feet; that a thrush should have been created to dive and feed on sub-aquatic insects; and that a petrel should have been created with habits and structure fitting it for the life of an auk or grebe! and so on in endless other cases. But on the view of each [472]species constantly trying to increase in number, with natural selection always ready to adapt the slowly varying descendants of each to any unoccupied or ill-occupied place in nature, these facts cease to be strange, or perhaps might even have been anticipated.

Many other facts seem to make sense with this theory. How odd is it that a bird like a woodpecker was designed to hunt insects on the ground; that upland geese, which hardly ever swim, have webbed feet; that a thrush was created to dive and feed on underwater insects; and that a petrel was shaped and behaves like it should live as an auk or grebe! And this goes on with countless other examples. But if we consider that each species is always trying to grow in number, with natural selection continuously ready to adapt the slowly changing descendants of each to fill any unoccupied or poorly occupied space in nature, these facts stop being strange, or might even seem predictable.

As natural selection acts by competition, it adapts the inhabitants of each country only in relation to the degree of perfection of their associates; so that we need feel no surprise at the inhabitants of any one country, although on the ordinary view supposed to have been specially created and adapted for that country, being beaten and supplanted by the naturalised productions from another land. Nor ought we to marvel if all the contrivances in nature be not, as far as we can judge, absolutely perfect; and if some of them be abhorrent to our ideas of fitness. We need not marvel at the sting of the bee causing the bee's own death; at drones being produced in such vast numbers for one single act, with the great majority slaughtered by their sterile sisters; at the astonishing waste of pollen by our fir-trees; at the instinctive hatred of the queen bee for her own fertile daughters; at ichneumonidæ feeding within the live bodies of caterpillars; and at other such cases. The wonder indeed is, on the theory of natural selection, that more cases of the want of absolute perfection have not been observed.

As natural selection operates through competition, it adapts the inhabitants of each country only in relation to the level of competence of their peers. Therefore, we shouldn't be surprised when the residents of one country, often thought to be specially created and suited for that environment, are outcompeted and replaced by species from another place. We also shouldn't be amazed that not all of nature's designs are, as far as we can tell, completely perfect, or that some of them contradict our ideas of what is suitable. There's no reason to be shocked by the fact that a bee's sting leads to its own death, that drones are produced in huge quantities solely for one mating event, with the vast majority killed by their sterile sisters, by the striking waste of pollen from our fir trees, by the queen bee's instinctive aversion to her own fertile daughters, by ichneumonid wasps feeding inside live caterpillars, and other similar examples. The real wonder, according to the theory of natural selection, is that we haven't seen more instances of imperfect designs.

The complex and little known laws governing variation are the same, as far as we can see, with the laws which have governed the production of so-called specific forms. In both cases physical conditions seem to have produced but little direct effect; yet when varieties enter any zone, they occasionally assume some of the characters of the species proper to that zone. In both varieties and species, use and disuse seem to have produced some effect; for it is difficult to resist this [473]conclusion when we look, for instance, at the logger-headed duck, which has wings incapable of flight, in nearly the same condition as in the domestic duck; or when we look at the burrowing tucutucu, which is occasionally blind, and then at certain moles, which are habitually blind and have their eyes covered with skin; or when we look at the blind animals inhabiting the dark caves of America and Europe. In both varieties and species correlation of growth seems to have played a most important part, so that when one part has been modified other parts are necessarily modified. In both varieties and species reversions to long-lost characters occur. How inexplicable on the theory of creation is the occasional appearance of stripes on the shoulder and legs of the several species of the horse-genus and in their hybrids! How simply is this fact explained if we believe that these species have descended from a striped progenitor, in the same manner as the several domestic breeds of pigeon have descended from the blue and barred rock-pigeon!

The complicated and not well-known laws governing variation are essentially the same as the laws that have influenced the development of so-called specific forms. In both cases, physical conditions seem to have a limited direct impact; yet when varieties enter any region, they sometimes take on some of the traits of the species typical to that region. In both varieties and species, usage and non-usage appear to have had some effect; it's hard to ignore this conclusion when we observe, for example, the logger-headed duck, which has wings that can't fly, much like the domestic duck; or when we examine the burrowing tucutucu, which can be blind at times, and compare it to certain moles, which are usually blind and have their eyes covered with skin; or when we look at the blind creatures living in the dark caves of America and Europe. In both varieties and species, the correlation of growth seems to play a significant role, so when one part is altered, other parts are inevitably affected. Similarly, in both varieties and species, reversions to long-lost traits happen. How puzzling it is on the creation theory that stripes occasionally appear on the shoulders and legs of various species in the horse family and their hybrids! This fact is easily explained if we accept that these species descended from a striped ancestor, just like the various domestic breeds of pigeons descended from the blue and barred rock-pigeon!

On the ordinary view of each species having been independently created, why should the specific characters, or those by which the species of the same genus differ from each other, be more variable than the generic characters in which they all agree? Why, for instance, should the colour of a flower be more likely to vary in any one species of a genus, if the other species, supposed to have been created independently, have differently coloured flowers, than if all the species of the genus have the same coloured flowers? If species are only well-marked varieties, of which the characters have become in a high degree permanent, we can understand this fact; for they have already varied since they branched off from a common progenitor in certain characters, by which they have come to be specifically distinct from each other; [474]and therefore these same characters would be more likely still to be variable than the generic characters which have been inherited without change for an enormous period. It is inexplicable on the theory of creation why a part developed in a very unusual manner in any one species of a genus, and therefore, as we may naturally infer, of great importance to the species, should be eminently liable to variation; but, on my view, this part has undergone, since the several species branched off from a common progenitor, an unusual amount of variability and modification, and therefore we might expect this part generally to be still variable. But a part may be developed in the most unusual manner, like the wing of a bat, and yet not be more variable than any other structure, if the part be common to many subordinate forms, that is, if it has been inherited for a very long period; for in this case it will have been rendered constant by long-continued natural selection.

On the traditional view that each species was independently created, why should the specific traits, or those that differentiate species within the same genus, be more variable than the traits they all share? For example, why would the color of a flower be more likely to change in one species of a genus, if other species, believed to have been created independently, have differently colored flowers, compared to if all species of the genus had the same color flowers? If species are just well-defined varieties that have become quite stable, we can understand this phenomenon; they have already varied since separating from a common ancestor in certain traits, which have made them distinctly different from each other; [474]and so these traits would likely still be more variable than the traits that have been passed down unchanged for a long time. It is puzzling under the creation theory why a feature would develop in a very unusual way in one species of a genus, and therefore be very important to that species, but still be particularly prone to variation; however, under my perspective, this feature has experienced a significant amount of variability and change since the different species diverged from a common ancestor, so we’d expect it to remain variable. Nevertheless, a feature can develop in a highly unusual way, like a bat's wing, and still not be more variable than any other structure if it’s common to many related forms, meaning it has been inherited for a very long time; in this case, it will have been stabilized by long-term natural selection.

Glancing at instincts, marvellous as some are, they offer no greater difficulty than does corporeal structure on the theory of the natural selection of successive, slight, but profitable modifications. We can thus understand why nature moves by graduated steps in endowing different animals of the same class with their several instincts. I have attempted to show how much light the principle of gradation throws on the admirable architectural powers of the hive-bee. Habit no doubt sometimes comes into play in modifying instincts; but it certainly is not indispensable, as we see, in the case of neuter insects, which leave no progeny to inherit the effects of long-continued habit. On the view of all the species of the same genus having descended from a common parent, and having inherited much in common, we can understand how it is that allied species, when placed under considerably different conditions of life, [475]yet should follow nearly the same instincts; why the thrush of South America, for instance, lines her nest with mud like our British species. On the view of instincts having been slowly acquired through natural selection we need not marvel at some instincts being apparently not perfect and liable to mistakes, and at many instincts causing other animals to suffer.

When we look at instincts, no matter how amazing some might be, they don't present any more challenges than the physical structure does according to the theory of natural selection, which involves small but beneficial changes over time. This helps us understand why nature gradually equips different animals of the same category with their unique instincts. I've tried to illustrate how the principle of gradation sheds light on the impressive building abilities of the hive-bee. While habit can play a role in shaping instincts, it's not always necessary, as seen in neuter insects that produce no offspring to inherit the effects of long-standing habits. Considering that all species of the same genus come from a common ancestor and share many traits, we can see why related species, when subjected to quite different living conditions, still exhibit nearly the same instincts; for example, the thrush in South America builds its nest with mud just like our British species does. When we think about instincts being gradually developed through natural selection, it makes sense that some instincts may seem imperfect and prone to errors, and that many instincts can result in suffering for other animals.

If species be only well-marked and permanent varieties, we can at once see why their crossed offspring should follow the same complex laws in their degrees and kinds of resemblance to their parents,—in being absorbed into each other by successive crosses, and in other such points,—as do the crossed offspring of acknowledged varieties. On the other hand, these would be strange facts if species have been independently created, and varieties have been produced by secondary laws.

If species are just clearly defined and stable varieties, we can easily understand why their mixed offspring should follow the same complicated patterns in how they resemble their parents—in terms of being blended together through successive crossings and other similar aspects—as do the mixed offspring of recognized varieties. Conversely, these would be odd occurrences if species were created independently and varieties emerged from secondary processes.

If we admit that the geological record is imperfect in an extreme degree, then such facts as the record gives, support the theory of descent with modification. New species have come on the stage slowly and at successive intervals; and the amount of change, after equal intervals of time, is widely different in different groups. The extinction of species and of whole groups of species, which has played so conspicuous a part in the history of the organic world, almost inevitably follows on the principle of natural selection; for old forms will be supplanted by new and improved forms. Neither single species nor groups of species reappear when the chain of ordinary generation has once been broken. The gradual diffusion of dominant forms, with the slow modification of their descendants, causes the forms of life, after long intervals of time, to appear as if they had changed simultaneously throughout the world. The fact of the fossil remains of each formation being in some degree intermediate in character between the [476]fossils in the formations above and below, is simply explained by their intermediate position in the chain of descent. The grand fact that all extinct organic beings belong to the same system with recent beings, falling either into the same or into intermediate groups, follows from the living and the extinct being the offspring of common parents. As the groups which have descended from an ancient progenitor have generally diverged in character, the progenitor with its early descendants will often be intermediate in character in comparison with its later descendants; and thus we can see why the more ancient a fossil is, the oftener it stands in some degree intermediate between existing and allied groups. Recent forms are generally looked at as being, in some vague sense, higher than ancient and extinct forms; and they are in so far higher as the later and more improved forms have conquered the older and less improved organic beings in the struggle for life. Lastly, the law of the long endurance of allied forms on the same continent,—of marsupials in Australia, of edentata in America, and other such cases,—is intelligible, for within a confined country, the recent and the extinct will naturally be allied by descent.

If we accept that the geological record is extremely imperfect, then the facts it provides support the theory of descent with modification. New species have appeared slowly and at different times; and the amount of change, after equal time periods, varies widely among different groups. The extinction of species and entire groups of species, which has played a significant role in the history of the biological world, almost inevitably follows the principle of natural selection because older forms will be replaced by new and improved ones. Neither individual species nor groups of species reappear once the chain of ordinary generation has been broken. The gradual spread of dominant forms, combined with the slow modification of their descendants, makes it seem like life forms change simultaneously around the world after long periods. The fact that the fossil remains of each layer are somewhat intermediate between the fossils found in the layers above and below can be explained by their intermediate position in the chain of descent. The important point that all extinct organisms belong to the same system as recent ones, either fitting into the same groups or into intermediate ones, shows that living and extinct beings descend from common ancestors. As groups that have evolved from an ancient ancestor have generally diverged in character, the ancestor along with its early descendants will often be intermediate in character compared to its later descendants; this explains why the older a fossil is, the more likely it is to be somewhat intermediate between existing and related groups. Recent forms are generally viewed as being, in some vague sense, superior to older and extinct forms; and they are superior in that the newer, more advanced forms have outcompeted the older, less advanced ones in the struggle for survival. Lastly, the law of the long survival of related forms on the same continent—like marsupials in Australia and edentates in America—makes sense, because within a confined area, the recent and extinct species will naturally be related through descent.

Looking to geographical distribution, if we admit that there has been during the long course of ages much migration from one part of the world to another, owing to former climatal and geographical changes and to the many occasional and unknown means of dispersal, then we can understand, on the theory of descent with modification, most of the great leading facts in Distribution. We can see why there should be so striking a parallelism in the distribution of organic beings throughout space, and in their geological succession throughout time; for in both cases the beings have been connected by the bond of ordinary generation, and the means of [477]modification have been the same. We see the full meaning of the wonderful fact, which must have struck every traveller, namely, that on the same continent, under the most diverse conditions, under heat and cold, on mountain and lowland, on deserts and marshes, most of the inhabitants within each great class are plainly related; for they will generally be descendants of the same progenitors and early colonists. On this same principle of former migration, combined in most cases with modification, we can understand, by the aid of the Glacial period, the identity of some few plants, and the close alliance of many others, on the most distant mountains, under the most different climates; and likewise the close alliance of some of the inhabitants of the sea in the northern and southern temperate zones, though separated by the whole intertropical ocean. Although two areas may present the same physical conditions of life, we need feel no surprise at their inhabitants being widely different, if they have been for a long period completely separated from each other; for as the relation of organism to organism is the most important of all relations, and as the two areas will have received colonists from some third source or from each other, at various periods and in different proportions, the course of modification in the two areas will inevitably be different.

Looking at geographical distribution, if we accept that there's been a lot of migration from one part of the world to another over ages, due to past climate and geographical changes and the many occasional and unknown ways organisms have spread, we can understand, based on the theory of descent with modification, most of the key facts in Distribution. We can see why there's such a noticeable parallel in how living things are distributed across space and how they appear in the geological record over time; in both cases, these organisms have been linked through normal reproduction, and the ways they have changed have been similar. The amazing fact that must impress every traveler is that on the same continent, despite very different conditions—under heat and cold, in mountains and lowlands, in deserts and marshes—most inhabitants of each major class are clearly related, as they are usually descendants of the same ancestors and early settlers. Using the same idea of past migration, often combined with modification, we can understand, with the help of the Glacial period, the similarity of a few plants and the close relationship of many others on the most distant mountains, even under very different climates; we can also see the close relationship of some sea inhabitants in the northern and southern temperate zones, despite being separated by the entire intertropical ocean. Even if two areas have the same physical living conditions, we shouldn’t be surprised if their inhabitants are very different if they’ve been completely separated for a long time; since the relationship between organisms is the most important of all, and as the two areas would have received settlers from some third source or from each other at different times and in varying amounts, the pattern of change in the two areas will naturally be different.

On this view of migration, with subsequent modification, we can see why oceanic islands should be inhabited by few species, but of these, that many should be peculiar. We can clearly see why those animals which cannot cross wide spaces of ocean, as frogs and terrestrial mammals, should not inhabit oceanic islands; and why, on the other hand, new and peculiar species of bats, which can traverse the ocean, should so often be found on islands far distant from any continent. Such facts [478]as the presence of peculiar species of bats, and the absence of all other mammals, on oceanic islands, are utterly inexplicable on the theory of independent acts of creation.

On this perspective of migration, with later modifications, we can understand why oceanic islands tend to have few species, but many of those species are unique. It's clear why animals that can't cross large stretches of ocean, like frogs and land mammals, do not live on oceanic islands; and conversely, why new and unique species of bats, which can fly over the ocean, are often found on islands that are far from any continent. Such facts [478] like the presence of unique bat species and the absence of other mammals on oceanic islands make no sense under the theory of independent acts of creation.

The existence of closely allied or representative species in any two areas, implies, on the theory of descent with modification, that the same parents formerly inhabited both areas; and we almost invariably find that wherever many closely allied species inhabit two areas, some identical species common to both still exist. Wherever many closely allied yet distinct species occur, many doubtful forms and varieties of the same species likewise occur. It is a rule of high generality that the inhabitants of each area are related to the inhabitants of the nearest source whence immigrants might have been derived. We see this in nearly all the plants and animals of the Galapagos archipelago, of Juan Fernandez, and of the other American islands being related in the most striking manner to the plants and animals of the neighbouring American mainland; and those of the Cape de Verde archipelago and other African islands to the African mainland. It must be admitted that these facts receive no explanation on the theory of creation.

The presence of closely related or representative species in two areas suggests, according to the theory of descent with modification, that the same ancestors once lived in both locations; and we typically find that whenever many closely related species are found in two areas, some identical species common to both are also present. In places where numerous closely related yet distinct species exist, there are also many uncertain forms and varieties of the same species. It's generally true that the inhabitants of each area are connected to the nearest source from which they might have come. This is evident in nearly all the plants and animals of the Galapagos Islands, Juan Fernandez, and other American islands, which are notably linked to the plants and animals of the nearby American mainland; similarly, those from the Cape Verde archipelago and other African islands are related to the African mainland. It's important to acknowledge that these facts are not explained by the theory of creation.

The fact, as we have seen, that all past and present organic beings constitute one grand natural system, with group subordinate to group, and with extinct groups often falling in between recent groups, is intelligible on the theory of natural selection with its contingencies of extinction and divergence of character. On these same principles we see how it is, that the mutual affinities of the species and genera within each class are so complex and circuitous. We see why certain characters are far more serviceable than others for classification;—why adaptive characters, though of paramount importance to the being, are of hardly any [479]importance in classification; why characters derived from rudimentary parts, though of no service to the being, are often of high classificatory value; and why embryological characters are the most valuable of all. The real affinities of all organic beings are due to inheritance or community of descent. The natural system is a genealogical arrangement, in which we have to discover the lines of descent by the most permanent characters, however slight their vital importance may be.

The fact, as we've seen, that all past and present living things form one huge natural system, with groups within groups, and with extinct groups often appearing between current groups, makes sense under the theory of natural selection, which includes extinction and the divergence of traits. Based on these same principles, we understand why the relationships among species and genera within each class are so complex and indirect. We understand why certain traits are much more useful than others for classification; why adaptive traits, although crucial for survival, hold little significance in classification; why traits from rudimentary parts, even if they don't help the organism, can be very valuable for classification; and why embryological traits are the most important of all. The true connections between all living things arise from inheritance or shared ancestry. The natural system is organized genealogically, where we need to uncover the lines of descent based on the most enduring characteristics, no matter how slight their importance for survival may be.

The framework of bones being the same in the hand of a man, wing of a bat, fin of the porpoise, and leg of the horse,—the same number of vertebræ forming the neck of the giraffe and of the elephant,—and innumerable other such facts, at once explain themselves on the theory of descent with slow and slight successive modifications. The similarity of pattern in the wing and leg of a bat, though used for such different purpose,—in the jaws and legs of a crab,—in the petals, stamens, and pistils of a flower, is likewise intelligible on the view of the gradual modification of parts or organs, which were alike in the early progenitor of each class. On the principle of successive variations not always supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a corresponding not early period of life, we can clearly see why the embryos of mammals, birds, reptiles, and fishes should be so closely alike, and should be so unlike the adult forms. We may cease marvelling at the embryo of an air-breathing mammal or bird having branchial slits and arteries running in loops, like those in a fish which has to breathe the air dissolved in water, by the aid of well-developed branchiæ.

The bone structure is the same in the hand of a human, the wing of a bat, the fin of a porpoise, and the leg of a horse—the same number of vertebrae make up the neck of a giraffe and an elephant—and countless other examples can be easily explained by the theory of slow and gradual changes over time. The similarity in design between the wing and leg of a bat, even though they serve very different purposes, or between the jaws and legs of a crab, and in the petals, stamens, and pistils of a flower, is also understandable when we consider the gradual changes in parts or organs that were similar in the common ancestor of each group. According to the principle that variations don’t always occur early in development and are inherited at different stages of life, it becomes clear why the embryos of mammals, birds, reptiles, and fish are so similar, while their adult forms are so different. We can stop being amazed that the embryo of an air-breathing mammal or bird has gill slits and arteries formed in loops, similar to those in a fish that breathes dissolved air in water using well-developed gills.

Disuse, aided sometimes by natural selection, will often tend to reduce an organ, when it has become useless by changed habits or under changed conditions [480]of life; and we can clearly understand on this view the meaning of rudimentary organs. But disuse and selection will generally act on each creature, when it has come to maturity and has to play its full part in the struggle for existence, and will thus have little power of acting on an organ during early life; hence the organ will not be much reduced or rendered rudimentary at this early age. The calf, for instance, has inherited teeth, which never cut through the gums of the upper jaw, from an early progenitor having well-developed teeth; and we may believe, that the teeth in the mature animal were reduced, during successive generations, by disuse or by the tongue and palate having been better fitted by natural selection to browse without their aid; whereas in the calf, the teeth have been left untouched by selection or disuse, and on the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages have been inherited from a remote period to the present day. On the view of each organic being and each separate organ having been specially created, how utterly inexplicable it is that parts, like the teeth in the embryonic calf or like the shrivelled wings under the soldered wing-covers of some beetles, should thus so frequently bear the plain stamp of inutility! Nature may be said to have taken pains to reveal, by rudimentary organs and by homologous structures, her scheme of modification, which it seems that we wilfully will not understand.

Disuse, sometimes supported by natural selection, often leads to the reduction of an organ when it becomes useless due to changed habits or altered living conditions [480]. This perspective allows us to clearly understand what rudimentary organs are. However, disuse and selection typically affect each organism once it reaches maturity and must fully engage in the struggle for survival, meaning they have limited influence on an organ during its early development. As a result, the organ usually won't be significantly diminished or become rudimentary at this young stage. For example, a calf inherits teeth that never break through the gums of the upper jaw from an early ancestor with well-formed teeth. We can assume that the teeth in the adult animal were reduced over generations due to disuse or because the tongue and palate evolved through natural selection to graze without them. In contrast, the calf's teeth have remained unaffected by selection or disuse and, following the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages, have been passed down since a distant time. From the standpoint that each living being and each individual organ was specifically created, it is utterly baffling that structures, such as the teeth in an embryonic calf or the shriveled wings beneath the fused wing-covers of some beetles, should often exhibit clear signs of being useless! Nature seems to have made an effort to reveal her plan for modification through rudimentary organs and similar structures, which we appear to stubbornly refuse to comprehend.

 

I have now recapitulated the chief facts and considerations which have thoroughly convinced me that species have been modified, during a long course of descent, by the preservation or the natural selection of many successive slight favourable variations. I cannot believe that a false theory would explain, as it seems to me that the theory of natural selection does explain, [481]the several large classes of facts above specified. I see no good reason why the views given in this volume should shock the religious feelings of any one. A celebrated author and divine has written to me that "he has gradually learnt to see that it is just as noble a conception of the Deity to believe that He created a few original forms capable of self-development into other and needful forms, as to believe that He required a fresh act of creation to supply the voids caused by the action of His laws."

I have now summarized the key facts and ideas that have completely convinced me that species have changed over a long period through the preservation or natural selection of many small, beneficial variations. I can’t believe that a false theory could explain, as I think the theory of natural selection does, the various significant classes of facts mentioned above. I see no good reason why the ideas presented in this book should disturb anyone's religious beliefs. A well-known author and theologian has written to me that "he has gradually come to see that it is just as noble a conception of the Deity to believe that He created a few original forms capable of developing into other necessary forms, as to believe that He needed a new act of creation to fill the gaps caused by the actions of His laws."

Why, it may be asked, have all the most eminent living naturalists and geologists rejected this view of the mutability of species? It cannot be asserted that organic beings in a state of nature are subject to no variation; it cannot be proved that the amount of variation in the course of long ages is a limited quantity; no clear distinction has been, or can be, drawn between species and well-marked varieties. It cannot be maintained that species when intercrossed are invariably sterile, and varieties invariably fertile; or that sterility is a special endowment and sign of creation. The belief that species were immutable productions was almost unavoidable as long as the history of the world was thought to be of short duration; and now that we have acquired some idea of the lapse of time, we are too apt to assume, without proof, that the geological record is so perfect that it would have afforded us plain evidence of the mutation of species, if they had undergone mutation.

Why, one might ask, have all the leading naturalists and geologists today dismissed this idea of species changing over time? It can't be said that living beings in nature show no variation; we can't prove that the extent of variation over long periods is limited; and no clear line can be drawn between species and distinct varieties. It's also not true that species that interbreed are always sterile, while varieties are always fertile; nor that sterility is a special trait and sign of creation. The belief that species don't change seemed almost unavoidable when people thought the history of the world was short; but now that we have a better understanding of the passage of time, we often assume, without evidence, that the geological record is so complete that it would have clearly shown us if species had changed.

But the chief cause of our natural unwillingness to admit that one species has given birth to other and distinct species, is that we are always slow in admitting any great change of which we do not see the intermediate steps. The difficulty is the same as that felt by so many geologists, when Lyell first insisted that long [482]lines of inland cliffs had been formed, and great valleys excavated, by the slow action of the coast-waves. The mind cannot possibly grasp the full meaning of the term of a hundred million years; it cannot add up and perceive the full effects of many slight variations, accumulated during an almost infinite number of generations.

But the main reason we’re naturally reluctant to accept that one species has given rise to other distinct species is that we are always slow to acknowledge major changes unless we can see the intermediate steps. This difficulty is similar to what many geologists experienced when Lyell first argued that long stretches of inland cliffs were formed, and large valleys carved out, by the gradual action of ocean waves. The mind struggles to fully understand what a hundred million years really means; it can't tally up and recognize the cumulative effects of many small variations that build up over an almost endless number of generations.

Although I am fully convinced of the truth of the views given in this volume under the form of an abstract, I by no means expect to convince experienced naturalists whose minds are stocked with a multitude of facts all viewed, during a long course of years, from a point of view directly opposite to mine. It is so easy to hide our ignorance under such expressions as the "plan of creation," "unity of design," &c., and to think that we give an explanation when we only restate a fact. Any one whose disposition leads him to attach more weight to unexplained difficulties than to the explanation of a certain number of facts will certainly reject my theory. A few naturalists, endowed with much flexibility of mind, and who have already begun to doubt on the immutability of species, may be influenced by this volume; but I look with confidence to the future, to young and rising naturalists, who will be able to view both sides of the question with impartiality. Whoever is led to believe that species are mutable will do good service by conscientiously expressing his conviction; for only thus can the load of prejudice by which this subject is overwhelmed be removed.

Although I am completely convinced of the truth of the ideas presented in this book as a summary, I don't expect to convince seasoned naturalists whose minds are filled with a wealth of facts that they've viewed over the years from a perspective entirely different from mine. It's so easy to mask our ignorance with phrases like "the plan of creation" or "unity of design," thinking that we are providing an explanation when we are actually just restating a fact. Anyone who tends to give more importance to unanswered questions than to the explanations for certain facts will definitely reject my theory. A few naturalists, who are open-minded and have already started to question the idea of species being unchanging, might be swayed by this book; however, I am confident about the future, looking forward to young and emerging naturalists who can consider both sides of the issue objectively. Anyone who comes to believe that species can change will contribute positively by sincerely expressing their belief; only then can we start to lift the weight of prejudice that surrounds this topic.

Several eminent naturalists have of late published their belief that a multitude of reputed species in each genus are not real species; but that other species are real, that is, have been independently created. This seems to me a strange conclusion to arrive at. They admit that a multitude of forms, which till lately [483]they themselves thought were special creations, and which are still thus looked at by the majority of naturalists, and which consequently have every external characteristic feature of true species,—they admit that these have been produced by variation, but they refuse to extend the same view to other and very slightly different forms. Nevertheless they do not pretend that they can define, or even conjecture, which are the created forms of life, and which are those produced by secondary laws. They admit variation as a vera causa in one case, they arbitrarily reject it in another, without assigning any distinction in the two cases. The day will come when this will be given as a curious illustration of the blindness of preconceived opinion. These authors seem no more startled at a miraculous act of creation than at an ordinary birth. But do they really believe that at innumerable periods in the earth's history certain elemental atoms have been commanded suddenly to flash into living tissues? Do they believe that at each supposed act of creation one individual or many were produced? Were all the infinitely numerous kinds of animals and plants created as eggs or seed, or as full grown? and in the case of mammals, were they created bearing the false marks of nourishment from the mother's womb? Although naturalists very properly demand a full explanation of every difficulty from those who believe in the mutability of species, on their own side they ignore the whole subject of the first appearance of species in what they consider reverent silence.

Several well-known naturalists have recently expressed their belief that many species thought to be distinct are actually not genuine species, while other species are real, meaning they have been created independently. This seems to me a strange conclusion to reach. They acknowledge that many forms, which until recently they themselves believed were special creations, and which are still viewed as such by most naturalists, with every external characteristic of true species, have been produced through variation. Yet, they refuse to apply the same reasoning to other forms that are only slightly different. Still, they don't claim they can define or even guess which forms of life were created and which were produced by other natural laws. They accept variation as a true cause in one instance but arbitrarily dismiss it in another without distinguishing between the two cases. One day, this will be noted as an interesting example of the blindness brought on by preconceived opinions. These authors seem no more surprised by a miraculous act of creation than by a regular birth. But do they really believe that at countless times in the earth's history, certain elemental atoms have suddenly been commanded to transform into living tissues? Do they believe that with each supposed act of creation, one individual or many were produced? Were all the countless species of animals and plants created as eggs or seeds, or as fully grown? And in the case of mammals, were they created with the false signs of nourishment from their mother's womb? Although naturalists rightly demand thorough explanations for every challenge from those who believe in the variability of species, they themselves ignore the entire topic of how species first appeared, treating it with what they consider respectful silence.

It may be asked how far I extend the doctrine of the modification of species. The question is difficult to answer, because the more distinct the forms are which we may consider, by so much the arguments fall away in force. But some arguments of the greatest weight [484]extend very far. All the members of whole classes can be connected together by chains of affinities, and all can be classified on the same principle, in groups subordinate to groups. Fossil remains sometimes tend to fill up very wide intervals between existing orders. Organs in a rudimentary condition plainly show that an early progenitor had the organ in a fully developed state; and this in some instances necessarily implies an enormous amount of modification in the descendants. Throughout whole classes various structures are formed on the same pattern, and at an embryonic age the species closely resemble each other. Therefore I cannot doubt that the theory of descent with modification embraces all the members of the same class. I believe that animals have descended from at most only four or five progenitors, and plants from an equal or lesser number.

It can be questioned how extensively I apply the idea of species modification. This is a tough question to answer, as the more distinct the forms we consider, the weaker the arguments become. However, some of the strongest arguments extend quite broadly. All members of entire classes can be linked by chains of affinities and can be classified based on the same principle, in groups that are organized within larger groups. Fossil remains often help bridge significant gaps between existing orders. Organs in a rudimentary state clearly indicate that an early ancestor had the organ fully developed; in some cases, this implies a significant amount of modification in the descendants. Across entire classes, various structures follow the same pattern, and at the embryonic stage, species closely resemble one another. Therefore, I have no doubt that the theory of descent with modification includes all members of the same class. I believe that animals have descended from at most only four or five ancestors, and plants from a similar or smaller number.

Analogy would lead me one step further, namely, to the belief that all animals and plants have descended from some one prototype. But analogy may be a deceitful guide. Nevertheless all living things have much in common, in their chemical composition, their germinal vesicles, their cellular structure, and their laws of growth and reproduction. We see this even in so trifling a circumstance as that the same poison often similarly affects plants and animals; or that the poison secreted by the gall-fly produces monstrous growths on the wild rose or oak-tree. Therefore I should infer from analogy that probably all the organic beings which have ever lived on this earth have descended from some one primordial form, into which life was first breathed by the Creator.

Analogy makes me think that all animals and plants probably came from a single original form. However, analogy can be misleading. Still, all living things share a lot in common, like their chemical makeup, germinal vesicles, cellular structures, and their growth and reproduction processes. We can see this in small ways, such as how the same poison often affects both plants and animals in similar ways, or how the poison from the gall-fly leads to abnormal growths on wild roses or oak trees. So, I would conclude from analogy that it's likely all the living organisms that have ever existed on this planet come from one original form, where life was first given by the Creator.

 

When the views advanced by me in this volume, and by Mr. Wallace in the Linnean Journal, or when analogous views on the origin of species are generally [485]admitted, we can dimly foresee that there will be a considerable revolution in natural history. Systematists will be able to pursue their labours as at present; but they will not be incessantly haunted by the shadowy doubt whether this or that form be in essence a species. This I feel sure, and I speak after experience, will be no slight relief. The endless disputes whether or not some fifty species of British brambles are true species will cease. Systematists will have only to decide (not that this will be easy) whether any form be sufficiently constant and distinct from other forms, to be capable of definition; and if definable, whether the differences be sufficiently important to deserve a specific name. This latter point will become a far more essential consideration than it is at present; for differences, however slight, between any two forms, if not blended by intermediate gradations, are looked at by most naturalists as sufficient to raise both forms to the rank of species. Hereafter we shall be compelled to acknowledge that the only distinction between species and well-marked varieties is, that the latter are known, or believed, to be connected at the present day by intermediate gradations, whereas species were formerly thus connected. Hence, without rejecting the consideration of the present existence of intermediate gradations between any two forms, we shall be led to weigh more carefully and to value higher the actual amount of difference between them. It is quite possible that forms now generally acknowledged to be merely varieties may hereafter be thought worthy of specific names, as with the primrose and cowslip; and in this case scientific and common language will come into accordance. In short, we shall have to treat species in the same manner as those naturalists treat genera, who admit that genera are merely artificial combinations [486]made for convenience. This may not be a cheering prospect; but we shall at least be freed from the vain search for the undiscovered and undiscoverable essence of the term species.

When the ideas I’ve presented in this book, and those put forward by Mr. Wallace in the Linnean Journal, or similar ideas about the origin of species are widely accepted, we can vaguely anticipate a significant shift in natural history. Systematists will continue their work as they do now, but they won’t constantly wrestle with the uncertainty of whether a particular form is essentially a species. I’m confident, based on experience, that this will provide considerable relief. The endless debates over whether around fifty species of British brambles are true species will come to an end. Systematists will only need to determine (though this won't be easy) whether a form is consistent and distinct enough from other forms to be defined; and if it can be defined, whether the differences are significant enough to warrant a specific name. This latter consideration will become much more critical than it is today; because even minor differences between any two forms, if there aren’t any intermediate forms connecting them, are regarded by most naturalists as enough to classify both forms as separate species. Moving forward, we will have to recognize that the only difference between species and well-defined varieties is that the latter are known or thought to be connected by intermediate forms today, while species were once connected in the same way. Thus, without disregarding the current existence of intermediate forms between any two types, we’ll need to evaluate and appreciate the actual differences between them more thoughtfully. It's entirely possible that forms now considered just varieties may be deemed worthy of specific names in the future, like the primrose and cowslip; in which case, scientific and everyday language will align. In short, we will have to approach species in the same way those naturalists do who treat genera as merely artificial groupings made for convenience. This may not sound particularly encouraging; but at least we will be liberated from the futile quest for the elusive and unprovable essence of the term species.

The other and more general departments of natural history will rise greatly in interest. The terms used by naturalists of affinity, relationship, community of type, paternity, morphology, adaptive characters, rudimentary and aborted organs, &c., will cease to be metaphorical, and will have a plain signification. When we no longer look at an organic being as a savage looks at a ship, as at something wholly beyond his comprehension; when we regard every production of nature as one which has had a history; when we contemplate every complex structure and instinct as the summing up of many contrivances, each useful to the possessor, nearly in the same way as when we look at any great mechanical invention as the summing up of the labour, the experience, the reason, and even the blunders of numerous workmen; when we thus view each organic being, how far more interesting, I speak from experience, will the study of natural history become!

The other, more general areas of natural history will become significantly more interesting. The terms used by naturalists—like affinity, relationship, community of type, paternity, morphology, adaptive traits, rudimentary and aborted organs, etc.—will stop being metaphorical and will have clear meanings. When we no longer see an organism like a savage sees a ship, as something completely beyond understanding; when we view every creation of nature as something with a history; when we think of every complex structure and instinct as the result of many adaptations, each useful to the organism, similar to how we view a significant mechanical invention as the culmination of the labor, experience, reasoning, and even mistakes of many workers; when we look at each organism this way, the study of natural history will become much more fascinating, based on my experience!

A grand and almost untrodden field of inquiry will be opened, on the causes and laws of variation, on correlation of growth, on the effects of use and disuse, on the direct action of external conditions, and so forth. The study of domestic productions will rise immensely in value. A new variety raised by man will be a more important and interesting subject for study than one more species added to the infinitude of already recorded species. Our classifications will come to be, as far as they can be so made, genealogies; and will then truly give what may be called the plan of creation. The rules for classifying will no doubt become simpler when we have a definite object in view. We possess no [487]pedigrees or armorial bearings; and we have to discover and trace the many diverging lines of descent in our natural genealogies, by characters of any kind which have long been inherited. Rudimentary organs will speak infallibly with respect to the nature of long-lost structures. Species and groups of species, which are called aberrant, and which may fancifully be called living fossils, will aid us in forming a picture of the ancient forms of life. Embryology will reveal to us the structure, in some degree obscured, of the prototypes of each great class.

A vast and mostly unexplored area of research will open up, focusing on the causes and laws of variation, the correlation of growth, the impact of use and disuse, the direct effects of external conditions, and more. The study of domesticated species will significantly increase in value. A new variety created by humans will become a more significant and fascinating subject of study than merely adding another species to the countless already documented ones. Our classifications will evolve into genealogies as much as possible, accurately representing what could be considered the blueprint of creation. The rules for classification will likely become simpler when we have a clear purpose in mind. We lack family trees or coats of arms, so we need to discover and trace the many diverging lines of descent in our natural genealogies, using inherited traits. Rudimentary organs will clearly indicate the nature of long-lost structures. Species and groups of species that are considered unusual and could whimsically be referred to as living fossils will help us visualize ancient life forms. Embryology will unveil the structure, somewhat obscured, of the prototypes for each major class.

When we can feel assured that all the individuals of the same species, and all the closely allied species of most genera, have within a not very remote period descended from one parent, and have migrated from some one birthplace; and when we better know the many means of migration, then, by the light which geology now throws, and will continue to throw, on former changes of climate and of the level of the land, we shall surely be enabled to trace in an admirable manner the former migrations of the inhabitants of the whole world. Even at present, by comparing the differences of the inhabitants of the sea on the opposite sides of a continent, and the nature of the various inhabitants of that continent in relation to their apparent means of immigration, some light can be thrown on ancient geography.

When we can be confident that all members of the same species, along with all the closely related species of most genera, have descended from a common ancestor within a relatively recent timeframe and have migrated from a single birthplace; and when we have a better understanding of the various means of migration, then, with the insights that geology currently provides and will continue to provide about past climate changes and land levels, we will definitely be able to trace the historical migrations of the world’s inhabitants in a remarkable way. Even now, by comparing the differences in marine life on opposite sides of a continent and looking at the various inhabitants of that continent in relation to their apparent means of immigration, we can gain some insights into ancient geography.

The noble science of Geology loses glory from the extreme imperfection of the record. The crust of the earth with its embedded remains must not be looked at as a well-filled museum, but as a poor collection made at hazard and at rare intervals. The accumulation of each great fossiliferous formation will be recognised as having depended on an unusual concurrence of circumstances, and the blank intervals between the successive stages as having been of vast duration. But we shall [488]be able to gauge with some security the duration of these intervals by a comparison of the preceding and succeeding organic forms. We must be cautious in attempting to correlate as strictly contemporaneous two formations, which include few identical species, by the general succession of their forms of life. As species are produced and exterminated by slowly acting and still existing causes, and not by miraculous acts of creation and by catastrophes; and as the most important of all causes of organic change is one which is almost independent of altered and perhaps suddenly altered physical conditions, namely, the mutual relation of organism to organism,—the improvement of one being entailing the improvement or the extermination of others; it follows, that the amount of organic change in the fossils of consecutive formations probably serves as a fair measure of the lapse of actual time. A number of species, however, keeping in a body might remain for a long period unchanged, whilst within this same period, several of these species, by migrating into new countries and coming into competition with foreign associates, might become modified; so that we must not overrate the accuracy of organic change as a measure of time. During early periods of the earth's history, when the forms of life were probably fewer and simpler, the rate of change was probably slower; and at the first dawn of life, when very few forms of the simplest structure existed, the rate of change may have been slow in an extreme degree. The whole history of the world, as at present known, although of a length quite incomprehensible by us, will hereafter be recognised as a mere fragment of time, compared with the ages which have elapsed since the first creature, the progenitor of innumerable extinct and living descendants, was created.

The noble field of Geology loses some of its prestige because of the significant incompleteness of the record. Instead of viewing the earth's crust with its embedded remains as a well-curated museum, we should see it as a poorly assembled collection gathered randomly and infrequently. Each significant fossil-rich formation has come about due to a rare combination of circumstances, and the long gaps between these stages represent extensive periods of time. However, we can estimate the length of these gaps by comparing the earlier and later living forms. We need to be careful when correlating two formations that have few identical species based solely on the general order of their life forms. Since species arise and go extinct due to slow, ongoing processes rather than miraculous events or sudden disasters; and since the primary driver of organic change is largely independent of altered and possibly rapidly changing physical conditions—namely, the interactions between organisms, where the advancement of one species can lead to the advancement or extinction of others—it's clear that the extent of organic change in fossils from successive formations probably provides a reasonable measure of actual time passed. However, a number of species might remain unchanged for long periods while others change through migration and competition with new species in different regions, so we shouldn't overestimate the reliability of organic change as a time marker. In the early periods of the earth's history, when life forms were likely fewer and simpler, the rate of change was probably slower; at the very beginning of life, when there were only a few basic forms, the rate of change may have been extremely slow. The history of the world, as we currently understand it, though vast and beyond our comprehension, will eventually be viewed as just a small fragment of time compared to the ages that have passed since the first creature— the ancestor of countless extinct and living descendants—was created.

In the distant future I see open fields for far more [489]important researches. Psychology will be based on a new foundation, that of the necessary acquirement of each mental power and capacity by gradation. Light will be thrown on the origin of man and his history.

In the distant future, I see open fields for much more [489]important research. Psychology will be built on a new foundation, focusing on the essential development of each mental ability and capability step by step. We will gain insight into the origin of humanity and our history.

Authors of the highest eminence seem to be fully satisfied with the view that each species has been independently created. To my mind it accords better with what we know of the laws impressed on matter by the Creator, that the production and extinction of the past and present inhabitants of the world should have been due to secondary causes, like those determining the birth and death of the individual. When I view all beings not as special creations, but as the lineal descendants of some few beings which lived long before the first bed of the Silurian system was deposited, they seem to me to become ennobled. Judging from the past, we may safely infer that not one living species will transmit its unaltered likeness to a distant futurity. And of the species now living very few will transmit progeny of any kind to a far distant futurity; for the manner in which all organic beings are grouped, shows that the greater number of species of each genus, and all the species of many genera, have left no descendants, but have become utterly extinct. We can so far take a prophetic glance into futurity as to foretel that it will be the common and widely-spread species, belonging to the larger and dominant groups, which will ultimately prevail and procreate new and dominant species. As all the living forms of life are the lineal descendants of those which lived long before the Silurian epoch, we may feel certain that the ordinary succession by generation has never once been broken, and that no cataclysm has desolated the whole world. Hence we may look with some confidence to a secure future of equally inappreciable length. And as natural selection works [490]solely by and for the good of each being, all corporeal and mental endowments will tend to progress towards perfection.

Authors of the highest standing seem to be completely satisfied with the idea that each species has been created independently. In my opinion, it makes more sense based on what we know about the laws established by the Creator that the production and extinction of the past and present inhabitants of the world should be attributed to secondary causes, similar to those that determine the birth and death of individuals. When I consider all beings not as special creations, but as the direct descendants of a few organisms that lived long before the first layers of the Silurian system were formed, they seem to gain a nobler status. Looking back, we can confidently say that no living species will maintain its unchanged form in the distant future. Very few of the currently living species will leave any offspring far into the future; the way all living organisms are grouped indicates that most species in each genus and all species in many genera have left no descendants and are completely extinct. We can make a reasonable prediction about the future, expecting that it will be the common and widely distributed species, belonging to the larger and more dominant groups, that will ultimately succeed and give rise to new and dominant species. Since all living forms of life are direct descendants of those that existed long before the Silurian epoch, we can be confident that the usual process of generation has never been interrupted and that no cataclysm has devastated the entire world. Therefore, we can look forward with some assurance to a stable future of considerable length. And as natural selection operates solely for the benefit of each being, all physical and mental traits will likely progress toward perfection.

It is interesting to contemplate an entangled bank, clothed with many plants of many kinds, with birds singing on the bushes, with various insects flitting about, and with worms crawling through the damp earth, and to reflect that these elaborately constructed forms, so different from each other, and dependent on each other in so complex a manner, have all been produced by laws acting around us. These laws, taken in the largest sense, being Growth with Reproduction; Inheritance which is almost implied by reproduction; Variability from the indirect and direct action of the external conditions of life, and from use and disuse; a Ratio of Increase so high as to lead to a Struggle for Life, and as a consequence to Natural Selection, entailing Divergence of Character and the Extinction of less-improved forms. Thus, from the war of nature, from famine and death, the most exalted object which we are capable of conceiving, namely, the production of the higher animals, directly follows. There is grandeur in this view of life, with its several powers, having been originally breathed by the Creator into a few forms or into one; and that, whilst this planet has gone cycling on according to the fixed law of gravity, from so simple a beginning endless forms most beautiful and most wonderful have been, and are being, evolved.

It’s fascinating to think about a tangled bank, filled with many different plants, with birds singing in the bushes, various insects buzzing around, and worms crawling through the moist soil. It's worth considering that these intricate forms, so diverse and interdependent in such complicated ways, have all come about through the laws operating around us. These laws, broadly speaking, include Growth with Reproduction; Inheritance, which is almost implied by reproduction; Variability resulting from both direct and indirect effects of environmental conditions, as well as from use and disuse; and a Ratio of Increase so high that it leads to a Struggle for Life, ultimately resulting in Natural Selection, which causes Divergence of Character and the extinction of less advanced forms. Thus, from nature's conflicts, from hunger and death, comes the highest achievement we can imagine: the emergence of more advanced animals. There is something grand in this perspective on life, with its various powers, having originally been instilled by the Creator into a few forms or possibly just one; and as this planet has continued its orbit according to the unchanging laws of gravity, so many beautiful and amazing forms have emerged and continue to evolve from such a simple start.


[491]

[491]

INDEX.

A.

A.

Aberrant groups, 429.

Aberrant groups, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Abyssinia, plants of, 375.

Abyssinian plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Acclimatisation, 139.

Acclimatization, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Affinities of extinct species, 329.

Affinities of extinct species, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of organic beings, 411.

—— of living organisms, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Agassiz on Amblyopsis, 139.

Agassiz on Amblyopsis, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.

—— on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.

—— on embryological succession, 338.

—— on embryological development, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on the glacial period, 366.

—— during the Ice Age, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on embryological characters, 418.

—— on embryological traits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on the embryos of vertebrata, 439.

—— on the embryos of vertebrates, 439.

—— on parallelism of embryological development and geological succession, 449.

—— on the parallelism between embryological development and geological succession, 449.

Algæ of New Zealand, 376.

Seaweeds of New Zealand, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Alligators, males, fighting, 88.

Male alligators fighting, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Amblyopsis, blind fish, 139.

Amblyopsis, blind fish, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

America, North, productions allied to those of Europe, 371.

America, North, productions linked to those of Europe, 371.

————, boulders and glaciers of, 373.

————, boulders and glaciers of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, South, no modern formations on west coast, 290.

——, South, no modern formations on the west coast, 290.

Ammonites, sudden extinction of, 321.

Ammonites' sudden extinction, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Anagallis, sterility of, 247.

Anagallis, sterility, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Analogy of variations, 159.

Analogy of variations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ancylus, 386.

Ancylus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Animals, not domesticated from being variable, 17.

Animals, which are not domesticated because they are variable, 17.

——, domestic, descended from several stocks, 19.

——, domestic, descended from various breeds, 19.

————, acclimatisation of, 141.

————, adaptation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of Australia, 116.

—— of Australia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— with thicker fur in cold climates, 133.

—— with thicker fur in cold climates, 133.

——, blind, in caves, 137.

——, blind, in caves, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, extinct, of Australia, 339.

——, extinct, from Australia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Anomma, 240.

Anomma, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Antarctic islands, ancient flora of, 399.

Antarctic islands, ancient plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Antirrhinum, 161.

Snapdragon, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ants attending aphides, 210.

Ants farming aphids, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, slave-making instinct, 219.

——, slave-making instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, neuter, structure of, 236.

——, neutral, structure of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Aphides, attended by ants, 210.

Aphids, attended by ants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Aphis, development of, 442.

Aphis development, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Apteryx, 182.

Apteryx, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Arab horses, 35.

Arabian horses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Aralo-Caspian Sea, 339.

Aral-Caspian Sea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Archaic, M. de, on the succession of species, 325.

Archaic, M. de, on the evolution of species, 325.

Artichoke, Jerusalem, 142.

Jerusalem artichoke, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ascension, plants of, 389.

Ascension plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Asclepias, pollen of, 193.

Asclepias pollen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Asparagus, 359.

Asparagus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Aspicarpa, 417.

Aspicarpa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Asses, striped, 163.

Assess, striped, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ateuchus, 135.

Ateuchus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Audubon on habits of frigate-bird, 185.

Audubon on the habits of frigate-birds, 185.

—— on variation in birds'-nests, 212.

—— on variation in bird nests, 212.

—— on heron eating seeds, 387.

—— on heron munching seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Australia, animals of, 116.

Australian animals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——. dogs of, 215.

Dogs of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, extinct animals of, 339.

——, extinct animals of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, European plants in, 375.

——, European plants in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Azara on flies destroying cattle, 72.

Azara on flies harming cattle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Azores, flora of, 363.

Azores, plant life of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

B.

B.

Babington, Mr., on British plants, 48.

Mr. Babington on British plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Balancement of growth, 147.

Balancing growth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bamboo with hooks, 197.

Bamboo with hooks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Barberry, flowers of, 98.

Barberry flowers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Barrande, M., on Silurian colonies, 313.

Barrande, M., on Silurian colonies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on the succession of species, 325.

—— on the succession of species, 325.

—— on parallelism of palæozoic formations, 328.

—— on the parallelism of Paleozoic formations, 328.

—— on affinities of ancient species, 330.

—— on affinities of ancient species, 330.

Barriers, importance of, 347.

Barriers, importance of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Batrachians on islands, 393.

Batrachians on islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bats, how structure acquired, 180.

Bats, how they acquired structure, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, distribution of, 394.

——, distribution of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bear, catching water-insects, 184.

Bear, catching water bugs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bee, sting of, 202.

Bee sting, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, queen, killing rivals, 202.

——, queen, eliminating rivals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bees fertilising flowers, 73.

Bees pollinating flowers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, hive, not sucking the red clover, 95.

——, hive, not sucking the red clover, 95.

[492]

————, cell-making instinct, 224.

Cell-making instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, humble, cells of, 225.

——, humble, cells of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, parasitic, 218.

——, parasitic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Beetles, wingless, in Madeira, 135.

Beetles, wingless, in Madeira, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— with deficient tarsi, 135.

—— with weak tarsals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bentham, Mr., on British plants, 48.

Mr. Bentham on British plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on classification, 419.

——, on classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Berkeley, Mr., on seeds in salt-water, 358.

Berkeley, Mr., on seeds in salt water, 358.

Bermuda, birds of, 391.

Bermuda birds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Birds acquiring fear, 212.

Birds developing fear, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— annually cross the Atlantic, 364.

annually cross the Atlantic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, colour of, on continents, 132.

——, color of, on continents, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, footsteps and remains of, in secondary rocks, 304.

——, footsteps and remains of, in secondary rocks, 304.

——, fossil, in caves of Brazil, 339.

——, fossil, in caves of Brazil, 339.

—— of Madeira, Bermuda, and Galapagos, 391.

—— of Madeira, Bermuda, and Galapagos, 391.

——, song of males, 89.

——, men's song, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— transporting seeds, 361.

transporting seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, waders, 385.

——, waders, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, wingless, 134, 182.

——, wingless, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

——, with traces of embryonic teeth, 450.

——, with traces of early teeth, 450.

Bizcacha, 349.

Bizcacha, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, affinities of, 429.

——, connections of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bladder for swimming in fish, 190.

Fish swim bladder, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Blindness of cave animals, 137.

Cave animals’ blindness, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Blyth, Mr., on distinctness of Indian cattle, 18.

Blyth, Mr., on the uniqueness of Indian cattle, 18.

——, on striped Hemionus, 163.

——, on striped Hemionus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on crossed geese, 254.

——, on crossed geese, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Boar, shoulder-pad of, 88.

Boar shoulder pad, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Borrow, Mr., on the Spanish pointer, 35.

Borrow, Mr., on the Spanish pointer, 35.

Bory St. Vincent on Batrachians, 393.

Bory St. Vincent on Frogs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bosquet, M., on fossil Chthamalus, 305.

Bosquet, M., on fossil Chthamalus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Boulders, erratic, on the Azores, 363.

Boulders scattered in the Azores, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Branchiæ, 190.

Gills, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Brent, Mr., on house-tumblers, 214.

Brent, Mr., on house flippers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on hawks killing pigeons, 362.

——, about hawks killing pigeons, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Brewer, Dr., on American cuckoo, 217.

Brewer, Dr., on American cuckoo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Britain, mammals of, 396.

British mammals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Bronn on duration of specific forms, 294.

Bronn on the duration of specific forms, 294.

Brown, Robert, on classification, 415.

Brown, Robert, on classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Buckman on variation in plants, 10.

Buckman on plant variation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Buzareingues on sterility of varieties, 270.

Buzareingues on variety sterility, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

C.

C.

Cabbage, varieties of, crossed, 99.

Cabbage, various types, crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Calceolaria, 251.

Calceolaria, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Canary-birds, sterility of hybrids, 252.

Canaries, hybrid sterility, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cape de Verde islands, 398.

Cape Verde islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cape of Good Hope, plants of, 110, 375.

Cape of Good Hope, plants of, 110, 375.

Carrier-pigeons killed by hawks, 362.

Carrier pigeons killed by hawks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cassini on flowers of compositæ, 145.

Cassini on composite flowers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Catasetum, 424.

Catasetum, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cats, with blue eyes, deaf, 12.

Cats, with blue eyes, are deaf, 12.

——, variation in habits of, 91.

——, variation in habits of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— curling tail when going to spring, 201.

—— curling tail when going to spring, 201.

Cattle destroying fir-trees, 72.

Cows damaging fir trees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.

—— destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.

——, breeds of, locally extinct, 111.

—, breeds of, locally extinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fertility of Indian and European breeds, 254.

——, fertility of Indian and European breeds, 254.

Cave, inhabitants of, blind, 137.

Cave inhabitants, blind, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Centres of creation, 352.

Creative hubs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cephalopodæ, development of, 442.

Cephalopod development, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cervulus, 253.

Cervulus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cetacea, teeth and hair, 144.

Cetacea, teeth, and hair, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ceylon, plants of, 375.

Ceylon, plants of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Chalk formation, 322.

Chalk formation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Characters, divergence of, 111.

Character divergence, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, sexual, variable, 156.

——, sexual, variable, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, adaptive or analogical, 426.

——, adaptive or analog, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Charlock, 76.

Charlock, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Checks to increase, 67.

Checks to boost, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, mutual, 71.

—— ——, mutual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Chickens, instinctive tameness of, 216.

Chickens' natural tameness, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Chthamalinæ, 289.

Chthamalinæ, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Chthamalus, cretacean species of, 305.

Chthamalus, Cretaceous species of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Circumstances favourable to selection of domestic products, 40.

Circumstances that favor the selection of domestic products, 40.

—— —— to natural selection, 102.

Here is the paragraph: —— —— to natural selection, 102.

Cirripedes capable of crossing, 101.

Cirripedes that can cross, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, carapace aborted, 148.

——, shell aborted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, their ovigerous frena, 192.

——, their egg-bearing frena, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fossil, 304.

——, fossil, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, larvæ of, 440.

——, larvae of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Classification, 413.

Classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Clift, Mr., on the succession of types, 339.

Clift, Mr., on the succession of types, 339.

Climate, effects of, in checking increase of beings, 68.

Climate, its effects on limiting the growth of beings, 68.

——, adaptation of, to organisms, 139.

——, adaptation of, to organisms, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[493]

Cobites, intestine of, 190.

Cobites, intestine of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cockroach, 76.

Cockroach, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Collections, palæontological, poor, 288.

Collections, paleontological, lacking, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Colour, influenced by climate, 132.

Color, influenced by climate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, in relation to attacks by flies, 198.

——, regarding the attacks by flies, 198.

Columba livia, parent of domestic pigeons, 23.

Columba livia, the ancestor of domestic pigeons, 23.

Colymbetes, 386.

Colymbetes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Compensation of growth, 147.

Growth compensation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Compositæ, outer and inner florets of, 144.

Compositae, outer and inner flowers of, 144.

——, male flowers of, 451.

——, male flowers of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Conclusion, general, 480.

Conclusion, overall, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Conditions, slight changes in, favourable to fertility, 267.

Conditions, slight changes in, favorable to fertility, 267.

Coot, 185.

Coot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Coral-islands, seeds drifted to, 361.

Coral islands, seeds drifted to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— reefs, indicating movements of earth, 310.

—— reefs, showing shifts in the earth, 310.

Corn-crake, 186.

Corn-crake, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Correlation of growth in domestic productions, 11.

Correlation of growth in domestic productions, 11.

—— of growth, 143, 198.

—— of growth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Cowslip, 49.

Cowslip, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Creation, single centres of, 352.

Single centers of creation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Crinum, 250.

Crinum, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Crosses, reciprocal, 258.

Crosses, mutual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Crossing of domestic animals, importance in altering breeds, 20.

Crossing domestic animals is important for changing breeds, 20.

——, advantages of, 96.

——, benefits of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— unfavourable to selection, 102.

unfavorable for selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Crustacea of New Zealand, 376.

New Zealand Crustaceans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Crustacean, blind, 137.

Crustacean, blind, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cryptocerus, 239.

Cryptocerus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ctenomys, blind, 137.

Ctenomys, blind, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Cuckoo, instinct of, 216.

Cuckoo instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Currants, grafts of, 262.

Currant grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Currents of sea, rate of, 360.

Currents of the sea, speed of, 360.

Cuvier on conditions of existence, 206.

Cuvier on living conditions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on fossil monkeys, 304.

—— on fossil monkeys, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, Fred., on instinct, 208.

——, Fred., on instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

D.

D.

Dana, Prof., on blind cave-animals, 139.

Dana, Prof., on blind cave animals, 139.

——, on relations of crustaceans of Japan, 372.

——, on the relationships of crustaceans in Japan, 372.

——, on crustaceans of New Zealand, 376.

——, on crustaceans of New Zealand, 376.

De Candolle on struggle for existence, 62.

De Candolle on the struggle for existence, 62.

—— on umbelliferæ, 146.

—— on umbellifers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on general affinities, 430.

—— on general affinities, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, Alph., on low plants, widely dispersed, 406.

——, Alph., on low plants, widely scattered, 406.

——, ——, on widely-ranging plants being variable, 53.

——, ——, on diverse plants being variable, 53.

——, ——, on naturalisation, 115.

——, ——, on naturalization, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, ——, on winged seeds, 146.

——, ——, on winged seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, ——, on Alpine species suddenly becoming rare, 175.

——, ——, on Alpine species suddenly becoming rare, 175.

——, ——, on distribution of plants with large seeds, 360.

——, ——, on distributing plants with large seeds, 360.

——, ——, on vegetation of Australia, 379.

——, ——, on vegetation of Australia, 379.

——, ——, on fresh-water plants, 386.

——, ——, on freshwater plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, ——, on insular plants, 389.

——, ——, on isolated plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Degradation of coast-rocks, 282.

Coastal rock degradation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Denudation, rate of, 285.

Denudation rate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of oldest rocks, 308.

—— of the oldest rocks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Development of ancient forms, 336.

Development of ancient forms, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Devonian system, 334.

Devonian period, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dianthus, fertility of crosses, 256.

Dianthus, fertility of hybrids, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dirt on feet of birds, 362.

Dirt on the feet of birds, 362.

Dispersal, means of, 356.

Dispersal methods, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— during glacial period, 365.

—— during the Ice Age, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Distribution, geographical, 346.

Distribution, geographical, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, means of, 356.

——, ways of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Disuse, effects of, under nature, 134.

Disuse effects in nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Divergence of character, 111.

Character differences, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Division, physiological, of labour, 115.

Division of labor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dogs, hairless, with imperfect teeth, 12.

Dogs, bald, with crooked teeth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— descended from several wild stocks, 18.

—— descended from several wild species, 18.

——, domestic instincts of, 213.

——, domestic instincts of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, inherited civilisation of, 215.

——, inherited civilization of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fertility of breeds together, 254.

——, breed fertility together, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, —— of crosses, 268.

——, —— of crosses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, proportions of, when young, 444.

——, proportions of, in youth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Domestication, variation under, 7.

Domestication, variation under, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Downing, Mr., on fruit-trees in America, 85.

Downing, Mr., on fruit trees in America, 85.

Downs, North and South, 286.

Downs, North and South, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dragon-flies, intestines of, 190.

Dragonflies, intestines of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Drift-timber, 360.

Driftwood, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Driver-ant, 240.

Driver ant, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Drones killed by other bees, 202.

Drones killed by other bees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Duck, domestic, wings of, reduced, 11.

Domestic duck wings, reduced, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, logger-headed, 182.

——, logger-headed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[494]

Duckweed, 385.

Duckweed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dugong, affinities of, 414.

Dugong, relationships of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dung-beetles with deficient tarsi, 135.

Dung beetles with weak tarsi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Dyticus, 386.

Dyticus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

E.

E.

Earl, Mr. W., on the Malay Archipelago, 395.

Earl, Mr. W., on the Malay Archipelago, 395.

Ears, drooping, in domestic animals, 11.

Ears that hang down in pets, 11.

——, rudimentary, 454.

——, basic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Earth, seeds in roots of trees, 361.

Earth, seeds in the roots of trees, 361.

Eciton, 238.

Eciton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Economy of organisation, 147.

Organizational efficiency, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Edentata, teeth and hair, 144.

Edentates, teeth and fur, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fossil species of, 339.

——, fossil species of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Edwards, Milne, on physiological divisions of labour, 115.

Edwards, Milne, on the different physiological roles in labor, 115.

——, on gradations of structure, 194.

——, on structure levels, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on embryonical characters, 418.

——, on embryonic traits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Eggs, young birds escaping from, 87.

Eggs, young birds breaking free from, 87.

Electric organs, 192.

Electric organs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Elephant, rate of increase, 64.

Elephant population growth rate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of glacial period, 141.

—— of ice age, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Embryology, 438.

Embryology, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Existence, struggle for, 60.

Existence, struggle for, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, conditions of, 206.

——, conditions of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Extinction, as bearing on natural selection, 109.

Extinction, in relation to natural selection, 109.

—— of domestic varieties, 111,

—— of home varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__,

——, 317.

——, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Eye, structure of, 187.

Eye structure, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, correction for aberration, 202.

——, correction for distortion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Eyes reduced in moles, 137.

Eyes less moles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

F.

F.

Fabre, M. on parasitic sphex, 218.

Fabre, M. on parasitic wasps, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Falconer, Dr., on naturalisation of plants in India, 65.

Falconer, Dr., on the naturalization of plants in India, 65.

—— on fossil crocodile, 313.

—— on fossil crocodile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on elephants and mastodons, 334.

—— on elephants and mastodons, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— and Cautley on mammals of sub-Himalayan beds, 340.

—— and Cautley on mammals of sub-Himalayan beds, 340.

Falkland Island, wolf of, 394.

Falkland Islands, wolf of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Faults, 285.

Faults, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Faunas, marine, 348.

Marine fauna, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fear, instinctive, in birds, 212.

Birds' instinctive fear, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Feet of bird, young molluscs adhering to, 385.

Feet of birds, young mollusks sticking to, 385.

Fertility of hybrids, 249.

Hybrid fertility, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— from slight changes in conditions, 267.

—— from slight changes in conditions, 267.

—— of crossed varieties, 268.

—— of mixed varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fir-trees destroyed by cattle, 72.

Fir trees damaged by cattle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, pollen of, 203.

—— ——, pollen from, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fish, flying, 182.

Flying fish, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, teleostean, sudden appearance of, 305.

——, bony fish, sudden appearance of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— eating seeds, 362, 387.

eating seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

——, fresh-water, distribution of, 384.

——, freshwater, distribution of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fishes, ganoid, now confined to fresh water, 107.

Fishes, ganoid, now found only in freshwater, 107.

——, electric organs of, 192.

——, electric organs of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, ganoid, living in fresh water, 321.

——, ganoid, living in fresh water, 321.

—— of southern hemisphere, 376.

—— of southern hemisphere, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Flight, powers of, how acquired, 182.

Flight, powers of, how to acquire, 182.

Flowers, structure of, in relation to crossing, 97.

Flowers, structure of, in relation to crossing, 97.

—— of compositæ and umbelliferæ, 144.

—— of composites and umbellifers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Forbes, E., on colours of shells, 132.

Forbes, E., on the colors of shells, 132.

—— on abrupt range of shells in depth, 175.

—— on abrupt range of shells in depth, 175.

—— on poorness of palæontological collections, 288.

—— on the scarcity of paleontological collections, 288.

—— on continuous succession of genera, 316.

—— on continuous succession of genera, 316.

—— on continental extensions, 357.

—— on continental extensions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on distribution during glacial period, 366.

—— on distribution during glacial period, 366.

—— on parallelism in time and space, 409.

—— on parallelism in time and space, 409.

Forests, changes in, in America, 74.

Forests in America, changes in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Formation, Devonian, 334.

Formation, Devonian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Formations, thickness of, in Britain, 284.

Thickness of formations in Britain, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, intermittent, 290.

——, sporadic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Formica rufescens, 219.

Formica rufescens, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— sanguinea, 219.

—— sanguinea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— flava, neuter of, 240.

—— flavor, neuter of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Frena, ovigerous, of cirripedes, 192.

Frena, egg-bearing, of barnacles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fresh-water productions, dispersal of, 383.

Freshwater distribution, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fries on species in large genera being closely allied to other species, 57.

Fries on species in large genera being closely related to other species, 57.

Frigate-bird, 185.

Frigatebird, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Frogs on islands, 393.

Frogs on islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fruit-trees, gradual improvement of, 37.

Improving fruit trees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— —— in United States, 85.

—— —— in the U.S., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, varieties of, acclimatised in United States, 142.

—— ——, varieties of, acclimatized in the United States, 142.

[495]

Fuci, crossed, 258.

Fuci, crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Fur, thicker in cold climates, 133.

Fur is thicker in colder climates, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Furze, 439.

Gorse, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

G.

G.

Galapagos Archipelago, birds of, 390.

Galapagos Islands, birds of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, productions of, 398, 400.

——, productions of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Galeopithecus, 181.

Galeopithecus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Game, increase of, checked by vermin, 68.

Game, increase of, checked by pests, 68.

Gärtner on sterility of hybrids, 247, 255.

Gärtner on the sterility of hybrids, 247, 255.

——, on reciprocal crosses, 258.

——, on mutual crosses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on crossed maize and verbascum, 270.

——, on crossed corn and mullein, 270.

——, on comparison of hybrids and mongrels, 272.

——, on comparison of hybrids and mutts, 272.

Geese, fertility when crossed, 253.

Geese, fertility when crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, upland, 185.

——, upland, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Genealogy important in classification, 425.

Genealogy is important for classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Geoffroy St. Hilaire on balancement, 147.

Geoffroy St. Hilaire on balance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— —— on homologous organs, 434.

—— —— on homologous organs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, Isidore, on variability of repeated parts, 149.

—— ——, Isidore, on variability of repeated parts, 149.

—— ——, on correlation in monstrosities, 11.

—— ——, on the relationship between monsters, 11.

—— ——, on correlation, 144.

—— ——, on correlation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, on variable parts being often monstrous, 155.

—— ——, on variable parts being often monstrous, 155.

Geographical distribution, 346.

Geographic distribution, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Geography, ancient, 487.

Geography, ancient, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Geology, future progress of, 487.

Future advancements in geology, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, imperfection of the record, 279.

——, flaw in the record, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Giraffe, tail of, 195.

Giraffe tail, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Glacial period, 365.

Ice age, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Gmelin on distribution, 365.

Gmelin on distribution, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Gnathodon, fossil, 368.

Gnathodon fossil, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Godwin-Austen, Mr., on the Malay Archipelago, 300.

Godwin-Austen, Mr., on the Malay Archipelago, 300.

Goethe on compensation of growth, 147.

Goethe on growth compensation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Gooseberry, grafts of, 262.

Gooseberry grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Gould, Dr. A., on land-shells, 397.

Gould, Dr. A., on land shells, 397.

——, Mr., on colours of birds, 132.

——, Mr., on colors of birds, 132.

——, on birds of the Galapagos, 398.

——, on birds of the Galapagos, 398.

——, on distribution of genera of birds, 404.

——, on the distribution of bird species, 404.

Gourds, crossed, 270.

Gourds crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Grafts, capacity of, 261.

Graft capacity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Grasses, varieties of, 113.

Grass varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Gray, Dr. Asa, on trees of United States, 100.

Gray, Dr. Asa, on trees of the United States, 100.

——, on naturalised plants in the United States, 115.

——, on naturalized plants in the United States, 115.

——, on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

——, on the rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

——, on Alpine plants, 365.

——, on alpine plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, Dr. J. E., on striped mule, 165.

——, Dr. J. E., on striped mule, 165.

Grebe, 185.

Grebe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Groups, aberrant, 429.

Groups, unusual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Grouse, colours of, 84.

Grouse, colors of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, red, a doubtful species, 49.

——, red, a sketchy type, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Growth, compensation of, 147.

Growth, compensation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, correlation of, in domestic products, 11.

——, correlation of, in domestic products, 11.

——, correlation of, 143.

——, correlation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

H.

H.

Habit, effect of, under domestication, 11.

Habit, the influence of domestication, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, effect of, under nature, 134.

——, effect of, in nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, diversified, of same species, 183.

——, diversified, of the same species, 183.

Hair and teeth, correlated, 144.

Hair and teeth, correlated, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Harcourt, Mr. E. V., on the birds of Madeira, 391.

Harcourt, Mr. E. V., on the birds of Madeira, 391.

Hartung, M. on boulders in the Azores, 363.

Hartung, M. on boulders in the Azores, 363.

Hazel-nuts, 359.

Hazelnuts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hearne on habits of bears, 184.

Hearne on bear habits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Heath, changes in vegetation, 72.

Heath, vegetation changes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Heer, O., on plants of Madeira, 107.

Heer, O., on plants of Madeira, 107.

Helix pomatia, 397.

Helix pomatia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Helosciadium, 359.

Helosciadium, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hemionus, striped, 163.

Hemionus, striped, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Herbert, W., on struggle for existence, 62.

Herbert, W., on the struggle for survival, 62.

——, on sterility of hybrids, 249.

——, on the sterility of hybrids, 249.

Hermaphrodites crossing, 96.

Hermaphrodites mating, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Heron eating seed, 387.

Heron eating seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Heron, Sir R., on peacocks, 89.

Heron, Sir R., on peacocks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Heusinger on white animals not poisoned by certain plants, 12.

Heusinger on white animals not poisoned by certain plants, 12.

Hewitt, Mr., on sterility of first crosses, 264.

Hewitt, Mr., on the sterility of first crosses, 264.

Himalaya, glaciers of, 373.

Himalayan glaciers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, plants of, 375.

——, plants of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hippeastrum, 250.

Hippeastrum, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Holly-trees, sexes of, 93.

Holly tree genders, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hollyhock, varieties of, crossed, 271.

Hollyhock, varieties of, crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hooker, Dr., on trees of New Zealand, 100.

Hooker, Dr., on trees of New Zealand, 100.

[496]

——, on acclimatisation of Himalayan trees, 140.

——, on acclimatization of Himalayan trees, 140.

——, on flowers of umbelliferæ, 145.

——, on flowers of the umbellifers, 145.

——, on glaciers of Himalaya, 373.

——, on the glaciers of the Himalayas, 373.

——, on algæ of New Zealand, 376.

——, on seaweed of New Zealand, 376.

——, on vegetation at the base of the Himalaya, 378.

——, on vegetation at the base of the Himalayas, 378.

——, on plants of Tierra del Fuego, 374, 378.

——, on plants of Tierra del Fuego, 374, 378.

——, on Australian plants, 375, 399.

——, on Australian flora, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

——, on relations of flora of South America, 379.

——, on the relationships of plants in South America, 379.

——, on flora of the Antarctic lands, 381, 399.

——, on the plants of the Antarctic regions, 381, 399.

——, on the plants of the Galapagos, 392, 398.

——, on the plants of the Galapagos, 392, 398.

Hooks on bamboos, 197.

Bamboo hooks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— to seeds on islands, 392.

—— to seeds on islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Horner, Mr., on the antiquity of Egyptians, 18.

Horner, Mr., on the ancient history of Egyptians, 18.

Horns, rudimentary, 454.

Horns, basic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Horse, fossil, in La Plata, 318.

Horse fossil in La Plata, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Horses destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.

Horses tormented by flies in La Plata, 72.

——, striped, 163.

——, striped, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, proportions of, when young, 444.

——, proportions of, in youth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Horticulturists, selection applied by, 32.

Horticulturists apply selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Huber on cells of bees, 230.

Huber on bee cells, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, P., on reason blended with instinct, 208.

——, P., on reason mixed with instinct, 208.

——, on habitual nature of instincts, 208.

——, on the habitual nature of instincts, 208.

——, on slave-making ants, 219.

——, on slave-making ants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on Melipona domestica, 225.

——, on Melipona domestica, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Humble-bees, cells of, 225.

Humble bees, cells of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hunter, J., on secondary sexual characters, 150.

Hunter, J., on secondary sexual characteristics, 150.

Hutton, Captain, on crossed geese, 254.

Hutton, Captain, on crossed geese, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Huxley, Prof., on structure of hermaphrodites, 101.

Huxley, Prof., on the structure of hermaphrodites, 101.

——, on embryological succession, 338.

——, on embryological development, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on homologous organs, 438.

——, on similar organs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on the development of aphis, 442.

——, on the development of aphids, 442.

Hybrids and mongrels compared, 272.

Hybrids and mutts compared, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hybridism, 245.

Hybridization, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Hydra, structure of, 190.

Hydra, structure of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

I.

I.

Ibla, 148.

Ibla, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Icebergs transporting seeds, 363.

Icebergs carrying seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Increase, rate of, 63.

Increase rate of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Individuals, numbers favourable to selection, 102.

Individuals, numbers good for selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, many, whether simultaneously created, 355.

——, many, whether created at the same time, 355.

Inheritance, laws of, 12.

Inheritance laws, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— at corresponding ages, 14, 86.

—— at matching ages, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Insects, colour of, fitted for habitations, 84.

Insects, color of, suited for living spaces, 84.

——, sea-side, colours of, 132.

——, seaside, colors of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, blind, in caves, 138.

——, blind, in caves, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, luminous, 193.

——, bright, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, neuter, 236.

——, neutral, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Instinct, 207.

Instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Instincts, domestic, 213.

Instincts, home, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Intercrossing, advantages of, 96.

Intercrossing advantages, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Islands, oceanic, 388.

Islands, ocean, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Isolation favourable to selection, 104.

Isolation favors selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

J.

J.

Japan, productions of, 372.

Japan, productions of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Java, plants of, 375.

Java plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Jones, Mr. J. M., on the birds of Bermuda, 391.

Jones, Mr. J. M., on the birds of Bermuda, 391.

Jussieu on classification, 417.

Jussieu on classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

K.

K.

Kentucky, caves of, 137.

Kentucky caves, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Kerguelen-land, flora of, 381, 399.

Kerguelen Island flora, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Kidney-bean, acclimatisation of, 142.

Kidney bean, acclimatization of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Kidneys of birds, 144.

Bird kidneys, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Kirby on tarsi deficient in beetles, 135.

Kirby on tarsi lacking in beetles, 135.

Knight, Andrew, on cause of variation, 7.

Knight, Andrew, on the cause of variation, 7.

Kölreuter on the barberry, 98.

Kölreuter on barberry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on sterility of hybrids, 246.

—— on the sterility of hybrids, 246.

—— on reciprocal crosses, 258.

—— on reciprocal crosses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— on crossed varieties of nicotiana, 271.

—— on crossed varieties of nicotiana, 271.

—— on crossing male and hermaphrodite flowers, 451.

—— on crossing male and hermaphrodite flowers, 451.

L.

L.

Lamarck on adaptive characters, 426.

Lamarck on adaptive traits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Land-shells, distribution of, 397.

Distribution of land shells, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of Madeira, naturalised, 403.

—— of Madeira, naturalized, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Languages, classification of, 422.

Language classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Lapse, great, of time, 282.

Long time, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[497]

Larvæ, 440.

Larvae, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Laurel, nectar secreted by the leaves,

Laurel, a sweet substance released by the leaves,

Laws of variation, 131.

Laws of variation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Leech, varieties of, 76.

Leech varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Leguminosæ, nectar secreted by glands, 92.

Legumes, nectar made by glands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Lepidosiren, 107, 330.

Lepidosiren, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Life, struggle for, 60.

Life, the struggle for, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Lingula, Silurian, 307.

Lingula, Silurian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Linnæus, aphorism of, 413.

Linnæus' aphorism, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Lion, mane of, 88.

Lion's mane, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, young of, striped, 439.

——, young striped, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Lobelia fulgens, 73, 98.

Lobelia fulgens, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Lobelia, sterility of crosses, 250.

Lobelia, sterility of hybrids, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Loess of the Rhine, 384.

Loess of the Rhine, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Lowness of structure connected with variability, 149.

Lowness of structure linked to variability, 149.

Lowness, related to wide distribution, 406.

Lowness, linked to a broad range, 406.

Lubbock, Mr., on the nerves of coccus, 46.

Lubbock, Mr., on the nerves of coccus, 46.

Lucas, Dr. P., on inheritance, 12.

Lucas, Dr. P., on inheritance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on resemblance of child to parent, 275.

——, on the similarity between a child and their parent, 275.

Lund and Clausen on fossils of Brazil, 339.

Lund and Clausen on fossils of Brazil, 339.

Lyell, Sir C, on the struggle for existence, 62.

Lyell, Sir C, on the struggle for existence, 62.

——, on modern changes of the earth, 95.

——, on modern changes of the earth, 95.

——, on measure of denudation, 284.

——, in terms of erosion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on a carboniferous land-shell, 289.

——, on a carbon-rich land shell, 289.

——, on strata beneath Silurian system, 308.

——, on layers below the Silurian system, 308.

——, on the imperfection of the geological record, 311.

——, on the flaws in the geological record, 311.

——, on the appearance of species, 312.

——, on the appearance of species, 312.

——, on Barrande's colonies, 313.

——, on Barrande's colonies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on tertiary formations of Europe and North America, 323.

——, on the tertiary formations of Europe and North America, 323.

——, on parallelism of tertiary formations, 328.

——, on the parallelism of tertiary formations, 328.

——, on transport of seeds by icebergs, 363.

——, on the transport of seeds by icebergs, 363.

——, on great alternations of climate, 382.

——, on major changes in climate, 382.

——, on the distribution of fresh-water shells, 385.

——, on the distribution of freshwater shells, 385.

——, on land-shells of Madeira, 402.

——, on land shells of Madeira, 402.

Lyell and Dawson on fossilized trees in Nova Scotia, 297.

Lyell and Dawson on fossilized trees in Nova Scotia, 297.

M.

M.

Macleay on analogical characters, 426.

Macleay on analogy in characters, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Madeira, plants of, 107.

Madeira plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, beetles of, wingless, 135.

——, wingless beetles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fossil land-shells of, 339.

——, fossil land snails of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, birds of, 390.

——, birds of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Magpie tame in Norway, 212.

Tame magpie in Norway, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Maize, crossed, 270.

Corn, crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Malay Archipelago compared with Europe, 300.

Malay Archipelago vs Europe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, mammals of, 395.

——, mammals of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Malpighiaceæ, 417.

Malpighiaceae, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mammæ, rudimentary, 451.

Breasts, rudimentary, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mammals, fossil, in secondary formation, 304.

Mammals, fossils, in secondary formation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, insular, 394.

——, isolated, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Man, origin of races of, 199.

Man, origin of races, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Manatee, rudimentary nails of, 454.

Manatee, basic nails of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Marsupials of Australia, 116.

Australian marsupials, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fossil species of, 339.

——, fossil species of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Martens, M., experiment on seeds, 360.

Martens, M., seed experiment, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Martin, Mr. W. C., on striped mules, 165.

Martin, Mr. W. C., on striped mules, 165.

Matteucci on the electric organs of rays, 193.

Matteucci on the electric organs of rays, 193.

Matthiola, reciprocal crosses of, 258.

Matthiola, reciprocal crosses of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Means of dispersal, 356.

Ways to spread, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Melipona domestica, 225.

Melipona domestica, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Metamorphism of oldest rocks, 308.

Metamorphism of the oldest rocks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mice destroying bees, 74.

Mice ruining bees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, acclimatisation of, 141.

——, adaptation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Migration, bears on first appearance of fossils, 297.

Migration, relates to the first appearance of fossils, 297.

Miller, Prof., on the cells of bees, 226.

Prof. Miller on bee cells, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mirabilis, crosses of, 258.

Mirabilis, crosses of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Missel-thrush, 76.

Missel thrush, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Misseltoe, complex relations of, 3.

Mistletoe, complex relationships of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mississippi, rate of deposition at mouth, 284.

Mississippi, the rate of sediment buildup at the mouth, 284.

Mocking-thrush of the Galapagos, 402.

Galapagos mocking-thrush, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Modification of species, how far applicable, 483.

Modification of species, how far applicable, 483.

Moles, blind, 137.

Blind moles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mongrels, fertility and sterility of, 268.

Mongrels, fertility and sterility of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— and hybrids compared, 272.

—— and hybrids compared, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[498]

Monkeys, fossil, 304.

Monkeys, fossil, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Monocanthus, 424.

Monocanthus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mons, Van, on the origin of fruit-trees, 29.

Mons, Van, on the origin of fruit trees, 29.

Moquin-Tandon on sea-side plants, 132.

Moquin-Tandon on coastal plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Morphology, 433.

Morphology, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mozart, musical powers of, 209.

Mozart's musical genius, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mud, seeds in, 386.

Mud, seeds inside, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mules, striped, 165.

Striped mules, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Müller, Dr. F., on Alpine Australian plants, 375.

Müller, Dr. F., on Alpine Australian plants, 375.

Murchison, Sir R., on the formations of Russia, 290.

Murchison, Sir R., on the formations of Russia, 290.

——, on azoic formations, 308.

——, on azoic formations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on extinction, 317.

——, on extinction, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Mustela vison, 179.

Mustela vison, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Myanthus, 424.

Myanthus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Myrmecocystus, 239.

Myrmecocystus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Myrmica, eyes of, 240.

Myrmica, eyes of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

N.

N.

Nails, rudimentary, 454.

Nails, basic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Natural history, future progress of, 485.

Natural history, future advancements of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— selection, 80.

—— selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— system, 413.

—— system, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Naturalisation of forms distinct from the indigenous species, 115.

Naturalization of forms different from the native species, 115.

—— in New Zealand, 201.

—— in New Zealand, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Nautilus, Silurian, 307.

Nautilus, Silurian, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Nectar of plants, 92.

Plant nectar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Nectaries, how formed, 92.

Nectaries, how they're formed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Nelumbium luteum, 387.

Nelumbium luteum, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Nests, variation in, 211.

Nests, variation in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Neuter insects, 236.

Neutered insects, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Newman, Mr., on humble-bees, 74.

Newman, Mr., on bumblebees, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

New Zealand, productions of, not perfect, 201.

New Zealand, productions of, not perfect, 201.

——, naturalised products of, 337.

——, naturalized products of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fossil birds of, 339.

——, fossil birds of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, glacial action in, 373.

——, glacial activity in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, crustaceans of, 376.

——, crustaceans of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, algæ of, 376.

——, algae of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, number of plants of, 389.

——, number of plants of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, flora of, 399.

——, plant life of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Nicotiana, crossed varieties of, 271.

Nicotiana, hybrid varieties of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, certain species very sterile, 257.

——, certain species are very sterile, 257.

Noble, Mr., on fertility of Rhododendron, 252.

Noble, Mr., on the fertility of Rhododendron, 252.

Nodules, phosphatic, in azoic rocks, 308.

Phosphatic nodules in azoic rocks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

O.

O.

Oak, varieties of, 50.

Oak varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Onites apelles, 135.

Onites appeal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Orchis, pollen of, 193.

Orchis pollen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Organs of extreme perfection, 186.

Organs of exceptional perfection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, electric, of fishes, 192.

——, electric, of fish, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of little importance, 194.

— of little importance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, homologous, 434.

——, similar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, rudiments of, and nascent, 450.

——, fundamentals of, and emerging, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ornithorhynchus, 107, 416.

Ornithorhynchus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Ostrich not capable of flight, 134.

Ostriches can't fly, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, habit of laying eggs together, 218.

——, habit of laying eggs together, 218.

——, American, two species of, 349.

——, American, two species of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Otter, habits of, how acquired, 179.

Otter, habits of, how they are acquired, 179.

Ouzel, water, 185.

Ouzel, water, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Owen, Prof., on birds not flying, 134.

Owen, Prof., on birds not flying, 134.

——, on vegetative repetition, 149.

——, on plant repetition, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on variable length of arms in ourang-outang, 150.

——, on the varying lengths of arms in orangutans, 150.

——, on the swim-bladder of fishes, 191.

——, on the swim bladder of fish, 191.

——, on electric organs, 192.

——, on electronic keyboards, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on fossil horse of La Plata, 319.

——, on fossil horse of La Plata, 319.

——, on relations of ruminants and pachyderms, 329.

——, on the relationships between ruminants and pachyderms, 329.

——, on fossil birds of New Zealand, 339.

——, on fossil birds of New Zealand, 339.

——, on succession of types, 339.

——, on succession of genres, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on affinities of the dugong, 414.

——, on the connections of the dugong, 414.

——, on homologous organs, 434.

——, on similar organs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on the metamorphosis of cephalopods and spiders, 442.

——, on the transformation of cephalopods and spiders, 442.

P.

P.

Pacific Ocean, faunas of, 348.

Pacific Ocean wildlife, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Paley on no organ formed to give pain, 201.

Paley on no organ designed to cause pain, 201.

Pallas on the fertility of the wild stocks of domestic animals, 254.

Pallas on the fertility of the wild breeds of domestic animals, 254.

Paraguay, cattle destroyed by flies, 72.

Paraguay, cattle affected by flies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Parasites, 217.

Parasites, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Partridge, dirt on feet, 363.

Partridge, dirt on feet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Parts greatly developed, variable, 150.

Parts highly developed, variable, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, degrees of utility of, 201.

——, utility levels of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Parus major, 184.

Great tit, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Passiflora, 251.

Passionflower, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Peaches in United States, 85.

Peaches in the U.S., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Pear, grafts of, 262.

Pear grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[499]

Pelargonium, flowers of, 145.

Pelargonium flowers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, sterility of, 251.

——, sterility of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Pelvis of women, 144.

Women's pelvis, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Peloria, 145.

Peloria, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Period, glacial, 365.

Period, ice age, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Petrels, habits of, 184.

Petrel behavior, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Phasianus, fertility of hybrids, 253.

Phasianus, hybrid fertility, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Pheasant, young, wild, 216.

Wild young pheasant, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Philippi on tertiary species in Sicily, 312.

Philippi on secondary species in Sicily, 312.

Pictet, Prof., on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.

Pictet, Prof., on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.

——, on rate of organic change, 313.

——, on the rate of organic change, 313.

——, on continuous succession of genera, 316.

——, on the ongoing succession of genera, 316.

——, on close alliance of fossils in consecutive formations, 335.

——, on the close relationship of fossils in successive layers, 335.

——, on embryological succession, 338.

——, on embryological development, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Pierce, Mr., on varieties of wolves, 91.

Pierce, Mr., on different types of wolves, 91.

Pigeons with feathered feet and skin between toes, 12.

Pigeons with fluffy feet and webbing between their toes, 12.

——, breeds described, and origin of, 20.

——, breeds described, and origin of, 20.

——, breeds of, how produced, 39, 42.

——, types, how it's made, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

——, tumbler, not being able to get out of egg, 87.

——, tumbler, unable to break free from the egg, 87.

——, reverting to blue colour, 160.

——, switching back to blue, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, instinct of tumbling, 214.

——, instinct to tumble, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, carriers, killed by hawks, 362.

——, carriers, killed by hawks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, young of, 445.

——, young of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Pistil, rudimentary, 451.

Pistil, basic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Plants, poisonous, not affecting certain coloured animals, 12.

Plants that are poisonous don't harm certain colored animals, 12.

——, selection applied to, 32.

——, selection applied to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, gradual improvement of, 37.

——, steady improvement of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— not improved in barbarous countries, 38.

—— not improved in barbaric countries, 38.

—— destroyed by insects, 67.

destroyed by bugs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, in midst of range, have to struggle with other plants, 77.

——, in the middle of the area, have to compete with other plants, 77.

——, nectar of, 92.

——, nectar of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fleshy, on sea-shores, 132.

——, soft, on beaches, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fresh-water, distribution of, 386.

——, freshwater, distribution of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, low in scale, widely distributed, 406.

——, small in scale, widely distributed, 406.

Plumage, laws of change in sexes of birds, 89.

Plumage, rules regarding the differences in male and female birds, 89.

Plums in the United States, 85.

Plums in the U.S., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Pointer dog, origin of, 35.

Pointer dog origins, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, habits of, 213.

——, habits of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Poison not affecting certain coloured animals, 12.

Poison doesn't affect certain colored animals, 12.

——, similar effect of, on animals and plants, 484.

——, similar effect of, on animals and plants, 484.

Pollen of fir-trees, 203.

Fir tree pollen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Poole, Col., on striped hemionus, 163.

Poole, Col., on striped hemionus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Potamogeton, 387.

Potamogeton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Prestwich, Mr., on English and French eocene formations, 328.

Prestwich, Mr., on English and French Eocene formations, 328.

Primrose, 49.

Primrose, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, sterility of, 247.

——, sterility of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Primula, varieties of, 49.

Primula varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Proteolepas, 148.

Proteolepas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Proteus, 139.

Proteus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Psychology, future progress of, 489.

Future advancements in psychology, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Q.

Q.

Quagga, striped, 165.

Quagga, striped, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Quince, grafts of, 262.

Quince grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

R.

R.

Rabbit, disposition of young, 215.

Rabbit, behavior of young, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Races, domestic, characters of, 16.

Races, domestic, characters of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Race-horses, Arab, 35.

Arab racehorses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, English, 356.

——, English, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ramond on plants of Pyrenees, 368.

Ramond on plants of the Pyrenees, 368.

Ramsay, Prof., on thickness of the British formations, 284.

Ramsay, Prof., on the thickness of British formations, 284.

——, on faults, 285.

——, on mistakes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ratio of increase, 63.

Increase ratio, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Rats, supplanting each other, 76.

Rats replacing each other, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, acclimatisation of, 141.

——, adaptation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, blind in cave, 137.

——, blind in cave, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Rattle-snake, 201.

Rattlesnake, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Reason and instinct, 208.

Reason and instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Recapitulation, general, 459.

Summary, general, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Reciprocity of crosses, 258.

Reciprocal crosses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Record, geological, imperfect, 279.

Record, geological, flawed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Rengger on flies destroying cattle, 72.

Rengger on flies harming cattle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Reproduction, rate of, 63.

Reproduction rate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Resemblance to parents in mongrels and hybrids, 273.

Resemblance to parents in mixed-breed animals and hybrids, 273.

Reversion, law of inheritance, 14.

Reversion, inheritance law, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— in pigeons to blue colour, 160.

—— in pigeons to blue color, 160.

Rhododendron, sterility of, 251.

Rhododendron, sterility, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Richard, Prof., on Aspicarpa, 417.

Richard, Prof., on Aspicarpa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Richardson, Sir J., on structure of squirrels, 180.

Richardson, Sir J., on the structure of squirrels, 180.

——, on fishes of the southern hemisphere, 376.

——, on fishes of the southern hemisphere, 376.

Robinia, grafts of, 262.

Robinia grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[500]

Rodents, blind, 137.

Rodents, sightless, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Rudimentary organs, 450.

Vestigial organs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Rudiments important for classification, 416.

Basic skills essential for classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

S.

S.

Sagaret on grafts, 262.

Sagaret on layers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Salmons, males fighting, and hooked jaws of, 88.

Salmons, male fish battling, and their hooked jaws of, 88.

Salt-water, how far injurious to seeds, 358.

Saltwater, how harmful to seeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Saurophagus sulphuratus, 183.

Saurophagus sulphuratus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Schiödte on blind insects, 138.

Schiödte on blind bugs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Schlegel on snakes, 144.

Schlegel on snakes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sea-water, how far injurious to seeds, 358.

Sea-water, how harmful it is to seeds, 358.

Sebright, Sir J., on crossed animals, 20.

Sebright, Sir J., on crossed animals, 20.

——, on selection of pigeons, 31.

——, on choosing pigeons, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sedgwick, Prof., on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302.

Sedgwick, Prof., on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302.

Seedlings destroyed by insects, 67.

Seedlings eaten by pests, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Seeds, nutriment in, 77.

Seeds, nutrients in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, winged, 146.

——, winged, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, power of resisting salt-water, 358.

——, ability to resist saltwater, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— in crops and intestines of birds, 361.

—— in crops and intestines of birds, 361.

—— eaten by fish, 362, 387.

—— eaten by fish, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

—— in mud, 386.

—— in mud, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, hooked, on islands, 392.

——, hooked, on islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Selection of domestic products, 29.

Selection of local products, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, principle not of recent origin, 33.

——, a principle that isn't new, 33.

——, unconscious, 34.

——, unconscious, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, natural, 80.

——, natural, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, sexual, 87.

——, sexual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, natural, circumstances favourable to, 102.

——, natural, conditions favorable to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sexes, relations of, 87.

Gender relations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sexual characters variable, 156.

Sexual characters vary, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— selection, 87.

—— selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sheep, Merino, their selection, 31.

Merino sheep selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, two sub-breeds unintentionally produced, 36.

——, two accidentally created sub-breeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, mountain, varieties of, 76.

——, mountain, varieties of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Shells, colours of, 132.

Shell colors, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, littoral, seldom embedded, 288.

——, coastal, rarely embedded, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, fresh-water, dispersal of, 385

—, freshwater, dispersal of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

—— of Madeira, 391.

—— of Madeira, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, land, distribution of, 397.

——, land, distribution of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Silene, fertility of crosses, 257.

Silene, fertility of hybrids, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Silliman, Prof., on blind rat, 137.

Prof. Silliman on blind rat, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Skulls of young mammals, 197, 436.

Skulls of young mammals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Slave-making instinct, 219.

Slave-making instinct, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Smith, Col. Hamilton, on striped horses, 164.

Smith, Col. Hamilton, on striped horses, 164.

——, Mr. Fred., on slave-making ants, 219.

——, Mr. Fred., on slave-making ants, 219.

——, on neuter ants, 239.

——, on neutral ants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, Mr., of Jordan Hill, on the degradation of coast-rocks, 283.

——, Mr., of Jordan Hill, on the decline of coastal rocks, 283.

Snap-dragon, 161.

Snapdragon, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Somerville, Lord, on selection of sheep, 31.

Somerville, Lord, on selecting sheep, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sorbus, grafts of, 262.

Sorbus grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Spaniel, King Charles's breed, 35.

King Charles Spaniel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Species, polymorphic, 46.

Species, variable, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, common, variable, 53.

——, common, variable, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— in large genera variable, 54.

—— in large genera variable, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, groups of, suddenly appearing, 302, 307.

——, groups of, suddenly showing up, 302, 307.

—— beneath Silurian formations, 307.

—— beneath Silurian layers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— successively appearing, 312.

—— appearing in succession, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— changing simultaneously throughout the world, 322.

—— changing simultaneously throughout the world, 322.

Spencer, Lord, on increase in size of cattle, 35.

Spencer, Lord, on the growth of cattle, 35.

Sphex, parasitic, 218.

Sphex, parasitic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Spiders, development of, 442.

Spiders, development of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Spitz-dog crossed with fox, 268.

Spitz-dog mixed with fox, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sports in plants, 9.

Sports in plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sprengel, C. C, on crossing, 98.

Sprengel, C. C, on crossing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on ray-florets, 145.

——, on ray florets, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Squirrels, gradations in structure, 180.

Squirrels, structural variations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Staffordshire, heath, changes in, 71.

Staffordshire, heath, changes in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Stag-beetles, fighting, 88.

Stag beetles, battling, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Sterility from changed conditions of life, 9.

Sterility caused by changes in lifestyle, 9.

—— of hybrids, 246.

—— of hybrids, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, laws of, 255.

—— ——, laws of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— ——, causes of, 263.

—— ——, causes of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— from unfavourable conditions, 265.

from unfavorable conditions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of certain varieties, 269.

—— of specific varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

St. Helena, productions of, 390.

St. Helena, productions of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

St. Hilaire, Aug., on classification, 418.

St. Hilaire, Aug., on classification, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

St. John, Mr., on habits of cats, 91.

St. John, Mr., on cat behavior, 91.

Sting of bee, 202.

Bee sting, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Stocks, aboriginal, of domestic animals, 18.

Stocks, from domesticated animals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Strata, thickness of, in Britain, 284.

Strata thickness in the UK, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Stripes on horses, 163.

Stripes on horses, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[501]

Structure, degrees of utility of, 201.

Structure, usefulness levels of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Struggle for existence, 60.

Struggle for survival, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Succession, geological, 312.

Succession, geological, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Succession of types in same areas, 338.

Succession of types in the same areas, 338.

Swallow, one species supplanting another, 76.

Swallow, one species taking over, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Swim-bladder, 190.

Swim bladder, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

System, natural, 413.

System, natural, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

T.

T.

Tail of giraffe, 195.

Giraffe tail, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of aquatic animals, 196.

—— of aquatic animals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, rudimentary, 454.

——, basic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tarsi deficient, 135.

Tarsi lacking, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tausch on umbelliferous flowers, 146.

Tausch on flowering plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Teeth and hair correlated, 144.

Teeth and hair are related, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, embryonic, traces of, in birds, 450.

——, embryonic, traces of, in birds, 450.

——, rudimentary, in embryonic calf, 450, 480.

——, basic, in developing calf, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Tegetmeier, Mr., on cells of bees, 228, 233.

Tegetmeier, Mr., on bee cells, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Temminck on distribution aiding classification, 419.

Temminck on how distribution helps with classification, 419.

Thouin on grafts, 262.

Thouin on grafts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Thrush, aquatic species of, 185.

Thrush, aquatic species, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, mocking, of the Galapagos, 402.

——, mocking, of the Galapagos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, young of, spotted, 439.

——, young of, spotted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, nest of, 243.

——, nest of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Thuret, M., on crossed fuci, 258.

Thuret, M., on crossed fucus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Thwaites, Mr., on acclimatisation, 140.

Mr. Thwaites on acclimatization, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tierra del Fuego, dogs of, 215.

Tierra del Fuego, doggos of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, plants of, 374, 378.

——, plants of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

Timber-drift, 360.

Timber drift, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Time, lapse of, 282.

Time, passing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Titmouse, 184.

Titmouse, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Toads on islands, 393.

Toads on islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tobacco, crossed varieties of, 271.

Crossbred tobacco varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tomes, Mr., on the distribution of bats, 395.

Tomes, Mr., on the distribution of bats, 395.

Transitions in varieties rare, 172.

Transitions in rare varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Trees on islands belong to peculiar orders, 392.

Trees on islands belong to unique groups, 392.

—— with separated sexes, 99.

—— with separated genders, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Trifolium pratense, 73, 94.

Trifolium pratense, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

—— incarnatum, 94.

—— incarnatum, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Trigonia, 321.

Trigonia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Trilobites, 307.

Trilobites, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, sudden extinction of, 321.

——, sudden extinction of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Troglodytes, 243.

Cavemen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tucutucu, blind, 137.

Tucutucu, blind, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Tumbler pigeons, habits of, hereditary, 214.

Tumbler pigeons, their inherited habits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, young of, 446.

——, young of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Turkey-cock, brush of hair on breast, 90.

Turkey-cock, tuft of feathers on chest, 90.

Turkey, naked skin on head, 197.

Turkey, bare skin on its head, 197.

——, young, wild, 216.

——, young, free, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Turnip and cabbage, analogous variations of, 159.

Turnip and cabbage, similar variations of, 159.

Type, unity of, 206.

Type of unity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Types, succession of, in same areas, 339.

Types, succession of, in the same areas, 339.

U.

U.

Udders enlarged by use, 11.

Udders enlarged from use, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, rudimentary, 451.

——, basic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Ulex, young leaves of, 439.

Ulex, young leaves of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Umbelliferæ, outer and inner florets of, 144.

Umbelliferae, outer and inner flowers of, 144.

Unity of type, 206.

Unity of type, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Use, effects of, under domestication, 11.

Use of effects in domestication, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, effects of, in a state of nature, 134.

——, effects of, in a state of nature, 134.

Utility, how far important in the construction of each part, 199.

Utility, how important it is in building each part, 199.

V.

V.

Valenciennes on fresh-water fish, 384.

Valenciennes on freshwater fish, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Variability of mongrels and hybrids, 274.

Variability of mixed breeds and hybrids, 274.

Variation under domestication, 7.

Variation in domestication, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— caused by reproductive system being affected by conditions of life, 8.

—— caused by the reproductive system being influenced by life conditions, 8.

—— under nature, 44.

—— in nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, laws of, 131.

——, laws of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Variations appear at corresponding ages, 14, 86.

Variations show up at the same ages, 14, 86.

——, analogous in distinct species, 159.

——, similar in different species, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Varieties, natural, 44.

Varieties, natural, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, struggle between, 75.

——, conflict between, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, domestic, extinction of, 111.

——, domestic, extinction of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, transitional, rarity of, 172.

——, transition, rarity of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, when crossed, fertile, 268.

——, when crossed, fertile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, when crossed, sterile, 269.

——, when crossed, infertile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, classification of, 423.

——, classification of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Verbascum, sterility of, 251.

Verbascum, sterility of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, varieties of, crossed, 271.

——, types of, crossed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Verneuil, M. de, on the succession of species, 325.

Verneuil, M. de, on the succession of species, 325.

Viola tricolor, 73.

Viola tricolor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

[502]

Volcanic islands, denudation of, 285.

Volcanic islands, erosion of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Vulture, naked skin on head, 197.

Vulture, bare skin on its head, 197.

W.

W.

Wading-birds, 386.

Wading birds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Wallace, Mr., on origin of species, 2.

Wallace, Mr., on the origin of species, 2.

——, on law of geographical distribution, 355.

——, on the law of geographical distribution, 355.

——, on the Malay Archipelago, 395.

——, in the Malay Archipelago, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Wasp, sting of, 202.

Wasp sting, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Water, fresh, productions of, 383.

Fresh water, productions of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Water-hen, 185.

Water hen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Waterhouse, Mr., on Australian marsupials, 116.

Mr. Waterhouse on Australian marsupials, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on greatly developed parts being variable, 150.

——, on highly developed areas being variable, 150.

——, on the cells of bees, 225.

——, on the cells of bees, 225.

——, on general affinities, 429.

——, on general connections, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Water-ouzel, 185.

Water ouzel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Watson, Mr. H. C, on range of varieties of British plants, 58.

Watson, Mr. H. C, on the variety of British plants, 58.

——, on acclimatisation, 140.

——, on acclimatization, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on flora of Azores, 363.

——, on the flora of the Azores, 363.

——, on Alpine plants, 368, 376.

——, on Alpine plants, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.

——, on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

——, on the rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

Weald, denudation of, 285.

Weald, erosion of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Web of feet in water-birds, 185.

Web of feet in water, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

West Indian islands, mammals of, 396.

West Indies mammals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Westwood on species in large genera being closely allied to others, 57.

Westwood on species in large genera being closely related to others, 57.

—— on the tarsi of Engidæ, 157.

—— on the tarsi of Engidæ, 157.

—— on the antennæ of hymenopterous insects, 415.

—— on the antennae of wasps, bees, and similar insects, 415.

Wheat, varieties of, 113.

Wheat varieties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

White Mountains, flora of, 365.

White Mountains, plant life, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Wings, reduction of size, 134.

Wings, downsizing, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of insects homologous with branchiæ, 191.

—— of insects similar to gills, 191.

——, rudimentary, in insects, 450.

——, basic, in insects, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Wolf crossed with dog, 214.

Wolf-dog hybrid, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

—— of Falkland Isles, 394.

—— of Falkland Islands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Wollaston, Mr., on varieties of insects, 48.

Wollaston, Mr., on different types of insects, 48.

——, on fossil varieties of land-shells in Madeira, 52.

——, on fossil varieties of land shells in Madeira, 52.

——, on colours of insects on sea-shore, 132.

——, on the colors of insects on the seashore, 132.

——, on wingless beetles, 135.

——, on flightless beetles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

——, on the rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

——, on insular insects, 389.

——, on isolated insects, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on land-shells of Madeira, naturalised, 402.

——, on land snails of Madeira, naturalized, 402.

Wolves, varieties of, 90.

Wolves, different types of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Woodpecker, habits of, 184.

Woodpecker habits, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, green colour of, 197.

——, green color of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Woodward, Mr., on the duration of specific forms, 294.

Woodward, Mr., on how long specific forms last, 294.

——, on the continuous succession of genera, 316.

——, on the continuous succession of genera, 316.

——, on the succession of types, 339.

——, on the succession of types, 339.

World, species changing simultaneously throughout, 322.

World, species changing at the same time everywhere, 322.

Wrens, nest of, 243.

Wrens' nest, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

Y.

Y.

Youatt, Mr., on selection, 31.

Youatt, Mr., on selection, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on sub-breeds of sheep, 36.

——, on sheep sub-breeds, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

——, on rudimentary horns in young cattle, 454.

——, on basic horns in young cattle, 454.

Z.

Z.

Zebra, stripes on, 163.

Zebra, stripes on, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.

THE END.


LONDON: PRINTED BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET, AND CHARING CROSS.

LONDON: PRINTED BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET, AND CHARING CROSS.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!